FNISI Export Format
VR1.0
PT J
AU GARDNER, RW
TI COGNITIVE CONTROLS OF ATTENTION DEPLOYMENT AS DETERMINANTS OF VISUAL ILLUSIONS
SO JOURNAL OF ABNORMAL AND SOCIAL PSYCHOLOGY
LA English
DT Article
CR BENUSSI V, 1904, UNTERSUCHURGEN GEGEN, P303
BENUSSI V, 1912, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V24, P31
BONAPARTE M, 1954, ORIGINS PSYCHOANALYS, P355
EYSENCK HJ, 1958, BRIT J PSYCHOL, V49, P246
FREUD S, 1954, ORIGINS PSYCHOANALYS, P355
GARDNER RW, PI
GARDNER RW, 1959, B MENNINGER CLIN, V23, P241
GARDNER RW, 1960, PERCEPT MOTOR SKILL, V10, P107
GARDNER RW, 1960, PERCEPT MOTOR SKILL, V10, P47
HARTMANN H, 1939, EPPA
HEYMANS G, 1896, Z PSYCHOL, V9, P221
HOLZMAN PS, 1956, B MENNINGER CLIN, V20, P181
JONES M, 1954, NEBRASKA S MOTIVA ED, P224
JUDD CH, 1905, PSYCHOL MONOGR 29
KAISER HF, 1958, PSYCHOMETRIKA, V23, P187, DOI 10.1007/BF02289233
KLEIN GS, 1954, NEBRASKA S MOTIVATIO, P224
KLEIN GS, 1958, ASSESSMENT HUMAN MOT, P87
KOEHLER W, 1944, P AM PHILOS SOC, V88, P269
KOEHLER W, 1947, MISCELLANEA PSYCHOL, P196
KOEHLER W, 1950, J EXP PSYCHOL, V40, P267
LINDZEY G, 1958, ASSESSMENT HUMAN MOT, P87
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GE ED, P303
NEUHAUS JO, 1954, BRIT J STATIST PSY 2, V7, P81
PIAGET J, 1947, PSYCHOLOGY INTELLIGE
PIAGET J, 1950, ARCH PSYCHOL, V33, P1
PIAGET J, 1958, AM J PSYCHOL, V71, P277
RAPAPORT D, 1957, CONT APPROACHES COGN, P157
SCHILLER L, 1942, Z PSYCHOLOGIE, V153, P43
SELKIN J, 1957, PERCEPT MOTOR SKILL, V7, P265
SPITZ HH, 1958, PERCEPT MOTOR SKILL, V8, P219
SZEWEZUK W, 1938, TRAV LAB SPYCHOL EXP, V2, P89
THURSTONE LL, 1944, FACTORIAL STUDY PERC
WERTHEIMER M, 1955, J PERS, V24, P56
WITKIN HA, 1950, J PERS, V19, P1
WITKIN HA, 1954, PERSONALITY THROUGH
WITKIN HA, 1959, Q J STUD ALCOHOL, V20, P493
WITKIN HA, 1959, SCI AM, V200, P50
WUERSTEN H, 1947, ARCH PSYCHOL, V32, P1
NR 38
TC 70
PU AMER PSYCHOLOGICAL ASSOC
PI WASHINGTON
PA 750 FIRST ST NE, WASHINGTON, DC 20002-4242
J9 J ABN SOC PSYCH
PY 1961
VL 62
IS 1
BP 120
EP &
PG 0
SC Psychology
GA 03922
UT ISI:A19610392200013
ER

PT J
AU MULLIGAN, K
SIMONS, P
SMITH, B
TI TRUTH-MAKERS + MOMENTS AND THE 'TRACTATUS'
SO PHILOSOPHY AND PHENOMENOLOGICAL RESEARCH
LA English
DT Article
C1 SALZBURG UNIV,A-5020 SALZBURG,AUSTRIA.
UNIV MANCHESTER,MANCHESTER M13 9PL,LANCS,ENGLAND.
RP MULLIGAN, K, UNIV HAMBURG,W-2000 HAMBURG 13,GERMANY.
CR ALEXANDER HG, 1956, LEIBNIZ CLARKE CORRE
ANDERSON AR, 1975, ENTAILMENT LOGIC REL, V1
ANGELELLI I, 1967, STUDIES GOTTLOB FREG
ANSCOMBE GEM, 1961, 3 PHILOS
BRENTANO F, 1924, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN
BRENTANO F, 1933, KATEGORIENLEHRE
CAMPBELL K, 1976, METAPHYSICS INTRO
CHISHOLM RM, 1978, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V5, P197
CHISHOLM RM, 1981, 1ST PERSON ESSAY REF
CLARK R, 1970, NOUS, V4, P311
DAVIDSON D, 1980, ESSAYS ACTIONS EVENT
DIETRICH RA, 1974, SPRACHE WIRKLICHKEIT
DUMMETT M, 1973, FREGE PHILOS LANGUAG
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
FREGE G, 1969, NACHGELASSENE SCHRIF
GROSSMANN R, 1974, MEINONG
HORGAN T, 1978, PHILOS REV, V87, P28
HUSSERL E, 1894, PHILOS MONATSHEFTE, V30, P159
HUSSERL E, 1913, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
HUSSERL E, 1929, FORMALE TRANSZENDENT
HUSSERL E, 1939, ERFAHRUNG URTEIL
INGARDEN R, 1964, STREIT EXISTENZ WELT
KENNY A, 1980, AQUINAS
KUNG G, 1967, ONTOLOGY LOGISTIC AN
LONG DC, 1968, PARTICULARS THEIR QU
MEINONG A, 1915, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
MULLIGAN K, 1983, UNPUB RIV FILOSOFIA
PARSONS T, 1972, SEMANTICS NATURAL LA, P127
PRIOR AN, 1971, OBJECTS THOUGHT
PUTNAM H, 1978, MEANING MORAL SCI
QUINE WVO, 1976, WAYS OF PARADOX
RAMSEY FP, 1978, FOUNDATIONS
REINACH A, 1911, MUNCHENER PHILOS ABH, P196
RUSSELL B, 1903, PRINCIPLES MATH
RUSSELL B, 1972, LOGICAL ATOMISM
SHARVY R, 1980, PHILOS REV, V89, P607
SIMONS P, 1981, GRAZER PHILOS, V14, P73
SIMONS P, 1981, LOGIQUE ANAL, V24, P415
SIMONS P, 1982, PARTS MOMENTS STUDIE, P160
SIMONS P, 1982, PARTS MOMENTS STUDIE, P199
SIMONS P, 1982, PARTS MOMENTS, P113
SIMONS PM, 1981, ETHICS F PROBLEMS AP, P464
SIMONS PM, 1983, UNPUB RIV FILOSOFIA
SIMONS PM, 1983, UNPUB TOPOI
SMITH B, 1978, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V6, P39
SMITH B, 1981, P AR SOC S, V55, P47
SMITH B, 1982, LANGUAGE ONTOLOGY, P186
SMITH B, 1982, PARTS MOMENTS STUDIE, P15
SMITH B, 1983, UNPUB TOPOI
STENIUS E, 1964, WITTGENSTEINS TRACTA
STOUT GF, 1923, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC S, V3, P95
STRAWSON PF, 1959, INDIVIDUALS ESSAY DE
STRAWSON PF, 1974, SUBJECT PREDICATE LO
STUMPF C, 1873, PSYCHOL URSPRUNG RAU
TARSKI A, 1944, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V4, P341
WEYL H, 1918, KONTINUUM
WILLIAMS DC, 1953, REV METAPHYS, V6, P1
WILLIAMS DC, 1953, REV METAPHYSICS, V6, P172
WILSON JC, 1926, STATEMENT INFERENCE
WOLTERSTORFF N, 1970, UNIVERSALS PARTICULA
NR 60
TC 69
PU PHILOSOPHY PHENOMENOLOGICAL RES
PI PROVIDENCE
PA BROWN UNIV BOX 1947, PROVIDENCE, RI 02912
SN 0031-8205
J9 PHIL PHENOMENOL RES
JI Philos. Phenomenol. Res.
PY 1984
VL 44
IS 3
BP 287
EP 321
PG 35
SC Philosophy
GA SE257
UT ISI:A1984SE25700001
ER

PT J
AU Salmon, N
TI Nonexistence (Singular negative existentials)
SO NOUS
LA English
DT Article
ID MILLIAN HEIR; FICTION
C1 Univ Calif Santa Barbara, Santa Barbara, CA 93106 USA.
RP Salmon, N, Univ Calif Santa Barbara, Santa Barbara, CA 93106 USA.
CR ALMOG J, 1991, NOUS, V25, P591
BOCHVAR D, 1938, MAT SBORNIK, V46, P287
BRANDO M, PERF GODFATHER
BRAUN D, 1993, NOUS, V27, P449
CARTWRIGHT RL, 1960, J PHILOS, V57, P629
CHISHOLM R, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
CHURCH A, INTRO MATH LOGIC
CHURCH A, 1950, ANALYSIS, V10, P97
DAVIDSON D, 1969, WORDS OBJECTIONS ESS
DONNELLAN K, 1974, PHILOS REV, V83, P3
DOYLE AC, ADVENTURES OF SHERLO, IMP
DUMMETT M, 1960, J SYMBOLIC LOGIC, V25, P336
DUMMETT M, 1973, PHILOS LANGUAGE
EVANS G, 1982, VARIETIES REFERENCE
FILLMORE C, 1971, STUDIES LINGUISTIC S
FINE K, 1982, TOPOI-INT REV PHILOS, V1, P97
FREGE G, SINN BEDEUTUNG
GABBAY D, 1989, HDB PHILOS LOGIC, V4
GEACH P, 1970, TRANSLATIONS PHILOS
GEACH PT, 1967, J PHILOS, V74
HEINTZ J, 1979, POETICS, V8, P85
HERMES H, 1979, FREGE POSTHUMOUS WRI
HINTIKKA J, 1962, PHILOS REV, V71, P3
HINTIKKA KJ, 1973, APPROACHES NATURAL L
HOWELL R, 1979, POETICS, V8, P129
INAN I, COMMUNICATION
KAPLAN D, 1969, WORDS OBJECTIONS ESS, P178
KAPLAN D, 1971, REFERENCE MODALITY, P112
KAPLAN D, 1971, REFERENCE MODALITY, P135
KAPLAN D, 1973, APPROACHES NATURAL L, P490
KAPLAN D, 1990, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC S, V64, P93
KEENAN E, 1971, STUDIES LINGUISTIC S
KIPARSKI P, 1971, SEMANTICS
KRIPKE S, 1979, CONT PERSPECTIVES PH, P6
KRIPKE S, 1979, MEANING USE, P239
KRIPKE S, 1988, PROPOSITIONS ATTITUD, P102
KRIPKE SA, NAMING NECESSITY
KRIPKE SA, UNPUB REFERENCE EXIS
LEWIS D, PHILOS PAPERS
LEWIS D, 1978, AM PHILOS Q, V15, P37
LINSKY L, 1971, REFERENCE MODALITY
MARGALIS A, 1979, MEANING USE
MCCORMICK P, 1985, REASONS ART
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P76
MOORE GE, 1953, MAIN PROBLEMS PHILOS
PARSONS T, 1975, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V1, P73
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
PAVEL TG, 1986, FICTIONAL WORLDS
PLANTINGA A, 1974, NATURE NECESSITY
PLANTINGA A, 1979, ESSAYS PHILOS RM CHI, P101
PLANTINGA A, 1983, PHILOS STUD, V44, P1
QUINE WVO, 1953, LOGICAL POINT VIEW
QUINE WVO, 1960, WORD OBJECT
ROSEVEARE NT, 1982, MERCURYS PERIHELION
RUSSELL B, PRINCIPIA MATHEMATIC
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P479
RUSSELL B, 1918, PHILOS LOGICAL ATOMI
RUSSELL B, 1919, INTRO MATH PHILOS
RUSSELL B, 1959, MY PHILOS DEV
SALMON N, IN PRESS FS K DONNEL
SALMON N, 1981, REFERENCE ESSENCE
SALMON N, 1987, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V1, P49
SALMON N, 1988, PROPOSITIONS ATTITUD
SALMON N, 1989, NOUS, V23, P211
SALMON N, 1989, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V3, P243
SALMON N, 1990, ROLE CONTENT LOGIC L, P215
SALMON N, 1991, PHILOS STUD, V62, P165
SALMON N, 1992, LINGUIST PHILOS, V15, P53
SALMON N, 1993, NOUS, V27, P158
SALMON N, 1993, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V7, P125
SALMON N, 1993, PHILOS STUD, V69, P83, DOI 10.1007/BF00989625
SALMON N, 1994, BASIC TOPICS PHILOS, V27, P401
SALMON N, 1995, NOUS, V29, P1
SALMON NU, 1987, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, V88, P193
SCHWARTZ S, 1977, NAMING NECESSITY NAT
SOSA E, 1979, ESSAYS PHILOS RM CHI
STALNAKER R, 1978, SYNTAX SEMANTICS, V9, P315
STOKER B, DRACULA
STOOKEY P, PUFF MAGIC DRAGON, IMP
STRAWSON PF, ON REFERRING
STRAWSON PF, 1950, MIND, V59, P320
THOMASSON A, 1996, PHILOS STUD, V74, P295
VANINWAGEN P, 1977, AM PHILOS Q, V14, P299
VANINWAGEN P, 1983, PHILOS LITERATURE, V7, P67
WALTON K, 1978, J PHILOS, V75, P5
WALTON KL, 1990, MIMESIS MAKEBELIEVE
WATSON WZ, 1969, THESIS
WILLIAMS CJF, 1981, WHAT IS EXISTENCE
WILSON D, 1975, PRESUPPOSITIONS NON-
WOLTERSTORFF N, 1980, WORKS WORLDS ART
NR 90
TC 61
PU BLACKWELL PUBLISHERS
PI MALDEN
PA 350 MAIN STREET, STE 6, MALDEN, MA 02148 USA
SN 0029-4624
J9 NOUS
JI Nous
PD SEP
PY 1998
VL 32
IS 3
BP 277
EP 319
PG 43
SC Philosophy
GA 117CE
UT ISI:000075762200001
ER

PT J
AU Boring, EG
TI The stimulus-error
SO AMERICAN JOURNAL OF PSYCHOLOGY
LA English
DT Review
CR 1905, GRUNDZUGE PSYCHOL, V1, P71
1912, PSYCHOL B, V9, P245
1913, AM J PSYCHOL, V24, P274
1913, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V30, P113
1913, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V30, P124
1920, AM J PSYCHOL, V31, P27
1920, PSYCHOL REV, V27, P447
1920, PSYCHOL REV, V27, P449
AMENT W, 1900, PHILOS STUD, V16, P173
ANGELL F, 1891, PHILOS STUD, V7, P438
BOAS F, 1882, PFLUGERS ARCH, V28, P568
BORING EG, 1920, AM J PSYCHOL, V31, P77
BORING EG, 1920, PSYCHOL REV, V27, P446
BORING, 1916, Q J EXP PHYSL, V10, P23
BRENTANO F, 1874, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN, V1, P91
BRUCKNER A, 1901, Z PSYCHOL, P26
BRUCKNER A, 1901, Z PSYCHOL, P54
BRUCKNER A, 1901, Z PSYCHOL, P60
CATTELL, 1893, AM J PSYCHOL, V5, P287
DELASKI E, 1916, AM J PSYCHOL, V27, P569
EBBINGHAUS H, 1890, Z PSYCHOL, V1, P323
EXNER S, 1879, HDB PHYSL, V2, P242
FECHNER GT, 1889, ELEMENTE PSYCHOPHYSI, V1, P1
FECHNER, ELEMENTE, V2, P318
FECHNER, 1882, REVISION HAUPTPUNKTE, P5
FOUCALT M, 1910, ILLUSION PARADOXALE, P122
FRIEDLANDER H, 1920, Z PSYCHOL, V83, P187
FRIEDLINE CL, 1918, AM J PSYCHOL, V29, P415
FROBES J, 1904, Z PSYCHOL, V36, P259
FULLERTON GS, 1892, PERCEPTION SMALL DIF, P20
FULLERTON, 1893, AM J PSYCHOL, V5, P287
GATES EJ, 1915, AM J PSYCHOL, V26, P152
GRIESBACH H, 1895, ARCH HYG, V24, P124
GROTENFELT A, 1888, WEBERSCHE GESETZ PSY, P111
HENRI V, 1898, RAUMWAHRNEHMUNGEN TA, V6
HENRI, RAUMWAHRNEHMUNGEN, P61
HENRI, 1895, PHILOS STUD, V11, P403
HOISINGTON LB, 1920, AM J PSYCHOL, V31, P114
JAMES W, 1890, PRINCIPLES PSYCHOL, V1, P546
KULPE O, 1896, OUTLINES PSYCHOL, P45
KULPE O, 1902, PHILOS STUDIEN, V19, P508
KULPE O, 1920, VORLESUNGEN PSYCHOL, P5
MARTIUS G, PHILOS STUD, V5, P605
MCDOUGALL W, 1903, REP CAMBRIDGE ANTHR, V2, P189
MEINONG A, 1896, Z PSYCHOL, V11, P96
MULLER FA, 1882, AXIOM PSYCHOPHYSIK, P46
MULLER GE, 1878, GRUNDLEGUNG PSYCHOPH, P224
MULLER GE, 1904, GESICHTSPUNKTE TATSA, P237
MUNSTERBERG H, 1900, BEITRAGE EXPT PSYCHO, V3, P98
NEIGLICK H, 1888, PHILOS STUD
ROBERTSON TB, 1909, MONIST, V19, P372
ROBERTSON TB, 1909, MONIST, V19, P384
TANNERY J, 1883, ELEMENTS PSYCHOPHYSI, P138
TAWNEY G, 1895, PSYCHOL REV, V2, P585
TAWNEY, 1897, PHILOS STUD, V13, P170
TAWNEY, 1897, PHILOS STUD, V13, P186
TITCHENER EB, 1905, EXPER PSYCHOL, V2
TITCHENER EB, 1905, EXPER PSYCHOL, V2, P198
TITCHENER EB, 1905, EXPER PSYCHOL, V2, P203
TITCHENER EB, 1905, EXPER PSYCHOL, V2, P207
TITCHENER EB, 1905, EXPER PSYCHOL, V2, P219
TITCHENER EB, 1905, EXPER PSYCHOL, V2, P223
TITCHENER EB, 1905, EXPER PSYCHOL, V2, P230
TITCHENER EB, 1905, EXPER PSYCHOL, V2, P262
TITCHENER EB, 1905, EXPER PSYCHOL, V2, P450
TITCHENER EB, 1905, EXPER PSYCHOL, V2, P63
TITCHENER EB, 1905, EXPT PSYCHOL, V2, R26
TITCHENER EB, 1910, TXB PSYCHOL, P202
TITCHENER EB, 1915, AM J PSYCHOL, V26, P258
TITCHENER, EXPER PSYCHOL, V1, R27
TITCHENER, EXPER PSYCHOL, V2, P198
TITCHENER, EXPER PSYCHOL, V2, P203
TITCHENER, EXPER PSYCHOL, V2, P219
TITCHENER, EXPER PSYCHOL, V2, P230
TITCHENER, EXPER PSYCHOL, V2, P262
TITCHENER, EXPER PSYCHOL, V2, P84
TITCHENER, EXPER PSYCHOL, V2, R134
TITCHENER, EXPER PSYCHOL, V2, R48
TITCHENER, EXPER PSYCHOL, V2, R56
TITCHENER, EXPER PSYCHOL, V2, R74
TITCHENER, EXPER PSYCHOL, V2, R78
TITCHENER, EXPER PSYCHOL, V2, R80
TITCHENER, EXPER PSYCHOL, V2, R82
TITCHENER, TEXTBOOK, P218
TITCHENER, TEXTBOOK, P350
TITCHENER, TEXTBOOK, P398
TITCHENER, TEXTBOOK, P522
TITCHENER, 1916, P AM PHILOS SOC, V55, P206
TITCHENER, 1921, AM J PSYCHOL, V32, P108
URBAN, PSYCHOL REV, V17, P243
URBAN, STAT METH, P5
URBAN, STAT METH, P70
URBAN, STAT METH, V5, P17
URBAN, 1908, APPL STAT METHODS PR, P17
URBAN, 1910, PSYCHOL REV, V17, P27
VONKRIES J, 1882, VTJSCHR WISS PHILOS, P275
VONKRIES J, 1882, VTJSCHR WISS PHILOS, P6
WARD J, 1876, MIND, V1, P460
WATSON JB, 1913, J PHILOS, V10, P427
WATSON JB, 1913, PSYCHOL REV, V20, P177
WATSON JB, 1920, PSYCHOLOGY, V7
WATSON, 1919, PSYCHOL STANDPOINT B
WELD HP, 1917, TITCHENER STUDIES PS, P181
NR 103
TC 53
PU UNIV ILLINOIS PRESS
PI CHAMPAIGN
PA 1325 S OAK ST, CHAMPAIGN, IL 61820 USA
SN 0002-9556
J9 AMER J PSYCHOL
JI Am. J. Psychol.
PY 1921
VL 32
BP 449
EP 471
PG 23
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V01XS
UT ISI:000200129200031
ER

PT J
AU Smith, B
Varzi, AC
TI Fiat and bona fide boundaries
SO PHILOSOPHY AND PHENOMENOLOGICAL RESEARCH
LA English
DT Article
ID PARTS; MEREOTOPOLOGY
AB There is a basic distinction, in the realm of spatial boundaries, between bona fide boundaries on the one hand, and fiat boundaries on the other. The former are just the physical boundaries of old. the latter are exemplified especially by boundaries induced through human demarcation, for example, in the geographic domain. The classical metaphysical problems connected with the notions of adjacency, contact, separation, and division can be resolved in an intuitive way by recognizing this two-sorted ontology of boundaries. Bona fide boundaries yield a notion of contact that is effectively modelled by classical topology; the analogue of contact involving fiat boundaries calls, however, for a different account, based on the intuition that fiat boundaries do not support the open/closed distinction on which classical topology is based. In the presence of this two-sorted ontology it then transpires that mereotopology-typology erected on a mereological basis-is more than a trivial formal variant of classical point-st topology.
C1 State University New York Buffalo, Buffalo, NY USA.
Columbia Univ, New York, NY 10027 USA.
RP Smith, B, State University New York Buffalo, Buffalo, NY USA.
CR ASHER N, 1995, P 14 INT JOINT C ART, P846
BOLZANO B, 1851, PARADOXIEN UNENDLICH
BRENTANO F, 1924, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN
BRENTANO F, 1933, KATEGORIENLEHRE
BRENTANO F, 1976, PHILOS UNTERSUCHUNGE
CASATI R, 1994, HOLES OTHER SUPERFIC
CASATI R, 1996, PHILOS STUD, V82, P205
CASATI R, 1999, PARTS PLACES STRUCTU
CHISHOLM RM, 1984, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V10, P87
CHISHOLM RM, 1992, BRENTANO STUDIEN, V4, P11
COHN AG, 1998, P 13TH EUROPEAN C AR, P150
FREGE G, 1884, GRUNDLAGEN ARITHMETI
GOTTS NM, 1996, MONIST, V79, P51
HOBBS JR, 1985, FORMAL THEORIES COMM
JACKENDOFF R, 1991, COGNITION, V41, P9
MEINONG A, 1899, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V21, P182
PINESI F, 1996, MONIST, V78, P89
QUINE WV, 1985, ACTIONS EVENTS PERSP, P162
SIMONS PM, 1987, PARTS STUDY ONTOLOGY
SMITH B, 1992, LANGUAGE TRUTH ONTOL, P50
SMITH B, 1993, P INT WORKSH FORM ON, P51
SMITH B, 1995, ACTA PHILOS FENN, V58, P290
SMITH B, 1995, SPATIAL INFORMATION, P475
SMITH B, 1996, DATA KNOWL ENG, V20, P287
SMITH B, 1997, PHILOS R CHISHOLM, P534
SMITH B, 1999, NOUS, V33, P214
STROLL A, 1988, SURFACES
TYE M, 1990, MIND, V99, P535
VARZI AC, 1994, PHILOS COGNITIVE SCI, P423
VARZI AC, 1996, DATA KNOWL ENG, V20, P259
VARZI AC, 1996, LOGIC LOGICAL PHILOS, V4, P3
VARZI AC, 1997, NOUS, V31, P26
WHITEHEAD AN, 1929, PROCESS REALITY ESSA
NR 33
TC 51
PU PHILOSOPHY PHENOMENOLOGICAL RES
PI PROVIDENCE
PA BROWN UNIV BOX 1947, PROVIDENCE, RI 02912 USA
SN 0031-8205
J9 PHIL PHENOMENOL RES
JI Philos. Phenomenol. Res.
PD MAR
PY 2000
VL 60
IS 2
BP 401
EP 420
PG 20
SC Philosophy
GA 292WF
UT ISI:000085817700007
ER

PT J
AU Malmberg, CF
AF Malmberg, Constantine Frithiof
TI THE PERCEPTION OF CONSONANCE AND DISSONANCE
SO PSYCHOLOGICAL MONOGRAPHS
LA English
DT Article
CR BUCH E, 1900, PHILOS STUD, V15, P240
EULER L, 1739, TENTAMEN NOVAE THEOR, CH2
FAIST A, 1897, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V15, P102
HELMHOLZ HLF, SENSATION TONE
HOHENEMSER R, 1906, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL, V41, P164
KRUEGER F, 1903, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V1, P205
KRUEGER F, 1905, BEWUSSTSEIN KONSONAN
KRUEGER F, 1909, PSYCHOL STUD, V5, P294
KRUEGER F, 1913, J PHILOS, V10, P158
LEIBNITZ GW, PRINCIPS NATURE GRAC, P240
LIPPS T, PSYCHOL STUD, V92
LIPPS T, 1899, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL, V19, P1
MEINONG A, 1897, Z PSYCHOL, V15, P189
MEYER M, 1897, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL, V15
MEYER M, 1897, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL, V16, P1
MEYER M, 1898, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL, V16
MEYER M, 1898, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL, V17, P401
MEYERS CS, BRIT J PSYCHOL, V7, P68
OGDEN RM, 1909, PSYCHOL BULL, V6, P297
PEAR TH, 1911, BRIT J PSYCHOL 1, V4, P56
PETERSON J, 1908, PSYCHOL REV MONOG S, V9, P1
PREYER W, 1879, AKUSTISCHE UNTERSUCH, P44
SCHAEFER K, 1909, ERGEB PHYSL, V8, P1
SCHOPENHAUER A, METAPHYSICS MUSIC, V3, P235
SCHULZE R, 1898, PHILOS STUD, V14, P471
SEASHORE CE, PSYCHOL MONOG, V69
SEASHORE CE, 1910, PSYCHOL MONOG, V13
SEASHORE CE, 1914, U IOWA STUD PSYCHOL, V6, P1
STUMPF C, BEITRAGE Z AK MUSIKW, V2, P168
STUMPF C, BEITRAGE Z AK MUSIKW, V5, P3
STUMPF C, 1883, TONPSYCHOLOGIE
STUMPF C, 1897, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V15, P280
STUMPF C, 1898, BEITRAGE MUSIKVISS, V1, P91
STUMPF C, 1898, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL, V17, P422
STUMPF C, 1898, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL, V18
STUMPF C, 1902, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL, V27, P148
STUMPF C, 1905, Z PSYCHOL, V39, P269
STUMPF C, 1911, ANFANGE MUSIK
SYLVESTER RH, IOWA ACAD SC PROCEED, V17, P195
TITCHENER EB, 1902, PHILOS STUD, V20, P382
VALENTINE CW, BRIT J PSYCHOL, V7, P118
WATT HJ, BRIT J PSYCHOL, V7, P1
WUNDT W, 1902, PHYSL PSYCHOL, V2
NR 43
TC 39
PU AMER PSYCHOLOGICAL ASSOC
PI WASHINGTON
PA 750 FIRST ST NE, WASHINGTON, DC 20002-4242 USA
SN 0096-9753
J9 PSYCHOL MONOGRAPHS
JI Psychol. Monogr.
PY 1918
VL 25
IS 2
BP 93
EP 133
PG 41
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V97HI
UT ISI:000206576200004
ER

PT J
AU Smith, B
TI Fiat objects (Spatial boundaries)
SO TOPOI-AN INTERNATIONAL REVIEW OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
C1 State University New York Buffalo, Dept Philosophy, Buffalo, NY USA.
RP Smith, B, State University New York Buffalo, Dept Philosophy, Buffalo, NY USA.
CR BIRD A, 1969, J HIST IDEAS, V57, P217
BITTNER T, 2000, IN PRESS ANN MATH AR
BRENTANO F, 1988, PHILOS INVESTIGATIOS
CASATI R, 1994, HOLES OTHER SUPERFIC
CASATI R, 1999, PARTS PLACES STRUCTU
CHISHOLM RM, 1989, METAPHYSICS
COMRIE B, 1976, ASPECT INTRO STUDY V
EDGERTON S, 1957, RENAISSANCE REBIRTH
FINE K, 1975, SYNTHESE, V30, P265
FREGE G, 1884, GRUNDLAGEN ARITHMETI
GARDENFORS P, 2000, CONCEPTUAL SPACES GE
GIBSON JJ, 1979, ECOLOGICAL APPROACH
HERING E, 1964, OUTLINES THEORY LIGH
HOBBS JR, 1985, FORMAL THEORIES COMM
HOFSTADTER A, 1939, PHILOS SCI, V6, P446
KENNY A, 1975, WILL FREEDOM POWER
LAKOFF G, 1987, WOMEN FIRE DANGEROUS
LANGACKER R, 1991, FDN COGNITIVE GRAMMA
MCGEE V, 1997, CANADIAN J PHILOS, V23, P141
MEINONG A, 1899, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V21, P182
MOSTOWSKI M, 1983, STUDIES LOGIC GRAMMA, V3, P106
MOURELATOS APD, 1981, TENSE ASPECT, P191
OJEDA A, 1993, LINGUISTIC INDIVIDUA
QUINE WVO, 1969, ONTOLOGICAL RELATIVI
REA M, 1997, MATERIAL CONSTITUTIO
SMITH B, 1987, SPEECH ACT SACHVERHA, P189
SMITH B, 1992, LANGUAGE TRUTH ONTOL
SMITH B, 1994, PARTS WHOLES CONCEPT, P15
SMITH B, 1995, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V50, P187
SMITH B, 1995, SPATIAL INFORMATION, P475
SMITH B, 1997, CURRENT ISSUES POLIT, P394
SMITH B, 1997, PHILOS R CHISHOLM, P534
SMITH B, 1999, AM J ECON SOCIOL, V58, P245
SMITH B, 1999, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V77, P274
SMITH B, 1999, NOUS, V33, P198
SMITH B, 1999, P COSIT 99, P267
SMITH B, 2000, PHILOS PHENOMEN RES, V60, P401
SMITH B, 2001, IN PRESS AM J EC SOC, V59
SMITH B, 2001, IN PRESS LOGIQUE ANA
STOVE D, 1991, PLATO CULT OTHER PHI
TALMY L, 1969, GRAMMATICAL CONSTRUC, P235
TALMY L, 1995, LANGUAGE SPACE
VANINWAGEN P, 1981, PACIFIC PHILOS Q, V62, P123
VARZI AC, 2001, PHILOS GEOGRAPHY, V4, P49
NR 44
TC 38
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0167-7411
J9 TOPOI-INT REV PHIL
JI Topoi-Int. Rev. Philos.
PY 2001
VL 20
IS 2
BP 131
EP 148
PG 18
SC Philosophy
GA 480MJ
UT ISI:000171464900002
ER

PT J
AU LUHMANN, N
TI FUTURE CANNOT BEGIN - TEMPORAL STRUCTURES IN MODERN SOCIETY
SO SOCIAL RESEARCH
LA English
DT Article
C1 UNIV BIEFELD,BIEFELD,FED REP GER.
CR ACKOFF RL, 1972, PURPOSEFUL SYSTEMS, P30
ARISTOTLE, PHYSICS
ASHBY WR, 1952, DESIGN BRAIN
BAUDRY L, 1950, QUERELLE FUTURS CONT
BECKER CL, 1932, HEAVENLY CITY 18TH C
BELL W, 1971, SOCIOLOGY FUTURE, P6
BENSMAN J, 1973, CRAFT CONSCIOUSNESS, P282
BERNOT L, 1953, NOUVILLE VILLAGE FRA, P321
BLUMENBERG H, 1970, SELBSTERHALTUNG BEHA
BOGUSLAW R, 1965, NEW UTOPIANS STUDY S
BRUNSCHVICG L, 1949, EXPERIENCE HUMAINE C, P355
CONDORCET AD, 1794, ESQUISSE TABLEAU HIS
COTTLE TJ, 1974, PRESENT THINGS FUTUR, P108
COUMET E, 1970, ANNALES-ECON SOC, V25, P574
EMERY FE, 1973, TOWARDS SOCIAL ECOLO, P88
ENGELHARDT P, 1966, FESTCHRIFT M MULLER, P352
FOA UG, 1971, BEHAV SCI, V16, P130
GALTUNG J, 1970, 7TH WORLD C SOC VARN
GERHARDT CJ, 1961, PHILOSOPHISCHEN SCHF, V6, P329
GREGOIRE H, 1798, MEMOIRES I NATIO SMP, V1, P552
GURVITCH G, 1964, SPECTRUM SOCIAL TIME, P20
HABERMAS J, 1968, TECHNIK WISSENSCHAFT
HABERMAS J, 1971, THEORIE GESELLSCHAFT
HARTMANN N, 1949, MOGLICHKEIT WIRKLICH, P223
HEIDEGGER M, 1916, Z PHILOSOPHIE PHILOS, V160, P173
HUBER BJ, 1974, SOC INQ, V44, P29
HUSSERL E, ERSTE PHILOSOPHIE, V2
HUSSERL E, PHILOSOPHIA, V1
HUSSERL E, 1948, ERFAHRUNG URTEIL UNT
HUSSERL E, 1950, HUSSERLIANA, V3, P48
HUSSERL E, 1954, HUSSERLIANA, V4
HUSSERL E, 1959, HUSSERLIANA, V8, P146
HUSSERL E, 1966, ANALYSEN PASSIVEN SY, V11, P3
KLEMPT A, 1960, SAKULARISIERUNG UNIV, P81
KOSELLECK R, 1967, NATUR GESCH, P196
KOSELLECK R, 1968, FESTGABE C SCHMITT, P551
LASZLO E, 1974, STRATEGY FUTURE SYST
LILIENFELD R, 1975, SOC RES, V42, P637
LOVEJOY AO, 1936, GREAT CHAIN BEING ST
LUHMANN N, 1973, VERTRAUEN MECHANISMU
LUHMANN N, 1974, GEWALTVERHALTNISSE O, P107
LUHMANN N, 1975, AUFKLARUNG, V2, P150
MALTZ D, 1968, CORNELL J SOC RELAT, V3, P85
MARTINS H, 1974, APPROACHES SOCIOLOGY, P246
MAU JA, 1968, SOCIAL CHANGE IMAGES
MCTAGGART JME, 1908, MIND, V17, P457
MEAD GH, 1932, PHILOSOPHY PRESENT, P88
MEINONG A, 1915, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
MERCIER LS, 1772, DEUX MILLE QUATRE CE
NISBERT R, 1969, SOCIAL CHANGE HISTOR, P106
OCKHAM W, 1945, TRACTATUS PRAEDESTIN
PAPE I, 1966, TRADITION TRANSFORMA, V1, P224
PARSONS T, 1967, SOCIOLOGICAL THEORY, P297
PARSONS T, 1970, THEOR SOCIOL, P27
POLAK FL, 1961, IMAGE FUTURE
POULET G, 1956, STUDIES HUMAN TIME, P26
REID H, 1972, HUM CONTEXT, V4, P456
REID HG, 1973, POLITICS SOC, V3, P207
RITTER J, 1957, HEGEL FRANZOSISCHE R
SAMBURSKY S, 1971, CONCEPT TIME LATE NE
SCHON DA, 1973, BEYOND STABLE STATE
SCHUTZ A, 1932, SINNHAFTE AUFBAU SOZ
SOROKIN PA, 1937, AM J SOCIOL, V42, P615
SOROKIN PA, 1937, SOCIAL CULTURAL DYNA, V2, P473
SOROKIN PA, 1964, SOCIOCULTURAL CAUSAL, P171
TOCQUEVILLE A, 1866, ANCIEN REGIME REVOLU
WILKE J, 1974, ZEITGEDICHT SEINE HE
WILSON C, 1956, W HEYTESBURY MEDIEVA, P29
ZUBE MJ, 1972, SOC FORCES, V50, P385
NR 69
TC 36
PU NEW SCH SOC RES
PI NEW YORK
PA GRADUATE FACULTY 66 W 12TH ST, NEW YORK, NY 10011
SN 0037-783X
J9 SOC RES
JI Soc. Res.
PY 1976
VL 43
IS 1
BP 130
EP 152
PG 23
SC Social Sciences, Interdisciplinary
GA BQ137
UT ISI:A1976BQ13700008
ER

PT J
AU RAPAPORT, WJ
TI MEINONGIAN THEORIES AND A RUSSELLIAN PARADOX
SO NOUS
LA English
DT Article
C1 SUNY COLL FREDONIA,FREDONIA,NY 14063.
CR 1971, OXFORD ENGLISH DICTI
BERGMANN G, 1959, MEANING EXISTENCE
CASTANEDA HN, UNPUBLISHED
CASTANEDA HN, 1974, NOUS, V8, P381
CASTANEDA HN, 1974, PHILOSOPHIA, V4, P3
CASTANEDA HN, 1975, AM PHILOS Q, V12, P131
CASTANEDA HN, 1975, APR AM PHIL ASS WEST
CASTANEDA HN, 1975, PHILOSOPHIA, V5, P121
CASTANEDA HN, 1975, THINKING DOING PHILO
CASTANEDA HN, 1976, CRITICA, V8, P109
CASTANEDA HN, 1978, NOUS, V12, P189
CHISHOLM RM, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P3
CHISOLM RM, 1973, PHILOS STUD, V24, P245
CLARK RL, 1978, NOUS, V12
COCCHIARELLA N, 1972, NOUS, V6, P165
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
GRANDY R, 1972, J PHILOS LOGIC, V1, P137
GREGORY RL, 1970, INTELLIGENT EYE
GROSSMANN R, 1969, AM PHILOSOPHICAL Q, V6, P17
GROSSMANN R, 1972, NOUS, V6, P153
GROSSMANN R, 1974, MEINONG
GROSSMANN R, 1974, NOUS, V8, P67
JERRISON HJ, 1976, SCI AM, V234, P90
LAMBERT K, 1973, INQUIRY, V16, P221
LAMBERT K, 1974, INQUIRY, V17, P303
LANDESMAN C, 1975, APR AM PHIL ASS WEST
MEINONG A, 1904, ALEXIUS MEINONG GESA, V2, P481
MEINONG A, 1907, A MEINONG GESAMTAUSG, V5, P197
MEINONG A, 1910, ANNAHMEN
MEINONG A, 1915, A MEINONG GESAMTAUSG, V6
MEINONG A, 1917, EMOTIONAL PRESENTATI
ORAYEN R, 1970, CUADERNOS FILOSOFIA, V10, P327
PARSONS T, 1974, J PHILOS, V71, P561
PARSONS T, 1976, MAY AM PHIL ASS WEST
PARSONS T, 1978, NOUS, V12, P137
QUINE WV, 1969, WORDS OBJECTIONS, P292
RAPAPORT WJ, 1976, THESIS INDIANA U
RAPAPORT WJ, 1977, DEC EAST DIV M AM PH
ROUTLEY R, 1973, REV INT PHILOS, V27, P224
RUSSELL B, 1904, MIND, V13, P204
RUSSELL B, 1904, MIND, V13, P336
RUSSELL B, 1904, MIND, V13, P509
STRAWSON PF, 1974, SUBJECT PREDICATE LO
NR 43
TC 35
PU BLACKWELL PUBLISHERS
PI CAMBRIDGE
PA 350 MAIN STREET, STE 6, CAMBRIDGE, MA 02148-5023
SN 0029-4624
J9 NOUS
JI Nous
PY 1978
VL 12
IS 2
BP 153
EP 180
PG 28
SC Philosophy
GA FQ774
UT ISI:A1978FQ77400004
ER

PT J
AU Benussi, V
AF Benussi, Vittorio
TI Respiratorial Symptoms of a Lie
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Article
CR 1911, PSYCH STUD, V7, P234
1912, ARCH GES PSYCH, V25, P78
DROZYNSKI L, 1911, PSYCH STUD, V8, P83
MEINONG A, ANNAHMEN, P116
SALOW P, 1907, PSYCH STUD, V4
WUNDT W, 1912, PSYCHOL STUDIEN, V8, P1
NR 6
TC 35
SN 0724-7842
J9 ARCG GESAMTE PSYCHOL
JI Archiv. Gesamte Psychol.
PD JAN 27
PY 1914
VL 31
IS 1-2
BP 244
EP 273
PG 30
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V98HF
UT ISI:000206643500006
ER

PT J
AU Lund, FH
TI The psychology of belief - A study of its emotional and volitional determinants
SO JOURNAL OF ABNORMAL AND SOCIAL PSYCHOLOGY
LA English
DT Article
CR BAGEHOT W, LITERARY STUDIES, V1, P412
BAIN A, EMOTIONS WILL, V11
BAIN A, MENTAL MORAL SCI, V8
BALFOUR AJ, 1895, FDN BELIEF
BRENTANO F, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN, P7
BRIDGES JW, 1914, PSYCH MONOG, P17
COOLEY CH, 1922, HUMAN NATURE SOC ORD
FULLERTON, 1892, PUBLICATION U PENNSY, P2
HERMON VAC, 1911, PSYCHOL REV, V18, P186
HOLLINGWORTH HL, 1913, ARCH PSYCHO, P29
HOLLINGWORTH HL, 1916, J PHIL PSYCH MAR
JAMES W, PSYCHOLOGY, V2, CH21
JANET P, OBSESSIONS PSYCHASTH
JASTROW J, 1918, PSYCHOL CONVICTION
LINDSAY J, 1910, ARCH SYST PHIL, V16, P293
MARTIN AH, 1922, ARCH PSYCHOL, P51
MCDOUGALL W, 1921, PSYCHOL REV, V28, P315
MCDOUGALL W, 1923, SCRIBNERS
MEINONG A, 1910, ANNAHMEN, P403
METCALF JT, 1917, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V23, P181
MILL JS, ANAL PHENOMENA HUMAN, CH11
MOORE HT, 1921, AM J PSYCHOL, V32, P16
OKABE T, 1910, AM J PSYCHOL, V21, P563
PERRY RB, 1921, J PHILOS, V18, P170
PILLSBURY WB, 1910, PSYCHOLOGY REASONING
POFFENBERGER AT, 1923, J APPL PSYCHOL, V8, P1
ROBACK AA, 1920, PSYCHOL BULL, V17, P53
ROGERS AK, 1923, WHAT TRUTH, P1
RUGER HA, ARCH PSYCHOL
RUSSELL B, ANALY MIND
STERN W, 1910, AM J PSYCHOL, V21, P270
STOUT GF, ANAL PSYCHOL, P97
SUMNER FB, 1898, PSYCHOL REV, V5, P616
TITCHENER EB, 1909, EXPT PSYCHOL HIGHER, P250
TROW WC, 1923, ARCH PSYCH, V67
WALLAS G, BELIEF POLITICS
WATSON JB, 1920, B J PSYCHOL-GEN SE 1, V11, P87, UNSP X336095
WELLS WR, 1921, BIOL FDN BELIEF
WILLIAMSON GF, 1915, J PHILOS PSYCHOL SCI, V12, P127
NR 39
TC 33
PU AMER PSYCHOLOGICAL ASSOC
PI WASHINGTON
PA 750 FIRST ST NE, WASHINGTON, DC 20002-4242 USA
J9 J ABN SOC PSYCH
JI J Abnorm. Soc. Psychol.
PY 1925
VL 20
SI Sp. Iss. YRS 1925/6
BP 174
EP 196
PG 23
SC Psychology
GA V15XJ
UT ISI:000201074700017
ER

PT J
AU Valsiner, J
TI Process structure of semiotic mediation in human development
SO HUMAN DEVELOPMENT
LA English
DT Article
DE prospective development; hierarchization; regulation; semiosis; signs
AB Development of semiotic mediation of psychological functions entails construction and use of signs to regulate both interpersonal and intrapersonal psychological processes. The latter can be viewed as regulated through a hierarchy of semiotic mechanisms. It is demonstrated that semiotic mediation leads to the creation of psychological problems as well as to their solutions. Semiotic mediation guarantees both flexibility and inflexibility of the human psychological system, through the processes of abstracting generalization and contextualizing specification, which operate through the layers of the semiotic regulation hierarchy. Context specificity of psychological phenomena is an indication of general mechanisms that generate variability.
Much has been written about the role of signs - semiotic mediators - in psychology over recent decades. Usually more or less elaborate claims in favor of the importance of signs - semiotic mediators, words, 'voices', meanings - in human psychological worlds have been made [Cole, 1996; Shweder, 1995; Wertsch, 1991, 1998]. That importance is here taken for granted, and the question addressed moves beyond the discourse about the social nature of the human individual psyche [Valsiner & Van der Veer, 2000].
In which ways could one conceptualize the functioning of signs in the regulation of psychological processes? The present elaboration is based on previous work along similar lines [Valsiner, 1996, 1997a, 1998a, 1999]. By a focus on regulation, a systemic perspective is immediately evoked. The system that is being regulated entails psychological processes of intra- and interpsychological communication. These processes are mutually related in a hierarchical organizational order- some of them (higher psychological functions, based on the operation of signs) controlling others (lower, nonintentional psychological functions, or flow of personal experience). The hierarchy can be viewed as open to changes [including reversals, or formation of intransitive order - see Valsiner, 1997d]. The person is viewed as inclusively separated from its environment [Valsiner, 1997a, 1998c]. The intrapsychological system is cultural through the inclusion of semiotic regulators into the hierarchy of psychological processes [Valsiner, 1998a]. How that system works in its immediate relatedness with the environment is the target of the present theoretical construction.
C1 Clark Univ, Frances L Hiatt Sch Psychol, Worcester, MA 01610 USA.
RP Valsiner, J, Clark Univ, Frances L Hiatt Sch Psychol, 950 Main St, Worcester, MA 01610 USA.
CR BALDWIN JM, 1915, GENETIC THEORY REALI
BERGSON H, 1907, CREATIVE EVOLUTION
BUDWIG N, 1998, FUTURE CLARK PAPERS, V1, P36
BUHLER K, 1934, THEORY LANGUAGE REPR
CASSIRER E, 1926, PHILOS SYMBOLIC FORM, V2
CASSIRER E, 1929, PHILOS SYMBOLIC FORM, V3
COLE M, 1996, CULTURAL PSYCHOL
ENGLER R, 1968, FD COURS LINGUISTIQU
HEIDER F, 1958, PSYCHOL INTERPERSONA
JOSEPHS IE, 1999, ACTION SELF DEV, P257
KATONA G, 1940, ORG MEMORIZING
LYRA MC, IN PRESS DIALOGICALI, V6
MEAD GH, 1912, J PHILOS PSYCHOL SCI, V9, P401
MEAD GH, 1913, J PHILOS PSYCHOL SCI, V10, P374
MEINONG A, 2002, ASSUMPTIONS
OBEYESEKERE G, 1990, WORK CULTURE
OHNUKITIERNEY E, 1994, HOMME, V34, P59
PEIRCE CS, 1893, MONIST, V3, P176
PEIRCE CS, 1935, COLLECTED PAPERS CS, V6
SHWEDER RA, 1995, CULT PSYCHOL, V1, P115
VALSINER J, 1996, SWISS J PSYCHOL, V55, P119
VALSINER J, 1997, 26 INT AM C PSYCH SA
VALSINER J, 1997, CULTURE DEV CHILDREN
VALSINER J, 1997, POLISH Q DEV PSYCHOL, V3, P155
VALSINER J, 1998, FUTURE CLARK PAPERS, V1, P15
VALSINER J, 1998, GUIDED MIND
VALSINER J, 1998, HDB CHILD PSYCHOL, V1, P189
VALSINER J, 1998, HUM DEV, V41, P350
VALSINER J, 1999, HUM DEV, V42, P26
VALSINER J, 2000, SOCIAL MIND
VANDERVEER R, 1991, UNDERSTANDING VYGOTS
VONHUMBOLDT W, 1922, W VONHUMBOLDTS GESAM, V4, P420
VYGOTSKY LS, 1934, MYSHLENIE REC PSIKHO
VYGOTSKY LS, 1986, THOUGHT LANGUAGE
WERNER H, 1956, AM ANTHROPOL, V58, P866
WERTSCH JV, 1991, VOICES MIND
WERTSCH JV, 1998, MIND ACTION
NR 37
TC 32
PU KARGER
PI BASEL
PA ALLSCHWILERSTRASSE 10, CH-4009 BASEL, SWITZERLAND
SN 0018-716X
J9 HUM DEVELOP
JI Hum. Dev.
PD MAR-JUN
PY 2001
VL 44
IS 2-3
BP 84
EP 97
PG 14
SC Psychology, Developmental
GA 437DB
UT ISI:000168974000003
ER

PT J
AU RAPAPORT, WJ
TI LOGICAL-FOUNDATIONS FOR BELIEF REPRESENTATION
SO COGNITIVE SCIENCE
LA English
DT Article
C1 SUNY BUFFALO,GRAD GRP COGNIT SCI,BUFFALO,NY 14260.
RP RAPAPORT, WJ, SUNY BUFFALO,DEPT COMP SCI,BUFFALO,NY 14260.
CR ADAMS RM, 1983, AGENT LANGUAGE STRUC
BAKER LR, 1981, AM PHILOS Q, V18, P157
BARNDEN JA, 1983, 8TH P INT JOINT C AR, P280
BOER SE, 1976, PHILOS STUDIES, V28, P299
BOER SE, 1980, PHILOS REV, V89, P427
BOER SE, 1986, KNOWING WHO
BRACHMAN R, 1977, INT J MAN MACH STUD, V9, P127
BRAND M, 1984, INTENDING ACTING
BRENTANO F, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
BRODY BA, 1967, ENCY PHILOS, V5
CARBERRY MS, 1984, P INT C COMPUTATIONA, P200
CARNAP R, 1956, MEANING NECESSITY
CASTANEDA HN, 1966, RATIO, V8, P130
CASTANEDA HN, 1967, AM PHILOS Q, V4, P85
CASTANEDA HN, 1967, NOUS, V1, P9
CASTANEDA HN, 1968, 14TH P INT C PHIL
CASTANEDA HN, 1968, J PHILOS, V54, P439
CASTANEDA HN, 1970, MIDWEST STUD PHILOS, V2, P165
CASTANEDA HN, 1975, AM PHILOS Q, V12, P131
CASTANEDA HN, 1975, PHILOSOPHIA, V5, P121
CASTANEDA HN, 1975, THINKING DOING
CASTANEDA HN, 1977, SYNTHESE, V35, P285
CASTANEDA HN, 1979, POETICS, V8, P31
CASTANEDA HN, 1980, P ADDRESSES AM PHILO, V53, P763
CASTANEDA HN, 1983, AGENT LANGUAGE STRUC
CASTANNEDA HN, 1972, PHILOSOPHIA, V4, P3
CHISHOLM R, 1976, PHILOS STUD, V29, P1
CHISHOLM RM, 1967, ENCY PHILOS, V4
CHISHOLM RM, 1977, AM PHILOS Q, V14, P167
CHURCH A, 1951, STRUCTURE METHOD MEA
CHURCH A, 1971, REFERENCE MODALITY
CHURCH A, 1973, NOUS, V7, P24
CHURCH A, 1974, NOUS, V8, P135
CLARK HH, 1981, ELEMENTS DISCOURSE U
COHEN PR, 1981, READINGS ARTIFICIAL
CREARY LG, 1979, 6TH P INT JOINT C AR, V1, P176
CREARY LG, 1985, P ASS COMPUTATIONAL, V23, P172
CRESSWELL MJ, 1980, J PHILOS LOGIC, V9, P17
DENNETT DC, 1978, BRAINSTORMS PHILOS E
DENNETT DC, 1983, BEHAV BRAIN SCI, V6, P343
DOYLE J, 1979, ARTIF INTELL, V12, P231
DUMMETT M, 1967, ENCY PHILOS, V3
FELDMAN R, 1977, PHILOS STUD, V32, P349
FILLMORE C, 1975, SANTA CRUZ LECTURES
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
FREGE G, 1970, TRANSLATIONS PHILOS
HARDWIG J, 1985, J PHILOS, V82, P335
HENDRIX GG, 1979, ASS NETWORKS
HINTIKKA J, 1962, KNOWLEDGE BELIEF
HINTIKKA J, 1967, NOUS, V1, P33
JOSHI A, 1984, 10TH P INT C COMP LI, P134
KANT I, 1929, CRITIQUE PURE REASON
KONOLIGE K, 1985, FORMAL THEORIES COMM
LEWIS D, 1979, PHILOS REV, V88, P513
MAIDA AS, 1982, COGNITIVE SCI, V6, P291
MAIDA AS, 1985, INT J MAN MACH STUD, V22, P151
MARBURGER H, 1984, JUN LECT CSLI
MARTINS J, 1983, 203 STAT U NEW YORK
MCCARN G, 1983, COMPUTER, V16, P12
MCCARTHY J, 1979, MACHINE INTELLIGENCE, V9
MEINONG A, 1971, A MEINONG GESAMTAUSG, V2
MINSKY ML, 1968, SEMANTIC INFORMATION
MONTAGUE R, 1974, FORMAL PHILOS
MOORE RC, 1977, 5TH P INT JOINT C AR, P223
MOORE RC, 1980, 191 SRI INT ART INT
NILSSON NJ, 1983, AI MAG, V4, P7
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
PERRY J, 1979, NOUS, V13, P3
PERRY J, 1983, AGENT LANGUAGE STRUC
PERRY J, 1985, PHILOS GROUNDS RATIO
RAPAPORT W, 1979, ANALYSIS, V39, P75
RAPAPORT WJ, IN PRESS ENCY ARTIFI
RAPAPORT WJ, 1976, PHILOS STUDIES, V29, P63
RAPAPORT WJ, 1976, THESIS INDIANA U
RAPAPORT WJ, 1978, NOUS, V12, P153
RAPAPORT WJ, 1979, NOUS, V13, P125
RAPAPORT WJ, 1981, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V14, P1
RAPAPORT WJ, 1982, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V18, P17
RAPAPORT WJ, 1984, 10TH P INT C COMP LI, P65
RAPAPORT WJ, 1984, 215 STAT U NEW YORK
RAPAPORT WJ, 1984, PHILOS PHENOMEN RES, V44, P539
RAPAPORT WJ, 1985, NOUS, V19, P255
RAPAPORT WJ, 1985, P ASS COMPUTATIONAL, V23, P43
RICH E, 1979, COGNITIVE SCI, V3, P329
ROUTLEY R, 1979, EXPLORING MEINONGS J
SCHANK RC, 1981, INSIDE COMPUTER UNDE
SHAPIRO SC, IN PRESS KNOWLEDGE R, V1, P278
SHAPIRO SC, 1979, ASS NETWORKS
SHAPIRO SC, 1981, JUL C F THREADS NAT
SHAPIRO SC, 1982, AM J COMPUTATIONAL L, V8, P12
STALNAKER R, 1981, SYNTHESE, V49, P129
WAHLSTER W, 1984, 10TH INT C COMP LING
WIEBE JM, 1986, P I ELECTRONIC ELECT
WILENSKY R, 1984, COMMUN ACM, V27, P574
WILKS Y, 1983, COGNITIVE SCI, V7, P95
WOODS WA, 1975, REPRESENTATION UNDER
NR 96
TC 27
PU ABLEX PUBL CORP
PI NORWOOD
PA 355 CHESTNUT ST, NORWOOD, NJ 07648
SN 0364-0213
J9 COGNITIVE SCI
JI Cogn. Sci.
PD OCT-DEC
PY 1986
VL 10
IS 4
BP 371
EP 422
PG 52
SC Psychology, Experimental
GA G1122
UT ISI:A1986G112200001
ER

PT J
AU Helson, H
TI The psychology of Gestalt
SO AMERICAN JOURNAL OF PSYCHOLOGY
LA English
DT Review
CR ACKERKNECHT H, 1913, Z PSYCHOL, V67, P289
ACKERMANN A, 1924, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V5, P44
ALLERS H, 1922, Z GES NEUROL PSYCH, V76, P18
ALLERS H, 1925, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V66, P92
ALLPORT G, 1923, AM J PSYCHOL, V34, P612
ALLPORT G, 1924, PSYCHE, V4, P354
AMESEDER R, 1924, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
BAADE W, 1914, BER 6 K EXP PSYCH, P27
BAADE W, 1915, Z PSYCHOL, V71, P356
BARDORFF W, 1924, Z PSYCHOL, V95, P181
BECHER E, 1911, GEHIRN SEELE
BECHER E, 1921, Z PSYCHOL, V87, P1
BENARY W, 1923, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V2, P209
BENARY W, 1924, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V5, P131
BENTLEY M, 1902, AM J PSYCHOL, V13, P268
BENUSSI V, 1902, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V29, P264
BENUSSI V, 1902, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V29, P385
BENUSSI V, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
BENUSSI V, 1906, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V42, P22
BENUSSI V, 1906, Z PSYCHOL, V45, P188
BENUSSI V, 1907, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V9, P366
BENUSSI V, 1909, Z PSYCHOL, V51, P73
BENUSSI V, 1911, Z PSYCHOL, V20, P363
BENUSSI V, 1913, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V29, P385
BENUSSI V, 1913, PSYCHOL ZEITAUFFASSU
BENUSSI V, 1913, Z PSYCHOL, V24, P31
BENUSSI V, 1914, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V32, P396
BENUSSI V, 1914, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V32, P50
BENUSSI V, 1914, K EXP PSYCH
BENUSSI V, 1914, K EXP PSYCH, P71
BENUSSI V, 1914, Z PSYCHOL, V69, P256
BENUSSI V, 1917, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V36, P59
BENUSSI V, 1918, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V37, P233
BINGHAM HC, 1913, J AM BEHAV, V3, P109
BINGHAM HC, 1914, J ANIMAL BEHAV, V4, P136
BLUMENFELD W, 1923, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V91, P1
BLUMENFELD W, 1923, Z PSYCHOL, V91, P236
BREED FS, 1912, J ANIMAL BEHAV, V2, P280
BUHLER K, 1913, GESTALTWAHRNEHMUNGEN
BUHLER K, 1919, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V82, P97
BUHLER K, 1922, GEISTIGE ENTWICKLUNG
BUMKE O, 1923, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V3, P272
CASTEEL DB, 1911, J ANIMAL BEHAV, V1, P1
CERMAK P, 1921, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V1, P66
CHILD CM, 1924, PHYSL FDN BEHAV
CORNELIUS H, 1899, Z PSYCHOL, V22, P101
CORNELIUS H, 1900, Z PSYCHOL, V24, P117
CORNELIUS H, 1903, EINLEITUNG PHILOS
DEXLER H, 1921, LOTOS, V69, P143
DEXLER H, 1921, LOTOS, V69, P83
DILTHEY W, 1894, AKAD WISS BERLIN, P11
DIMMICK FL, 1920, AM J PSYCHOL, V31, P317
DIMMICK FL, 1925, AM J PSYCHOL, V36, P412
EBERHARDT M, 1922, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V2, P336
EBERHARDT M, 1922, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V2, P346
EBERHARDT M, 1924, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V5, P143
EBERHARDT M, 1924, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V5, P85
EHRENSTEIN W, 1924, Z PSYCHOL, V96, P305
ELSENHANS T, 1915, KANTSTUDIEN, V20, P224
ERDMANN B, 1898, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG
FEINBERG N, 1925, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V7, P16
FISCHER A, 1915, Z PSYCHOL, V72, P338
FOX C, 1925, B J PSYCHOL-GEN SE 1, V16, P56
FRANK H, 1923, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V4, P33
FRANK H, 1925, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V7, P137
FROBES J, 1923, LEHRBUCH EXPT PSYCHO
FUCHS W, 1920, Z PSYCHOL, V84, P67
FUCHS W, 1920, Z PSYCHOL, V86, P1
FUCHS W, 1921, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V1, P157
FUCHS W, 1922, Z PSYCHOL, V91, P146
FUCHS W, 1923, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V92, P249
GEHRCKE E, 1923, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V3, P1
GELB A, 1910, Z PSYCHOL, V58, P1
GELB A, 1920, PSYCHOL ANAL HIRNPAT
GELB A, 1923, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V4, P42
GELB A, 1923, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V93, P83
GELB A, 1925, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V6, P121
GELB A, 1925, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V6, P187
GELLHORN E, 1922, PFLUG ARCH GES PHYS, V194, P535
GELLHORN E, 1922, PFLUG ARCH GES PHYS, V196, P311
GIESE F, 1915, Z PAD PSYCH, V16, P127
GNEISSE K, 1921, ARCH GES PSYCH, V41, P295
GOLDSTEIN K, 1923, MON PSYCHIATR NEUROL, V54, P141
GUILLAUME P, 1923, J PSYCH, V20, P966
GUILLAUME P, 1925, J PSYCH, V22, P768
HARTMANN L, 1923, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V3, P319
HAZAY O, 1913, Z PSYCHOL, V67, P214
HECHT H, 1924, Z PSYCHOL, V94, P153
HENNING H, 1919, Z PSYCHOL, V82, P219
HENNING H, 1923, Z PSYCHOL, V92, P161
HERRICK CJ, 1922, INTRO NEUROLOGY
HIGGINSON GD, 1926, AM J PSYCHOL, V37, P63
HILDEBRANDT H, 1925, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V6, P113
HILDEBRANDT H, 1925, Z SINNESPHYSL, V56, P154
HILLEBRAND F, 1922, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V89, P209
HILLEBRAND F, 1922, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V90, P1
HOFLER A, 1908, GRUNDLEHREN PSYCHOL
HOFLER A, 1911, Z PSYCHOL, V60, P191
HOFMANN FB, 1920, LEHRE RAUMSINN AUGES
HOFMANN FB, 1925, LEHRE RAUMSINN AUGES
HOLT EF, 1912, NEW REALISM
HUMPHREY G, 1924, AM J PSYCHOL, V35, P353
HUNTER WS, 1913, J ANIMAL BEHAV, V3, P329
HUSSERL E, 1891, PHILOS ARITHMETIK
HUSSERL E, 1910, LOGOS, V1, P309
HUSSERL E, 1913, JB PHILOS PHANOMENOL, V1, P1
HUSSERL E, 1913, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
IPSEN G, 1922, BER 8 K PSYCH
JAENSCH ER, 1920, EINIGE ALLGEMEINE FR
JOHNSON HM, 1914, J ANIM BEHAV, V4, P319
JOHNSON HM, 1916, J ANIM BEHAV, V6, P169
KAFKA G, 1922, HDB VERGLEICHENDE PS
KATZ D, 1909, Z PSYCHOL, V50, P93
KATZ D, 1911, Z PSYCH, V7
KEHR T, 1915, ARCH GES PSYCH, V34, P106
KENKEL F, 1919, BEITRAGE PSYCHOL GES
KOFFKA K, 1913, GEISTESWISSENSCHA 29, P712
KOFFKA K, 1913, GEISTESWISSENSCHAFTE, P796
KOFFKA K, 1919, BEITRAGE PSYCHOL GES
KOFFKA K, 1922, ANN PHILOS, V3, P375
KOFFKA K, 1922, PSYCHOL BULL, V19, P531
KOFFKA K, 1923, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V4, P176
KOFFKA K, 1924, B J PSYCHOL-GEN SE 2, V15, P149
KOFFKA K, 1924, B J PSYCHOL-GEN SE 3, V14, P269
KOFFKA K, 1924, PSYCHE, V5, P80
KOFFKA K, 1925, PED SEM, V32, P659
KOFFKA K, 1925, PSYCHOL LEHRBUCH PHI
KOHLER W, 1913, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V66, P51
KOHLER W, 1920, PHYS GESTALTEN RUHE
KOHLER W, 1922, JAHRESB GES PHYSL
KOHLER W, 1923, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V4, P115
KOHLER W, 1923, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V4, P397
KOHLER W, 1924, B J PSYCHOL-GEN SE 3, V14, P262
KOHLER W, 1924, DEUT MED WOCHENSCHR, V50, P1269
KOHLER W, 1925, MENTALITY APES
KOHLER W, 1925, PED SEM, V32, P674
KOHLER W, 1925, PED SEM, V32, P691
KOHLER W, 1925, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V6, P358
KORTE A, 1919, BEITRAGE PSYCHOL GES
KORTE W, 1923, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V93, P17
KRUEGER F, 1923, BER 8 K EXP PSYCH
KURODA G, 1925, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V6, P282
LASHLEY KS, 1912, J AN BEHAV, V2, P329
LAU E, 1922, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V2, P1
LAU E, 1922, Z SINNESPHYSIOL, V53, P1
LAU E, 1925, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V6, P121
LEONNARD KE, 1923, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V4, P204
LEWIN K, 1922, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V1, P191
LEWIN K, 1922, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V2, P65
LEWIN K, 1923, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V4, P210
LEWIN K, 1925, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V6, P298
LINDEMANN E, 1922, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V2, P5
LINDWORSKY J, 1922, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V89, P313
LINKE P, 1907, PSYCHOL STUD, V3, P393
LINKE P, 1915, ARCH GES PSYCH, V33, P261
LINKE P, 1916, JB PHIL PHANOMENOLOG, V2, P1
LINKE P, 1919, GRUNDFRAGEN WAHRNEHM
LIPMANN O, 1923, ARCH GES PSYCH, V44, P371
LIPMANN O, 1923, NAIVE PHYS
LIPPS T, 1899, Z PSYCHOL, V22, P383
LIPPS T, 1906, LEITFADEN PSYCHOL
MACH E, 1910, ANAL SENSATIONS
MARZYNSKI G, 1921, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V1, P319
MCDOUGALL W, 1923, OUTLINE PSYCHOL
MEINONG A, 1891, Z PSYCHOL, V2, P245
MEINONG A, 1895, Z PSYCHOL, V6, P340
MEINONG A, 1899, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V21, P182
MEINONG A, 1900, Z PSYCHOL, V24, P34
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
MESSE A, 1914, ARCH GES PSYCH, V32, P52
MESSER A, 1911, ARCH GES PSYCH, V22, P117
MESSER A, 1912, ARCH GES PSYCH, V24, P245
MULLER GE, 1923, KOMPLEXTHEORIE GESTA
OGDEN RM, 1922, AM J PSYCHOL, V33, P247
OGDEN RM, 1923, SCHOOL SOC, V18, P343
OGDEN RM, 1925, GROWTH MIND
PETZOLDT W, 1923, ALLGEMEINSTE ENTWICK
PICK A, 1922, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V1, P303
PIKLER J, 1917, SINNESPHYSIOLOGISCHE
POPPELREUTER W, 1914, PSYCHISCHEN SCHADIGU
POPPELREUTER W, 1917, STORUNGEN NIEDEREN H
POPPELREUTER W, 1923, Z GESAMTE NEUROL PSY, V83, P26
RAHN C, 1914, PSYCH MONOG, V67
ROSENTHALVEIT O, 1923, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V3, P78
ROTHSCHILD H, 1922, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V90, P137
ROTHSCHILD H, 1923, ARCH OPHTHALMOL-CHIC, V112, P1
RUBIN E, 1921, VISUELL WAHRGENOMM 1
RUPP H, 1923, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V4, P263
SCHEIDEMANN NV, 1926, PSYCHOL REV, V33, P64
SCHJELDERUPEBBE T, 1924, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V5, P343
SCHOLZ W, 1924, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V5, P219
SCHRIEVER W, 1925, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V96, P113
SCHULTE H, 1924, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V5, P1
SCHUR E, 1926, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V7, P44
SEIFERT F, 1917, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V78, P55
SELZ O, 1913, ARCH GES PSYCH, V27, P366
SELZ O, 1913, UEBER GESETZE GEORDN, V2, P1922
SELZ O, 1920, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V83, P211
SKUBICH G, 1925, Z PSYCHOL, V96, P353
SPEARMAN C, 1925, B J PSYCHOL-GEN SE 3, V15, P211
STEINMANN HG, 1917, ARCH GES PSYCH, V36, P391
STERN A, 1926, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V7, P1
STOUT GF, 1896, ANAL PSYCHOL
STRATTON GM, 1897, PSYCHOL REV, V4, P341
STRATTON GM, 1897, PSYCHOL REV, V4, P463
STUMPF C, 1883, TONPSYCHOLOGIE
TERNUS J, 1926, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V7, P81
TITCHENER EB, 1909, EXPT PSYCHOL THOUGHT
TITCHENER EB, 1913, AM J PSYCHOL, V26, P258
TITCHENER EB, 1921, AM J PSYCHOL, V32, P519
TITCHENER EB, 1922, AM J PSYCHOL, V33, P43
TUMARKIN A, 1921, KANTSTUDIEN, V26, P390
TUMARKIN A, 1923, PROLEGOMENA WISSENSC
TURNER CH, 1911, BIOL B, V21
VONALLESCH GJ, 1925, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V6, P1
VONALLESCH GJ, 1925, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V6, P215
VONEHRENFELS C, 1890, VIERTELJAHRSSCHRIFT, V14, P249
VONEHRENFELS C, 1891, VIERTELJAHRSSCHRIFT, V15, P285
VONFREY M, 1923, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V3, P209
VONHORNBOSTEL EM, 1921, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V1, P130
VONHORNBOSTEL EM, 1923, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V4, P64
WAGNER F, 1923, Z PAD PSYCH, V24, P193
WATT HJ, 1913, BRIT J PSYCHIAT, V6, P24
WEINHANDL F, 1923, METHODE GESTALTANALY
WERNER H, 1919, ARCH GES PSYCH, V38, P115
WERNER H, 1919, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V82, P198
WERNER H, 1924, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V94, P248
WERNER H, 1924, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V94, P265
WERNER H, 1924, Z PSYCHOL, V95, P316
WERTHEIMER M, 1905, UEBER GESTALTTHEORIE
WERTHEIMER M, 1911, Z PSYCHOL, V60, P321
WERTHEIMER M, 1912, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V61, P161
WERTHEIMER M, 1920, UEBER SCHLUSSPROZESS
WERTHEIMER M, 1922, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V1, P47
WERTHEIMER M, 1923, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V3, P106
WERTHEIMER M, 1923, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V4, P301
WERTHEIMER M, 1926, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V7, P81
WESTPHAL E, 1911, ARCH GES PSYCH, V21, P221
WHITEHEAD AN, 1925, SCI MODERN WORLD
WIEGAND CF, 1908, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V48, P161
WINGENDER P, 1919, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V82, P21
WITASEK S, 1897, Z PSYCHOL, V14, P401
WITASEK S, 1908, GRUNDLINEN PSYCHOL
WITASEK S, 1910, PSYCHOL RAUMWAHRNEHM
WITASEK S, 1917, Z PSYCHOL, V79, P161
WULF F, 1922, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V1, P333
WUNDT W, 1908, GRUNDZUGE PHYSL PSYC
YERKES RM, 1904, J COMP NEUROL PSYCHO, P14
YERKES RM, 1916, BEHAV MONOG, P3
YOUNG PT, 1924, PSYCHOL REV, V31, P288
NR 250
TC 24
PU UNIV ILLINOIS PRESS
PI CHAMPAIGN
PA 1325 S OAK ST, CHAMPAIGN, IL 61820 USA
SN 0002-9556
J9 AMER J PSYCHOL
JI Am. J. Psychol.
PY 1926
VL 37
BP 189
EP 223
PG 35
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V01XX
UT ISI:000200129700015
ER

PT J
AU CASTANEDA, HN
TI FICTION AND REALITY - THEIR FUNDAMENTAL CONNECTIONS - ESSAY ON THE ONTOLOGY OF TOTAL EXPERIENCE
SO POETICS
LA English
DT Article
RP CASTANEDA, HN, INDIANA UNIV,BLOOMINGTON,IN 47401.
CR CASTANEDA HN, UNPUBLISHED
CASTANEDA HN, 1967, AM PHILOS Q, V4, P85
CASTANEDA HN, 1972, CRITICA, V6, P43
CASTANEDA HN, 1974, PHILOSOPHIA, V4, P3
CASTANEDA HN, 1975, AM PHILOS Q, V12, P131
CASTANEDA HN, 1975, PHILOSOPHIA, P121
CASTANEDA HN, 1977, MIDWEST STUD PHILOS, V2, P165
CASTANEDA HN, 1977, SYNTHESE, V35, P285
CASTANEDA HN, 1978, NOUS, V12, P189
CHISHOLM RM, CITED INDIRECTLY
KRAUT H, THERE IS FUTURE
LIPPS T, 1903, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V4
MEINONG A, GESAMMELTE ABHANDLUN, V1, P599
SOSA E, COMMUNICATION
WETTSTEIN H, 1977, MIDWEST STUDIES PHIL, V2, P187
NR 15
TC 23
PU ELSEVIER SCIENCE BV
PI AMSTERDAM
PA PO BOX 211, 1000 AE AMSTERDAM, NETHERLANDS
SN 0304-422X
J9 POETICS
JI Poetics
PY 1979
VL 8
IS 1-2
BP 31
EP 62
PG 32
SC Literature; Sociology
GA GU136
UT ISI:A1979GU13600002
ER

PT J
AU Schwartz, DA
Howe, CQ
Purves, D
TI The statistical structure of human speech sounds predicts musical universals
SO JOURNAL OF NEUROSCIENCE
LA English
DT Article
DE audition; auditory system; perception; music; scales; consonance; tones; probability
ID COMPLEX TONES; CRITICAL BANDWIDTH; AUDITORY MIDBRAIN; TONAL CONSONANCE; MERE EXPOSURE; PITCH; RECOGNITION; SCALES
AB The similarity of musical scales and consonance judgments across human populations has no generally accepted explanation. Here we present evidence that these aspects of auditory perception arise from the statistical structure of naturally occurring periodic sound stimuli. An analysis of speech sounds, the principal source of periodic sound stimuli in the human acoustical environment, shows that the probability distribution of amplitude-frequency combinations in human utterances predicts both the structure of the chromatic scale and consonance ordering. These observations suggest that what we hear is determined by the statistical relationship between acoustical stimuli and their naturally occurring sources, rather than by the physical parameters of the stimulus per se.
C1 Duke Univ, Med Ctr, Dept Neurobiol, Durham, NC 27710 USA.
Duke Univ, Med Ctr, Ctr Cognit Neurosci, Durham, NC 27710 USA.
RP Purves, D, Duke Univ, Med Ctr, Dept Neurobiol, Durham, NC 27710 USA.
EM purves@neuro.duke.edu
CR *IAMBL, PYTH LIF
*MATHW, 1996, MATL VERS 5
BALZANO GJ, 1980, COMPUT MUSIC J, V4, P66
BOERSMA P, 2001, PRAAT 4 0 7 DOING PH
BRAUN M, 1999, HEARING RES, V129, P71
BUCH E, 1900, PHILOS STUD, V15, P240
BUDGE H, 1943, STUDY CHORD FREQUENC
BURNS EM, 1999, PSYCHOL MUSIC, P215
BUTLER JW, 1968, J GEN PSYCHOL, V79, P129
CARTERETTE EC, 1999, PSYCHOL MUSIC, P725
DEUTSCH D, 1973, PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS, V13, P271
DRISCOLL TA, 1997, SIAM REV, V39, P1
FAIST A, 1897, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V15, P102
FISHER WM, 1986, P DARPA SPEECH REC W
FLETCHER NH, 1992, ACOUSTIC SYSTEMS BIO
GAROFOLO JS, 1990, DARPA TIMIT ACOUSTIC
GOLDSTEIN JL, 1973, J ACOUST SOC AM, V54, P1496
GORDON C, 1992, B AM MATH SOC, V27, P134
GORMAN P, 1979, PYTHAGORAS LIFE
HELMHOLTZ H, 1877, SENSATIONS TONE
HILLENBRAND J, 1995, J ACOUST SOC AM, V97, P3099
HOGDEN J, 1996, J ACOUST SOC AM, V100, P1819
HOUTSMA AJM, 1972, J ACOUST SOC AM, V51, P520
HURON D, 1994, MUSIC PERCEPT, V11, P289
HUTCHINSON W, 1978, INTERFACE, V7, P1
JANATA P, 2002, SCIENCE, V298, P2167
KALLMAN HJ, 1979, PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS, V26, P32
KAMEOKA A, 1969, J ACOUST SOC AM, V45, P1460
KNILL DC, 1996, PERCEPTION BAYESIAN
KNOPOFF L, 1983, J MUSIC THEORY, V27, P75
KREUGER F, 1913, J PHIL PSYCHOL SCI M, V10, P158
KRUMHANSL CL, 1979, J EXPT PSYCHOL HUMAN, V5, P579
KRUMHANSL CL, 1990, COGNITIVE FDN MUSICA
LADEFOGED P, 1962, ELEMENTS ACOUSTIC PH
LAMEL LF, 1986, P DARPA SPEECH REC W
LIEBERMAN P, 1988, SPEECH PHYSL SPEECH
MALMBERG CF, 1918, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V25, P93
MEINONG A, 1897, Z PSYCHOL, V15, P189
MOORE BCJ, 1995, HEARING
MUTHUSAMY YK, 1992, P 1992 INT C SPOK LA
NETTL B, 1956, MUSIC PRIMITIVE CULT
PEAR TH, 1911, BRIT J PSYCHOL 1, V4, P56
PERETZ I, 2001, BRAIN 5, V124, P928
PEYER W, 1879, AKUSTISCHE SUCHUNGEN, P44
PIERCE JR, 1966, J ACOUST SOC AM, V40, P249
PIERCE JR, 1983, SCI MUSICAL SOUND
PLOMP R, 1965, J ACOUST SOC AM, V38, P548
PURVES D, 2001, PHILOS T ROY SOC B, V356, P285
PURVES D, 2003, WE SEE WHAT WE DO EV
RAO RPN, 2002, PROBABILISTIC MODELS
SCHREINER CE, 1997, NATURE, V388, P383
SETHARES WA, 1998, TIMBRE TUNING SPECTR
STEVENS KE, 1999, ACOUSTIC PHONETICS
STUMPF C, 1898, BEITRAGE MUSIKVISS, V1, P91
TERHARDT E, 1974, J ACOUST SOC AM, V55, P1061
TRAMO MJ, 2001, ANN NY ACAD SCI, V930, P92
VONBEKESY G, 1962, J ACOUST SOC AM, V35, P602
YOUNGBLOOD JE, 1958, J MUSIC THEORY, V2, P24
ZAJONC RB, 1968, J PERS SOC PSYCHOL, V9, P1
ZAJONC RB, 2001, CURR DIR PSYCHOL SCI, V10, P224
NR 60
TC 20
PU SOC NEUROSCIENCE
PI WASHINGTON
PA 11 DUPONT CIRCLE, NW, STE 500, WASHINGTON, DC 20036 USA
SN 0270-6474
J9 J NEUROSCI
JI J. Neurosci.
PD AUG 6
PY 2003
VL 23
IS 18
BP 7160
EP 7168
PG 9
SC Neurosciences
GA 708UD
UT ISI:000184587100020
ER

PT J
AU Sadegh-Zadeh, K
TI Fuzzy health, illness, and disease
SO JOURNAL OF MEDICINE AND PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
DE prototype resemblance theory of disease; deontic constructs; disease; fuzzy disease; fuzzy health; fuzzy illness; health; illness; logic of medicine; Meinongian objects; nosology; patienthood
ID CLINICAL METHODOLOGY; FUNDAMENTALS
AB The notions of health, illness, and disease are fuzzy-theoretically analyzed. They present themselves as non-Aristotelian concepts violating basic principles of classical logic. A recursive scheme for defining the controversial notion of disease is proposed that also supports a concept of fuzzy disease. A sketch is given of the prototype resemblance theory of disease.
C1 Univ Munster, Med Inst, Inst Theory & Hist Med, D-48149 Munster, Germany.
RP Sadegh-Zadeh, K, Univ Munster, Med Inst, Inst Theory & Hist Med, Waldeyer St 27, D-48149 Munster, Germany.
CR ARRUDA AI, 1977, NONCLASSICAL LOGIC M, P3
BELLMAN RE, 1970, MANAGE SCI, V17, P141
BOORSE C, 1975, PHILOS PUBLIC AFF, V5, P49
BOORSE C, 1977, PHILOS SCI, V44, P542
BOORSE C, 1997, WHAT IS DIS, P3
CAPLAN AL, 1981, CONCEPTS HLTH DIS IN
CASSELL EJ, 1991, NATURE SUFFERING GOU
DACOSTA NCA, 1963, SISTEMAS FORMAIS INC
DACOSTA NCA, 1974, NOTRE DAME J FORM L, V15, P497
DAMICO R, 1995, J MED PHILOS, V20, P551
DUBOIS D, 1980, FUZZY SETS SYSTEMS
ENGELHARDT HT, 1975, EVALUATION EXPLANATI, P125
ENGELHARDT HT, 1976, J MED PHILOS, V1, P256
ENGELHARDT HT, 1985, LOGIC DISCOVERY DIAG, P56
FEINSTEIN AR, 1976, CLIN JUDGMENT
GRANA N, 1983, LOGICA PARACONSISTEN
GRANA N, 1990, LOGICA DEONTICA PARA
GROSSMAN R, 1974, MEINONG
HESSLOW G, 1993, THEOR MED, V14, P1
JASKOWSKI S, 1969, STUDIA LOGICA, V24, P143
KAUFMANN A, 1991, INTRO FUZZY ARITHMET
KENDELL R, 1976, BRIT J PSYCHIAT, V128, P508
KHUSHF G, 1995, J MED PHILOS, V20, P461
KLIR GJ, 1995, FUZZY SETS FUZZY LOG
KLIR GJ, 1996, FUZZY SETS FUZZY LOG
KOCH R, 1920, ARZTLICHE DIAGNOSE
KOSKO B, 1997, FUZZY ENG
LAKOFF G, 1973, J PHILOS LOGIC, V2, P458
LENNOX JG, 1995, J MED PHILOS, V20, P499
MARGOLIS J, 1969, PHILOS FORUM, V8, P55
MARGOLIS J, 1976, J MED PHILOS, V1, P238
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P76
MORDACCI R, 1995, J MED PHILOS, V20, P475
NORDENFELT L, 1987, NATURE HLTH ACTION T
PELLEGRINO ED, 1981, PHILOS BASIS MED PRA
PRIEST G, 1989, PARACONSISTENT LOGIC
REZNEK L, 1987, NATURE DIS
ROTHSCHUH KE, 1972, HIPPOKRATES, V43, P3
SADE RM, 1995, J MED PHILOS, V20, P513
SADEGHZADEH K, IN PRESS INTRO FUZZY
SADEGHZADEH K, IN PRESS THEORETICAL
SADEGHZADEH K, IN PRESS THEORY MED
SADEGHZADEH K, 1977, METAMED, V1, P4
SADEGHZADEH K, 1982, C MED PHIL HUMB U BE
SADEGHZADEH K, 1983, MED ETHICS CONSTRUCT
SADEGHZADEH K, 1994, ARTIF INTELL MED, V6, P83
SADEGHZADEH K, 1997, FUZZY LOGIC DIS HLTH
SADEGHZADEH K, 1998, THEORY LINGUISTIC VA
SADEGHZADEH K, 1999, ARTIF INTELL MED, V15, P309
SADEGHZADEH K, 1999, ARTIF INTELL MED, V17, P87
SADEGHZADEH K, 2000, ARTIF INTELL, P20
SADEGHZADEH K, 2000, TRACTATUS LOGICO ONT
SADEGHZADEH K, 2001, IN PRESS ARTIFICIAL, P22
SZASZ T, 1970, MANUFACTURE MADNESS
SZASZ TS, 1960, AM PSYCHOL, V15, P113
TOOMBS SK, 1992, MEANING ILLNESS PHEN
YAGER RR, 1987, FUZZY SETS APPL SELE
ZADEH LA, 1965, INFORM CONTR, V8, P338, DOI 10.1016/S0019-9958(65)90241-X
ZADEH LA, 1965, SYSTEMS THEORY, P29
ZADEH LA, 1972, J CYBERNETICS, V2, P4
ZADEH LA, 1975, INFORMAT SCI, V9, P43, DOI 10.1016/0020-0255(75)90017-1
ZADEH LA, 1975, INFORMATION SCI, V8, P199
ZADEH LA, 1975, INFORMATION SCI, V8, P301, DOI 10.1016/0020-0255(75)90046-8
NR 63
TC 20
PU SWETS ZEITLINGER PUBLISHERS
PI LISSE
PA P O BOX 825, 2160 SZ LISSE, NETHERLANDS
SN 0360-5310
J9 J MED PHIL
JI J. Med. Philos.
PD OCT
PY 2000
VL 25
IS 5
BP 605
EP 638
PG 34
SC Ethics; Social Sciences, Biomedical
GA 397DQ
UT ISI:000166678400005
ER

PT S
AU Smith, B
ED Frank, AU; Kuhn, W
TI On drawing lines on a map
SO SPATIAL INFORMATION THEORY - A THEORETICAL BASIS FOR GIS
SE LECTURE NOTES IN COMPUTER SCIENCE
LA English
DT Proceedings Paper
CT International Conference on Spatial Information Theory - A Theoretical Basis for GIS (COSIT 95)
CY SEP 21-23, 1995
CL SEMMERING, AUSTRIA
SP Ingenieurkonsulent Dipl Ing Josef Angst, Austria, Bank Austria Aktiengesell, Austria, European Commiss, COMMETT Programme, Vermessungsburo Dipl Ing Peter Schmid, Grp Geoinformat, Austria, Tech Univ Wien, Austria
AB The paper is an exercise in descriptive ontology, with specific applications to problems in the geographical sphere. It presents a general typology of spatial boundaries, based in particular on an opposition between bonafide or physical boundaries on the one hand, and fiat or human-demarcation-induced boundaries on the other. Cross-cutting this opposition are further oppositions in the realm of boundaries, for example between: crisp and indeterminate, complete and incomplete, enduring and transient, symmetrical and asymmetrical. The resulting typology generates a corresponding categorization of the different sorts of objects which (complete) boundaries determine or demarcate. The theory is applied first of all in the areas of geography and of administrative and property law. Indications are then given as to how the typology may be applied also in other fields where physical and fiat boundaries are at work, including the field of cognitive linguistics and the related field of the ontology of truth.
C1 SUNY BUFFALO,CTR COGNIT SCI,BUFFALO,NY 14260.
RP Smith, B, SUNY BUFFALO,DEPT PHILOSOPHY,BUFFALO,NY 14260.
CR BRENTANO F, 1988, PHILOS INVESTIGATION
CARTWRIGHT R, 1975, ANAL METAPHYSICS, P153
CASATI R, IN PRESS PHILOS STUD
COHN AG, 1994, THEORY SPATIAL RELAT, P131
ESCHENBACH C, 1994, TOPOLOGICAL FDN COGN
HERING E, 1964, OUTLINES THEORY LIGH
HERRING JR, 1991, MATH MODELING SPATIA, P313
LAKOFF G, 1987, WOMEN FIRE DANGEROUS
LANGACKER R, 1987, FDN COGNITIVE GRAMMA
MARK DM, 1991, COGNITIVE LINGUISTIC
MEINONG A, 1899, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V21, P182
OJEDA A, 1993, LINGUISTIC INDIVIDUA
PRESCOTT JRV, 1978, BOUNDARIES FRONTIERS
SMITH B, IN PRESS PHILOS RODE
SMITH B, 1987, SPEECH ACT SACHVERHA, P189
SMITH B, 1992, LANGUAGE TRUTH ONTOL, P50
SMITH B, 1993, P INT WORKSH FORM ON, P223
SMITH B, 1994, 11 EUR C ART INT AMS, P15
SMITH B, 1995, KOGNITIONSWISSENSCHA, V4, P177
TALMY L, IN PRESS ESSAYS SEMA
TALMY L, 1995, IN PRESS LANGUAGE SP
NR 21
TC 20
PU SPRINGER-VERLAG BERLIN
PI BERLIN 33
PA HEIDELBERGER PLATZ 3, W-1000 BERLIN 33, GERMANY
SN 0302-9743
BN 3-540-60392-1
J9 LECT NOTE COMPUT SCI
PY 1995
VL 988
BP 475
EP 484
PG 10
SC Computer Science, Theory & Methods
GA BF24Q
UT ISI:A1995BF24Q00031
ER

PT J
AU Guernsey, M
TI The role of consonance and dissonance in music
SO AMERICAN JOURNAL OF PSYCHOLOGY
LA English
DT Article
C1 Univ Michigan, Ann Arbor, MI USA.
CR 1900, PHIL STUD, V15, P240
BARTON EH, 1922, TXB SOUND, P472
BENEDETTO, 1922, AESTHETIC T, P104
DEWITT, 1920, PRINCIPLES AESTHETIC, P161
EMERSON LE, 1906, HARVARD PSYCHOL STUD, P269
EULER L, TENTAMEN NOVAE THERO, P1739
FAIST A, 1897, Z PSYCHOL, V15, P189
GURNEY E, 1880, POWER SOUND, V2
HULL AE, 1915, MODERN HARMONY, P72
HULL AE, 1916, SCRIABIN, P255
KRUEGER F, 1906, PSYCHOL STUD, V1, P305
KULPE O, 1901, OUTLINES PSYCHOL, P306
LEIBNITZ GW, LEIBNITIS EPIXTOLOE, P154
MALMBERG CF, 1918, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V25, P133
MALMBERG CF, 1918, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V25, P93
MEINONG A, 1897, Z PSYCHOL, V15, P189
MEYER M, 1901, U MISSOURI STUDIES, V1, P1
MEYER M, 1925, MUSICAN ARITHMETIC, P1
MILLER DDC, 1926, SCI MUSICAL SOUNDS, P23
MOORE HT, 1914, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V17, P1
OGDEN L, 1909, PSYCHOL BULL, V6, P303
OGDEN RM, 1909, PSYCHOL BULL, V6, P297
OGDEN RM, 1909, PSYCHOL BULL, V6, P303
PEAR TH, 1911, BRIT J PSYCHOL 1, V4, P56
PETERSON J, 1925, PSYCHOL REV, V3, P17
PETERSON J, 1925, PSYCHOL REV, V3, P33
PFEIFFER I, 1861, FIRST VOYAGE, P119
PILLSBURY WB, 1922, FUNDAMENTALS PSYCHOL, P147
PRATT WS, 1911, HIST MUSIC, CH1
PRESCOTT WH, 1878, HIST CONQUEST MEXICO, P105
PRESCOTT WH, 1878, HIST CONQUEST MEXICO, P92
RICHTER EG, 1912, MANUAL HARMONY, P4
SANFORD EC, 1908, EXPT PSYCHOL, P78
SCHOPENHAUER A, METAPHYS MUSIC, P235
SEASHORE CE, 1918, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V25, P83
SEASHORE CE, 1919, PSYCHOL MUSICAL TALE, P144
SHEPARD FH, 1912, HARMONY SIMPIFLED, P35
STUMPF K, 1898, BEITRAGE AK MUSIKWIS, V1, P91
STUMPF, 1883, TONPSYCHOL, V2, P127
TARTINI, TRATTO MUSICA, P1754
TITCHENER EB, 1907, QUALITATIVE INSTRUCT, P329
VONHELMHOLTZ HL, 1912, ELLIS TRANAL, P179
WALLASCHEK R, PRIMITIVE MUSIC, CH9
WALLASCHEK R, 1893, PRIMITIVE MUSIC, P139
WASHBURN MF, 1916, N E A PUB, P600
WATT HJ, 1919, FDN MUSIC, P20
WILHELM, 1899, AKUNISCHE UNTERSUCHU, P44
WOOD J, 1922, FDN AESTHETICS
NR 48
TC 20
PU UNIV ILLINOIS PRESS
PI CHAMPAIGN
PA 1325 S OAK ST, CHAMPAIGN, IL 61820 USA
SN 0002-9556
J9 AMER J PSYCHOL
JI Am. J. Psychol.
PY 1928
VL 40
BP 173
EP 204
PG 32
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V01YH
UT ISI:000200130700015
ER

PT J
AU Messer, A
AF Messer, August
TI Experimental-Psychological Research on Thought
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Article
CR BEWUSSTSEIN GEGENSTA, P166
BEWUSSTSEIN GEGENSTA, P196
EXPT BEITRAGE THEORI, P59
GRUNDZUGE PHYSL PSYC, P575
GRUNDZUGE, P576
HIERZU IST AUSFUHRUN, P18
PHYSL PSYCHOL, P476
WEITERE BEISPIELE BE, P201
1874, PSYCHOLOGIE, V1, P262
1893, LOGIK, P156
1896, LEITFADEN PHYSL PSYC, P168
1900, IDEENASSOZIATION KIN, P15
1900, VOLKERPSYCHOLOGIE, V1, P236
1901, EXPER PSYCHOL UNTERS, P11
1901, Z PSYCHOL, V25, P161
1903, GRUNDZUGE PHYSL PSYC, V3, P547
1904, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V4, P291
1905, GRUNDRISS PSYCHOL, P278
1905, GRUNDRISS PSYCHOL, P326
ACH N, 1905, WILLENSTATIGKEIT DEN, P191
ACH N, 1905, WILLENSTATIGKEIT DEN, P218
ASCHAFFENBURG G, 1896, PSYCHOL ARBEITEN, V1, P227
ASCHAFFENBURG G, 1896, PSYCHOL ARBEITEN, V1, P288
ASCHAFFENBURG G, 1896, PSYCHOL ARBEITEN, V1, P291
BINET A, 1903, ETUDE EXPT INTELLIGE, P23
BINET A, 1903, ETUDE EXPT INTELLIGE, P84
CORDES G, PHILOS STUDIEN, V17, P63
ERDMANN B, 1892, LOGIK, V1, P189
ERDMANN B, 1900, PHILOS ABHANDLUNGEN, P24
FISCHER K, 1904, BEGINN 20 JAHRH, V1, P173
GROOS K, 1901, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V26, P145
GROOS K, 1904, SEELENLEBEN KINDES
GROOS K, 1904, SEELENLEBEN KINDES, P180
HUSSERL E, 1902, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN, V2, P23
HUSSERL, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN, V2, P23
JERUSALEM W, 1895, URTEILSFUNKTION
JERUSALEM W, 1897, VJSCHR WISS PHILOS, V21, P157
KRAEPELIN E, 1896, PSYCHOL ARBEITEN, V1, P295
KULPE O, 1893, GRUNDRISS PSYCHOL, P191
KULPE O, 1903, EINL PHILOS, P228
LIEBMANN O, 1900, ANAL WIRKLICHKEIT, P478
LIPPS T, 1903, LEITFADEN PSYCHOL, P19
LIPPS T, 1905, BEWUSSTSEIN GEGENSTA, P2
LIPPS, BEWUSSTSEIN GEGENSTA, P113
LIPPS, BEWUSSTSEIN GEGENSTA, P123
MEINONG A, 1902, Z PSYCHOL S, V2, P152
MEUMANN E, 1903, SPRACHE KINDES
MUNSTERBERG H, 1889, BEITRAGE EXPT PSYCHO, P177
MUNSTERBERG H, 1900, GRUNDZUGE PSYCHOL, V1, P382
MUNSTERBERG, 1892, BEITRAGE EXPT PSYCHO, P32
ORTH J, 1903, GEFUHL BEWUSSTSEINSL, P69
SCHRADERS E, 1905, ELEMENTE PSYCHOL URT
SCHUMANN F, 1904, BERICHT ERSTEN K EXP, P56
SCRIPTURE EW, 1892, PHILOS STUD, V7, P31
SIGWART, LOGIK, V1, P59
SIGWART, 1873, LOGIK, V1, P123
TAYLOR O, 1905, Z PSYCHOL, V40, P225
TAYLOR, 1905, Z PSYCHOL, V40, P225
VOLKELT J, 1905, ASTHETIK, P132
VONKRIES J, 1895, Z PSYCHOL, V8, P1
VONKRIES J, 1899, VIERTELJAHRSSCHRIFT, V23, P35
WATT, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V7, P40
WATTS, 1906, ARCH GES PSYCH, V7, P153
WUNDT, GRUNDZUGE, P550
WUNDT, GRUNDZUGE, P601
WUNDT, VOLKERPSYCHOL, V1, P229
ZIEHEN T, 1898, SAMMLUNG ABHANDLUNGE, V1
ZIEHEN T, 1900, SAMMLUNG ABHANDLUNGE, V3
NR 68
TC 20
SN 0724-7842
J9 ARCG GESAMTE PSYCHOL
JI Archiv. Gesamte Psychol.
PD SEP 4
PY 1906
VL 8
IS 1-2
BP 1
EP 224
PG 224
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V98CH
UT ISI:000206630700001
ER

PT J
AU CHISHOLM, RM
TI THE ETHICS OF REQUIREMENT
SO AMERICAN PHILOSOPHICAL QUARTERLY
LA English
DT Article
CR 1962, PHILOS STUDIES, V13, P1
1963, PHILOSOPHY, V38, P160
ANDERSON A, 1956, FORMAL ANAL NORMATIV, P59
BOLZANO B, 1930, WISSENSCHAFTSLEHRE, V3, P267
CHISHOLM RM, 1963, ANALYSIS, V24, P33
CHISHOLM RM, 1963, RATIO, V5, P1
CLARKE S, 1706, DISCOURSE NATURAL RE
COOPER N, 1959, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC S, V33, P159
FEINBERG J, 1961, ETHICS, V71, P276
HART HLA, 1955, PHILOS REV, V64, P186
HARTMANN N, 1932, ETHICS, V1, P259
HENRY D, 1960, PHILOSOPHICAL Q, V10, P115
JAMES W, 1906, TALKS TEACHERS PSYCH, P186
KOHLER W, 1938, PLACE VALUE WORLD FA, CH3
LADD J, 1957, STRUCTURE MORAL CODE, P125
LADD J, 1958, J PHILOS, V55, P811
MALLY E, 1926, GRUNDGESETZE SOLLENS
MANDELBAUM M, 1955, PHENOMENOLOGY MORAL, P95
MEINONG A, 1894, PSYCHOLOGISCHETHISCH, P88
PEIRCE CS, 1931, COLLECTED PAPERS, V1, P79
PRIOR AN, 1955, FORMAL LOGIC
RESCHER N, 1958, PHILOS STUD, V9, P24
ROSS WD, 1930, RIGHT GOOD, P18
ROSS WD, 1939, F ETHICS, P84
SARTRE J, 1943, ETRE NEANT 1, CH2
URMSON JO, 1958, ESSAYS MORAL PHILOS
VONWRIGHT GH, 1951, ESSAY MODAL LOGIC, P39
VONWRIGHT GH, 1951, MIND, V60
VONWRIGHT GH, 1956, MIND, V65
WERTHEIMER M, 1935, SOC RES, V2, P353
NR 30
TC 19
PU BOWLING GREEN STATE UNIVERSITY
PI BOWLING GREEN
PA PHILOSOPHY DOCUMENT CENTER, BOWLING GREEN, OH 43403
SN 0003-0481
J9 AMER PHIL QUART
JI Am. Philos. Q.
PY 1964
VL 1
IS 2
BP 147
EP 153
PG 7
SC Philosophy
GA CKG35
UT ISI:A1964CKG3500008
ER

PT J
AU Benussi, V
AF Benussi, Vittorio
TI Stroboscopic Pseudo-Movements and geometric-optical Form-Illusions
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Article
CR ARCH GES PSYCH, V6, P123
ARCH GES PSYCH, V7, P141
BEITRAGE Z PSYCH, V42, P22
BEITRAGE Z PSYCH, V45, P188
BEITRAGE Z PSYCH, V51, P73
PSYCH GES GESTALTERF, P381
PSYCHOL GESTALTERFAS, P420
PSYCHOL GESTALTERFAS, P445
SCHRIFTEN GESELLSCHA, V2, P9
Z PSYCH, V41, P201
Z PSYCH, V42, P43
Z PSYCH, V45, P207
Z PSYCH, V45, P215
Z PSYCH, V45, P225
Z PSYCH, V45, P512
Z PSYCHOL, V3, P349
Z PSYCHOL, V42, P54
1906, Z PSYCHOL, V42
BENUSSILIEL, UNTERS GEGENSTTH PSY, V6, P452
DURRS E, Z PSYCH, V47, P297
EBBINGHAUS, PSYCH EINZELDARSTELL, V2, P308
EBBINGHAUSDURR, 1908, GRUNDZUGE PSYCHOL, V2
EBBINGHAUSDURR, 1911, GRUNDZUGE PSYCHOL, V2
HILLEBRAND, Z PSYCH, V7, P97
LEHMANN, PFLUGERS ARCH GES PH, V103, P81
LEWIS EO, 1912, BRIT J PSYCHOL 1, V5, P36
LIPPS, Z PSYCH, V38, P244
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERS Z GEGENSTANDS
PIERCE, PSYCH REV, V5
PIERCE, 1901, STUDIES AUDITORY VIS, V2, P213
WITASEK, PSYCHOLOGIE, P239
WUNDT W, GRUNDZ PHYS PSYCHOL, V2, P623
WUNDT W, PSYCH STUDIEN, V3, P393
NR 33
TC 16
SN 0724-7842
J9 ARCG GESAMTE PSYCHOL
JI Archiv. Gesamte Psychol.
PD JUL 16
PY 1912
VL 24
IS 1
BP 31
EP 62
PG 32
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V98GQ
UT ISI:000206642000002
ER

PT J
AU FINE, K
TI THE PROBLEM OF NON-EXISTENTS .1. INTERNALISM
SO TOPOI-AN INTERNATIONAL REVIEW OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
RP FINE, K, UNIV MICHIGAN,ANN ARBOR,MI 48109.
CR ALSTON WP, 1967, DESCARTES
BORGES JL, PIERRE MENARD AUTHOR
CASTANEDA HN, AM PHILOS Q, V12, P131
CASTANEDA HN, PHILOSOPHIA, V5, P121
CASTANEDA HN, UNPUB PHILOS METHOD
CASTANEDA HN, 1972, CRITICA, V6, P43
CHURCH A, 1951, STRUCTURE METHOD MEA, P3
CLARK RL, 1978, NOUS, V12
CRITTENDEN C, 1973, INQUIRY, V16, P290
FEFERMAN S, 1975, P LONDON ONTARIO C L
FINE K, J PHILOS LOGIC, V6, P135
FINE K, NOUS, V15, P177
FINE K, STUDIA LOGICA, V39, P159
FINE K, UNPUBLISHED
FINE K, 1976, PHILOS REV, V85, P562
HOWELL R, 1979, POETICS, V8, P129
HUNTER D, 1979, THESIS U CALIFORNIA
KAPLAN D, 1969, WORDS OBJECTIONS ESS, P178
KRIPKE S, 1975, J PHILOS, V72, P690
KRIPKE SA, 1972, SEMANTICS NATURAL LA, P178
LEVINSON J, 1980, J PHILOS, V77, P5
LEWIS D, 1978, AM PHILOS Q, V15, P37
MEINONG A, THEORY OBJECTS
PARSONS T, 1979, J PHILOS, V76, P649
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
PARSONS T, 1982, TOPOI, V1, P81
PLANTINGA AC, 1974, NATURE NECESSITY
PRIOR AN, 1971, OBJECTS THOUGHT
RABINOWICZ W, 1979, UNIVERSALIZABILITY
RAPPAPORT WJ, UNPUB HOW MAKE WORLD
RAPPAPORT WJ, 1978, NOUS, V12, P153
RAPPAPORT WJ, 1979, ANALYSIS, V39, P75
ROUTLEY R, 1980, EXPLORING MEINONGS J
STINE GC, 1978, INT LOGIC REV, V9, P134
VANINWAGEN P, 1977, AM PHILOS Q, V14, P299
WALTON K, J AESTHETICS ART CRI, V38, P11
WALTON K, J PHILOS, V75, P5
WALTON K, 1973, PHILOS REV, V82, P283
WITTGENSTEIN L, TRACTATUS LOGICO PHI
WOODS J, 1974, LOGIC FICTION
ZALTA EN, 1980, THESIS U MASSACHUSET
NR 41
TC 15
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0167-7411
J9 TOPOI-INT REV PHIL
JI Topoi-Int. Rev. Philos.
PY 1982
VL 1
IS 1-2
BP 97
EP 140
PG 44
SC Philosophy
GA QG133
UT ISI:A1982QG13300013
ER

PT J
AU DEWAR, RE
TI STIMULUS DETERMINANTS OF PRACTICE DECREMENT OF MULLER-LYER ILLUSION
SO CANADIAN JOURNAL OF PSYCHOLOGY
LA English
DT Article
C1 UNIV CALGARY,CALGARY,ALBERTA,CANADA.
CR BENUSSI V, 1904, UNTERSUCHURGEN GEGEN, P303
BINET A, 1895, REV PHILOS, V40, P11
DAY RH, 1962, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V76
DEWAR RE, 1967, PERCEPT MOTOR SKILL, V24, P708
GARDNER RW, 1961, J ABNORMAL SOCIAL PS, V62, P120
GARDNER RW, 1961, PSYCHOL REC, V11, P317
GIBSON JJ, 1955, PSYCHOL REV, V62, P32
GIBSON JJ, 1955, PSYCHOL REV, V62, P447
GIBSON JJ, 1959, PSYCHOL STUDY SCI, V1, P456
GIBSON JJ, 1963, AM PSYCHOL, V18, P1
HEYMANS G, 1896, Z PSYCHOL, V9, P221
JUDD CH, 1902, PSYCHOL REV, V9, P27
JUDD CH, 1905, PSYCHOL REV-MONOGR S, V7, P55
KOCH S, 1959, PSYCHOLOGY STUDY ED, V1, P456
KOHLER W, 1944, P AM PHILOS SOC, V88, P269
KOHLER W, 1950, J EXP PSYCHOL, V40, P267
LADD GT, 1911, ELEMENTS PHYSIOLOGIC
LEWIS EO, 1908, BRIT J PSYCHOL 3, V2, P294
LEWIS EO, 1909, BRIT J PSYCHOL 1-2, V3, P21
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GE ED, P303
MOUNTJOY PT, 1958, J EXP PSYCHOL, V56, P97
MOUNTJOY PT, 1958, J SCI LABS DU, V44, P229
MOUNTJOY PT, 1960, PSYCHOL REC, V10, P219
MOUNTJOY PT, 1961, PERCEPT MOTOR SKILL, V13, P51
MOUNTJOY PT, 1962, J SCI LAB DENISON U, V45, P207
MOUNTJOY PT, 1963, PSYCHOL REC, V13, P471
MULLERLYER FC, 1898, ARCH PHYSIOL S, P263
NOELTING G, 1960, ARCH PSYCHOL, V37, P311
PARKER NI, 1963, CAN J PSYCHOL, V17, P134
PIERON H, 1911, REV PHIL, V71, P245
SANTOS JF, 1963, B MENNINGER CLIN, V27, P3
SCRIPTURE EW, 1905, NEW PSYCHOLOGY
SEASHORE CE, 1908, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V9, P103
VANBIERVLIET JJ, 1896, REV PHILOS, V41, P169
VERNON MD, 1962, PSYCHOLOGY PERCEPTIO
WOHLWILL JF, 1958, PSYCHOL REV, V65, P283
NR 36
TC 15
J9 CAN J PSYCHOL
PY 1967
VL 21
IS 6
BP 504
EP 504
PG 1
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA A3248
UT ISI:A1967A324800005
ER

PT J
AU Benussi, V
AF Benussi, Vittorio
TI Cinemato-Haptic Phenomena
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Article
CR 1907, Z PSYCH, V45, P188
EBBINGHAUS, 1913, PSYCHOL EINZELDARSTE, V6, P45
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERS GEGENST TH PS
NR 3
TC 15
SN 0724-7842
J9 ARCG GESAMTE PSYCHOL
JI Archiv. Gesamte Psychol.
PD NOV 11
PY 1913
VL 29
IS 3-4
BP 385
EP 388
PG 4
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V98HC
UT ISI:000206643200004
ER

PT J
AU MULLIGAN, K
SMITH, B
TI A RELATIONAL THEORY OF THE ACT + THE BRENTANO QUESTION
SO TOPOI-AN INTERNATIONAL REVIEW OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
C1 UNIV MANCHESTER,DEPT PHILOSOPHY,MANCHESTER M13 9PL,LANCS,ENGLAND.
RP MULLIGAN, K, UNIV GENEVA,DEPT PHILOSOPHY,CH-1211 GENEVA 4,SWITZERLAND.
CR BRENTANO F, 1924, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN
BRENTANO F, 1982, DESKRIPTIVE PSYCHOL
CHISHOLM RM, 1976, PERSON OBJECT METAPH
CHISHOLM RM, 1981, 1ST PERSON ESSAY REF
DEVITT M, 1984, REALISM TRUTH
DREYFUS HL, 1982, HUSSERL INTENTIONALI
EVANS G, 1982, VARIETIES REFERENCE
FARIAS V, 1968, THESIS FREIBURG BR
FINE K, UNPUB HUSSERL PURE T
GEACH PT, 1957, MENTAL ACTS
GEACH PT, 1972, LOGIC MATTERS, P318
HACKING I, 1978, PHILOS REV, V87, P321
HUSSERL E, 1894, INTENTIONALE GEGENST
HUSSERL E, 1900, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
HUSSERL E, 1913, IDEEN REINEN PHANOME, V1
HUSSERL E, 1948, ERFAHRUNG URTEIL
HUSSERL E, 1979, AUFSATZE REZENSIONEN
INGARDEN R, 1964, STREIT EXISTENZ WELT
JOHANSSON I, UNPUB ONTOLOGICAL IN
KIM J, 1974, NOUS, V8, P41
LINKE PF, 1929, GRUNDFRAGEN WAHRNEHU
MEINONG A, 1896, Z PSYCHOL PHILOS, V11, P81
MULLIGAN K, 1980, THESIS U MANCHESTER
MULLIGAN K, 1984, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V44, P287
MULLIGAN K, 1985, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V45, P627
MULLIGAN K, 1985, TEORIA, V5, P145
MULLIGAN K, 1986, SPEECH ACT SACHVERHA
MULLIGAN K, 1986, UNPUB PROMISES OTHER
PFANDER A, 1911, MUNCHENER PHILOS ABH
PFANDER A, 1911, PHENOMENOLOGY WILLIN, P163
REINACH A, 1913, JB PHILOS PHANOMENOL, V1, P685
REINACH A, 1921, GESAMMELTE SCHRIFTEN
ROGGE E, 1935, KAUSALPROBLEM BEI FR
RUSSELL B, 1903, PRINCIPLES MATH
SCHUHMANN K, 1982, PFANDER STUDIEN, P155
SEARLE JR, 1982, INTENTIONALITY
SIMONS P, 1983, EPISTEMOLOGY PHILOS, P81
SIMONS P, 1983, TOPOI-INT REV PHILOS, V2, P99
SIMONS PM, UNPUB PARTS
SMITH B, UNPUB F GESTALT THEO
SMITH B, 1981, P AR SOC S, V55, P47
SMITH B, 1982, PARTS MOMENTS STUDIE
SMITH B, 1983, EPISTEMOLOGY PHILOS, P85
SMITH B, 1984, DIALECTICA, V38, P157
SMITH B, 1984, TOPOI, V2, P73
SMITH B, 1986, UNPUB MIND MEANING M
SMITH DW, 1982, HUSSERL INTENTIONALI
STEPHENS JW, 1978, THESIS PRINCETON
STROLL A, 1979, MIDWEST STUD PHILOS, V4, P277
STUMPF C, 1873, PSYCHOL URSPRUNG RAU
TEGTMEIER E, 1981, KOMPARATIVE BEGRIFFE
TWARDOWSKI K, 1894, LEHRE VOM INHALT GEG
VONEHRENFELS CF, 1990, VIERTELJAHRESSCHRIFT, V14, P242
WOODFIELD A, 1982, THOUGHT OBJECT ESSAY
NR 54
TC 14
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0167-7411
J9 TOPOI-INT REV PHIL
JI Topoi-Int. Rev. Philos.
PD SEP
PY 1986
VL 5
IS 2
BP 115
EP 130
PG 16
SC Philosophy
GA E7744
UT ISI:A1986E774400003
ER

PT J
AU GARDNER, RW
LONG, RI
TI SELECTIVE ATTENTION AND MUELLER-LYER ILLUSION
SO PSYCHOLOGICAL RECORD
LA English
DT Article
CR BENUSSI V, 1904, UNTERSUCHURGEN GEGEN, P303
BENUSSI V, 1912, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V24, P31
GARDNER RW, J ABN SOC PSYCHOL
KOEHLER W, 1944, P AM PHILOS SOC, V88, P269
KOEHLER W, 1950, J EXP PSYCHOL, V40, P267
KOEHLER W, 1950, J EXP PSYCHOL, V40, P398
KOEHLER W, 1958, AM J PSYCHOL, V71, P489
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GE ED, P303
MOTOKAWA K, 1950, J NEUROPHYSIOL, V13, P413
NAKAGAWA D, 1958, PSYCHOLOGIA, V1, P167
PIAGET J, 1950, ARCH PSYCHOL, V33, P1
PIAGET J, 1954, ARCH PSYCHOL, V34, P155
PIAGET J, 1961, LES MECANISMES PERCE
SPITZ HH, 1958, PERCEPT MOTOR SKILL, V8, P219
WOODWORTH RS, 1954, EXPERIMENTAL PSYCHOL
NR 15
TC 14
PU PSYCHOLOGICAL RECORD
PI GAMBIER
PA KENYON COLLEGE, GAMBIER, OH 43022
SN 0033-2933
J9 PSYCHOL REC
JI Psychol. Rec.
PY 1961
VL 11
IS 4
BP 317
EP &
PG 0
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA 04284
UT ISI:A19610428400005
ER

PT J
AU HIRST, G
TI EXISTENCE ASSUMPTIONS IN KNOWLEDGE REPRESENTATION
SO ARTIFICIAL INTELLIGENCE
LA English
DT Article
AB If knowledge representation formalisms are to be suitable for semantic interpretation of natural language, they must be more adept with representations of existence and nonexistence than they presently are. Quantifiers must sometimes scope over nonexistent entities. I review the philosophical background, including Anselm and Kant, and exhibit some ontological problems that natural language sentences pose for knowledge representation. The paraphrase methods of Russell and Quine are unable to deal with many of the problems. Unfortunately, the shortcomings of the Russell-Quine ontology are reflected in most current knowledge representation formalisms in AI. Several alternatives are considered, including some intensional formalisms and the work of Hobbs, but all have problems. Free logics and possible worlds don't help either. But useful insights are found in the Meinongian theory of Parsons, in which a distinction between nuclear and extranuclear kinds of predicates is made and used to define a universe over which quantification scopes. If this is combined with a naive ontology, with about eight distinct kinds of existence, a better approach to the representation of nonexistence can be developed within Hobbs' basic formalism.
RP HIRST, G, UNIV TORONTO,DEPT COMP SCI,TORONTO M5S 1A4,ONTARIO,CANADA.
CR ANSELM CANTERBU., 1965, PROSLOGION
BACHMAN RJ, 1985, READINGS KNOWLEDGE R, P217
BARNES J, 1972, ONTOLOGICAL ARGUMENT
BRACHMAN RJ, 1983, 16 FAIRCH LAB ART IN
BRACHMAN RJ, 1985, READINGS KNOWLEDGE R
BRACHMAN RJ, 1985, READINGS KNOWLEDGE R, P468
BRACHMAN RJ, 1985, READINGS KNOWLEDGE R, P523
BRACHMAN RJ, 1989, 1ST P INT C PRINC KN
CHARNIAK E, 1983, CS8306 BROWN U DEP C
CHISHOLM RM, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P76
CHISHOLM RM, 1968, NOUS, V1, P1
CURRIE G, 1982, HARVESTER STUDIES PH, V11
DAVIDSON D, 1980, ESSAYS ACTIONS EVENT
DESCARTES R, 1911, PHILOS WORKS DESCART, V1
FAUCONNIER G, 1985, MENTAL SPACES ASPECT
FEIGL H, 1949, READINGS PHILOS ANAL
FEIGL H, 1949, READINGS PHILOS ANAL, P85
FLEW AGN, 1953, LOGIC LANGUAGE, P82
FREGE G, 1884, GRUNDLAGEN ARITHMETI
FREGE G, 1892, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V100, P25
FREGE G, 1971, F GEOMETRY FORMAL TH
GEACH PT, 1952, TRANSLATIONS PHILOS
GEACH PT, 1952, TRANSLATIONS PHILOS, P56
HAYES PJ, 1985, FORMAL THEORIES COMM, P1
HIRST G, 1987, SEMANTIC INTERPRETAT
HIRST G, 1988, ARTIF INTELL, V34, P131
HIRST G, 1988, INFORMATIK FACHBERIC, V176
HOBBS JR, 1985, 23RD P ANN M ASS COM, P61
HORTON DL, 1987, CSRI201 U TOR COMP S
HORTON DL, 1988, P INT C COMPUTATIONA, P255
HUGHES GE, 1968, INTRO MODAL LOGIC
HUME D, 1935, DIALOGUES NATURAL RE
KANT I, 1933, CRITIQUE PURE REASON
KENNICK WE, 1970, GE MOORE ESSAYS RETR, P160
KOUBARAKIS M, 1989, KRR891 U TOR DEP COM
KOUBARAKIS M, 1989, KRR894 U TOR DEP COM
KRIPKE SA, 1963, ACTA PHILOS FENN, V16, P83
KRIPKE SA, 1980, NAMING NECESSITY
LAMBERT K, 1983, MEINONG PRINCIPLE IN
LEM S, 1976, CYBERIAD
LEVINSON SC, 1983, PRAGMATICS
LEWIS D, 1968, J PHILOS, V65, P113
LEWIS D, 1970, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V48, P206
LEWIS D, 1970, NOUS, V4, P175
LINSKY L, 1971, REFERENCE MODALITY
MAIDA AS, 1982, COGNITIVE SCI, V6, P291
MARGOLIS J, 1968, INTRO PHILOS ENQUIRY
MARGOLIS J, 1968, INTRO PHILOS ENQUIRY, P631
MARGOLIS J, 1968, INTRO PHILOS ENQUIRY, P668
MARTIN JN, 1987, ELEMENTS FORMAL SEMA
MCCARTHY J, 1977, 5TH P INT JOINT C AR, P1038
MCCARTHY J, 1979, MACH INTELL, V9, P129
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
MEINONG A, 1969, GESAMTAUSGABE, V2, P481
MONTAGUE R, 1973, APPROACHES NATURAL L, P221
MONTAGUE R, 1974, FORMAL PHILOS SELECT, P247
MOORE GE, 1936, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC S, V15, P175
MOORE GE, 1959, PHILOS PAPERS, P115
NEALE S, 1990, DESCRIPTIONS
PARSONS T, 1969, PHILOS REV, V78, P35
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
PATELSCHNEIDER PF, 1986, P AAAI 86 5 C AM ASS, P344
PLANTINGA A, 1967, GOD OTHER MINDS
PLANTINGA A, 1974, NATURE NECESSITY
PRIOR AN, 1967, ENCYCL PHILOS, V3, P141
PURTILL RL, 1968, NOUS, V2, P87
QUINE WV, 1961, LOGICAL POINT VIEW
QUINE WVO, 1948, REV METAPHYS, V1, P21
QUINE WVO, 1951, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC S, V25, P216
QUINE WVO, 1961, LOGICAL POINT VIEW, P1
QUINE WVO, 1961, LOGICAL POINT VIEW, P139
RAPAPORT WJ, 1978, NOUS, V12, P153
RAPAPORT WJ, 1980, DEP MONOGRAPH AUSTR, V3
RAPAPORT WJ, 1981, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V14, P1
RAPAPORT WJ, 1984, PHILOS PHENOMEN RES, V44, P539
RAPAPORT WJ, 1985, 23RD P ANN M ASS COM, P43
RAPAPORT WJ, 1985, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V25, P61
RAPAPORT WJ, 1985, NOUS, V19, P255
ROUTLEY R, 1980, DEP MONOGRAPH AUSTR, V3
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P479
RUSSELL B, 1956, LOGIC ANAL ESSAYS 19
RUSSELL B, 1956, LOGIC KNOWLEDGE, P175
RUSSELL B, 1956, LOGIC KNOWLEDGE, P39
RYLE G, 1931, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, V32, P139
SCHOCK R, 1968, LOGICS EXISTENCE ASS
SHAPIRO SC, 1987, KNOWLEDGE FRONTIER E, P262
SLUGA HD, 1980, G FREGE
SMULLYAN RM, 1978, WHAT IS NAME THIS BO
SOWA JF, 1984, CONCEPTUAL STRUCTURE
STRAWSON PF, 1950, MIND, V59, P320
WILLIAMS CJF, 1981, WHAT IS EXISTENCE
WOODRUFF PW, 1970, PHILOS PROBLEMS LOGI, P121
WOODS J, 1974, DE PROPRIETATIBUS LI, V16
WOODS WA, 1975, REPRESENTATION UNDER, P35
ZALTA EN, 1983, SYNTHESE LIBRARY, V160
NR 95
TC 13
PU ELSEVIER SCIENCE BV
PI AMSTERDAM
PA PO BOX 211, 1000 AE AMSTERDAM, NETHERLANDS
SN 0004-3702
J9 ARTIF INTELL
JI Artif. Intell.
PD MAY
PY 1991
VL 49
IS 1-3
BP 199
EP 242
PG 44
SC Computer Science, Artificial Intelligence
GA FV154
UT ISI:A1991FV15400008
ER

PT J
AU PARSONS, C
TI OBJECTS AND LOGIC
SO MONIST
LA English
DT Article
RP PARSONS, C, COLUMBIA UNIV,NEW YORK,NY 10027.
CR CHURCH A, 1940, J SYMBOLIC LOGIC, V5, P56
CHURCH A, 1951, STRUCTURE METHOD MEA
DONNELLAN K, 1966, PHILOS REV, V75, P281
FREGE G, FUNKTION BEGRIFF BED
FREGE G, GRUNDGESETZE ARITHME
FREGE G, KLEINE SCHRIFTEN
FREGE G, NACHGELASSENE SCHRIF
FREGE G, WISSENSCHAFTLICHER B
GODEL K, 1940, CONSISTENCY CONTINUU
GODEL K, 1964, PHILOS MATH SELECTED, P264
GROSSMANN R, 1974, NOUS, V8, P67
HINTIKKA J, 1972, INQUIRY, V15, P341
KANT I, CRITIQUE JUDGEMENT
KANT I, 1788, COMMUNICATION 1125
MEINONG A, 1907, STELLUNG GEGENSTANDS
MOORE G, 1980, HIST PHILOS LOGIC, V1, P95
PARSONS C, 1964, PHILOS REV, V73, P182
PARSONS C, 1969, PHILOSOPHY SCIENCE M, P568
PARSONS C, 1971, J PHILOS, V68, P231
PARSONS C, 1971, PHILOS REV, V80, P151
PARSONS C, 1974, J PHILOS LOGIC, V3, P381
PARSONS C, 1974, NOUS, V8, P1
PARSONS C, 1979, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, V80, P142
PARSONS CL, PHILOS WV QUINE
PARSONS CL, 1977, LOGIC F MATH COMPUTA, P345
PARSONS T, 1979, J PHILOS, V76, P639
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
PLAASS, 1965, KANTS THEORIE NATURW
PUTNAM H, 1967, J PHILOS, V64, P5
QUINE WVO, 1969, ONTOLOGICAL RELATIVI
QUINE WVO, 1970, PHILOS LOGIC
QUINE WVO, 1972, METHODS LOGIC
RESNIK MD, 1980, FREGE PHILOS MATH
ROUTLEY R, 1973, REV INT PHILOS, V27, P224
RUSSELL B, 1912, PROBLEMS PHILOS
RUSSELL B, 1956, LOGIC KNOWLEDGE
RUSSELL B, 1973, ESSAYS ANAL
TAIT WW, 1981, J PHILOS, V78, P524
TAYLOR RG, THESIS COLUMBIA
THOMASON RH, 1969, LOGICAL WAY DOING TH
WHITEHEAD AN, PRINCIPIA MATHEMATIC
ZERMELO E, 1908, MATH ANN, V65, P261
ZERMELO E, 1929, FUND MATH, V14, P339
NR 43
TC 13
PU HEGELER INST
PI LA SALLE
PA PO BOX 600, LA SALLE, IL 61301
SN 0026-9662
J9 MONIST
JI Monist
PY 1982
VL 65
IS 4
BP 491
EP 516
PG 26
SC Philosophy
GA PS624
UT ISI:A1982PS62400008
ER

PT J
AU GRIFFIN, N
TI RUSSELL ON THE NATURE OF LOGIC (1903-1913)
SO SYNTHESE
LA English
DT Article
RP GRIFFIN, N, MCMASTER UNIV,HAMILTON L8S 4L8,ONTARIO,CANADA.
CR BLACKWELL K, 1976, P WITTGENSTEIN C
BOLZANO B, 1851, PARADOXIEN UNENDLICH
BRADLEY FH, 1893, APPEARANCE REALITY
EAMES ER, COLLECTED PAPERS BR, V7
EAMES ER, 1979, RUSSELL J B RUSSELL, V35, P41
GEACH P, 1957, MENTAL ACTS
GRATTANGUINNESS I, 1977, DEAR RUSSELL DEAR JO
GRIFFIN JP, 1964, WITTGENSTEINS LOGICA
GRIFFIN N, UNPUBLISHED
HINTIKKA J, 1969, SEMANTICS PROPOSITIO
HOCHBERG H, 1978, THOUGHT FACT REFEREN
KENNY A, 1973, WITTGENSTEIN
LINSKY L, 1971, REFERENCE MODALITY
MACCOLL H, 1897, P LONDON MATH SOC, V28, P156
MCGUINNESS B, 1972, REV INT PHILOS, V26, P444
MEINONG A, 1902, ANNAHMEN
MEINONG A, 1915, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
MOORE GE, 1899, MIND, P176
MOORE GE, 1900, MIND, V9, P289
PERKINS RK, 1979, RUSSELL J B RUSSELL, V35, P37
PURTILL RL, 1970, AJATUS, V32, P18
QUINE WVO, 1956, QUANTIFIERS PROPOSIT
QUINE WVO, 1963, SET THEORY ITS LOGIC
QUINE WVO, 1969, ONTOLOGICAL RELATIVI
QUINE WVO, 1970, PHILOSOPHY LOGIC
RESCHER N, 1974, STUDIES MODALITY
RUSSELL B, TRACTATUS LOGICO PHI, R9
RUSSELL B, UNPUBLISHED
RUSSELL B, 1900, CRITICAL EXPOSITION
RUSSELL B, 1901, MATH METAPHYSICIANS
RUSSELL B, 1903, PRINCIPLES MATH
RUSSELL B, 1904, AXIOM INFINITY, P256
RUSSELL B, 1904, MEINONGS THEORY COMP
RUSSELL B, 1908, MATH LOGIC BASED THE
RUSSELL B, 1910, PRINCIPIA MATH
RUSSELL B, 1913, PROBLEMS PHILOSOPHY
RUSSELL B, 1914, KNOWLEDGE EXTERNAL W
RUSSELL B, 1914, MONIST, V24, P1
RUSSELL B, 1914, MONIST, V24, P161
RUSSELL B, 1914, MONIST, V24, P435
RUSSELL B, 1914, MONIST, V24, P582
RUSSELL B, 1915, MONIST, V25, P212
RUSSELL B, 1915, MONIST, V25, P28
RUSSELL B, 1917, MYSTICISM LOGIC
RUSSELL B, 1956, LOGIC KNOWLEDGE
RUSSELL B, 1973, ESSAYS ANAL
RUSSELL, 1906, COMMUNICATION 0509
RUSSELL, 1913, COMMUNICATION 0521
RUSSELL, 1913, COMMUNICATION 0528
SOMMERVILLE S, 1979, 4TH INT WITTG S
WITTGENSTEIN L, 1913, NOTES LOGIC SEP
WITTGENSTEIN L, 1921, TRACTATUS LOGICO PHI
WITTGENSTEIN L, 1957, J PHILOSOPHY, V54, P230
NR 53
TC 13
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0039-7857
J9 SYNTHESE
JI Synthese
PY 1980
VL 45
IS 1
BP 117
EP 188
PG 72
SC History & Philosophy Of Science
GA KS104
UT ISI:A1980KS10400005
ER

PT J
AU CHISHOLM, RM
SOSA, E
TI INTRINSIC PREFERABILITY AND THE PROBLEM OF SUPEREROGATION
SO SYNTHESE
LA English
DT Article
C1 BROWN UNIV,PROVIDENCE,RI.
UNIV WESTERN ONTARIO,LONDON,ONTARIO,CANADA.
CR ANDERSON AR, 1956, FORMAL ANAL NORMATIV
AQVIST L, 1963, ACTA PHILOSOPHICA FE, V16, P285
CHISHOLM R, 1964, J PHILOS, V61, P613
CHISHOLM RM, 1963, RATIO, V5, P1
CHISHOLM RM, 1966, AM PHILOSOPHICAL Q, V3, P244
FEINBERG J, 1961, ETHICS, V71, P276
HALLDEN S, 1957, LOGIC BETTER, V2
LADD J, 1957, STRUCTURE MORAL CODE, P125
MEINONG A, 1894, PSYCHOLOGISCHETHISCH, P88
PRIOR AN, 1955, FORMAL LOGIC, P221
RESCHER N, 1967, LOGIC DECISION ACTIO
SCHWARZ E, 1934, UBER WERT SOLL RICHT, P49
URMSON JO, 1958, ESSAYS MORAL PHILOSO
WRIGHT GH, 1951, MIND, V60, P1
WRIGHT GHV, 1951, ESSAY MODAL LOGIC, CH5
WRIGHT GHV, 1963, LOGIC PREFERENCE
NR 16
TC 13
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0039-7857
J9 SYNTHESE
JI Synthese
PY 1966
VL 16
IS 3-4
BP 321
EP 331
PG 11
SC History & Philosophy Of Science
GA ZP142
UT ISI:A1966ZP14200005
ER

PT J
AU Granit, AR
AF Granit, Arthur Ragnar
TI A STUDY ON THE PERCEPTION OF FORM
SO BRITISH JOURNAL OF PSYCHOLOGY-GENERAL SECTION
LA English
DT Article
CR BENUSSI V, 1914, Z PSYCHOL, V69
BUHLER K, 1913, GESTALTWAHRNEHMUNGEN
GELB A, 1911, Z PSYCHOL, V58
GOLDSTEIN, 1918, Z NEUROL PSYCHIAT, V41
HOFLER A, 1911, Z PSYCHOL, V60
JODL F, 1917, ASTHETIK BILDENDEN K
KAILA E, 1917, IDEATORISCHE KOORDIN
KATZ D, 1913, Z PSYCHOL, V65
KOLLNER, 1920, VORLESUNGEN PHYSL, P363
KULPE O, 1920, VORLESUNGEN PSYCHOL
LUNDHOLM H, 1919, OBJEKTIVA FAKTORER K
MEINONG A, 1899, Z PSYCHOL, V21
MESSMER O, 1904, ARCH PSYCHOL, V2
MEUMANN E, 1907, EXPT PADAGOGIK
MEUMANN E, 1907, EXPT PADAGOGIK, P365
POPPELREUTER W, 1917, PSYCH SCHADIGUNGEN D, V1
POPPELREUTER W, 1917, PSYCHISCHEN SCHADING, V1
RUBIN E, 1915, SYNSOPLEVEDE FIGUERE
SEIFERT F, 1917, Z PSYCHOL, V78
SMITH MK, 1900, PHILOS STUD, V16
THORNDIKE EL, 1915, ED PSYCHOL
TITCHENER EB, 1912, TXB PSYCHOL, P371
WERTHEIMER M, 1912, Z PSYCHOL, V61
NR 23
TC 13
PU CAMBRIDGE UNIV PRESS
PI NEW YORK
PA 32 AVENUE OF THE AMERICAS, NEW YORK, NY 10013-2473 USA
SN 0373-2460
J9 BR J PSYCHOL-GEN SECT
JI Br. J. Psychol. -Gen. Sect.
PD DEC
PY 1921
VL 12
PN Part 3-4
BP 223
EP 247
PG 25
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V67CN
UT ISI:000204535700002
ER

PT J
AU Babovic, V
Abbott, MB
TI The evolution of equations from hydraulic data .2. Applications
SO JOURNAL OF HYDRAULIC RESEARCH
LA English
DT Article
ID NETWORKS
AB This second part of the paper is given over to describing four representative applications and to some of the most immediate lessons that may be drawn from these. The first of the applications is derived from a hydrologic model but provides equations with purely hydraulic interpretations. The second, taken from sediment transport studies, raises the question of ambiguity in the identification of ''thresholds'' in physical processes. It also provides a means for analyzing the significance of variables and indicates the need, or otherwise, for introducing further variables. A third example, based upon physical observations of salt water intrusion in estuaries, introduces the application of the present methods to accelerating prediction processes, while the fourth example extends this kind of application to cover numerically-generate data, in this case appertaining to the case of flow resistance in the presence of vegetation.
C1 INT CTR COMPUTAT HYDRODYNAM,DK-2970 HORSHOLM,DENMARK.
INT INST INFRASTRUCT HYDRAUL & ENVIRONM ENGN,NL-2601 DA DELFT,NETHERLANDS.
RP Babovic, V, DANISH HYDRAUL INST,AGERN ALLE 5,DK-2970 HORSHOLM,DENMARK.
CR ABBOTT MB, 1983, CIV ENG SYS, V1, P69
ABBOTT MB, 1989, COMPUTATIONAL FLUID
ABBOTT MB, 1991, HYDROINFORMATICS INF
ABBOTT MB, 1992, ADV THEORETICAL HYDR, P237
ABBOTT MB, 1993, ADV WATER RESOUR, V16, P21
ABBOTT MB, 1994, P 1 INT C HYDR BALK, V1
ABBOTT MB, 1997, COMPUTATIONAL HYDRAU
AMDISEN LK, 1991, THESIS DANISH ACAD T
AMDISEN LK, 1994, J HYDRAUL RES, V32, P183
BABOVIC V, 1993, SCI PRES AIO M 93 DE, P21
BABOVIC V, 1994, P 1 INT C HYDR BALK, P193
BABOVIC V, 1994, P 1 INT C HYDR BALK, V1, P201
BABOVIC V, 1995, P 26 C INT ASS HYDR
BABOVIC V, 1996, EMERGENCE EVOLUTION
BABOVIC V, 1996, P 26 INT WASS S IAWA
BIRKHOFF G, 1950, HYDROINFORMATICS STU
BIRKHOFF G, 1970, MODERN APPL ALGEBRA
BLOM T, 1989, WHY AUTOPOIESIS WHY, P353
BOX GEP, 1957, APPLIED STATISTICS, V6, P81
BREMERMANN RM, 1958, IBM J RES DEV, P2
COOKE DJ, 1984, COMPUTER MATH
CRAMER NL, 1985, P INT C GEN ALG THEI, P183
CROW J, 1986, BASIC CONCEPTS POPUL
DEJONG K, 1975, THESIS U MICHIGAN
ECO U, 1976, THEORY SEMIOTICS
ESCHELMAN LJ, 1991, P 4 INT C GEN ALG, V2, P115
FALCONER R, 1990, FRACTAL GEMOETRY MAT
FAYYAD UM, 1995, P 1 INT C KNOWL DISC
FAYYAD UM, 1996, ADV KNOWLEDGE DISCOV
FINDLEY JN, 1933, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
FOGEL DB, 1990, BIOL CYBERN, V63, P487
FOGEL DB, 1992, THESIS U CALIFORNIA
FOGEL DB, 1993, EVOLUTIONARY COMPUTA, V1, P77
FOGEL LJ, 1966, ARTIFICIAL INTELLIGE
FRIEDBERG RM, 1958, IBM J RES DEV, P2
GOLDBERG DE, 1987, GENETIC ALGORITHMS T, P41
GOLDBERG DE, 1989, GENETIC ALGORITHMS S
GRANGER GG, 1994, FORMES OPERATIONS OB, P157
HARVEY I, 1993, THESIS U SUSSEX UK
HEDBERG SR, 1995, BYTE OCT, P83
HEIDEGGER M, 1927, BEING AND TIME
HEYLIGHEN F, 1989, SELF STEERING COGNIT
HILLIS D, 1992, ARTIF LIFE, V2, P313
HOLLAND JH, 1975, ADAPTATION NATURAL A
HOLLAND JH, 1986, MACHINE LEARNING ART, V2
HUSSERL E, 1901, LOGICAL INVESTIGATIO
KOZA J, 1992, GENETIC PROGRAMMING
KUTIJA V, 1995, J HYDRAUL RES, V33, P535
KUTIJA V, 1995, J HYDRAUL RES, V34, P99
MANDRIOLI D, 1987, THEORETICAL FDN COMP
MANIN YJ, 1977, COURSE MATH LOGIC
MARGALEF R, 1968, PERSPECTIVES ECOLOGI
MARTINGARCIA H, 1996, COMBINED LOGICAL ENH
MAYNARDSMITH J, 1975, THEORY EVOLUTION
MEIN RG, 1974, J HYDR-ASCE, V100, P1507
MEINONG A, 1913, GESAMMELTEN ABHANDLU
MICHALEWICZ A, 1992, GENETIC ALGORITHS PL
MINNS AW, 1995, P 26 IAHR C LOND, V1, P218
MINNS AW, 1996, HYDROLOGICAL SCI J, V41
MINSKY, 1963, COMPUTER THOUGHT, P379
MITROPOLSKY YA, 1988, GROUP THEORY APPROAC
NEWELL A, 1980, COGNITIVE SCI, V4, P135
PAPADIMITRIOU C, 1993, COMPUTATIONAL COMPLE
PEIRCE CS, 1888, SELECTED WRITINGS VA
PRESTON B, 1993, PHILOS PHENOMENOLIGI, V1, P43
RADCLIFFE NJ, 1994, GENETIC ALGORITHMS O, P65
RUMELHART D, 1987, PARALLEL DISTRIBUTED
SAVENIJE HHG, 1993, J HYDROL, V148, P203
SCHWEFEL HP, 1981, NUMERICAL OPTIMISATI
SMITH JM, 1986, PROBLEMS BIOL
SMOLENSKY P, 1988, BEHAVIORAL BRAIN SCI, V11, P1
VISUALINGAM M, 1989, J CARTOGRAPHY, V26, P26
WALKER R, 1993, 6857 ESPRIT
WASCHELDER J, 1989, SELF REFERENCING SOC, P403
WATOSN JD, 1970, MOL BIOL GENE
WATTERSON K, 1995, BYTE OCT, P91
WILSON G, 1996, IN PRESS 2 INT C HYD
WILSON SW, 1994, EVOLUTIONARY COMPUTA, V2, P1
WOODCOCK J, 1988, SOFTWARE ENG MATH
ZYSERMAN JA, 1994, J HYDRAUL ENG-ASCE, V120, P1021
NR 80
TC 12
PU INT ASSN HYDRAULIC RESEARCH
PI DELFT
PA PO BOX 177, 2600 DELFT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0022-1686
J9 J HYDRAUL RES
JI J. Hydraul. Res.
PY 1997
VL 35
IS 3
BP 411
EP 430
PG 20
SC Engineering, Civil; Water Resources
GA XE518
UT ISI:A1997XE51800008
ER

PT J
AU ANAND, P
TI THE NATURE OF RATIONAL CHOICE AND THE FOUNDATIONS OF STATISTICS
SO OXFORD ECONOMIC PAPERS-NEW SERIES
LA English
DT Review
ID EXPECTED UTILITY; DECISION-MAKING; UNCERTAINTY; PROBABILITY; CONSISTENCY; PREFERENCE
C1 UNIV OXFORD,SUBFAC ECON,OXFORD,ENGLAND.
RP ANAND, P, UNIV OXFORD,TEMPLETON COLL,OXFORD,ENGLAND.
CR ACHINSTEIN P, 1983, NATURE EXPLANATION
AKERLOF GA, 1970, Q J ECON, V84, P488, DOI 10.2307/1879431
AKERLOF GA, 1982, AM ECON REV, V82, P307
ALDERFER CP, 1969, ORGAN BEHAV HUM PREF, V4, P142
ALLAIS M, 1953, ECONOMETRICA, V21, P503
ANAND P, 1982, OXFORD AGRARIAN STUD, V158, P172
ANAND P, 1987, THEOR DECIS, V23, P189
ANAND P, 1990, ANN OPER RES, V23, P91
ANTHONY L, 1987, PHILOS STUD, P311
ARROW KJ, 1951, ECONOMETRICA, V19, P404
ARROW KJ, 1982, ECON INQ, V20, P1
AUMANN RJ, 1962, ECONOMETRICA, V30, P445
BACHARACH MOL, IN PRESS J PHILOS
BACHARACH MOL, 1986, UNPUB RATIONAL PREFE
BARHILLEL M, 1988, THEOR DECIS, V24, P119
BARNARD GA, 1961, J ROYAL STATISTICAL, V23, P25
BAUSOR R, 1985, SOCIAL CONCEPT, V2, P66
BAUSOR R, 1988, PSYCHOL EC
BELL D, 1982, OPER RES, V20, P961
BEWLEY TE, 1986, 807 COWL F DISC PAP
BINMORE K, 1987, ECON PHILOS, V3, P179
BINMORE K, 1988, ECON PHILOS, V4, P9
BOLAND L, 1982, FUTILITY CRITICIZING, V71, P1031
BORCH KH, 1968, EC UNCERTAINTY
COATS AW, 1988, PSYCHOL EC, P211
COHEN LJ, 1985, BRIT J PHILOS SCI, V37, P263
COHEN M, 1985, J MATH PSYCHOL, V29, P428
CROSS JG, 1983, THEORY ADAPTIVE EC B
DAVIDSON D, 1963, J PHILOS, V60, P655
DEATON A, 1980, EC CONSUMER BEHAVIOR
DEBREU G, 1959, THEORY VALUE
EARL P, 1983, EC IMAGINATION
EINHORN HJ, 1986, J BUSINESS 2, V59, P225
ELLSBERG D, 1961, Q J ECON, V75, P643, DOI 10.2307/1884324
FISHBURN PC, 1981, THEOR DECIS, V13, P139
FISHBURN PC, 1982, J MATH PSYCHOL, V26, P31
FISHBURN PC, 1983, ANN STAT, V11, P1047
FISHBURN PC, 1983, MATH SOC SCI, V5, P129
FODOR JA, 1968, PSYCHOL EXPLANATION
FRIEDMAN M, 1953, ESSAYS POSITIVE EC
GARDENFORS P, 1982, SYNTHESE, V53, P361
GILBOA I, 1987, J MATH ECON, V16, P65
GILBOA I, 1989, J MATH ECON, V18, P141
HANSSON B, 1975, ERKENNTNIS, V9, P175
HAUSMAN DM, 1981, PHILOS EC, P17
HAUSMAN DM, 1988, BOUNDARIES EC, P88
HEINER RA, 1983, AM ECON REV, V73, P560
HELM D, 1984, OXFORD ECON PAP, V36, P118
HEY JD, 1983, ECON J, P130
HEY JD, 1988, ECON J, V98, P547
JEFFREY RC, 1965, LOGIC DECISION
JOHNSONLAIRD PN, 1983, MENTAL MODELS
KANE R, 1986, ERKENNTNIS, V24, P115
KELSEY D, 1986, 93 CAMBR U EC THEOR
KEYNES JM, 1921, TREATISE PROBABILITY
KEYNES JM, 1967, GENERAL THEORY EMPLO
KIM T, 1986, J ECON THEORY, V38, P324
KNIGHT FH, 1921, RISK UNCERTAINTY PRO
KOLMOGOROV AM, 1956, F THEORY PROBABILITY
LAVALLE IH, 1989, DECISION ORG, P63
LAWSON T, 1985, ECON J, V95, P909
LEROY SF, 1987, J POLITICAL EC, V95, P909
LEVI I, 1966, RATIO, V8, P107
LEVI I, 1984, DECISIONS REVISIONS
LEWIS AA, 1988, BALANCED GAMES CORES
MACHINA M, 1982, ECONOMETRICA, V50, P277
MACHINA MJ, 1983, EC THEORY INDIVIDUAL
MACHINA MJ, 1989, J ECON LIT, V27, P1622
MAHER P, 1986, ERKENNTNIS, V24, P363
MALINVAUD E, 1952, ECONOMETRICA, V20, P679
MASCOLELL A, 1974, J MATH ECON, V1, P237
MASKIN E, 1979, THEOR DECIS, V11, P319
MASLOW AH, 1943, PSYCHOL REV, V50, P370
MCCLENNEN EF, 1982, F UTILITY RISK THEOR
MCCLENNEN EF, 1986, DYNAMIC CHOICE RATIO
MCGINN C, 1979, PHILOS PROBLEMS PSYC
MEINONG A, 1990, GOTTISCHE GELEHERTE, V12, P56
NITSCHE A, 1892, VIERTELJAHRSCHRIFT W, V16, P20
POPPER KR, 1950, BRIT J PHILOSOPHY SC, V1, P117
QUINE WV, 1981, THEORIES THINGS
RAMSEY FP, 1926, F MATHEMATICS LOGICA
ROSENBERG A, 1988, PHILOS SOCIAL SCI
ROTH AE, 1987, LABORATORY EXPERIMEN
RUBENSTEIN A, 1989, AM ECON REV, V79, P385
RUNDE J, 1990, ECON PHILOS, V6, P275
SAMUELSON PA, 1938, ECONOMICA-NEW SER, V5, P61
SAVAGE LJ, 1954, F STATISTICS
SCHICK F, 1987, EC PHILOS, V3, P167
SCHMEIDLER D, 1989, ECONOMETRICA, V57, P571
SEN A, 1973, ECONOMICA, V40, P241
SEN A, 1985, THEOR DECIS, V18, P109
SEN AK, 1970, COLLECTIVE CHOICE SO
SHACKLE GLS, 1952, EXPECTATION EC
SHACKLE GLS, 1961, DECISION ORDER TIME
SHAFER WJ, 1975, J MATH ECON, V3, P135
SHORTLIFFE EH, 1976, COMPUTER BASED MED C
SUGDEN R, 1985, ECONOMICA, V52, P167
TVERSKY A, 1975, ERKENNTNIS, V9, P163
VILKS AA, IN PRESS EC PHILOS
VONNEUMANN J, 1944, THEORY GAMES EC BEHA
WONG S, 1978, F P SAMUELSONS REVEA
NR 101
TC 12
PU OXFORD UNIV PRESS UNITED KINGDOM
PI OXFORD
PA WALTON ST JOURNALS DEPT, OXFORD, ENGLAND OX2 6DP
SN 0030-7653
J9 OXFORD ECON PAP-NEW SER
JI Oxf. Econ. Pap.-New Ser.
PD APR
PY 1991
VL 43
IS 2
BP 199
EP 216
PG 18
SC Economics
GA GD493
UT ISI:A1991GD49300004
ER

PT J
AU DOYLE, JP
TI EXTRINSIC COGNOSCIBILITY, A 17TH-CENTURY SUPERTRANSCENDENTAL NOTION
SO MODERN SCHOOLMAN
LA English
DT Article
RP DOYLE, JP, ST LOUIS UNIV,DEPT PHILOSOPHY,ST LOUIS,MO 63103.
CR ALEXANDER APHRO., TOP
ALSTEDII JH, 1630, ENCY SEPTEM TOMIS DI
AQUINAS T, SUMA THEOLOGIAE
ARISTOTLE, METAPHYSICS
BERNALDODEQUIRO.A, 1666, OPUS PHILOS COMPLECT
BURGERSDIJK F, INSTITUTIONUM METAPH
CARLETON TC, 1849, PHILOS U
CARRERAS T, 1943, HIST FILOSOFIA ESPAN
CENAL R, 1942, REV FILOSOFIA, V1
CHISHOLM RM, 1853, ENCYCL PHILOS, P263
CLAUBERG JB, ONTOSOPHIA
DEARRIAGA R, 1669, DISPUTATIONES METAPH
DEBACKER A, 1890, BIBLIOTHEQUE COMPAGN
DELOSSADA L, 1720, CURSUS PHILOSOPHICI
DEONA P, 1588, SUPER UNIVERSAM LOGI
DIBON P, 1954, PHILOS NEERLANDAISE
DOYLE JP, 1969, MODERN SCHOOLMAN, V46, P224
DOYLE JP, 1988, MOD SCHOOLMAN, V66, P1
DUNS SCOTUS, QUODLIBETA
ESCHWEILER K, 1928, PHILOS SPANISCHEN SP
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
FONSECAE SJ, 1615, METAPHYSICORUM ARIST, V2
GILSON E, 1952, BEING SOME PHILOS
GOCIENIUS R, 1613, LEXICON PHILOS
GOCLENIUS R, 1598, ISAGOGE PERIPATETICO
GREGORY RIMINI, SUPER PRIMUM ET SECU
GRUA G, 1953, JURISPRUDENCE UNIVER
HEEREBOORD A, 1665, MELETEMATA PHILOS
HERREROS JLF, 1981, CUADERNOS SALMANTINO, V8, P175
HURTADO P, 1617, DISPUTATIONES METAPH
IRRIARTE J, 1948, RAZON FE, P229
IZQUIERDO CS, 1659, PHARUS SCIENTIARUM
JACK G, 1616, PRIMAE PHILOS SIVE I
KANT I, CRITIQUE PURE REASON
KECKERMANN B, PRAECOGNITA PHILOS
KECKERMANN DB, SYSTEMA SS THEOLOGIA
LEWALTER E, 1935, SPANISCHEJESUITISCHE
LOSSADA LJ, METAPHYSICA
MEINONG A, STELUNG GEGENSTANDST
MEINONG A, 1904, GEGENSTANDSTHEORIE
MOODY E, 1953, MEDIAEVAL LOGIC
OWENS J, 1978, DOCTRINE BEING ARIST
PAULUS J, 1938, HENRI GAND ESSAI TEN
PEYANDO I, 1671, DISPUTATIONES UNIVER
PEYBNAPEYNADO J, LOGICA
PLOTINUS, ENNEADS
POHLENZ M, 1970, STOA
POINSOT L, TRACTATUS DE SIGNIS
REALE G, 1980, CONCEPT FIRST PHILOS
REEB G, 1629, THESAURUS PHILOS DIS
RISSE W, 1964, LOGIK NEUZEIT
RITTER H, 1913, HIST PHILOS GRAECAE
RUSSELL B, 1904, CRITICAL NOTICE UNTE
RUSSELL B, 1904, MIND, V13, P204
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P479
SCHEIBLER C, 1617, OPUS METAPHYSICUM
SEXTUS EMPIRICU., ADVERSUS MATHEMATICO
SIMON JJY, 1955, MATERIAL LOGIC J STT
STAHL D, 1672, REGULAE PHILOS SUB T
STIER J, 1647, PRAECEPTA METAPHYSIC
STRANGE SK, 1987, AUFSTIEG NIEDERGANG, V36, P959
SUAREZ F, DE DIVINA SUBSTANTIA
SUAREZ F, DISPUTATIONES METAPH
SUAREZ F, 1983, ESSENCE FINITE BEING
TIMPLER C, METAPHYSICAE SYSTEMA
TONELLI G, 1972, ENCYCL PHILOS, P121
ULLOA JB, 1711, LOGICA MINOR
ULLOA JD, 1712, LOGICA MAJOR
WELLS NJ, 1981, MODERN SCHOOLMAN, V63, P104
WIETROWSKI M, 1669, CURSUS PHILOS
WIETROWSKI M, 1697, PHILOS DISPUTATA QUA
WUNDT M, 1939, DTSCH SCHULMETRAPHYS
ZIMMERMANN A, 1965, ONTOLOGIE METAPHYSIK
NR 73
TC 12
PU ST LOUIS UNIV
PI ST LOUIS
PA 221 NORTH GRAND BLVD, ST LOUIS, MO 63103-2097
SN 0026-8402
J9 MOD SCHOOLMAN
JI Mod. Schoolman
PD NOV
PY 1990
VL 68
IS 1
BP 57
EP 80
PG 24
SC Philosophy
GA EN507
UT ISI:A1990EN50700004
ER

PT J
AU RESCHER, N
TI BELIEF-CONTRAVENING SUPPOSITIONS
SO PHILOSOPHICAL REVIEW
LA English
DT Article
CR 1954, F STATISTICS, P59
BRADLEY FH, 1883, LOGIC, V1, P85
CHISHOLM RM, 1955, ANALYSIS, V15, P102
MEINONG A, 1910, UEBER ANNAHMEN, P109
RUSSELL B, 1904, MIND, V13, P343
RUSSELL B, 1904, MIND, V13, P522
NR 6
TC 12
PU CORNELL UNIV SAGE SCHOOL PHILOSOPHY
PI ITHACA
PA PHILOSOPHICAL REVIEW 220 GOLDWIN SMITH HALL, ITHACA, NY 14853
SN 0031-8108
J9 PHIL REV
JI Philos. Rev.
PY 1961
VL 70
IS 2
BP 176
EP 196
PG 21
SC Philosophy
GA CCQ49
UT ISI:A1961CCQ4900002
ER

PT J
AU Pratt, CC
TI Some qualitative aspects of bitonal complexes
SO AMERICAN JOURNAL OF PSYCHOLOGY
LA English
DT Article
CR TONPSYCHOLOGIE, F127
1893, GRUNDRISS PSYCHOL, V239
1898, KONSONANZ DISSONANZ, V35
1898, KONSONANZ DISSONANZ, V44
1910, PHYSL PSYCHOL, FF124
BORING EG, 1920, PSYCHOL REV, V27, P449
BORING EG, 1920, PSYCHOL REV, V27, FF446
BORING EG, 1921, AM J PSYCHOL, V32, FF449
BORING, PSYCHOL REV, V27, P449
BORING, 1921, AM J PSYCHOL, V32, FF449
BUCH E, 1899, PHILOS STUD, V15, FF1
BUCH E, 1899, PHILOS STUD, V15, FF183
CORNELIUS, 1892, VIERTELJAHRSSCHR WIS, V16, FF404
DELASKI E, 1916, AM J PSYCHOL, V27, P569
FAIST A, 1897, Z PSYCHOL, V15, P109
FAIST A, 1897, Z PSYCHOL, V15, FF102
FERNBERGER SW, 1921, J EXP PSYCHOL, V3, FF63
FRIEDLANDER H, 1920, Z PSYCHOL, V83, FF129
FRIEDLINE CL, 1918, AM J PSYCHOL, V29, P400
GEORGE SS, 1917, AM J PSYCHOL, V28, FF1
KEMP W, 1913, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V29, P139
KRUEGER F, PSYCHOL STUD, V5, FF294
KRUEGER F, 1900, PHILOS STUD, V16, FF307
KRUEGER F, 1907, PSYCHOL STUD, V1, FF305
KRUEGER F, 1909, PSYCHOL STUD, V2, FF205
KRUEGER F, 1910, PSYCHOL STUD, V4, FF201
KULPE O, 1893, GRUNDRISS PSYCHOL, FF289
LIPPS T, 1898, Z PSYCHOL, V19, FF1
LIPPS T, 1909, LEITFADEN PSYCHOL, FF98
MEINONG A, 1897, Z PSYCHOL, V15, P191
MEINONG A, 1897, Z PSYCHOL, V15, P193
NATORP P, 1886, GOTTINGER GEL ANZ, FF145
NATORP P, 1891, GOTTINGER GEL ANZ, FF789
PEAR TH, 1911, BRIT J PSY, V4, FF56
SCHULZE R, 1898, PHILOS STUD, V14, P483
STUMPF C, 1890, TONPSYCHOLOGIE, P128
STUMPF C, 1890, TONPSYCHOLOGIE, F127
STUMPF, 1890, TONPSYCHOLOGIE, P135
TITCHENER EB, 1916, P AM PHILOS SOC, V55, P206
URBAN FM, 1913, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V30, P116
WUNDT, 1910, PHYS PSYCHOL, V121
YOKOYAMA M, 1921, AM J PSYCHOL, V32, FF357
NR 42
TC 12
PU UNIV ILLINOIS PRESS
PI CHAMPAIGN
PA 1325 S OAK ST, CHAMPAIGN, IL 61820 USA
SN 0002-9556
J9 AMER J PSYCHOL
JI Am. J. Psychol.
PY 1921
VL 32
BP 490
EP 515
PG 26
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V01XS
UT ISI:000200129200033
ER

PT J
AU Benussi, V
AF Benussi, Vittorio
TI Laws of inadequate Form Conception
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Article
CR ARCH GES PSYCH, V2, P333
ARCH GES PSYCH, V7, P168
ARCH GES PSYCH, V7, P171
Z PSYCHOL, V67, P316
1902, Z PSYCH, V29
1905, ATT 5 C INT PSIC ROM
1906, Z PSYCH, V42
1907, Z PSYCH, V45
1909, Z PSYCH, V51
1910, ARCH GES PSYCH, V17, P91
1911, ARCH GES PSYCH, V20
1911, ARCH GES PSYCH, V20, P391
1912, ARCH GES PSYCH, V24
1912, ARCH GES PSYCH, V24, P31
1913, PSYCHOL ZEITAUFFASSU, P59
1913, PSYCHOL ZEITAUFFASSU, P60
AMESEDER R, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
BENUSSI V, Z PSYCH GESTALTERF, P383
GELB A, 1910, Z PSYCHOL, V58, P1
GIERINGS H, ARCH GES PSYCH, V6, P126
KOHLER W, 1913, Z PSYCHOL, V66, P5
LIEL W, 1904, UNT GEG PSYCH, V6
MEINONG A, 1899, Z PSYCH, V21
MEINONG A, 1904, UNT GEG PSYCH, V5
MEINONG, Z PSYCH, V21, P81
MULLER GE, EXPT ANAL ZEITVERGLE, V1, P375
WITASEK, 1897, Z PSYCH, V19
WITASEK, 1910, PSYCHOL RAUMWAHRNEHM, P317
NR 28
TC 12
SN 0724-7842
J9 ARCG GESAMTE PSYCHOL
JI Archiv. Gesamte Psychol.
PD MAY 29
PY 1914
VL 32
IS 3-4
BP 396
EP 419
PG 24
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V98HI
UT ISI:000206643800003
ER

PT J
AU Rapaport, WJ
Shapiro, SC
Wiebe, JM
TI Quasi-indexicals and knowledge reports
SO COGNITIVE SCIENCE
LA English
DT Article
ID BELIEF; LOGIC
AB We present a computational analysis of de re, de dicto, and de se belief and knowledge reports. Our analysis solves a problem first observed by Hector-Neri Castaneda, namely, that the simple rule '(A knows that P) implies P' apparently does not hold if P contains a quasi-indexical. We present a single rule, in the context of a knowledge-representation and reasoning system, that holds for all P, including those containing quasi-indexicals. In so doing, we explore the difference between reasoning in a public communication language and in a knowledge-representation language, we demonstrate the importance of representing proper names explicitly, and we provide support for the necessity of considering sentences in the context of extended discourse (e.g., written narrative) in order to fully capture certain features of their semantics.
C1 NEW MEXICO STATE UNIV,LAS CRUCES,NM 88003.
RP Rapaport, WJ, SUNY BUFFALO,DEPT COMP SCI,BUFFALO,NY 14260.
CR ALMEIDA MJ, 1983, P 5 ANN C COGN SCI S
ALMEIDA MJ, 1987, 8710 SUNY BUFF DEP C
ALMEIDA MJ, 1995, DEIXIS NARRATIVE COG, P159
BALLIM A, 1991, ARTIFICIAL BELIEVERS
BANFIELD A, 1982, UNSPEAKABLE SENTENCE
BARWISE J, 1983, SITUATIONS ATTITUDES
BRACHMAN RJ, 1985, READINGS KNOWLEDGE R, P169
BRUDER GA, 1986, 8620 SUNY BUFF DEP C
CASTANEDA HN, 1966, RATIO, V8, P130
CASTANEDA HN, 1967, AM PHILOS Q, V4, P85
CASTANEDA HN, 1970, MIDWEST STUD PHILOS, V2, P165
CASTANEDA HN, 1972, CRITICA, V6, P43
CASTANEDA HN, 1989, THINKING LANGUAGE EX
CHALUPSKY H, 1993, J EXP THEOR ARTIF IN, V5, P119
CHISHOLM RM, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P76
FLUDERNIK M, 1993, FICTIONS LANGUAGE LA
FODOR JD, 1970, LINGUISTIC DESCRIPTI
FRANCHERE R, 1964, HANNAH HERSELF
GALBRAITH M, 1995, DEIXIS NARRATIVE COG, P19
GETTIER E, 1963, ANALYSIS, V23, P121
GROVE AJ, 1995, ARTIF INTELL, V74, P311
HAAS AR, 1993, COMPUTATIONAL LINGUI, V19, P637
HALPERN JY, 1986, P 1986 C MONT
HAMBURGER K, 1973, LOGIC LIT
HENDRIX GG, 1979, ASS NETWORKS REPRESE, P51
HINTIKKA J, 1962, KNOWLEDGE BELIEF
HOBBS JR, 1985, P 23 ANN M ASS COMP, P61
ISRAEL D, 1989, J SYMBOLIC LOGIC, V54, P617
KAMP H, 1993, DISCOURSE LOGIC INTR
KURODA SY, 1976, PRAGMATICS LANGUAGE, P107
LEHMANN FC, 1992, SEMANTIC NETWORKS AR, P243
LEHNERT WG, 1983, ARTIF INTELL, V20, P15
LESPERANCE Y, 1989, P 11 INT JOINT C ART, V2, P868
LESPERANCE Y, 1990, P 8 NAT C ART INT ME, P1030
LESPERANCE Y, 1995, ARTIF INTELL, V73, P69
LI N, 1991, THESIS SUNY BUFFALO
LI N, 1995, DEIXIS NARRATIVE COG, P287
MAIDA AS, 1982, COGNITIVE SCI, V6, P291
MARTINS JP, 1988, ARTIF INTELL, V35, P25
MEINONG A, 1904, ALEXIUS MEINONG GESA, V2, P481
PLATO, 1961, COLLECTED DIALOGUES, P845
QUINE WV, 1956, WAYS PARADOX OTHER E, P185
RAPAPORT WJ, 1978, NOUS, V12, P153
RAPAPORT WJ, 1979, NOUS, V13, P125
RAPAPORT WJ, 1981, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V14, P1
RAPAPORT WJ, 1984, 10TH P INT C COMP LI, P65
RAPAPORT WJ, 1985, 23RD P ANN M ASS COM, P43
RAPAPORT WJ, 1985, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V25, P61
RAPAPORT WJ, 1986, 8615 SUNY BUFF DEP C
RAPAPORT WJ, 1986, COGNITIVE SCI, V10, P371
RAPAPORT WJ, 1988, ASPECTS ARTIFICIAL I, P81
RAPAPORT WJ, 1988, J SYMBOLIC LOGIC, V53, P660
RAPAPORT WJ, 1989, 8901 SUNY BUFF DEP C
RAPAPORT WJ, 1989, 8907 SUNY BUFF DEP C
RAPAPORT WJ, 1991, HDB METAPHYSICS ONTO, P516
RAPAPORT WJ, 1991, TOPOI-INT REV PHILOS, V10, P79
RAPAPORT WJ, 1992, ENCY ARTIFICIAL INTE, P98
RAPAPORT WJ, 1994, THINKING COMPUTERS V, P225
RAPAPORT WJ, 1995, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V9, P49
REBOUL A, 1992, LINGUA, V87, P169
ROBERTS LD, 1988, 8816 SUNY BUFF DEP C
RUSSELL B, 1905, LOGIC KNOWLEDGE ESSA, P39
SEAGER W, 1990, J PHILOS LOGIC, V19, P407
SEGAL EM, 1995, DEIXIS NARRATIVE COG, P3
SELLS P, 1987, LINGUIST INQ, V18, P445
SHAPIRO C, 1979, P 17 ANN M ASS COMP, P25
SHAPIRO SC, 1975, AM J COMPUTATIONAL L, V33, P45
SHAPIRO SC, 1979, ASS NETWORKS REPRESE, P179
SHAPIRO SC, 1982, AM J COMPUTATIONAL L, V8, P12
SHAPIRO SC, 1987, KNOWLEDGE FRONTIER E, P262
SHAPIRO SC, 1990, FORMAL ASPECTS SEMAN, P136
SHAPIRO SC, 1990, LECTURE NOTES ARTIFI, V437, P1
SHAPIRO SC, 1991, PHILOS AI ESSAYS INT, P215
SHAPIRO SC, 1992, COMPUT MATH APPL, V23, P243
SHAPIRO SC, 1993, J EXP THEOR ARTIF IN, V5, P225
SHAPIRO SC, 1994, SNEPS 2 1 USERS MANU
SHAPIRO SC, 1995, DEIXIS NARRATIVE COG, P79
SYATT R, 1989, 8913 SUNY BUFF DEP C
TOMBERLIN JE, 1983, AGENT LANGUAGE STRUC
TOMBERLIN JE, 1986, HN CASTANEDA
VONECKARDT B, 1993, WHAT IS COGNITIVE SI
WIEBE JM, 1986, P IEEE, V74, P1405
WIEBE JM, 1988, P 26 ANN M ASS COMP, P131
WIEBE JM, 1990, 9003 SUNY BUFF DEP C
WIEBE JM, 1990, P 13 INT C COMP LING, V2, P401
WIEBE JM, 1991, NOUS, V25, P457
WIEBE JM, 1994, COMPUTATIONAL LINGUI, V20, P233
WIEBE JM, 1995, DEIXIS NARRATIVE COG, P263
WILKS Y, 1989, COMPUT ARTIF INTELL, V8, P493
WYATT R, 1990, LECT NOTES ARTIF INT, V437, P123
WYATT R, 1993, J EXP THEOR ARTIF IN, V5, P263
NR 91
TC 11
PU ABLEX PUBL CORP
PI GREENWICH
PA 55 OLD POST RD NO.2, PO BOX 5297, GREENWICH, CT 06831-0504
SN 0364-0213
J9 COGNITIVE SCI
JI Cogn. Sci.
PD JAN-MAR
PY 1997
VL 21
IS 1
BP 63
EP 107
PG 45
SC Psychology, Experimental
GA YD532
UT ISI:A1997YD53200003
ER

PT J
AU KREMER, M
TI THE ARGUMENT OF ON 'DENOTING'
SO PHILOSOPHICAL REVIEW
LA English
DT Article
ID FREGE; SENSE
RP KREMER, M, UNIV NOTRE DAME,NOTRE DAME,IN 46556.
CR BELL D, 1990, MIND, V99, P267
BLACKBURN S, 1978, ANALYSIS, V8, P65
CURRY HB, 1942, J SYMBOLIC LOGIC, V7, P115
CURRY HB, 1958, COMBINATORY LOGIC
CURRY HB, 1963, F MATH LOGIC
DAU P, 1986, NOTRE DAME J FORM L, V27, P133
DUMMETT M, 1981, FREGE PHILOS LANGUAG
DUMMETT M, 1981, INTERPRETATION FREGE
EVANS G, 1981, MEANING UNDERSTANDIN
FREGE G, 1979, POSTHUMOUS WRITINGS
FREGE G, 1980, PHILOS MATH CORRES
FREGE G, 1984, COLLECTED PAPERS MAT
GEACH P, 1959, ANALYSIS, V19, P69
HYLTON P, 1990, RUSSELL IDEALISM EME
JONES EEC, 1911, MIND, V20, P41
KINDINGER R, 1965, PHILOSOPHENBRIEFE WI
KREMER M, 1992, NOUS, V26, P409
MCCARTY DC, 1991, SYNTHESE, V87, P51
MCDOWELL J, 1977, MIND, V86, P159
MCDOWELL J, 1986, FREGE TRADITION INFL
MEINONG A, ESSAYS ANAL
MOORE GE, 1922, PHILOS STUDIES
PARSONS T, 1988, PHILOS ANAL
PEARS D, 1990, DIALECTICA, V44, P165
RUSSELL B, DENOTING
RUSSELL B, EXISTENTIAL IMPORT P
RUSSELL B, LOGIC KNOWLEDGE
RUSSELL B, MYSTICISM LOGIC
RUSSELL B, PRINCIPLES MATH
RUSSELL B, PROBLEMS PHILOS
RUSSELL B, 1992, LOGICAL PHILOS PAPER
SCHONFINKEL M, 1967, FREGE GODEL
SEARLE J, 1958, ANALYSIS, V18, P143
SELDIN JP, 1980, HB CURRY ESSAYS COMB
TURNAU P, 1991, RUSSELL, V11, P52
NR 35
TC 11
PU CORNELL UNIV SAGE SCHOOL PHILOSOPHY
PI ITHACA
PA PHILOSOPHICAL REVIEW 220 GOLDWIN SMITH HALL, ITHACA, NY 14853
SN 0031-8108
J9 PHIL REV
JI Philos. Rev.
PD APR
PY 1994
VL 103
IS 2
BP 249
EP 297
PG 49
SC Philosophy
GA PB625
UT ISI:A1994PB62500002
ER

PT J
AU DELUCIA, PR
LONGMIRE, SP
KENNISH, J
TI DIAMOND-WINGED VARIANTS OF THE MULLER-LYER FIGURE - A TEST OF VIRSU (1971) CENTROID THEORY
SO PERCEPTION & PSYCHOPHYSICS
LA English
DT Article
ID LATERAL INTRAPARIETAL AREA; SACCADE-RELATED ACTIVITY; ILLUSION MAGNITUDE; LENGTH; EXTENT; MUELLER
AB Diamond-winged variants of the Muller-Lyer figure were used to test predictions of Virsu's (1971) theory of the Muller-Lyer illusion based on efferent readiness for eye movements toward the figure's center of gravity. A Muller-Lyer figure with diamond-shaped wings resulted in a greater center-of-gravity distance than the corresponding, conventional Muller-Lyer figure, but fin length and the rest of the figure remained constant; in Virsu's study, fin length and center-of-gravity distance covaried. Results were consistent with Virsu's data when we used the stimulus conditions that he reported. Results from a wider range of stimuli challenge Virsu's theory, and thus are consistent with the conclusions of Brigell, Uhlarik, and Goldhorn (1977).
RP DELUCIA, PR, TEXAS TECH UNIV,DEPT PSYCHOL,LUBBOCK,TX 79409.
CR ABRAMS RA, 1992, EYE MOVEMENTS VISUAL, P66
BARASH S, 1991, J NEUROPHYSIOL, V66, P1095
BARASH S, 1991, J NEUROPHYSIOL, V66, P1109
BRIGELL M, 1977, J EXPT PSYCHOL HUMAN, V3, P105
BRIGELL M, 1979, PERCEPTION, V8, P187
COREN S, 1972, PERCEPT MOTOR SKILL, V34, P499
COREN S, 1978, SEEING IS DECEIVING
COREN S, 1983, PERCEPTION, V12, P49
COREN S, 1986, PSYCHOL REV, V93, P391
DAY RH, 1981, PERCEPTION, V10, P126
DAY RH, 1988, PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS, V44, P205
DELUCIA P, 1985, P E PSYCH ASS, V56, P38
DELUCIA PR, 1991, PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS, V50, P547
DELUCIA PR, 1993, PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS, V53, P498
EVANS CR, 1966, BRIT J PHYSL OPTICS, V23, P242
FESTINGER L, 1967, J EXPT PSYCHOL MONOG, V74
FESTINGER L, 1968, PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS, V3, P376
FINDLAY JM, 1981, EYE MOVEMENTS COGNIT, P171
FINDLAY JM, 1992, EYE MOVEMENTS VISUAL, P8
FISCHER B, 1992, EYE MOVEMENTS VISUAL, P31
GNADT JW, 1988, EXP BRAIN RES, V70, P216
HOCHBERG J, 1968, CONT THEORY RES VISU, P309
JORDAN K, 1987, PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS, V41, P435
KAUFMAN L, 1969, PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS, V5, P85
KLEIN RM, 1992, EYE MOVEMENTS VISUAL, P46
LEWIS EO, 1908, BRIT J PSYCHOL 3, V2, P294
MCCLELLAN PG, 1984, PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS, V36, P234
OVER R, 1966, AM J PSYCHOL, V79, P590
PORTER A, 1969, CYBERNETICS SIMPLIFI
PROFFITT DR, 1980, PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS, V28, P484
PROFFITT DR, 1983, PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS, V33, P63
RICHARDS W, 1969, PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS, V5, P81
ROBINSON JO, 1972, PSYCHOL VISUAL ILLUS
SCHIANO DJ, 1986, PERCEPT MOTOR SKILL, V63, P1151
SCHIANO DJ, 1990, PERCEPTION, V19, P307
SCHUMANN F, 1900, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V24, P1
TOATES FM, 1980, ANIMAL BEHAVIOR SYST
VIRSU V, 1971, PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS, V9, P65
VONMETZGER W, 1970, PSYCHOL BEITR, V3, P329
WILSON AE, 1988, PERCEPT MOTOR SKILL, V66, P195
WINER BJ, 1991, STATISTICAL PRINCIPL
WORRALL N, 1974, Q J EXPT PSYCHOL, V26, P342
NR 42
TC 11
PU PSYCHONOMIC SOC INC
PI AUSTIN
PA 1710 FORTVIEW RD, AUSTIN, TX 78704
SN 0031-5117
J9 PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS
JI Percept. Psychophys.
PD MAR
PY 1994
VL 55
IS 3
BP 287
EP 295
PG 9
SC Psychology; Psychology, Experimental
GA NP842
UT ISI:A1994NP84200005
ER

PT J
AU Larson, DL
AF Larson, Delia Louise
TI AN EXPERIMENTAL CRITIQUE OF THE SEASHORE CONSONANCE TEST
SO PSYCHOLOGICAL MONOGRAPHS
LA English
DT Article
CR BUCH E, 1900, PHILOS STUD, V15, P268
FAIST A, 1897, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V15, P102
GARRETT HE, 1926, STAT PSYCHOL ED
GAW EA, 1918, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V25, P134
GAW EA, 1922, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V31, P128
GAW EA, 1925, INDIVIDUAL DIFFERENC
HEINLEIN CP, 1925, J EXP PSYCHOL, V8, P408
HELMHOLTZ HLF, 1912, SENSATIONS TONE
KRUEGER F, 1910, PSYCHOL STUD, V5, P294
KULPE O, 1895, OUTLINES PSYCHOL
LIPPS T, 1899, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL, V19, P1
MALMBERG CF, 1918, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V25, P93
MEINONG A, 1897, Z PSYCHOL, V15, P189
MEYER M, 1898, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL, V17, P401
MEYER M, 1903, AM J PSYCHOL, V14, P207
MOORE HT, 1911, PSYCH MON, V73, P68
MUNSTERBERG H, 1914, PSYCHOL GEN APPL
MYERS CS, 1905, BRIT J PSYCHOL, V1, P315
MYERS CS, 1911, TXB EXPT PSYCHOL
MYERS CS, 1914, BRIT J PSYCHOL 1, V7, P68
OGDEN RM, 1909, PSYCHOL BULL, V6, P297
OGDEN RM, 1924, HEARING, P120
PEAR TH, 1911, BRIT J PSYCHOL 1, V4, P56
PETERSON J, 1925, PSYCHOL REV, V32, P17
PETERSON J, 1926, ANN M DIV ANTHR PSYC
PREYER W, 1879, AKUSTISCHE UNTERSUCH, P44
RUGG HO, 1917, STAT METHODS APPL ED, P219
SEASHORE CE, 1910, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V13, P41
SEASHORE CE, 1919, MANUAL INSTRUCTIONS
SEASHORE CE, 1919, PSYCHOL MUSICAL TALE
STANTON HM, 1925, PSYCHOL TESTS MUSICA
STUMPF C, 1883, TONPSYCHOLOGIE, V1, P427
STUMPF C, 1890, TONPSYCHOLOGIE, V2, P582
STUMPF C, 1898, BEITRAGE MUSIKVISS, V1, P91
STUMPF C, 1911, Z PSYCHOL, V58, P321
TITCHENER EB, 1901, EXPT PSYCHOL
VALENTINE CW, 1914, BRIT J PSYCHOL 1, V7, P118
WATTS HJ, 1917, PSYCHOL SOUND, P53
WEAVER AT, 1924, J APPL PSYCHOL, V8, P170
WUNDT W, 1910, GRUNDZUGE PHYSL PSYC, V2
NR 40
TC 11
PU AMER PSYCHOLOGICAL ASSOC
PI WASHINGTON
PA 750 FIRST ST NE, WASHINGTON, DC 20002-4242 USA
SN 0096-9753
J9 PSYCHOL MONOGRAPHS
JI Psychol. Monogr.
PY 1928
VL 38
IS 4
BP 49
EP 81
PG 33
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V00HU
UT ISI:000206780200003
ER

PT J
AU Spearman, C
AF Spearman, C.
TI THE NEW PSYCHOLOGY OF 'SHAPE'
SO BRITISH JOURNAL OF PSYCHOLOGY-GENERAL SECTION
LA English
DT Article
CR ACH N, 1921, BEGRIFFSBILDUNG
AMESEDER R, 1904, UNERS GEGENSTANDSTHE
BECHER G, 1911, GEHIRN SEELE
BECHER G, 1921, Z PSYCHOL, V87
BENUSSI V, 1914, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V32
BUHLER K, 1913, GESTALTWAHRNEHMUNGEN
CORNELIUS H, 1900, Z PSYCHOL, V22
EBBINGHAUS H, GRUNDZUGE PSYCHOL, P432
EHRENFELS, 1890, VIERTELJAHRSSCHR WIS, V14
FUCHS W, 1921, Z PSYCHOL, V86
FUCHS W, 1923, Z PSYCHOL, V92
GELB A, 1910, Z PSYCHOL, V58
GNEISSE K, 1922, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V42
GOLDSTEIN, 1918, Z GES NEUROLOGIE PS
HOFLER A, 1897, PSYCHOLOGIE, P152
HUSSERL E, 1900, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
IPSEN G, 1923, BER 8 K PSYCH
JAENSCH E, 1909, Z PSYCHOL, V4
JAENSCH E, 1911, Z PSYCHOL, V6
KATZ D, 1911, Z PSYCHOL, V7
KATZ D, 1924, Z PSYCHOL, V45
KIRSCHMANN A, 1921, HDB BIOL ARBEITSMETH
KLEMM O, 1921, HDB BIOL ARBEITSMETH
KOFFKA K, 1915, Z PSYCHOL, V73
KOFFKA K, 1922, PSYCH B, V19
KOFFKA K, 1923, 7 INT C PSYCH
KOHLER W, 1915, ANTHROPOIDENSTATION, R2
KOHLER W, 1920, PHYS GESTALTEN RUHE
KOHLER W, 1923, 7 INT C PSYCH
KORTE W, 1923, Z PSYCHOL, V43
KREIBIG J, 1909, INTELLEKTUELLEN FUNK
KRUEGER F, 1904, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V2
KRUEGER F, 1905, WUNDTS PSYCHOL STUDI, V1
KRUEGER F, 1906, WUNDTS PSYCHOL STUDI, V2
KRUEGER F, 1909, WUNDTS PSYCHOLS TUDI, V4
KRUEGER F, 1910, WUNDTS PSYCHOL STUDI, V5
KRUEGER F, 1914, ARBEITEN ENTWICKELUN
KRUEGER F, 1923, BER 8 K PSYCH
LINDEMANN E, 1922, PSYCHOL FORSCHUNG, V2
LINKE P, 1918, GRUNDFRAGEN WAHRNEHM
LIPPMANN O, 1923, ARCH PSYCH, V44
LIPPS T, 1900, Z PSYCHOL, V22
LIPPS T, 1902, EINHEITEN RELATIONEN
LOHNERT K, 1913, WUNDTS PSYCHOL STUDI, V9
MALLY E, ARCH SYST PHILOS, V6
MARTY A, 1908, UNTERS GR ALLG GRAMM
MEINONG A, Z PSYCHOL, V2
MEINONG A, Z PSYCHOL, V21
MULLER GE, 1923, KOMPLEXTHEORIE GESTA
POPPELREUTER W, 1914, PSYCHISCHEN SCHADIGU
RANULF S, 1914, GYLDENDALSKE BOGHEND
RUBIN E, 1921, VISUELL WAHRGENOMMEN
SANDER F, 1923, BER 8 K PSYCH
SANDER F, 1924, ARBEITSBEWEGUNGEN
SCHULTZE F, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V8, P357
SCHUMANN F, 1900, Z PSYCHOL, V24
SEIFERT F, 1917, Z PSYCHOL, V78
SELZ O, 1913, GESETZE GEORDNETEN
SPEARMAN C, 1923, NATURE INTELLIGENCE
STUMPF C, 1906, ABHAND KGL PREUSS AK
VOLKELT H, 1912, VORSTELLUNGEN TIERE
VOLKELT H, 1922, VOLKERPSYCHOLOGIE WU
VOLKELT H, 1924, PRIMITIVEN KOMPLEXQU
VONKRIES J, 1898, MAT GRUNDLAGEN BEWUS
WERNER H, 1919, ARBEITEN ENTWICKLUNG
WERTHEIMER W, 1912, Z PSYCHOL, V61
WERTHEIMER W, 1921, PSYCHOL FORSCHUNG, V1
WERTHEIMER W, 1923, PSYCHOL FORSCHUNG, V4
WESTPHAL E, 1911, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V21
WIRTH W, 1902, PHILOS STUDIEN, V2, P502
WITASEK S, Z PSYCHOL, V14
WITASEK S, 1908, GRUNDLINIEN PSYCHOL
WUNDT W, 1911, PHYSL PSYCHOL
NR 73
TC 11
PU CAMBRIDGE UNIV PRESS
PI NEW YORK
PA 32 AVENUE OF THE AMERICAS, NEW YORK, NY 10013-2473 USA
SN 0373-2460
J9 BR J PSYCHOL-GEN SECT
JI Br. J. Psychol. -Gen. Sect.
PD JAN
PY 1925
VL 15
PN Part 3
BP 211
EP 225
PG 15
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V67DB
UT ISI:000204537100001
ER

PT J
AU Bullough, E
AF Bullough, Edward
TI RECENT WORK IN EXPERIMENTAL AESTHETICS
SO BRITISH JOURNAL OF PSYCHOLOGY-GENERAL SECTION
LA English
DT Article
CR PSYCHOL REV, V13, P82
1905, PSYCHOL REV, V12
BINET A, 1903, ETUDE EXPT INTELLIGE
BROWN B, 1902, FINE ARTS, P212
BUHLER, 1913, GESTALTWAHRNEHMUNG, P176
CALKINS MW, PSYCHOL REV, V7, P586
DESSOIR M, 1904, ARCH SYST PHILOS, V10, P20
ETTLINGER M, 1900, Z PSYCHOL, V22, P161
FINNBOGASON G, 1913, INTELLIGENCE SYMPATH
GEIGER M, 1913, BER ERST K AESTH BER, P191
JUDD CH, PSYCHOL REV MONOGR S, V7, P1
JUDD CH, YALE PSYCHOL STUD, V1, P1
KATZ D, 1913, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V65, P161
KOFFKA K, Z PHYSL SINNESORG, V52, P1
KULPE O, 1903, AM J PSYCHOL, V14, P215
KULPE, 1893, GRUNDRISS PSYCHOL
LEE V, 1904, CONT REV
LIPPS T, 1897, RAUMAESTHETIK GEOMET
LIPPS T, 1903, AESTHETIK, V1, P10
MARTIN L, PSYCHOL REV, V13, P142
MCDOUGALL R, 1903, HARVARD PSYCHOL STUD, V1
MEINONG A, 1902, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V2
MEUMANN E, PHILOS STUD, V10, P249
MULLER F, 1912, AESTHETISCHES AUSSER
SEGAL J, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V7, P53
STETSON RH, 1903, HARVARD PSYCHOL STUD, V1
STRATTON CM, PHILOS STUD, V20, P336
STRATTON, PSYCHOL REV, V13, P94
UTITZ, 1908, GRUNDZUGE AESTHETISC
VONKARPINSKA L, Z PSYCHOL, V57, P1
WITASEK S, 1904, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V25
NR 31
TC 11
PU CAMBRIDGE UNIV PRESS
PI NEW YORK
PA 32 AVENUE OF THE AMERICAS, NEW YORK, NY 10013-2473 USA
SN 0373-2460
J9 BR J PSYCHOL-GEN SECT
JI Br. J. Psychol. -Gen. Sect.
PD JUN
PY 1921
VL 12
PN Part 1
BP 76
EP 99
PG 24
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V67CL
UT ISI:000204535500005
ER

PT J
AU Rapaport, WJ
TI Holism, conceptual-role semantics, and syntactic semantics
SO MINDS AND MACHINES
LA English
DT Review
ID KNOWLEDGE REPRESENTATION; BELIEF REVISION; SCIENCE; FICTION; FAMILY
AB This essay continues my investigation of 'syntactic semantics': the theory that, pace Searle's Chinese-Room Argument, syntax does suffice for semantics (in particular, for the semantics needed for a computational cognitive theory of natural-language understanding). Here, I argue that syntactic semantics (which is internal and first-person) is what has been called a conceptual-role semantics: The meaning of any expression is the role that it plays in the complete system of expressions. Such a 'narrow', conceptual-role semantics is the appropriate sort of semantics to account (from an 'internal', or first-person perspective) for how a cognitive agent understands language. Some have argued for the primacy of external, or 'wide', semantics, while others have argued for a two-factor analysis. But, although two factors can be specified--one internal and first-person, the other only specifiable in an external, third-person way--only the internal, first-person one is needed for understanding how someone understands. A truth-conditional semantics can still be provided, but only from a third-person perspective.
C1 SUNY Buffalo, Dept Comp Sci & Engn, Buffalo, NY 14260 USA.
SUNY Buffalo, Dept Philosophy, Buffalo, NY 14260 USA.
SUNY Buffalo, Ctr Cognit Sci, Buffalo, NY 14260 USA.
EM rapaport@cse.buffalo.edu
CR ALLAIRE EB, 1963, PHILOS STUD, V14, P235
ALLAIRE EB, 1965, PHILOS STUD, V16, P250
ALLEN JF, 1980, ARTIF INTELL, V15, P143
APOSTEL L, 1961, CONCEPT ROLE MODEL M, P1
BAKER R, 1967, NOUS, V1, P211
BRACHMAN RJ, 1985, COGNITIVE SCI, V9, P171
BRUCE BC, 1975, THEORETICAL ISSUES N, V1, P64
BRUNER J, 1983, CHILDS TALK LEARNING
BURKHOLDER L, 1992, PHILOS COMPUTER, P75
CARNAP R, 1928, LOGICAL STRUCTURE WO
CARROLL L, 1895, MIND, V4, P278
CASTANEDA HN, 1979, POETICS, V8, P31
CASTANEDA HN, 1989, THINKING LANGUAGE EX
CHO KK, 1992, TASHANO GENSHOGAKU
COHEN PR, 1979, COGNITIVE SCI, V3, P177
COHEN PR, 1985, P 23 ANN M ASS COMP, P49
COHEN PR, 1990, INTENTIONS COMMUNICA, P221
DENNETT D, 1982, THOUGHT OBJECT ESSAY, R16
EHRLICH K, 1995, 9509 SUNY BUFF DEP C
EHRLICH K, 1997, P 19 ANN C COGN SCI, P205
FODOR J, 1991, MIND LANG, V6, P328
FODOR J, 1992, HOLISM SHOPPERS GUID
GALBRAITH M, 1995, DEIXIS NARRATIVE COG, P19
GROSZ B, 1986, COMPUTATIONAL LINGUI, V12, P175
HALLER S, 1993, P WORKSH INT STRUCT, P23
HALLER SM, 1994, 9440 SUNY BUFF DEP C
HALLER SM, 1995, INTELLIGENT SYSTEMS, P61
HARDT SL, 1992, ENCY ARTIFICIAL INTE, P259
HARMAN G, 1974, SEMANTICS PHILOS, P1
HARMAN G, 1975, MINNESOTA STUDIES PH, V7, P270
HARMAN G, 1982, NOTRE DAME J FORM L, V23, P242
HARMAN G, 1987, NEW DIRECTIONS SEMAN, P55
HARMAN G, 1988, COGNITION REPRESENTA, P11
HARNAD S, 1990, PHYSICA D, V42, P335
HILL RK, 1994, 9411 SUNY BUFF DEP C
HILL RK, 1995, INTELLIGENT SYSTEMS, P375
JENNINGS RC, 1985, P ADDRESSES AM PHILO, V59, P345
KAMP H, 1984, TRUTH INTERPRETATION, P1
KAMP H, 1993, DISCOURSE LOGIC INTR
KNIGHT K, 1989, ACM COMPUT SURV, V21, P93
KUMAR D, 1993, J EXP THEOR ARTIF IN, V5, P167
KUMAR D, 1993, P 1993 AAAI SPRING S, P127
KUMAR D, 1993, P 1993 AAAI SPRING S, P78
KUMAR D, 1993, P 26 HAW INT C SYST, V3
KUMAR D, 1994, 9404 SUNY BUFF DEP C
KUMAR D, 1995, INTELLIGENT SYSTEMS, P307
KUMAR D, 1996, DECIS SUPPORT SYST, V16, P3
LAKOFF G, 1987, WOMEN FIRE DANGEROUS
LANDMAN F, 1986, THEORETICAL ASPECTS, P45
LENAT DB, 1991, ARTIF INTELL, V47, P185
LEPORE E, 1981, SYNTHESE, V48, P121
LEWIS D, 1972, SEMANTICS NATURAL LA, P169
LEWIS D, 1975, MINNESOTA STUDIES PH, V7, P3
LOAR B, 1982, NOTRE DAME J FORM L, V23, P272
LOEWER B, 1982, NOTRE DAME J FORM L, V23, P305
LOURIE R, 1992, NY TIMES 0426, P24
LYCAN WG, 1984, LOGICAL FORM NATURAL
LYTINEN SL, 1992, COMPUT MATH APPL, V23, P51
MAIDA AS, 1982, COGNITIVE SCI, V6, P291
MARTINS JP, 1988, ARTIF INTELL, V35, P25
MARTINS JP, 1991, NOUS, V25, P537
MEINONG A, 1971, ALEXIUS MEINONG GESA, V2, P481
MOORE GE, 1939, PHILOS PAPERS, P126
MORRIS C, 1938, FDN THEORY SIGNS
PARSONS T, 1975, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V1, P73
PAVEL TG, 1986, FICTIONAL WORLDS
PELLETIER FJ, 1994, TOPOI, V13, P11
PELLETIER J, 1994, LOGIC PHILOS SCI UPP, P599
PELLETIER J, 1994, PHILOS COGNITIVE SCI, P311
PERLIS D, 1991, NOUS, V25, P435
PERLIS D, 1994, THINKING COMPUTERS V, P197
POTTS TC, 1975, FORMAL SEMANTICS NAT, P241
QUILLIAN MR, 1967, BEHAV SCI, V12, P410
QUILLIAN MR, 1968, SEMANTIC INFORMATION, P227
QUINE WV, 1951, LOGICAL POINT VIEW, P20
RAM A, 1999, UNDERSTANDING LANGUA, P11
RAPAPORT WJ, 1976, THESIS INDIANA U BLO
RAPAPORT WJ, 1978, NOUS, V12, P153
RAPAPORT WJ, 1981, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V14, P1
RAPAPORT WJ, 1985, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V2526, P61
RAPAPORT WJ, 1986, PHILOS SCI, V53, P271
RAPAPORT WJ, 1988, ASPECTS ARTIFICIAL I, P81
RAPAPORT WJ, 1991, HDB METAPHYSICS ONTO, P516
RAPAPORT WJ, 1991, TOPOI-INT REV PHILOS, V10, P79
RAPAPORT WJ, 1993, ENCY COMPUTER SCI, P185
RAPAPORT WJ, 1995, DEIXIS NARRATIVE COG
RAPAPORT WJ, 1995, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V9, P49
RAPAPORT WJ, 1996, 9626 SUNY DEP COMP S
RAPAPORT WJ, 1997, COGNITIVE SCI, V21, P63
RAPAPORT WJ, 1999, MONIST, V82, P109
RAPAPORT WJ, 2000, J LOGIC LANGUAGE INF, V9, P467
RAPAPORT WJ, 2000, NATURAL LANGUAGE PRO, P347
RECANATI F, 1995, COGNITIVE SCI, V19, P207
RENFREW C, 1990, UNPUB WORKSH EXPL SC
ROBERTS LD, 1988, 8816 SUNY DEP COMP S
RUSSELL B, 1918, LOGIC KNOWLEDGE, P177
RYLE G, 1949, CONCEPT MIND
SCHANK RC, 1974, ARTIF INTELL, V5, P373
SCHANK RC, 1981, INSIDE COMPUTER UNDE
SEARLE JR, 1979, EXPRESSION MEANING, P58
SEARLE JR, 1980, BEHAVIORAL BRAIN SCI, V3, P417
SEGAL EM, 1995, DEIXIS NARRATIVE COG, P3
SELLARS W, 1963, SCI PERCEPTION REALI
SHAPIRO SC, 1979, ASS NETWORKS REPRESE, P179
SHAPIRO SC, 1985, P 5 NAT C ART INT AA, P278
SHAPIRO SC, 1987, KNOWLEDGE FRONTIER E, P262
SHAPIRO SC, 1991, PHILOS AI ESSAYS INT, P215
SHAPIRO SC, 1992, COMPUT MATH APPL, V23, P243
SHAPIRO SC, 1993, J EXP THEOR ARTIF IN, V5, P225
SHAPIRO SC, 1995, DEIXIS NARRATIVE COG, P79
SHAPIRO SC, 1996, DICT SNEPS CASE FRAM
SMITH BC, 1985, COMPUTERIZATION CONT, P632
SMITH BC, 1987, CSLI8771
SMITH BC, 1991, ARTIF INTELL, V47, P251
SOWA JF, 1984, CONCEPTUAL STRUCTURE
SOWA JF, 1992, COMPUT MATH APPL, V23, P75
STICH S, 1983, FOLK PSYCHOL CONGNIT
WEIZENBAUM J, 1976, COMPUTER POWER HUMAN
WILLS G, 1991, NEW YORK REV BO 1121, V12, P14
WOLTERSTORFF N, 1970, NOUS, V4, P109
WOODS WA, 1985, REPRESENTATION UNDER, P35
WOODS WA, 1992, COMPUT MATH APPL, V23, P133
WYATT R, 1989, 8913 SUNY DEP COMP S
WYATT R, 1990, LECT NOTES ARTIF INT, V437, P123
WYATT R, 1993, J EXP THEOR ARTIF IN, V5, P263
ZADROZNY W, 1994, LINGUIST PHILOS, V17, P329
NR 126
TC 10
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA VAN GODEWIJCKSTRAAT 30, 3311 GZ DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0924-6495
J9 MIND MACH
JI Minds Mach.
PD FEB
PY 2002
VL 12
IS 1
BP 3
EP 59
PG 57
SC Computer Science, Artificial Intelligence
GA 510LT
UT ISI:000173210100001
ER

PT J
AU ZALTA, EN
TI 25 BASIC THEOREMS IN SITUATION AND WORLD THEORY
SO JOURNAL OF PHILOSOPHICAL LOGIC
LA English
DT Article
ID MODAL LOGIC; ACTUALISM
RP ZALTA, EN, STANFORD UNIV,DEPT PHILOSOPHY,STANFORD,CA 94305.
CR ACZEL P, 1988, CSLI LECTURE NOTES, V14
ADAMS RM, 1974, NOUS, V8, P211
ADAMS RM, 1981, SYNTHESE, V49, P3
ANDERSON CA, 1984, HDB PHILOS LOGIC, V2, P355
BARWISE J, 1980, STANFORD WORKING PAP
BARWISE J, 1981, J PHILOS, V78, P668
BARWISE J, 1981, MIDWEST STUD PHILOS, V6, P387
BARWISE J, 1983, SITUATIONS ATTITUDES
BARWISE J, 1985, CSLI8526 CTR STUD LA
BARWISE J, 1985, LINGUIST PHILOS, V8, P105
BARWISE J, 1989, CSLI LECTURE NOTES, V17, P264
CASTANEDA HN, 1974, PHILOSOPHIA, V4, P3
CHISHOLM RM, 1976, PERSON OBJECT METAPH
CHURCH A, 1951, STRUCTURE METHOD MEA
CRESSWELL M, 1973, LOGICS LANGUAGES
DEUTSCH H, 1990, PHILOS STUD, V60, P89
FINE K, 1977, WORLDS TIMES SELVES
FINE K, 1985, ALVIN PLANTINGA, P163
FREGE G, 1970, TRANSLATIONS PHILOS, P56
KAPLAN D, 1989, THEMES KAPLAN, P481
KRIPKE SA, 1959, J SYMBOLIC LOGIC, V24, P1
KRIPKE SA, 1963, ACTA PHILOS FENN, V16, P83
LEWIS D, 1973, COUNTERFACTUALS, P84
LEWIS D, 1986, PLURALITY WORLDS, P2
LYCAN W, 1988, J PHILOS, V85, P42
MALLY E, 1912, GEGENSTANDSTHEORETIS
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
MENZEL C, 1991, J PHILOS LOGIC, V20, P331
MONTAGUE R, 1974, FORMAL PHILOS
MYHILL J, 1963, PHILOS R CARNAP, P299
PERRY J, 1986, J PHILOS LOGIC, V15, P83
PLANTINGA A, 1974, NATURE NECESSITY
PLANTINGA A, 1976, THEORIA-SPAIN, V42, P139
POLLOCK J, 1984, F PHILOS SEMANTICS
QUINE WVO, 1960, VARIABLES EXPLAINED, P227
RAPAPORT WJ, 1978, NOUS, V12, P153
SOSA E, 1986, GRAZER PHILOSOPHISCH, V25, P485
STALNAKER R, 1976, NOUS, V10, P65
STALNAKER R, 1986, J PHILOS LOGIC, V15, P109
STALNAKER R, 1986, MIDWEST STUD PHILOS, V11, P121
STLNAKER R, 1985, INQUIRY
VANINWAGEN P, 1986, MIDWEST STUD PHILOS, V11, P185
ZALTA E, 1983, ABSTRACT OBJECTS INT, P158
ZALTA E, 1988, INTENSIONAL LOGIC ME, P27
ZALTA E, 1991, SITUATION THEORY ITS, V2
ZALTA EN, 1987, PHILOS STUD, V51, P213
NR 46
TC 9
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0022-3611
J9 J PHIL LOGIC
JI J. Philos. Log.
PD AUG
PY 1993
VL 22
IS 4
BP 385
EP 428
PG 44
SC Philosophy
GA LG336
UT ISI:A1993LG33600002
ER

PT J
AU SINN, HW
TI PSYCHOPHYSICAL LAWS IN RISK THEORY
SO JOURNAL OF ECONOMIC PSYCHOLOGY
LA English
DT Article
RP SINN, HW, LUDWIG MAXIMILIANS UNIV,VERSICHERUNGSWISSENSCH,LUDWIGSTR 33,D-8000 MUNCHEN,FED REP GER.
CR ACZEL J, 1966, LECTURES FUNCTIONAL
ALLAIS M, 1952, C INT CNRS, V40, P257
ALLAIS M, 1953, C INT CNRS PARIS, V40, P127
ALLAIS M, 1953, ECONOMETRICA, V21, P503
ARROW KJ, 1965, ASPECTS THEORY RISK
ARROW KJ, 1970, ESSAYS THEORY RISK B
ARROW KJ, 1970, PUBLIC INVESTMENT RA
ATTNEAVE F, 1962, PSYCHOL STUDY SCI, V4, P619
BARROIS MT, 1834, MEMOIRES SOC ROYALE, P85
BAUMOL WJ, 1958, ECON J, V68, P665
BERNOULLI D, 1938, PETROPOLITANAE, V5, P175
BORING EG, 1942, SENSATION PERCEPTION
DELBOEF JRM, 1873, MEMOIRES COURONNES A
EISLER H, 1962, SCANDINAVIAN J PSYCH, V70, P243
EKMAN G, 1964, PERCEPT MOTOR SKILL, V19, P730
EKMAN G, 1965, ANNU REV PSYCHOL, V16, P451
FECHNER GT, 1860, ELEMENTE PSYCHOPHYSI
FECHNER GT, 1877, SACHEN PSYCHOPHYSIK
FECHNER GT, 1888, PHILOS STUDIEN, V4, P161
FISHER I, 1906, NATURE CAPITAL INCOM
FREUND RJ, 1956, ECONOMETRICA, V24, P253
FRIEDMAN M, 1948, J POLIT ECON, V56, P279
FROHLICH FW, 1921, GRUNDZUGE EINER LEHR
FUORTES MGF, 1959, J PHYSIOL-LONDON, V148, P14
FUORTES MGF, 1963, J GEN PHYSIOL, V46, P435
GALAMBOS R, 1943, J NEUROPHYSIOL, V6, P39
GALANTER E, 1961, PSYCHOL REV, V68, P363
GARNER WR, 1956, PSYCHOL REV, V63, P149
GROTENFELT A, 1888, WEBERSCHE GESETZ PSY
GUILFORD JP, 1954, PSYCHOMETRIC METHODS
HARTLINE HK, 1932, J CELL COMPAR PHYSL, V1, P277
HARTLINE HK, 1938, AM J PHYSIOL, V121, P400
HICKS JR, 1962, ECON J, V72, P787
HICKS JR, 1967, CRITICAL ESSAYS MONE
KATZ B, 1950, J PHYSL, V3, P261
KOOPMANS TC, 1960, ECONOMETRICA, V28, P287
KRANTZ DH, 1972, J MATH PSYCHOL, V9, P168, DOI 10.1016/0022-2496(72)90025-9
KRELLE W, 1968, PRAFERENZ ENTSCHEIDU
LATANE HA, 1960, REV ECON STAT, V42, P445
LIPPS T, 1902, SITZUNGSBERICHTE PHI, P3
LIPPS T, 1905, PSYCHOL STUDIEN
MARKOWITZ H, 1952, J POLIT ECON, V60, P151
MEINONG A, 1896, Z PSYCHOL PHILOS, V11, P353
MELTZER AH, 1963, J POLITICAL EC, V71, P219
MODIGLIANI F, 1955, POSTKEYNESIAN EC, P388
PFANZAGL J, 1959, AXIOMATISCHEN GRUNDL
PFANZAGL J, 1959, NAV RES LOG, V6, P283
PLATEAU J, 1872, B ACADEMIE ROYALE SC, V23, P376
POLLAK RA, 1970, INT EC REV, V11, P117
PRATT JW, 1964, ECONOMETRICA, V32, P122
PYE G, 1972, MATH METHODS INVESTM, P49
SAMUELSON P, 1969, REV ECON STAT, V51, P239, DOI 10.2307/1926559
SHELL K, 1972, MATH METHODS INVESTM, P65
SINN HW, 1983, EC DECISIONS UNCERTA
STEVENS SS, 1951, HDB EXPT PSYCHOL, P1
STEVENS SS, 1957, J EXP PSYCHOL, V54, P377
STEVENS SS, 1961, SENS COMMUN, P1
STEVENS SS, 1966, PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS, V1, P5
STEVENS SS, 1975, PSYCHOPHYSICS INTRO
STIGLITZ JE, 1969, ECONOMETRICA, V37, N742
TASAKI I, 1954, J NEUROPHYSIOL, V17, P97
TORNQVIST L, 1945, SKAND AKTUARIETIDSK, V28, P228
VONNEUMANN J, 1947, THEORY GAMES EC BEHA
WEBER EH, 1834, PULSU RESORPTIONE AU
WEBER EH, 1851, LEHRE VOM TASTSINNE
WUNDT W, 1911, VORLESUNGEN MENSCHEN
NR 66
TC 9
PU ELSEVIER SCIENCE BV
PI AMSTERDAM
PA PO BOX 211, 1000 AE AMSTERDAM, NETHERLANDS
SN 0167-4870
J9 J ECON PSYCH
JI J. Econ. Psychol.
PY 1985
VL 6
IS 2
BP 185
EP 206
PG 22
SC Economics; Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA ALQ22
UT ISI:A1985ALQ2200005
ER

PT J
AU SMITH, B
MULLIGAN, K
TI FRAMEWORK FOR FORMAL ONTOLOGY + PROPOSITIONAL PICTURES AND A 2-DIMENSIONAL FORMAL LANGUAGE FOR RELATIONS AMONG OBJECTS, PIECES, AND MOMENTS
SO TOPOI-AN INTERNATIONAL REVIEW OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
CR ARMSTRONG DM, 1978, UNIVERSALS SCI REALI
BRENTANO F, 1930, WAHRHEIT EVIDENZ
COCCHIARELLA NB, 1974, B RUSSELLS PHILOS
DODGSON CL, 1977, SYMBOLIC LOGIC
DUMMETT M, 1959, J SYMBOLIC LOGIC, V24, P203
DUMMETT M, 1973, FREGE PHILOS LANGUAG
GENTZEN G, 1935, MATH Z, V39, P176
GOODMAN N, 1966, STRUCTURE APPEARANCE
GROSSMANN R, 1974, MEINONG ARGUMENTS PH
HACKING I, 1978, CANADIAN J PHILOS, V8, P613
HACKING I, 1979, J PHILOS, V76, P285
HARRISON B, 1973, FORM CONTENT
HUSSERL E, 1891, PHILOS ARITHMETIK
HUSSERL E, 1900, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
HUSSERL E, 1901, GEBIET AXIOMENSYSTEM
HUSSERL E, 1929, FORMALE TRANSZENDENT
INGARDEN R, 1964, STREIT EXISTENZ WELT
KENNY A, 1980, AQUINAS
KOHLER W, 1920, PHYSISCHEN GESTALTEN
KOTARBINSKI T, 1966, GNOSIOLOGY SCI APPRO
KUNNE W, 1982, PARTS MOMENTS STUDIE, P401
LOWENHEIM L, 1940, J SYMBOLIC LOGIC, V5, P1
MEINONG A, 1906, ERFAHRUNGSGRUNDLAGEN
MULLIGAN K, 1980, THESIS U MANCHESTER
RAUSCH E, 1937, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V21, P209
REINACH A, 1911, MUNCHENER PHILOS ABH, P56
REINACH A, 1913, JB PHILOS PHANOMENOL, V1, P685
RUSSELL B, 1904, MIND, V13, P204
RYLE G, 1960, PHILOS REV, V69
SCHRODER E, VORLESUNGEN ALGEBRA
SIMONS P, 1982, PARTS MOMENTS, P113
SMILEY TJ, 1978, MULTIPLE CONCLUSION
SMITH B, 1978, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V6, P39
SMITH B, 1981, ARISTOTELIAN SOC S, V55, P47
SMITH B, 1982, PARTS MOMENTS STUDIE
STOUT GF, 1918, ARISTOTELIAN SOC S, V55, P127
STRAWSON PF, 1959, INDIVIDUALS ESSAY DE
STUMPF C, 1873, PSYCHOL URSPRUNG RAU
TUGENDHAT E, 1976, VORLESUNGEN EINFUHRU
WILLIAMS DC, 1953, REV METAPH 7, V6, P3
WITTGENSTEIN L, 1961, TRACTATUS LOGICO PHI
NR 41
TC 9
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0167-7411
J9 TOPOI-INT REV PHIL
JI Topoi-Int. Rev. Philos.
PY 1983
VL 2
IS 1
BP 73
EP 85
PG 13
SC Philosophy
GA RA105
UT ISI:A1983RA10500005
ER

PT J
AU FRASER, CO
TI MEASUREMENT IN PSYCHOLOGY
SO BRITISH JOURNAL OF PSYCHOLOGY
LA English
DT Article
RP FRASER, CO, GIPPSLAND INST ADV EDUC,SWITCHBACK RD,CHURCHILL 3842,VICTORIA,AUSTRALIA.
CR 1940, ADV SCI, P331
ANDERSON NH, 1961, PSYCHOL BULL, V58, P305
BRIDGEMANN PW, 1927, LOGIC MODERN PHYSICS
BURKE CJ, 1953, PSYCHOL REV, V60, P73
CAMPBELL NR, 1920, PHYSICS ELEMENTS
CAMPBELL NR, 1921, WHAT IS SCI
CAMPBELL NR, 1928, ACCOUNT PRINCIPLES M
CAMPBELL NR, 1938, S MEASUREMENT ITS S, V17
CLIFF N, 1973, ANNU REV PSYCHOL, V24, P473
COOMBS CM, 1964, THEORY DATA
CURTIS DW, 1968, PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS, V3, P25
CURTIS DW, 1969, PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS, V5, P89
CURTIS DW, 1970, J EXP PSYCHOL, V83, P201
DAWES RM, 1972, FUNDAMENTALS ATTITUD
ELLIS B, 1960, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V38, P37
ELLIS BD, 1966, BASIC CONCEPTS MEASU
HAYS WL, 1963, STATISTICS PSYCHOLOG
HOLDER O, 1901, BERICHTE VERHANDL MP, V53, P1
KRANTZ DH, 1968, LECTURES APPLIED MAT, V12
KRANTZ DH, 1971, F MEASUREMENT, V1
KRANTZ DH, 1972, J MATH PSYCHOL, V9, P168, DOI 10.1016/0022-2496(72)90025-9
LORD FM, 1953, AM PSYCHOL, V8, P750
MEINONG A, 1914, GESAMMELTE ABHANDLUN, V2
NAGEL E, 1931, ERKENNTNIS, V2, P313
NUNNALLY JC, 1967, PSYCHOMETRIC THEORY
PRYTULAK LS, 1975, PERCEPT MOTOR SKILL, V41, P3
RULE SJ, 1970, J EXP PSYCHOL, V86, P343
RUSSELL B, 1937, PRINCIPLES MATH
SIEGEL S, 1956, NONPARAMETRIC STATIS
STEVENS SS, 1939, J UNIFIED SCI, V9, P94
STEVENS SS, 1946, SCIENCE, V103, P677, DOI 10.1126/SCIENCE.103.2684.677
STEVENS SS, 1951, HDB EXPT PSYCHOL, P1
STEVENS SS, 1957, PSYCHOL REV, V64, P153
STEVENS SS, 1968, SCIENCE, V161, P849
SUPPES P, 1963, HDB MATH PSYCHOL, V1, P1
WAGENAAR WA, 1975, ACTA PSYCHOL, V39, P225
NR 36
TC 9
PU BRITISH PSYCHOLOGICAL SOC
PI LEICESTER
PA ST ANDREWS HOUSE, 48 PRINCESS RD EAST, LEICESTER, LEICS, ENGLAND LE1 7DR
SN 0007-1269
J9 BRIT J PSYCHOL
JI Br. J. Psychol.
PY 1980
VL 71
IS FEB
BP 23
EP 34
PG 12
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA JG968
UT ISI:A1980JG96800003
ER

PT J
AU Schubert, G
TI Studies on the listing motion law of the eye. I. Announcement. I. Concerning the general kinematics of Listing's motion law.
SO PFLUGERS ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PHYSIOLOGIE DES MENSCHEN UND DER TIERE
LA German
DT Article
CR BURMESTER L, 1898, SITZUNGSBER KGL AKAD
DONDERS FC, 1870, ARCH OPHTHALMOL-CHIC, V16, P154
FISCHER O, 1909, ABHANDL MATHEM PHYS, V31, P1
LECONTE J, 1883, LEHRE SEHEN, P162
MEINONG A, 1898, Z PSYCH SINNESORG, V16, P168
MEINONG A, 1898, Z PSYCHOL SINNESORG, V16, P161
SCHON W, 1875, ARCH OPHTHALMOL-CHIC, V21, P205
TSCHERNING, 1887, THESIS PARIS
VONGRAEFES, 1922, ARCH OPHTH, V108, P251
VONHELMHOLTZ H, 1896, HDB PHYSL OPTIK, P619
VONHELMHOLTZ H, 1906, PHYSL OPTIK, P651
VONKRIES J, 1910, ZUSATZE HELMHOLTZ PH, V3, P115
NR 12
TC 9
PU SPRINGER
PI NEW YORK
PA 233 SPRING STREET, NEW YORK, NY 10013 USA
J9 PFL ARCH GESAM PHYS MEN TIERE
PY 1924
VL 205
BP 637
EP 668
PG 32
SC Physiology
GA V17UN
UT ISI:000201202500063
ER

PT J
AU PARSONS, T
TI NUCLEAR AND EXTRA-NUCLEAR PROPERTIES, MEINONG, AND LEIBNITZ
SO NOUS
LA English
DT Article
C1 UNIV MASSACHUSETTS,AMHERST,MA 01002.
CR CASTANEDA HN, 1974, PHILOSOPHIA, V4, P3
FINDLAY J, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
GROSSMANN R, 1974, MEINONG
MATES B, LEIBNIZ
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
PARSONS T, UNPUBLISHED
PARSONS T, 1974, J PHILOS, V71, P561
ROUTLEY R, UNPUBLISHED
NR 8
TC 8
PU BLACKWELL PUBLISHERS
PI CAMBRIDGE
PA 350 MAIN STREET, STE 6, CAMBRIDGE, MA 02148-5023
SN 0029-4624
J9 NOUS
JI Nous
PY 1978
VL 12
IS 2
BP 137
EP 151
PG 15
SC Philosophy
GA FQ774
UT ISI:A1978FQ77400003
ER

PT J
AU Pear, TH
AF Pear, T. H.
TI THE EXPERIMENTAL EXAMINATION OF SOME DIFFERENCES BETWEEN THE MAJOR AND THE MINOR CHORD
SO BRITISH JOURNAL OF PSYCHOLOGY
LA English
DT Article
CR BENTLEY IM, 1903, AM J PSYCHOL, P60
BUCH E, 1900, PHILOS STUD, V15, P183
FAIST A, 1897, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V15, P102
FAIST, Z PSYCHOL, V15, P129
JODL F, LEHRBUCH PSYCHOL, V1, P362
KRUEGER F, 1903, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V2, P1
KRUEGER F, 1903, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V1, P205
KRUEGER F, 1906, PSYCHOL STUD, V1, P313
KRUEGER F, 1906, PSYCHOL STUD, V2, P206
KRUEGER F, 1906, PSYCHOL STUD, V4, P201
KRUEGER F, 1910, PSYCHOL STUD, V5, P294
KULPE O, OUTLINES, P286
KULPE O, 1895, OUTLINE PSYCHOL, P297
LIPPS T, 1883, GRUNDTATSACHEN SEELE, P238
LIPPS T, 1885, PSYCHOL STUD, P92
LIPPS T, 1901, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V27, P225
MEINONG A, OUTLINES, P289
MEYER M, 1898, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL, V17, P401
MEYER M, 1898, Z PSYCHOL, V17, P421
NATORP, 1891, GOTTINGISCHE GELEHRT, P789
OGDEN RM, 1909, PSYCHOL BULL, V6, P297
OGDEN RM, 1911, PSYCHOL BULL, V8, P100
OGDEN RM, 1911, PSYCHOL BULL, V8, P60
OGDEN RM, 1911, PSYCHOL BULL, V8, P93
SCHULZE R, 1898, PHIL STUD, V14
STUMPF C, TONPSYCHOLOGIE, V2, P135
STUMPF C, TONPSYCHOLOGIE, V2, P142
STUMPF C, TONPSYCHOLOGIE, V2, P176
STUMPF C, Z PSYCHOL, V15, P121
STUMPF C, Z PSYCHOL, V55, P1
STUMPF C, 1898, BEITR AKUSTIK MUSIKW, P34
STUMPF C, 1901, Z PSYCHOL, V27
STUMPF C, 1910, BEITR AKUSTIK MUSIKW, P34
STUMPF, Z PSYCHOL, V15, P288
STUMPF, Z PSYCHOL, V2, P137
STUMPF, 1898, Z PSYCHOL, V17, P401
STUMPF, 1898, Z PSYCHOL, V17, P424
STUMPF, 1898, Z PSYCHOL, V18, P274
TANZI, 1887, RIV FILOSOFIA SCI, V6, P174
TITCHENER EB, 1901, EXPT PSYCHOL, P329
WUNDT W, GRUNDZUGE, V2, P111
WUNDT W, GRUNDZUGE, V2, P123
WUNDT W, GRUNDZUGE, V2, P421
WUNDT W, GRUNDZUGE, V2, P434
WUNDT W, 1910, PHYSL PSYCHOL, V2, P428
WUNDT, 1910, PHYSL PSYCHOL, V2, P91
NR 46
TC 8
PU BRITISH PSYCHOLOGICAL SOC
PI LEICESTER
PA ST ANDREWS HOUSE, 48 PRINCESS RD EAST, LEICESTER LE1 7DR, LEICS, ENGLAND
SN 0007-1269
J9 BRIT J PSYCHOL
JI Br. J. Psychol.
PD MAY
PY 1911
VL 4
PN Part 1
BP 56
EP 88
PG 33
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V67ZQ
UT ISI:000204595800004
ER

PT J
AU Gallagher, S
TI Phenomenological contributions to a theory of social cognition
SO HUSSERL STUDIES
LA English
DT Proceedings Paper
CT 1st North American Syntax Conference
CY MAY 02-04, 2003
CL Montreal, CANADA
HO Concordia Univ
ID GRASP REPRESENTATIONS; NEURAL SYSTEMS; MIRROR NEURONS; HUMANS; LOCALIZATION; RECOGNITION; SIMULATION; IMITATION; EMOTION; MIND
C1 Univ Cent Florida, Orlando, FL 32816 USA.
RP Gallagher, S, Univ Cent Florida, Orlando, FL 32816 USA.
EM gallaghr@mail.ucf.edu
CR ADOLPHS R, 2000, J NEUROSCI, V20, P2683
ADOLPHS R, 2002, CURR OPIN NEUROBIOL, V12, P169
ADOLPHS R, 2003, NAT REV NEUROSCI, V4, P165, DOI 10.1038/nrn1056
BUCCINO G, 2004, J COGNITIVE NEUROSCI, V16, P114
CARR L, 2003, P NATL ACAD SCI USA, V100, P5497, DOI 10.1073/pnas.0935845100
CLAESGES U, 1964, E HUSSERLS THEORIE R
COLE J, 2002, PHENOMENOLOGY COGNIT, V1, P49
FADIGA L, 1995, J NEUROPHYSIOL, V73, P2608
FERRARI PF, 2003, EUR J NEUROSCI, V17, P1703, DOI 10.1046/j.1460-9568.2003.02601.x
GALLAGHER S, 1999, J CONSCIOUSNESS STUD, V6, P4
GALLAGHER S, 2001, J CONSCIOUSNESS STUD, V8, P83
GALLAGHER S, 2004, CONTR PHENOMENOL, V52, P25
GALLAGHER S, 2004, J CONSCIOUSNESS STUD, V11, P3
GALLAGHER S, 2005, HOW BODY SHAPES MIND
GALLESE V, 1998, TRENDS COGN SCI, V2, P493
GALLESE V, 2002, ATTENTION PERFORM, V19, P247
GALLESE V, 2005, PHENOMENOLOGY COGNIT, V4, P23
GOODALE MA, 1992, TRENDS NEUROSCI, V15, P20
GORDON R, 2003, ENCY COGNITIVE SCI
GRAFTON ST, 1996, EXP BRAIN RES, V112, P103
GURWITSCH A, 1931, HUMAN ENCOUNTERS SOC
GURWITSCH A, 1966, STUDIES PHENOMENOLOG
HEIDEGGER M, 1927, BEING TIME
HUSSERL E, 1970, CARTESIAN MEDITATION
HUSSERL E, 1973, PHANOMENOLOGIE INTER
HUSSERL E, 1989, IDEAS PERTAINING PUR
HUSSERL E, 1997, THING SPACE LECT 190
JACOB P, 2003, WAYS SEEING SCOPE LI
LIPPS T, 1903, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V1, P185
LIPPS T, 1905, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V4, P465
LIPPS T, 1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V1, P694
LIPPS T, 2005, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHU 4, V1
MARCEL AJ, 1993, CIBA F SYMP, V174, P168
MEINONG A, 1902, ANNAHMEN
MELTZOFF AN, 1997, EARLY DEV PARENTING, V6, P179
PETIT JL, 1999, NATURALIZING PHENOME, P220
RIZZOLATTI G, 1996, EXP BRAIN RES, V111, P246
SARTRE JP, 1956, BEING NOTHINGNESS
SCHELER M, 1954, NATURE SYMPATHY
SCHUTZ A, 1973, COLLECTED PAPERS, V1
TREVARTHEN C, 1978, ACTION GESTURE SYMBO, P183
TREVARTHEN CB, 1979, BEFORE SPEECH
WICKER B, 2003, NEURON, V40, P655
NR 43
TC 7
PU SPRINGER
PI DORDRECHT
PA VAN GODEWIJCKSTRAAT 30, 3311 GZ DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0167-9848
J9 HUSSERL STUD
JI Husserl Stud.
PY 2005
VL 21
IS 2
BP 95
EP 110
DI 10.1007/s10743-005-6402-3
PG 16
SC Philosophy
GA 987OQ
UT ISI:000233527600001
ER

PT J
AU PARSONS, T
TI METHODOLOGY OF NONEXISTENCE
SO JOURNAL OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
RP PARSONS, T, UNIV MASSACHUSETTS,AMHERST,MA 01003.
CR CASTANEDA HN, 1974, PHILOSOPHIA, V4, P3
CASTANEDA HN, 1977, SYNTHESE, V35, P285
CASTANEDA, 1978, NOUS, V12, P189
CHURCH A, 1974, NOUS, V8, P135
CHURCH, 1956, INTRO MATH LOGIC
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE, CH1
HATCHER WS, 1972, J PHILOSOPHICAL LOGI, V1, P349
LAMBERT K, 1974, INQUIRY, V17, P303
LEWIS D, 1978, AM PHILOS Q, V15, P37
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
MEINONG, STELLUNG GEGENSTANDS
MISHALANI JK, 1962, PHILOSOPHICAL REV, V71, P185
PARSONS T, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
PARSONS T, UNPUBLISHED
PARSONS T, 1974, J PHILOS, V71, P561
PARSONS T, 1975, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V1, P73
PARSONS T, 1978, NOUS, V12, P137
QUINE, 1975, LOGICAL ENTERPRISE
RAPAPORT WJ, 1978, NOUS, V12, P153
ROUTLEY, 1976, INQUIRY, V19, P247
RYLE G, 1933, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, P18
SMITH DW, 1975, GRAZER PHILOSOPHISCH, V1, P43
STINE G, 1976, J PHILOS LOGIC, V5, P491
VANINWAGEN P, 1977, AM PHILOS Q, V14, P299
WOLTERSTORFF N, 1976, J AESTHETICS ART CRI, V35, P121
WOODS J, 1974, LOGIC FICTION
NR 26
TC 7
PU J PHILOSOPHY INC
PI NEW YORK
PA COLUMBIA UNIV 709 PHILOSOPHY HALL, NEW YORK, NY 10027
SN 0022-362X
J9 J PHIL
JI J. Philos.
PY 1979
VL 76
IS 11
BP 649
EP 662
PG 14
SC Philosophy
GA HX211
UT ISI:A1979HX21100007
ER

PT J
AU PARSONS, T
TI REFERRING TO NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
SO THEORY AND DECISION
LA English
DT Article
RP PARSONS, T, UNIV MASSACHUSETTS,AMHERST,MA 01003.
CR DONNELLAN K, 1974, PHILOSOPHICAL REV
FINDLAY J, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
LINSKY L, 1967, REFERRING
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
PARSONS T, UNPUBLISHED
PARSONS T, 1974, J PHILOSOPHY, V71
PARSONS T, 1975, GRAZER PHILOSOPHISCH, V1
QUINE WV, 1961, LOGICAL POINT VIEW, P4
SCALES R, 1969, THESIS U CALIFORNIA
NR 9
TC 7
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0040-5833
J9 THEOR DECIS
JI Theory Decis.
PY 1979
VL 11
IS 1
BP 95
EP 110
PG 16
SC Economics; Social Sciences, Mathematical Methods
GA GU982
UT ISI:A1979GU98200008
ER

PT J
AU Graewe, H
AF Graewe, Herbert
TI History about the Psychology of children's Drawing
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Review
CR ALBERT W, 1925, KIND GESTALTER
ALBIEN G, 1907, Z EXPER PAD, V5, P133
ALBIEN G, 1908, Z EXPER PAD, V6, P1
AMENT W, 1899, ENTWICKLUNG SPRECHEN, P157
AMENT W, 1904, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V2, P69
AMENT W, 1923, SEELE KINDES
ANDREE R, 1887, MITTEIL ANTHR GESELL, V17, P98
ANDREE R, 1889, ETHNOGRAPHISCHE PARA
APPEL KE, 1931, AM J ORTHOPSYCHIAT, V1, P129
ASMUS K, 1922, PHILOS PSCHOL
AYER FC, 1916, THESIS CHICAGO
BAILY HT, 1894, BOSTON ED PUBL
BAKUSINSKIJ ABAW, 1932, Z ASTH, V26, P46
BALDWIN JM, 1895, MENTAL DEV CHILD RAC
BALLARD PB, 1913, J EXP PEDAGOY, V2, P127
BANCHIERI F, 1912, CONTRIBUTI PSICOLOGI, V2
BAPPERT J, 1923, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V21, P259
BARNES E, 1892, PEDAG SEMIN, V2, P451
BARNES E, 1892, STUDY CHILDRENS DRAW, V2, P451
BARNES E, 1896, STUDIES ED, V1
BARNES E, 1902, STUDIES ED, V2
BECHTEREW W, 1911, J PSYCHOL NORM PATH, V8, P385
BELINFANTEAHN, 1920, KINDERTEEKENEN VOLLE
BENDER L, 1932, J GENET PSYCHOL, V41, P192
BERGEMANNKONITZ.M, 1930, FORSCH WERKE ERZ WIS
BESNARD A, 1902, B SOC ETUDE PSYCH EN
BEYRL F, 1926, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V100, P344
BINET A, 1890, REV PHILOS DEC
BINET A, 1905, ANN PSYCHOL, V11, P163
BINET A, 1905, ANN PSYCHOL, V11, P191
BINET A, 1908, ANN PSYCHOL, V14, P1
BINET A, 1911, ANN PSYCHOL, V17, P145
BLUMENFELD W, 1923, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V91, P1
BOBERTAG O, 1911, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V5, P105
BOBERTAG O, 1928, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V5, P105
BOGARDUS FS, 1896, T ILLINOIS SOC CHILD
BONTE T, 1934, EIDETISCHE ANLAGE IH
BOTTCHER R, 1935, DTSCH HOH SCHULE, V2, P446
BOUBIER AM, 1901, ARCH PSYCHOL, V1, P44
BOUMAN KH, 1919, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V14, P129
BOWDITCH HP, 1891, PEDAG SEMINARY, V1, P445
BRADLERSTADTMAN.L, 1933, PSYCHOL BEURTEILUNG, V14, P63
BRANDELL G, 1915, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL S, V10
BREEST F, 1905, MONATSSCHR FORD BEST, V1, P333
BRITSCH G, 1926, THEORIE BILDENDEN KU
BRITSCH G, 1930, THEORIE BILDENDEN KU
BROERMAN E, 1909, REV I INT ART PUBLIC
BROWN EE, 1897, U CALIFORN STUD, V2
BRUYN C, 1915, AESTHETISCHE ZELFONT
BUCHNER M, 1914, BEITR KINDERF HEILER
BUHLER C, 1926, Z ASTH ALLG KUNSTWIS, V20, P288
BUHLER C, 1931, PSYCHOL MONOGRAPH
BUHLER K, 1929, ABRISS GEISTIGEN ENT
BUHLER K, 1929, KRISE PSYCHOL
BUHLER K, 1930, GEISTIGE ENTWICKLUNG
BURK F, 1902, PEDAGOGICAL SEMINARY, V9, P296
BURKHARDT H, THESIS LEIPZIG
BURKHARDT H, 1925, ZSCH PAD PSYCHOL, V26, P352
BURKHARDT H, 1934, NEUE PSYCHOL STUDIEN, V7
BUSEMANN A, 1935, Z KINDERFORSCH, V44, P63
BUSSE KH, 1914, K ASTH ALLG KUNSTW, P232
BUSSE KH, 1914, K ASTH ALLG KUNSTW, P79
CHAMBERLAIN AF, 1900, CHILD STUDY EVOLUTIO, CH6
CHILDS HG, 1915, J EDUC PSYCHOL, V6, P391
CHRISTOFFEL H, 1923, Z GES NEUROL PSYCH, V87, P372
CIESIELSKI F, 1931, GESTALTENDE HAND, V2, P43
CLAPAREDE E, 1907, ARCH PSYCHOLOGIE, V6, P276
CLARK AB, 1897, STANFORD U STUD ED, V1, P283
CLAUS A, 1901, Z PADAG PSYCHOL, V3, P456
COHEN J, 1920, PED SEM, V27, P137
COOKE E, 1885, J ED LONDON, P465
COOKE E, 1886, J ED LONDON, P12
CORNELIUS H, 1911, ELEMENTARGESETZE BIL
CRAMAUSSEL E, 1927, J PSYCHOL, V24, P701
CUSHMAN LS, 1908, NAT ED ASS, P515
DAIBER W, WILLEN DTSCH KUNSTER, V5
DALLINGER H, 1928, ERLEBNIS GESTALTUNG
DECROLY O, 1912, J NEUR PSYCHIAT, V17, P421
DECROLY O, 1912, J NEUR PSYCHIAT, V17, P441
DECROLY O, 1930, ANN PSYCHOL, V31, P115
DECROLY O, 1930, ANN PSYCHOL, V31, P97
DESANCTIS S, 1901, CIERCA PSICOLOGICA G
DESSOIR M, 1906, ASTHETIK ALLGEMEINE
DIX KW, 1912, KORPERLICHE GEISTIGE
DREVER JI, 1934, B J PSYCHOL-GEN SE 2, V25, P197
DUCK J, 1912, Z PADAGOG PSYCHOL, V13, P172
EGERLAND J, 1932, THESIS MUNCHEN
ELDERTON E, 1909, BIOMETRIKA, P222
ELSEN A, 1929, KINDERZEICHNUNG AUGS
ELSSNER K, 1907, KINDERZEICHNEN AUFGA
ENG H, 1927, JB ERZ WISS JUGDKD, V3, P201
ENG H, 1927, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V39
ETTEL J, 1928, SCHAUEN SCHAFFEN, V54, P233
FARNUM RB, 1914, B US BUREAU ED, V13
FARWELL L, 1930, GENET PSYCHOL MONOGR, V8, P431
FELD O, 1901, Z PADAG PSYCHOL, V3, P132
FINDLEY ME, 1906, DESIGN ART TRAINING
FISCHER E, 1907, BER K KINDERF JUGEND, P399
FITZ HG, 1897, POPULAR SCI MONTHLY, V51, P755
FRANCK P, 1928, SCHAFFENDE KIND
GALLI PA, 1934, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V132, P304
GAUPP R, 1928, NATUR GEISTESWELT, V1001, P167
GELB A, 1928, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V10, P1
GESELL A, 1931, KORPERSEELISCHE ENTW
GEWECKE G, 1933, THESIS HALLE
GOODENOUGH FL, 1926, MEASUREMENT INTELLIG
GOODENOUGH FL, 1928, PSYCHOL BULL, V25, P272
GOTTSTEIN W, 1933, Z KINDERFORSCH, V41, P1
GRABERG F, 1908, Z EXP PADAG, V7, P68
GRAEWE H, TENDENZHAFTE GRUNDHA
GRAEWE H, 1932, UNTERSUCHUNG ENTWICK
GRAEWE H, 1934, SPIEL KLEINE KINDER, V7, P68
GRAEWE H, 1935, PADAGOG WARTE, V42, P978
GRAEWE H, 1935, Z PADAG PSYCHOL, V36, P251
GRAHMANN B, 1931, Z PADAGOG PSYCHOL, V32, P92
GRAMAUSSEL E, 1924, J PSYCHOL NORM PATH, V21, P161
GRIFFEN VB, 1933, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V45, P63
GROOS K, 1923, SEELENIEBEN KINDES
GROSSART F, 1932, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V86, P115
GROSSE E, 1894, ANFANGE KUNST
GROSSER H, 1913, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL LEIP
GROTH G, 1932, Z PADAG PSYCHOL, V33, P199
GUILLET C, 1909, AM J PSYCHOL, V20, P318
GUILLET C, 1909, AM J PSYCHOL, V20, P324
GUILLET C, 1909, AM J PSYCHOL, V20, P332
GUILLET C, 1909, AM J PSYCHOL, V20, P339
GUILLET C, 1909, AM J PSYCHOL, V20, P344
GUTZE C, 1898, KIND KUNSTLER REFORM
GUTZE W, 1935, DTSCH HOH SCHULE, V2, P764
HALL GS, 1902, BEITRAGE KINDERPSYCH
HANFMANN E, 1933, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V16, P319
HANSEN W, 1933, VIERTELJAHRSSCHR WIS, V9, P155
HARTLAUB GF, 1922, ZEICHNUNGEN MALVERSU
HARTLAUB GF, 1930, ZEICHNUNGEN MALVERSU
HARTLIEB K, ERKENNTNISGRUNDLAGEN
HAUBOLD M, 1933, NEUE PSYCHOL STUD, V7, P1
HENGEL W, 1927, INDUSTRIELLE PSYCHOT, V4, P245
HERRICK MA, 1895, PED SEM, V3, P338
HERWAGEN K, 1920, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V22
HERWIN R, KUNSTSCHAFFEN SEINEN
HETZER H, 1926, WIENER ARB PADAG PSC
HETZER H, 1931, QUELLEN STUD JUGENDK
HICKS D, 1892, PEDAG SEMIN, V2, P463
HINRICHSEN O, SCHOPFERISCHE LEISTU
HOERNES M, 1909, NATUR URGESCHICHTE M
HOERNES M, 1914, K ASTH ALLG KUNSTWIS, P213
HOGAN LE, 1898, STUDY CHILD NEW YORK
HOLZAPFEL RM, 1928, ERFORSCHUNG SCHAFFEN, V1
HORNIG R, 1910, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V3, P541
HUTH A, 1914, Z PAED PSYCHOL, V15, P566
ILLE A, 1930, EINFLUSSE MAT TECHNI, V56
IVANOFF E, 1909, ARCH PSYCHOL, V8, P97
JAENSCH ER, 1921, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V87, P91
JAENSCH ER, 1934, Z PSYCHOL, V104
JAENSCH ER, 1934, Z PSYCHOL, V105
JAENSCH ER, 1934, Z PSYCHOL, V130
JAENSCH ER, 1934, Z PSYCHOL, V84
JAENSCH ER, 1934, Z PSYCHOL, V87
JAENSCH ER, 1934, Z PSYCHOL, V88
JAENSCH ER, 1934, Z PSYCHOL, V98
JANESCH ER, 1928, AUFBAU WAHRNEHMUNGSW
JOESTEN E, 1929, ARCH GES PSYCHO, V771, P493
JOTEYKO J, 1911, REV PSYCHOL, V4, P1
JOTEYKO J, 1911, REV PSYCHOL, V4, P362
JULIAN O, 1928, PSYCHOTECHN Z, V3, P117
JUNGER O, 1907, KINDER IHREM VERGNUG
KAINZ F, 1927, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V28, P267
KANNER L, 1930, J NERV MENT DIS, V72, P489
KARRENBERG C, 1910, MENSCH ZEICHENOBJEKT
KATZ D, 1906, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V41, P241
KATZ D, 1913, WISSENSCHAFTL BEITR
KATZAROFF D, 1910, ARCH PSYCHOL, V9, P125
KERSCHENSTEINER G, 1905, ENTWICKLUNG ZEICHNER
KIENZLE R, 1932, BILDHAFTE GESTALTEN
KIK C, 1909, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V2, P92
KIK C, 1915, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL LEIP, P1
KIREK, 1926, Z BEHANDL SCHWACHSIN, V46, P121
KLAUSER W, 1916, THESIS ZURICH
KOENEN H, 1921, THESIS AMSTERDAM
KOHLER, 1908, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V1, P472
KOHS SC, 1920, J EXP PSYCHOL, V3, P357
KORNMANN E, WILLEN DTSCH KUNSTER
KORNMANN, 1927, ANFANGE NEUER JUGEND
KORNMANNBRITSCH OW, 6 INT K ZEICHN KUNST, V54, P302
KOSTER HL, 1930, Z PADAG PSYCHOL, V31, P399
KRAFFT K, 1929, Z PADAG PSYCHOL, V30, P404
KRAUSE W, 1932, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V126, P86
KRAUSS R, 1930, EXPT UNTERSUCHUNG ER
KRAUTTER O, 1930, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL LE S, V50
KRETSSCHMAR J, 1910, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V3, P459
KRETZSCHMAR J, 1910, Z PADAGOG PSYCHOL, V11, P354
KRETZSCHMAR J, 1912, Z PADAGOG PSYCHOL, V13, P380
KRETZSCHMAR J, 1912, Z PADAGOG PSYCHOL, V13, P417
KRETZSCHMAR, 1913, ARCH PADAG, V1, P39
KRIEGER KL, 1921, KANN ZEICHNEN
KRIEGER KL, 1924, ZWEIBRUCKEN
KROH O, 1922, SUBJEKTIVE ANSCHAUUN
KROH O, 1931, PSYCHOL GRUNDSCHULKI
KROTZSCH W, 1916, LEHRERFORTBILDUNG, V1
KROTZSCH W, 1917, RHYTHMUS FORM FREIEN
KROTZSCH W, 1928, Z KUNSTLERISCHE ERZI, V54, P185
KROTZSCH W, 1930, KINDERKUNST SONDERHE, V56
KROTZSCH W, 1930, SONDERHEFT SCHAUEN S, V56
KUHN H, 1923, KUNST PRIMITIVEN
KUHN H, 1925, IPEK JB PRAHIST ETHN, V1, P3
KUHN H, 1927, IPEK, V3, P13
LAMPRECHT K, 1905, AUFFORDERUNG SAMMELN, V1, P359
LAMPRECHT K, 1905, REV SYNTHESE HIST, V11, P54
LAMPRECHT K, 1906, B CLASSE LETTRES CLA, P457
LAMPRECHT K, 1914, K ASTH ALLGG KUNSTWI, P75
LANG A, ZEICHNER ENTWICKLUNG
LANGE B, 1935, DTSCH HOH SCHULE, V2, P573
LANGE K, 1893, KUNSTLERISCHE ENTWIC
LANGE K, 1904, KIND KUNST, V1, P1
LAY WA, 1906, EXP PADAG, V3, P31
LEBENSJAHR, 1905, PARALLELEN URGESCHIC
LEGRUN A, 1932, Z PADAGOG PSYCHOL, V33, P322
LEMBKE W, 1930, SCHULKINDERN Z PADAG, V31, P459
LEVINSTEIN S, 1904, THESIS LEIPZIG
LIESE E, FREIHANDZEICHNEN KIN
LINDEMANN E, 1922, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V2, P5
LINDNER R, 1912, Z PADAGOG PSYCHOL, V13, P419
LINDNER R, 1914, Z PADAGOG PSYCHOL, V15, P160
LOBSIEN M, 1905, LANGENSALZA
LOBSIEN M, 1905, Z PADAG PSYCHOL, V6, P393
LOBSIEN M, 1922, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V20, P89
LOCH M, 1931, EIDETIK KINDERZEICHN
LOMBROSO P, 1909, LEBEN KINDER PADAG M
LOOSCHEN H, 1905, KIND KUNST, V1, P223
LUKENS H, 1897, PADAG U SEM JENA, P153
LUKENS H, 1897, Z KINDERFORSCH, V2, P166
LUKENS H, 1900, P NAT ED ASS, P945
LUKENS HT, 1896, PED SEM, V4, P79
LUQUET G, 1912, ARCH PSYCHOLOGIE, V12, P14
LUQUET G, 1927, J PSYCHOL, V24, P765
LUQUET GH, 1913, DESSINS ENFANT
LUQUET GH, 1920, J PSYCHOL, V17, P684
LUQUET GH, 1922, J PSYCHOL, V19, P193
LUQUET GH, 1922, J PSYCHOL, V19, P695
LUQUET GH, 1922, J PSYCHOL, V19, P795
LUQUET GH, 1924, J PSYCHOL, V21, P183
LUQUET GH, 1924, J PSYCHOL, V21, P738
LUQUET GH, 1925, J PSYCHOL, V22, P446
LUQUET GH, 1926, J PSYCHOL, V23, P376
LUQUET GH, 1927, DESSIN ENFANTIN PARI
LUQUET GH, 1927, J PSYCHOL, V24, P888
LUQUET GH, 1930, PRIMITIF
LUQUET GH, 1933, J PSYCHOL NORM PATH, V30, P514
MAASS A, 1906, Z ETHNOL, V38, P433
MAITLAND L, 1895, INLAND EDUCATOR, P77
MAITLAND LM, 1899, NW MONTHLY JUN, P443
MARTIN H, 1932, VJSCH JUGENDK, V2, P211
MARTIN H, 1932, Z PADAG PSYCHOL, V33, P257
MASON WA, 1894, PSYCHOL OBJECT DRAWI
MATHIEU J, 1932, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V41, P366
MATZ W, 1915, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V10, P62
MAURER L, 1908, Z EXP PADAG, V6, P65
MEINHOF W, 1930, BILDGESTALTUNG KINDE
MEISS G, 1931, SINN WERT KINDERKUST
MEISTRING W, 1930, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL LE S, V49
MEISTRING W, 1931, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V80, P516
MEISTRING W, 1931, BEIL PREUSS LEHRERZE, V12
MELOUN J, SCHRIFTEN ZEICHNUNGE, V1, P77
METZ P, 1929, PAD MAG, P1252
MEUMANN E, 1912, Z PADAG PSYCHOL, V13, P253
MEUMANN E, 1914, VORLESUNGEN EINFUHRU, V3, P693
MEYER B, 1910, Z KINDERFORSCH, V15, P129
MEYER P, 1913, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V64, P34
MEYER P, 1919, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V82, P1
MEYERSCHONBRUNN F, 1928, WOCHE, V30, P1185
MOHR F, 1906, J PSYCHOL NEUROL, V8, P99
MOHR F, 1909, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V2, P291
MORGENTHALER W, 1931, BER PSYCHOPATH PSYCH, V1, P343
MUCHOW M, 1925, KINDERGARTEN, V66, P136
MUCHOW M, 1925, KINDERGARTEN, V66, P233
MUCHOW M, 1925, Z PADAG PSYCHOL, V26, P316
MUCHOW M, 1926, KINDERGARTEN, V67, P234
MUCHOW M, 1926, KINDERGARTEN, V67, P89
MUCHOW M, 1926, PADAG PSYCHOL SCHRIF
MUSSLER M, 1933, BAUEN KINDES ZWEIFAR
MUTH GF, 1191, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V6, P21
MUTH GF, 1913, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V7, P223
MUTH GF, 1914, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V8, P507
MUTH GF, 1920, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V17, P259
NAGY L, 1905, FEJEZETEK GYERMEKRAJ
NEUBAUER V, 1931, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V39, P273
NEUBAUER VE, 1928, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V29, P289
NUSSBAUM A, 1930, WERDENDE ZEITALTER, V9, P322
OAKLEY CA, 1931, B J PSYCHOL-GEN SE 3, V21, P256
ORTMANN AE, 1898, ENTWICKLUNG GEISTES
OSHEA MV, 1894, P NATION ED ASS, P1015
OSHEA MV, 1897, ED REV NEW YORK, V14, P263
OSHEA MV, 1904, P NAT ED ASS
PAGET GW, 1932, J R ANTHROPOL INST G, V62, P127
PANNENBORG HI, 1917, Z ANGEW PSYCHO, V12, P230
PAPPENHEIM K, 1900, KINDERGARTEN, V41, P180
PAPPERNHEIM K, 1899, Z PADAGOG PSYCHOL, V1, P57
PARNITZKE E, 1932, NEUE DTSCH SCHULE, V6, P455
PARTRIDGE, 1902, STUD ED, V2, P163
PASSY J, 1891, REV PHIL, V32, P614
PAULSSON G, 1923, SCAND SCI REV, V2, P11
PEREZ B, ED INTELLECTUELLE BE, V1, P209
PEREZ B, 1888, ART POESIE CHEZ ENFA
PETER R, 1914, Z PADAGOG PSYCHOL, V15, P96
PETKOFF W, 1914, 9 JB HAMBURG WISS S, V31, P89
PFLEIDERER W, 1930, GEBURT BILDES URSPRU
POLITT L, PAD MAGAZIN H
POTPESCHNIGG L, 1912, SAEMANN SCHRIFTEN ER
PRANTL R, 1927, KINDERPSYCHOLOGIE PA
PREYER W, 1923, SEELE KINDES
PRINZHORN H, 1907, ARCH PSYCHOL, V6, P131
RAUSCHNING D, 1935, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V48, P3
RICCI C, 1887, ARTE BAMBINI BOLOGNA
RICHTER J, 1904, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V35, P321
RIEDEL B, 1906, NEUE BAHNEN, V18, P128
RIESE W, 1928, PSYCHOL MED, V3, P64
ROSEN F, 1908, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V1, P93
ROSEN F, 1911, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V4, P556
ROSTOHAR M, 1928, 10 K EXP PSYCHOL, P154
ROSTOHAR M, 1930, ANN PSYCHOL, V31, P130
ROTHE R, 1929, KINDERTUMLICHES ZEIC
ROTTEN E, 1926, 3 INT PAD K INT ARB
ROTTEN E, 1930, WERDENDE ZEITALTER, V9, P317
ROUMA G, 1913, LANGAGE GRAPHIQUE EN
RUSSEL A, 1931, NEUE PSYCHOL STUD, V7
RUTTMAN WJ, 1916, Z PADAGOG PSYCHOL, V17, P336
RUTTMAN WJ, 1934, Z PADAG PSYCHOL, V35, P24
RUTTMANN WJ, 1911, ERGEBNISSE BISHERIGE
RUTTMANN WJ, 1912, Z PADAG PSYCHOL, V13, P434
RUTTMANN WJ, 1914, Z PADAG PSYCHOL, V15, P430
SANDER F, 1928, 10 K EXP PSYCH, P23
SANDER J, 1927, PHILOS PSYCHOL
SARGENT W, 1912, J EDUC PSYCHOL, V3, P264
SAUDEK R, 1932, HANDSCHRIFTEN ZEICHN, V1, P193
SAUDEK R, 1933, SCHRIFTENREIHE GRAPH
SAUEER F, 1935, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V48, P361
SCHAFER H, 1919, AGYPTISCHER KUNST BE
SCHAFER K, 1913, WISS BEITR PADAG PSY, P87
SCHARFE R, 1922, PAD PSYCHOL ARBEIT, V12, P56
SCHARRELMANN H, 1913, HDB MODERNEN UNTERR, V3
SCHEER G, 1934, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V92, P1
SCHERESCHEWSKY B, 1929, Z KINDERFORSCH, V35, P455
SCHERINGER E, 1928, PHILOS PSYCHOL
SCHIERACK G, 1919, PADAG PSYCHOL, V9, P27
SCHIERACK G, 1920, PADAG PSYCHOL ARB I, V10, P24
SCHINKE W, 1931, DEIN KIND ZEICHNET, P94
SCHLIEBE G, 1934, Z KINDERFORSCH, V43, P49
SCHLOTTE F, PADAG PSYCHOL, V9
SCHORN M, 1929, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V112, P325
SCHOTT A, 1932, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V43, P119
SCHOTT A, 1932, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V43, P128
SCHRENK J, 1914, WISS BEITR PADAG PSY
SCHREUDER AJ, 1902, Z KINDERFORSCH, V7, P216
SCHRIPTURE EW, 1892, STUDIES YALE PSYCHOL, V1, P92
SCHROBLER E, 1912, Z PADAG PSYCHOL, V13, P428
SCHUMANN F, 1900, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V24, P1
SCHUYTEN MC, 1901, PAEDOLOGISCH JAARBOE, V2, P113
SCHUYTEN MC, 1904, PAED JB, V5, P1
SCHUYTEN MC, 1907, ARCH PSYCHOL, V6, P389
SCHWARZ O, 1931, FREIE ZEICHNEN HILFS, V24, P227
SCUPIN E, 1907, TAGEBUCH GEISTIGE EN
SCUPIN E, 1910, TAGEBUCH GEISTIGE EN
SHINN MW, 1893, U CALIF PUBL ED, V1, P1
SHINN MW, 1897, U CALIFORN STUD, V2
SIGGBOEDDINGHAU.M, 1929, PSYCHOL RUNDSCH, V1, P222
SPIELREIN S, 1931, IMAGO, V17, P359
SPIELREIN S, 1931, Z PSYCHOANALYT PADAG, V5, P446
STADELMANN H, 1927, PSYCHIAT NEUROL WCHN, V29, P499
STEKHOVEN JH, 1908, TEEKENINGEN SCHRIFT
STERN C, 1910, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V3, P1
STERN W, 1900, 3 K EXP PSYCH LEIPZ, P239
STERN W, 1907, BER K KIND JUG LANG, P411
STERN W, 1908, ZSCH ANGEW PSYCHOL, V1, P179
STERN W, 1909, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V2, P412
STERN W, 1909, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V2, P498
STERN W, 1927, PSYCHOL FRUHEN KINDH
STREET RF, 1931, TEACH COLL CONTRIB E, V481
STREET RF, 1932, J GENET PSYCHOL, V41, P198
STUCKRATH F, 1930, GEOMETRISCHE ERLEBEN
SULLY J, 1895, STUDIES CHILDHOOD LO
SURRENSEN I, 1931, VOM WILLEN DTSCH KUN, V8
TEUPSER W, 1930, SONDERHEFT SCHAUEN S, V56
THIEL G, 1927, Z KINDERFORSCH, V33, P138
THORNDIKE EL, 1913, TEACHERS COLL RE NOV
THUNE F, 1925, Z PADAG PSYCHOL, V26, P169
THURNWALD R, 1912, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL LE S
TOMBU ML, 1911, REV PSYCHOL, V4, P211
TRACY F, 1899, PSYCHOL KINDHEIT
TRACY F, 1909, PSYCHOL KINDHEIT
TRUMPERBODEMANN, 1926, Z BEHANDL SCHWACHSIN, V46, P123
TRUMPERBODEMANN, 1926, Z BEHANDL SCHWACHSIN, V46, P97
TUMLIRZ O, 1920, EINFUHRUNG JUGENDKUN, V1, P256
UTITZ E, 1911, FUNKTIONSFREUDEN AST
UTITZ E, 1920, GRUNDLEGUNG ALLGEMEI, V2
VANDERTORREN J, 1908, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V1, P189
VANWAYENBURG G, 1923, KINDERSTUDIE, P169
VERWORN M, 1906, Z ETHNOL, V38, P611
VERWORN M, 1907, NATURWISS WOCHENSCHR, P721
VERWORN M, 1908, SITZUNGSBERICHTE ANT, P6
VERWORN M, 1909, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V2, P180
VERWORN M, 1914, IDEOPLASTISCHE KUNST
VERWORN M, 1920, ANFANGE KUNST
VIERKANDT A, 1912, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V6, P299
VOLKELT H, 1924, 8 K EXP PSYCH, P204
VOLKELT H, 1926, 9 K EXP PSYCH JEN, P80
VOLKELT H, 1929, 4 K HEILP BERL, P15
VOLKELT H, 1929, Z PADAG PSYCHOL, V30, P43
VOLKELT H, 1930, PSYCHOL KINDERK KIND, V56
VOLKELT H, 1932, 15 K DTSCH GES PSYCH, P435
VONDENSTEINEN K, 1897, NATURVOLKERN ZENTRAL
VONDERMOLEN FJ, 1916, KINDERTEEKENINGEN KI, V1
VONDERWAL, PERSPECTIEF NAIF TEE
VONGENNEP A, 1911, ARCH PSYCHOL, V10, P327
VONRONCALI E, 1906, KINDERKUNST
VONSTIMPFL J, 1909, UNTERSUCHUNGEN KINDH
WAGNER PA, 1914, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V8, P1
WEISS K, 1928, THEMA KINDERZEICHNUN
WERNER H, 1926, EINFUHRUNG ENTWICKLU
WERTHEIMER M, 1923, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V4, P301
WEULE K, 1926, JB PRAHISTOR ETHNOGR, V2, P87
WISCHER P, 1919, Z PADAGOG PSYCHOL, V20, P219
WITZIG H, 1926, ERLEBNIS ZEICHNERISC
WOLFF H, 1929, FORSCH WERKE ERZ WIS, V10
WOMMELSDORFF O, 1929, WERDENDE ZEITALTER, V8, P673
WULF F, 1922, BEITR PSYCHOL GESTAL, V1, P333
WULFF O, 1932, Z ASTH, V26, P46
WUNDT W, 1908, VOLKERPSYCHOLOGIE, V3
WUNDT W, 1912, ELEMENTE VOLKERPSYCH, P94
ZIEHEN T, 1898, SAMML ABH GEB PADAG, V1
ZIEHEN T, 1900, SAMML ABH GEB PADAG, V4
ZIEHEN T, 1911, PSYCHIATRIE
ZIEHEN T, 1914, Z PADAG PSYCHOL, V15, P40
ZIEHEN T, 1923, PRINZIPIEN METHODEN
ZIEHEN T, 1923, VORLESUNGEN ASTHETIK, V1
ZIEHEN T, 1924, LEITFADEN PHYSIOLOGI
ZIEHEN T, 1925, VORLESUNGEN ASTHETIK, V2
ZIEHEN T, 1925, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V97, P127
ZIEHEN T, 1926, GEISTESKRANKHEITEN E
ZIEHEN T, 1928, J PSYCHOL NEUROL, V37, P422
ZIEHEN T, 1929, WESEN BEANLAGUNG IHR
ZIEHEN T, 1930, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V77, P291
ZIEHEN T, 1931, SEELENLEBEN JUGENDLI
ZIEHEN T, 1931, Z PSYCHOL, V121, P1
ZIMMERMANN E, 1905, KIND KUNST, V1, P355
NR 444
TC 7
SN 0724-7842
J9 ARCG GESAMTE PSYCHOL
JI Archiv. Gesamte Psychol.
PD MAY
PY 1936
VL 96
IS 1-2
BP 103
EP N1
PG 119
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V01UM
UT ISI:000206880500005
ER

PT J
AU Gurwitsch, A
AF Gurwitsch, A.
TI Phenomenology of Subject matter and pure Ego
SO PSYCHOLOGISCHE FORSCHUNG
LA German
DT Article
CR EBENSO TONPSYCHOLOGI, V2, P9
PSYCHOL, V21, P52
PSYCHOLOGIE, P539
TONPSYCHOLOGIE, V1, P71
TRANSZENDENTALE SYST, P89
VJSCHR WISS PHILOS, V14, P262
BENUSSI V, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V32, P399
BENUSSI, GESETZE INADAQUATEN
BENUSSI, GESETZE INADAQUATEN, P400
BENUSSI, PSYCHOL GESTALTERFAS
BENUSSI, PSYCHOL GESTALTERFAS, P382
BERGSON H, 1903, REV METAPHYS MORALE, V11, P5
BERGSON, ESSAY DONNEES IMMEDI, CH2
BERGSON, INTRO METAPHYSIQUE, P4
CORNELIUS, PSYCHOL ERFAHRUNGSWI, P128
CORNELIUS, TRANSZENDENTALE SYST, P116
CORNELIUS, TRANSZENDENTALE SYST, P205
EHRENFELS, GESTALTQUALITATEN, P262
EHRENFELS, GESTALTSQUALITATEN, P258
FROBES I, LEHRBUCH EXPT PSYCHO, V2, P72
FUCHS W, PSYCHOL FORSCHUNG, V6, P191
GELB A, Z PSYCHOL, V58
HUSSERL, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN, V2, P376
HUSSERL, PHILOS ARITHMETIK, P227
HUSSERL, PHILOS ARITHMETIK, CH11
HUSSERL, PSYCHOL STUDIEN ELEM, P163
HUSSERL, PSYCHOL STUDIEN ELEM, V30
JAMES W, PRINCIPLES PSYCHOL, V1, P425
JAMES, PRINCIPLES PSYCHOL, V1, P405
KANT, KRITIK REINEN VERNUN, P108
KANT, KRITIK REINEN VERNUN, P132
KANT, PROLEGOMENA
KANT, SYNTHESIS APPREHENSI, P77
KOFFKA K, PSYCHOLOGIE, P558
KOFFKA, ANAL VORSTELLUNGEN I, P9
KOFFKA, PSYCHOLOGIE, P531
KOFFKA, PSYCHOLOGIE, P533
KOFFKA, PSYCHOLOGIE, P548
KOFFKA, PSYCHOLOGIE, P551
KOFFKA, PSYCHOLOGIE, P558
KOFFKA, PSYCHOLOGIE, P576
KOFFKA, PSYCHOLOGIE, V3, P3
KOFFKA, PSYCHOLOGIE, V3, P8
KOFFKAS, PSYCHOLOGIE, P552
KOHLER W, INTELLIGENZPRUFUNGEN, V1, P43
KOHLER W, 1913, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V66, P51
KOHLER, INTELLIGENZPRUFUNGEN, V1, P173
LIPPS, LEITFADEN PSYCHOL, P59
LIPPS, LEITFADEN PSYCHOL, P60
MEINONG A, Z PSYCHOL, V21
NATORP P, ALLGEMEINE PSYCHOL K, P27
NATORP, ALLGEMEINE PSYCHOL N
PFANDER A, EINFUHRUNG PSYCHOL, V2, P3
PFANDER, EINFUHRUNG PSYCHOL, P362
PFANDERS, EINFUHRUNG PSYCHOL, V2, P2
RIBOT T, PSYCHOL ATTENTION, P6
RIBOT, PSYCHOL ATTENTION, P6
RUBIN, VISUELL WAHRGENOMMEN, P36
SCHUMANN F, Z PSYCHOL, V17, P107
STUMPF, EINTEILUNG WISSENSCH, P28
STUMPF, ERSCHEINUNGEN PSYCHI, P15
STUMPF, ERSCHEINUNGEN PSYCHI, P17
STUMPF, ERSCHEINUNGEN PSYCHI, P29
STUMPF, PSYCHOL URSPRUNG RAU
STUMPF, PSYCHOL URSPRUNG RAU, P109
STUMPF, PSYCHOL URSPRUNG RAU, P112
STUMPF, TONPSYCHOLOGIE, V1, P106
STUMPF, TONPSYCHOLOGIE, V2, P278
STUMPF, TONPSYCHOLOGIE, V2, P64
STUMPF, Z PSYCHOL, V44, P4
STUMPFS, PSYCHOL URSPRUNG RAU, P109
TWARDOWSKI K, LEHRE INHALT GEGENST
VONEHRENFELS C, VIERTELJAHRSSCHRIFT, V14, P252
WERTHEIMER M, PSYCHOL FORSCHG, V1, P48
WERTHEIMER M, SCHLUSSPROZESSE PROD
WERTHEIMER M, UNTERSUCHUNGEN LEHRE, V1, P52
WERTHEIMER, GESTALTTHEORIE, V1, P43
WERTHEIMER, GESTALTTHEORIE, V1, P44
WERTHEIMER, UNTERS LEHRE GESTALT, V2, P315
WERTHEIMER, UNTERS LEHRE GESTALT, V2, P324
WERTHEIMER, UNTERSUCHUNGEN LEHRE, V1, P52
WERTHEIMER, UNTERSUCHUNGEN LEHRE, V2, P308
WERTHEIMER, UNTERSUCHUNGEN LEHRE, V2, P331
WERTHEIMER, UNTERSUCHUNGEN LEHRE, V2, P350
WERTHEIMER, UNTERSUCHUNGEN LEHRE, V4, P329
NR 85
TC 7
PU SPRINGER
PI NEW YORK
PA 233 SPRING ST, NEW YORK, NY 10013 USA
J9 PSYCHOL FORSCH
JI Psychol. Forsch.
PY 1929
VL 12
BP 279
EP 381
PG 103
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V98YV
UT ISI:000206689300007
ER

PT J
AU Krueger, F
AF Krueger, Felix
TI Difference Tones and Consonance
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Review
CR BUCH E, 1899, WUNDT PHILOS STUDIEN, V15
CORNELIUS H, 1899, Z PSYCH, V22
EWALD K, 1899, PFLUGER ARCH GES PHY, V76
FAIST A, 1897, Z PSYCH, V15
FILLMORE JC, 1901, BEITR AKUSTIK MUSIKW
HELMHOLTZ H, 1896, LEHRE TONEMPFINDUNGE
HENSON V, 1880, HERMANNS HDB PHYSL, V3, P2
HENSON V, 1902, ERGEBNISSE PHYSL, V1
HOHENEMSER R, 1901, Z PSYCH, V26
KRUEGER F, 1900, WUNDT PHILOS STUDIEN, V16
KRUEGER F, 1901, 4 C INT PSYCH PAR 19
KRUEGER F, 1901, SITZBER PHYSL VEREIN
KRUEGER F, 1901, WUNDT PHILOS STUDIEN, V17
KRUEGER F, 1901, Z PSYCH, V27
KULPE O, 1893, Z PSYCH, V5
LINDIG F, 1902, THESIS
LIPPS T, TONPSYCHOLOGIER, V2
LIPPS T, 1883, GRUNDTATSACHEN SEELE
LIPPS T, 1885, PSYCHOL STUDIEN
LIPPS T, 1892, PHILOS MONATSHEFTE, V28
LIPPS T, 1899, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SIAN, V19
LIPPS T, 1900, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SIAN, V22
LIPPS T, 1901, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SIAN, V27
MACH E, 1892, GESCH AKUSTIK
MACH E, 1897, POPUL WISSENSCH VORL
MEINONG A, 1897, Z PSYCH, V15
MEYER M, 1897, Z PSYCH, V13
MEYER M, 1899, PFLUGER ARCH GES PHY, V78
MEYER M, 1901, CONTRIB PSYCHOL, V1, P1
NATORP R, TONPSYCHOLOGIE, V2
NATORP R, 1891, GOTTINGGEL ANZ, V2
POLAK AJ, 1900, ZEITEINHEIT BEZUG KO
PREYER W, 1878, SITZBER JENATSCH GES
PREYER W, 1879, SAMML PHYSL ABHANDL, V2, P4
SCHAEFER KL, 1901, PFLUGER ARCH GES PHY, V85
SCHAEFER KL, 1901, PFLUGER ARCH GES PHY, V88
STUMPF C, 1883, TONPSYCHOLOGIE, V1
STUMPF C, 1886, VIERTELJAHRSCHR MUSI, V2
STUMPF C, 1890, TONPSYCHOLOGIE, V2
STUMPF C, 1892, VIERTELJAHRSCHR MUSI, V8
STUMPF C, 1898, BEITR AKASTIK MUSIKW
STUMPF C, 1898, Z PSYCH, V17
STUMPF C, 1901, BEITR AKUSTIK MUSIKW
STUMPF C, 1901, Z PSYCH, V27
STUMPF C, 1902, THESIS
WUNDT W, 1893, GRUNDZITGE PHYSL PSY
WUNDT W, 1902, GRANDZUGE, V2
NR 47
TC 7
SN 0724-7842
J9 ARCG GESAMTE PSYCHOL
JI Archiv. Gesamte Psychol.
PD MAY 15
PY 1903
VL 1
IS 2-3
BP 205
EP 275
PG 71
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V97ZU
UT ISI:000206624200002
ER

PT J
AU EHRENSTEIN, WH
HAMADA, J
TI STRUCTURAL FACTORS OF SIZE CONTRAST IN THE EBBINGHAUS ILLUSION
SO JAPANESE PSYCHOLOGICAL RESEARCH
LA English
DT Article
DE SIZE CONTRAST; VISUAL INDUCTION; STRUCTURAL FACTORS; EBBINGHAUS ILLUSION
AB Size contrast was studied in the Ebbinghaus illusion with inducing circles (ICs) that were either larger or smaller than the central test circle (TC). Four ICs formed either squares or diamonds; or in a mixed-size condition four large ICs alternated with four small ICs. Figures were presented on printed cards and studied as a function of IC-TC distance, or displayed on a computer screen at various angles of orientation. A separate circle, presented left or right of an Ebbinghaus figure and varying in size, served for simultaneous comparision. A general overestimation was found for figures presented right from the comparison circle. Size contrast diminished with increasing IC-TC distance for small ICs, but increased for large ICs. Square arrays had stronger inducing effects than diamonds with small ICs, but weaker with large ICs; the mixed-size condition resulted in a small underestimation. Furthermore, size contrast depended systematically on the angle of IC-array orientation. The Ebbinghaus illusion thus obeys structural factors in a rather peculiar way, suggesting the necessity of a compound model of size contrast.
C1 UNIV TOKUSHIMA,FAC INTEGRATED ARTS & SCI,TOKUSHIMA,JAPAN.
RP EHRENSTEIN, WH, INST ARBEITSPHYSIOL,ARDEYSTR 67,D-44139 DORTMUND,GERMANY.
CR APPELLE S, 1972, PSYCHOL BULL, V78, P266
BRADSHAW JL, 1983, HUMAN CEREBRAL ASYMM
BREDENKAMP J, 1984, Z PSYCHOL, V192, P47
CLEM RK, 1975, PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS, V17, P450
COREN S, 1978, SEEING IS DECEIVING
EBBINGHAUS H, 1908, GRUNDZUGE PSYCHOL 1, V2
EDGAR GK, 1990, PERCEPTION, V19, P759
EHRENSTEIN WH, 1977, PERCEPTION, V6, P657
FISHER GH, 1969, ERGONOMICS, V12, P11
GAZZANIGA MS, 1965, BRAIN, V88, P221
GIRGUS JS, 1972, J EXP PSYCHOL, V95, P453
GOTO T, 1987, J FACULTY LETT NAGOY, V33, P53
GOTO T, 1989, J FACULTY LETT NAGOY, V35, P37
GUILFORD JP, 1954, PSYCHOMETRIC METHODS
HAMADA J, 1991, TRENDS BIOL CYBERNET, V2, P93
HEINEMANN E, 1972, HDB SENSORY PHYSL, V4, P146
KANIZSA G, 1979, ORG VISION ESSAYS GE
KITTERLE F, 1989, CEREBRAL LATERALITY
KUNDT A, 1863, POGGENDORFFS ANN PHY, V120, P118
KURODA K, 1984, 48TH P ANN CONV JAP, P168
MACH E, 1959, ANAL SENSATIONS
MACH E, 1961, SITZUNGSBERICHTE MAT, V43, P215
MASSARO DW, 1971, J EXP PSYCHOL, V89, P147
MORINAGA S, 1959, 15TH P INT C PSYCH A, P273
MORINAGA S, 1966, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V29, P161
OBONAI T, 1930, JAPANESE J PSYCHOL, V5, P11
OBONAI T, 1954, J EXP PSYCHOL, V47, P57
OBONAI T, 1977, PERCEPTION LEARNING
ONO H, 1967, PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS, V2, P201
OYAMA T, 1960, PSYCHOLOGIA, V3, P7
SARRIS V, 1986, HUMAN MEMORY COGNITI, P139
SCHILLER P, 1962, PERCEPTIUAL MOTOR SK, V15, P39
SCHUMANN F, 1900, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V24, P1
SMITH R, 1738, COMPLEAT SYSTEM OPTI
STEVENS HC, 1908, PSYCHOL REV, V15, P69
TAYA R, 1992, PERCEPTION, V21, P611
THURSTONE LL, 1944, FACTORIAL STUDY PERC
TITCHENER EB, 1901, EXPT PSYCHOL MANUAL
WADE N, 1982, ART SCI VISUAL ILLUS
WUNDT W, 1898, GEOMETRISCH OPTISCHE
ZIGLER E, 1960, PERCEPT MOTOR SKILL, V11, P47
NR 41
TC 6
PU BLACKWELL PUBL LTD
PI OXFORD
PA 108 COWLEY RD, OXFORD, OXON, ENGLAND OX4 1JF
SN 0021-5368
J9 JPN PSYCHOL RES
JI Jpn. Psychol. Res.
PY 1995
VL 37
IS 3
BP 158
EP 169
PG 12
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA TF942
UT ISI:A1995TF94200008
ER

PT J
AU LINSKY, B
ZALTA, EN
TI IS LEWIS A MEINONGIAN
SO AUSTRALASIAN JOURNAL OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
C1 STANFORD UNIV,STANFORD,CA 94305.
RP LINSKY, B, UNIV ALBERTA,EDMONTON T6G 2E1,ALBERTA,CANADA.
CR CASTANEDA HN, 1974, PHILOSOPHIA, V4, P3
CHISOLM RM, 1973, PHILOS STUD, V24, P245
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
LAMBERT K, 1983, MEINONG PRINCIPLE IN
LEWIS D, 1968, J PHILOS, V65, P113
LEWIS D, 1986, PLURALITY WORLDS
LEWIS D, 1990, MIND, V99, P23
LINSKY B, IN PRESS PHILOSOPHIA
LOUX MJ, 1979, POSSIBLE ACTUAL
LYCAN W, 1979, POSS ACT, V9, P274
LYCAN W, 1988, J PHILOS, V85, P42
MALLY E, 1912, GEGENSTANDSTHEORETIS
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P76
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
RAPAPORT WJ, 1978, NOUS, V12, P153
ROUTLEY R, 1979, DEPT MONOGRAPH AUSTR, V3
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P479
RUSSELL B, 1907, MIND, V16, P436
RUSSELL B, 1919, INTRO MATH PHILOS
STALNAKER R, 1976, NOUS, V10, P65
VANINWAGEN P, 1986, MIDWEST STUDIES PHIL, V11
ZALTA E, 1983, ABSTRACT OBJECTS INT
ZALTA E, 1988, INTENSIONAL LOGIC ME
NR 24
TC 6
PU LA TROBE UNIV
PI VICTORIA
PA DEPT OF PHILOSOPHY BUNDOORA, VICTORIA AUSTRALIA
SN 0004-8402
J9 AUSTRALAS J PHIL
JI Australas. J. Philos.
PD DEC
PY 1991
VL 69
IS 4
BP 438
EP 453
PG 16
SC Philosophy
GA GR925
UT ISI:A1991GR92500004
ER

PT J
AU SMITH, JF
TI THE RUSSELL-MEINONG DEBATE
SO PHILOSOPHY AND PHENOMENOLOGICAL RESEARCH
LA English
DT Article
RP SMITH, JF, UNIV MASSACHUSETTS,BOSTON,MA 02125.
CR ARISTOTLE, CATEGORIES
ARISTOTLE, METAPHYSICS, V4
CASTANEDA HN, 1978, NOUS, V12
CHIHARA C, 1972, ONTOLOGY VICIOUS CIR
CHISHOLM RM, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
CHISHOLM RM, 1981, 1ST PERSON ESSAY REF
CHISHOLM RM, 1982, BRENTANO MEINONG STU
FINDLAY JN, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
FREGE G, GRUNDGESETZE ARITHME
FREGE G, 1902, COMMUNICATION
GODEL K, 1944, PHILOS B RUSSELL, P133
GOLDFARB W, 1979, J SYMBOLIC LOGIC, V44
GRIFFIN N, 1980, SYNTHESE, V45, P127
HAACK S, 1974, DEVIANT LOGIC
LAMBERT K, 1983, MEINONG PRINCIPLE IN
LUKASIEWICZ J, 1979, ARTICLES ARISTOTLE, V3, P61
MALLY E, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN, P128
MEINONG A, ERFAHRUNGSGRUNDLAGEN
MEINONG A, GEGENSTANDE HOHERER
MEINONG A, GEGENSTANDSTHEORIE
MEINONG A, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
MEINONG A, STELLUNG GEGENSTANDS
MEINONG A, UBER ANNAHMEN
MEINONG A, 1910, ASSUMPTIONS
MEINONG A, 1917, EMOTIONAL PRESENTATI
MEINONG A, 1921, PHILOS GEGENWART SEL
PARSONS C, 1982, MONIST, V65, P507
PARSONS C, 1983, MATH PHILOS, P293
PARSONS T, 1970, J PHILOS, V76, P658
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
PUTNAM H, 1983, REALISM REASON PHILO, V3
QUINE WVO, 1941, PHILOS AN WHITEHEAD
QUINE WVO, 1953, LOGICAL POINT VIEW
QUINE WVO, 1970, PHILOS LOGIC
QUINE WVO, 1972, B RUSSELL COLLECTION, P294
QUINE WVO, 1981, J PHILOS, V78
RAPAPORT W, 1978, NOUS, V12
ROUTLEY R, 1980, EXPLORING MEINONGS J
RUSSELL B, COMMUNICATIONS
RUSSELL B, PRINCIPLES MATH
RUSSELL B, 1899, MIND
RUSSELL B, 1904, MIND
RUSSELL B, 1905, DENOTING
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND
RUSSELL B, 1906, MIND
RUSSELL B, 1906, SOME DIFFICULTIES TH
RUSSELL B, 1907, MIND
RUSSELL B, 1908, LOGIC KNOWLEDGE
RUSSELL B, 1910, NATURE TRUTH FALSEHO
RUSSELL B, 1913, THEORY KNOWLEDGE
RUSSELL B, 1914, NATURE ACQUAINTANCE
RUSSELL B, 1918, PHILOS LOGICAL ATOMI
RUSSELL B, 1919, INTRO MATH PHILOS
RUSSELL B, 1921, ANALYSIS MIND
RUSSELL B, 1936, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, P145
RUSSELL B, 1944, MY MENTAL DEV
RUSSELL B, 1951, AUTOBIOGRAPHY, V1
RUSSELL B, 1959, MY PHILOS DEV
SMITH JF, 1982, PHENOMENOLOGY DIALOG
THOMPSON M, 1981, J PHILOS, V78, P468
VANHEIJENOORT J, 1967, SYNTHESE, V32
WOODS J, 1977, CANADIAN J PHILOS, V7
NR 62
TC 6
PU PHILOSOPHY PHENOMENOLOGICAL RES
PI PROVIDENCE
PA BROWN UNIV BOX 1947, PROVIDENCE, RI 02912
SN 0031-8205
J9 PHIL PHENOMENOL RES
JI Philos. Phenomenol. Res.
PY 1985
VL 45
IS 3
BP 305
EP 350
PG 46
SC Philosophy
GA ACN82
UT ISI:A1985ACN8200001
ER

PT J
AU ROUTLEY, R
TI ON WHAT THERE IS NOT + NONEISM
SO PHILOSOPHY AND PHENOMENOLOGICAL RESEARCH
LA English
DT Article
RP ROUTLEY, R, AUSTRALIAN NATL UNIV,RES SCH SOCIAL SCI,CANBERRA,ACT 2600,AUSTRALIA.
CR AUSTIN JL, 1962, SENSE SENSIBILIA
BUNGE M, 1977, ONTOLOGY, V1
CARGILE J, 1979, PARADOXES STUDY FORM
CARTWRIGHT R, 1954, PHILOS SCI, V21, P316
CHIHARA CS, 1973, ONTOLOGY VICIOUS CIR
FREGE G, 1950, F ARITHMETIC
GEACH P, 1951, ARIST SOC S, V25, P125
GOCHET P, 1981, ASCENT TRUTH EXPOSIT
GODDARD L, 1973, LOGIC SIGNIFICANCE C
KENNY A, 1968, DESCARTES STUDY HIS
LAMBERT K, 1976, INQUIRY, V19, P251
LINSKY L, 1977, NAMES DESCRIPTIONS
MEINONG A, 1972, EMOTIONAL PRESENTATI
PARSONS T, 1974, J PHILOS, V71, P561
QUINE WV, 1979, ESSAYS PHILOS WV QUI, P155
QUINE WVO, 1959, METHODS LOGIC
QUINE WVO, 1960, WORD OBJECT
QUINE WVO, 1961, LOGICAL POINT VIEW
QUINE WVO, 1969, ONTOLOGICAL RELATIVI
RESCHER N, 1968, TOPICS PHILOS LOGIC
ROUTLEY R, 1966, NOTRE DAME J FORM L, V7, P251
ROUTLEY R, 1969, NOTRE DAME J FORM L, V10, P113
ROUTLEY R, 1979, EXPLORING MEINONGS J
ROUTLEY R, 1979, STUDIA LOGICA, V39, P76
SCHEFFLER I, 1958, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, V59, P71
NR 25
TC 6
PU PHILOSOPHY PHENOMENOLOGICAL RES
PI PROVIDENCE
PA BROWN UNIV BOX 1947, PROVIDENCE, RI 02912
SN 0031-8205
J9 PHIL PHENOMENOL RES
JI Philos. Phenomenol. Res.
PY 1982
VL 43
IS 2
BP 151
EP 177
PG 27
SC Philosophy
GA QL399
UT ISI:A1982QL39900002
ER

PT J
AU LAMBERT, K
TI IMPOSSIBLE OBJECTS
SO INQUIRY-AN INTERDISCIPLINARY JOURNAL OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
C1 UNIV CALIF,IRVINE,CA 92664.
CR CARNAP R, 1947, MEANING NECESSITY, P36
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE, P56
GRANDY R, 1972, J PHILOSOPHICAL LOGI, V1
HALLER R, 1970, JENSEITS SEIN NICHTS, P7
LAMBERT K, 1970, PHILOSOPHICAL PROBLE
LAMBERT K, 1972, DERIVATION COUNTEREX, P154
MARSH R, 1966, B RUSSELL LOGIC KNOW, P48
MEINONG A, 1905, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN, P537
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P86
RUSSELL B, 1907, MIND, P436
VANFRAASSEN B, 1966, J PHILOSOPHY, V63, P219
NR 11
TC 6
PU SCANDINAVIAN UNIVERSITY PRESS
PI OSLO
PA PO BOX 2959 TOYEN, JOURNAL DIVISION CUSTOMER SERVICE, N-0608 OSLO, NORWAY
SN 0020-174X
J9 INQUIRY-INTERDISCIPL J PHILOS
JI Inquiry-Interdiscip. J. Philos.
PY 1974
VL 17
IS 3
BP 303
EP 314
PG 12
SC Ethics; Philosophy
GA AG615
UT ISI:A1974AG61500002
ER

PT J
AU ERKE, H
TI SIZE CHANGES OF OPTICALLY PERCEIVED FIGURES DURING PERIOD OF INSPECTION
SO PSYCHOLOGISCHE FORSCHUNG
LA English
DT Article
C1 UNIV MUNSTER,INST PSYCH,MUNSTER,FED REP GER.
CR AARONS L, 1964, PERCEPT MOTOR SKILL, V18, P239
AKISHIGE Y, 1933, EXPERIMENTELLE UNTER
AUBERT H, 1965, PHYSIOLOGIE NETZHAUT
BACKLUND F, 1959, 6 U UPPS PSYCH LAB S
BAUMGARTNER G, 1960, ZBL NEUROL PSYCHIAT, V155, P243
BAUMGARTNER G, 1961, NEUROPHYSIOLOGIE PSY, P296
BAUMGARTNER G, 1965, BERICHTE DTSCH GESEL, V66, P111
BERGMAN R, 1959, AM J PSYCHOL, V72, P364
BETHE A, 1908, PFLUGERS ARCH GES PH, V121, P1
BISCHOF N, 1966, HDB PSYCHOL 12 BDN, V1, P307
BROWN KT, 1953, AM J PSYCHOL, V66, P629
BROWN KT, 1953, J OPT SOC AM, V43, P464
BUHLER K, 1913, GESTALTWAHRNEHMUNG, V1
CHARLES JP, 1959, J EXP PSYCHOL, V57, P164
DITCHBURN RW, 1953, J PHYSIOL-LONDON, V119, P1
DUNCAN CP, 1960, J EXPERIMENTAL PSYCH, V60, P130
EBBECKE U, 1947, PFLUGERS ARCH GES PH, V249, P87
ERKE H, 1967, BER K DGP, V25, P324
FAUVILLE A, 1947, MISCELLANEA PSYCHOLO, P323
FECHNER GT, 1960, ELEMENTE PSYCHOPHYSI
FOX BH, 1951, J EXP PSYCHOL, V42, P317
FRAISSE P, 1956, ARCH PSYCHOL, V35, P193
FRAISSE P, 1956, Q J EXP PSYCHOL, V8, P114
GANZ L, 1964, VISION RES, V4, P465
GANZ L, 1965, AM J PSYCHOL, V78, P345
GANZ L, 1966, PSYCHOL BULL, V66, P151
GANZ L, 1966, PSYCHOL REV, V73, P128
GHONEIM S, 1959, ARCH PSYCHOL GENEVE, V37, P1
GIBSON JJ, 1933, J EXP PSYCHOL, V16, P1
GIBSON JJ, 1937, J EXP PSYCHOL, V20, P453
GIBSON JJ, 1937, J EXP PSYCHOL, V20, P553
GRAEFE O, 1958, BER K DPG, V21, P167
GRAHAM CH, 1965, VISION VISUAL PER ED
GRAHAM, 1965, VISION VISUAL PER ED, P321
GRAHAM, 1965, VISION VISUAL PERCEP, P81
GUILFORD JP, 1954, PSYCHOMETRIC METHODS
HABER RN, 1966, PSYCHOL REV, V73, P335
HEBB DO, 1949, ORGANIZATION BEHAVIO
HEINEMANN EG, 1954, J EXP PSYCHOL, V48, P468
HELSON H, 1930, SCIENCE, V71, P536
HELSON H, 1931, J EXP PSYCHOL, V14, P202
HELSON H, 1960, J EXP PSYCHOL, V59, P113
HILLEBRAND F, 1928, Z SINNESPHYSIOL, V59, P174
HOFMAN FB, 1920, LEHRE RAUMSINN AUG 1
HOVLAND CI, 1935, PSYCHOL BULL, V32, P755
HUBEL DH, 1959, J PHYSL, V148, P574
HUBEL DH, 1960, J PHYSIOL-LONDON, V150, P91
HUBEL DH, 1961, J PHYSIOL-LONDON, V155, P385
IKEDA H, 1953, JAP J PSYCHOL, V24, P179
JUNG R, 1961, NEUROPHYSIOLOGIE ED, P296
KENKEL F, 1913, Z PSYCHOL, V67, P358
KLIX F, 1962, ELEMENTARANALYSEN PS
KOFFKA K, 1919, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V82, P257
KOGISO I, 1956, JAP J PSYCHOL, V26, P405
KOHLER W, 1920, PHYSISCHEN GESTALTEN
KOHLER W, 1923, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V3, P97
KOHLER W, 1925, JAHRESBERICHTE GESAM, V3, P512
KOHLER W, 1938, PLACE VALUE WORLD FA
KOHLER W, 1940, DYNAMICS PSYCHOLOGY
KOHLER W, 1944, P AM PHILOS SOC, V88, P269
KOHLER W, 1958, AM J PSYCHOL, V71, P489
KOHLER W, 1965, PSYCHOL REC, V15, P63
KRAUSKOPF J, 1960, J OPT SOC AM, V50, P572
LIENERT GA, 1962, VERTEILUNGSFREIE MET
LINDEMANN E, 1922, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V2, P5
MALHORTA MK, 1966, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V30, P1
MALHOTRA MK, 1958, ACTA PSYCHOLOGICA, V14, P161
MARKS MR, 1949, AM J PSYCHOL, V62, P392
MARKS MR, 1949, AM J PSYCHOL, V62, P62
MCEWEN P, 1958, BRIT J PSYCHOL S, V31
METZGER W, 1966, HANDBUCH PSYCHOLO ED, V1, P307
METZGER W, 1966, HANDBUCH PSYCHOLO ED, V1, P776
MICHOTTE A, 1947, MISCELLANEA PSYCH ED, P323
NEWMAN EB, 1934, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V19, P102
NOZAWA S, 1953, JAP J PSYCHOL, V23, P217
NOZAWA S, 1953, JAP J PSYCHOL, V24, P47
NOZAWA S, 1955, JAPANESE PSYCHOL RES, V2, P9
OBONAI T, 1954, JAPANESE PSYCHOLOGIC, V1, P45
OSGOOD CE, 1952, PSYCHOL REV, V59, P98
OSGOOD CE, 1953, PSYCHOL REV, V60, P211
OYAMA T, 1956, JAPANESE PSYCHOLOGIC, V3, P25
PIAGET J, 1943, ARCH PSYCHOLOGIE, V29, P255
PIAGET J, 1954, ARCH PSYCHOL, V34, P243
PIAGET J, 1956, RIV PSYCHOL, V50, P205
PIAGET J, 1958, AM J PSYCHOL, V71, P277
PIAGET J, 1961, ARCH PSYCHOL GENEVE, V38, P1
PIAGET J, 1961, ARCH PSYCHOL, V38, P23
PIAGET J, 1961, MECHANISMES PERCEPTI
PRENTICE WCH, 1950, J EXP PSYCHOL, V40, P355
RATLIFF F, 1961, SENSORY COMMUNICATIO, CH2
RATLIFF F, 1965, MACH BANDS QUANTITAT
RAUSCH E, 1966, HDB PSYCHOL, V1, P776
RIGGS LA, 1954, J OPT SOC AM, V44, P315
RIGGS LA, 1965, VISION VISION PERCEP, P81
RIGGS LA, 1965, VISION VISUAL PERCEP, P321
RIVERS WHR, 1904, REPORT BRIT ASS ADVE, V74, P749
RIVERS WHR, 1905, BRIT J PSYCHOL 4, V1, P321
ROSENBLITH WA, 1961, SENSORY COMMUNICA ED, CH2
SAGARA M, 1957, PSYCHOL BULL, V54, P327
SCHOLZ W, 1924, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V5, P219
SCHUMANN F, 1900, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V23, P1
SCHUMANN F, 1900, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V24, P1
SCHUMANN F, 1902, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V30, P241
SCHUMANN F, 1902, Z PSYCHOL, V30, P321
SCHUMANN F, 1904, Z PSYCHOL, V36, P161
SMITH K, 1952, PSYCHOL REV, V59, P401
SMITH K, 1954, AM J PSYCHOL, V67, P174
SPILLMANN L, 1963, THESIS MUNSTER
SPITZ HH, 1958, PSYCHOL B, V55, P1
STADLER M, IN PRESS
TAKALA M, 1951, ANN ACAD SCIENT FE B, V72, P2
TAMPIERI G, 1955, RIV PSICOL, V49, P3
TAYLOR MM, 1962, CAN J PSYCHOL, V16, P247
UCHIYAMA M, 1957, JAP J PSYCHOL, V28, P149
UCHIYAMA M, 1957, JAP J PSYCHOL, V28, P185
VONHELMOLTZ H, 1966, HANDBUCH PHYSIOLOGIS
VONWITTICH WH, 1863, ARCH OPHTHALMOL-CHIC, V9, P1
WEITZ J, 1948, AM J PSYCHOL, V61, P59
WEITZ J, 1950, AM J PSYCHOL, V63, P78
WERTHEIMER M, 1912, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V61, P161
WERTHEIMER M, 1954, AM J PSYCHOL, V67, P543
WITTE W, 1961, PSYCHOL BEITR, V6, P451
YOKOSE Z, 1953, JAP J PSYCHOL, V23, P235
YOKOSE Z, 1957, JAP J PSYCHOL, V28, P10
YOKOSE Z, 1957, JAP J PSYCHOL, V28, P63
YOSHIDA T, 1955, 19 ANN M JPA
NR 126
TC 6
PU SPRINGER VERLAG
PI NEW YORK
PA 175 FIFTH AVE, NEW YORK, NY 10010
J9 PSYCHOL FORSCH
PY 1967
VL 31
IS 2
BP 63
EP 63
PG 1
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA A3759
UT ISI:A1967A375900001
ER

PT J
AU Titchener, EB
TI Functional psychology and the psychology of act II
SO AMERICAN JOURNAL OF PSYCHOLOGY
LA English
DT Review
CR ACT BEWUSSTSEINS, P296
ACT INTERESSES, P263
ACT LIEBE, P322
ACT LIEBE, P330
ACT VORSTELLENS, P103
ACT VORSTELLENS, P230
BERICHT, P399
BERICHT, P524
BERICHT, V398
BERICHT, V398, P524
BERICHT, V400
BERICHT, V400, P524
BILDBEWUSSTSEIN PSYC, V138
EINTEILUNG, P26
EINTEILUNG, P32
EINTEILUNG, P6
EMPF DENKEN, P138
EMPF DENKEN, P24
EMPF DENKEN, P25
EMPF DENKEN, P60
EMPF DENKEN, V45, P19
ERSCHEINUNGEN, P16
ERSCHEINUNGEN, P23
ERSCHEINUNGEN, P24
ERSCHEINUNGEN, P26
ERSCHEINUNGEN, P39
ERSCHEINUNGEN, P4
ERSCHEINUNGEN, P5
ERSCHEINUNGEN, P6
ERSCHEINUNGEN, P7
ERSCHEINUNGEN, P8
ERSCHEINUNGEN, V15, P11
ERSCHEINUNGEN, V17
ERSCHEINUNGEN, V23, P16
ERSCHEINUNGEN, V25
ERSCHEINUNGEN, V27, P38
ERSCHEINUNGEN, V7, P38
GEBILDE PSYCH FUNKTI, P28
GEFUHLSACT, P189
IDEEN, V104
IDEEN, V11
IDEEN, V113
IDEEN, V114, P7
IDEEN, V143
IDEEN, V168, P174
IDEEN, V170
IDEEN, V172, P168
IDEEN, V3, P46
IDEEN, V3, P48
IDEEN, V4, P7
IDEEN, V43
IDEEN, V8, P3
IDEEN, V8, P69
IDEEN, V94, P120
IDEEN, V94, P121
IDEEN, V94, P182
IDEEN, V94, P57
LOG UNT, P340
LOG UNT, V2
LOG UNT, V2, P386
LOG UNT, V2, P428
LOG UNT, V2, P447
LOG UNT, V2, P449
LOG UNT, V2, P458
LOG UNT, V323
LOG UNT, V331
LOG UNT, V339
LOG UNT, V342
LOG UNT, V345
LOG UNT, V349
LOG UNT, V357
LOG UNT, V362
LOG UNT, V374, P386
LOG UNT, V388
LOG UNT, V458
LOG UNTERSUCHUNGEN, V2, P18
LOG UNTERSUCHUNGEN, V2, P325
LOG UNTERSUCHUNGEN, V2, P338
LOG UNTERSUCHUNGEN, V350, P354
LOG UNTERSUCHUNGEN, V366, P338
PES, P115
PES, P162
PES, P188
PES, P202
PES, V260, P233
PHILOS, V302, P298
PHILOS, V315, P298
PHILOSOPHIC, P315
PHILOSOPHIE, P314
PHILOSOPHIE, V298, P312
PHILOSOPHIE, V302
PHILOSOPHIE, V303
PHILOSOPHIE, V313
PHILOSOPHIE, V315
PSYCHOL, P202
PSYCHOL, V139
PSYCHOL, V155, P175
PSYCHOL, V191
PSYCHOL, V202
PSYCHOL, V202, P175
PSYCHOL, V202, P180
PSYCHOL, V204, P138
PSYCHOL, V207
PSYCHOL, V207, P212
PSYCHOL, V208, P138
PSYCHOL, V208, P212
PSYCHOL, V209
PSYCHOL, V211, P212
PSYCHOL, V212
PSYCHOL, V214
PSYCHOL, V216
PSYCHOL, V219, P212
PSYCHOL, V220, P212
PSYCHOL, V254, P303
PSYCHOL, V256, P303
PSYCHOL, V27
PSYCHOL, V276, P303
PSYCHOL, V296
PSYCHOL, V303, P303
PSYCHOL, V305, P303
PSYCHOL, V311, P303
PSYCHOL, V346
PSYCHOL, V48, P180
PSYCHOL, V53
PSYCHOL, V65
PSYCHOL, V66
PSYCHOL, V66, P74
THOUGHT PROCESSES, P60
UEBER ANNAHMEN, P285
VORSTELLUNGSACT, P231
VORSTELLUNGSACT, P347
WEISE BEWUSSISEINS, P266
WEISE BEWUSSISEINS, P295
WEISE BEWUSSISEINS, P345
1883, TONPSYCHOL, V1, P68
1890, LOGIK, P7
1890, TONPSYCHOL, V2, P279
1891, PHILOS ARITHMETIK
1894, LEHRBUCH ALLGEMEINEN, P148
1894, LEHRBUCH ALLGEMEINEN, V202, P148
1894, LEHRBUCH ALLGEMEINEN, V48, P148
1894, LEHRBUCH ALLGEMEINEN, V74, P148
1894, MIND, V3, P143
1895, PHILOS MIND, P300
1897, PSYCHOLOGIE, P3
1900, GRUNDZUGE, V1, P72
1903, ARCH SYSTEM PHILOS, V9, P114
1905, ATTI V C INT PSICOLO, V327
1905, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, P1
1905, SITZUNGSBER KGL BAYE, P511
1906, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V40, P40
1906, UEBER ERFAHRUNGSGRUN, P60
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V1, P693
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V11, P26
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V12, P25
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V12, P693
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V13, P25
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V14, P28
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V16, P693
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V20, P693
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V21, P21
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V22, P141
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V22, P144
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V22, P21
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V22, P25
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V22, P693
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V23, P14
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V23, P21
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V23, P261
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V23, P34
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V23, P693
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V25, P25
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V26, P149
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V26, P693
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V263, P21
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V27, P693
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V296, P21
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V30, P26
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V31, P189
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V31, P26
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V31, P32
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V32, P21
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V33, P189
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V33, P21
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V34, P189
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V39, P21
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V39, P28
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V40, P314
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V40, P37
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V42, P21
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V6, P21
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V7, P693
1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V8, P25
1908, FEELING ATTENTION, P171
1909, LEITFADEN, P141
1909, LEITFADEN, P78
1909, THOUGHT PROCESSES, P224
1910, WORTERBUCH PHILOS BE, V5
1911, KLASSIFIKATION PSYCH, V4
1911, PSYCHOLOGIE
1913, THOUGHT PROCESSES, P125
1914, ARCH GES PSYCH, V32, P54
1914, PSYCHOLOGIE
1921, AM J PSYCHOL, V32, P108
1921, AM J PSYCHOL, V32, P110
1921, AM J PSYCHOL, V32, P112
1921, AM J PSYCHOL, V32, P119
ACH N, 1905, UEBER WILLENSTATIGKE, P40
ALEXANDER S, 1910, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, V10, P1
ALEXANDER S, 1911, BRIT J PSYCHIAT, V4, P243
AMESEDER R, 1904, UNTERSUNHUNGEN GEGEN, P93
ANSCHUTZ G, 1914, ARCH PSYCHOL, V30, P240
ANSCHUTZ G, 1914, ARCH PSYCHOL, V30, P329
ANSCHUTZ G, 1915, ARCH GES PSYCH, V34, P13
BRENTANO, PES, P103
BRENTANO, PES, P190
BRENTANO, PES, P260
BRENTANO, PES, P277
BRENTANO, 1883, TONPSYCHOL, V1, P96
EISLER R, PES, V132, R5
GEYSER J, 1912, LEHRBUCH ALLG PSYCH, P224
GEYSER J, 1912, LEHRBUCH ALLG PSYCH, P306
GEYSER J, 1912, LEHRBUCH ALLG PSYCH, P49
GEYSER, LEHRBUCH, P263
HOFLER A, 1907, PSYCHOLOGIE, P210
HOFMANN H, 1913, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V26, P1
HUSSERL E, 1901, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN, V2, P344
HUSSERL E, 1901, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN, V2, P358
HUSSERL E, 1910, PHILOS ALS STRENGE W, V1, P315
HUSSERL E, 1910, PHILOS ALS STRENGE W, V5, P121
HUSSERL E, 1910, PHILOS ALS STRENGE W, V5, P290
HUSSERL E, 1913, JB PHILOS PANOMEN FO, V1, P184
HUSSERL, IDEEN, P172
HUSSERL, IDEEN, P224
HUSSERL, IDEEN, P228
HUSSERL, IDEEN, P239
HUSSERL, IDEEN, P247
HUSSERL, IDEEN, V172
HUSSERL, LOG UNT, V11, P369
HUSSERL, LOG UNT, V11, P373
HUSSERL, LOG UNT, V2
HUSSERL, LOG UNT, V2, P245
HUSSERL, LOG UNT, V2, P371
HUSSERL, LOG UNT, V2, P372
HUSSERL, LOG UNT, V2, P386
HUSSERL, LOG UNT, V2, P427
HUSSERL, LOG UNT, V2, P463
HUSSERL, LOG UNT, V2, P471
HUSSERL, LOG UNT, V2, P560
HUSSERL, LOG UNT, V2, P68
HUSSERL, LOG UNT, V2, P714
HUSSERL, LOG UNT, V375, P386
HUSSERL, LOG UNT, V378, P386
KOFFKA K, 1912, ANAL VORSTELLUNGEN I, P270
KULPE O, 1920, VORLESUNGEN PSYCHOL, V22
KULPE, 1892, PHILOS STUDIEN, V7, P405
KULPE, 1893, GRUNDISS PSYCHOL, P27
LIPPS T, 1903, LEITFADEN PSYCHOL, V139, P353
LIPPS T, 1905, SITZUNGSBER KGL BAYE, P516
LIPPS T, 1905, SITZUNGSBER KGL BAYE, P521
LIPPS T, 1909, LEITFADEN PSYCHOL, V1
LIPPS, ERSCH, P27
LIPPS, ERSCH, P30
LIPPS, 1903, LEITFADEN, P20
LIPPS, 1903, LEITFADEN, V2
LIPPS, 1909, LEITFADEN PSYCHOL, P15
LIPPS, 1909, LEITFADEN, P1
LIPPS, 1909, LEITFADEN, P142
LIPPS, 1909, LEITFADEN, P15
LIPPS, 1909, LEITFADEN, P16
LIPPS, 1909, LEITFADEN, P161
LIPPS, 1909, LEITFADEN, P164
LIPPS, 1909, LEITFADEN, P20
LIPPS, 1909, LEITFADEN, P241
LIPPS, 1909, LEITFADEN, P258
LIPPS, 1909, LEITFADEN, P301
LIPPS, 1909, LEITFADEN, P336
LIPPS, 1909, LEITFADEN, P341
LIPPS, 1909, LEITFADEN, P79
M OFFNER, GEDACHTNIS
MARBE K, 1901, EXPT PSYCHOL UNTERSU, P92
MEINONG A, 1899, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V21, P185
MEINONG A, 1899, Z PSYCHOL, V21, P187
MEINONG A, 1899, Z PSYCHOL, V21, P198
MEINONG A, 1903, Z PSYCHOL, V33, P3
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUNHUNGEN GEGEN, P14
MEINONG, 1902, UEBER ANNAHMEN, P145
MEINONG, 1902, UEBER ANNAHMEN, P266
MEINONG, 1902, UEBER ANNAHMEN, P276
MESSER A, PSYCHOLOGIE, P27
MESSER A, PSYCHOLOGIE, P32
MESSER A, PSYCHOLOGIE, V138, P127
MESSER A, PSYCHOLOGIE, V146, P127
MESSER A, PSYCHOLOGIE, V55, P127
MESSER A, PSYCHOLOGIE, V73, P127
MESSER A, 1906, ARCH GES PSYCH, V8, P207
MESSER A, 1908, EMPFINDUNG DENKEN, V43
MESSER, EMPF DENKEN, P53
MESSER, EMPFINDUNG DENKEN, V45
MESSER, EMPFINDUNG DENKEN, V47
MESSER, EMPFINDUNG DENKEN, V74
MESSER, PSYCHOL, P127
MESSER, PSYCHOL, V149, P175
MESSER, PSYCHOL, V203
MESSER, PSYCHOL, V255
MESSER, PSYCHOL, V276
MESSER, PSYCHOL, V48
MESSER, 1908, EMPF DENKEN
MESSER, 1912, ARCH GES PSYCH, V24, P250
MESSER, 1912, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V22, P117
MESSER, 1914, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V32, P52
MULLER GE, 1911, ANAL GEDACHTNISTATIG, V1, P147
MULLER GE, 1913, ANAL GEDACHNISTATIGK, V3, P545
MULLER GE, 1913, ANAL GEDACHTNISTATIG, V3, P542
MUNSTERBERG H, 1900, GRUNDZUGE PSYCH, V1, P309
MUNSTERBERG H, 1900, GRUNDZUGE PSYCHOL, V1, P19
MUNSTERBERG H, 1914, PSYCHOL SOCIAL SANIT, P291
NATORP P, 1912, ALLGEMEINE PSYCHOL, V1, P24
NATORP P, 1912, ALLGEMEINE PSYCHOL, V1, P33
PFANDER A, 1904, EINFUHRUNG PSYCHOL, P272
PFANDER A, 1904, EINFUHRUNG PSYCHOL, P354
REYBURN HA, 1919, MIND, V28, P19
RIBOT T, 1910, REV PHIL, V69, P650
ROBINSON A, 1918, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, V18, P271
STOKES GG, 1870, 39 M BRIT ASS ADV SC, V105
STOUT GF, 1899, MANUAL PSYCHOL, P56
STOUT GF, 1899, MANUAL PSYCHOL, P68
STOUT, 1899, MANUAL, P247
STOUT, 1899, MANUAL, P581
STOUT, 1907, MANUAL, P257
STOUT, 1907, MANUAL, P599
STOUT, 1913, MANUAL, P210
STOUT, 1913, MANUAL, P367
STOUT, 1913, MANUAL, P704
STUMF C, 1907, ERSCHEINUNGEN PSYCHI, P6
STUMPF C, 1907, EINTEILUNG WISSENSCH, P5
STUMPF C, 1907, Z PSYCHOL, V44, P22
STUMPF C, 1916, Z PSYCHOL, V75, P3
STUMPF C, 1916, Z PSYCHOL, V75, P32
STUMPF, EMPF DENKEN, V23
STUMPF, ERSCH, P16
STUMPF, ERSCH, P22
STUMPF, ERSCH, P26
STUMPF, ERSCH, P30
STUMPF, ERSCH, P33
STUMPF, ERSCH, P4
STUMPF, ERSCH, P7
STUMPF, ERSCH, V11, P17
STUMPF, ERSCH, V4, P23
STUMPF, TONPSYCH
STUMPF, 1897, C PSYCHOL, P7
STUMPF, 1907, ERSCHEINUNGEN, P11
STUMPF, 1907, ERSCHEINUNGEN, P25
STUMPF, 1907, ERSCHEINUNGEN, P34
STUMPF, 1909, LEITFADEN, P103
STUMPF, 1909, LEITFADEN, P98
TAIT PG, 1885, LECT RECENT ADV PHYS, P26
THOMSON JA, 1911, INTRO SCI, P105
WATSON JB, 1914, BEHAVIOR INTRO COMP, P8
WATSON, 1914, P AM PHILOS SOC, V53
WITASEK S, 1908, GRUNDLINIEN PSYCHOL, P280
WITASEK S, 1908, GRUNDLINIEN PSYCHOL, P318
WITASEK S, 1908, GRUNDLINIEN PSYCHOL, P73
WITASEK S, 1908, GRUNDLINIEN PSYCHOL, V74, P3
WITASEK, GRUNDLINIEN, P297
WITASEK, 1908, GRUNDLINIEN PSYCHOL, V75
WUNDT, KLEINE SCHRIFTEN, V1, P511
WUNDT, PHYSL PSYCH
WUNDT, 1910, KLEINE SCHRIFTEN, V1, P570
NR 369
TC 6
PU UNIV ILLINOIS PRESS
PI CHAMPAIGN
PA 1325 S OAK ST, CHAMPAIGN, IL 61820 USA
SN 0002-9556
J9 AMER J PSYCHOL
JI Am. J. Psychol.
PY 1922
VL 33
BP 43
EP 83
PG 41
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V01XT
UT ISI:000200129300003
ER

PT J
AU Fisher, SC
AF Fisher, Sara Carolyn
TI I. INTRODUCTION
SO PSYCHOLOGICAL MONOGRAPHS
LA English
DT Article
CR AQUINAS T, 1225, SUMMA THEOLOGICA, V2
ARISTOTLE, 1907, ANIMA
ARNAULD A, 1662, PORT ROYAL LOGIC
AVELING F, 1912, CONSCIOUSNESS UNIVER
BAGLEY WC, 1900, AM J PSYCHOL, V12, P80
BAIN A, 1884, MENTAL SCI
BAIN A, 1894, SENSES INTELLECT
BALDWIN JM, 1890, HDB PSYCHOOL
BALDWIN JM, 1906, THOUGHT THINGS GENET
BERGSON H, 1912, MATTER MEMORY
BERKELEY G, 1901, PRINCIPLES HUMAN KNO, V1
BETZ W, 1911, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V20, P186
BINET A, 1903, ETUDE EXPT INTELLIGE, P309
BROWN T, 1846, LECT PHILOS HUMAN MI
BUHLER K, 1907, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V9, P298
CAMPBELL G, 1873, PHILOS RHETORIC
CORNELIUS H, 1897, PSYCHOL ERFAHRUNGSWI
CORNELIUS H, 1900, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V22, P101
CORNELIUS H, 1900, Z PSYCHOL, V24, P117
DEWEY J, 1902, BALDWINS DICT PHIL P, V2, P421
DEWEY J, 1910, WE THINK
DURR E, 1910, ERKENNTNISTHEORIE
EBBINGHAUS H, 1908, ABRISS PSYCHOL
EBBINGHAUS H, 1911, GRUNDZUGE PSYCHOL
EISLER R, 1910, WORTERBUCH PHILOS BE
ELSENHANS T, 1912, LEHRBUCH PSYCHOL
ERDMANN B, 1907, LOGIK
FRANCIS G, 1883, INQUIRIES HUMAN FACU
GALTON F, 1879, P ROYAL I GREAT BRIT, P161
GORE WC, 1903, U CHICAGO DECENN PUB, V11, P184
GRUNBAUM AA, 1908, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V12, P340
HAMILTON W, 1874, LECT LOGIC METAPHYSI
HAMILTON W, 1877, LECT LOGIC METAPHYSI
HENDERSON AA, 1903, PSYCHOL REV MON S, V5
HERBART JF, 1834, LEHRBUCH PSYCHOL
HOBBES T, 1640, WORKS
HOBBES T, 1651, WORKS
HOBHOUSE LT, 1901, MIND EVOLUTION
HOFFDING H, 1893, OUTLINES PSYCHOL
HUME D, 1896, TREATISE HUMAN NATUR
HUXLEY TH, 1895, D HUME, P208
JACOBSON E, 1911, AM J PSYCHOL, V22, P553
JAMES W, 1890, PRINCIPLES PSYCHOL
JAMES W, 1911, SOME PROBLEMS PHILOS
JONES EE, 1892, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, V2, P108
KAKISE H, 1911, AM J PSYCHOL, V22, P14
KOSTYLEFF N, 1906, SUBSTITUTES AME PSYC
KOSTYLEFF N, 1914, MECANISME CEREBRAL P, P313
KULPE O, 1904, 1 K EXP PSYCH, P56
LAROMIGUIERE, 1756, LECONS PHILOS, P340
LIPPS T, 1903, LEITFADEN PSYCHOL
LOCKE J, 1690, ESSAY CONCERNING HUM
LOCKE J, 1894, ESSAY CONCERNING HUM
MACH E, 1903, ANAL EMPFINDUNG
MALLY E, 1900, ARCH SYST PHIL, V6, P291
MEINONG A, 1877, 1 BER WIEN AKAD PH, P193
MEINONG A, 1900, Z PSYCHOL, V24, P34
MESSER A, 1906, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V8, P1
MILL J, 1896, ANAL PHENOMENA HUMAN
MILL JS, 1878, EXAMINATION W HAMILT
MILLER DS, 1895, PSYCHOL REV, V2, P535
MITTENZWEI K, 1907, PSYCHOL STUD, V2, P358
MOORE TV, 1910, U CALIFORNIA PUBS PS, V1, P124
MULLERFREIENFEL.R, 1913, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V27, P381
MULLERFREIENFEL.R, 1913, Z PSYCHOL, V64, P386
MULLERFREIENFEL.R, 1914, Z PSYCHOL, V68, P237
NARZISS A, 1905, UEBER WILLENSTATIGKE
PAULHAN F, 1889, REV PHIL, V27, P171
PAULHAN F, 1889, REV PHIL, V27, P26
PAULHAN F, 1889, REV PHIL, V27, P545
PAULHAN F, 1889, REV PHIL, V28, P69
PILLSBURY WB, 1910, PSYCHOL REASONING
RAHN C, 1914, PSYCHOL REV MON S, V16
RIBOT T, 1891, REV PHILOS, V32, P376
RIBOT T, 1899, EVOLUTION GEN IDEAS
RIBOT T, 1906, ESSAY CREATIVE IMAGI
ROYCE J, 1902, PSYCHOL REV, V9, P105
ROYCE J, 1903, OUTLINES PSYCHOL
SCHUMANN F, 1898, Z PSYCHOL, V17, P106
SCHWIETE F, 1910, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V19, P475
STEWART D, 1792, ELEMENTS PHILOS HUMA, V2
STORRING G, 1902, PHILOS STUD, V20, P323
SULLY J, 1896, HUMAN MIND
SUTHERLAND A, 1913, CRITIQUE WORD ASS RE
TAINE H, 1889, INTELLIGENCE
TAYLOR CO, 1906, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V40, P225
TITCHENER EB, 1909, LECT ELEMENTARY PSYC
VOLKMANN W, 1884, LEHRBUCH PSYCHOL
WATT HJ, 1905, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V4, P289
WUNDT W, 1894, LECT HUMAN ANIMAL PS
WUNDT W, 1906, LOGIK
WUNDT W, 1910, GRUNDZUGE PHYSL PSYC
WUNDT W, 1911, GRUNDRISS PSYCHOL
ZIEHEN T, 1892, INTRO PHYSL PSYCHOL
NR 94
TC 6
PU AMER PSYCHOLOGICAL ASSOC
PI WASHINGTON
PA 750 FIRST ST NE, WASHINGTON, DC 20002-4242 USA
SN 0096-9753
J9 PSYCHOL MONOGRAPHS
JI Psychol. Monogr.
PD APR
PY 1916
VL 21
IS 2
BP 1
EP 213
PG 213
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V95PH
UT ISI:000206461700001
ER

PT J
AU Benussi, V
AF Benussi, Vittorio
TI For the experimental analysis of the time comparison
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Article
CR Z PSYCH, V30, P241
Z PSYCH, V41
Z PSYCH, V42, P449
Z PSYCHOL, V17, P253
1907, STELLUNG GEGENSTANDS, P28
AUSSERDEM, Z PSYCH, V42, P302
AUSSERDEM, Z PSYCH, V42, P414
KATZ, Z PSYCH, V42, P325
MEINONG A, Z PSYCH, V42, P22
MEINONG A, Z PSYCH, V45, P188
MEINONG A, Z PSYCH, V45, P215
MEUMANN, PHILOS STUD, V12, P128
MEUMANN, PHILOS STUD, V8, P456
MEUMANN, PHILOS STUD, V9, P266
MULLER GE, GESICHTSPUNKTE TATSA, P113
SCHUMANN, Z PSYCH, V23, P1
NR 16
TC 6
SN 0724-7842
J9 ARCG GESAMTE PSYCHOL
JI Archiv. Gesamte Psychol.
PD JUL 30
PY 1907
VL 9
IS 4
BP 366
EP 449
PG 84
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V98CQ
UT ISI:000206631600002
ER

PT J
AU Shafer, G
Vovk, V
TI The sources of Kolmogorov's Grundbegriffe
SO STATISTICAL SCIENCE
LA English
DT Review
DE axioms for probability; Borel; classical probability; Cournot's principle; frequentism; Grundbegriffe der Wahrscheinlichkeitsrechnung; history of probability; Kolmogorov; measure theory
ID PROBABILITY-CALCULATIONS; SOVIET-UNION; MATHEMATICS; FOUNDATIONS; HISTORY; SERIES; SIZES; WORK
AB Andrei Kolmogorov's Grundbegriffe der Wahrscheinlichkeitsrechnung put probability's modem mathematical formalism in place. It also provided a philosophy of probability-an explanation of how the formalism can be connected to the world of experience. In this article, we examine the sources of these two aspects of the Grundbegriffe-the work of the earlier scholars whose ideas Kolmogorov synthesized.
C1 Rutgers State Univ, Sch Business, Newark, NJ 07102 USA.
Univ London, Royal Holloway, Egham TW20 0EX, Surrey, England.
RP Shafer, G, Rutgers State Univ, Sch Business, Newark, NJ 07102 USA.
EM gshafer@andromeda.rutgers.edu
vovk@cs.rhul.ac.uk
CR ANDERSEN ES, 1948, KONGELIGE DANSKE VID, V25
BACHELIER L, 1900, ANN SCI ECOLE NORM S, V17, P21
BACHELIER L, 1910, ANN SCI ECOLE NORM, V27, P339
BACHELIER L, 1912, CALCUL PROBABILITES
BARONE J, 1978, ARCH HIST EXACT SCI, V18, P123
BARTLETT MS, 1949, DIALECTICA, V3, P104
BAYER R, 1951, C INT PHIL SCI PAR 1, V4
BERNOULLI J, 1713, ARS CONJECTANDI
BERNSTEIN F, 1912, MATH ANN, V71, P417
BERNSTEIN SN, 1917, COMMUNICATIONS KHARK, V15, P209
BERNSTEIN SN, 1946, THEORY PROBABILITY
BERTRAND J, 1907, CALCUL PROBABILITES
BLACKWELL D, 1956, P 3 BERK S MATH STAT, V2, P1
BLUM A, 2003, ANARCHIE BUREAUCRATI
BOHLMANN G, 1901, ENCY MATH WISSENSCHA, V1, P852
BOREL E, 1895, ANN SCI ECOLE NORM S, V12, P9
BOREL E, 1897, ACTA MATH, V20, P243
BOREL E, 1898, LECONS THEORIE FONCT
BOREL E, 1905, B SOC MATH FRANCE, V33, P123
BOREL E, 1906, REV MOIS, V1, P424
BOREL E, 1909, RENDICONTI CIRCOLO M, V27, P247
BOREL E, 1912, NOTICE TRAVAUX SCI
BOREL E, 1930, CR HEBD ACAD SCI, V190, P537
BOREL E, 1939, VALEUR PRATIQUE PHIL
BOREL E, 1965, ELEMENTS THEORY PROB
BOREL E, 1972, OEUVRES E BOREL
BOURBAKI N, 1994, ELEMENTS HIST MATH
BROGGI U, 2007, THESIS U GOTTINGEN
BRU B, 2001, STAT CENTURIES, P287
BRU B, 2003, J SOC FRANCAISE STAT, V144, P134
BRUNS H, 1906, WAHRSCHEINLICHKEITSR
BUFFON GL, 1777, HIST NATURELLE S, V4, P46
CANTELLI FP, 1916, ATTI REALE ACCADE SF, V11, P329
CANTELLI FP, 1916, RENDICONTI CIRCOLO M, V41, P191
CANTELLI FP, 1917, ATTI REALE ACCADEM 5, V26, P39
CANTELLI FP, 1932, GIORNALE I ITALIANO, V3, P257
CANTELLI FP, 1935, ANN I H POINCARE, V5, P3
CANTELLI FP, 1958, ALCUNE MEMORIE MATEM
CARATHEODORY C, 1914, NACHR AKAD WISS G MP, V4, P404
CARATHEODORY C, 1927, VORLESUNGEN REELLE F
CASTELNUOVO G, 1948, CALCOLO PROBABILITA
CHUPROV AA, 1910, ESSAYS THEORY STAT
CHURCH A, 1940, B AM MATH SOC, V46, P130
CIFARELLI DM, 1996, STAT SCI, V11, P253
COPELAND AH, 1932, ANN MATH STAT, V3, P143
COURNOT AA, 1843, EXPOSITION THEORIE C
COURNOT AA, 1973, OEUVRES COMPLETES
CZUBER E, 1914, WAHRSCHEINLICHKEITSR
DALEMBERT J, 1761, OPUSCULES MATH, V2, P1
DALEMBERT J, 1767, MELANGES LIT HIST PH, V5, P275
DANIELL PJ, 1918, ANN MATH, V19, P279
DANIELL PJ, 1919, ANN MATH, V20, P281
DANIELL PJ, 1919, ANN MATH, V21, P30
DANIELL PJ, 1920, ANN MATH, V21, P203
DANIELL PJ, 1921, AM J MATH, V43, P143
DASTON L, 1994, HIST MATH, V21, P330
DASTON LJ, 1979, HIST MATH, V6, P259
DEFINETTI B, 1930, REND REALE I LOMBARD, V63, P1063
DEFINETTI B, 1930, REND REALE I LOMBARD, V63, P901
DEFINETTI B, 1939, ACTUALITES SCI IND, V766
DEMOIVRE A, 1756, DOCTRINE CHANCES MET
DIEUDONNE J, 1948, ANN I FOURIER GRENOB, V23, P25
DOOB JL, 1953, STOCHASTIC PROCESSES
DOOB JL, 1989, ANN PROBAB, V17, P815
DOOB JL, 1994, AM MATH MONTHLY, V103, P586
DORGE K, 1930, MATH Z, V32, P232
ELLIS RL, 1949, T CAMBRIDGE PHILOS S, V8, P1
FABER G, 1910, MATH ANN, V69, P372
FECHNER GT, 1897, KOLLEKTIVMASSLEHRE
FRECHET M, 1915, B SOC MATH FRANCE, V43, P248
FRECHET M, 1915, CR HEBD ACAD SCI, V160, P839
FRECHET M, 1924, CALCUL PROBABILITES
FRECHET M, 1930, RENDICONTI REALE I L, V63, P1059
FRECHET M, 1930, RENDICONTI REALE I L, V63, P899
FRECHET M, 1937, RECHERCHES THEORIQUE
FRECHET M, 1938, ACTUAL SCI IND, V735, P23
FRECHET M, 1950, GEN PROBABILITES VAR
FRECHET M, 1952, METHODE FONCTIONS AR, V2
GNEDENKO BV, 1948, 30 YEARS SOVIET MATH, P701
GNEDENKO BV, 1954, LIMIT DISTRIBUTIONS
HABERMAN SJ, 1996, ADV STAT, V1
HADAMARD J, 1922, REV METAPHYS MORALE, V39, P289
HADAMARD J, 1968, OEUVRES J HADAMARD, V4, P2161
HAUSDORFF F, 1901, SITZUNGSBER KONIG MP, V53, P152
HAUSDORFF F, 1914, GRUNDZUGE MENGENLEHR
HAWKINS T, 1975, LEBESGUES THEORY INT
HELM G, 1902, ANN NATURPHILOSOPHIE, V1, P364
HILBERT D, 1902, B AM MATH SOC, V8, P437
HOCHKIRCHEN T, 1999, AXIOMATISIERUNG WAHR
HOLGATE P, 1997, BIOMETRIKA, V84, P161
JEFFREYS H, 1973, SCI INFERENCE
JESSEN B, 1930, 7 SKAND MAT OSL AUG, P127
JESSEN B, 1935, J MATH PHYS MASS I T, V14, P24
JOHNSON NL, 1997, LEADING PERSONALITIE
KAMLAH A, 1983, ERKENNTNIS, V19, P239
KEYNES JM, 1921, TREATISE PROBABILITY
KHINCHIN AY, 1925, SB MATH+, V32, P668
KHINCHIN AY, 1929, USP FIZ NAUK, V9, P141
KHINCHIN AY, 1961, QUESTIONS PHILOS, V15, P77
KHINCHIN AY, 1961, QUESTIONS PHILOS, V15, P91
KNOBLOCH E, 2001, PROBABILITY THEORY P, P71
KOLMOGOROFF A, 1928, MATH ANN, V99, P309
KOLMOGOROFF A, 1930, MATH ANN, V102, P484
KOLMOGOROFF A, 1931, MATH ANN, V104, P415
KOLMOGOROV AN, 1929, COLLECTED WORKS MATH, V1, P8
KOLMOGOROV AN, 1939, COMMUNICATION
KOLMOGOROV AN, 1948, RUSS MATH SURV, V3, P142
KOLMOGOROV AN, 1965, MATH ITS CONTENT MET, V2, P229
KOLMOGOROV AN, 1986, UZBRANNIE TRUDI TEOR
KOLMOGOROV AN, 1992, SELECTED WORKS AN KO, V2
KOLMOGOROV AN, 1998, GRUNDBEGRIFFE WAHRSC
KOLMOGOROV AN, 2000, PLEN SESS REV TALKS, V1, P165
LAEMMEL R, 1904, THESIS U ZURICH
LEBESGUE H, 1901, CR HEBD ACAD SCI, V132, P1025
LEBESGUE H, 1928, LECONS INTEGRATION R
LEVY P, 1925, CALCUL PROBABILITES
LEVY P, 1954, THEORIE ADDITION VAR
LEVY P, 1959, CR HEBD ACAD SCI, V248, P181
LEVY P, 1973, OEUVRES P LEVY
LOMNICKI A, 1923, FUND MATH, V4, P34
LOMNICKI Z, 1934, FUND MATH, V23, P237
LORENTZ GG, 2002, J APPROX THEORY, V116, P169
LOVELAND J, 2001, ARCH HIST EXACT SCI, V55, P465
MACLANE S, 1995, NOT AM MATH SOC, V42, P1134
MAISTROV LE, 1974, PROBABILITY THEORY H
MARKOV AA, 1912, WAHRSCHEINLICHKEITSR
MARKOV AA, 1924, CALCULUS PROBABILITY
MARTIN T, 1996, PROBABILITES CRITIQU
MARTIN T, 1998, ANN LIT U FRANCHE CO
MARTIN T, 2003, PROBABILTES SUBJECTI, P119
MASANI PR, 1990, N WIENER 1894 1964
MAZLIAK L, 2003, AN KOLMOGOROV 1903 1
MEINONG A, 1915, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
MORRISON N, 1956, FDN THEORY PROBABILI
NIKODYM O, 1930, FUND MATH, V15, P131
ONDAR KO, 1981, CORRES AA MARKOV AA
ONICESCU O, 1967, S INT GEOM ALG ROM 3, R37
PIER JP, 1994, DEV MATH 1900 1950
POINCARE H, 1890, ACTA MATH, V13, P1
POINCARE H, 1896, CALCUL PROBABILTES L
POINCARE H, 1912, CALCUL PROBABILITES
PORTER T, 1986, RISE STAT THINKING 1
RADEMACHER H, 1922, MATH ANN, V87, P112
RADON J, 1913, AKAD WISS EIEN, V122, P1295
REICHENBACH H, 1916, BEGRIFF WAHRSCHEINLI
REICHENBACH H, 1932, MATH Z, V34, P568
ROGERS LCG, 2000, DIFFUSIONS MARKOV PR, V1
SCHNEIDER I, 1988, ENTWICKLUNG WAHRSCHE
SEGAL IE, 1992, BIOGRAPHICAL MEMOIRS, V61, P388
SENETA E, 2004, HIST MATH, V31, P337, DOI 10.1016/S0315-0860(03)00046-6
SHAFER G, 2001, PROBABILITY FINANCE
SHAFER G, 2005, 4 PROB
SHEYNIN O, 1996, AA CHUPROV LIFE WORK
SHEYNIN O, 1998, DTSCH HOCHSCHULSCHRI, V2514
SHEYNIN O, 2000, DTSCH HOCHSCHULSCHRI, V2696
SIEGMUNDSCHULTZ.R, 2004, SCI CONTEXT, V17, P391
SIEGMUNDSCHULTZE R, 2004, SCI CONTEXT, V17, P373
SIERPINSKI W, 1918, B INT ACAD SCI CRA A, P173
SLUTSKII E, 1925, METRON, V5, P3
SLUTSKY E, 1922, B STAT, V12, P13
STEINHAUS H, 1923, FUND MATH, V4, P286
STEINHAUS H, 1930, MATH Z, V31, P408
STEINHAUS H, 1930, STUD MATH, V2, P21
STIGLER SM, 1973, J AM STAT ASSOC, V68, P872
TORNIER E, 1933, ACTA MATH-DJURSHOLM, V60, P239
ULAM S, 1932, VERH INT MATH K ZUR, V2, P118
VENN J, 1888, LOGIC CHANCE
VILLE J, 1939, ETUDE CRITIQUE NOTIO
VONBORTKIEWICZ L, 1901, ENCY MATH WISSENSCHA, V1, P821
VONKRIES J, 1927, PRINCIPIEN WAHRSCHEI
VONMISES R, 1919, MATH Z, V5, P52
VONMISES R, 1931, WAHRSCHEINLICHKEITSR
VONMISES R, 1957, PROBABILITY STAT TRU
VONPLATO J, 1994, CREATING MODERN PROB
VUCINICH A, 2000, HIST MATH, V27, P54
WALD A, 1938, ACTUAL SCI IND, V735, P79
WAVRE R, 1938, C CONS THEOR PROB
WHITTLE P, 2000, PROBABILITY VIA EXPE
WIENER N, 1920, ANN MATH, V22, P66
WIENER N, 1921, P NATL ACAD SCI USA, V7, P253
WIENER N, 1921, P NATL ACAD SCI USA, V7, P294
WIENER N, 1923, J MATH PHYS, V2, P131
WIENER N, 1924, P LOND MATH SOC, V22, P454
WIENER N, 1956, I AM MATH LATER LIFE
WIENER N, 1976, COLLECTED WORKS COMM
WIMAN A, 1901, BEMERKUNG GYLDEN AUF
WIMAN A, 2000, OFVERSIGT KONGLIGA S, V57, P829
NR 187
TC 5
PU INST MATHEMATICAL STATISTICS
PI BEACHWOOD
PA PO BOX 22718, BEACHWOOD, OH 44122 USA
SN 0883-4237
J9 STAT SCI
JI Stat. Sci.
PD FEB
PY 2006
VL 21
IS 1
BP 70
EP 98
DI 10.1214/088342305000000467
PG 29
SC Statistics & Probability
GA 057HF
UT ISI:000238586200009
ER

PT J
AU Goodman, J
TI Where is Sherlock-Holmes? (Spatiotemporal locations of fictional characters)
SO SOUTHERN JOURNAL OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
C1 James Madison Univ, Harrisonburg, VA 22807 USA.
RP Goodman, J, James Madison Univ, Harrisonburg, VA 22807 USA.
CR BURGESS J, 1997, SUBJECT NO OBJECT ST
CHISHOLM R, 1972, A MEINONG GESAMTAUSG
DOYLE AC, ADVENTURES OF SHERLO, IMP
KRIPKE S, UNPUB REFERENCE EXIS
KRIPKE S, 1972, NAMING NECESSITY
LEWIS D, 1978, AM PHILOS Q, V15, P37
MEINONG A, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
PLANTINGA A, 1974, NATURE NECESSITY
QUINE WVO, 1953, LOGICAL POINT VIEW
RUSSELL B, 1990, PHILOS LANGUAGE
SALMON N, 1998, NOUS, V32, P277
THOMASSON A, 1999, FICTION METAPHSYICS
THOMASSON AL, 1996, PHILOS STUD, V84, P295
VANINWAGEN P, 1977, AM PHILOS Q, V14, P299
ZALTA E, 1983, ABSTRACT OBJECTS
NR 16
TC 5
PU SOUTHERN J PHILOSOPHY UNIV MEMPHIS
PI MEMPHIS
PA DEPT PHILOSOPHY, MEMPHIS, TN 38152 USA
SN 0038-4283
J9 SOUTHERN J PHIL
JI South. J. Philos.
PD SUM
PY 2003
VL 41
IS 2
BP 183
EP 197
PG 15
SC Philosophy
GA 693ZT
UT ISI:000183748800003
ER

PT J
AU Reimer, M
TI A 'Meinongian' solution to a Millian problem (Semantic value of proper names)
SO AMERICAN PHILOSOPHICAL QUARTERLY
LA English
DT Article
C1 Univ Arizona, Tucson, AZ 85721 USA.
RP Reimer, M, Univ Arizona, Tucson, AZ 85721 USA.
CR ADAMS F, 1994, MIND LANG, V9, P387
BERTOLET R, 1984, SYNTHESE, V58, P201
BERTOLET R, 1984, SYNTHESE, V60, P413
BRAUN D, 1993, NOUS, V27, P449
DEVITT M, 1981, DESIGNATION
DONNELLAN K, 1966, PHILOS REV, V75, P281
GRICE HP, 1975, LOGIC GRAMMAR
KAPLAN D, 1989, THEMES KAPLAN, P481
KRIPKE S, 1977, MIDWEST STUD PHILOS, V2, P255
KRIPKE S, 1980, NAMING NECESSITY
MARTINICH AP, 1996, PHILOS LANGUAGE
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
MILL JS, 1843, SYSTEM LOGIC
NEALE S, 1990, DESCRIPTIONS
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
QUINE WVO, 1961, LOGICAL POINT VIEW
REIMER M, 2001, IN PRESS AUSTRALASIA
REIMER M, 2001, IN PRESS ELLIPSIS NO
REIMER M, 2001, IN PRESS LOGICLA FOR
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P479
SALMON N, 1986, FREGES PUZZLE
SALMON N, 1998, NOUS, V32, P277
SOAMES S, 1987, PHILOS TOPICS, V15, P47
SOAMES S, 1989, THEMES KAPLAN, P393
STALNAKER R, 1973, J PHILOS LOGIC, V2, P447
STALNAKER R, 1974, SEMANTICS PHILOS
NR 26
TC 5
PU BOWLING GREEN STATE UNIVERSITY
PI BOWLING GREEN
PA PHILOSOPHY DOCUMENT CENTER, BOWLING GREEN, OH 43403 USA
SN 0003-0481
J9 AMER PHIL QUART
JI Am. Philos. Q.
PD JUL
PY 2001
VL 38
IS 3
BP 233
EP 248
PG 16
SC Philosophy
GA 452UD
UT ISI:000169877300001
ER

PT J
AU Hansson, SO
TI Situationist deontic logic
SO JOURNAL OF PHILOSOPHICAL LOGIC
LA English
DT Article
ID OBLIGATION; PREFERENCE
RP Hansson, SO, UNIV UPPSALA,DEPT PHILOSOPHY,S-75236 UPPSALA,SWEDEN.
CR ALCHOURRON CE, 1993, DEONTIC LOGIC COMPUT, P43
AQVIST L, 1967, NOUS, V1, P361
BRANDT RB, 1965, MIND, V73, P374
CASTANEDA HN, 1968, PHILOS STUD, V19, P13
CASTANEDA HN, 1977, J PHILOS, V74, P775
CASTANEDA HN, 1977, J PHILOS, V74, P782
CASTANEDA HN, 1981, NEW STUDIES DEONTIC, P76
CASTANEDA HN, 1989, PHILOS STUD, V57, P1
CHISHOLM RM, 1963, RATIO, V5, P1
CHISHOLM RM, 1966, SYNTHESE, V16, P321
FOLLESDAL D, 1970, DEONTIC LOGIC INTRO, P1
FORRESTER M, 1975, ETHICS, V85, P219
GARCIA JLA, 1986, MIND, V95, P242
GARCIA JLA, 1989, MIND, V98, P277
GIBBARD A, 1978, F APPLICATIONS DECIS, V1, P125
GREENSPAN PS, 1975, J PHILOS, V72, P260
GUENDLING JE, 1974, MODERN SCHOOLMAN, V51, P117
GUPTA RK, 1959, METHODOS, V11, P161
HANSSON SO, 1986, THEORIA, V52, P87
HANSSON SO, 1988, LOGIQUE ANAL, V31, P337
HANSSON SO, 1989, ERKENNTNIS, V31, P1
HANSSON SO, 1990, J PHILOS LOGIC, V19, P75
HANSSON SO, 1990, NOTRE DAME J FORM L, V31, P136
HANSSON SO, 1991, CRITICA, V23, P3
HANSSON SO, 1992, ERKENNTNIS, V37, P401
HANSSON SO, 1996, ARCH RECHTS SOZIALPH, V82, P266
HANSSON SO, 1996, J PHILOS LOGIC, V25, P307
HARMAN G, 1977, NATURE MORALITY
HILPINEN R, 1985, MAN LAW MODERN FORMS, P191
HOURANI GF, 1985, REASON TRADITION ISL
JACKSON F, 1985, MIND, V94, P177
JONES AJI, 1985, SYNTHESE, V65, P275
KANGER S, 1972, THEORIA-SPAIN, V38, P105
LADD J, 1957, STRUCTURE MORAL CODE
LENK H, 1978, THEOR DECIS, V9, P17
MCARTHUR RP, 1981, NOTRE DAME J SYMBOLI, V22, P145
MCLAUGHLIN RN, 1955, MIND, V64, P400
MEINONG A, 1894, PSYCHOL ETHISCHE UNT
MEYER JJC, 1987, LOGIQUE ANAL, V117, P81
MISHALANAI J, 1969, ANALYSIS, V30, P33
MOORE GE, 1903, PRINCIPIA ETHICA
MOORE GE, 1912, ETHICS
PORN I, 1970, LOGIC POWER
POWERS L, 1967, NOUS, V1, P381
PRIOR AN, 1954, MIND, V63, P64
PRIOR AN, 1958, ESSAYS MORAL PHILOS, P135
RAZ J, 1975, AM PHILOS Q, V12, P161
ROBINSON R, 1971, PHILOSOPHY, V46, P193
ROSS A, 1941, THEORIA-SPAIN, V7, P53
ROUTLEY R, 1984, DISCUSSION PAPERS EN, V6, P4
SCHOTCH PK, 1981, NEW STUDIES DEONTIC, P149
SLOMAN A, 1970, MIND, V79, P385
SLOMAN A, 1970, MIND, V79, P391
STEVENSON CL, 1944, ETHICS LANGUAGE
STOCKER M, 1987, PACIFIC PHILOS Q, V68, P104
VERMAZEN B, 1977, PHILOS STUD, V32, P1
VONKUTSCHERA F, 1975, ERKENNTNIS, V9, P195
VONWRIGHT GH, 1951, MIND, V60, P1
VONWRIGHT GH, 1973, RECHTSTHEORIE, V4, P37
WILLIAMS B, 1965, ARISTOTELIAN SOC S, V39, P103
ZIMMERMAN MJ, 1986, PHILOS STUD, V50, P66
ZIMMERMAN MJ, 1987, AM PHIOS Q, V24, P199
NR 62
TC 5
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0022-3611
J9 J PHIL LOGIC
JI J. Philos. Log.
PD AUG
PY 1997
VL 26
IS 4
BP 423
EP 448
PG 26
SC Philosophy
GA XN932
UT ISI:A1997XN93200005
ER

PT J
AU ORILIA, F
TI BELIEF REPRESENTATION IN A DEDUCTIVIST TYPE-FREE DOXASTIC LOGIC
SO MINDS AND MACHINES
LA English
DT Article
DE ARTIFICIAL AGENT; BELIEF; DOXASTIC LOGIC; INTENSIONAL LOGIC; LOGICAL OMNISCIENCE; MULTIAGENT DOMAIN; SEMANTIC REPRESENTATION; TYPE-FREE PROPERTY THEORY
AB Konolige's technical notion of belief based on deduction structures is briefly reviewed and its usefulness for the design of artificial agents with limited representational and deductive capacities is pointed out. The design of artificial agents with more sophisticated representational and deductive capacities is then taken into account. Extended representational capacities require in the first place a solution to the intensional context problems. As an alternative to Konolige's modal first-order language, an approach based on type-free property theory is proposed. It considers often neglected issues, such as the need for a more general account of the de dicto-de re distinction, and quasi-indicators. Extended deductive capacities require a subdivision of Konolige's notion of belief into two distinct technical notions, potential and dispositional belief. The former has to do with what an artificial agent could in principle come to actively believe, given enough time and its specific logical competence; the latter with what an agent can be assumed to believe with respect to a specific goal to be fulfilled.
C1 OLIVETTI MULTIMEDIA LAB,I-56100 PISA,ITALY.
CR BARNDEN JA, 1986, COGNITIVE SCI, V10, P319
BEALER G, 1982, QUALITY CONCEPT
BELNAP N, IN PRESS REVISION TH
BODEN M, 1980, J PIAGET
BOER SE, 1986, KNOWING WHO
CASTANEDA HN, 1967, AM PHILOS Q, V4, P85
CASTANEDA HN, 1974, PHILOSOPHIA, V4, P3
CASTANEDA HN, 1975, THINKING DOING
CASTANEDA HN, 1977, SYNTHESE, V35, P285
CASTANEDA HN, 1977, THEORIA, V42, P44
CASTANEDA HN, 1979, CONT PERSPECTIVES PH, P125
CASTANEDA HN, 1980, MIDW STUDIES PHILOS, V5, P193
CASTANEDA HN, 1980, P ADDRESSES AM PHILO, V53, P763
CASTANEDA HN, 1980, PHILOS METHOD
CASTANEDA HN, 1985, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V25, P3
CASTANEDA HN, 1990, THINKING STRUCTURE W, P11
CHIERCHIA G, 1988, LINGUIST PHILOS, V11, P261
CHURCH A, 1951, STRUCTURE METHOD MEA
CLARK A, 1989, MICROCOGNITION
COCCHIARELLA N, 1986, FREGE SYNTHESIZED
COCCHIARELLA NB, 1982, J PHILOS LOGIC, V11, P183
COCCHIARELLA NB, 1989, TOPOI-INT REV PHILOS, V8, P15
CRESWELL H, 1985, STRUCTURED MEANINGS
FAGIN R, 1988, ARTIF INTELL, V34, P39
FREGE G, 1980, TRANSLATIONS PHILOS
FRENCH PA, 1979, CONT PERSPECTIVES PH
GEACH PT, 1967, J PHILOS, V20, P627
GUPTA A, 1987, NEW DIRECTIONS SEMAN
HAAS AR, 1990, COMPUTATIONAL LINGUI, V16, P213
HADLEY RF, 1991, MINDS MACH, V1, P279
HADLEY RF, 1991, MINDS MACHINES, V1, P55
HERZBERGER H, 1982, J PHILOS LOGIC, V11, P61
HEWITT C, 1972, THESIS MIT CAMBRIDGE
HINTIKKA J, 1962, KNOWLEDGE BELIEF
HOBBS JR, 1985, 23RD P ANN M ASS COM, P61
JUBIEN M, 1988, PHILOS ANAL, P299
KONOLOGE K, 1986, DEDUCTION MODEL BELI
KRIPKE SA, 1963, ACTA PHILOS FENN, V16, P83
KRIPKE SA, 1980, NAMING NECESSITY
LANDINI G, 1990, GRAZER PHILSOPHISCHE, V37, P93
LEVESQUE HJ, 1984, P AAAI 84, P198
LEWIS D, 1970, SYNTHESE, V22, P18
LYCAN W, 1979, POSSIBLE ACTUAL READ, P274
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
MENZEL C, 1986, CSLI8640 STANF U CTR
MONTAGUE R, 1974, FORMAL PHILOS
ORILIA F, 1986, NATURAL LANGUAGE SEM
ORILIA F, 1989, TOPOI, V4, P85
ORILIA F, 1991, HDB METAPHYSICS ONTO, P338
ORILIA F, 1991, J FORMAL LOGIC, V32, P442
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
PARTEE B, 1979, CONT PERSPECTIVES PH, P195
POWERS LH, 1978, PHILOS REV, V87, P337
RAPAPORT W, 1976, THESIS INDIANA U BLO
RAPAPORT WJ, 1986, COGNITIVE SCI, V10, P371
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P479
SHAPIRO SC, 1987, KNOWLEDGE FRONTIER E, P262
STAWSON PF, 1950, MIND, V59, P320
THOMASON R, 1980, SYNTHESE, V44, P391
TURNER R, 1987, J SYMBOLIC LOGIC, V52, P455
ZALTA E, 1983, ABSTRACT OBJECTS
NR 61
TC 5
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0924-6495
J9 MIND MACH
JI Minds Mach.
PD MAY
PY 1994
VL 4
IS 2
BP 163
EP 203
PG 41
SC Computer Science, Artificial Intelligence
GA NK420
UT ISI:A1994NK42000002
ER

PT J
AU WIGGINS, D
TI MEANING, TRUTH-CONDITIONS, PROPOSITION, FREGE DOCTRINE OF SENSE RETRIEVED, RESUMED AND REDEPLOYED IN THE LIGHT OF CERTAIN RECENT CRITICISMS
SO DIALECTICA
LA English
DT Proceedings Paper
CT 1988 ANNUAL MEETING OF THE INST-INTERNATIONAL-DE-PHILOSOPHIE / 18TH WORLD CONGRESS OF PHILOSOPHY
CY AUG 22, 1988
CL BRIGHTON, ENGLAND
SP INST INT PHILOS
RP WIGGINS, D, UNIV LONDON BIRKBECK COLL,DEPT PHILOSOPHY,LONDON WC1E 7HX,ENGLAND.
CR AUSTIN JL, HOW TO DO THINGS WOR
AUSTIN JL, WORDS DEEDS
AYER AJ, 1953, REV INT PHILOS, V25
CARNAP R, INTRO SEMANTICS
CARNAP R, LOGISCHER AUFBAU WEL
CARTWRIGHT RL, 1954, PHILOS SCI OCT, V21
CHURCH A, INTRO LOGIC
DAVIDSON D, INQUIRIES
DAVIDSON D, 1967, SYNTHESE, V17
DAVIDSON D, 1973, DIALECTICA, V27
DAVIDSON D, 1976, TRUTH MEANING ESSAYS
DAVIDSON D, 1984, INQUIRIES TRUTH INTE
DAVIES M, MEANING QUANTIFICATI
DAVIES M, 1981, MEANING QUANTIFICATI
DENNETT D, 1987, INTENTIONAL STANCE
DUMMETT M, FREGE PHILOS LANGUAG
DUMMETT M, MERITES LIMITES METH
DUMMETT M, 1958, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC
EVANS G, 1982, VARIETIES REFERENCE
FEIGL H, 1949, READINGS PHILOS ANAL
FOSTER J, 1976, TRUTH MEANING ESSAYS
FREGE G, BEGRIFFSSCHRIFT
FREGE G, GRUNDGESETZE ARITHME
FREGE G, GRUNDLAGEN ARITHMETI
GEACH PT, 1951, PHILOS WRITINGS G FR
GRANDY R, 1973, J PHILOS, V70
GRICE HP, 1957, PHILOS REV, V66
HORNSBY J, 1980, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC
HORNSBY J, 1986, MIND JAN
HORNSBY J, 1988, HUMAN AGENCY LANGUAG
KOTARBINSKI T, GNOSEOLOGY
KOTARBINSKI T, 1946, MIND
KOTARBINSKY T, ELEMENTY TEORJI POZN
LEWIS CI, 1974, SYNTHESE, V27
MCDOWELL J, 1976, TRUTH MEANING ESSAYS, P44
MCDOWELL J, 1977, MIND, V85
MCDOWELL J, 1978, MIND
MCDOWELL J, 1984, PHILOS Q, V34
MCFETRIDGE I, 1975, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC
MEINONG A, UBER ANNAHMEN
PETTIT P, 1986, SUBJECT THOUGHT CONT
PLATO, THEAETETUS
RUSSELL B, PHILOS ESSAYS
SCHIFFER S, REMNANTS MEANING
SCHIFFER S, 1987, REMNANTS MEANING
SCHWAYDER D, 1956, MIND
SOAMES S, 1987, PHILOS TOPICS SPR, V15
STRAWSON PF, 1970, TRUTH MEANING
TARSKI A, LOGIC SEMANTICS META
WIGGINS D, 1971, SEMANTICS INTERDISCI, P18
WIGGINS D, 1980, PHILOS SUBJECTS
WIGGINS D, 1980, SAMENESS SUBSTANCE
WIGGINS D, 1984, PHILOS Q
WIGGINS D, 1991, NEEDS VALUES TRUTH
WITTGENSTEIN L, PHILOS BEMERKUNGEN
WITTGENSTEIN L, TRACTATUS LOGICO-PHI
WRIGHT C, 1983, FREGES CONCEPTION NU
WRIGHT C, 1986, REALISM MEANING TRUT
NR 58
TC 5
PU SOC DIALECTICA C/O GEIGER AG BERN
PI BERN 16
PA HABSBURGSTRASSE 19, 3000 BERN 16, SWITZERLAND
SN 0012-2017
J9 DIALECTICA
JI Dialectica
PY 1992
VL 46
IS 1
BP 61
EP 90
PG 30
SC Philosophy
GA HX608
UT ISI:A1992HX60800004
ER

PT J
AU KERZ, JP
TI RECOVERY OF THE ID - ON NITZSCHKE,BERND ARTICLE ON THE ORIGIN OF THE ID
SO PSYCHE-ZEITSCHRIFT FUR PSYCHOANALYSE UND IHRE ANWENDUNGEN
LA German
DT Article
CR BARCLAY JR, 1964, F BRENTANO S FREUD J, V5, P1
BECK EHF, 1922, IMPERSONALIEN SPRACH
BERGMANN G, 1967, REALISM CRITIQUE BRE
BOLLNOW OF, 1958, LEBENSPHILOSOPHIE
BRENTANO F, 1883, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN, V2, P183
BRENTANO F, 1924, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN
BRENTANO F, 1956, LEHRE RICHTIGEN URTE
FREUD S, 1923, GW, V13, P235
FREUD S, 1925, GW, V14, P9
FREUD S, 1926, GW, V14, P207
FREUD S, 1938, GW, V17, P63
GRODDECK G, 1909, HIN GOTTNATUR
GRODDECK G, 1923, BUCH VOM ES MUNCHEN
HILLEBRAND F, 1891, NEUEN THEORIEN KATEG
HUSSERL E, 1968, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN, V1
JONES E, 1960, LEBEN WERK S FREUD, V1
KANT I, 1787, KRITIK REINEN VERNUN
KLAGES L, 1929, GEIST WIDERSACHER SE, V1
KNUTH W, 1948, PHILOS LEBENS IHRE P
LEESE K, 1941, KRISIS WENDE CHRISTL
LEHMANN G, 1943, DTSCH PHILOS GEGENWA
LOTZE H, 1912, LOGIK
LUKACS G, 1960, ZERSTORUNG VERNUNFT
MARTY A, 1918, GESAMMELTE SCHRIFTEN, V2
MEINONG A, 1978, GESAMTAUSGABE, V7, P197
MERLAN P, 1945, BRANTANO FREUD J HIS, V6, P375
MERLAN P, 1949, SEQUEL J HIST IDEES, V10, P451
MIKLOSICH X, 1883, SUBJEKTLOSE SATZE
NIETZSCHE F, 1969, ALLZUMENSCHLICHES, V1
NIETZSCHE F, 1969, JENSEITS GUT BOSE, V2
NIETZSCHE F, 1969, NACHLASS ACHTZIGER J, V3
NITZSCHKE B, 1983, PSYCHE, V37, P769
NUNBERG H, 1979, PROTOKOLLE WIENER PS, V3
OEHLER R, 1945, NIETZSCHE REGISTER
ROSENKOTTER L, 1980, PSYCHE, V34, P385
RUSSELL B, 1971, LOGIC KNOWLEDGE
SCHLECHTA K, 1969, NIETZSCHE INDEX
SCHNADELBACH H, 1983, PHILOS DEUTSCHLAND 1
SIGWART C, 1888, IMPERSONALIEN
SIGWART C, 1904, LOGIK
STRAWSON PF, 1972, EINZELDING LOGISCHES
STUMPF C, 1919, F BRENTANO KENNTNIS
TRENDELENBURG A, 1870, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
VONDIERSBURG ER, 1961, Z PHILOS FORSCHUNG, V15, P131
VONHARTMANN E, 1923, PHILOS UNBEWUSSTEN
VONHARTMANN E, 1925, PROBLEM LEBENS
WITTGENSTEIN L, 1982, BEMERKUNGEN PHILOS P, V8
NR 47
TC 5
PU KLETT-COTTA VERLAG
PI STUTTGART 1
PA ROTEBUHLSTRASSE 77, D-7004 9 STUTTGART 1, GERMANY
SN 0033-2623
J9 PSYCHE-Z PSYCHOANAL ANWEND
JI Psyche-Z. Psychoanal. Ihre Anwendungen
PY 1985
VL 39
IS 2
BP 125
EP 143
PG 19
SC Psychology, Psychoanalysis
GA ABX76
UT ISI:A1985ABX7600003
ER

PT J
AU CHISHOLM, RM
TI DEFINING INTRINSIC VALUE
SO ANALYSIS
LA English
DT Article
RP CHISHOLM, RM, BROWN UNIV,PROVIDENCE,RI 02912.
CR BRENTANO F, 1969, ORIGIN OUR KNOWLEDGE
CHISHOLM RM, 1966, AM PHILOSOPHICAL Q, V3, P244
CHISHOLM RM, 1974, PRACTICAL REASON
MEINONG A, 1968, ABHANDLUNGEN WERTTHE
QUINN PC, 1978, DIVINE COMMANDS MORA
NR 5
TC 5
PU BLACKWELL PUBL LTD
PI OXFORD
PA 108 COWLEY RD, OXFORD, OXON, ENGLAND OX4 1JF
SN 0003-2638
J9 ANALYSIS
JI Analysis
PY 1981
VL 41
IS 2
BP 99
EP 100
PG 2
SC Philosophy
GA LF360
UT ISI:A1981LF36000010
ER

PT J
AU RAPAPORT, WJ
TI ADVERBIAL MEINONGIAN THEORY
SO ANALYSIS
LA English
DT Article
RP RAPAPORT, WJ, SUNY COLL FREDONIA,FREDONIA,NY 14063.
CR BRENTANO F, 1874, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P39
CASTANNEDA HN, 1972, PHILOSOPHIA, V4, P3
CHISHOLM R, 1973, REV INT PHILOS, V27, P207
CHISHOLM RM, 1957, PERCEIVING
CHISHOLM RM, 1966, THEORY KNOWLEDGE
GROSSMANN R, 1974, MEINONG
JACKSON F, 1975, METAPHILOSOPHY, V6, P127
MEINONG A, 1971, ALEXIUS MEINONG GESA, V2, P481
RAPAPORT WJ, 1978, NOUS, V12
SELLARS W, 1969, LOGICAL WAY DOING TH, P219
NR 10
TC 5
PU BLACKWELL PUBL LTD
PI OXFORD
PA 108 COWLEY RD, OXFORD, OXON, ENGLAND OX4 1JF
SN 0003-2638
J9 ANALYSIS
JI Analysis
PY 1979
VL 39
IS 2
BP 75
EP 81
PG 7
SC Philosophy
GA GR516
UT ISI:A1979GR51600005
ER

PT J
AU MARGOLIS, J
TI AXIOM OF EXISTENCE - REDUCTIO-AD-ABSURDUM
SO SOUTHERN JOURNAL OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
C1 TEMPLE UNIV,PHILADELPHIA,PA 19122.
CR ALSTON W, 1958, PHILOS STUD, V9, P8
CARNAP R, 1937, LOGICAL SYNTAX LANGU
DONNELLAN K, 1966, PHILOS REV, V75, P281
LESNIEWSKI S, 1929, FUND MATH, V14, P1
LINSKY L, 1967, REFERRING, CH6
MARGOLIS J, 1969, MONIST, V53, P231
MARGOLIS J, 1973, KNOWLEDGE EXISTENCE, CH3
MARGOLIS J, 1973, PHILOSOPHIA, V3, P413
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
PEARS DF, 1967, B RUSSELL BRIT TRADI
QUINE WV, 1953, LOGICAL POINT VIEW, P12
QUINE WV, 1960, WORD OBJECT, P27
QUINE WV, 1969, ONTOLOGICAL RELATIVI, P106
QUINE WVO, 1974, ROOTS REFERENCE
RUSSELL B, KNOWLEDGE ACQUAINTAN
RUSSELL B, PHILOSOPHY LOGICAL A
SEARLE JR, 1969, SPEECH ACTS ESSAY PH, P77
SELLARS W, 1963, SCI PERCEPTION REALI, P91
STRAWSON PF, 1950, MIND, V59, P320
WOODS J, 1974, LOGIC FICTION, P32
NR 20
TC 5
PU SOUTHERN J PHILOSOPHY UNIV MEMPHIS
PI MEMPHIS
PA DEPT PHILOSOPHY, MEMPHIS, TN 38152
SN 0038-4283
J9 SOUTHERN J PHIL
JI South. J. Philos.
PY 1977
VL 15
IS 1
BP 91
EP 99
PG 9
SC Philosophy
GA EY286
UT ISI:A1977EY28600008
ER

PT J
AU CHISHOLM, RM
TI THOUGHT AND ITS REFERENCE
SO AMERICAN PHILOSOPHICAL QUARTERLY
LA English
DT Article
C1 BROWN UNIV,PROVIDENCE,RI 02912.
CR 1958, MINNESOTA STUDIES PH, V2, P521
1969, 14 INT K PHIL, V3, P260
AYER AJ, 1956, MINNESOTA STUDIES PH, V1, P253
CASTANEDA HN, 1966, RATIO, V8, P130
CHISHOLM RM, 1976, PERSON OBJECT METAPH
CHISHOLM RM, 1976, THEORY KNOWLEDGE, CH1
GEACH PT, 1957, MENTAL ACTS
HINTIKKA J, 1962, KNOWLEDGE BELIEF, CH6
KAPLAN D, 1969, WORDS OBJECTIONS ESS, P206
MCTAGGART JEM, 1927, NATURE EXISTENCE, V2, P107
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P76
PASTIN M, 1974, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V34, P569
PRICE HH, 1969, BELIEF, P192
SOSA E, 1970, J PHILOS, V67, P883
VENDLER Z, 1976, NOUS, V10, P35
NR 15
TC 5
PU BOWLING GREEN STATE UNIVERSITY
PI BOWLING GREEN
PA PHILOSOPHY DOCUMENT CENTER, BOWLING GREEN, OH 43403
SN 0003-0481
J9 AMER PHIL QUART
JI Am. Philos. Q.
PY 1977
VL 14
IS 2
BP 167
EP 172
PG 6
SC Philosophy
GA CW018
UT ISI:A1977CW01800010
ER

PT J
AU MENGES, G
TI SUBJECTIVE PROBABILITY AND RELATED PROBLEMS
SO THEORY AND DECISION
LA English
DT Article
CR BAYES T, 1763, PHILOS T ROY SOC LON, V53, P376
BAYES T, 1763, PHILOSOPHICAL T, V53, P401
BECKER GM, 1967, ANNU REV PSYCHOL, V18, P239
BERNOULLI D, 1730, COMMENTARII ACADEMIA, V5, P175
BERNOULLI J, 1713, ARS CONJECTANDI BASE
BERNOULLI J, 1899, WAHRSCHEINLICHKEITSR
BERNOULLI N, THESIS BASEL
BORTKIEWICZ LV, 1923, NORDISK STATISTISK T, V2, P1
CARNAP R, 1950, LOGICAL FOUNDATIONS
COURNOT A, 1843, EXPOSITION THEORIE C
ELLIS RL, 1842, FOUNDATIONS THEORY P
FINETTI BD, 1937, ANN I H POINCARE, V7
FINETTI BD, 1964, STUDIES SUBJECTIVE P, P93
FRIEDMAN M, 1948, J POLIT ECON, V56, P279
HALPHEN E, 1955, ESSAI FONDEMENTS CAL
HARTWIG H, 1939, THESIS FRANKFURT MAI
HARTWIG H, 1956, Z GESAMTE STAATSWISS, V112, P252
KEYNES JM, 1921, TREATISE PROBABILITY
KOLMOGOROFF AN, 1933, GRUNDBEGRIFFE WAHRSC
KOOPMAN BO, 1940, ANN MATH, V41, P269
KRIES JV, 1886, PRINCIPIEN WAHRSCHEI
KRIES JV, 1888, VIERTELJAHRESSCHRIFT, V12
KRIES JV, 1916, LOGIK
LAPLACE PSD, 1812, THEORIE ANALYTIQUE P
LAPLACE PSD, 1814, ESSAI PHILOSOPHIQUE
LEIBNIZ GW, 1855, GESAMMELTE WERKE, V3
LUCE RD, 1965, HDB MATHEMATICAL PSY, V3
MEINONG AV, 1915, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
MENGES G, 1967, GESCHICHTE ZUKUNFT, P485
MENGES G, 1969, GRUNDMODELLE WIRTSCH
MISES RV, 1931, WAHRSCHEINLICHKEITSR
MONTMORT PRD, 1708, ESSAI ANALYSE JEUX H
MORLAT G, 1960, ECONOMIE APPLIQUEE, V13
MOSTELLER F, 1951, J POLIT ECON, V59, P371
NEUMANN JV, 1947, THEORY GAMES ECONOMI
PFANZAGL J, 1959, AXIOMATISCHEN GRUNDL
PRESTON MG, 1948, AM J PSYCHOL, V61, P183
QUETELET LAJ, 1869, PHYSIQUE SOCIALE
RAMSEY FP, 1931, FOUNDATIONS MATHEMAT
REICHENBACH H, 1935, WAHRSCHEINLICHKEITSL
ROBBINS H, 1964, ANN MATH STAT, V35, P1
SAVAGE LJ, 1954, FOUNDATIONS STATISTI
SAVAGE LJ, 1962, FDN STAT INFERENCE D, P9
SAVAGE LJ, 1964, STUDIES SUBJECTIVE P, P175
STUMPF C, 1893, SITZUNGSBERICHTE PHI
VENN J, 1866, LOGIC CHANCE
WALD A, 1950, STATISTICAL DECISION
NR 47
TC 5
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0040-5833
J9 THEOR DECIS
JI Theory Decis.
PY 1970
VL 1
IS 1
BP 40
EP 60
PG 21
SC Economics; Social Sciences, Mathematical Methods
GA Y1686
UT ISI:A1970Y168600003
ER

PT J
AU von Smoluchowski, M
AF von Smoluchowski, M.
TI The concept of the chance and origin of the law of probability in physics.
SO NATURWISSENSCHAFTEN
LA German
DT Article
CR CZUBER, SAGT UNBEKANNTE WECH
MEINONG A, 1915, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
POINCARE H, 1912, CALCUL PROBABILITIES
TIMERDING HE, 1915, ANAL ZUFALLS, P162
NR 4
TC 5
PU SPRINGER
PI NEW YORK
PA 233 SPRING STREET, NEW YORK, NY 10013 USA
SN 0028-1042
J9 NATURWISSENSCHAFTEN
JI Naturwissenschaften
PD JAN-DEC
PY 1918
VL 6
IS 1-52
BP 253
EP 263
PG 11
SC Multidisciplinary Sciences
GA V42FW
UT ISI:000202854400041
ER

PT J
AU Henning, H
AF Henning, Hans
TI Experimental Studies in the Psychology of Thinking, I, The associative Mixed Effect of the Imagining of Matters never perceived before and its Limits
SO ZEITSCHRIFT FUR PSYCHOLOGIE UND PHYSIOLOGIE DER SINNESORGANE
LA German
DT Article
CR ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V8, P130
ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V8, P142
ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V8, P143
ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V8, P39
ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V8, P40
ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V8, P68
ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V8, P75
ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V8, P76
VERSUCHE RESIDUEN, P226
Z PSYCHOL, V78, P267
1914, ARCH KRIMINALANTHR K, V59, P75
1914, TRAUM WIESBADEN
1916, Z PHILOS PHIL KRIT, V162, P94
1916, Z PSYCHOL, V74, P203
1917, ABH KGL PREUSS AK PH, P51
1917, SCIENTIA, V22, P354
1917, Z PSYCHOL, V78, P253
CORNELIUS H, 1916, TRANSZENDENTALE SYST, P202
DILTHEY W, 1886, DICHTERISCHE EINBILD, P24
DUGAS J, 1903, IMAGINATION
ELSENHAUS T, 1911, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V22, P30
ERDMANN B, 1907, GLEICHLAUTEND DTSCH
ERDMANN B, 1913, FUNKTIONEN PHANTASIE, P19
GIAUCHETTI C, 1912, FANTASIA
HENNIG R, 1918, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V79, P228
HENNING H, 1916, GERUCH, P123
HENNING H, 1919, ASHER SPIROS ERGEBNI, P572
HENNING H, 1919, Z ASTH, V13
HENSELING A, Z PAD PSYCHOL, V13
KLEINKNECHT, 1906, HARVARD PSYCHOL STUD, V2, P307
KOLLARITS J, 1916, J PSYCHOL NEUROL, V22, P171
LASSWITZ K, 1902, 2 PLANETEN
LINKE PF, 1918, GRUNDFRAGEN WAHRNEHM, P163
LUCKA E, 1907, WISS JAHRESBER PHI S, V20, P25
LUCKA E, 1908, PHANTASIE PSYCHOL UN
MEINONG A, 1889, Z PHILOS PHIL KRITIK, V95, P238
MESSER, 1906, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V8, P215
MULLER GE, 1900, Z PSYCHOL S, V1, P159
MULLER GE, 1900, Z PSYCHOL S, V1, P225
MULLER GE, 1911, Z PSYCHOL S, V5
MULLER GE, 1913, Z PSYCHOL S, V3, P325
MULLER GE, 1913, Z PSYCHOL S, V8
MULLER GE, 1917, Z PSYCHOL S, V9
MULLERFREIENFEL.R, 1909, VIERTELJAHRSSCHR WIS, V33, P312
MULLERFREIENFEL.R, 1916, DENKEN PHANTASIE
MUNSTERBERG H, 1892, BEITRAGE EXPT PSYCHO, P78
OLZELTNEWIN A, 1889, PHANTASIEVORSTELLUNG, P17
PERKY CW, 1910, AM J PSYCHOL, V21, P422
PHILIPPE J, 1897, REV PHILOS, V43, P481
POPPELEEUTER W, 1912, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V25, P335
RIBOT T, 1902, SCHOPFERKRAFT PHANTA
SCHLUTER L, Z FSYCHOL, V68, P103
SCHROTTER K, 1912, JB PHILOS GES WIEN, P19
SCHUMANN F, 1914, 6 K EXP PSYCH GOTT, P63
SCHWIETE, 1910, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V19, P495
WETTICH H, 1917, MASCHINE KARRIKATUR
NR 56
TC 5
PU SWETS ZEITLINGER PUBLISHERS
PI LISSE
PA P O BOX 825, 2160 SZ LISSE, NETHERLANDS
J9 Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SINNESORG
JI Z. Psychol. Physiol. Sinnesorg.
PY 1919
VL 81
BP 1
EP 96
PG 96
SC Psychology, Biological
GA V96LU
UT ISI:000206520200001
ER

PT J
AU Loring, MW
TI An investigation of the law of eye movements
SO PSYCHOLOGICAL REVIEW
LA English
DT Article
CR AUBERT H, 1876, HDB GESAMMTEN AUGENH
BARNES B, 1905, AM J PSYCHOL, V16, P199
BUROW A, 1841, BEITRAGE PHYSL AUGES, P8
DONDERS FC, 1848, WISSENSCHAFTEN, P105
DONDERS FC, 1848, WISSENSCHAFTEN, P384
FICK A, 1854, Z RATION MED, V4, P101
FICK A, 1858, MOLESCHOTTS UNTERSUC, V5, P193
HELMHOLTZ H, 1863, ARCH OPHTHALMOLOGIE, P153
HELMHOLTZ H, 1866, HDB PHYSL OPTIK, V2, P613
HERING E, 1868, LEHRE BINOCULAREM SE, P83
HUECK A, 1838, ACHSENDREHUNG AUGES
LECONTE J, 1881, SIGHT, P185
MEINONG A, 1898, Z PSYCH PHYSL, V17, P161
MEISSNER G, 1854, BEITRAGE PHYSL SEHOR
MEISSNER G, 1855, GRAEFE ARCH OPHTHALM, V1
MEISSNER G, 1860, Z RATION MED, V7, P1
MULLER J, 1826, VERGLEICHENDEN PHYSL, P254
RUETE T, 1846, LEHRBUCH OPHTHALMOLO, P14
RUETE T, 1855, LEHRBUCH OPHTHALMOLO, P37
SANFORD E, 1898, EXPT PSYCHOL
VALENTIN G, 1846, LEHRBUCH PHYSL, P32
VOLKANN AW, 1846, WAGNERS HANDWORTERBU, V3, P273
VOLKMANN AW, 1864, PHYSL UNTERS IM GEBI, P199
WICHODZEW A, 1912, Z SINNEPHYSIOLOGIE, V2, P394
WUNDT W, 1862, ARCH OPHTHALMOLOGIE, P16
NR 25
TC 5
PU AMER PSYCHOLOGICAL ASSOC
PI WASHINGTON
PA 750 FIRST ST NE, WASHINGTON, DC 20002-4242 USA
SN 0033-295X
J9 PSYCHOL REV
JI Psychol. Rev.
PD SEP
PY 1915
VL 22
IS 5
BP 354
EP 370
PG 17
SC Psychology; Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V02CW
UT ISI:000200142600002
ER

PT J
AU Benussi, V
AF Benussi, Vittorio
TI On the Motivation of the Phisicality of Apparently reversible Drawings
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Article
CR PSYCHOL STUDIEN, V2, P497
Z PSYCHOL, V36, P68
Z PSYCHOL, V52, P73
BECHER E, 1910, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V16, P397
DURR E, Z PSYCHOL, V49, P313
GELB A, 1910, Z PSYCHOL, V58, P1
MEINONG A, Z PSYCH, V42, P22
MEINONG A, Z PSYCH, V45, P188
VONASTER, Z PSYCHOL, V43, P175
VONASTER, Z PSYCHOL, V49, P56
WITASEK, PSYCHOL RAUMWAHRNEHM, P377
WUNDT W, 1878, PHILOS STUDIEN, V14, P31
WUNDT, GRUNDZUGE PHYS PSYCH, V2, P576
NR 13
TC 5
SN 0724-7842
J9 ARCG GESAMTE PSYCHOL
JI Archiv. Gesamte Psychol.
PD MAY 9
PY 1911
VL 20
IS 4
BP 363
EP 396
PG 34
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V98FX
UT ISI:000206640100001
ER

PT J
AU Gamble, EAM
Calkins, MW
AF Gamble, Eleanor A. McC
Calkins, Mary Whiton
TI The reproduced presentation the recognition and the comparison
SO ZEITSCHRIFT FUR PSYCHOLOGIE UND PHYSIOLOGIE DER SINNESORGANE
LA German
DT Book Review
CR ABIFS PSYCHOL, P261
GRUNDRIFS, P178
PHILOS STUD, V7, P169
PHILOS STUD, V7, P361
PRINCIPLES, V1, P674
VERGLEICHE NOTIZ MAT, P1
1889, VIERTELJAHRSSCHR WIS, V13, P425
1899, AM J PSYCHOL, V11, P46
1902, AM J PSYCHOL, V13, P261
CORNELIUS H, VIERTEJAHRSSCHR WISS, V16
CORNELIUS H, VIERTEJAHRSSCHR WISS, V17
EBBINGHAUS H, GRUNDZUGE PSYCHOL, V1, P410
EHRENFELS C, 1890, VIERTELJAHRSSCHR WIS, V14, P283
GAMBLE EA, REPRODUZIERTE VORSTE
HOFFDING, VIERTELJAHRSSCHR WIS, P438
HOFFDINGS, 1889, VIERTELJAHRSSCHR WIS, V13, P427
JAMES W, PRINCIPLES PSYCHOL, V1, P252
MEINONG A, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL, V21, P182
MUNSTERBERG H, GRUNDZUGE PSYCHOL, V1, P221
WUNDT, 1892, PHILOS STUD, V7, P344
NR 20
TC 5
PU SWETS ZEITLINGER PUBLISHERS
PI LISSE
PA P O BOX 825, 2160 SZ LISSE, NETHERLANDS
J9 Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SINNESORG
JI Z. Psychol. Physiol. Sinnesorg.
PY 1903
VL 32
BP 177
EP 199
PG 23
SC Psychology, Biological
GA V96JG
UT ISI:000206513600019
ER

PT J
AU Dodd, J
TI Reading Husserl's time-diagrams from 1917/18
SO HUSSERL STUDIES
LA English
DT Proceedings Paper
CT Annual Meeting of the Husserl Circle
CY JUN, 2003
CL Bronx, NY
HO Fordham Univ
C1 New Sch Univ, New York, NY 10011 USA.
RP Dodd, J, New Sch Univ, New York, NY 10011 USA.
CR DEWARREN N, 2001, PROMISE TIME TIME CO, CH2
LOHMAR D, 2002, PHILOS TODAY, V46, P154
MEINONG A, 1899, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V21, P248
MERLEAUPONTY, 1962, PHENOMENOLOGY PERCEP, P415
SCHNELL A, 2002, HUSSERL STUDIES, V18
SOKOLOWSKI R, 1974, HUSSERLIAN MEDITATIO
STERN W, 1897, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V13, P330
STUMPF C, 1919, F BRENTANO ERKENNTNI, P136
ZAHAVI D, 2000, SELF AWARNESS ALTERI, CH5
ZAHAVI D, 2004, HUSSERL STUD, V20, P99
NR 10
TC 4
PU SPRINGER
PI DORDRECHT
PA VAN GODEWIJCKSTRAAT 30, 3311 GZ DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0167-9848
J9 HUSSERL STUD
JI Husserl Stud.
PY 2005
VL 21
IS 2
BP 111
EP 137
DI 10.1007/s10743-005-6403-2
PG 27
SC Philosophy
GA 987OQ
UT ISI:000233527600002
ER

PT J
AU Darrigol, O
TI Number and measure: Hermann von Helmholtz at the crossroads of mathematics, physics, and psychology
SO STUDIES IN HISTORY AND PHILOSOPHY OF SCIENCE
LA English
DT Review
DE Helmholtz; measurement; arithmetic; P. Du Bois-Reymond; H. and R. Grassmann; J. von Kries
ID HISTORICAL INTRODUCTION; HELMHOLTZ
AB In 1887 Helmholtz discussed the foundations of measurement in science as a last contribution to his philosophy of knowledge. This essay borrowed from earlier debates on the foundations of mathematics (Grassmann / Du Bois), on the possibility of quantitative psychology (Fechner / Kries, Wundt / Zeller), and on the meaning of temperature measurement (Maxwell, Mach). Late nineteenth-century scrutinisers of the foundations of mathematics (Dedekind, Cantor, Frege, Russell) made little of Helmholtz's essay. Yet it inspired two mathematicians with an eye on physics (Poincare and Holder), and a few philosopher-physicists (Mach, Duhem, Campbell). The aim of the present paper is to situate Helmholtz's contribution in this complex array of nineteenth-century philosophies of number, quantity, and measurement. (C) 2003 Published by Elsevier Ltd.
C1 CNRS, Rehseis, F-75013 Paris, France.
RP Darrigol, O, CNRS, Rehseis, 83 Rue Broca, F-75013 Paris, France.
CR BELNA JP, 1996, NOTION NOMBRE DEDEKI
CAHAN D, 1989, H VONHELMHOLTZ FDN 1
CAHAN D, 2002, INT ENCY SOCIAL BEHA
CAMPBELL N, 1920, PHYISCS ELEMENTS
CAMPBELL N, 1928, ACCOUNT PRINCIPLES M
CANTOR G, 1887, GESAMMELTE ABH, P378
CHANG H, 1995, PERSPECTIVES SCI, V3, P153
CHANG HS, 2001, HIST STUD PHYS BIO 2, V31, P249
CHATELET G, 1993, ENJEUX MOBILE MATH P
CROWE M, 1987, HIST VECTOR ANAL
DARRIGOL O, 1995, STUD HIST PHILOS M P, V26, P1
DECOURTENAY N, 1999, SCI PHILOS L BOLTZMA
DEDEKIND R, 1872, ESSAYS THEORY NUMBER, P1
DEDEKIND R, 1988, ESSAYS THEORY NUMBER, P31
DIEZ JA, 1997, STUD HIST PHILOS SCI, V28, P167
DIEZ JA, 1997, STUD HIST PHILOS SCI, V28, P237
DISALLE R, 1993, H VONHELMHOLTZ FDN 1, P498
DUBOISREYMOND P, 1882, ALLGEMEINE FUNCTIONE
DUGAC P, 1976, R DEDEKIND FONDEMENT
DUHEM P, 1892, J MATH PURE APPL, V10, P207
DUHEM P, 1892, J MATH PURE APPL, V8, P269
DUHEM P, 1892, J MATH PURE APPL, V9, P293
DUHEM P, 1912, REV PHILOS, V21, P531
DUHEM P, 1914, THEORIE PHYSIQUE SON
ELSAS A, 1886, PSYCHOPHYSIK
FECHNER G, 1959, ELEMENTE PSYCHOPHYSI
FISCHER G, 1981, ARCH HIST EXACT SCI, V24, P101
FLAMENT D, 1994, SCI GRANDEUR EXTENSI, P7
FREGE G, 1884, GRUNDAGEN ARITHMETIK
FREGE G, 1975, FUNKTION BEGRIFF BED
GRASSMANN H, 1844, LINEALE AUSDEHNUNGSL
GRASSMANN H, 1894, GESAMMELTE MATH PHYS
GRASSMANN H, 1961, LEHRBUCH ARITHMETIK
GRASSMANN R, 1872, DIE GROSENLEHRE
GRASSMANN R, 1890, DENKLEHRE
GRASSMANN R, 1890, GEBAUDE WISSENS
GRASSMANN R, 1890, SPRACHLEHRE
GRASSMANN R, 1891, ZAHLENLEHRE ARITHMET
HARDY GH, 1910, ORDERS INFINITY INFI
HARMAN P, 1998, NATURAL PHILOS JC MA
HEIDELBERGER M, 1986, HIST METROLOGIE WISS, P159
HEIDELBERGER M, 1993, BEHAV BRAIN SCI, V16, P146
HEINE E, 1872, J REINE ANGEW MATH, V74, P172
HELMHOLTZ H, 1866, WISSENSCHAFTLICHE AB, V2, P610
HELMHOLTZ H, 1868, WISSENSCHAFTLICHE AB, V2, P618
HELMHOLTZ H, 1876, VORTRAGE REDEN, V2, P1
HELMHOLTZ H, 1878, VORTRAGE REDEN, V2, P215
HELMHOLTZ H, 1878, WISSENSCHAFTLICHE AB, V2, P640
HELMHOLTZ H, 1882, WISSENSCHAFTLICHE AH
HELMHOLTZ H, 1887, PHILOS AUFSATZE E ZE
HELMHOLTZ H, 1903, EINLEITUNG VORLESUNG
HELMHOLTZ H, 1908, VORLESUNGEN THEORIE
HELMHOLTZ H, 1956, HDB PHYSL OPTIK
HERTZ P, 1921, NOTES H HELMHOLTZ SC
HILBERT D, 1899, GRUNDLAGEN GEOMETRIE
HOLDER O, 1900, ANSCHAUUNG DENKEN GE
HOLDER O, 1901, BERICHTE VERHANDL MP, V53, P1
HOLMES FL, 1994, UNIVERSALGENIE HELMH, P3
HYDER DJ, 2001, SCI CONTEXT, V14, P419
JURKOWITZ E, 2002, HIST STUD PHYS BIO 2, V32, P291
KANT I, 1787, KRITIK REINEN VERNUN
KARAGOZOWSKI S, THESIS U PARIS 7
KLEIN F, 1890, MATH ANN, V37, P544
KLEIN F, 1902, ELEMENTARMATHEMATIK
KOENIGSBERGER L, 1902, H VONHELMHOLTZ
KRANTZ DH, 1971, FDN MEASUREMENT, V1
KRONECKER L, 1887, PHILOS AUFSATZE E ZE, P263
LUCE RD, 1981, MACROPAEDIA, V11, P739
MACH E, 1872, GESCH W DESSATZES ER
MACH E, 1883, MECH IHRER ENTWICKLU
MACH E, 1896, PRINCIPIEN WARMELEHR
MACH E, 1905, ERKENNTNIS IRRTUM
MAXWELL JC, 1871, THEORY HEAT
MAXWELL JC, 1873, TREATISE ELECT MAGNE
MEINONG A, 1896, GESAMMELTE ABH, V2, P215
MICHELL J, 1993, STUD HIST PHILOS SCI, V24, P185
MICHELL J, 1999, MEASUREMENT PSYCHOL
NAGEL E, 1931, ERKENNTNIS, V2, P313
NEWTON I, 1707, ARITHMETICA U
OLESKO KM, 1994, UNIVERSALGENIE HELNH, P22
POINCARE H, 1892, REV GEN SCI PURES AP, V3, P74
POINCARE H, 1892, THERMODYNAMIQUE
POINCARE H, 1893, REV METAPHYS MORALE, V1, P26
POINCARE H, 1898, REV METAPHYS MORALE, V6, P371
POINCARE H, 1902, SCI HYPOTHESE
POINCARE H, 1908, REV GEN SCI PURES AP, V19, P386
PRINGSHEIM A, 1898, ENCY MATH WISSENSCHA, V1, P47
PRINGSHEIM A, 1904, ENCY SCI MATH PURES, V1, P133
RUNGE C, 1916, ENCY SCI MATH PURES, V5, P1
RUNGE C, 1980, ENCY MATH WISSENSCHA, V5, P3
RUSSELL B, 1903, PRINCIPLES MATH
RUSSELL B, 1913, PRINCIPIA MATH, V3
SAVAGE GW, 1992, PHILOS FDN ISSUES ME, P1
SCHAFFER S, 1995, VALUES PRECISION, P135
SCHRODER E, 1873, LEHRBUCH ARITHMETIK
SCHRODER E, 1877, OPERATIONSKREIS LOGI
SCHRODER E, 1890, VORLESUNGEN ALGEBRA
SCHUBERT H, 1898, ENCY MATH WISSENSCHA, V1, P1
STEVENS SS, 1946, SCIENCE, V103, P667
SUPPES P, 1951, PORTUGALIA MATH, V10, P163
TURNER S, 1982, PROBLEMATIC SCI PSYC, P147
VISCHER F, 1987, PHILOS AUFSATZE E ZE
VITRAC B, 1994, INTRO EUCLIDE ELEMEN, V2
VONKRIES J, 1882, VIERTELJAHRESSCHRIFT, V6, P257
WUNDT W, 1883, PHILOS STUDIEN, V1, P251
WUNDT W, 1883, PHILOS STUDIEN, V1, P461
WUNDT W, 1920, ERLEBTES ERKANNTES
ZELLER E, 1881, KONIGLICHE AKAD WISS, V3, P1
ZELLER E, 1982, KONIGLICHE PREUSSISC, P295
NR 109
TC 4
PU PERGAMON-ELSEVIER SCIENCE LTD
PI OXFORD
PA THE BOULEVARD, LANGFORD LANE, KIDLINGTON, OXFORD OX5 1GB, ENGLAND
SN 0039-3681
J9 STUD HIST PHIL SCI
JI Stud. Hist. Philos. Sci.
PD SEP
PY 2003
VL 34A
IS 3
BP 515
EP 573
DI 10.1016/S0039-3681(03)00043-8
PG 59
SC History & Philosophy Of Science
GA 725FK
UT ISI:000185533000004
ER

PT J
AU Chrudzimski, A
TI Meinong's theory of intentionality
SO DIALECTICA
LA German
DT Article
AB The most striking feature of Meinong's theory of intentionality is his thesis that every mental act has its reference-object 'beyond being and non being'. This theory seems, at first, to be a clear example of the so called object-theory of intentionality, as it introduces special 'postulated' entities in the target-position of the mental act. Closer examination, however, reveals in Meinong's works important elements of the mediator-theory. Meinong speaks of auxiliary incomplete objects situated 'between' the subject and the object of reference and 'mediating' the intentional access to the (complete) reference-object. Moreover, even if the object of reference is of the simple nominal form, the mediating structure involves essentially propositional entities (objectives). In the paper we attempt to give a set-theoretical interpretation of Meinong's theory in the frame of which we could eventually do without the incomplete mediating objects. Yet, some general epistemological considerations suggest the indispensability of such incomplete mediating structures.
C1 Salzburg Univ, Inst Philosophy, A-5020 Salzburg, Austria.
RP Chrudzimski, A, Salzburg Univ, Inst Philosophy, A-5020 Salzburg, Austria.
CR BRENTANO F, UNPUB LOGIK
BRENTANO F, UNPUB ONTOLOGIE
BRENTANO F, 1924, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN
BRENTANO F, 1925, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN
BRENTANO F, 1930, WAHRHEIT EVIDENZ
BRENTANO F, 1956, LEHRE RICHTIGEN URTE
BRENTANO F, 1982, DESKRIPTIVE PSYCHOL
CHISHOLM RM, 1982, BRENTANO MEINONG STU, P17
FREGE G, 1892, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V100, P25
GROSSMAN R, 1974, MEINONG
HOFLER A, 1890, LOGIK
HUSSERL E, 1984, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
KRIPKE S, 1980, NAMING NECESSITY
KUNG G, 1973, REV METAPHYS, V23, P670
LEWIS D, 1986, PLURALITY WORLDS
LYCAN WG, 1994, MODALITY MEANING
MEINONG A, 1877, GESAMTAUSGABE
MEINONG A, 1910, ANNAHMEN
MEINONG A, 1915, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
PUTNAM H, 1975, MIND LANGUAGE REALIT
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P479
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P530
SIMONS P, 1992, PHILOS LOGIC CENTRAL, P41
SMITH B, 1982, PARTS MOMENTS STUDIE
SMITH B, 1988, FDN GESTALT THEORY, P11
SMITH B, 1992, LANGUAGE TRUTH ONTOL, P48
SMITH B, 1994, AUSTRIAN PHILOS LEGA
SMITH D, 1982, HUSSERL INTENTIONALI
TWARDOWSKI K, 1894, LEHRE INHALT GEGENST
NR 29
TC 4
PU SOC DIALECTICA C/O GEIGER AG BERN
PI BERN 16
PA HABSBURGSTRASSE 19, 3000 BERN 16, SWITZERLAND
SN 0012-2017
J9 DIALECTICA
JI Dialectica
PY 2001
VL 55
IS 2
BP 119
EP 143
PG 25
SC Philosophy
GA 460BM
UT ISI:000170286000003
ER

PT J
AU Pavel, T
TI Fiction and imitation (Mimesis)
SO POETICS TODAY
LA English
DT Article
AB This article begins with a discussion of the views on mimesis defended in recent works by Lubomir Dolezel, Dorrit Cohn, and Jean-Marie Schaeffer. It then argues that literary fiction typically represents human beings in their relationship with norms and values. But since norms and values cannot be uniformly reduced to a set of observable facts, they cannot be copied directly but only highlighted indirectly, through examples of human action. These examples, however, do not necessarily represent the norm or the value they are meant to typify. It follows that representation of norms and values cannot be reduced to imitation and that mere observation of nature cannot suffice for creating and understanding fiction. The poet and the reader must know how to distance themselves from the worlds of "is," the empirical realm, in order to explore its dependence on the world of "ought," the realm of norms, and the world of "praise," the realm of values.
C1 Univ Chicago, Chicago, IL USA.
RP Pavel, T, Univ Chicago, Chicago, IL USA.
CR ARISTOTLE, POETICS
AUERBACH E, 1957, MIMESIS REPRESENTATI
BERNSTEIN MA, 1994, FOREGONE CONCLUSION
BOOTH W, 1961, RHETORIC FICTION
BOOTH W, 1988, COMPANY WE KEEP ETHI
BRANDOM RB, 1994, MAKING IT EXPLICIT R
COHN D, 1999, DISTINCTION FICTION
DANTO A, 1981, TRANSFIGURATION COMM
DOLEZEL L, 1998, HETEROCOSMICA FICTIO
EHGEL GWF, 1975, AESTHETICS LECTURES
EMERSON C, 1997, FIRST HUNDRED YEARS
FLAHAUT F, 1998, MECHANCETE
GENETTE G, 1991, FICTION DICTION
GOODMAN N, 1968, LANGUAGES ART
HAMBRUGER K, 1973, LOGIC LIT
HARSAW B, 1984, POETICS TODAY, V5, P227
LARMORE C, IN PRESS PRATIQUES M
LARMORE C, 1993, MODERNITE MORALE
LUCAN, CIVIL WAR
LYONS JD, 1989, RHETORIC EXAMPLE EAR
MCDOWELL J, 1994, MIND WORLD
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P76
MELTZER F, 1987, SALOME DANCE WRITING
MORSON GS, 1994, NARRATIVE FREEDOM SH
NEHAMAS A, 1999, VIRTUES AUTHENTICITY, P251
NUSSBAUM M, 1990, LOVES KNOWLEDGE ESSA
OGDEN CK, 1923, MEANING MEANING
PAVEL T, 1986, FICTIONAL WORLDS
PAVEL T, 1994, RETURN THEAMTIC CRIT, P121
PAVEL T, 1998, NEW LITERARY HIST, V29, P579
PIPPIN RB, 2000, H JAMES MODERN MORAL
PLATO, REPUBLIC
ROCHLITZ R, 1998, ART BANE ESSAI
ROTHFIELD L, 1992, VITAL SIGNS MED REAL
RYAN ML, 1991, POSSIBLE WORLDS ARTI
SCHAEFFER JM, 1991, ART AGE MODERNE ESTH
SCHAEFFER JM, 1996, CELIBATAIRES ART POU
SCHAEFFER JM, 1999, POURQUOI FICITION
SCHELER M, 1973, FORMALISM ETHICS NON
SEARLE JR, 1975, NEW LITERARY HIST, V6, P319
SMITH BH, 1978, MARGINS DISCOURSE RE
SPACKS PM, 1986, GOSSIP
STENREBRG M, 1983, LIT CRITICISM PHILOS, P145
THIBAUDET A, 1951, G FLAUBERT MADAME BO, P271
TOLSTOY L, DEATH OF IVAN ILYITC
WALTON K, 1990, MIMESIS MAKE-BELIEVE
WATT I, 1957, RISE NOEL STUDIES DE
WEITZ M, 1978, PHILOS LOOKS ARTS, P121
NR 48
TC 4
PU DUKE UNIV PRESS
PI DURHAM
PA 905 W MAIN ST, STE 18-B, DURHAM, NC 27701 USA
SN 0333-5372
J9 POETICS TODAY
JI Poetics Today
PD FAL
PY 2000
VL 21
IS 3
BP 521
EP 541
PG 21
SC Literature
GA 394HP
UT ISI:000166518200003
ER

PT J
AU Gaskin, R
TI The unity of the declarative sentence
SO PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
ID PROPOSITION
C1 Univ Sussex, Brighton BN1 9RH, E Sussex, England.
RP Gaskin, R, Univ Sussex, Brighton BN1 9RH, E Sussex, England.
CR ARISTOTLE, CATEGORIES
ARISTOTLE, DE INTERPRETATIONE
BRADLEY FH, APPEARANCE REALITY
CANDLISH S, 1996, B RUSSELL ORIGINS AN, P103
DAVIDSON D, INQUIRIES TRUTH INTE
DENYER N, LANGUAGE THOUGHT FAL
DUMMETT M, FREGE PHILOS LANGUAG
FREGE G, NACHGELASSENE SCHRIF
FREGE G, TRANSLATIONS PHILOS
GASKIN R, 1995, PHILOS QUART, V45, P161
GEACH PT, 1950, MIND, V59, P461
GEACH PT, 1975, MIND LANG, P139
GUTTENPLAN S, 1975, MIND LANGUAGE
LINSKY L, 1992, J HIST PHILOS, V30, P243
MCDOWELL J, 1977, MIND, V86, P159
MEINONG A, UBER ANNAHMEN
MONK R, 1996, B RUSSELL ORIGINS AN
PLATO, SOPHIST
PRIEST G, BEYOND LIMITS THOUGH
RAMSEY FP, F MATH
RUSSELL B, ESSAYS ANAL
RUSSELL B, PRINCIPLES MATH
RUSSELL B, 1913, THEORY KNOWLEDGE
WIGGINS D, 1984, FREGE TRADITION INFL, P126
WITTGENSTEIN L, GEHEIME TAGEBUCHER
WITTGENSTEIN L, NOTEBOOKS
WITTGENSTEIN L, TRACTATUS LOGICO-PHI
WRIGHT C, 1984, FREGE TRADITION INFL
NR 28
TC 4
PU CAMBRIDGE UNIV PRESS
PI NEW YORK
PA 40 WEST 20TH STREET, NEW YORK, NY 10011-4211 USA
SN 0031-8191
J9 PHILOSOPHY
JI Philosophy
PD JAN
PY 1998
VL 73
IS 283
BP 21
EP 45
PG 25
SC Philosophy
GA ZA844
UT ISI:000072407700003
ER

PT J
AU Herman, D
TI Limits of order: Toward a theory of polychronic narration
SO NARRATIVE
LA English
DT Article
ID LOOSE
RP Herman, D, N Carolina State Univ, Raleigh, NC 27695 USA.
CR BARTHES R, 1977, IMAGE MUSIC TEXT
BENJAMIN W, ILLUMINATIONS
BRENTANO F, PSYCHOL EMPIRICAL ST
CAIRNS D, 1973, GUIDE TRANSLATING HU
CHATMAN S, STORY DISCOURSE
CHATMAN S, 1990, COMING TERMS RHETORI
CHATMAN S, 1995, NARRATIVE, V3, P303
DERRIDA J, E HUSSERLS ORIGIN GE
FRANK J, 1988, ESSENTIALS THEORY FI
FREGE G, ON SENSE AND REFEREN
FREGE G, TRANSLATIONS PHILOS
FUSSELL P, GREAT WAR MODERN MEM
GENETTE G, NARRATIVE DISCOURSE
GROSSMAN W, 1962, SINN FORM, V14, P120
HAMBURGER K, LOGIC LIT
HAYES PM, 1973, FASCISM
HERMAN D, UNPUB SOCIONARRATOLO
HERMAN D, 1994, NARRATIVE, V2, P230
HERMAN D, 1994, STYLE, V28, P378
HERMAN D, 1995, UNIVERSAL GRAMMAR NA
HORKHEIMER M, DIALECTIC ENLIGHTENM
HUSSERL E, CARTESIAN MEDITATION
HUSSERL E, ERFAHRUNG URTEIL
HUSSERL E, EXPERIENCE JUDGMENT
HUSSERL E, FORMAL TRANSCENDENTA
HUSSERL E, LOGICAL INVESTIGATIO
HUSSERL E, PHENOMENOLOGY INTERN
KAFALENOS E, 1995, NARRATIVE, V3, P117
KERN I, 1964, HUSSERL KANT UNTERSU
LABAHN KJ, 1986, A SEGHERS EXILE LIT
LANCHESTER J, 1996, DEBT TO PLEASURE
LAQUEUR W, 1996, FASCISM PAST PRESENT
MARGOLIN U, UNPUB WHAT IS PAST I
MEINONG A, OBJECTS HIGHER ORDER
MINK L, 1978, WRITING HIST LIT FOR
MODIANO P, 1968, PLACE ETOILE
NATANSON M, 1973, E HUSSERL PHILOS INF
PHELAN J, IN PRESS NARRATIVE P
PHILP M, 1997, THESIS N CAROLINA ST
PRINCE G, DICT NARRATOLOGY
PRINCE G, NARRATOLOGY FORM FUN
PRINCE G, NARRATOLOGY
PRINCE G, 1988, STYLE, V22, P1
PROPP V, MORPHOLOGY FOLKTALE
RIMONKENAN S, 1989, NARRATIVE FICTION CO
RYAN ML, 1991, POSSIBLE WORLDS ARTI
SEGAL E, 1995, DEIXIS NARRATIVE COG
SEGHERS A, 1980, ERZAHLUNGEN 1926-194
SHAW HE, 1995, NARRATIVE, V3, P307
SHAW HE, 1995, NARRATIVE, V3, P95
SHKLOVSKY V, 1990, THEORY PROSE
SMITH BH, NARRATIVE
SOKOLOWSKI R, 1964, FORMATION HUSSERLS C
SPARK M, PRIME OF MISS JEAN B
TWARDOWSKI K, 1977, CONTENT OBJECT PRESE
NR 55
TC 4
PU OHIO STATE UNIV PRESS
PI COLUMBUS
PA 1050 CARMACK RD, COLUMBUS, OH 43210 USA
SN 1063-3685
J9 NARRATIVE
JI Narrative
PD JAN
PY 1998
VL 6
IS 1
BP 72
EP 95
PG 24
SC Literature
GA YR226
UT ISI:000071473600005
ER

PT J
AU FRASER, IH
PARKER, DM
TI VISUAL PARSING AND PRIORITY EFFECTS IN TEMPORAL-ORDER JUDGEMENTS OF LINE DRAWN PATTERNS
SO PERCEPTION
LA English
DT Article
RP FRASER, IH, UNIV ABERDEEN,DEPT PSYCHOL,KINGS COLL,ABERDEEN AB9 2UB,SCOTLAND.
CR BIEDERMAN I, 1981, PERCEPTUAL ORG, P213
BREITMEYER BG, 1975, VISION RES, V15, P1411
BREITMEYER BG, 1976, PSYCHOL REV, V83, P1
BREITMEYER BG, 1984, VISUAL MASKING INTEG
BROADBENT DE, 1977, AM PSYCHOL, V32, P109
BRUCE V, 1985, VISUAL PERCEPTION PH
EARHARD B, 1985, PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS, V38, P249
ENDO M, 1986, ASPECTS FACE PROCESS, P53
FLAVELL JH, 1957, PSYCHOL BULL, V54, P197
FRASER IH, 1986, ASPECTS FACE PROCESS, P45
FRASER IH, 1987, BEHAV RES METH INSTR, V19, P315
INTRAUB H, 1985, J EXP PSYCHOL HUMAN, V11, P431
MEINONG A, 1899, Z PSYCHOL, V11, P180
NAVON D, 1977, COGNITIVE PSYCHOL, V9, P353
NAVON D, 1983, J EXP PSYCHOL HUMAN, V9, P955
NEISSER U, 1967, COGNITIVE PSYCHOL
NEISSER U, 1976, COGNITION REALITY
OATLEY K, 1988, IN PRESS J INTELLIGE
PALMER SE, 1975, MEM COGNITION, V3, P519
PARKER DM, 1980, PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS, V28, P365
PARKER DM, 1982, VISION RES, V22, P205
PARKER DM, 1987, VISION RES, V27, P1279
SHULMAN GL, 1986, PERCEPTION, V15, P259
TAYLOR SP, 1983, VISION RES, V23, P745
UTTAL WR, 1981, TAXONOMY VISUAL PROC
WALTZ D, 1975, PSYCHOL COMPUTER VIS, P19
WATT RJ, 1986, SPATIAL VISION, V1, P243
WHITE MJ, 1976, CAN J PSYCHOL, V30, P140
WILLIAMS A, 1978, MEM COGNITION, V6, P85
YIN RK, 1969, J EXP PSYCHOL, V81, P141
NR 30
TC 4
PU PION LTD
PI LONDON
PA 207 BRONDESBURY PARK, LONDON, ENGLAND NW2 5JN
SN 0301-0066
J9 PERCEPTION
JI Perception
PY 1988
VL 17
IS 4
BP 437
EP 459
PG 23
SC Psychology; Psychology, Experimental
GA T4241
UT ISI:A1988T424100003
ER

PT J
AU MCINTYRE, R
TI HUSSERL PHENOMENOLOGICAL CONCEPTION OF INTENTIONALITY AND ITS DIFFICULTIES
SO PHILOSOPHIA
LA English
DT Article
RP MCINTYRE, R, CALIF STATE UNIV NORTHRIDGE,NORTHRIDGE,CA 91330.
CR ANSCOMBE GEM, 1968, ANAL PHILOS, P158
BRENTANO F, 1973, PSYCHOL EMPIRICAL ST
BROAD CD, 1965, PERCEIVING SENSING K, P85
DREYFUS HL, 1972, LIFE WORLD CONSCIOUS, P154
FOLLESDAL D, 1969, J PHILOS, V66, P680
FOLLESDAL D, 1972, CONT PHILOS SCANDINA, P417
FOLLESDAL D, 1982, HUSSERL INTENTIONALI
HINTIKKA J, 1969, MODELS MODALITIES
HINTIKKA J, 1975, INTENTIONS INTENTION, P192
HUSSERL E, 1931, IDEAS GENERAL INTRO
HUSSERL E, 1950, IDEEN REINEN PHANOME, V1
HUSSERL E, 1960, CARTESIAN MEDITATION
HUSSERL E, 1960, FORMAL TRANSCENDENTA
HUSSERL E, 1968, LI LOGISCHE UNTERSUC
HUSSERL E, 1970, LOGICAL INVESTIGATIO
HUSSERL E, 1973, EXPERIENCE JUDGMENT
KRIPKE SA, 1972, SEMANTICS NATURAL LA, P255
KUNG G, 1973, REV METAPHYSICS, V26, P675
MCINTYRE R, 1975, MONIST, V59, P115
MCINTYRE R, 1982, HUSSERL INTENTIONALI
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P76
PUTNAM H, 1972, PHILOS PAPERS, V2, P215
PUTNAM H, 1973, J PHILOS, V70, P699
PUTNAM H, 1977, NAMING NECESSITY NAT
SMITH DW, 1971, J PHILOS, V68, P550
SMITH DW, 1975, GRAZER PHILOSOPHISCH, V1, P43
SMITH DW, 1982, HUSSERL INTENTIONALI
NR 27
TC 4
PU BAR ILAN UNIV
PI RAMAT GAN
PA DEPT PHILOSOPHY, RAMAT GAN, ISRAEL
SN 0048-3893
J9 PHILOSOPHIA
JI Philosophia
PY 1982
VL 11
IS 3-4
BP 223
EP 248
PG 26
SC Philosophy
GA PG949
UT ISI:A1982PG94900001
ER

PT J
AU BROWN, G
TI VERA-ENTIA - THE NATURE OF MATHEMATICAL OBJECTS IN DESCARTES
SO JOURNAL OF THE HISTORY OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
RP BROWN, G, UNIV MARYLAND,COLLEGE PK,MD 20742.
CR BELEVAL, 1960, LEIBNIZ CRITIQUE DES
BREHIER E, 1967, DESCARTES COLLECTION, P197
COTTINGHAM JG, 1976, DESCARTES CONVERSATI
CURLEY EM, 1978, DESCARTES SKEPTICS
DESCARTES R, DISCOURSE ON METHOD
DESCARTES R, MEDITATIONS
DESCARTES R, NOTES PROGRAMME
DESCARTES R, RULES DIRECTION MIND
DESCARTES R, 1897, OEUVRES, V9
DESCARTES R, 1931, PHILOS WORKS, V1
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
GEWIRTH A, 1970, J PHILOS, V67, P677
KENNY A, 1968, DESCARTES
KENNY A, 1970, J PHILOS, V67, P692
KENNY AJP, 1970, DESCARTES PHILOS LET
LAPORTE J, 1950, RATIONALISME DESCART
MEINONG A, 1913, GESAMMELTE ABHANDLUN, V2, P483
MEINONG A, 1915, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
ONEIL BE, 1974, EPISTEMOLOGICAL DIRE
PENELHUM T, 1969, FACT EXISTENCE, P46
PLATO, CRATYLUS
PLATO, PARMENIDES
PLATO, PHAEDO
NR 23
TC 4
PU J HISTORY PHILOSOPHY WASHINGTON UNIV
PI ST LOUIS
PA DEPT PHILOSOPHY BOX 1073, ST LOUIS, MO 63130
SN 0022-5053
J9 J HIST PHIL
JI J. Hist. Philos.
PY 1980
VL 18
IS 1
BP 23
EP 37
PG 15
SC Philosophy
GA LV835
UT ISI:A1980LV83500003
ER

PT J
AU KAUDER, E
TI MENGER UNPUBLISHED PAPERS
SO WELTWIRTSCHAFTLICHES ARCHIV-REVIEW OF WORLD ECONOMICS
LA German
DT Article
CR 1867, TITELBLATT MENGERS B, P1
1882, UNPUB NAME HALBWOCHE, P58
1909, HDB STAATSWISSENSCHA, V4, P555
1921, NATIONALEKONOMISKA S, P87
1955, KATALOG C MENGER BIB, V2
ANTONELLI E, 1953, ECON APPL, V6, P269
AUSPITZ R, 1887, THEORIE PREISES
BUKHARIN N, 1927, EC THEORY LEISURE CL, P23
CAIRNES JE, 1873, ESSAYS POLITICAL EC, P253
CASSIRER E, 1922, KANT AUSGABE, V3, P6
COURNOT A, 1838, RECHERCHES PRINCIPES
DERSELBE, TITELBLATT FRAGMENTS
DERSELBE, 1863, PRINCIPES THEORIE RI
DERSELBE, 1877, REV SOMMAIRE DOCTRIN
DERSELBE, 1898, ETUDES EC APPLIQUEE, P460
DERSELBE, 1911, THEORY POLITICAL EC, P23
DERSELBE, 1935, WIRTSCHAFTLICHKEIT
DERSELBE, 1948, SCHWEIZERISCHE Z VOL, V84, P166
DOBRETSBERGER J, 1949, Z NATIONALOKONOMIE, V12, P78
EHRENFELS C, 1893, VIERTELJAHRSSCHRIFT
FEILBOGEN, 1911, J EC PARIS, V31, P56
FETTER FA, 1927, GESAMTBILD FORSCHUNG, V1, P31
GOLLWITZER H, 1957, BEITRAG DTSCH SOZIAL, P188
GOSSEN, STELLE GOSSEN BEHAUP, P85
HOWLEY RS, 1960, RISE MARGINAL UTILIT
HUTCHISON TW, 1953, REV EC DOCTRINES 187
KAUDER E, 1957, Z NATIONALOKONOMIE, V17, P411
KAUDER E, 1959, ECON REV, V10, P58
KNIES K, 1853, POLITISCHE OEKONOMIE, P11
KUDLER J, 1846, GRUNDLEHREN VOLKSWIR
MEINONG A, 1894, PSYCHOLOGISCH ETHISC
MENGER C, 1883, UNTERSUCHUNGEN METHO, P260
MENGER C, 1884, IRRTHUMER HIST DTSCH, P82
MENGER C, 1888, JB NATIONALOKONOMIE, V17, P28
MENGER C, 1915, E VONBOEHMBAWERK ALM
MUHLHERR R, 1948, ONTOLOGIE MONADOLOGI
PANTALEONI M, 1889, PRINCIPII EC PURA, P121
SCHMID C, 1957, GROSSEN DTSCH DTSCH, V5, P322
SPANN O, 1931, HAUPTTHEORIEN VOLKSW, P165
SPANN O, 1949, HAUPTTHEORIEN VOLKSW, P185
STARK W, 1945, HIST EC ITS RELATION, P3
STEIN L, 1856, SYSTEM STAATSWISSENS, V2, P327
STIGLER GJ, 1937, J POLITICAL EC CHICA, V45, P250
STJEVONS W, 1886, LETT J W STJEVONS, P65
SUGIMURA K, 1926, INQUIRY MENGERS METH
UEBERWEG F, 1872, GRUNDRISS GESCHICHTE, V3
VALJAVEC F, 1945, JOSEPHINISMUS GEISTI, P8
VONBOHMBAWERK E, 1921, KAPITAL KAPITALZIN 2, V1, P339
VONHAYEK FA, 1934, COLLECTED WORKS C ME, V1, R11
VONMITIS OF, 1928, LEBEN KRONPRINZEN RU, P37
VONWIESER FF, 1929, GESAMMELTE ABH, P117
WALRAS L, 1896, ETUDES EC SOCIALE TH, R6
WEINBERGER O, 1938, ATTI REALE ACCADEMIA, V59, P92
WIESER F, 1926, GESETZ MACHT, P187
YAMADA Y, 1955, FORMATION MODERN EC
NR 55
TC 4
PU J C B MOHR
PI TUBINGEN
PA POSTFACH 2040, W-7400 TUBINGEN, GERMANY
SN 0043-2636
J9 WELTWIRTSCHAFTL ARCH
JI Weltwirtsch. Arch.-Rev. World Econ.
PY 1962
VL 89
IS 1
BP 1
EP 28
PG 28
SC Economics; International Relations
GA CAV92
UT ISI:A1962CAV9200001
ER

PT J
AU Mursell, JL
AF Mursell, James L.
TI PSYCHOLOGY OF MUSIC
SO PSYCHOLOGICAL BULLETIN
LA English
DT Review
CR 1926, COMPTE RENU LIER C R
ABRAHAM O, 1901, SAMMELBANDE INT MUSI, V3, P1
ADLER M, 1930, ARCH PSYCHOL
AGNEW M, 1922, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V31, P268
AGNEW M, 1922, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V31, P279
ANDERSON DA, 1914, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V17, P150
ANDREWS BR, 1915, AM J PSYCHOL, V16, P302
BAIRD JW, 1917, STUDIES PSYCHOL TITC, P43
BEAUNIS H, 1887, AM J PSYCHOL, V1, P205
BEAUNIS H, 1918, REV PHILOS, V86, P353
BELAIEWEXEMPLAR.S, 1924, PSYCHOL MUSIKWAHRNEH
BELAIEWEXEMPLAR.S, 1926, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V57, P489
BELAIEWEXEMPLAR.S, 1926, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V27, P177
BELAIEWEXEMPLAR.S, 1928, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V3, P107
BERLAGE F, 1910, PSYCHOL STUD, P39
BERNFELD S, 1915, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V34, P235
BINGHAM WV, 1910, PSYCHOL MONOG, V12
BINGHAM WV, 1914, PSYCHOL BULL, V11, P421
BOGGS LP, 1907, AM J PSYCHOL, V18, P194
BRENNAN FM, 1926, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V36, P249
BRIES AM, 1927, AM J PSYCHOL, V38, P624
BROWN AW, 1928, J APPL PSYCHOL, V12, P468
BROWN RW, 1928, J EXP PSYCHOL, V11, P235
BUECHER K, 1919, ARBEIT RHYTHMUS
CAMERON EH, 1907, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V8, P227
CAMERON EH, 1917, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V23, P159
CASPARI H, 1906, Z INT MUSIKGESELLSCH, V8, P216
COPP EF, 1916, J HERED, V7, P297
COURTIER J, 1897, DRITTER INTERNAT K, P238
COWELL H, 1926, AM J PSYCHOL, V37, P233
DAUBRESSE M, 1903, ARCH PSYCHOL, V3, P200
DAURIAC L, 1893, REV PHIL, V35, P149
DAURIAC L, 1893, REV PHIL, V35, P595
DEGRAFF LH, 1924, THESIS U IOWA LIB
DISERENS C, 1926, INFLUENCE MUSIC BEHA
DISERENS CM, 1923, PSYCHOL BULL, V20, P173
DIXON JM, 1905, METH REV, V21, P858
DOWNEY JE, 1897, AM J PSYCHOL, V9, P63
DUNLAP K, 1911, PSYCHOL BULL, V8, P239
DUNLAP K, 1916, J EXP PSYCHOL, V1, P183
EDMONDS EM, 1923, AM J PSYCHOL, V35, P287
EMERSON LE, 1906, HARVARD PSYCHOL STUD, V2, P269
ERICKSON CI, 1926, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V36, P82
FARNSWORTH PR, 1924, B J PSYCHOL-GEN SE 1, V15, P82
FARNSWORTH PR, 1925, AM J PSYCHOL, V36, P394
FARNSWORTH PR, 1926, AM J PSYCHOL, V37, P116
FARNSWORTH PR, 1926, AM J PSYCHOL, V37, P237
FARNSWORTH PR, 1926, J EXP PSYCHOL, V9, P253
FARNSWORTH PR, 1928, J APPL PSYCHOL, V12, P148
FARNSWORTH PR, 1928, J EDUC PSYCHOL, V19, P586
FARNSWORTH PR, 1928, J GEN PSYCHOL, V1, P377
FARNSWORTH PR, 1929, J EDUC PSYCHOL, V20, P693
FEIS O, 1910, STUDIEN GENEALOGIE P
FELDKELLER P, 1925, Z AESTH, V10, P161
FELDKELLER P, 1925, Z AESTH, V10, P267
FRACKER GC, 1928, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V39, P157
GATEWOOD EL, 1921, J APPL PSYCHOL, V5, P350
GAW EA, 1918, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V25, P134
GAW EA, 1922, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V31, P128
GAW EA, 1928, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V39, P145
GILLILAND AR, 1922, J EXP PSYCHOL, V7, P214
GILLILAND AR, 1924, J APPL PSYCHOL, V8, P309
GILMAN B, 1893, AM J PSYCHOL, V5, P42
GILMAN B, 1909, SCIENCE, V30, P33
GILMAN BI, 1892, AM J PSYCHOL, V4, P558
GORDON K, 1917, J EXP PSYCHOL, V2, P93
GOUGH E, 1922, ARCH PSYCHOL, P47
GRAY CT, 1929, J EDUC PSYCHOL, V20, P501
GUERNSEY M, 1928, AM J PSYCHOL, V40, P173
GUTHRIE ER, 1928, AM J PSYCHOL, V40, P624
HAECKER V, 1921, Z PSYCHOL, V88, P265
HAECKER V, 1922, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V89, P273
HALLOCK M, 1903, POP SCI MONTHLY, V63, P425
HANCOCK C, 1914, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V17, P161
HEINITZ W, 1915, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, P34
HEINLEIN CP, 1925, J EXP PSYCHOL, V8, P408
HEINLEIN CP, 1928, J COMP PSYCHOL, V8, P101
HEINLEIN CP, 1928, P SEM J GEN PSYCHOL, V35, P45
HEINLEIN CP, 1929, PSYCHOL REV, V35, P524
HOHENEMSER R, 1915, Z PSYCHOL, V72, P373
HOLLINGWORTH LS, 1926, J EDUC PSYCHOL, V17, P95
HOWES F, 1926, BORDERLAND MUSIC PSY
HUMPHREY G, 1927, J ABNORM SOC PSYCH, V22, P194
JACKSON GP, 1915, MOD PHILOLOGY, V13, P561
JACKSON GP, 1916, MOD PHILOLOGY, V14, P357
JACKSON GP, 1916, MOD PHILOLOGY, V14, P65
JACKSON GP, 1917, MOD PHILOLOGY, V15, P79
JANCKE H, 1928, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V62, P273
JANCKE H, 1928, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V66, P437
JAQUESDALCROZE E, 1921, RHYTHM MUSIC ED
JUHASZ A, 1924, Z PSYCHOL, V95, P142
KAESTNER G, 1909, PSYCHOL STUDIEN, V4, P473
KATZ D, 1926, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V99, P289
KECHMANN R, 1924, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V23, P329
KEMP W, 1913, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V29, P139
KERPOLA W, 1915, SKAND ARCH PHYSL, V33, P1
KLAUER NJ, 1924, THESIS U IOWA LIB
KLUNDER A, 1879, ARCH ANAT PHYSL, P119
KNOCK CJ, 1922, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V31, P102
KOCH H, 1926, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V99, P16
KOHLER W, 1910, Z PSYCHOL, V54, P241
KOHLER W, 1910, Z PSYCHOL, V58, P59
KOHLER W, 1913, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V64, P92
KOHLER W, 1915, Z PSYCHOL, V72, P1
KONIG H, 1928, Z PSYCHOL, V109, P398
KOVACS S, 1916, Z ANG PSYCH, V11, P113
KOVACZ S, 1917, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V37, P283
KRUEGER F, 1903, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V1, P205
KRUEGER F, 1906, PSYCHOL STUD, V1, P305
KRUEGER F, 1907, PSYCHOL STUD, V2, P205
KRUEGER F, 1909, PSYCHOL STUD, V42, P201
KRUEGER F, 1910, PSYCHOL STUD, V5, P294
KRUEGER F, 1913, J PHILOS, V10, P158
KRYZHANOWSKY II, 1928, BIOL BASES EVOLUTION
KUHN W, 1919, BEITRAGE NAT UNSW OH, V13, P254
KWALWASSER J, 1926, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V36, P84
KWALWASSER J, 1927, TESTS MEASUREMENTS M
LAHY JM, 1904, REV MUSICALE ITALIAN, V11, P77
LANDRY L, 1927, J PSYCHOL, V24, P928
LANIER LH, 1927, J EXP PSYCHOL, V10, P89
LANIER LH, 1929, J EDUC PSYCHOL, V20, P691
LARSON DL, 1928, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V38, P49
LARSON WS, 1930, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V40, P33
LENOIRE Z, 1925, THESIS U IOWA LIB
LIPPS T, 1905, PSYCHOL STUDIEN
LOWERY H, 1928, BRIT J PSYCHOL, V19, P397
MACDOUGAL R, 1898, PSY REV, V5, P463
MACDOUGALL R, 1902, PSYCHOL REV, V9, P460
MALMBERG, 1918, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V25, P92
MCGINNIS E, 1928, AM J PSYCHOL, V40, P620
MEINONG A, 1897, Z PSYCHOL, V15, P189
METFESSEL M, 1926, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V36, P1
METFESSEL M, 1928, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V39, P126
MEYER M, U MISS STUDIES, V1, P1
MEYER M, 1898, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V16, P352
MEYER M, 1898, Z PSYCHOL, V17, P404
MEYER M, 1899, PSYCHOL REV, V6, P514
MEYER M, 1900, PSYCHOL REV, V7, P241
MEYER M, 1903, AM J PSYCHOL, V14, P456
MEYER M, 1904, J PHILOS, V1, P707
MEYER M, 1904, PSYCHOL REV, V11, P83
MILES WR, 1914, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V17, P13
MILLER R, 1925, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V97, P191
MJOEN JA, 1926, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V27, P217
MOORE HT, 1914, PSYCHOL MONOG, V17
MORAN H, 1926, J EXP PSYCHOL, V9, P492
MORTON WB, 1919, BRIT J PSYCHOL, V10, P194
MOSHER RM, 1925, CONTRIBUTIONS ED COL, V194
MULL HK, 1925, AM J PSYCHOL, V36, P469
MYERS CS, 1904, BRIT J PSYCHOL, V1, P315
MYERS CS, 1904, BRIT J PSYCHOL, V1, P397
MYERS CS, 1914, BRIT J PSYCHOL 1, V7, P68
NIELSEN JT, 1930, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V40, P74
OGDEN RM, 1909, PSYCHOL BULL, V6, P297
OGDEN RM, 1920, PSYCHOL REV, V27, P136
OGDEN RM, 1924, HEARING
ORTMANN O, 1922, J COMP PSYCHOL, V2, P227
ORTMANN O, 1926, PSYCHOL MONOG, V35
PANNENBORG HJ, 1915, Z PSYCHOL, V73, P91
PEAR TH, 1911, BRIT J PSYCHOL 1, V4, P56
PETERSON J, 1925, PSYCHOL REV, V32, P17
PRATT CC, 1921, AM J PSYCHOL, V32, P490
PRATT CC, 1923, J EXP PSYCHOL, V6, P211
PRATT CC, 1928, J EXP PSYCHOL, V11, P17
PRATT CC, 1928, J EXP PSYCHOL, V11, P77
PRATT CC, 1928, PED SEM J GENETIC PS, V35, P286
PUFFER EF, 1905, PSYCHOL BEAUTY
REVECZ G, 1913, GRUNDLEGUNG TONPSYCH
REVECZ G, 1919, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V15, P341
REVECZ G, 1925, PSYCHOL MUSICAL PROD
REVESZ G, 1920, Z PSYCHOL, V85, P163
RICH GJ, 1916, J EXP PSYCHOL, V1, P13
RICH GJ, 1919, AM J PSYCHOL, V30, P121
RICH GJ, 1921, AM J PSYCHOL, V32, P446
ROBERTS HH, 1927, PSYCHOL REV, V34, P463
ROSS FB, 1914, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V17, P166
RUCKMICH CA, 1918, AM J PSYCHOL, V29, P214
RUCKMICK CA, 1913, AM J PSYCHOL, V24, P303
RUCKMICK CA, 1913, AM J PSYCHOL, V24, P508
RUCKMICK CA, 1915, AM J PSYCHOL, V26, P457
RUCKMICK CA, 1917, STUDIES PSYCHOL TITC
RUCKMICK CA, 1924, AM J PSYCHOL, V25, P407
RUCKMICK CA, 1924, P MUS TEACHNATL ASS, V19, P53
RUCKMICK CA, 1924, PSYCHOL BULL, V21, P606
RUCKMICK CA, 1927, AM J PSYCHOL, V39, P356
RUCKMICK CA, 1927, PSYCHOL BULL, V24, P81
RUCKMICK CA, 1928, PSYCHOL BULL, V25, P229
RUCKMICK CA, 1929, PSYCHOL REV, V36, P172
RUCKMICK CA, 1930, PSYCHOL BULL, V27, P271
RUPP H, 1915, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V9, P1
SABANEEV L, 1928, PSYCHO, V33, P37
SCHOEN M, 1921, PSYCHOL BULL, V18, P483
SCHOEN M, 1922, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V31, P230
SCHOEN M, 1923, J COMP PSYCHOL, V3, P101
SCHOEN M, 1925, J COMP PSYCHOL, V5, P31
SCHOEN M, 1927, EFFECTS MUSIC
SCHOEN M, 1928, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V39, P162
SCHUSSLER H, 1916, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V11, P136
SEARS CH, 1922, AM J PSYCHOL, V13, P28
SEASHORE CE, MANUAL INSTRUCTIONS
SEASHORE CE, 1910, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V13, P21
SEASHORE CE, 1914, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V17, P1
SEASHORE CE, 1918, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V21, P47
SEASHORE CE, 1919, PSYCHOL MUSICAL TALE
SEASHORE CE, 1923, P NATL ACAD SCI USA, P323
SEASHORE CE, 1927, AM J PSYCHOL, V39, P141
SEASHORE CE, 1927, SCI MON, V24, P463
SEASHORE CE, 1930, PSYCHOL REV, V27, P178
SEASHORE CF, 1910, J EDUC PSYCHOL, V1, P311
SEASHORE RH, 1926, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V36, P142
SHERMAN M, 1928, J EXP PSYCHOL, V11, P495
SIKES ML, 1923, PED SEM, V30, P156
SMITH FO, 1914, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V17, P67
SOKOLOWSKY R, 1911, BEITR ANAT PHYSL PAT, V5
STANTON HM, 1922, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V31, P157
STANTON HM, 1928, PERS J, V7, P286
STANTON HM, 1928, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V39, P135
STANTON HM, 1929, PROGNOSIS MUSICAL AC
STARKEW K, 1928, PSYCHOTECHN Z, V3, P110
STERN W, 1926, PSYCHOL EARLY CHILDH
STERZINGER O, 1916, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V35, P75
STERZINGER O, 1917, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V36, P1
STETSON RH, 1903, PSYCHOL REV-MONOGR S, V4, P413
STETSON RH, 1905, PSYCHOL REV, V12, P250
STETSON RH, 1905, PSYCHOL REV, V12, P293
STETSON RH, 1923, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V32, P41
STEVENS FA, 1928, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V39, P200
STEWART RM, 1914, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V17, P157
STUMPF C, 1890, TONPSYCHOLOGIE, V2
STUMPF C, 1897, ABHANDL KL AK WISS, P1
STUMPF C, 1898, BEITR AKUST MUSIKWIS, V1, P1
STUMPF C, 1898, Z PSYCHOL, V18, P321
STUMPF C, 1905, Z PSYCHOL, V39, P269
STUMPF C, 1909, Z PSYCHOL, V2
STUMPF C, 1910, Z PSYCHOL, V55, P1
STUMPF C, 1911, ANFANGE MUSIK
STUMPF C, 1911, BERICHT 4 K EXPT PSY, P256
STUMPF C, 1911, Z PSYCHOL, V58, P321
STUMPF C, 1911, Z PSYCHOL, V59, P161
STUMPF C, 1915, BEITRAGE AKUSTIK MUS
STUMPF C, 1917, ABH PREUSS AK WISS
STUMPF C, 1924, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V94, P1
THURSTONE LL, 1920, MUS Q, V6, P426
TRAVIS AB, 1925, THESIS OBERLIN COLL
VALENTINE CW, 1913, BRIT J PSYCHOL 2, V6, P190
VALENTINE CW, 1914, BRIT J PSYCHOL, V7, P188
VANCE TF, 1914, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V17, P104
VANCE TF, 1914, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V17, P115
VONHORNBOSTEL E, 1910, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V3, P465
VONKRIES J, 1892, Z PSYCHOL, V3, P257
VONMALTZOW C, 1928, PSYCHOTECHN Z, V3, P102
VONMALTZOW C, 1928, PSYCHOTECHN Z, V3, P111
WAGNER AH, 1930, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V40, P160
WAIBLINGER E, 1912, ARRCH GESAMTE PSYC B, V24, P7
WAIBLINGER E, 1913, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V29, P258
WASHBURN MF, 1916, N E A PUB, P600
WATT HJ, 1919, FDN MUSIC
WATT HJ, 1923, BRIT J PSYCHOL, V14, P370
WEAD CK, 1900, PSYCHOL REV, V7, P400
WEINMANN F, 1904, Z PSYCHOL, V35, P340
WEINMANN F, 1904, Z PSYCHOL, V35, P401
WEINMANN F, 1905, Z PSYCHOL, V38, P234
WELD HP, 1912, AM J PSYCHOL, V23, P245
WERNER H, 1925, Z PSYCHOL, V98, P74
WHIPPLE GM, 1928, J APPL PSYCHOL, V12, P200
WOODROW H, 1911, PSYCHOL REV, V18, P54
WOODROW H, 1918, PSYCHOL BULL, V15, P111
WRIGHT FA, 1928, J EDUC RES, V17, P50
NR 268
TC 4
PU AMER PSYCHOLOGICAL ASSOC
PI WASHINGTON
PA 750 FIRST ST NE, WASHINGTON, DC 20002-4242 USA
SN 0033-2909
J9 PSYCHOL BULL
JI Psychol. Bull.
PD MAR
PY 1932
VL 29
IS 3
BP 218
EP 241
PG 24
SC Psychology; Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V93DZ
UT ISI:000206297100003
ER

PT J
AU Krauss, S
AF Krauss, Stephan
TI Facts and Problems concerning a psychological Lighting Theory based on Phenomenology
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Article
CR BERINGER K, 1927, SPRINGERS MONOGRAPHI, V49
BOCKSCH H, 1927, Z PS, V102
BUHLER K, 1922, HDB PSYCHOL, V1, P1
BUHLER K, 1927, KRISE PSYCHOL
CRAMER T, 1923, Z SINNESPHYSIOL, V54
FUCHS W, 1923, Z PS, V91
FUCHS W, 1923, Z PS, V92
GELB A, 1923, Z PS, V93
GRANIT R, 1926, SKAND ARCH PHYSL, V48
HARTMANN H, 1924, MONATSSCHR PSYCHIAT, V56
HERING E, GRAFE SAEMISCHS HB G, V1, P12
HUSSERL E, 1913, JB PHILOS PHANOMENOL, V1
JAENSCH ER, 1911, Z PS S, V6
JAENSCH ER, 1921, Z SINNESPHYSIOL, V52
JAENSCH ER, 1927, AUFBAU WAHRNEHMUNGSW
KAILA E, 1923, PSYCH FORSCHUNG, V3
KATZ D, 1911, Z PS S, V7
KATZ D, 1924, Z PS, V95
KIRSCHMANN A, 1927, ABDERHALDENS HB BIOL, V225
KLUVER H, 1926, AM J PSYCHOL
KROH O, 1921, Z SINNESPHYSIOL, V52
KRUGER H, 1925, Z PS, V96
LINKE PF, 1918, GRUNDFRAGEN WAHRNEHM
MARZYNSKI G, 1921, Z PS, V87
MAYERGROSS W, 1926, Z GES NEUR PSYCHIAT, V101
MEINONG A, 1913, ABHANDLUNGEN ERKENNT
MULLER GE, 1923, Z SINNESPHYSIOL, V54
SCHNEIDER L, 1924, LICHT LAMPE, V14
SCHUMANN F, 1921, Z PS, V86
STKRAUSS, 1926, Z PS, V100
STKRAUSS, 1926, Z SINNESPHYSIOL, V57
STKRAUSS, 1927, 10 K BER EXP PS
STKRAUSS, 1927, Z PS, V102
TEICHMULLER J, 1924, LICHT LAMPE, V19
TEICHMULLER J, 1925, IND PSYCHOTECHNIK, V2
TEICHMULLER J, 1925, LICHTTECHNIK, V21
TEICHMULLER J, 1927, LICHT LAMPE, V13
VONHELMHOLTZ H, PHYSL OPTIK, V1
VONKRIES J, 1904, NAGELS HB PHYSL, V3
VONKRIES J, 1923, ALLGEMEINE SINNESPHY
WIRTH W, 1900, WUNDTS PHILOS STUD, V16
WIRTH W, 1900, WUNDTS PHILOS STUD, V17
WIRTH W, 1900, WUNDTS PHILOS STUD, V18
WIRTH W, 1924, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V46
NR 44
TC 4
SN 0724-7842
J9 ARCG GESAMTE PSYCHOL
JI Archiv. Gesamte Psychol.
PD FEB
PY 1928
VL 62
IS 1-2
BP 179
EP 224
PG 46
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V01IQ
UT ISI:000206849700003
ER

PT J
AU Benussi, V
AF Benussi, V.
TI Approach to the Analysis of Tactile Awakened Apparent Movements
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Article
CR ARCH GES PSYCH, V2, P427
ARCH GES PSYCH, V29, P385
ARCH GES PSYCH, V32, P42
ARCH GES PSYCH, V9, P408
ARCH GES PSYCH, V9, P419
KONGRESSBERICHT, P36
PSYCH ZEITAUFFASSUNG, P129
Z PSYCHOL, V73, P11
1912, ARCH GES PSYCH, V24, P31
1913, PSYCHOL ZEITAUFFASSU, P50
1913, PSYCHOL ZEITAUFFASSU, P99
1914, 6 K EXP PSYCH GOTT O
1914, 6 K EXP PSYCH LEIPZ, P30
1914, 6 K LEIPZ, P30
1914, ARCH GES PSYCH, V32, P401
GELB A, 1914, 6 K D GES EXP PSYCH
GELB A, 1914, 6 K GES EXP PSYCH GO
GEMELLI LA, 1914, METODO EQUIVALENTI, P83
KOFFKA K, GEISTESWISSENSCHAFTE, V1, P711
KOFFKA K, Z PSYCH, V69, P97
KOFFKA, 1913, Z PSYCHOL, V67, P353
MEINONG A, 1904, BEITRAGE PSYCH GEGEN
WERTHEIMER M, 1912, Z PSYCHOL, V61, P162
WERTHEIMER W, 1912, Z PSYCHOL, V61, P162
NR 24
TC 4
SN 0724-7842
J9 ARCG GESAMTE PSYCHOL
JI Archiv. Gesamte Psychol.
PD JUL 4
PY 1916
VL 36
IS 1
BP 59
EP 135
PG 77
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V98HQ
UT ISI:000206644600002
ER

PT J
AU Reisenzein, R
AF Reisenzein, Rainer
TI Emotions as metarepresentational states of mind: Naturalizing the belief-desire theory of emotion
SO COGNITIVE SYSTEMS RESEARCH
LA English
DT Review
DE Emotion; Belief-desire theory; Metacognition; Affective computing; BDI
ID META-COGNITION; PLEASURE; CONSCIOUSNESS; PSYCHOLOGY; PREDICTION; SYSTEMS; MODEL
AB Describes the outlines of a computational explication of the belief-desire theory of emotion, a variant of cognitive emotion theory. According to the proposed explication, a core subset of emotions including surprise are nonconceptual products of hardwired mechanisms whose primary function is to subserve the monitoring and updating of the central representational system of humans, the belief-desire system. The posited emotion-producing mechanisms are analogous to sensory transducers; however, instead of sensing the world, they sense the state of the belief-desire system and signal important changes in this system, in particular the fulfillment and frustration of desires and the confirmation and disconfirmation of beliefs. Because emotions represent this information about the state of the representational system in a nonconceptual format, emotions are nonconceptual metarepresentations. It is argued that this theory of emotions provides for a deepened understanding of the role of emotions in cognitive systems and solves several problems of psychological emotion theory. (C) 2008 Elsevier B. V. All rights reserved.
C1 Ernst Moritz Arndt Univ Greifswald, Inst Psychol, D-17487 Greifswald, Germany.
RP Reisenzein, R, Ernst Moritz Arndt Univ Greifswald, Inst Psychol, Franz Mehring Str 47, D-17487 Greifswald, Germany.
EM rainer.reisenzein@uni-greifswald.de
CR ABLER B, 2006, NEUROIMAGE, V31, P790, DOI 10.1016/j.neuroimage.2006.01.001
ANDERSON JR, 1998, ATOMIC COMPONENTS TH
ARNOLD MB, 1960, EMOTION PERSONALITY, V1
ARNOLD MB, 1960, EMOTION PERSONALITY, V2
AYDEDE M, 2004, LANGUAGE THOUGHT HYP
BAARS B, 1988, COGNITIVE THEORY CON
BARRETT LF, 2006, PERS SOC PSYCHOL REV, V10, P20
BARSALOU LW, 1999, BEHAV BRAIN SCI, V22, P577
BAUMEISTER RF, 2007, PERS SOC PSYCHOL REV, V11, P167, DOI 10.1177/1088868307301033
BECHER E, 1916, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V74, P128
BECKER C, 2006, P 1 INT WORKSH EM CO, V31
BRATMAN ME, 1987, INTENTIONS PLANS PRA
BRATMAN ME, 1988, COMPUT INTELL, V4, P349
BRENTANO F, 1874, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN, V1
CARRUTHERS P, 2007, MIND LANG, V23, P58
CARVER CS, 2003, COGNITION EMOTION, V17, P241, DOI 10.1080/02699930244000291
CHALMERS D, 1995, J CONSCIOUSNESS STUD, V2, P200
CLORE GL, 1994, NATURE EMOTION FUNDA, P103
COSTALL A, 1991, MICHOTTES EXPT PHENO, P51
CRANE T, 1998, CURRENT ISSUES PHILO, P229
DAVIDSON D, 1982, DIALECTICA, V36, P317
DAVIS W, 1981, PHILOS STUD, V39, P305
DAY JP, 1970, MIND, V79, P369
DENNETT DC, 1987, INTENTIONAL STANCE
DRETSKE F, 1995, NATURALIZING MIND
ELLIOTT C, 1992, THESIS NW U EVANSTON
ELLSWORTH PC, 2003, HDB AFFECTIVE SCI, P572
FLAVELL JH, 1979, AM PSYCHOL, V34, P906
FLAVELL JH, 2004, MERRILL PALMER QUART, V50, P274
FODOR JA, 1987, PSYCHOSEMANTICS PROB
FREDRICKSON BL, 2001, AM PSYCHOL, V56, P218
FRIJDA NH, 1986, EMOTIONS
FRIJDA NH, 1994, NATURE EMOTION FUNDA, P112
GOLDIE P, 2007, PHILOS COMPASS, V2, P928
GRATCH J, 2004, COGNITIVE SYSTEMS RE, V5, P269
GREEN OH, 1992, EMOTIONS PHILOS THEO
JACOB P, 1997, WHAT MINDS CAN INTEN
KAPPAS A, 2006, COGNITION EMOTION, V20, P952, DOI 10.1080/02699930600616080
KELLEY TD, 2003, THEOR PSYCHOL, V13, P847
KENNY A, 1963, ACTION EMOTION WILL
KINTSCH W, 1988, PSYCHOL REV, V95, P163
KORIAT A, 2000, CONSCIOUS COGN 1, V9, P149
LAZARUS RS, 1982, AM PSYCHOL, V37, P1019
LAZARUS RS, 1991, EMOTION ADAPTATION
LEWIS M, 2000, HDB EMOTIONS, P265
LOGAN GD, 1992, AM J PSYCHOL, V105, P317
LYONS W, 1980, EMOTION
MACEDO L, 2004, P 26 ANN C COGN SCI
MANDLER G, 1984, MIND BODY
MARINIER R, 2006, CYBERNETICS SYSTEMS, V2
MARKS J, 1982, PHILOS STUD, V42, P227
MEINONG A, 1894, PSYCHOL ETHISCHE UNT
MEINONG A, 1906, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V6, P22
MEINONG A, 1910, ANNAHMEN
MELE AR, 1992, SPRINGS ACTION UNDER
MELLERS BA, 1997, PSYCHOL SCI, V8, P423
MELLERS BA, 2000, PSYCHOL BULL, V126, P910
METCALFE J, 1994, METACOGNITION KNOWIN, P137
MEYER WU, 1997, MOTIV EMOTION, V21, P251
MICELI M, 1997, THEOR PSYCHOL, V7, P769
MICELI M, 2007, COGNITION EMOTION, V21, P449, DOI 10.1080/02699930600814735
MILSUM JH, 1966, BIOL CONTROL SYSTEMS
NELSON TO, 1996, AM PSYCHOL, V51, P102
NICHOLS S, 2000, COGNITION, V74, P115
NUSSBAUM MC, 2001, UPHEAVALS THOUGHT IN
OATLEY K, 1987, COGNITION EMOTION, V1, P29
ORTONY A, 1987, P 10 INT JOINT C ART, P106
ORTONY A, 1988, COGNITIVE STRUCTURE
PAGLIERI F, 2004, P STAIRS 2004, P179
PARKINSON B, 1997, PERSONALITY SOCIAL P, V1, P62
PICARD RW, 1997, AFFECTIVE COMPUTING
PROUST J, 2006, RATIONAL ANIMALS, P247
RANK S, 2005, LECT NOTES ARTIF INT, V3661, P495
REILLY WSN, 1996, THESIS CARNEGIE MELL
REISENZEIN R, 1994, ATTRIBUTIONSTHEORIE, P123
REISENZEIN R, 1996, PROCESSES MOLAR REGU, P151
REISENZEIN R, 1998, ISRE 98, P181
REISENZEIN R, 1999, THEORY EMOTION UNPUB
REISENZEIN R, 2000, MESSAGE ROLE SUBJECT, P262
REISENZEIN R, 2001, APPRAISAL PROCESSES, P187
REISENZEIN R, 2003, INTRO PSYCHOL EMOTIO, V3
REISENZEIN R, 2006, 45 C GERM PSYCH ASS
REISENZEIN R, 2006, COGNITION EMOTION, V20, P920, DOI 10.1080/02699930600616445
REISENZEIN R, 2006, CYBERNET SYST, P649
REISENZEIN R, 2007, SOC SCI INFORM, V46, P424
REISENZEIN R, 2008, EMOTION REV IN PRESS
RICHERSON PJ, 1998, INDOCTRINABILITY IDE, P71
ROSEMAN IJ, 1979, 87 ANN CONV APA NEW
ROSEMAN IJ, 1996, COGNITION EMOTION, V10, P241
ROSENBLUETH A, 1943, PHILOS SCI, V10, P18, DOI 10.1086/286788
ROSKIES AL, 1999, NEURON, V24, P7
SCHERER KR, 2001, APPRAISAL PROCESSES
SCHERER KR, 2001, APPRAISAL PROCESSES, P92
SCHIFFER S, 1994, PHILOS STUD, V76, P263
SCHWARZ N, 1996, SOCIAL PSYCHOL HDB B, P433
SEARLE J, 1983, INTENTIONALITY
SOLOMON RC, 1976, PASSIONS
STALLER A, 2001, J ARTIFICIAL SOC SOC, V4
STERELNY K, 1991, REPRESENTATIONAL THE
SUN R, 2006, COGN SYST RES, V7, P327, DOI 10.1016/j.cogsys.2005.09.001
TYE M, 1995, 10 PROBLEMS CONSCIOU
WELLMAN HM, 2002, BLACKWELL HDB CHILDH, P167
YACUBIAN J, 2006, J NEUROSCI, V26, P9530, DOI 10.1523/JNEUROSCI.2915-06.2006
ZAJONC RB, 1980, AM PSYCHOL, V35, P151
ZEELENBERG M, 2000, COGNITION EMOTION, V14, P521
NR 105
TC 3
PU ELSEVIER SCIENCE BV
PI AMSTERDAM
PA PO BOX 211, 1000 AE AMSTERDAM, NETHERLANDS
SN 1389-0417
J9 COGN SYST RES
JI Cogn. Syst. Res.
PD MAR
PY 2009
VL 10
IS 1
BP 6
EP 20
DI 10.1016/j.cogsys.2008.03.001
PG 15
SC Computer Science, Artificial Intelligence; Neurosciences; Psychology, Experimental
GA 377LF
UT ISI:000261252000002
ER

PT J
AU Reisenzein, R
Rudolph, U
AF Reisenzein, Rainer
Rudolph, Udo
TI The discovery of common-sense psychology
SO SOCIAL PSYCHOLOGY
LA English
DT Article
DE attribution; common-sense psychology; Heider; history of psychology; social psychology
ID SOCIAL-PERCEPTION; SELF-EFFICACY; CAUSALITY; BEHAVIOR
AB This special issue of Social Psychology commemorates the 50th anniversary of Fritz Heider's 1958 book The Psychology of Interpersonal Relations. The contributions to the special issue address the history and Current state of attribution research. Or illustrate contemporary research in the field. The historical articles document that Heider's analysis of causal attribution and of common-sense psychology was significantly influenced by his academic teachers Alexius Meinong and Ernst Cassirer. We distinguish between the mainstream reception of Heider's book, which has given rise to all extensive empirical research program, and a minority reception by authors who emphasized aspects of Heider's thinking not well represented in mainstream Psychology. Currently, there are indications' of a "back to Heider" movement in social psychology. This new phase of attribution research is inspired by a fresh Leading of Heider's book. and is marked by an interdisciplinary orientation. The articles illustrating current attribution research address both classic and novel topics: the causality implicit in language. the role of causal attribution in hindsight bias, the justification of actions. and the attribution of mistakes in organizational contexts.
C1 [Reisenzein, Rainer] Ernst Moritz Arndt Univ Greifswald, Inst Psychol, D-17489 Greifswald, Germany.
Tech Univ Chemnitz, Zwickau, Germany.
RP Reisenzein, R, Ernst Moritz Arndt Univ Greifswald, Inst Psychol, Franz Mehring Str 47, D-17489 Greifswald, Germany.
EM rainer.reisenzein@uni-greifswald.de
CR AJZEN I, 1991, ORGAN BEHAV HUM DEC, V50, P179
ATKINSON JW, 1957, PSYCHOL REV, V64, P359, DOI 10.1037/H0043445
AUGOUSTINOS M, 1995, SOCIAL COGNITION INT
BAECKER D, 2005, DING MEDIUM
BANDURA A, 1977, PSYCHOL REV, V84, P191
BANDURA A, 1997, SELF EFFICACY EXERCI
BIERHOFF HW, 1989, PERSON PERCEPTION AT
BRANDTSTADTER J, 1982, Z SOZIALPSYCHOL, V13, P267
BRANDTSTADTER J, 1987, MEANING GROWTH UNDER, P69
BRENTANO F, 1955, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN, V1
BRUNSWIK E, 1952, CONCEPTUAL FRAMEWORK
CAROLL JS, 1976, COGNITION SOCIAL BEH
CHURCHLAND P, 1970, PHILOS REV, V79, P214
DENNETT DC, 1971, J PHILOS, V68, P87
FABIAN R, 1986, AUSTRIAN EC HIST PHI, P37
FEATHER NT, 1982, EXPECTATIONS ACTIONS
FESTINGER L, 1957, THEORY COGNITIVE DIS
FISHBEIN M, 1975, BELIEF ATTITUDE INTE
FORSTERLING F, 1988, ATTRIBUTION THEORY C
FORSTERLING F, 1994, ATTRIBUTIONS THEORIE
FORSTERLING F, 2001, ATTRIBUTION INTRO TH
FRIEZE IH, 1979, NEW APPROACHES SOCIA
GOLLAN T, 2008, SOC PSYCHOL, V39, P189, DOI 10.1027/1864-9335.39.3.189
HARVEY JH, 1976, NEW DIRECTIONS ATTRI, V1
HARVEY JH, 1978, NEW DIRECTIONS ATTRI, V2
HARVEY JH, 1980, NEW DIRECTIONS ATTRI, V3
HARVEY JH, 1990, INTERPERSONAL ACCOUN
HARVEY JH, 1998, ATTRIBUTIONS ACCOUNT
HEIDER F, 1926, SYMPOSION, V1, P109
HEIDER F, 1930, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V114, P371
HEIDER F, 1944, PSYCHOL REV, V51, P358
HEIDER F, 1946, J PSYCHOL, V21, P107
HEIDER F, 1958, PSYCHOL INTERPERSONA
HEIDER F, 1978, BILEFELDER S ATTRIBV, P13
HEIDER F, 1983, LIFE PSYCHOL AUTOBIO
HEIDER F, 1988, NOTEBOOKS, V5
HELMHOLTZ HL, 1867, HDB PHYSL OPTIK
HOMMEL B, 2001, BEHAV BRAIN SCI, V24, P849
JACQUETTE D, 2001, HIST EUR IDEA, V27, P307
JOHN OP, 1999, HDB PERSONALITY THEO, P102
JONES EE, 1965, ADV EXPT SOCIAL PSYC, V2, P219
JONES EE, 1972, ATTRIBUTION PERCEIVI
KEIL FC, 2000, EXPLANATION COGNITIO
KELLEY HH, 1960, CONTEMP PSYCHOL, V5, P1
KELLEY HH, 1967, NEBRASKA S MOTIVATIO, V15, P192
KELLEY HH, 1980, ANNU REV PSYCHOL, V31, P457
KERSTEN D, 2004, ANNU REV PSYCHOL, V55, P271
KORDING KP, 2007, PLOS ONE, V2, ARTN e943
LAKATOS, 1978, METHODOLOGY SCI RES, V1
LAUCKEN U, 1974, NAIVE VERHALTENSTHEO
LAUCKEN U, 1995, THEOR PSYCHOL, V5, P401
LAZARUS RS, 2001, APPRAISAL PROCESSES, P37
LOCKE D, 1982, J PERS SOC PSYCHOL, V42, P212
MACHADO A, 2007, AM PSYCHOL, V62, P671, DOI 10.1037/0003-066X.62.7.671
MALLE BF, 2004, MIND EXPLAINS BEHAV
MALLE BF, 2005, OTHER MINDS HUMANS B
MALLE BF, 2008, SOC PSYCHOL, V39, P163, DOI 10.1027/1864-9335.39.3.163
MANUSOV V, 2001, ATTRIBUTION COMMUNIC
MARKUS H, 1985, HDB SOCIAL PSYCHOL, V1, P137
MEES U, 1991, STRUKTUR EMOTIONEN
MEINONG A, 1894, PSYCHOL ETHISCHE UNT
MEINONG A, 1906, ERFAHRUNGSGRUNDLAGEN
NADELHOFFER T, 2007, PHILOS EXPLORATIONS, V10, P123
NESTLER S, 2008, SOC PSYCHOL, V39, P182, DOI 10.1027/1864-9335.39.3.182
NISBETT R, 1980, HUMAN INFERENCE STRA
ORTONY A, 1988, COGNITIVE STRUCTURE
REISENZEIN R, 2006, COGNITION EMOTION, V20, P920, DOI 10.1080/02699930600616445
REISENZEIN R, 2008, SOC PSYCHOL, V39, P125, DOI 10.1027/1864-9335.39.3.125
REISENZEIN R, 2008, SOC PSYCHOL, V39, P141, DOI 10.1027/1864-9335.39.3.141
ROTTER JB, 1954, SOCIAL LEARNING CLIN
RUDOLPH U, 1997, PSYCHOL BULL, V121, P192
RUDOLPH U, 2008, SOC PSYCHOL, V39, P174, DOI 10.1027/1864-9335.39.3.174
SCHONPFLUG W, 2008, SOC PSYCHOL, V39, P134, DOI 10.1027/1864-9335.39.3.134
SCHYNS B, 2008, SOC PSYCHOL, V39, P197, DOI 10.1027/1864-9335.39.3.197
SHWEDER RA, 1991, THINKING CULTURES
SMEDSLUND J, 1978, SCAND J PSYCHOL, V19, P1
SMEDSLUND J, 1988, PSYCHOLOGIC
SMEDSLUND J, 2008, SOC PSYCHOL, V39, P157, DOI 10.1027/1864-9135.39.3.157
WEARY G, 1980, PERSONALITY SOCIAL P, V6, P37
WEINER B, 1986, ATTRIBUTIONAL THEORY
WEINER B, 1995, JUDGMENTS RESPONSIBI
WEINER B, 2006, SOCIAL MOTIVATION JU
WEINER B, 2008, SOC PSYCHOL, V39, P151, DOI 10.1027/1864-9335.39.3.151
WESTMEYER H, 1992, STRUCTURALIST PROGRA, P1
WOLF B, 2004, F HEIDER E BRUNSWIK
ZELEN SL, 1998, NEW MODELS NEW EXTEN
NR 86
TC 3
PU HOGREFE & HUBER PUBLISHERS
PI GOTTINGEN
PA ROHNSWEG 25, D-37085 GOTTINGEN, GERMANY
SN 1864-9335
J9 SOC PSYCHOL
JI Soc. Psychol.
PY 2008
VL 39
IS 3
BP 125
EP 133
DI 10.1027/1864-9335.39.3.125
PG 9
SC Psychology, Social
GA 337QG
UT ISI:000258450000002
ER

PT J
AU Schonpflug, W
AF Schoenpflug, Wolfgang
TI Fritz Heider - My academic teacher and his academic teachers - Heider's "seminar in interpersonal relations" and comments on his European background
SO SOCIAL PSYCHOLOGY
LA English
DT Article
DE causality; epistemology; Gestalt psychology; Heider; interpersonal relations; ordinary language concepts; phenomenology; social cognitions
AB In the summer of 1958 at the University of Kansas, Heider offered a seminar based on the galley proofs of his forthcoming book The Psychology of Interpersonal Relations. Personal memories of the seminar are reported, and an attempt is made to reconstruct the European background of Heider's work. It is argued that the warm reception of Heider's book was partly the result of his revival of philosophical ideas that had served as starting points for psychology, but had since been abandoned. Especially with respect to the analysis of naive concepts, complex structures, and causal attributions, Heider owes an intellectual debt to his mentor Alexius Meinong at the University of Graz, and to Ernst Cassirer at the University of Hamburg. Commemorating the publication of Heider's book can, therefore, also be regarded as an implicit tribute to the European philosophy of the late 19th and early 20th century.
C1 Free Univ Berlin, Arbeitsbereich Allgemeine Psychol, Inst Psychol, D-14195 Berlin, Germany.
RP Schonpflug, W, Free Univ Berlin, Arbeitsbereich Allgemeine Psychol, Inst Psychol, Habelschwerdter Allee 45, D-14195 Berlin, Germany.
EM wolfgang.schoenpflug@fu-berlin.de
CR *AM PSYCH ASS, 1965, AM PSYCHOL, V20, P1079
ARISTOTLE, 1993, METAPHYSICS
CASSIRER E, 2000, GESAMMELTE WERKE, V6
CASSIRER E, 2002, GESAMMELTE WERKE, V11
CASSIRER E, 2002, GESAMMELTE WERKE, V13
EHRENFELS CV, 1890, VIERTELJAHRSSCHRIFT, V14, P249
HEIDER F, 1944, AM J PSYCHOL, V57, P243
HEIDER F, 1944, PSYCHOL REV, V51, P358
HEIDER F, 1958, PSYCHOL INTERPERSONA
HEIDER F, 1959, PSYCHOL ISSUES, V1, P1
HEIDER F, 1983, LIFE PSYCHOL
HUSSERL E, 1962, IDEEN REINEN PHANOME
KOHLER W, 1920, PHYS GESTALTEN RUHE
MEINONG A, 1968, GESAMTAUSGABE, V3, P285
MEINONG A, 1968, GESAMTAUSGABE, V3, P3
MEINONG A, 1969, GESAMTAUSGABE, V5, P369
MEINONG A, 1971, GESAMTAUSGABE, V2, P481
MEINONG A, 1972, GESAMTAUSGABE, V6
MEINONG A, 1973, GESAMTAUSGABE, V5
MEINONG A, 1975, GESAMTAUSGABE, P485
MEINONG A, 1977, GESAMTAUSGABE, V4
MEINONG A, 1978, GESAMTAUSGABE, V7, P3
ORTH EW, 1999, NEUKANTIANISMUS PERS
SCHEERER M, 1931, LEHRE GESTALT
SCHONPFLUG W, 2007, K LEWIN PERSON WERK, P45
SMITH B, 1994, AUSTR PHILOS LEGACY
NR 26
TC 3
PU HOGREFE & HUBER PUBLISHERS
PI GOTTINGEN
PA ROHNSWEG 25, D-37085 GOTTINGEN, GERMANY
SN 1864-9335
J9 SOC PSYCHOL
JI Soc. Psychol.
PY 2008
VL 39
IS 3
BP 134
EP 140
DI 10.1027/1864-9335.39.3.134
PG 7
SC Psychology, Social
GA 337QG
UT ISI:000258450000003
ER

PT J
AU Everett, A
AF Everett, Anthony
TI Pretense, existence, and fictional objects
SO PHILOSOPHY AND PHENOMENOLOGICAL RESEARCH
LA English
DT Article
ID NEGATIVE EXISTENTIALS; EMPTY NAMES; STANLEY; SZABO
AB There has recently been considerable interest in accounts of fiction which treat fictional characters as abstract objects. In this paper I argue against this view. More precisely I argue that such accounts are unable to accommodate our intuitions that fictional negative existentials such as "Raskolnikov doesn't exist" are true. I offer a general argument to this effect and then consider, but reject, some of the accounts of fictional negative existentials offered by abstract object theorists. I then note that some of the sort of data invoked by the abstract object theorist in fact cuts against her position. I conclude that we should not regard fictional characters as abstract objects but rather should adopt a make-believe theoretic account of fictional characters along the lines of those developed by Ken Walton and others.
C1 Univ Bristol, Bristol BS8 1TH, Avon, England.
RP Everett, A, Univ Bristol, Bristol BS8 1TH, Avon, England.
CR BACH K, 2000, MIND LANG, V15, P262
BRAUN D, 2005, NOUS, V39, P596
COHEN A, 2003, LINGUIST PHILOS, V27, P137
COHEN J, 1971, PRAGMATICS NATURAL L
CRITTENDEN C, 1991, UNREALITY METAPHYSIC
DONNELLAN K, 1974, PHILOS REV, V83, P3
EVERETT A, 2003, PHILOS STUD, V116, P1
GOODMAN A, 2004, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V67, P131
HOWELL R, 1979, POETICS, V8, P129
KING J, 2005, SEMANTICS VERSUS PRA, P111
KRIFKA M, 1995, GENERIC BOOK, P1
KRIPKE S, 1973, J LOCKE LECT
KROON FW, 1994, PHILOS STUD, V75, P201
LARSON R, 1995, KNOWLEDGE MEANING
LEVINSON S, 1983, PRAGMATICS
LEVINSON S, 2000, PRESUMPTIVE MEANINGS
MAY R, 1985, LOGICAL FORM
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
NEALE S, 2000, MIND LANG, V15, P284
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
PELLETIER FJ, 1997, HDB LOGIC LANGUAGE, P1125
RECANATI F, 2003, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V17, P299
ROUTLEY R, 1980, DEP MONOGRAPHY, V3
SALMON N, 1998, NOUS, V32, P277
STANLEY J, 2000, MIND LANG, V15, P219
STANLEY J, 2002, MIND LANG, V17, P149
THOMASSON A, 1998, FICTION METAPHYSICS
THOMASSON A, 2004, DIALECTICA, V57, P205
THOMASSON AL, 2003, BRIT J AESTHET, V43, P138
TOMIOKA S, 1996, P 14 W COAST C FORM
TOMIOKA S, 1999, NATURAL LANGUAGE SEM, V7, P217
VANINWAGEN P, 1983, PHILOS LITERATURE, V7, P67
VANINWAGEN P, 2000, EMPTY NAMES FICTION, P235
VANINWAGEN P, 2001, ONTOLOGY IDENTITY MO, P37
VANINWAGEN P, 2003, OXFORD HDB METAPHYSI, P131
WALTON K, 1990, MIMESIS MAKE BELIEVE
WALTON KL, 2003, DIALECTICA, V57, P239
YAGISAWA T, 2001, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V15, P153
ZALTA E, 1988, INTENSIONAL LOGIC ME
NR 39
TC 3
PU PHILOSOPHY PHENOMENOLOGICAL RES
PI PROVIDENCE
PA BROWN UNIV BOX 1947, PROVIDENCE, RI 02912 USA
SN 0031-8205
J9 PHIL PHENOMENOL RES
JI Philos. Phenomenol. Res.
PD JAN
PY 2007
VL 74
IS 1
BP 56
EP 80
PG 25
SC Philosophy
GA 173IF
UT ISI:000246866000003
ER

PT J
AU Reisenzein, R
AF Reisenzein, Rainer
TI Arnold's theory of emotion in historical perspective
SO COGNITION & EMOTION
LA English
DT Article
ID BASIC EMOTIONS; APPRAISAL; DETERMINANTS
AB Magda B. Arnold's theory of emotion is examined from three historical viewpoints. First, I look backward from Arnold to precursors of her theory of emotion in 19th century introspectionist psychology and in classical evolutionary psychology. I try to show that Arnold can be regarded as belonging intellectually to the cognitive tradition of emotion theorising that originated in Brentano and his students, and that she was also significantly influenced by McDougall's evolutionary view of emotion. Second, I look forward from Arnold to the influence she had on Richard S. Lazarus, the theorist who deserves the most credit for popularising the appraisal approach to emotion. Here, I try to document that Lazarus' theory of the stress emotions preserved most assumptions of Arnold's theory. Finally, I look back at Arnold from today's perspective and address points of success of the appraisal paradigm in emotion psychology, as well as some remaining problems.
C1 Univ Greifswald, Inst Psychol, D-17487 Greifswald, Germany.
RP Reisenzein, R, Univ Greifswald, Inst Psychol, Franz Mehring Str 47, D-17487 Greifswald, Germany.
EM rainer.reisenzein@uni-greifswald.de
CR ACKERMAN BP, 1998, WHAT DEV EMOTIONAL D, P85
ARNOLD MB, 1954, HUMAN PERSON APPROAC, P331
ARNOLD MB, 1954, HUMAN PERSON, P294
ARNOLD MB, 1960, EMOTION PERSONALITY, V1
ARNOLD MB, 1960, EMOTION PERSONALITY, V2
AROLD MB, 1970, FEELINGS EMOTIONS, P169
BARSALOU LW, 1992, COGNITIVE PSYCHOL OV
BERKOWITZ L, 2004, EMOTION, V4, P107, DOI 10.1037/1528-3542.4.2.107
BRENTANO F, 1973, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN
BUYTENDIJK FJJ, 1950, FEELINGS EMOTIONS
COSMIDES L, 1994, COGNITION, V50, P41
DOLLING E, 1999, WAHRHEIT SUCHEN WAHR
EKMAN P, 1992, COGNITION EMOTION, V6, P169
FODOR JA, 1987, PSYCHOSEMANTICS PROB
FRIJDA NH, 1989, J PERS SOC PSYCHOL, V57, P212
FRIJDA NH, 2001, APPRAISAL PROCESSES, P141
GREEN OH, 1992, EMOTIONS PHILOS THEO
HEIDER F, 1958, PSYCHOL INTERPERSONA
HEIDER F, 1983, LIFE PSYCHOL
HOFLER A, 1897, PSCHOLOGIE
KUNNE W, 1983, ABSTRAKTE GEGENSTAND
LANG PJ, 1995, AM PSYCHOL, V50, P372
LAZARUS RS, 1966, PSYCHOL STRESS COPIN
LAZARUS RS, 1968, NEBRASKA S MOTIVATIO, V16, P175
LAZARUS RS, 1970, FEELINGS EMOTIONS, P207
LAZARUS RS, 1978, PERSPECTIVES INTERAC, P287
LAZARUS RS, 1980, EMOTION THEORY RES E, V1, P189
LAZARUS RS, 1991, EMOTION ADAPTATION
LYONS W, 1980, EMOTION
MCDOUGALL W, 1928, OUTLINE PSYCHOL
MCDOUGALL W, 1960, INTRO SOCIAL PSYCHOL
MEINONG A, 1906, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V6, P22
MEINONG A, 1910, ANNAHMEN
MEINONG A, 1917, SITZUNGSBERICHTE PH, V182, P2
MEINONG A, 1994, A MEINONG GESAMTAUSG, V3, P3
MEYER WU, 1999, EINFUHRUNG EMOTIONPS, V2
ORTONY A, 1988, COGNITIVE STRUCTURE
ORTONY A, 1990, PSYCHOL REV, V97, P315
REISENZEIN R, 1992, AM PSYCHOL, V47, P34
REISENZEIN R, 1996, PROCESSES MOLAR REGU, P151
REISENZEIN R, 1998, P 19 C INT SOC RES E, P186
REISENZEIN R, 1999, UNPUB THEORY EMOTION
REISENZEIN R, 2000, KOGNITIVE ASPEKTE MO, P205
REISENZEIN R, 2001, APPRAISAL PROCESSES, P3
REISENZEIN R, 2003, EINFUHRUNG EMOTIONPS, V3
ROSEMAN IJ, 1990, J PERS SOC PSYCHOL, V59, P899
ROSEMAN IJ, 1996, COGNITION EMOTION, V10, P241
ROSEMAN IJ, 2001, APPRAISAL PROCESSES, P3
ROSENMAN IJ, 1979, M AM PSYCH ASS NEW Y
SARTRE JP, 1948, EMOTIONS OUTLINE THE
SCHELER M, 1923, WESEN FORMEN SYMPATH
SCHELER M, 1957, SCHRIFTEN NACHLASS
SCHERER KR, 1984, APPROACHES EMOTION, P293
SCHERER KR, 2001, APPRAISAL PROCESSES
SEARLE J, 1983, INTENTIONALITY ESSAY
SHAND AF, 1914, FDN CHARACTER
SHIELDS SA, 2003, AM PSYCHOL, V58, P403, DOI 10.1037/0003-066X.58.5.403
SHIELDS SA, 2006, PORTRAITS PIONEERS P, V6
SIMONS P, 1986, GRUNDPROBLEME GROSSE, V4, P91
SMITH B, 1994, AUSTRIAN PHILOS LEGA
SMITH CA, 1985, J PERS SOC PSYCHOL, V48, P813
STRASSER S, 1956, GEMUT
STUMPF C, 1899, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V21, P47
STUMPF C, 1907, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V44, P1
URBAN WM, 1907, PSYCHOL BULL, V4, P65
WITASEK S, 1907, GRUNDLINIEN PSYCHOL
NR 66
TC 3
PU PSYCHOLOGY PRESS
PI HOVE
PA 27 CHURCH RD, HOVE BN3 2FA, EAST SUSSEX, ENGLAND
SN 0269-9931
J9 COGNITION EMOTION
JI Cogn. Emot.
PD NOV
PY 2006
VL 20
IS 7
BP 920
EP 951
DI 10.1080/02699930600616445
PG 32
SC Psychology, Experimental
GA 115EU
UT ISI:000242718400003
ER

PT J
AU Neale, S
TI A century later
SO MIND
LA English
DT Editorial Material
ID INDEFINITE DESCRIPTIONS; DEFINITE DESCRIPTIONS; QUANTIFIERS; UNIQUENESS; RUSSELL; CONTEXT; FORM
C1 Rutgers State Univ, Dept Philosophy, New Brunswick, NJ 08901 USA.
RP Neale, S, Rutgers State Univ, Dept Philosophy, New Brunswick, NJ 08901 USA.
CR ABBOTT B, 2003, PHILOS STUD, V113, P223
ABNEY S, 1987, THESIS MIT
ALMOG J, 1989, THEMES KAPLAN
BALDWIN TR, 2004, STUDIES PHILOS LOGIC
BARHILLEL Y, 1954, MIND, V63, P359
BARKER C, 1995, POSSESSIVE DESCRIPTI
BARWISE J, 1981, LINGUIST PHILOS, V4, P159, DOI 10.1007/BF00350139
BARWISE J, 1983, SITUATIONS ATTITUDES
BAUERLE R, 1983, MEANING USE INTERPRE
BEZUIDENHOUT A, 2004, DESCRIPTIONS BEYOND
BUCHANAN R, 2005, MIND, V114, P889, DOI 10.1093/mind.fzi889
BUTLER RJ, 1965, ANAL PHILOS
CARNAP R, 1947, MEANING NECESSITY
CARTWRIGHT R, 1987, PHILOS ESSAYS, P229
CARTWRIGHT RL, 2005, MIND, V114, P915, DOI 10.1093/mind/fzi915
CATON C, 1963, PHILOS ORDINARY LANG
CHOMSKY N, 1975, LINGUISTIC ANAL, V1, P75
COHEN RS, 1965, BOSTON STUDIES PHILO
COLE P, 1978, SYNTAX SEMANTICS, V9
COLE P, 1981, LECT GOVT BINDING
COOPER R, 1979, INTERPRETATIION PRON, P61
DAVIES M, 1981, MEANING QUANTIFICATI
DEVITT M, 2004, BEZUIDENHOUT REIMER, P280
DONNELLAN K, 1966, PHILOS REV, V75, P281
EGLI U, 2000, REFERENCE ANAPHORIC
ELBOURNE P, 2001, NAT LANG SEMANT, V9, P241
ELBOURNE P, 2005, SITUATIONS INDIVIDUA
EVANS G, 1977, COLLECTED PAPERS
EVANS G, 1982, VARIETIES REFERENCE
EVANS G, 1985, COLLECTED PAPERS
FOLLESDALE D, 1965, COHEN WARTOFSKY, P263
FREGE G, 1892, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V100, P25
FRENCH PA, CONT PERSPECTIVES PH
GEACH P, 1952, TRANSLATIONS PHILOS
GEACH PT, 1952, TRANSLATIONS WRITING
GEACH PT, 1961, ANALYSIS, V22
GOBLE L, BLACKWELL GUIDE PHIL
GRAFF D, 2001, PHILOS STUD, V102, P1
GRAFF D, 2003, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V17, P141
GRANDY R, 1972, J PHILOS LOGIC, V1, P137
GRICE HP, 1989, STUDIES WAY WORDS
GROENENDIJK J, 1986, STUDIES DISCOURSE RE
HEIM I, 1988, SEMANTICS DEFINITE I
HEIM I, 1990, LINGUIST PHILOS, V13, P137
HENY F, 1979, SYNTAX SEMANTICS, V10
HIGGINBOTHAM J, 1981, LINGUISTIC REV, V1, P41
HILBERT D, 1934, GRUNDLAGEN MATH, V1
IERODIAKANOU K, 2002, BYZANTINE PHILOS ITS
ISEMENGER G, 1968, LOGIC PHILOS
JONSSON OP, 2005, MIND, V114, P929, DOI 10.1093/mind/fzi929
KAPLAN D, 2005, MIND, V114, P933, DOI 10.1093/mind/fzi933
KEMPSON R, 1985, P NELS, V15, P234
KOTATKO P, 2000, KNOWLEDGE LANGUAGE L
KRIPKE S, 1980, NAMING NECESSITY
LADUSAW W, 1981, J LINGUISTIC RES, V1, P1
LAMBERT K, 1991, PHILOS APPL FREE LOG, P17
LINSKY L, 1941, REFERENCE MODALITY
LUDLOW P, 1991, LINGUIST PHILOS, V14, P171
MACFARLANE J, 2005, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, V105, P321
MAKIN G, 2000, MEYAPHYSICIANS MEANI
MARSH RC, 1956, LOGIC KNOWLEDGE
MATES B, 1973, FDN LANGUAGE, V10, P409
MAY R, 1985, LOGICAL FORM ITS STR
MCCAWLEY J, 1981, LINGUISTS ALWAYS WAN
MEINONG A, 1994, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
MONTAGUE R, 1974, FORMAL PHILOS SELECT
MOORE GE, 1944, EVANSTON CHICAGO, P177
MUNITZ MK, 1971, IDENTITY INDIVIDUATI
NAGL L, 1986, WO STEHT ANAL PHILOS
NEALE SRA, 1990, DESCRIPTIONS
NEALE SRA, 2001, FACING FACTS
NEALE SRA, 2005, IN PRESS
OLIVER A, 2005, MIND, V114, P1039, DOI 10.1093/mind/fzi1039
OROURKE M, 2005, SITUATING SEMANTICS
OSTERTAG G, 1998, DEFINITE DESCRIPTION
OSTERTAG G, 1998, INTRO DEFINITE DESCR, P1
PATTON TE, 1997, MIND, V106, P245
PEARS DF, 1972, B NRUSSELL COLLECTIO
PLATTS M, 1980, REFERENCE TRUTH REAL
PREYER G, 2002, LOGICAL FORM LANGUAG
PRIOR A, 1968, P ARTISTOTELIAN SOC, V42, P91
PRIOR AN, 1963, ACTA PHILOSOPHICAL F, V16, P189
QUINE WV, 1943, J PHILOS, V40, P113
QUINE WV, 1947, J SYMBOLIC LOGIC, V12, P43
QUINE WV, 1966, J PHILOS, V63, P657
QUINE WVO, 1940, MATH LOGIC
QUINE WVO, 1953, LOGICAL POINT VIEW
QUINE WVO, 1960, WORD OBJECT
RAMSEY F, 1927, FDN MATH OTHER LOGIC
REIBEL DA, 1969, MODERN STUDIES ENGLI
ROTHSCHILD D, IN PRESS RUSSELLIAN
RUSSELL B, PROBLEMS PHILOS, P12
RUSSELL B, 1903, PRINCIPLES MATH
RUSSELL B, 1904, PHILOS MATH CORRESPO, P166
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P479
RUSSELL B, 1910, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, V11, P108
RUSSELL B, 1919, INTRO MATH PHILOS
RUSSELL B, 1948, INQUIRY MEANING TRUT
RUSSELL B, 1957, MIND, V66, P385
RUSSELL B, 1959, MY PHILOS DEV
SAINSBURY RM, 1979, RUSSELL
SALMON N, 2005, MIND, V114, P1069, DOI 10.1093/mind/fzi1069
SCHIFFER S, 1995, MIND, V104, P107
SCHIFFER S, 2005, MIND, V114, P1135, DOI 10.1093/mind/fzi1135
SEARLE J, 1979, MONIST, V62, P140
SELLARS W, 1954, PHILOS REV, V63, P197
SHILPP PA, 2004, PHILOS B RUSSELL
SMULLYAN A, 1948, J SYMBOLIC LOGIC, V13, P31
SOAMES S, 1986, NOTRE DAME J FORM L, V27, P349
STANLEY J, 1995, ANALYSIS, V55, P291
STANLEY J, 2000, LINGUIST PHILOS, V23, P391
STANLEY J, 2000, MIND LANG, V15, P219
STRAWSON PF, 1950, MIND, V59, P320
STRAWSON PF, 1952, INTRO LOGIC THEORY
STRAWSON PF, 1954, PHILOS REV, V63, P216
STRAWSON PF, 1964, THEORIA-SPAIN, V30, P96
STRAWSON PF, 1974, SUBJECT PREDICATE LO
STRAWSON PF, 1997, ENTITY IDENTITY OTHE
SZABO Z, 2005, SEMANTICS PRAGMATICS
SZABO ZG, 2000, PHILOS STUD, V101, P29
SZABO ZG, 2005, MIND, V114, P1185, DOI 10.1093/mind/fzi1185
URQUHART A, 1994, COLLECTED PAPERS B R, V4
VANBENTHEM J, 1985, QUANTIFIERS NATURAL
VONFINTEL K, 2004, BEZUIDENHOUT REIMER, P315
WETTSTEIN H, 1981, PHILOS STUD, V40, P241
WHITEHEAD AN, 1927, PRINCIPIA MATH, V1
WILSON G, 1978, PHILOS REV, V87, P48
WILSON G, 1990, J PHILOS, V88, P359
NR 128
TC 3
PU OXFORD UNIV PRESS
PI OXFORD
PA GREAT CLARENDON ST, OXFORD OX2 6DP, ENGLAND
SN 0026-4423
J9 MIND
JI Mind
PD OCT
PY 2005
VL 114
IS 456
BP 809
EP 871
DI 10.1093/mind/fzi809
PG 63
SC Philosophy
GA 023FL
UT ISI:000236111100001
ER

PT J
AU Moore, MS
TI The plain truth about legal truth
SO HARVARD JOURNAL OF LAW AND PUBLIC POLICY
LA English
DT Proceedings Paper
CT 21st Annual National Student Federalist Society Symposium on Law and Public Policy
CY 2002
CL NEW HAVEN, CONNECTICUT
ID REALISM
C1 Univ Illinois, Program Law & Philosophy, Chicago, IL 60680 USA.
RP Moore, MS, Univ Illinois, Program Law & Philosophy, Chicago, IL 60680 USA.
CR 1970, LOVE STORY
ALSTON WP, 1996, REALIST CONCEPTION T, P9
AQUINAS T, SUMMA THEOLOGIAE, P90
AUSTIN JL, 1956, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, V57, P1
AYER AJ, 1936, LANGUAGE TRUTH LOGIC
BLACKBURN S, 1984, SPREADING WORD
BLACKBURN S, 1993, ESSAYS QUASI REALISM
BLANSHARD B, 1939, NATURE THOUGHT
CASH J, 1970, WHAT TRUTH
COHEN FS, 1935, COLUMBIA LAW REV, V35, P809
DEVITT M, 1984, REALISM TRUTH, P34
DUMMETT M, 1978, TRUTH OTHER ENIGMAS, P1
DWORKIN R, 1985, MATTER PRINCIPLE
FISH S, 1987, YALE LAW J, V96, P1773
FRANK J, 1930, LAW MODERN MIND
FULLER LL, 1958, HARVARD LAW REV, V71, P630
FULLER LL, 1958, HARVARD LAW REV, V71, P665
FULLER LL, 1964, MORALITY LAW, P33
GIBBARD A, 1990, WISE CHOICES APT FEE
HAMPSHIRE S, 1958, MIND, V67, P1
HARE RM, 1952, LANGUAGE MORALS
HARMAN G, 1973, THOUGHT, P24
HART HLA, 1949, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, V49, P171
HART HLA, 1954, LAW QUART REV, V70, P37
HART HLA, 1961, CONCEPT LAW
HERZOG D, 1987, CALIF LAW REV, V75, P609
KELMAN M, 1987, GUIDE CRITICAL LEGAL, V3, P258
LEITER B, 2001, ETHICS, V111, P278
LYCAN W, 1988, JUDGEMENT JUSTIFICAT, P204
MACCORMICK N, 1978, LEGAL REASONING LEGA, P18
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P76
MOOR M, 2001, NATURAL LAW MODERN M, P115
MOORE M, 1982, WISC LAW REV, P1061
MOORE M, 1987, PRECEDENT LAW
MOORE M, 1992, NATURAL LAW THEORY
MOORE M, 2000, ED ONESELF PUBLIC CR, P342
MOORE M, 2003, IN PRESS LAW PHIL, V21
MOORE MS, 1981, SOUTH CALIF LAW REV, V54, P151
MOORE MS, 1984, LAW PSYCHIAT RETHINK, P249
MOORE MS, 1985, SOUTH CALIF LAW REV, V58, P277
MOORE MS, 1987, SOUTH CALIF LAW REV, V60, P453
MOORE MS, 1989, SOUTH CALIF LAW REV, V63, P107
MOORE MS, 1989, STANFORD LAW REV, V41, P871
MOORE MS, 1992, MICH LAW REV, V90, P2424
OLIPHANT H, 1928, ABA J, V14, P71
PURCELL EA, 1973, CRISIS DEMOCRATIC TH
PUTNAM H, 1981, REASON TRUTH HIST
RAZ J, 1979, AUTHORITY LAW, P73
RAZ J, 1986, MORALITY FREEDOM
SANDEL MJ, 1989, CALIF LAW REV, V77, P521
SMITH MBE, 1980, SOCIAL THEORY PRACTI, P409
STEVENSON CL, 1944, ETHICS LANGUAGE
STURGEON N, 1986, SOUTHERN J PHILOS, V24, P115
TEMIN MK, 1980, U CIN L REV, V49, P341
VIDAL G, 1973, BURR NOVEL
WITTGENSTEIN L, 1964, PHILOS INVESTIGATION
NR 56
TC 3
PU HARVARD SOC LAW PUBLIC POLICY
PI CAMBRIDGE
PA HARVARD LAW SCHOOL, CAMBRIDGE, MA 02138 USA
SN 0193-4872
J9 HARVARD J LAW PUBLIC POLICY
JI Harv. J. Law Public Policy
PD WIN
PY 2003
VL 26
IS 1
BP 23
EP 47
PG 25
SC Law
GA 684XU
UT ISI:000183232400005
ER

PT J
AU Rojszczak, A
TI Philosophical background and philosophical content of the semantic definition of truth
SO ERKENNTNIS
LA English
DT Article
AB The aim of this paper is to who that it is the explicative character of Tarski's semantic definition of truth given in his study of 1933 that allows for consideration of a philosophical background of this definition in the proper sense. Given the explicative character of this definition it is argued that the philosophical tradition that should be taken into account with regard to this philosophical background is the tradition of the Lvov-Warsaw School in its connections with the School of Brentano. As an example of the explanatory power of considering this tradition as far as Tarski's philosophical choices are concerned I use here the notion of sentence-inscription, i.e., the notion of that entity of which truth is predicated in the definition in question. one of the consequences of these statements is that philosophical discussions concerning the semantic definition of truth can be regarded from two points of view. On the one hand, they may take the perspective of its explicational function, i.e., the perspective of its philosophical background. On the other hand, they might consider the philosophical consequences of the definition with respect to the goal of the explication, i.e., they may consider its philosophical content independently of its historical background.
CR AJDUKIEWICZ K, 1921, METODOLOGII NAUK DED, P9
AJDUKIEWICZ K, 1931, KSIEGO PAMIATKOWA PO, P1
AJDUKIEWICZ K, 1934, ERKENNTNIS, V4, P100
AJDUKIEWICZ K, 1934, PREGLAD FILOZOFICZNY, V37, P399
AJDUKIEWICZ K, 1935, ERKENNTNIS, V5, P151
AJDUKIEWICZ K, 1960, JEZYK POZNANIE
AJDUKIEWICZ K, 1978, SCI WORLD-PERSPECTIV
AJDUKIEWICZ K, 1988, EDUKACJA FILOS, V8, P447
AJDUKIEWICZ K, 1993, FILOZ NAUKI, V1, P163
AMRTY A, 1980, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GRUDN
BOLZANO B, 1837, WISSENSCHFTSLEHRE
BOLZANO B, 1959, THEORY SCI
BRENTANO F, 1933, KATEGORIENLEHRE
BRENTANO F, 1966, EVIDENZ
BRENTANO F, 1966, TRUE EVIDENT
BRENTANO F, 1981, THEORY CATEGORIES
CARNAP R, 1950, LOGICAL FDN PROBABIL
CZEZOWSKI T, 1918, GEORIA KLAS
CZEZOWSKI T, 1927, KLASYCZNA NAUKA
DAMBSKA I, 1978, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V5, P117
DAMBSKA I, 1979, RUCH FILOZ, V37, P1
DAMBSKA I, 1979, STUDIA FILOZ, V8, P19
FIELD H, 1972, J PHILOS, V49, P374
HOSIASSON J, 1937, ERKENNTNIS, V7, P335
HUSSERL E, 1901, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
KIJANIAPLACEK K, 1998, LVOV-WARSAW SCH CONT
KOEHLER E, 1999, A TARSKI VIENNA CIRC
KOKOSZYNSKA M, 1936, ERKENNTNIS, V5, P143
KOKOSZYNSKA M, 1936, KWARTALNIK FILOZ, V13, P151
KOKOSZYNSKA M, 1936, PRZEGLAD FILOZ, V93, P424
KOKOSZYNSKA M, 1937, ERKENNTNIS, V7, P325
KOKOSZYNSKA M, 1938, PRZEGLAD FILOZ, V39, P9
KOTARBINSKI T, 1921, KSIEGA PAMIATKOWA UC, P149
KOTARBINSKI T, 1922, PRZEGLAD FILOZ, V24, P512
KOTARBINSKI T, 1926, ELEMENTY LOGIKI FORM
KOTARBINSKI T, 1929, ELEMENTY TEORII POZN
KOTARBINSKI T, 1930, RUCH FILOZ, V1, P1
KOTARBINSKI T, 1933, SLAVISCHE RUNDSCHAU, V4
KOTARBINSKI T, 1959, LOGIQUE POLOGNE ORIG
KOTARBINSKI T, 1966, GNOSIOLOGY SCI APPRO
LESNIEWSKI S, 1907, PRZEGLAD FILOZ, V10, P489
LESNIEWSKI S, 1909, PRZEGLAD FILOZ, V12
LESNIEWSKI S, 1910, ZASIADZIE SPRZECZNOS
LESNIEWSKI S, 1911, PRZEGLAD FILOZ, V14
LESNIEWSKI S, 1913, NOW TORY, V18, P493
LESNIEWSKI S, 1913, PRZEGLAD FILOZ, V16, P315
LESNIEWSKI S, 1936, PRZEGLAD FILOZ, V39, P113
LESNIEWSKI S, 1970, SELECTED WORKS
LESNIEWSKI S, 1992, COLLECTED WORKS
MCDOWELL J, 1978, ERKENNTNIS, V13, P131
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
MULLIGAN K, 1984, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V44, P287
NEURATH O, 1931, ERKENNTNIS, V1, P371
NEURATH O, 1937, SCI MILANO DEC, P309
NEURATH O, 1981, GESAMMELTE PHILSO ME
OSSOWSKA M, 1926, PRZEGLAD FILOZ, V29, P29
OSSOWSKA M, 1928, PRZEGLAD FILOZOFICZN, V31, P145
OSSOWSKA M, 1931, PRZEGLAD FILOZOFICZN, V34, P203
PAWLOWSKI T, 1986, TWORZENIE POJECW NAU
REINACH A, 1911, MUENCHENER PHILOS AB, P315
REINACH A, 1983, ALETHEIA, V3, P1
ROJSZCZAK A, 1993, PHILOS COGNITIVE SCI, P455
ROJSZCZAK A, 1994, BRENTANO STUDIEN, V4, P187
ROJSZCZAK A, 1994, BRENTANO STUDIEN, V5, P192
ROJSZCZAK A, 1997, FILOZ NAUKI, V2, P93
ROJSZCZAK A, 1998, BRENTANO STUDIEN, V8, P67
ROJSZCZAK A, 1998, SYNTH LIBR, V273, P73
ROJSZCZAK A, 1999, VIEN CIR INST YEARBK, V6, P115
ROJSZCZAK A, 2001, CAMBRIDGE HIST PHILO
ROJSZCZAK A, 2001, PROPOSITION SACHVERH, P9
SIMONS P, 1989, VIENNA CIRCLE LVOVO-, P391
SIMONS P, 1992, PHILOS LOGIC CENTRAL
SIMONS P, 1993, POLISH SCI PHILOS, P207
SMITH B, 1994, AUSTRIAN PHILSO
STEJNBARG D, 1934, PRZEGLAD FILOZ, V37, P91
SZANIAWSKI K, 1989, VIENNA CIRCLE LVOVO-
TARSKI A, 1933, POJECIE PROWDY JEZYK
TARSKI A, 1944, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V4, P341
TARSKI A, 1983, LOGIC SEMANTICS META
TARSKI A, 1992, GRAZER PHILSO STUDIE, V42, P1
TWARDOWSKI K, 1894, LEHRE INHALT GEGENST
TWARDOWSKI K, 1900, KSIEGA PAMIATKOWA UC, P1
TWARDOWSKI K, 1912, KSIEGA PAMIATKOWA UC, P1
TWARDOWSKI K, 1920, RUCH FILOZ, V5, P25
TWARDOWSKI K, 1927, PRZEGLAD FILOZ, V3, P292
TWARDOWSKI K, 1975, ARCHIWUM HIST FILOZ, V21
TWARDOWSKI K, 1977, CONTENT OBEJCT PRESE
TWARDOWSKI K, 1999, ACTIONS PRODUCTS OTH
WOLENSKI J, 1985, FILOZ SZKOLA LWOWSKO
WOLENSKI J, 1989, LOGIC PHILOS LVOV-WA
WOLENSKI J, 1993, POLISH SCI PHILOS LV
WOLENSKI J, 1994, FILOZ AUSTRIACKA, P69
WOLENSKI J, 1995, DEDEKIND GOEDEL ESSA, P331
WOLENSKI J, 1998, BRENTANO STUDIEN, V8, P15
WOLENSKI J, 1999, ESSAYS HIST LOGIC LO
ZAWIRSKI Z, 1936, PRZEGLAD FILZO, V39, P347
ZAWIRSKI Z, 1938, ORGANON, V2, P1
NR 97
TC 3
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA VAN GODEWIJCKSTRAAT 30, 3311 GZ DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0165-0106
J9 ERKENNTNIS
JI Erkenntnis
PY 2002
VL 56
IS 1
BP 29
EP 62
PG 34
SC Philosophy
GA 541GJ
UT ISI:000174976600004
ER

PT J
AU Fioretti, G
TI Von Kries and the other 'German logicians: Non-numerical probabilities before Keynes
SO ECONOMICS AND PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
C1 Univ Florence, I-50121 Florence, Italy.
RP Fioretti, G, Univ Florence, I-50121 Florence, Italy.
CR BATEMAN B, 1996, KEYNES UNCERTAN REVO
COTTRELL A, 1993, ECON PHILOS, V9, P25
CZUBER E, 1903, WAHRSCHEINLICHKEITSR, V1
FIORETTI G, 1998, HIST EC IDEAS, V6, P51
KEYNES JM, 1907, THESIS KINGS COLL CA
KEYNES JM, 1908, THESIS KINGS COLL CA
KEYNES JM, 1921, TREATISE PROBABILITY
KEYNES JM, 1926, ECON J, V36, P140
KEYNES JM, 1931, NEW STATESMAN NA OCT
KEYNES JM, 1936, GEN THEORY EMPLOYMEN
LANGE FA, 1877, LOGISCHE STUDIEN
LEXIS W, 1877, THEORIE MASSENERSCHE
LOTZE RH, 1874, LOGIK
MEINONG A, 1890, GOTTINGISCHE GELEHRT, V1, P56
MEINONG A, 1915, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
NITSCHE A, 1892, VIERTELJAHRSCHRIFT W, V16, P20
RUNDE J, 1990, ECON PHILOS, V6, P275
SIGWART C, 1873, LOGIK
VONKRIES J, 1888, VIERTELJAHRSCHRIFT W, V12, P179
VONKRIES J, 1888, VIERTELJAHRSCHRIFT W, V12, P287
VONKRIES J, 1888, VIERTELJAHRSCHRIFT W, V12, P393
VONKRIES J, 1892, VIERTELJAHRSCHRIFT W, V16, P253
VONKRIES J, 1899, VIERTELJAHRSCHRIFT W, V23, P1
VONKRIES J, 1901, MAT GRUNDLAGEN BEWUS
VONKRIES J, 1916, LOGIK
VONKRIES J, 1923, ALLGEMEINE SINNESPHY
VONKRIES J, 1925, MED GEGENWART
VONKRIES J, 1927, PRINCIPIEN WAHRSCHEI
NR 28
TC 3
PU CAMBRIDGE UNIV PRESS
PI NEW YORK
PA 40 WEST 20TH ST, NEW YORK, NY 10011-4221 USA
SN 0266-2671
J9 ECON PHIL
JI Econ. Philos.
PD OCT
PY 2001
VL 17
IS 2
BP 245
EP 273
PG 29
SC Economics; Ethics
GA 498RZ
UT ISI:000172525400006
ER

PT J
AU Reinach, A
Launay, MBD
TI Theory of negative judgment. Presentation and translation from the German by Marc B. de Launay
SO REVUE DE METAPHYSIQUE ET DE MORALE
LA French
DT Article
CR AMESEDER R, BEITRAGE GRUNDLEGUNG
AMESEDER R, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN, P54
BERGSON H, 1907, EVOLUTION CREATRICE, P312
BRENTANO F, ORIGINE CONNAISSANCE
BRENTANO F, WAHRHEIT EVIDENZ
BRENTANO F, 1944, PSYCHOL POINT VUE EM, P224
BRUNSWIG A, 1910, VERGLEICHEN RELATION
CONRAD T, 1911, MUNCHENER PHILOS ABH, P57
ERDMANN B, 1907, LOGIK, V1, P504
HUSSERL E, 1972, RECH LOGIQUES, V2
KANT I, CRITIQUE RAISON PURE
LIPPS T, 1906, LEITFADEN PSYCHOL, P113
LOTZE, 1980, LOGIK, P61
MAIER H, 1908, PSYCHOL EMOTIONALEN, P272
MARBE K, 1919, VIERTELJAHRESSCHRIFT, V34, P5
MARTY A, 1908, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GRUND
MARTY A, 1908, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GRUND, P233
MEINONG A, 1977, GESAMTAUSGABE, V4, P98
MIENONG A, 1906, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V6, P33
MULLIGAN K, 1987, SPEECH ACT SACHVERHA
PFANDER A, 1987, LOGIK
REINACH A, APRIORISCHEN GRUNDLA
REINACH A, URTEIL SACHVERHALT
REINACH A, 1913, APORISCHE GRUNDLAGEN
REINACH A, 1989, SAMTLICHE WERKE, V1, P204
SIGWART C, 1904, LOGIK, V1, P156
NR 26
TC 3
PU LIBRAIRIE ARMAND COLIN
PI PARIS
PA 54 BD RASPAIL, 75006 PARIS, FRANCE
SN 0035-1571
J9 REV METAPHYSIQUE MORALE
JI Rev. Metaphys. Morale
PD JUL-SEP
PY 1996
VL 101
IS 3
BP 383
EP 436
PG 54
SC Philosophy
GA VQ668
UT ISI:A1996VQ66800006
ER

PT J
AU BERGMANN, M
TI A NEW ARGUMENT FROM ACTUALISM TO SERIOUS-ACTUALISM
SO NOUS
LA English
DT Article
RP BERGMANN, M, UNIV NOTRE DAME,NOTRE DAME,IN 46556.
CR FINE K, 1985, A PLANTINGA, P145
HINCHLIFF M, 1989, ANALYSIS, V49, P182
ISEMINGER G, 1968, LOGIC PHILOS
MEINONG A, 1968, LOGIC PHILOS SELECTE, P116
PLANTINGA A, 1979, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V7, P101
PLANTINGA A, 1983, PHILOS STUD, V44, P1
PLANTINGA A, 1985, A PLANTINGA, P313
POLLOCK J, 1985, A PLANTINGA, P121
TOMBERLIN JE, 1985, A PLANTINGA
NR 9
TC 3
PU BLACKWELL PUBLISHERS
PI CAMBRIDGE
PA 350 MAIN STREET, STE 6, CAMBRIDGE, MA 02148-5023
SN 0029-4624
J9 NOUS
JI Nous
PD SEP
PY 1996
VL 30
IS 3
BP 356
EP 359
PG 4
SC Philosophy
GA VJ655
UT ISI:A1996VJ65500004
ER

PT J
AU HALDANE, J
TI INTENTIONALITY AND ONE-SIDED RELATIONS
SO RATIO-NEW SERIES
LA English
DT Article
RP HALDANE, J, UNIV ST ANDREWS,DEPT MORAL PHILOSOPHY,ST ANDREWS KY16 9AL,FIFE,SCOTLAND.
CR ARISTOTLE, CATEGORIES
BRENTANO F, 1973, PSYCHOL EMPIRICAL ST
CARTWRIGHT R, 1960, J PHILOSOPHY, V56
CHISHOLM RM, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
DEELY J, 1972, NEW SCHOLASTICISM, V46
DEELY J, 1975, THOMIST, V39
DEELY J, 1982, INTRO SEMIOTIC ITS H
EVANS G, 1982, VARIETIES REFERENCE
FINDLAY J, 1968, VALUES INTENTIONS
GEACH P, 1968, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC S, V62
GEACH P, 1969, SOPHIA, V8
GEACH P, 1970, REV METAPHYSICS, V23
GEACH PT, 1967, J PHILOS, V74
GORMAN M, 1993, PHILOS Q, V43
GROSSMANN R, 1969, AM PHILOS Q, V6
GROSSMANN R, 1977, CONTENT OBJECT PRESE
GROSSMANN R, 1984, PHENOMENOLOGY EXISTE
GROSSMANN R, 1992, EXISTENCE WORLD
HAIGHT D, 1981, NEW SCHOLASTICISM, V55, P180
HALDANE J, PHILOS R CHISHOLM
HALDANE J, 1989, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V35
HALDANE J, 1993, PACIFIC PHILOS Q, V74
HALDANE J, 1993, REALITY REPRESENTATI
HALDANE J, 1994, PHILOS BOOKS, V35
HENNINGER M, 1989, RELATIONS MEDIEVAL T
HUSSERL E, IDEAS
KOTARBINSKI T, 1966, REV INT PHILOS, V20
MCDOWELL J, 1984, PHILOS Q, V34
MEINONG A, GEGENSTANSTHEORIE
POINSOT J, ARS LOGICA
PUTNAM H, 1993, MODERN THINKERS ANCI
RUSSELL B, 1903, PRINCIPLES MATH
WILLIAMS CJF, 1981, WHAT IS EXISTENCE
NR 33
TC 3
PU BLACKWELL PUBL LTD
PI OXFORD
PA 108 COWLEY RD, OXFORD, OXON, ENGLAND OX4 1JF
SN 0034-0006
J9 RATIO
JI Ratio-New Ser.
PD SEP
PY 1996
VL 9
IS 2
BP 95
EP 114
PG 20
SC Philosophy
GA VF352
UT ISI:A1996VF35200001
ER

PT J
AU KROON, FW
TI WAS MEINONG ONLY PRETENDING
SO PHILOSOPHY AND PHENOMENOLOGICAL RESEARCH
LA English
DT Article
ID FICTIONAL OBJECTS
RP KROON, FW, UNIV AUCKLAND,AUCKLAND,NEW ZEALAND.
CR BACH K, 1985, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V25, P359
BENCIVENGA E, 1985, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V25, P461
CASTANEDA HN, 1974, PHILOSOPHIA, V4, P3
CASTANEDA HN, 1979, POETICS, V8, P31
CASTANEDA HN, 1985, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V25, P3
CASTANEDA HN, 1989, THINKING LANGUAGE EX
CHISHOLM R, 1972, J VONSEIN NICHTEIN
CHISHOLM R, 1973, REV INT PHILOS, V27, P207
CURRIE G, 1990, NATURE FICTION
EVANS G, 1982, VARIETIES REFERENCE
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
FINE K, 1984, PHILOS STUD, V45, P95
GROSSMAN R, 1974, MEINONG ARGUMENTS PH
GROSSMANN R, 1974, NOUS, V8, P67
HOWELL R, 1979, POETICS, V8, P129
KAPLAN D, 1973, APPROACHES NATURAL L, P490
LAMBER K, 1985, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V25, P439
LAMBERT K, 1983, MEINONG PRINCIPLE IN
MALLY E, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGER GEGEN
MALLY E, 1912, GEGENSTANDSTHEORETIS
MEINONG A, 1904, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P76
MEINONG A, 1983, ASSUMPTIONS
PARSONS T, 1974, J PHILOS, V71, P561
PARSONS T, 1975, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V1, P73
PARSONS T, 1979, J PHILOS, V76, P649
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
PARSONS T, 1982, POETICS, V11, P311
RAPAPORT WJ, 1978, NOUS, V12, P153
RAPAPORT WJ, 1981, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V14, P1
RAPAPORT WJ, 1982, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V18, P17
RAPAPORT WJ, 1985, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V25, P61
ROUTLEY R, 1979, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V9, P1
ROUTLEY R, 1980, DEP MONOGRAPH AUSTRA, V3
SEARLE J, 1979, CONT PERSPECTIVES PH
SOSA E, 1985, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V25, P485
VANINWAGEN P, 1977, AM PHILOS Q, V14, P299
WALTON K, 1973, PHILOS REV, V82, P283
WALTON K, 1978, J PHILOS, V75, P5
WALTON K, 1990, MIMESIS MAKE BELIEVE
WETTSTEIN H, 1984, SYNTHESE, V60, P439
ZALTA E, 1983, ABSTRACT OBJECTS INT
ZALTA E, 1988, INTENSIONAL LOGIC ME
NR 42
TC 3
PU PHILOSOPHY PHENOMENOLOGICAL RES
PI PROVIDENCE
PA BROWN UNIV BOX 1947, PROVIDENCE, RI 02912
SN 0031-8205
J9 PHIL PHENOMENOL RES
JI Philos. Phenomenol. Res.
PD SEP
PY 1992
VL 52
IS 3
BP 499
EP 527
PG 29
SC Philosophy
GA JL848
UT ISI:A1992JL84800001
ER

PT J
AU WIEBE, JM
TI REFERENCES IN NARRATIVE TEXT
SO NOUS
LA English
DT Article
ID BELIEF; REPRESENTATION; DISCOURSE
RP WIEBE, JM, UNIV TORONTO,DEPT COMP SCI,TORONTO M5S 1A1,ONTARIO,CANADA.
CR ALLEN JF, 1987, NATURAL LANGUAGE UND
ASHER N, 1986, J PHILOS LOGIC, V15, P127
BALLIM A, 1991, COGNITIVE SCI, V15, P133
BANFIELD A, 1982, UNSPEAKABLE SENTENCE
BRIDGERS SE, ALL TOGETHER NOW
BRINTON L, 1980, POETICS, V9, P363
CASTANEDA HN, 1977, MIDWEST STUD PHILOS, V2, P165
CHATMAN S, 1978, STORY DISCOURSE NARR
CHERRYH CJ, EXILES GATE
CLARK HH, 1981, ELEMENTS DISCOURSE U, P10
COHEN P, 1982, STRATEGIES NATURAL L, P245
COHEN PR, 1978, 118 U TOR DEP COMP S
COHN D, 1978, TRANSPARENT MINDS NA
DOLEZEL L, 1973, NARRATIVE MODES CZEC
DONNELLAN KS, 1966, PHILOS REV, V60, P281
FAUCONNIER G, 1985, MENTAL SPACES ASPECT
FILLMORE C, 1974, BERKELEY STUDIES SYN, V1, V1
FODOR JD, 1979, LINGUISTIC DESCRIPTI
FRANCHERE R, HANNAH HERSELF
GROSZ B, 1977, 5TH P INT JOINT C AR, P67
GROSZ B, 1986, COMPUTATIONAL LINGUI, V12, P175
HAMBURGER K, 1973, LOGIC LIT
HIRST G, 1981, ANAPHORA NATURAL LAN
HOBBS JR, 1988, 26TH P ANN M ASS COM, P131
KAMP H, 1984, TRUTH INTERPRETATION, P1
KONOLIGE K, 1986, DEDUCTIVE MODEL BELI
KURODA SY, 1973, FESTSCHRIFT M HALLE, P377
KURODA SY, 1973, PRAGMATICS LANGUAGE, P107
LENGLE M, MANY WATERS
LINDE C, 1979, SYNTAX SEMANTICS, V12
LUDLUM R, PARSIFAL MOSAIC
MAIDA AS, IN PRESS ARTIFICIAL
MAIDA AS, 1982, COGNITIVE SCI, V6, P291
MCCARTHY J, 1979, MACHINE INTELLIGENCE, V9
MCCULLERS C, JOCKEY
MEINONG A, 1904, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P76
MOORE RC, 1980, 191 SRI INT TECHN RE
MURPHY GL, 1989, J EXP PSYCHOL LEARN, V15, P572
NAKHIMOVSKY A, 1988, 12TH P INT C COMP LI, P465
NAKHIMOVSKY A, 1988, COMPUTATIONAL LINGUI, V14, P29
ONEAL Z, WAR WORK
PERRAULT CR, 1981, ELEMENTS DISCOURSE U, P217
PETERS SL, 1987, 10TH P INT JOINT C A, P140
PETERS SL, 1987, 9TH P ANN C COGN SCI, P379
PETERS SL, 1988, 10TH P ANN C COGN SC, P125
POLLACK ME, 1986, 403 SRI INT TECHN NO
POSTAL PM, 1967, LINGUIST INQ, V5, P367
QUINE WV, 1976, WAYS PARADOX OTHER E, P185
QUIRK R, 1985, COMPREHENSIVE GRAMMA
RAPAPORT WJ, 1985, 23RD P ANN M ASS COM, P43
RAPAPORT WJ, 1986, COGNITIVE SCI, V10, P371
RAPAPORT WJ, 1986, SUNY8615 DEP COMP SC
RAPAPORT WJ, 1988, ASPECTS ARTIFICIAL I, P81
REICHMAN R, 1985, GETTING COMPUTERS TA
ROSCH EH, 1978, COGNITION CATEGORIZA
SHAPIRO SC, 1987, KNOWLEDGE FRONTIER E, P262
SIDNER CL, 1983, COMPUTATIONAL MODELS, P267
TOLKIEN JRR, TWO TOWERS
USPENSKII BA, 1973, POETICS COMPOSITION
WEBBER BL, 1983, COMPUTATIONAL MODELS
WIEBE JM, 1986, P IEEE, V74, P1405
WIEBE JM, 1990, 13TH INT C COMP LING, P401
WIEBE JM, 1990, SUNY9003 DEP COMP SC
WILKS Y, 1983, COGNITIVE SCI, V7, P95
WILKS Y, 1987, 10TH P INT JOINT C A, P118
NR 65
TC 3
PU BLACKWELL PUBLISHERS
PI CAMBRIDGE
PA 238 MAIN STREET, CAMBRIDGE, MA 02142
SN 0029-4624
J9 NOUS
JI Nous
PD SEP
PY 1991
VL 25
IS 4
BP 457
EP 486
PG 30
SC Philosophy
GA GC357
UT ISI:A1991GC35700004
ER

PT J
AU KERZ, JP
TI FREUD INTRACLINICAL INDUCTIVISM
SO FORUM DER PSYCHOANALYSE
LA German
DT Article
CR APEK KO, 1984, RATIONALITAT
BERGMANN G, 1967, REALISM CRITIQUE BRE
FREUD S, 1962, BRIEFE WILHELM FLIES
FREUD S, 1966, GESAMMELTE WERKE
GRUNBAUM A, 1988, F PSYCHOANALYSIS PHI
HABERMAS J, 1968, ERKENNTNIS INTERESSE
JERUSALEM W, 1895, URTEILSFUNKTION PSYC
JERUSALEM W, 1897, VIERTELJAHRESSCHRIFT, V26, P157
KERZ JP, 1985, PSYCHE-Z PSYCHOANAL, V39, P125
KEUTH H, 1988, Z ALLG WISSENSCHAFTS, V19, P378
KOHNKE KC, 1986, ENTSTEHUNG AUFSTIEG
KRIECK E, 1936, VOLKISCH POLITISCHE
KUHLMANN W, 1985, Z ALLG WISSENSCHAFTS, V16, P357
MEINONG A, 1882, GESAMTAUSGABE, V2
MILL JS, 1843, SYSTEM LOGIC RATIONU, V1
MILL JS, 1865, EXAMINATION W HAMILT
VAIHINGER H, 1911, PHILOS ALS OB SYSTEM
VETTER A, 1942, PHILOS GRUNDLAGEN ME
NR 18
TC 3
PU SPRINGER VERLAG
PI NEW YORK
PA 175 FIFTH AVE, NEW YORK, NY 10010
SN 0178-7667
J9 FORUM PSYCHOANAL
JI Forum Psychoanal.
PD DEC
PY 1990
VL 6
IS 4
BP 277
EP 298
PG 22
SC Psychology, Psychoanalysis
GA EN186
UT ISI:A1990EN18600001
ER

PT J
AU LEMOS, NM
TI WARRANT, EMOTION, AND VALUE
SO PHILOSOPHICAL STUDIES
LA English
DT Article
RP LEMOS, NM, DEPAUW UNIV,DEPT PHILOSOPHY,GREENCASTLE,IN 46135.
CR ACHINSTEIN P, 1978, MIND, V87, P34
BRENTANO F, 1969, ORIGIN OUR KNOWLEDGE
BRENTANO F, 1973, F CONSTRUCTION ETHIC
CHISHOLM R, 1986, BRENTANO INTRINSIC V
CHISHOLM RM, 1977, THEORY KNOWLEDGE
CHISHOLM RM, 1982, F KNOWING
FINDLAY JN, 1970, AXIOLOGICAL ETHICS
FIRTH R, 1964, J PHILOS, V61, P553
HALL E, 1964, CATEGORIAL ANAL, P210
LYCAN WG, 1986, SO J PHILOS, V24, P89
MANDLEBAUM M, 1955, PHENOMENOLOGY MORAL
MCDOWELL J, 1985, MORALITY OBJECTIVITY, P110
MEINONG A, 1972, EMOTIONAL PRESENTATI
MILL JS, UTILITARIANISM
POLLOCK J, 1986, CONT THEORIES KNOWLE
POLLOCK JL, 1986, ETHICS, V96, P512
QUINN W, 1986, ETHICS, V96, P524
SCHELER M, 1973, FORMALISM ETHICS NON
NR 18
TC 3
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0031-8116
J9 PHIL STUD
JI Philos. Stud.
PD OCT
PY 1989
VL 57
IS 2
BP 175
EP 192
PG 18
SC Philosophy
GA CC095
UT ISI:A1989CC09500004
ER

PT J
AU DOYLE, JP
TI SUAREZ ON BEINGS OF REASON AND TRUTH
SO VIVARIUM-AN INTERNATIONAL JOURNAL FOR THE PHILOSOPHY AND INTELLECTUAL LIFE OF THE MIDDLE AGES AND RENAISSANCE
LA English
DT Article
RP DOYLE, JP, ST LOUIS UNIV,ST LOUIS,MO 63103.
CR DE SCIENTIA DEI
ARISTOTLE, DE ANIMA
ARISTOTLE, METAPHYSICA
ARISTOTLE, PERI HERMENEIAS
ASHWORTH E, CHIMERAS IMAGINARY O
DELGADO VM, 1964, LOGICA NOMINALISTA U
DOYLE JP, 1967, MODERN SCHOOLMAN, V45, P29
FONSECA P, I DIALECT
MEINONG A, 1960, THEORY OBJECTS
SCORRAILLE RD, 1913, F SUAREZ COMPAGNIE J, V2
SOTO D, SUMMULAE
SUAREZ, DE EUCHARISTIA
NR 12
TC 3
PU E J BRILL
PI LEIDEN
PA PO BOX 9000, 2300 PA LEIDEN, NETHERLANDS
SN 0042-7543
J9 VIVARIUM
JI Vivarium
PD MAY
PY 1988
VL 26
IS 1
BP 51
EP 72
PG 22
SC Medieval & Renaissance Studies; Philosophy
GA Q6829
UT ISI:A1988Q682900004
ER

PT J
AU HEIDSIECK, A
TI KAFKAS NARRATIVE ONTOLOGY
SO PHILOSOPHY AND LITERATURE
LA English
DT Article
RP HEIDSIECK, A, UNIV SO CALIF,LOS ANGELES,CA 90089.
CR BERGMANN H, 1908, UNTERSUCHUNGEN ZUM P
BINDER H, 1979, KAFKA HDB, V1
BRENTANO F, 1874, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN
BROD M, 1969, STREITBARES LEBEN 18
BUSSE L, 1903, GEIST KORPER SEELE L
DESCARTES R, MEDITATIONS
GROSSMANN R, 1974, MEINONG
HEIDSIECK A, 1986, GER REV, V61, P11
KAFKA F, CARES OF FAMILY MAN
KAFKA F, CASTLE
KAFKA F, COUNTRY DOCTOR
KAFKA F, DIARIES 1910-1923
KAFKA F, HUNGER ARTIST
KAFKA F, JUDGMENT
KAFKA F, LETTER TO HIS FATHER
KAFKA F, METAMORPHOSIS
KAFKA F, REPORT TO ACADEMY
KAFKA F, TRIAL
KAFKA F, UNHAPPINESS
KAPLAN D, 1969, WORDS OBJECTIONS ESS, P206
KASTIL A, 1909, STUDIEN NEUEREN ERKE, V1
LINDENFELD D, 1980, TRANSFORMATION POSIT
LINSKY L, 1977, NAMES DESCRIPTIONS
MARTY A, WERT METHODE EINER B
MARTY A, 1916, GESAMMELTE SCHRIFTEN, V2
MEINONG A, 1969, GESAMTAUSGABE, V2
RAJEC E, 1977, NAMEN IHRE BEDEUTUNG
RAYNAUD S, 1982, A MARTY FILOSOFO LIN
RUSSELL B, 1904, MIND, V13, P218
SOKEL W, 1980, F KAFKA THEMEN PROBL, P30
VONEHRENFELS C, 1890, VIERTELJAHRSSCHRIFT, V14, P249
NR 31
TC 3
PU JOHNS HOPKINS UNIV PRESS
PI BALTIMORE
PA JOURNALS PUBLISHING DIVISION, 2715 NORTH CHARLES ST, BALTIMORE, MD 21218-4319
SN 0190-0013
J9 PHIL LIT
JI Philos. Lit.
PD OCT
PY 1987
VL 11
IS 2
BP 242
EP 257
PG 16
SC Literary Theory & Criticism; Literature
GA K7104
UT ISI:A1987K710400003
ER

PT J
AU MATTEY, GJ
TI KANT THEORY OF PROPOSITIONAL ATTITUDES
SO KANT-STUDIEN
LA English
DT Article
RP MATTEY, GJ, UNIV CALIF DAVIS,DEPT PHILOSOPHY,DAVIS,CA 95616.
CR BARBER RL, 1967, 2 LOGICS MODALITY
GEACH PT, 1970, TRANSLATIONS PHILOS
KANT I, CRITIQUE PURE REASON
KANT I, GESAMMELTE SCHRIFTEN, V16
KANT I, GESAMMELTE SCHRIFTEN, V24
KANT I, GESAMMELTE SCHRIFTEN, V28
KANT I, GROUNDWORK METAPHYSI
KANT I, LOGIC
KANT I, PROLEGOMENA FUTURE M
KANT I, 1910, GESAMMELTE SCHRIFTEN
LOVEJOY AO, 1907, PHILOS REV, V16, P588
MEINONG A, 1910, UBER ANNAHMEN
REICH K, 1948, VOLLSTANDIGKEIT KANT
SWING TK, 1969, KANTS TRANSCENDENTAL
WILSON KD, 1978, KANT STUDIEN, V69, P252
ZWEIG A, 1967, KANT PHILOS CORRES 1
NR 16
TC 3
PU WALTER DE GRUYTER & CO
PI BERLIN
PA GENTHINER STRASSE 13, D-10785 BERLIN, GERMANY
SN 0022-8877
J9 KANT-STUD
JI Kant-Studien
PY 1986
VL 77
IS 4
BP 423
EP 440
PG 18
SC Philosophy
GA F5566
UT ISI:A1986F556600003
ER

PT J
AU RAPAPORT, WJ
TI TO-BE AND NOT-TO-BE + CRITICAL AND COMPARATIVE-STUDY OF PARSONS,TERENCE MEINONGIAN THEORY
SO NOUS
LA English
DT Article
RP RAPAPORT, WJ, SUNY BUFFALO,BUFFALO,NY 14260.
CR CASTANEDA HN, 1974, PHILOSOPHIA, V4, P3
CASTANEDA HN, 1978, NOUS, V12, P189
CASTANEDA HN, 1979, POETICS, V8, P31
CHISHOLM RM, 1982, J PHILOS, V79, P537
CLARK R, 1978, NOUS, V12, P181
FINE K, 1984, PHILOS STUD, V45, P95
MAIDA AS, 1982, COGNITIVE SCI, V6, P291
MARTINS J, REASONING MULTIPLE B
MARTINS J, 1983, 1983 P C ART INT ROC
MARTINS J, 1983, P INT JOINT C ARTIFI
MEINONG A, 1915, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
NUTTER JT, DEFAULT REASONING AI
NUTTER JT, 1983, 5TH P ANN C COGN SCI
PARSONS T, 1974, J PHILOS, V71, P561
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
PARSONS T, 1982, AM PHILOS Q, V19, P365
RAPAPORT W, 1979, ANALYSIS, V39, P75
RAPAPORT WJ, 1976, THESIS INDIANA U
RAPAPORT WJ, 1978, NOUS, V12, P153
RAPAPORT WJ, 1979, NOUS, V13, P125
RAPAPORT WJ, 1981, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V14, P1
RAPAPORT WJ, 1982, AM PHILOS Q, V19, P289
RAPAPORT WJ, 1982, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V18, P17
RAPAPORT WJ, 1984, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V44
RAPAPORT WJ, 1985, P ASS COMPUTATIONAL, V23
ROUTLEY R, 1979, EXPLORING MEINONGS J
SCHANK RC, 1977, SCRIPTS PLANS GOALS
SCHANK RC, 1981, INSIDE COMPUTER UNDE
SCHOLES RE, 1968, ELEMENTS FICTION
SCOTT D, 1970, PHILOS PROBLEMS LOGI, P143
SHAPIRO SC, 1981, 7 SUNY BUFF DEP COMP
WOODS WA, 1975, REPRESENTATION UNDER, P35
NR 32
TC 3
PU BLACKWELL PUBLISHERS
PI CAMBRIDGE
PA 350 MAIN STREET, STE 6, CAMBRIDGE, MA 02148-5023
SN 0029-4624
J9 NOUS
JI Nous
PY 1985
VL 19
IS 2
BP 255
EP 271
PG 17
SC Philosophy
GA ASV27
UT ISI:A1985ASV2700006
ER

PT J
AU RAPAPORT, WJ
TI ROUTLEY,RICHARD EXPLORING MEINONG JUNGLE AND BEYOND
SO PHILOSOPHY AND PHENOMENOLOGICAL RESEARCH
LA English
DT Note
RP RAPAPORT, WJ, SUNY COLL FREDONIA,FREDONIA,NY 14063.
CR BORGES JL, READER
CASTANEDA HN, 1974, PHILOSOPHIA, V4, P3
DESCARTES R, MEDITATIONS
GODDARD L, 1973, LOGIC SIGNIFICANCE C
MEINONG A, 1907, STELLUNG GEGENSTANDS
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
RAPAPORT WJ, 1976, THESIS INDIANA U
RAPAPORT WJ, 1978, NOUS, V12, P153
RAPAPORT WJ, 1979, NOUS, V13, P125
RAPAPORT WJ, 1981, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V14, P1
ROUTLEY R, 1979, EXPLORING MEINONGS J
ROYCE J, 1899, WORLD INDIVIDUAL
NR 12
TC 3
PU PHILOSOPHY PHENOMENOLOGICAL RES
PI PROVIDENCE
PA BROWN UNIV BOX 1947, PROVIDENCE, RI 02912
SN 0031-8205
J9 PHIL PHENOMENOL RES
JI Philos. Phenomenol. Res.
PY 1984
VL 44
IS 4
BP 539
EP 552
PG 14
SC Philosophy
GA SS991
UT ISI:A1984SS99100008
ER

PT J
AU SIMONS, P
TI A LESNIEWSKIAN LANGUAGE FOR THE NOMINALISTIC THEORY OF SUBSTANCE AND ACCIDENT
SO TOPOI-AN INTERNATIONAL REVIEW OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
RP SIMONS, P, SALZBURG UNIV,A-5020 SALZBURG,AUSTRIA.
CR ANGELELLI I, 1967, STUDIES G FREGE TRAD
ARISTOTLE, CATEGORIES
ARMSTRONG DM, NOMINALISM REALISM
BOLZANO B, WISSENSCHAFTSLEHRE
CARTWRIGHT R, 1971, IDENTITY INDIVIDUATI, P119
CHISHOLM RM, 1976, PERSON OBJECT METAPH
CHURCH A, 1956, INTRO MATH LOGIC
DUNN JM, 1968, NOUS, V2, P177
GEACH P, 1972, LOGIC MATTERS, P302
GOODMAN N, 1972, PROBLEMS PROJECTS
HENRY DP, 1972, MEDIEVAL LOGIC METAP
HUSSERL E, LOGICAL INVESTIGATIO
KOTARBINSKI T, 1966, GNOSIOLOGY SCI APPRO
KUNG G, 1967, ONTOLOGY LOGISTIC AN
KUNG G, 1970, THEORIA-SPAIN, V36, P165
LEIBNIZ GWV, METAPHYSICAL F MATH
LEIBNIZ GWV, NEW ESSAYS HUMAN UND
LEIBNIZ GWV, PHILOS PAPERS LETT
LEIBNIZ GWV, 1956, LEIBNIZ CLARKE CORRE, P71
LEJEWSKI C, PHILOS LOGIC, P1
LEJEWSKI C, 1958, RATIO, V1, P150
LEJEWSKI C, 1974, J PHILOS LOGIC, V3, P265
MEINONG A, HUME STUDIEN, V2
QUINE WVO, 1953, LOGICAL POINT VIEW
RUSSELL B, 1903, PRINCIPLES MATH
SIMONS P, 1981, PARTS MOMENTS STUDIE
SIMONS PM, 1982, HIST PHILOS LOGIC, V3, P165
WIGGINS D, 1980, SAMENESS SUBSTANCE
WOLTERSTORFF N, 1970, UNIVERSALS PARTICULA
NR 29
TC 3
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0167-7411
J9 TOPOI-INT REV PHIL
JI Topoi-Int. Rev. Philos.
PY 1983
VL 2
IS 1
BP 99
EP 109
PG 11
SC Philosophy
GA RA105
UT ISI:A1983RA10500007
ER

PT J
AU PARSONS, T
TI NOMINALISTIC THEORIES OF FICTIONAL OBJECTS
SO POETICS
LA English
DT Article
RP PARSONS, T, UNIV CALIF IRVINE,DEPT PHILOSOPHY,IRVINE,CA 92717.
CR BERKELEY G, 1954, 3 DIALOGUES HYLAS PH
CASTANEDA HN, 1974, PHILOSOPHIA, V4
EBERLE R, 1970, NOMINALISTIC SYSTEMS
FINE K, TOPOI, V1
GOODMAN N, 1956, PROBLEM UNIVERSALS
LEONARD H, 1940, J SYMBOLIC LOGIC, V5
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
PARSONS T, TOPOI, V1
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
ROUTLEY R, 1980, EXPLORING MEINONGS J
RUSSELL B, 1918, MYSTICISM LOGIC
RUSSELL B, 1919, INTRO MATH PHILOS
RYLE G, 1931, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC
RYLE G, 1933, S IMAGINARY OBJECTS
VANINWAGEN P, 1977, AM PHILOS Q, V14
WALTON K, 1978, J PHILOS, V75
WHITEHEAD AN, 1919, ENQUIRY PRINCIPLES N
WOODS J, 1969, SO J PHILOS
NR 18
TC 3
PU ELSEVIER SCIENCE BV
PI AMSTERDAM
PA PO BOX 211, 1000 AE AMSTERDAM, NETHERLANDS
SN 0304-422X
J9 POETICS
JI Poetics
PY 1982
VL 11
IS 4-6
BP 311
EP 329
PG 19
SC Literature; Sociology
GA QH740
UT ISI:A1982QH74000004
ER

PT J
AU BUTCHVAROV, P
TI THAT SIMPLE, INDEFINABLE, NON-NATURAL PROPERTY GOOD + EMOTIVE THEORY ETHICS
SO REVIEW OF METAPHYSICS
LA English
DT Article
RP BUTCHVAROV, P, UNIV IOWA,IOWA CITY,IA 52242.
CR AQUINAS T, DE ENTE ET ESSENTIA
AQUINAS T, SUMMA THEOLOGICA
ARISTOTLE, DE ANIMA
ARMSTRONG DM, 1978, UNIVERSALS SCI REALI, V2
BROAD CD, 1968, PHILOS GE MOORE, V2, P59
BUTCHVAROV P, 1966, RESEMBLANCE IDENTITY
BUTCHVAROV P, 1970, CONCEPT KNOWLEDGE
BUTCHVAROV P, 1979, BEING QUA BEING THEO
EWING AC, 1947, DEFINITION GOOD
FALES E, 1982, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V60, P29
HOCHBERG H, 1962, REV METAPHYS, V15, P365
HOCHBERG H, 1978, THOUGHT FACT REFEREN
HUME D, TREATISE HUMAN NATUR
HUSSERL E, LOGICAL INVESTIGATIO
JOHNSON WE, 1921, LOGIC
JOHNSON WE, 1968, PHILOS GE MOORE, V2, P583
KIM J, 1979, MIDWEST STUDIES PHIL, V4, P41
LEVY P, 1979, MOORE GE MOORE CAMBR
MEINONG A, 1972, EMOTIONAL REPRESENTA
MOORE GE, CONCEPTION INTRINSIC
MOORE GE, ETHICS
MOORE GE, PRINCIPIA ETHICA
MOORE GE, REFUTATION IDEALISM
MOORE GE, SOME MAIN PROBLEMS P
MOORE GE, 1899, MIND, V8, P183
MOORE GE, 1900, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC S, V6, P123
MOORE GE, 1910, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC S, V10, P51
MOORE GE, 1962, COMMONPLACE BOOK 191
PRICE HH, 1932, PERCEPTION
PRICHARD HA, 1968, MORAL OBLIGATION DUT
RASHDALL H, 1924, THEORY GOOD EVIL, V1
ROSS WD, 1930, RIGHT GOOD
ROSS WD, 1939, F ETHICS
SARTRE JP, BEING AND NOTHINGNES
SARTRE JP, PSYCHOL OF IMAGINATI
SARTRE JP, TRANSCENDENCE EGO ES
SCHILPP PA, 1968, PHILOS GE MOORE, V2
STEVENSON CL, 1937, MIND, V46, P31
NR 38
TC 3
PU CATHOLIC UNIV AMER PRESS
PI WASHINGTON
PA 620 MICHIGAN AVENUE NE ADMIN BLDG ROOM 303, WASHINGTON, DC 20064
SN 0034-6632
J9 REV METAPHYSICS
JI Rev. Metaphys.
PY 1982
VL 36
IS 1
BP 51
EP 75
PG 25
SC Philosophy
GA PF981
UT ISI:A1982PF98100003
ER

PT J
AU WEST, C
TI NIETZSCHE PREFIGURATION OF POSTMODERN AMERICAN PHILOSOPHY
SO BOUNDARY 2-AN INTERNATIONAL JOURNAL OF LITERATURE AND CULTURE
LA English
DT Article
RP WEST, C, UNION THEOL SEMINARY,NEW YORK,NY 10027.
CR AYER AJ, 1958, F EMPIRICAL KNOWLEDG
BENNETT J, 1971, LOCKE BERKELEY HUME
BLANCHOT M, 1977, NEW NIETZSCHE CONT S, P122
BRINTON C, 1941, NIETZSCHE
CAVELL S, 1979, CLAIM REASON
CHISHOLM RM, 1977, THEORY KNOWLEDGE
DELEUZE G, 1977, NEW NIETZSCHE, P149
DONTO A, 1965, NIETZSCHE PHILOS
FREGE G, 1952, TRANSLATIONS PHILOS
GLYMOUR C, 1980, THEORY EVIDENCE
GOODMAN N, 1972, PROBLEMS PROJECTS
GOODMAN N, 1978, WAYS WORLDMAKING
HOLLINGDALE RJ, 1973, NIETZSCHE
KAUFMAN W, 1975, NIETZSCHE PHILOS PSY
KUHN T, 1970, CRITICISM GROWTH KNO, P266
KUHN TS, 1970, STRUCTURE SCI REVOLU
LEWIS CI, 1952, PHILOS REV, V61, P168
LEWIS CI, 1956, MIND WORLD ORDER
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
MOORE GE, 1922, PHILOS STUDIES
NIETZSCHE F, TWILIGHT OF IDOLS
NIETZSCHE F, WILL TO POWER
PASSMORE JA, 1970, 100 YEARS PHILOS
POLLACK JL, 1975, KNOWLEDGE JUSTIFICAT
PRICE HH, 1964, PERCEPTION
PUTNAM H, 1978, MEANING MORAL SCI
QUINE WVO, 1960, WORD OBJECT
QUINE WVO, 1963, LOGICAL POINT VIEW
QUINE WVO, 1969, ONTOLOGICAL RELATIVI
RORTY R, 1967, LINGUISTIC TURN RECE
RORTY R, 1972, J PHILOS, V69, P661
RORTY R, 1979, PHILOS MIRROR NATURE
ROSS JJ, 1970, APPEAL GIVEN
RUSSELL B, 1903, PRINCIPLES MATH
RUSSELL B, 1904, MIND, V13, P204
RUSSELL B, 1912, PROBLEMS PHILOS
SELLARS RW, 1916, CRITICAL REALISM
SELLARS RW, 1938, REV INT PHILOS, V1, P472
SELLARS WS, 1956, MINNESOTA STUDIES PH, V1
STERN JP, 1979, F NIETZSCHE
WEST C, 1979, UNION SEMINARY Q REV, V34, P71
WILLIAM M, 1977, GROUNDLESS BELIEF ES
NR 42
TC 3
PU DUKE UNIV PRESS
PI DURHAM
PA BOX 90660, DURHAM, NC 27708-0660
SN 0190-3659
J9 BOUND TWO-INT J LIT CULT
JI Boundary 2-Int. J. Lit. Cult.
PY 1981
VL 9
IS 3
BP 241
EP 269
PG 29
SC CULTURAL STUDIES; Literature
GA NS775
UT ISI:A1981NS77500011
ER

PT J
AU CHISHOLM, RM
TI SOCRATIC METHOD AND THE THEORY OF KNOWLEDGE
SO RATIO-NEW SERIES
LA English
DT Article
RP CHISHOLM, RM, BROWN UNIV,PROVIDENCE,RI 02912.
CR BRENTANO F, 1955, PSYCHOLOGIE EMPIRISC
CHISHOLM RM, 1977, THEORY KNOWLEDGE
EMPIRICUS S, OUTLINES PYRRHONISM
FRIES JF, 1828, NEUE ODER ANTHR KRIT
KANT I, CRITIQUE PURE REASON
KASTIL A, 1912, JF FRIES LEHRE UNMIT
MEINONG A, 1968, EMOTIONELLE PRASENTA, V3, P287
NELSON L, 1912, ABHANDLUNGEN F SCHUL, V3
NELSON L, 1929, ABHANDLUNGEN F SCHUL, V5
NELSON L, 1930, SOGENANNTE ERKENNTNI
NELSON L, 1949, SOCRATIC METHOD CRIT
NELSON L, 1973, GESCHICHTE KRITIK ER
PRITCHARD HA, 1912, MIND, V21
NR 13
TC 3
PU BLACKWELL PUBL LTD
PI OXFORD
PA 108 COWLEY RD, OXFORD, OXON, ENGLAND OX4 1JF
SN 0034-0006
J9 RATIO
JI Ratio-New Ser.
PY 1979
VL 21
IS 2
BP 97
EP 108
PG 12
SC Philosophy
GA JR074
UT ISI:A1979JR07400002
ER

PT J
AU Douglas, AG
AF Douglas, Anna Gertrude
TI A TACHISTOSCOPIC STUDY OF THE ORDER OF EMERGENCE IN THE PROCESS OF PERCEPTION
SO PSYCHOLOGICAL MONOGRAPHS
LA English
DT Review
CR 1930, ARTS METIERS GRAPHIQ
BARTLETT FC, 1916, BRIT J PSYCHOL 2, V8, P222
BARTLETT FC, 1932, REMEMBERING
BENARY W, 1924, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V5, P131
BORING EG, 1942, SENSATION PERCEPTION
BRIDGEN RF, 1933, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V44, P153
BURY A, 1937, WATER COLOUR PAINTIN
CARL H, 1933, Z PSYCHOL, V129, P1
CATTELL RB, 1930, BRIT J PSYCHOL S, V5, P1
CHILD CM, 1940, PHYSL ZOOL, V13
CHILD CM, 1941, PATTERNS PROBLEMS DE
DEWEY J, 1896, PSYCHOL REV, V3, P357, DOI 10.1037/H0070405
DICKINSON CA, 1926, AM J PSYCHOL, V37, P330
DICKINSON CA, 1927, AM J PSYCHOL, V38, P266
DODGE R, 1907, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V8, P1
DODGE R, 1933, SCIENCE, V78, P197
EHRENSTEIN W, 1930, Z PSYCHOL, V117, P339
ELLIS WD, 1938, SOURCE BOOK GESTALT
FEHRER EV, 1935, AM J PSYCHOL, V47, P187
FOLEY JP, 1935, ARCH PSYCHOL, P5
FREEMAN GL, 1929, J EXP PSYCHOL, V12, P341
GALLI A, 1931, ARCH ITAL PSICOL, V9, P31
GALLI A, 1931, Z PSYCHOL, V123, P308
GELB A, 1923, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V93, P83
GEMELLI A, 1928, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V65, P207
GEMELLI A, 1928, J PSYCHOL, V25, P97
GESELL A, 1945, EMBRYOLOGY BEHAV
GIBSON JJ, 1929, J EXP PSYCHOL, V12, P1
GILBERT GM, 1939, ARCH PSYCHOL, P1
GOTTSCHALDT K, 1926, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V8, P261
GOTTSCHALDT K, 1929, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V12, P1
GUPTILL AL, 1935, COLOR SKETCHING REND
HARTMANN GW, 1935, GESTALT PSYCHOL
HARVEY EB, 1932, BIOL BULL-US, V62, P155
HARVEY EB, 1936, BIOL BULL-US, V71, P101
HELSON H, 1925, AM J PSYCHOL, V36, P342
HELSON H, 1925, AM J PSYCHOL, V36, P494
HELSON H, 1926, AM J PSYCHOL, V37, P189
HELSON H, 1926, AM J PSYCHOL, V37, P25
HELSON H, 1932, AM J PSYCHOL, V44, P79
HELSON H, 1933, PSYCHOL REV, V40, P13
HERTZ MR, RORSCHACH WORK UNPUB
HERTZ MR, 1942, PSYCHOL BULL, V39, P529
HERTZ MR, 1943, J CONSULT PSYCHOL, V7, P67
HOLT EB, 1931, ANIMAL DRIVE LEARNIN
HOLTFRETER J, 1933, ARCH ENTW MECH, V128, P584
HOLTFRETER J, 1934, ARCH ENTWMECH, V132, P225
HUGHLINGSJACKSO.J, 1866, MED T GAZ, V1, P659
HUGHLINGSJACKSO.J, 1880, BRAIN, V2, P203
HUGHLINGSJACKSO.J, 1880, BRAIN, V2, P323
HUXLEY JS, 1935, T DYNAM DEV, V10
JENKINS JG, 1930, J EXP PSYCHOL, V13, P24
JUDD CH, 1905, PSYCHOL REV-MONOGR S, V7, P199
JUDD CH, 1907, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V8, P349
JUDD CH, 1909, J PHIL PSYCHOL SCI M, V6
KATONA G, 1940, ORG MEMORIZING
KOFFKA K, 1922, PSYCHOL BULL, V19, P531
KOFFKA K, 1931, ENCY SOCIAL SCI, V6, P642
KOFFKA K, 1935, PRINCIPLES GESTALT P
KOHLER W, 1920, PHYS GESTALTEN RUHE
KOHLER W, 1922, JB GES PHYSL, V3, P512
KOHLER W, 1928, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V11, P188
KOHLER W, 1929, GESTALT PSYCHOL
KOHLER W, 1940, DYNAMICS PSYCHOL
KOHLER W, 1944, P AM PHILOS SOC, V88, P269
KOLLIGS M, 1942, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V111, P39
LEVIT SG, 1935, CHARACT PERSON, V3, P188
LINE W, 1931, BRIT J PSYCHOL MON S, V5, P1
LURIA AR, 1928, J GENET PSYCHOL, V35, P493
LURIA AR, 1936, CHARACT PERSON, V5, P35
MCGEOCH JA, 1942, PSYCHOL HUMAN LEARNI
MILLER NE, 1934, J GENET PSYCHOL, V44, P321
MUNROE RL, 1945, RORSCHACH RES EXCH, V9, P30
NEEDHAM J, 1936, ORDER LIFE
NEEDHAM J, 1942, BIOCH MORPHOGENESIS
NETSCHAJEFF A, 1929, PSYCHOL STUD, P114
PARSONS JH, 1927, INTRO THEORY PERCEPT
PETERMAN B, 1932, GESTALT THEORY PROBL
PURDY DM, 1935, PSYCHOL REV, V42, P399
PURDY DM, 1935, PSYCHOL REV, V42, P528
PURDY DM, 1936, PSYCHOL REV, V43, P59
RAPAPORT D, 1946, DIAGNOSTIC PSYCHOL T
RENSHAW S, 1939, PSYCHOL VISION, V1
RENSHAW S, 1940, PSYCHOL VISION, V2
RENSHAW S, 1941, PSYCHOL VISION, V3
RENSHAW S, 1943, PSYCHOL VISION, V4
RENSHAW S, 1944, PSYCHOL VISION, V5
RENSHAW S, 1945, J PSYCHOL, V20, P217
RENSHAW S, 1945, PSYCHOL VISION, V6
RIBOT T, 1898, PSYCHOL ATTENTION
RIBOT T, 1914, VIE INCONSCIENTE MOU
ROGERS AS, 1917, AM J PSYCHOL, V28, P519
ROGERS CR, 1942, COUNSELING PSYCHOTHE
ROSS L, 1934, J GENET PSYCHOL, V10, P152
ROWLAND EH, 1907, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V8, P1
RUBIN E, 1921, VISUELLWAHRGENOMMEN
SCHUMANN F, 1900, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V23, P1
SCHUMANN F, 1900, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V24, P1
SCHUMANN F, 1902, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V30, P241
SCHUMANN F, 1902, Z PSYCHOL, V30, P321
SCHUMANN F, 1903, Z PSYCHOL, V36, P161
SMITH F, 1914, BRIT J PSYCHOL 3-4, V6, P321
SPEMANN H, 1938, EMBRYONIC DEV INDUCT
VERNON MD, 1937, VISUAL PERCEPTION
VONHORNBOSTEL EM, 1921, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V1
VYGOTSKI LS, 1929, J GENET PSYCHOL, V36, P415
WADDINGTON CH, 1940, ORGANISERS GENES
WASHBURN MF, 1916, MOVEMENT MENTAL IMAG
WASHBURN MF, 1925, AM J PSYCHOL, V37, P516
WATSON EW, 1942, COLOR METHOD PAINTIN
WEISS, 1939, PRINCIPLES DEV
WERNER H, 1937, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V49
WERTHEIMER M, 1922, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V1, P47
WERTHEIMER M, 1923, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V4, P301
WERTHEIMER M, 1925, GESTALTTHEORIE
WEVER EG, 1927, AM J PSYCHOL, V38, P194
WILCOX WW, 1932, AM J PSYCHOL, V44, P578
WULF F, 1922, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V1, P333
NR 118
TC 3
PU AMER PSYCHOLOGICAL ASSOC
PI WASHINGTON
PA 750 FIRST ST NE, WASHINGTON, DC 20002-4242 USA
SN 0096-9753
J9 PSYCHOL MONOGRAPHS
JI Psychol. Monogr.
PY 1947
VL 61
IS 6
BP 1
EP 133
PG 133
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V00QF
UT ISI:000206801800001
ER

PT J
AU Hermann, I
AF Hermann, Imre
TI The Itself and the Think
SO IMAGO
LA German
DT Article
CR IMAGO, V15, P106
INT Z PSYCHOANALYSE, V9
1925, 11 INT PSYCH K BAD H
1926, IMAGO, V12
1929, INT Z PSYCHOANALYSE, V15
BERNFELD S, IMAGO, V16
BURKAMP, 1927, BEGRIFF BEZIEHUNG, P88
CASSIRER E, 1925, PHILOS SYMBOLISCHEN, V2, P61
CHADWICK M, 1929, INT Z PSYCHOANALYSE, V15, P278
DELGADO HF, IMAGO, V7
DEUTSCH H, 1921, IMAGO, V7
DUPREL K, 1901, SEXUELLE OSPHRESIOLO, P78
EHRENWALD H, 1928, Z NEUROL, P115
ELIASBERG W, 1925, PSYCHOL PATHOLOGIE A, P115
ENRIQUES, 1927, GESCH LOGIK, P157
ETTLINGER M, 1925, BEITRAGE LEHRE TIERS, P42
FECHNER GT, PSYCHOANALYSE LOGIK, P99
FENICHEL O, 1926, Z PSYCHOANALYSE, V12
FERENCZI S, 1924, VERSUCH GENITALTHEOR, P95
FREUD, GES SCHRIFTEN, V6, P368
FREUD, GES SCHRIFTEN, V8, P350
FREUD, GES SCHRIFTEN, V8, P71
FREUD, INT Z PSYCHOANALYSE, V8
GRUHLE HW, 1918, PSYCHIAT ARZTE, P25
HECKMANNS J, 1916, RENAISSANCE PHILOS, V13, P126
HENNING H, 1924, GERUCH, P70
HENNING, 1926, PSYCHOL STUDIEN GERU, P784
JONES E, JB PSYCHOANALYTISCHE, V4
JUNG CG, 1926, UNBEWUSSTE NORMALEN, P99
KATZ D, 1925, AUFBAU TASTWELT, P165
KIRCHHOFF, 1922, GESICHTSAUSDRUCK SEI, P149
KOWALEWSKY A, 1904, STUDIEN PSYCHOL PESS
KRAEPELIN E, PSYCHIATRIE, V1, P414
KRAUSE, 1880, E DARWIN, P151
LANGE C, 1910, UBERSETZT KURELLA, P15
LEISEGANG H, 1928, DENKFORMEN, P196
MEINONG A, 1882, HUME STUDIEN, V2, P137
MEYER K, 1913, ENTWICKLUNG TEMPERAT
PAGENSTECHER, 1928, PSYCHOMETRIE ODER HE, P59
PLESSNER H, 1923, EINHEIT SINNE
RANK O, 1924, TRAUMA GEBURT, P105
REVESZ G, 1928, TAKTILE AGNOSIE, P14
SCHNEIDER E, 1926, IMAGO, V12
SCHUBERT GH, 1840, SYMBOLIK TRAUMES, P124
SKRAMLIK, 1924, Z SINNESPHYSIOLOGIE
SOMMER R, 1925, TIERPSYCHOLOGIE, P62
STEINITZER M, 1889, MENSCHLICHEN TIERISC, P144
STOLL O, 1908, GESCHLECHTSLEBEN VOL, P824
STORCH A, 1922, ARCHAISCH PRIMITIVE, P41
STRUNZ F, 1928, ASTROLOGIE ALCHEMIE, P287
UBERWEG, 1868, SYSTEM LOGIK, P90
VONBUDDENBROCK W, 1924, GRUNDRISS VERGLEICHE, V1, P149
VONKRIES J, 1923, ALLGEMEINE SINNESPHY, P183
VONSKRAMLIK E, 1926, HDB PHYSL NIEDEREN S, V1, P336
WERNER H, 1926, EINFUHRUNG ENTWICKLU, P257
ZIEHEN T, 1920, LEHRBUCH LOGIK, P445
NR 56
TC 3
PU HUGO HELLER & CIE
PI WIEN
PA BAUERNMARKT 3, WIEN, 00000, GERMANY
SN 0536-5554
J9 IMAGO
JI Imago
PY 1929
VL 15
IS 3-4
BP 325
EP 348
PG 24
SC Psychology, Psychoanalysis
GA V77VH
UT ISI:000205260500004
ER

PT J
AU Schubert, G
TI Studies on the Listingsch law of motion of the eye. IV. Announcement. On the position of the guide brush in the general kinematic system according to Listing.
SO PFLUGERS ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PHYSIOLOGIE DES MENSCHEN UND DER TIERE
LA German
DT Article
CR 1924, PFLUGERS ARCH GES PH, V205, P637
1927, PFLUGERS ARCH GES PH, V215, P553
1927, PFLUGERS ARCH GES PH, V216, P580
BRAUNE W, 1887, ABHANDL KGL SACHS MN, V14
BURMESTER L, 1918, SITZUNGSBER KONIG MN, P171
FISCHER O, 1887, ARCH ANAT PHYSL S, P242
FISCHER O, 1909, ABH KGL SACHS GES MN, V32, P6
FISCHER O, 1909, KONIGL SACHS GES MN, V31, P1
MEINONG A, 1898, Z PSYCH PHYSL, V17, P161
TSCHERMAK A, 1927, MONATSSCHR PSYCHIAT, V65, P397
TSCHERMAK A, 1927, VERHANDL DTSCH OPHTH, V46, P5
NR 11
TC 3
PU SPRINGER
PI NEW YORK
PA 233 SPRING STREET, NEW YORK, NY 10013 USA
J9 PFL ARCH GESAM PHYS MEN TIERE
PY 1928
VL 220
BP 300
EP 316
PG 17
SC Physiology
GA V17VA
UT ISI:000201203800027
ER

PT J
AU Simoneit, M
AF Simoneit, Max
TI Creative Thinking
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Review
CR ACH M, 1921, BEGRIFFSBILDUNG
ACH N, 1905, WILLENSTATIGKEIT DEN, P210
ACH N, 1921, BEGRIFFSBILDUNG, P2
ACH N, 1921, BEGRIFFSBILDUNG, P329
ACH N, 1921, BEGRIFFSBILDUNG, P6
ACH, 1905, WILLENSTATIGKEIT DEN, P191
ACHENBACH E, 1916, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V35
AVELING F, 1922, CONSCIOUSNESS U INDI
AVENARIUS R, 1888, KRITIK REINEN ERFAHR, P71
BERGSON H, 1908, MATERIE GEDACHTNIS, R7
BERKELEY, ALCIPHRON MINUTE PHI
BERKELEY, TREATISE PRINCIPLES
BRENTANO F, 1874, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN, V1, P132
BUHLER K, ARCH GES PSYCH, V9, P303
CORNELIUS H, Z PSYCHOL, V24, P117
CORNELIUS, 1897, PSYCHOL ERFAHRUNGSWI, P116
DROBISCH, 1863, NEUE DARSTELLUNG LOG, P19
EBBINGHAUS, 1919, GRUNDZ PSYCHOL, V1, P567
ERDMANN B, 1907, LOGIK, P74
ERDMANN B, 1907, LOGIK, V1, P3
ERDMANN B, 1907, LOGIK, V1, P5
ERDMANN B, 1907, LOGIK, V1, P71
ERDMANN B, 1907, LOGIK, V1, P9
ERDMANN B, 1908, UMRISSE PSYCHOL DENK
GERTRUDSALING, Z PSYCHOL, V49
GROOS K, Z PSYCH, V95, P1
GRUNBAUM AA, 1908, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V12, P344
HUME, 1874, TREATISE HUMAN NATUR, P311
HUSSERL E, 1901, LOG UNTERS, P61
HUSSERL E, 1901, LOG UNTERS, V2, P218
HUSSERL, 1901, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN, V2, P593
JAENSCH E, 1911, Z PSYCH S, P461
JAENSCH ER, Z PSYCHOL S, P386
JAMES W, 1909, PSYCHOLOGIE, P257
JAMES W, 1909, PSYCHOLOGIE, P259
KATZ D, WISS BEITR PAD PS, P27
KOFFKA G, ARCH GES PSYCH, V48, P193
KOFFKA K, 1912, ANAL VORSTELLUNGEN I, P365
KOFFKA K, 1912, ANALYSE VORSTELLUNGE, P188
KULPE O, GRUNDRISS PSYCHOL, P183
KULPE O, PHIL STUD, V19, P553
KULPE O, 1904, 1 K EXP PSYCH, P56
LEIBMANN O, 1911, ANAL WIRKLICHKEIT, P234
LIEPMANN H, 1904, IDEENFLUCHT
LIEPMANN H, 1904, IDEENFLUCHT, P37
LIPPS T, LEITF PSYCHOL, P145
LOCKE J, ESSAY HUMAN UNDERSTA, CH7
MACH E, 1903, ANAL EMPFINDUNGEN
MACH E, 1906, ANAL EMPFINDUNGEN, P163
MARBE, 1901, EXPT PSYCHOL UNTERSU, P11
MARBETHUMB, 1901, EXP UNTERS PSYCHOL G
MEINONG A, Z PSYCH, V24, P34
MEINONG A, Z PSYCHOL, V24, P71
MEINONG A, 1877, SITZ BER KAIS AKA PH, V86, P193
MEINONG, Z PSYCHOL, V21, P182
MEINONG, 1910, ANNAHMEN, P10
MESSER A, ARCH GES PSYCH, V8
MESSER A, ARCH GES PSYCH, V8, P175
MESSER A, 1908, EMPFINDUNG DENKEN
MESSER A, 1908, EMPFINDUNG DENKEN, P34
MESSER A, 1908, EMPFINDUNG DENKEN, P69
MESSER A, 1922, PSYCHOLOGIE
MILL JS, SYSTEM LOGIC, V2, P4
MITTENZWEY K, WUNDTS PSYCH STUD, V2, P358
MOORE Y, 1910, PUBLIC PSYCHOL, V1
MOSKIEWICZ G, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V18, P305
MULLER GE, Z PSYCH S, P528
MULLERFREIENFEL.R, 1916, DENKEN PHANTASIE, P27
MULLERSCHE GE, VORSTELLUNG, P147
ORTH, 1903, GEFUHL BEWUSSTSEINSL, P71
RICKERT H, 1913, GRENZEN NATURWISSENS, P39
RICKERT H, 1913, GRENZEN NATURWISSENS, P45
SCHLICKER HG, 1924, THESIS KONIGSBERG
SCHULTZE FEO, GEDANKEN ERSCHEINUNG, P155
SCHULTZE FEO, 1906, ARCH GES PSYCH, V8, P275
SCHULTZE FEO, 1923, ANLEITUNG MENSCHENKE
SCHUMANN F, 1904, PSYCHOL STUDIEN
SCHUMANN, BEITRAGE ANAL GESICH, P24
SCHUMANN, Z PSYCH, P23
SCHWIETE F, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V19, P475
SELZ O, 1913, GESETZE GEORDNETEN D, P155
SIMONEIT M, 1922, THESIS KONIGSBERG
STORRING G, PHIL STUD, V20, P324
STORRING G, 1916, LOGIK, P91
STUMPF C, 1883, TONPSYCHOLOGIE, P3
STUMPF C, 1906, ABH PREUSS AKAD W, P4
USNADZE, PSYCHOL FORSCHUNG, V5, P24
VOLKELT J, 1886, ERFAHRUNG DENKEN, P516
VONHUSSERL T, 1901, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN, V2, P37
WATT H, ARCH GES PSYCH, V4, P430
WUNDT W, 1906, LOGIK, V1, P13
WUNDT W, 1906, LOGIK, V1, P45
WUNDT W, 1908, LOGIK, V1, P47
WUNDT W, 1911, GRUNDRISS PSYCHOL, P326
WUNDT W, 1911, GRUNDZUEGE PHYSL PHY, P307
ZIEHEN T, 1914, LEITFADEN PHYSL PSYC, P242
ZIEHEN T, 1916, MANNS PAD MAG, P28
NR 97
TC 3
SN 0724-7842
J9 ARCG GESAMTE PSYCHOL
JI Archiv. Gesamte Psychol.
PD JUN 12
PY 1926
VL 55
IS 1-2
BP 137
EP 218
PG 82
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V01CE
UT ISI:000206832900006
ER

PT J
AU Juhasz, A
AF Juhasz, Andor
TI For the analysis of musical recognition
SO ZEITSCHRIFT FUR PSYCHOLOGIE UND PHYSIOLOGIE DER SINNESORGANE
LA German
DT Article
CR ARCH GES PSYCH, V37, P283
NAHERES RELATIVE TON, P168
TONPSYCHOLOGIE, V1, P141
TONPSYCHOLOGIE, V1, P251
Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V11, P113
1870, LEHRE TONEMPFINDUNGE, P486
1883, TONPSYCHOLOGIE, V1, P339
1886, ANAL EMPFINDUNGEN, P128
1890, VIERTELJAHRSSCHR WIS, P279
1892, Z PSYCHOL, V3, P263
1903, GESICHTSPUNKTE TATSA, P289
1907, WUNDTS PYSHCOL STUD, V2, P228
1908, WUNDTS PYSHCOL STUD, V4, P224
1913, GRUNDLEGUNG TONPSYCH, P142
1916, ARCH GES PSYCH, V36, P42
1917, ABH PREUFS AKAD W PM, P15
FISCHER A, 1915, Z PSYCHOL, V72, P365
KOHLER W, 1920, PHYSISCHEN GESTALTEN, P37
MEINONG A, 1891, Z PSYCHOL, V2, P245
MEYER HW, 1914, Z PSYCHOL, V70, P204
MULLER GE, 1919, Z PSYCHOL, V82, P109
MULLER GE, 1923, KOMPLEXTHEORIE GESTA, P84
MULLERS S, KOMPLEXTHEORIE, P83
REVESZ, TONPSYCHOLOGIE, P143
REVESZ, 1916, ERWIN NYIREGYHAZI, P54
STUMPF, 1901, BEITR AKUSTIK MUSIKW, P92
VONMALTZEW C, 1913, Z PSYCHOL, V64, P194
NR 27
TC 3
PU SWETS ZEITLINGER PUBLISHERS
PI LISSE
PA P O BOX 825, 2160 SZ LISSE, NETHERLANDS
J9 Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SINNESORG
JI Z. Psychol. Physiol. Sinnesorg.
PY 1924
VL 95
BP 142
EP 180
PG 39
SC Psychology, Biological
GA V96MI
UT ISI:000206521600017
ER

PT J
AU Gelb, A
AF Gelb, Adhemar
TI Theory on the "Quality of Conformation"
SO ZEITSCHRIFT FUR PSYCHOLOGIE UND PHYSIOLOGIE DER SINNESORGANE
LA German
DT Article
CR AMESEDER, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
BENTLEY, AM J PSYCHOL, V13
CORNELIUS H, EINFUHRUNG PHILOS, P239
CORNELIUS H, PSYCHOL ERFAHRUNGSWI, P70
CORNELIUS H, VIERTELJAHRSSCHR WIS, V16
CORNELIUS H, VIERTELJAHRSSCHR WIS, V17
CORNELIUS H, Z PSYCHOL, V22
CORNELIUS H, Z PSYCHOL, V24
EBBINGHAUS, GRUNDZUGE PSYCHOL, P432
HOFLER, PSYCHOL, P152
HUSSERL E, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN, V2, P269
HUSSERL E, PHILOS ARITHMETIK
KREIBIG, WERTTHEORIE, P62
KREIBIG, 1909, INTELLEKTUELLEN FUNK, P111
KRUGER, WUNDTS PSYCHOL STUDI, V1, P379
KRUGER, WUNDTS PSYCHOL STUDI, V2, P214
LIPPS T, LEITFADEN PSYCHOL, P167
LIPPS T, Z PSYCHOL, V22
LIPPS T, 1899, SITZUNGSBERICHT BAYR
LIPPS T, 1902, EINHEITEN RELATIONEN
LIPPS T, 1907, PSYCHOL STUDIEN, P658
LIPPS T, 1907, PSYCHOL STUDIEN, P670
MALLY, ARCH SYST PHILOS, V6
MARTY A, 1908, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GRUND, P109
MEINONG A, FICHTE Z, V95
MEINONG A, Z PSYCHOL S, V1
MEINONG A, Z PSYCHOL, V2
MEINONG A, Z PSYCHOL, V21
MEINONG A, Z PSYCHOL, V24
MEINONG A, Z PSYCHOL, V6
SCHULTZE FEO, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V8, P357
SCHUMANN F, Z PSYCHOL, V17
SCHUMANN F, Z PSYCHOL, V23
STOUT, ANAL PSYCHOL, V1, P66
STUMPF C, 1907, BERLINER AKADEMIEABH, P28
STWITASEK, ARCH SYSTEM PHILOS, V3, P273
STWITASEK, GRUNDLINIEN PSYCHOL
STWITASEK, Z PSYCHOL, V11
STWITASEK, Z PSYCHOL, V14, P401
STWITASEK, Z PSYCHOL, V19, P189
STWITASEK, 1904, GRUNDZUGE ALLGEMEINE
VONEHRENFELS C, VIERTELJAHRSSCHR WIS, V14
VONEHRENFELS C, VIERTELJAHRSSCHR WIS, V15
WIEGAND, Z PSYCHOL, V48
NR 44
TC 3
PU SWETS ZEITLINGER PUBLISHERS
PI LISSE
PA P O BOX 825, 2160 SZ LISSE, NETHERLANDS
J9 Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SINNESORG
JI Z. Psychol. Physiol. Sinnesorg.
PY 1911
VL 58
BP 1
EP 58
PG 58
SC Psychology, Biological
GA V96KG
UT ISI:000206516200001
ER

PT J
AU Benussi, V
AF Benussi, Vittorio
TI Basics of Weight Impression
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Article
CR ANN PSYCHOL, V2, P79
ARCH PSYCH, V1, P69
ARCH PSYCH, V1, P84
ARCH PSYCH, V1, P91
BESPRECHUNG CHARAKTE, V5, P4
EXPT ANAL ZEITVERGLE, V1, P439
EXPT ANAL ZEITVERGLE, V2, P119
GESICHTSPUNKTE TATSA, P237
GRUNDLINIEN PSYCHOL, P324
SCHRIFTEN GESELLSCHA, P18
Z PSYCH 1, V51, P73
Z PSYCH, V36, P344
Z PSYCH, V43, P40
Z PSYCHOL 1, V51, P73
Z PSYCHOL 1, V51, P91
Z PSYCHOL, V25, P1
Z PSYCHOL, V45, P215
Z PSYCHOL, V51, P102
Z PSYCHOL, V51, P73
Z PSYCHOL, V51, P77
1899, ANAL UNTERSCHIEDSEMP, P155
1907, Z PSYCHOL, V45, P217
AMESEDER R, VORSTELLUNGSPRODUKTI
AMESEDER R, 1904, PSYCHOL GESTALTERFAS
BINET, ANN PSYCHOL, V3, P42
CLAPAREDE E, 1906, Z ERFORSCHUNG BEHAND, V1, P118
CLAPAREDE, 1902, ARCH PSYCHOL, V1, P69
DESARLOS, 1905, RICERCHE PSICOLOGIA, V1
EBBINGHAUS, PSYCHOLOGIE, V1, P19
EBBINGHAUS, Z PSYCHOL, P457
FECHNER, ELEMENTE PSYCHOPHYSI, V1, P96
FECHNER, 1860, BERICHTE SACHS GES W, P76
FLOURNOY, 1894, ANN PSYCHOL, V1, P168
FLOURNOY, 1894, ANN PSYCHOL, V1, P198
HOFLERS, PSYCHOLOGIE, P427
JAENSCH E, Z PSYCH 1, V41, P257
KATZ A, Z PSYCHOL, V42, P302
KATZ, Z PSYCH 1, V42, P302
LEHMANNS A, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V6, P425
LEHMANNS A, KORPERLICHE AUSSERUN, V1, P63
LOOMIS HN, 1907, PSYCHOL REV PSYCH MO, V8
MARTIN CJ, 1899, ANAL UNTERSCHIEDSEMP, P43
MARTIN LJ, 1899, ANAL UNTERSCHIEDSEMP
MARTIUS G, BEITRAGEN PSYCH PH 3, P413
MEINONG A, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN, V5
MEINONG A, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN, V6
MEINONG A, Z PSYCHOL, V33, P1
MEINONG A, 1904, PSYCHOL GESTALTERFAS
MEINONGS, Z PSYCHOL S, V2, P109
MEINONGS, Z PSYCHOL, V2, P245
MEINONGS, Z PSYCHOL, V21, P181
MENTZ A, PHILOS STUDIEN, V11, P563
MEUMANN E, EINFUHRUNG EXPT PADA, V2, P94
MEUMANN, 1903, PHILOS STUD, V18, P1
MEUMANNS, VORLESUNGEN EINFUHRU, V2, P361
MULLER GE, PFLUGERS ARCH GES PH, V45, P37
MULLER, PFLUGERS ARCH GES PH, V45, P37
MULLER, 1889, ARCH GES PHYSL, V45, P37
SCHUMANN F, 1909, Z PSYCHOL, V52, P1
STEVENS HC, 1905, AM J PSYCHOL, V12, P409
TREVES Z, 1906, ARCH FISIOL, V3, P353
VANBIERVLIET, 1896, ANN PSYCHOL, V2, P79
WITASEK, 1908, GRUNDLINIEN PSYCHOL, P222
WITASEKS, ASTHETIK, P66
NR 64
TC 3
SN 0724-7842
J9 ARCG GESAMTE PSYCHOL
JI Archiv. Gesamte Psychol.
PD MAR 8
PY 1910
VL 17
IS 1-2
BP 1
EP 185
PG 185
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V98EX
UT ISI:000206637500001
ER

PT J
AU Calkins, MW
TI The abandonment of sensationalism in psychology
SO AMERICAN JOURNAL OF PSYCHOLOGY
LA English
DT Article
CR ANAL PSYCHOL, V1, P65
ANAL PSYCHOL, V1, P78
ANAL PSYCHOL, V2, P42
ARCHIV, V12, P103
ARCHIV, V12, P107
ARCHIV, V12, P94
OUTLINES PSYCHOL, P180
PRINCIPLES PSYCHOL, V1, P247
PSYCHOL ERFAHRUNGSWI, P164
PSYCHOL ERFAHRUNGSWI, P70
STUDIES PHILOS PSYCH, P351
ZEITSCHRIFT, V32, P177
1855, PRINCIPLES PSYCHOL, P285
1890, VIERTELJAHRSCHR WISS, V14, P249
1893, PHYSL PSYCHOL, V1, P555
1896, GRUNDRISS
1897, PHILOS REV, P646
1899, ZEITSCHRIFT, V22, P101
1901, EXPT PSYCHOL UNTERSU
1901, INTRO PSYCHOL, CH10
1902, PHYSL PSYCHOL, V2, P284
1903, ETUDE EXPT INTELLIGE
1903, GEFUHL BEWUSST
1904, GRUNDRISS, P104
1904, PSYCHOLOGY, P213
1904, PSYCHOLOGY, P267
1905, ARCH GESAMMTE PSYCHO, V4, P288
1905, DOPPELTE STANDPUNKT, P25
1905, INTRO PSYCHOL, CH9
1905, WILLENSTATIGKEIT DEN
1906, AM J PSY, V17, P358
1906, ARCHIV, V8, P1
1906, J PHILOS PSYCHOL SCI, V3, P701
1906, Z PHYS PSYCH, V44, P1
1907, ARCHIV, V9, P297
1907, J PHILOS, V4, P164
1907, K EXPT PSYCHOL, P209
1907, KONIGL AKAD WISSENSC, P29
1907, KONIGL AKAD WISSENSC, P7
1907, PSYCHOL GEN INTRO, P286
1907, PSYCHOL GEN INTRO, P72
1907, PSYCHOL STUDIEN, V3, P156
1907, PSYCHOL STUDIEN, V3, P300
1908, ARCHIV, V12, P9
1908, LECT FEELING ATTENTI, P82
1908, PSYCHOL B, V5, P65
1908, PSYCHOL REV, V15, P205
EBBINGHAUS, GRUNDZUGE, P1
EBBINGHAUS, GRUNDZUGE, P410
HOFLER A, PSYCHOLOGIE
HOFLER A, 1907, GRUNDLINIEN PSYCHOL
KELCHNER M, ARCHIV, V5, P107
MEINONG A, 1891, ZEITSCHRIFT, V2, P247
MEINONG A, 1891, ZEITSCHRIFT, V21, P182
MEINONG A, 1902, ANNAHMEN
MUNSTERBERG, GRUNDZUGE, V1, P290
ORTH, 1903, GEFUHL BEWUSSTSEINSA
ROYCE J, 1903, OUTLINES PSYCHOL, P176
VOGT O, 1899, Z HYPNOTISMUS, V8, P212
WUNDTS, 1908, ARCHIV, V11
NR 60
TC 3
PU UNIV ILLINOIS PRESS
PI CHAMPAIGN
PA 1325 S OAK ST, CHAMPAIGN, IL 61820 USA
SN 0002-9556
J9 AMER J PSYCHOL
JI Am. J. Psychol.
PY 1909
VL 20
BP 269
EP 277
PG 9
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V01UM
UT ISI:000200120800012
ER

PT J
AU Jacobsohn, S
AF Jacobsohn, Siegfried
TI Subjective Centers of Colors due to their Coherence
SO ZEITSCHRIFT FUR PSYCHOLOGIE UND PHYSIOLOGIE DER SINNESORGANE
LA German
DT Article
CR DEFINITION MISCHUNGS, P70
PHILOS STUDIEN, V16, P143
PHILOS STUDIEN, V7, P447
WUNDTS PHILOS STUDIE, V3, P517
Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V14, P177
Z PSYCHOL PHYSL, V36, P356
Z PSYCHOL PHYSL, V36, P372
1903, PFLUGERS ARCH, V98
HELMHOLTZ, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V2, P3
JODL, LEHRBUCH PSYCHOL, V2, P76
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
TSCHERMAK, ERGEBNISSE PHYSL, P748
VONKRIES, NAGELS HDB PHYSL MEN, V3, P259
NR 13
TC 3
PU SWETS ZEITLINGER PUBLISHERS
PI LISSE
PA P O BOX 825, 2160 SZ LISSE, NETHERLANDS
J9 Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SINNESORG
JI Z. Psychol. Physiol. Sinnesorg.
PY 1906
VL 43
BP 40
EP 95
PG 56
SC Psychology, Biological
GA V96JR
UT ISI:000206514700003
ER

PT J
AU Schutzwohl, A
AF Schuetzwohl, Achim
TI The intentional object of romantic jealousy
SO EVOLUTION AND HUMAN BEHAVIOR
LA English
DT Article
DE jealousy; sexual infidelity; emotional infidelity; evolutionary psychology; sex differences; intentional object
ID SEX-DIFFERENCES; INFIDELITY; CUES
AB Three studies tested the hypothesis derived from evolutionary psychological considerations of sex differences in the intentional object of romantic jealousy. In Studies I and 3, participants had to indicate in a forced choice whether their jealousy would be primarily directed towards the partner or the rival. In Study 2, participants rated separately the extent to which their jealousy would be primarily aimed at the partner and the rival. In Studies 1 and 2, the participants' answers referred to either a mate's actual emotional or sexual infidelity; in Study 3 they referred to suspected infidelity. As predicted, in each study, significantly more women than men reported that their jealousy would be primarily directed at the rival. Also, as predicted, these sex differences were especially pronounced when confronted with the adaptively primary infidelity type (i. e., male emotional and female sexual infidelity, respectively). Finally, Study 3 additionally showed that these sex differences are moderated by the participants' current relationship status and their own unfaithfulness. Limitations and implications of the findings are discussed. (c) 2008 Elsevier Inc. All rights reserved.
C1 Brunel Univ, Dept Psychol, Uxbridge UB8 3PH, Middx, England.
RP Schutzwohl, A, Brunel Univ, Dept Psychol, Uxbridge UB8 3PH, Middx, England.
EM achim.schuetzwohl@brunel.ac.uk
CR BARRETT HC, 2005, MIND LANG, V20, P259
BARRETT HC, 2006, J PERS SOC PSYCHOL, V91, P513, DOI 10.1037/0022-3514.91.3.513
BRENTANO F, 1973, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN, V1
BUSS DM, 1992, PSYCHOL SCI, V3, P251
BUSS DM, 1997, J PERS SOC PSYCHOL, V72, P346
BUSS DM, 2000, DANGEROUS PASSION WH
DALY M, 1982, ETHOL SOCIOBIOL, V3, P11
DALY M, 1993, VIOLENCE VICTIMS, V8, P271
DESTENO D, 2006, J PERS SOC PSYCHOL, V91, P626, DOI 10.1037/0022-3514.91.4.626
FREUD S, 1924, COLLECT PAPERS, V2, P232
GREEN OH, 1992, EMOTIONS PHILOS THEO
HASSELBLAD V, 1995, PSYCHOL BULL, V117, P167
HEIDER F, 1958, PSYCHOL INTERPERSONA
HUPKA RB, 1984, MOTIV EMOTION, V8, P141
MEINONG A, 1894, PSYCHOL ETHISCHE UNT
ORTONY A, 1988, COGNITIVE STRUCTURE
PAUL L, 1993, AGGRESSIVE BEHAV, V19, P401
PINES AM, 1998, J SOC PSYCHOL, V138, P54
PINKER S, 1997, MIND WORKS
SCHUTZWOHL A, IN PRESS PERSONALITY
SCHUTZWOHL A, 2004, EVOL HUM BEHAV, V25, P249, DOI 10.1016/j.evolhumbehav.2004.03.006
SCHUTZWOHL A, 2004, EVOLUTIONARY PSYCHOL, V2, P121
SCHUTZWOHL A, 2005, EVOL HUM BEHAV, V26, P288, DOI 10.1016/j.evolhumbehav.2004.09.003
SCHUTZWOHL A, 2006, PERS INDIV DIFFER, V40, P285, DOI 10.1016/j.paid.2005.06.024
SEARLE J, 1983, INTENTIONALITY ESSAY
SIEMER M, 2005, EMOTION, V5, P296, DOI 10.1037/1528-3542.5.3.296
SOLOMON RC, 2000, HDB EMOTIONS, P3
SPINOZA B, 1948, ETHICS
SYMONS D, 1979, EVOLUTION HUMAN SEXU
TOOBY J, 1992, ADAPTED MIND EVOLUTI, P19
TRIVERS RL, 1972, SEXUAL SELECTION DES, P136
WHITE GL, 1989, JEALOUSY THEORY RES
NR 32
TC 2
PU ELSEVIER SCIENCE INC
PI NEW YORK
PA 360 PARK AVE SOUTH, NEW YORK, NY 10010-1710 USA
SN 1090-5138
J9 EVOL HUM BEHAV
JI Evol. Hum. Behav.
PD MAR
PY 2008
VL 29
IS 2
BP 92
EP 99
DI 10.1016/j.evolhumbehav.2007.10.002
PG 8
SC Psychology, Biological; Behavioral Sciences; Social Sciences, Biomedical
GA 268JA
UT ISI:000253574900004
ER

PT J
AU Frank, M
AF Frank, Manfred
TI Non-objectal subjectivity
SO JOURNAL OF CONSCIOUSNESS STUDIES
LA English
DT Article
ID NEUROPHENOMENOLOGICAL CRITIQUE; NEUROCOGNITIVE MODELS; SCHIZOPHRENIA
AB The immediate successors of Kant in classical German philosophy considered a subjectivity irreducible to owbjecthood as the core of personhood. The thesis of an irreducible subjectivity has, after the German idealists, been advocated by the phenomenological movement, as well as by analytical philosophers of self-consciousness such as Hector-Neri Castaneda and Sydney Shoemaker Their arguments together show that self-consciousness cannot be reduced to a relation whereby a subject grasps itself as an object, but that there must be a core of subjectivity always already familiar with itself before reflection. A number of contemporary accounts of self-consciousness are unaware of these old and new arguments, and flawed in that they do not account for the core 'non-objectal subjectivity' necessary for self-consciousness and personhood.
C1 Univ Tubingen, D-72074 Tubingen, Germany.
RP Frank, M, Univ Tubingen, D-72074 Tubingen, Germany.
EM manfred.frank@uni-tuebingen.de
CR ARMSTRONG D, 1968, MAT THEORY MIND
ARMSTRONG DM, 1984, CONSCIOUSNESS CAUSAL, P108
BAKER LR, 1998, AM PHILOS QUART, V35, P327
BERNECKER S, 1996, NOUS, V30, P262
BLOCK N, 1995, BEHAV BRAIN SCI, V18, P227
BLOCK N, 2003, REFLECTIONS REPLIES
BOGHOSSIAN P, 1989, PHILOS TOPICS, V17, P5
BURGE T, 1979, MIDWEST STUD PHILOS, V4, P73
CAMPBELL J, 2004, MONIST, V84, P475
CASTANEDA HN, 1966, RATIO, V8, P130
CASTANEDA HN, 1999, PHENOMENO LOGIC 1 ES
CHALMERS DJ, 1996, CONSCIOUS MIND SEARC
CHISHOLM R, 1981, 1 PERSON ESSAY REFER
FICHTE JGF, 1992, FDN TRANSCENDENTAL P
FRANK M, 2002, SELBSTGEFUHL HIST SY
FRANK M, 2004, J SOCIAL CRITICAL TH, V5, P53
FRITH C, 2004, PSYCHOPATHOLOGY, V37, P20, DOI 10.1159/000077015
FRITH CD, 1992, COGNITIVE NEUROPSYCH
GALLAGHER S, 2004, PSYCHOPATHOLOGY, V37, P8, DOI 10.1159/000077014
GALLANT P, 2000, EMERG THER TARGETS, V4, P1
GEACH P, 1957, ANALYSIS, V18, P23
GOLDIE P, 2000, EMOTIONS PHILOS EXPL
HARMAN G, 1990, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V4, P31
HENRICH D, 1982, CONT GERMAN PHILOS, V1, P15
HORGAN T, 2002, PHILOS MIND CLASSICA, P520
HUSSERL E, 1973, LOGICAL INVESTIGATIO
KANT I, 1900, KANTS GESAMMELTE SCH
KANT I, 1996, CRITIQUE PURE REASON
KAPLAN D, 1989, THEMES KAPLAN, P481
KRIPKE S, 1980, NAMING NECESSITY
LEWIS D, 1983, PHILOS PAPERS, V1, P133
MACH E, 1886, BEITRAGE ANAL EMPFIN
MEINONG A, 1975, GESAMTAUSGABE, V4, P1
MELLOR DH, 1977, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, V88, P87
MORAN R, 2001, AUTHORITY ESTRANGEME
NOZICK R, 1981, PHILOS EXPLANATIONS, P27
PUTNAM H, 1975, MIND LANGUAGE REALIT, V2, P215
REICHENBACH H, 1947, ELEMENTS SYMBOLIC LO, P284
ROSENTHAL DM, 1991, NATURE MIND, P462
SARTRE JP, 1940, IMAGINARY PHENOMENOL
SARTRE JP, 1991, LECT FRENCH PHILOS S, P379
SCHELLING FWJ, 1856, SAMMTLICHE
SCHELLING FWJ, 1992, URFASSUNG PHILOS OFF
SCHLEIERMACHER F, 1960, CHRISTLICHE GLAUBE N
SCHLEIERMACHER F, 2001, DIALEKTIK, V2
SHOEMAKER S, 1984, IDENTITY CAUSE MIND
SHOEMAKER S, 1984, PERSONEL IDENTITY
SHOEMAKER S, 1996, 1 PERSON PERSPECTIVE
SIEWERT CP, 1998, SIGNIFICANCE CONSCIO
SIEWERT CP, 2003, STANFORD ENCY PHILOS
SPERRY RW, 1950, J COMP PHYSIOL PSYCH, V43, P482
THIEL U, 1996, J HIST PHILOS, V23, P213
TUGENDHAT E, 1979, SELF CONSCIOUSNESS S
TYE M, 2002, NOUS, V36, P137
VONHOLST E, 1950, NATURWISSENSCHAFTEN, V37, P464
NR 55
TC 2
PU IMPRINT ACADEMIC
PI THORVERTON
PA PO BOX 1, THORVERTON EX5 5YX, ENGLAND
SN 1355-8250
J9 J CONSCIOUS STUD
JI J. Conscious. Stud.
PD MAY-JUN
PY 2007
VL 14
IS 5-6
BP 152
EP 173
PG 22
SC Philosophy; Social Sciences, Interdisciplinary
GA 174LU
UT ISI:000246944500008
ER

PT J
AU Fernandez, J
AF Fernandez, Jordi
TI The intentionality of memory
SO AUSTRALASIAN JOURNAL OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
AB Memory differs from both introspection and perception in scope. One can only introspect one's own mental states and one can only perceive events in the external world. However, one can remember events in the world as well as one's own perceptual experiences of them. An interesting phenomenological fact about memory is that those two kinds of memories come together. You can't apparently remember a fact without apparently remember having perceived it. And you can't apparently remember what perceiving a certain fact was like without apparently remembering the fact in question. Why is that? The project in this essay is to try to explain this by appealing to the content that memory experiences have.
CR ARISTOTLE, 1972, ARISTOTLE MEMORY, P47
GOLDMAN AI, 1994, NATURALIZING EPISTEM, P105
JAMES W, 1890, PRINCIPLES PSYCHOL
LOCKE J, 1975, ESSAY HUMAN UNDERSTA
MARTIN MGF, 2001, TIME MEMORY ISSUES P, P257
MCDOWELL J, 1988, PERCEPTION KNOWLEDGE, P209
MEINONG A, 1973, EMPIRICAL KNOWLEDGE, P253
PERRY J, 1999, COMPANION PHILOS LAN, P586
POLLOCK J, 1986, CONT THEORIES KNOWLE
REICHENBACH H, 1947, ELEMENTS SYMBOLIC LO
SEARLE J, 1983, INTENTIONALITY ESSAY
SNOWDON P, PERCEPTUAL KNOWLEDGE, V192, P88
TULVING E, 1972, ORG MEMORY, P381
VONLEYDEN W, 1961, REMEMBERING PHILOS P
NR 14
TC 2
PU ROUTLEDGE JOURNALS, TAYLOR & FRANCIS LTD
PI ABINGDON
PA 4 PARK SQUARE, MILTON PARK, ABINGDON OX14 4RN, OXFORDSHIRE, ENGLAND
SN 0004-8402
J9 AUSTRALAS J PHIL
JI Australas. J. Philos.
PD MAR
PY 2006
VL 84
IS 1
BP 39
EP 57
DI 10.1080/00048400600571695
PG 19
SC Philosophy
GA 149JZ
UT ISI:000245144500003
ER

PT J
AU Cantor, RM
AF Cantor, Robert M.
TI The effects of Roentgen signs on the mind of the interpreter
SO SEMIOTICA
LA English
DT Article
DE Roentgen semiotics; Peircean categories; markedness
ID DIAGNOSIS; SEMIOTICS
AB On the basis of clinical experience, we find that Roentgen signs may induce feelings, provoke judgments, or impart knowledge in the mind of the interpreter. In this study, we develop a triadic typology of mental effects of Roentgen signs that is based on the Peircean categories of thought. In the process, we provide a categorical basis for the valuations used in diagnostic appraisal. Hence, this study is a contribution to a fully categorical phenomenology of Roentgen diagnosis.
C1 Univ Cincinnati, Cincinnati, OH 45221 USA.
RP Cantor, RM, Univ Cincinnati, Cincinnati, OH 45221 USA.
EM cantorrm@healthall.com
CR BRENTANO F, 1902, ORIGIN KNOWLEDGE RIG
BRENTANO F, 1973, PSYCHOL EMPIRICAL ST
CANTOR RM, 2000, SEMIOTICA, V131, P1
CANTOR RM, 2002, SEMIOTICA, V141, P29
CANTOR RM, 2005, SEMIOTICA, V154, P1
CANTOR RM, 2006, SEMIOTICA, V158, P297
CAVANAGH P, 2004, COGNITIVE NEUROSCIEN, P13
CLORE GL, 2000, COGNITIVE NEUROSCIEN, P24
DAMASIO AR, 1999, FEELING WHAT HAPPENS
DESCARTES R, 1984, PHILOSOPHICAL WRITIN, V2
FRONDIZI R, 1971, WHAT VALUE INTRO AXI
HOLENSTEIN E, 1974, ROMAN JAKOBSONS APPR
HUME D, 2000, TREATISE HUMAN NATUR
JAKOBSON R, 1971, SELECTED WRITINGS, V2, P130
KALSI MLS, 1996, A MEINONGS ELEMENTS
LISZKA JJ, 1996, GEN INTRO SEMEIOTIC
MEINONG A, 1996, A MEINONGS ELEMENTS
PANKSEPP J, 1998, AFFECTIVE NEUROSCIEN
PEIRCE CS, 1992, ESSENTIAL PEIRCE SEL, V1, P1
PEIRCE CS, 1992, ESSENTIAL PEIRCE SEL, V1, P245
POSNER MI, 1995, COGNITIVE NEUROSCIEN, P615
POSNER MI, 1997, CONVERSATIONS COGNIT, P37
SEARLE JR, 2004, MIND BRIEF INTRO
NR 23
TC 2
PU WALTER DE GRUYTER & CO
PI BERLIN
PA GENTHINER STRASSE 13, D-10785 BERLIN, GERMANY
SN 0037-1998
J9 SEMIOTICA
JI Semiotica
PY 2006
VL 162
IS 1-4
BP 309
EP 321
DI 10.1515/SEM.2006.082
PG 13
SC Humanities, Multidisciplinary
GA 109VI
UT ISI:000242336700011
ER

PT J
AU Maxwell, B
Reichenbach, R
TI Imitation, imagination and re-appraisal: educating the moral emotions
SO JOURNAL OF MORAL EDUCATION
LA English
DT Article
ID RATIONALITY
AB No observer of research currents in the human sciences can fail to detect a new appreciation for the contribution of emotions to descriptions of such wide-ranging psychological phenomena as moral judgement, personal and social development and learning. Despite this, we claim that educating the emotions as a dimension of moral education remains something of a taboo subject. As evidence for this, we present three categories of interventions that fit unmistakably into the category of the education of the emotions, but which go generally unrecognized. In the light of the fact that emotional education is held not just to be possible, but is in fact commonplace, we present an error theory to explain its general occlusion. Next, we argue that the taboo surrounding the education of the emotions helps to explain the lack of recognition that relevant kinds of emotional reactions, especially guilt and shame, seem indeed to be a better measure of successful moral education than moral acts. This, we take it, is one of the suppositions of the old classroom management device called the 'shame corner'. In the last section we propose a comparative analysis of the shame corner and its pedagogical descendant, the 'time-out corner', in terms of their assumptions about the structure of moral judgement and the significance of moral emotions. Without recommending the reinstitution of the shame corner, we conclude that, far from constituting progress in moral education, the time-out corner is, from this perspective, apparently wrong-headed and confusing.
C1 Univ Munster, Inst Allgemeine Erziehungswissensch 1, D-48143 Munster, Germany.
RP Maxwell, B, Univ Munster, Inst Allgemeine Erziehungswissensch 1, Georgskommende 26, D-48143 Munster, Germany.
EM maxwellb@uni-muenster.de
CR ARISTOTLE, 1955, NICOMACHEAN ETHICS
ARNOLD MB, 1960, EMOTION PERSONALITY, V1
AVERILL JR, 1973, PSYCHOL BULL, V80, P286
BAIER K, 1965, MORAL POINT VIEW RAT
BANDURA A, 1977, SOCIAL LEARNING THEO
BARRETT R, 1994, J MORAL EDUC, V23, P135
BELLAH R, 1985, HABITS HEART INDIVID
BENEDICT R, 1947, CRYSANTHEMUM SWORD P
BENNER D, 1979, Z PADAGOGIK, V25, P367
BENZEEV A, 2000, SUBTLETY EMOTIONS
BLUM L, 1980, EXPLAINING EMOTIONS, P506
CARR D, 1991, ED VIRTUES ESSAY PHI
CARR D, 2001, PROFESSIONALISM ETHI
CARR D, 2003, MAKING SENSE ED
COETZEE JM, 1999, DISGRACE
COHEN D, 1999, ED MINDS HEARTS SOCI
DESOUSA R, 1987, RATIONALITY EMOTION
DESOUSA R, 2001, ETHICAL THEORY MORAL, V4, P109
FREUD S, 1986, ESSENTIALS PSYCHOANA
GARBER D, 1992, DESCARTES METAPHYSIC
GIBBS JC, 2003, MORAL DEV REALITY TH
GOLEMAN D, 1995, EMOTIONAL INTELLIGEN
HABERMAS J, 1993, KANT POLITICAL PHILO, P320
HOFFMAN ML, 2000, EMPATHY MORAL DEV IM
ICKES W, 1997, EMPATHIC ACCURACY
KANT I, 1984, PADAGOGIK
KEKES J, 1988, MIDWEST STUD PHILOS, V13, P282
LAZARUS RS, 1966, PSYCHOL STRESS COPIN
LAZARUS RS, 1978, PERSPECTIVES INTERAC, P287
LEMPERT W, 1989, MORAL UNMORALISCHER, P153
LUHMANN N, 1982, ZWISCHEN TECHNOLOGIE, P11
MEINONG A, 1968, GESAMTAUSGABE, V3, P1
MENKE C, 1993, GEMEINSCHAFT GERECHT, P218
MENKE C, 1996, TRAGODIE SITTLICHEN
NUCCI LP, 2001, ED MORAL DOMAIN
NUNNERWINKLER G, 1998, INT J ED RES, V27, P587
NUSSBAUM M, 1994, THERAPY DESIRE THEOR
NUSSBAUM M, 1995, POETIC JUSTICE
NUSSBAUM M, 2001, UPHEAVALS THOUGHT IN
OAKLEY J, 1992, MORALITY EMOTIONS
PETERS RS, 1981, MORAL DEV MORAL ED
PETERS RS, 1998, PHILOS ED, V2, P179
PIAGET J, 1981, ANN REV MONOGRAPHS
REISENZEIN R, 2003, EINFUHRUNG EMOTIONPS, V3
SPIECKER B, 1988, PHILOS ISSUES MORAL, P42
TAYLOR C, 1989, SOURCES SELF
TAYLOR C, 1991, MALAISE MODERNITY
TAYLOR G, 1985, PRIDE SHAME GUILT EM
TOMBS D, 1995, J PHILOS EDUC, V29, P23
TURIEL E, 1998, HDB CHILD PSYCHOL, V3, P863
VANDAM E, 1996, J MORAL EDUC, V25, P395
WALLACE RJ, 1994, RESPONSIBILITY MORAL
WARNOCK M, 1998, PHILOS ED, V2, P211
WEINER B, 1995, JUDGMENTS RESPONSIBI
WILLIAMS B, 1993, SHAME NECESSITY
NR 55
TC 2
PU ROUTLEDGE JOURNALS, TAYLOR & FRANCIS LTD
PI ABINGDON
PA 4 PARK SQUARE, MILTON PARK, ABINGDON OX14 4RN, OXFORDSHIRE, ENGLAND
SN 0305-7240
J9 J MORAL EDUC
JI J. Moral Educ.
PD SEP
PY 2005
VL 34
IS 3
BP 291
EP 307
DI 10.1080/03057240500206139
PG 17
SC Education & Educational Research
GA 963OD
UT ISI:000231812700004
ER

PT J
AU Degani-Raz, I
TI Possible worlds and the concept of 'reference' in the semiotics of theater
SO SEMIOTICA
LA English
DT Article
AB This article conducts a retrospective analysis of theoretical developments in the semiotics of the theater, indicating that pre-theoretical intuition regarding the existence of fictional worlds and their inhabitants largely shaped the theoretical developmental course of the field. This meta-theoretical analysis serves to promote the claim that despite their key significance, the fictional worlds themselves have not received sufficient explication in semiotic terms, the consequences of which is a theoretical lacuna in theater studies. The last part of the article examines the explanatory power of the semantics of possible worlds as addressing the lacuna posed. The focus of discussion in the article is the concept of 'reference', due to its assumed significance in understanding the key function of fictional worlds in transmitting information in the theater. The discussion emphasizes the modal status of theatrical fictional discourse (the idea that is is a discourse about possible alternatives to the actual world and as such it goes beyond the ontology required for standard extensional discourse) and the need entailed by this understanding for a model system containing many worlds as referential range.
C1 Tel Aviv Univ, IL-69978 Tel Aviv, Israel.
RP Degani-Raz, I, Tel Aviv Univ, IL-69978 Tel Aviv, Israel.
EM raznl@bezeqint.net
CR ALTER J, 1990, SOCIOSEMIOTIC THEORY
ARISTOTLE, POETICS
BRUSAK K, 1976, SEMIOTICS ART
CARLSON M, 1990, THEATRE SEMIOTICS SI
CULLER J, 1976, SAUSSURE
DEGANIRAZ I, 1998, THESIS TEL AVIV U
DOLEZEL LL, 1989, POSSIBLE WORLDS HUMA, P221
ELAM K, 1980, SEMIOTICS THEATRE DR
ELKANA Y, 1981, SCI CULTURES
FISCHERLICHTE E, 2000, ASSAPH, V16, P65
HELBO A, 1991, APPROACHING THEATRE
HINTIKKA J, 1979, POSSIBLE ACTUAL, P65
HONZL J, 1976, SEMIOTICS ART, P74
HOOKWAY C, 1999, PEIRCE
KRIPKE S, 1971, REFERENCE MODALITY, P53
KUNDERA M, 1988, ART NOVEL
LOUX MJ, 1979, POSSIBLE ACTUAL READ
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P76
MUKAROVSKY J, 1978, STRUCTURE SIGN FUNCT, P70
NORRIS C, 1982, DECONSTRUCTION THEOR
PAVIS P, 1976, PROBLEMES SEMIOLOGIE
PAVIS P, 1982, LANGUAGES STAGE ESSA
PEIRCE CS, 1967, COLLECTED PAPERS
PEIRCE CS, 1977, SEMIOTIC SIGNIFICS
QUINN ML, 1995, SEMIOTIC STAGE PRAGU
ROZIK E, 1992, LANGUAGE THEATRE
ROZIK E, 1994, SATJ, V8, P24
ROZIK E, 1999, THEATRE RES INT, V24, P198
RUSSELL B, 1919, INTRO MATH PHILOS
SAUSSURE FD, 1974, COURSE GENERAL LINGU
VELTRUSKY J, 1964, PRAGUE SCH READER ES, P83
NR 31
TC 2
PU WALTER DE GRUYTER & CO
PI BERLIN
PA GENTHINER STRASSE 13, D-10785 BERLIN, GERMANY
SN 0037-1998
J9 SEMIOTICA
JI Semiotica
PY 2003
VL 147
IS 1-4
BP 307
EP 329
PG 23
SC Humanities, Multidisciplinary
GA 770XL
UT ISI:000188756600015
ER

PT J
AU Nichols, R
TI Reid on fictional objects and the way of ideas
SO PHILOSOPHICAL QUARTERLY
LA English
DT Article
AB I argue that Reid adopts a form of Meinongianism about fictional objects because of, not in spite of, his common sense philosophy. According to 'the way of ideas', thoughts take representational states as their immediate intentional objects. In contrast, Reid endorses a direct theory of conception and a heady thesis of first-person privileged access to the contents of our thoughts. He claims that thoughts about centaurs are thoughts of non-existent objects, not thoughts about mental intermediaries, adverbial states or general concepts. In part this is because of the common sense semantics he adopts for fictional-object terms. I show that it is reasonable for Reid to endorse Meinongianism, given his epistemological priorities, for he took the way of ideas to imply that his view about first-person privileged access to our mental contents was false.
C1 Univ Aberdeen, Aberdeen AB9 1FX, Scotland.
RP Nichols, R, Univ Aberdeen, Aberdeen AB9 1FX, Scotland.
CR BONJOUR L, 1991, SYNTHESE, V89, P331
BROOKES D, 1997, WORKS T REID
CARTWRIGHT RL, 1960, J PHILOS, V57, P629
CASTAGNETTO S, 1992, J PHILOS RES, V17, P39
CICERO, DE DOMO SUA
DAVID M, 1985, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V25, P585
DUNCAN E, 1981, T REIDS LECTURES NAT
GRAVE SA, 1960, SCOTTISH PHILOS COMM
HALDANE J, 1989, PHILOS T REID, P285
HALDANE J, 2000, AM CATH PHILOS QUART, V74, P447
HUME D, TREATISE HUMAN NATUR
LEHRER K, 1992, LANGUAGE TRUTH ONTOL, P37
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P76
NICHOLS R, IN PRESS BRIT J HIST
REID T, ESSAYS INTELLECTUAL
REID T, INQUIRY HUMAN MIND
VANCLEVE J, 1996, PHILOS TOPICS, V24, P231
WILSON C, 1999, NEW ESSAYS RATIONALI, P372
WOLTERSTORFF N, 2001, T REID STORY EPISTEM
NR 20
TC 2
PU BLACKWELL PUBL LTD
PI OXFORD
PA 108 COWLEY RD, OXFORD OX4 1JF, OXON, ENGLAND
SN 0031-8094
J9 PHIL QUART
JI Philos. Q.
PD OCT
PY 2002
VL 52
IS 209
BP 582
EP 601
PG 20
SC Philosophy
GA 585DQ
UT ISI:000177508200010
ER

PT J
AU Josephs, IE
TI A psychological analysis of a psychological phenomenon: the dialogical construction of meaning
SO SOCIAL SCIENCE INFORMATION SUR LES SCIENCES SOCIALES
LA English
DT Proceedings Paper
CT 13th Conference on Developmental Psychology
CY SEP 21-24, 1997
CL VIENNA, AUSTRIA
SP Fritz Thyssen Fdn
DE development theory; dialogical model; qualitative methods; quantitative methods
AB It is the task of psychologists to describe and explain psychological phenomena, though the meaning of both description and explanation varies widely. One way to deal with psychological phenomena is to transform them as soon as possible into data (by which is means quantitative data), which then can be analysed by ready-made methods (by which is meant inferential statistics). An unfortunate result of this politically fortified procedure is that the availability of methods (for data "collection" and analysis) comes to dictate the whole research process, including the construction of the phenomenon and its operationalization. As a consequence, various opponents of this non-scientific procedure have challenged psychology with a new dogma: the need to replace quantitative methods by their qualitative counterparts. Recently appearing 'new turns" in psychology (as the narrative, the hermeneutic, the discursive turn, etc) in particular, define qualitative approaches as the via regia for psychological analyses, I argue that both "schools" are caught in the same trap: ready-made methods and belief in the superiority of one rather than the other dominate all other aspects of methodology and psychological inquiry in general. I suggest that it is the theoretically derived phenomenon that - depending on the specific research question under consideration - requires the construction (rather than the application) of an adequate method for its analysis - be it qualitative or quantitative. I give an extended example for a psychological analysis of a psychological phenomenon - the construction and reconstruction of meaning - with the help of a qualitative experimental approach.
C1 Clark Univ, Dept Psychol, Worcester, MA 01510 USA.
RP Josephs, IE, Clark Univ, Dept Psychol, Worcester, MA 01510 USA.
CR BRUNER J, 1990, ACTS MEANING
BUHLER K, 1951, ORG PATHOLOGY THOUGH, P39
CATAN L, 1986, HUM DEV, V29, P252
DRAGUNS JG, 1984, PSYCHOL PROCESSES CO, P3
HERBST DP, 1995, DEV PERSON CONTEXT R, P67
HERMANS HJM, 1993, DIALOGICAL SELF MEAN
JOSEPHS IE, 1997, POLISH Q DEV PSYCHOL, V3
JOSEPHS IE, 1998, SOC PSYCHOL QUART, V61, P68
JOSEPHS IE, 1999, ACTION SELF DEV, P257
LIEPMANN H, 1904, IDEENFLUCHT
MARKOVA I, 1990, DYNAMICS DIALOGUE
MARKOVA I, 1991, ASYMMETRIES DIALOGUE
MARKOVA I, 1992, DIALOGICAL ALTERNATI, P45
MEINONG A, 1983, ASSUMPTIONS
OGDEN RM, 1917, STUDIES PSYCHOL CONT, P79
ROMETVEIT R, 1992, DIALOGICAL ALTERNATI, P19
ROMMETVEIT R, 1974, MESSAGE STRUCTURE FR
RYCHLAK JF, 1995, THEOR PSYCHOL, V5, P511
SANDER F, 1927, P 8 INT C PSYCH 1926, P183
SCHEERER M, 1959, J INDIV PSYCHOL, V15, P50
SURGAN SE, 1997, UNPUB CONSTRUCTING O
VOLKELT H, 1962, GANZHEITSPSYCHOLOGIE, P147
WERNER H, 1940, J PSYCHOL, V10, P149
WERNER H, 1954, J GEN PSYCHOL, V50, P181
WERNER H, 1956, J ABNORMAL SOCIAL PS, V52, P347
WERNER H, 1963, SYMBOL FORMATION
WOLD AH, 1992, DIALOGICAL ALTERNATI
NR 27
TC 2
PU SAGE PUBLICATIONS LTD
PI LONDON
PA 6 BONHILL STREET, LONDON EC2A 4PU, ENGLAND
SN 0539-0184
J9 SOC SCI INFORM
JI Soc. Sci. Inf. Sci. Soc.
PD MAR
PY 2000
VL 39
IS 1
BP 115
EP 129
PG 15
SC Information Science & Library Science; Social Sciences, Interdisciplinary
GA 298XP
UT ISI:000086165100007
ER

PT J
AU Hala, V
TI On Patocka's interpretation of B. Bolzano
SO FILOSOFICKY CASOPIS
LA Czech
DT Article
AB J. Patocka's interpretation of Bolzano's work followed in this article is concerned with two main issues. In the first part of this study the author focusses on Patocka's approach to B. Bolzano's key concept of ideas, statements and thruths "in themselves" and also to his estimation of Bolzano's entire scheme of Theory of Science. The author points out that there are also disputable questions in Patocka's interpretation especially his overestimation of the influence of Bolzano's logical-philosophical concept on Brentano's concept of intentionality.
In the second part the author reflects on Patocka's well-known idea of "dilemma" in the Czech (Bohemian) national programme, the representatives of whitch were B. Bolzano and J. Jungmann.
The author emphasizes a layered character of Patocka's interpretation and assesses Patocka's focus on the social context of the Vormarz. In this context the author comments on P. Pithart's reflections influenced by Patocka.
In conclusion the author of the study contrasts the synthetic character of Patocka's approach to Bolzano's work and the analytically precise nature of M. Bayerova's approach.
C1 Acad Sci Czech Republ, Filosof Ustav, Praha, Czech Republic.
RP Hala, V, Acad Sci Czech Republ, Filosof Ustav, Praha, Czech Republic.
CR BEDNAR M, 1996, CESKE MYSLENI
BERGMAN SH, 1966, SONDERABDRUCK ARCH G, V48, P308
BERKA K, 1981, B BOLZANO
BERKA K, 1994, B BOLZANO EVROPSKY R
BOLZANO B, ANTOLOGIE DEJIN CESK, V1, P366
BOLZANO B, ANTOLOGIE DEJIN CESK, V1, P367
BOLZANO B, 1978, B BOLZANO, P64
BOLZANO B, 1981, VEDOSLOVI, P68
BOLZANO HB, ANTOLOGIE DEJIN CESK, V1, P373
BOLZANOVE K, 1990, FILOS CAS, V38, P507
CERNY J, 1981, VYBOR FILOZOFICKYCH
DOLANSKY J, 1948, JUNGMANNUV ODKAZ
EMLER J, 1881, LISTY JOSEFA JUNGMAN
GADAMER HG, 1994, IDEA DOBRE MEZI PLAT
HALA V, 1994, IMPULSY KANTOVY ETIK
HAVELKA M, 1995, SPOR SMYSL CESKYCH D
HIKL VK, 1918, JOSEFA JUNGMANNA VYB, P67
HUSSERL E, 1913, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN, V1, P59
HUSSERL E, 1950, HUSSERLIANA, V3, P235
JUNGMANN J, 1907, ZAPISKY
JUNGMANN J, 1947, KRATKA HIST NARODU O
KALIVODA R, 1963, ANTOLOGIE DEJIN CESK, P365
KREISER L, 1981, FILOS CAS, V29, P94
MACALISTER LL, 1976, PHILOS F BRENTANO
MEINONG A, 1976, LOGIK ANNAHMEN, P28
MORSCHER E, 1973, SALZBURGER STUDIEN P, V11
NOVOTNY PJ, 1936, PARMENIDES, P14
PATOCKA J, SMYSL DNESKA, P105
PATOCKA J, 1958, FILOSOFIE DEJINACH C, P111
PATOCKA J, 1969, UVOD HUSSERLOVY FENO
PATOCKA J, 1987, SMYSL DNESKA DEVET K, P87
PITHART P, 1990, DEJINY POLITIKA ESEJ
PODIVEN, 1991, CESI DEJINACH NOVE D
SCHOLZ H, 1969, MATHESIS U ABHANDLUN
VRTATKO AJ, 1880, DOPISY JOSEFA JUNGMA
WINTER E, 1935, SPISY B BOLZANA, P9
WINTER KTV, 1945, JOSEFINISMUS JEHO DE
ZELENY J, 1981, HEGEL BOLZAO LOGIKER
NR 38
TC 2
PU FILOSOFICKY CASOPIS
PI PRAGUE
PA JILSKA 1, PRAGUE, CZECH REPUBLIC 1
SN 0015-1831
J9 FILOS CASOPIS
JI Filos. Cas.
PY 1997
VL 45
IS 5
BP 879
EP 898
PG 20
SC Ethics; Philosophy
GA ZN923
UT ISI:000073697100012
ER

PT J
AU Weberman, D
TI Heidegger and the disclosive character of the emotions
SO SOUTHERN JOURNAL OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
RP Weberman, D, UNIV WISCONSIN,MADISON,WI 53706.
CR ARMSTRONG DM, 1968, MATERIALIST THEORY M
BLUM L, 1980, EXPLAINING EMOTIONS, P516
BROAD CD, EMOTION SENTIMENT
CALHOUN C, 1977, PERCEPTION EMOTION A, P327
CALHOUN C, 1989, PHILOS FORUM, V20, P195
DAMASIO A, 1994, DESCRATES ERROR EMOT
DEIGH J, 1994, ETHICS, V104, P824
DEWEY J, WHAT ARE STATES MIND
GIOGNON C, 1907, PERCEPTION EMOTION A, P230
GORDON R, 1987, STRUCTURE EMOTIONS I
GORDON RM, 1991, PHILOS REV, V100, P284
GREEN OH, 1992, EMOTIONS
GREENSPAN P, 1988, EMOTIONS REASONS INQ
HAMLYN DW, 1978, PHILOSOPHY, V53, P5
HEIDEGGER M, GRUNDBEGRIFFE METAPH
HEIDEGGER M, HIST CONCEPT TIME
HEIDEGGER M, NIETZSCHE
HEIDEGGER M, PROLEGOMENA GESCH ZE
HEIDEGGER M, SEIN UND ZEIT
HEIDEGGER M, URSPRUNG KUNSTWERKES
HEIDEGGER M, WAS IST METAPHYSIK
HUSSERL E, 1950, IDEEN REINEN PHANOME
JAGGAR AM, 1989, INQUIRY, V32, P151
KENNY A, 1963, ACTION EMOTION WILL
LAMB R, 1987, PHILOS PHENOMEN RES, V48, P107
LAZARUS RS, 1980, EMOTION THEORY RES E, P189
LORMAND E, 1985, PHILOS STUD, V47, P385
LYONS W, 1980, EMOTIONS
MARKS J, 1995, EMOTIONS ASIAN THOUG, P1
MEINONG A, EMOTIONALE PRASENTAT
MEINONG A, GRUNDLEGUNG ALLGEMEI
MORAVCSIK JM, 1982, DIALECTICA, V36
MORAVCSIK JME, 1982, DIALECTICA, V36, P207
MORREALL J, 1993, J PHILOS, V90, P359
NEU J, 1977, EMOTION THOUGHT THER
NUSSBAUM M, 1990, LOVES KNOWLEDGE ESSA
OAKLEY J, 1992, MORALITY EMOTIONS
OATLEY K, 1992, BEST LAID SCHEMES PS
ROBINSON J, 1983, J PHILOS, V80, P733
ROBINSON J, 1988, PHILOS REV, V97, P200
RORTY A, 1980, EXPLAINING EMOTIONS, V1
RYLE G, 1949, CONCEPT OF MIND
SARTRE JP, 1948, EMOTIONS
SARTRE JP, 1956, BEING AND NOTHINGNES
SHANE M, 1992, TECHNIQUE PRACTICE P, V2, P302
SHKLAR JN, 1990, FACES INJUSTICE
SOLOMON R, 1980, EXPLAINING EMOTIONS, P261
SOLOMON RC, 1976, PASSIONS MYTH NATURE
SOUSA RD, 1991, RATIONALITY EMOTION
STOCKER M, 1994, MIDWEST STUD PHILOS, V19, P143
THALBERG I, 1978, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V56, P143
THALBERG I, 1984, WHAT EMOTION CLASSIC
TUGENDHAT E, 1979, SELBSTBEWUSSTSEIN SE
VETLESEN AJ, 1994, PERCEPTION EMPATHY J
WIGGINS D, 1976, P BRIT ACAD, V62, P331
WILSON JRS, 1972, EMOTION OBJECT
NR 56
TC 2
PU SOUTHERN J PHILOSOPHY MEMPHIS STATE UNIV
PI MEMPHIS
PA DEPT PHILOSOPHY, MEMPHIS, TN 38152
SN 0038-4283
J9 SOUTHERN J PHIL
JI South. J. Philos.
PD FAL
PY 1996
VL 34
IS 3
BP 379
EP 410
PG 32
SC Philosophy
GA VJ858
UT ISI:A1996VJ85800007
ER

PT J
AU Pauza, M
TI Christian von Ehrenfels's concept of ''qualities of forms''
SO FILOSOFICKY CASOPIS
LA Czech
DT Article
AB The conception of ''form'' (Gestalt) and the ''quality of form'' (Gestaltqualitaten) are perhaps the most inspirational theoretical ideas of the unconventional Brentanian Christian von Ehrenfelse who taught at the Philosophical faculty of Prague's german university from 1896 to 1932.
The article analyzes this conception in terms of both content and methodology and sets it in its historical and philosophical context. ''Retrospectively'' it is linked to Kant, Mach, Brentano, Meinong, Husserl and others. ''Perspectively'' it is related to the ''integrated'' psychology and structural functionalism of the first half of the 20th century. The article also refers to its possible ontological, cosmological, ethical, aesthetic and axiological consequences.
RP Pauza, M, ACAD SCI CZECH REPUBL,FIOOSOFICKY USTAV,PRAGUE,CZECH REPUBLIC.
CR GESAMTAUSGABE, V2, P399
PHILOS SCHRIFTEN, V3
PHILOS SCHRIFTEN, V4
1890, GESTALTQUALITATEN, P130
1910, PHYS Z, V11, P6
1922, BEMERKUNGEN, P168
1922, PRIMZAHLGESETZ, P31
1922, WEITERFUHRENDE BEMER
1932, CESKA MYSL, V28, P376
1932, GESTALQUALITATEN
1932, GESTALQUALITATEN, P169
1932, GESTALTQUALITATEN, P156
1932, PRIMZAHLGESETZ, P19
1984, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN, V2
1988, PHILIS SCHRIFTEN, V3
ANSCHUTZ G, 1909, GESTALTQUALITATEN
ARISTOTLE, METAFYZIKA
BALMBER EH, 1976, PSYCHOL 20 JAHR, V1, P583
DILTHEY W, 1894, GESAMMELTE SCHRIFTEN, V5, P140
DILTHEY W, 1894, GESAMMELTE SCHRIFTEN, V8, P232
EHRENFELS C, 1890, GESTALTQUALITATEN
EHRENFELS C, 1890, GESTALTQUALITATEN, P128
EHRENFELS C, 1890, GESTALTQUALITATEN, P128
EHRENFELS C, 1890, GESTALTQUALITATEN, P134
EHRENFELS C, 1890, GESTALTQUALITATEN, P143
EHRENFELS C, 1890, GESTALTQUALITATEN, P144
EHRENFELS C, 1890, GESTALTQUALITATEN, P148
EHRENFELS C, 1890, GESTALTQUALITATEN, P155
EHRENFELS C, 1913, PHILOS SCHRIFTEN, V4, P390
EHRENFELS C, 1922, PRIMZAHLGESETZ, P117
EHRENFELS C, 1932, GESTALTQUALITATEN, P157
EHRENFELS C, 1932, GESTALTQUALITATEN, P162
EHRENFELS C, 1932, GESTALTQUALITATEN, P168
EHRENFELS C, 1932, GESTALTQUALITATEN, P170
EHRENFELS C, 1988, PHILOS SCHRIFTEN, V4, P84
EHRENFELS C, 1990, GESTALTQUALITATEN, P130
EHRENFELS C, 1990, GESTALTQUALITATEN, P147
EISNER F, 1992, CHRAM TVRZ, P181
HERMANN T, GESTALTHHEORIE CHRIS, P70
HERMANN T, 1986, EHRENFELS CH LEBEN W, P70
HUSSERI E, 1968, IDEEN REINEN PHANOME, V1
HUSSERL E, IDEEN REINEN PHANOME, V1, P131
HUSSERL E, 1928, IDEEN REINIEN PHANOM, V1, P26
HUSSERL E, 1991, PHILOS ARITMETIK
JOHNSON WH, OSTERREICHISCHE KULT, P329
JOHNSON WH, 1974, OSTERREICHISCHE KULT
KOHLER W, 1920, PSYCHISCHEN GESTALTE, P13
KOHLER W, 1923, GESTALTPROBLEME ANFA
LINDERN GA, 1875, LATENTE VORSTELLUNGE, P239
LIPPS T, 1909, LEUFADEN PSYCHOL
MACH E, BEITRAGE ANAL EMPFIN, P11
MACH E, 1886, BEITRAGE ANAL EMPFIN
MACH E, 1896, PRINZIPIEN WARMERLEH, P453
MACH E, 1923, POPULARWISSENSCHAFLI
MEINONG A, GESAMTAUSGABE, V1, P279
MEINONG A, 1969, GESAMTAUSGABE, V1, P279
MEINONG A, 1971, GESAMTAUSGABE, V2, P399
PAUZA M, 1992, MASARYK BRENTANO SCH, P160
TAMTEZ, 1917, ERKENNTNIS IRRTUM, P136
TRETERA I, 1989, JF HERBART JHEO STOU, P77
WELSTSCH F, 1932, CESKA MYSL, V28, P270
WELTSCH F, 1922, URSPURNG SITTLICHER
WERTHEIMER H, 1912, SEHEN VONBEWEGUNGEN
NR 63
TC 2
PU FILOSOFICKY CASOPIS
PI PRAGUE
PA JILSKA 1, PRAGUE, CZECH REPUBLIC 1
SN 0015-1831
J9 FILOS CASOPIS
JI Filos. Cas.
PY 1995
VL 43
IS 6
BP 935
EP 958
PG 28
SC Ethics; Philosophy
GA TZ260
UT ISI:A1995TZ26000003
ER

PT J
AU SMITH, Q
TI TIME AND PROPOSITIONS
SO PHILOSOPHIA
LA English
DT Article
CR CARRUTHERS P, 1984, PHILOS QUART, V34, P186
FREGE G, F ARITHMETIC
FREGE G, THOUGHT
GALE RM, 1958, LANGUAGE TIME
GRICE HP, 1985, PHILOS LANGUAGE, P159
HUSSERL E, LOGICAL INVESTIGATIO
KLEMKE ED, 1968, ESSAYS FREGE
KNEALE W, 1960, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, P98
LEWIS D, 1984, INT J PHILOS RELIG, V15, P73
MEINONG A, OBJECTS HIGHER ORDER
MOORE GE, SOME MAIN PROBLEMS P
OAKLANDER LN, 1984, TEMPORAL RELATIONS T
OAKLANDER LN, 1990, PHILOS STUD, V58, P287
PLATO, TIMAEUS
RUSSELL B, PROBLEMS PHILOS
SHOEMAKER S, 1969, J PHILOS, V66, P363
SMART JJC, 1963, PHILOS SCI REALISM
SMITH O, 1922, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V23, P31
SMITH O, 1986, FELT MEANING WORLD M
SMITH Q, 1987, PHILOS Q, V37, P37
SMITH Q, 1987, PHILOS STUD, V52, P371
SMITH Q, 1989, NOUS, V23, P307
SMITH Q, 1989, SYNTHESE, V78, P167
SMITH Q, 1990, ERKENNTNIS, V32, P5
SPINOZA B, ETHICS
WOLTERSTORFF N, 1975, GOD GOOD ESSAYS H ST, P181
NR 26
TC 2
PU BAR ILAN UNIV
PI RAMAT GAN
PA DEPT PHILOSOPHY, RAMAT GAN, ISRAEL
SN 0048-3893
J9 PHILOSOPHIA
JI Philosophia
PD DEC
PY 1990
VL 20
IS 3
BP 279
EP 294
PG 16
SC Philosophy
GA FC675
UT ISI:A1990FC67500004
ER

PT J
AU SIMONS, PM
TI ON THAT WHICH IS NOT + LOGIC AND NONEXISTENT OBJECTS - THE MEINONG RUSSELL CONTROVERSY
SO ZEITSCHRIFT FUR SEMIOTIK
LA German
DT Article
RP SIMONS, PM, SALZBURG UNIV,A-5020 SALZBURG,AUSTRIA.
CR AYER AJ, 1971, RUSSELL MOORE ANAL H
BLACKBURN S, 1978, ANALYSIS, V38, P65
CHISHOLM R, 1955, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, V56, P125
FINDLAY JN, 1962, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
FINE K, 1982, TOPOI-INT REV PHILOS, V1, P97
FREGE G, 1892, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V100, P25
FREGE G, 1976, FUNKTION BEGRIFF BED
FREGE G, 1976, WISSENSCHAFTLICHER B
GRIFFIN N, 1980, SYNTHESE, V45, P117
HOCHBERG H, 1976, PHILOSOPHIA, V18, P9
HOCHBERG H, 1978, THOUGHT FACT REFEREN
HOFLER A, 1890, PHILOS PROPADEUTIK L
INGARDEN R, 1960, LIT KUNSTWERK
LAMBERT K, 1974, INQUIRY, V17, P303
LAMBERT K, 1977, CONCEPTUS, V11, P92
MCMICHAEL A, 1980, J PHILOS LOGIC, V9, P297
MEINONG A, GESAMTAUSGABE
MEINONG A, GESAMTAUSGABE, V2, P377
MEINONG A, 1896, BEDEUTUNG WEBERSCHEN
MEINONG A, 1902, UBER ANNAHMEN
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
MEINONG A, 1907, STELLUNG GEGENSTANDS
MEINONG A, 1913, EMOTIONALE PRASENTAT
MEINONG A, 1916, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
MEINONG A, 1965, PHILOSOPHENBRIEFE
MOORE GE, 1899, MIND, V8, P176
MOORE GE, 1959, PHILOS PAPERS
MULLIGAN K, 1984, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V44, P287
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
PEANO G, 1896, ATTI ACCADEMIA SCI T, V32, P565
RAPAPORT WJ, 1978, NOUS, V12, P153
ROUTLEY R, 1980, EXPLORING MEINONGS J
RUSSELL B, 1903, PRINCIPLES MATH
RUSSELL B, 1904, MIND, V13, P204
RUSSELL B, 1904, MIND, V13, P336
RUSSELL B, 1904, MIND, V13, P509
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P398
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P479
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P530
RUSSELL B, 1907, MIND, V16
RUSSELL B, 1919, INTRO MATH PHILOS
RUSSELL B, 1944, PHILOS B RUSSELL, P1
RUSSELL B, 1956, LOGIC KNOWLEDGE
RUSSELL B, 1959, MY PHILOS DEV
RUSSELL B, 1973, ESSAYS ANAL
RUSSELL B, 1984, THEORY KNOWLEDGE 191
RYLE G, 1972, JENSEITS SEIN NICHTS, P7
SMITH JF, 1985, PHILOS PHENOMEN RES, V45, P305
STRAWSON PF, 1950, MIND, V59, P320
TWARDOWSKI K, 1894, INHALT GEGENSTAND VO
ZALTA EN, 1983, ABSTR OBJ INTR AX ME
ZALTA EN, 1987, Z SEMIOTIK, V9, P85
NR 52
TC 2
PU STAUFFENBURG VERLAG
PI TUBINGEN
PA BRIGITTE NARR GMBH P.O. BOX 25 25, D-72015 TUBINGEN, GERMANY
SN 0170-6241
J9 Z SEMIOTIK
JI Z. Semiot.
PY 1988
VL 10
IS 4
BP 399
EP 426
PG 28
SC Humanities, Multidisciplinary
GA AC375
UT ISI:A1988AC37500004
ER

PT J
AU TICHY, P
TI INDIVIDUAL OBJECTS AS OBJECTS OF REFERENCE - THE REFLECTIONS OF BRENTANO, MEINONG, FREGE AND RUSSELL ON A TRANSPARENT INTENTIONAL SEMANTICS
SO ZEITSCHRIFT FUR SEMIOTIK
LA German
DT Article
RP TICHY, P, UNIV OTAGO,DEPT PHILOSOPHY,DUNEDIN,NEW ZEALAND.
CR BRENTANO F, 1924, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN
BRENTANO F, 1930, WAHRHEIT EVIDENZ ERK
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
FREGE G, 1892, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V100, P25
MEINONG A, 1971, GESAMTAUSGABE, V2
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P479
RYLE G, 1951, LOGIC LANGUAGE, P11
NR 7
TC 2
PU STAUFFENBURG VERLAG
PI TUBINGEN
PA BRIGITTE NARR GMBH P.O. BOX 25 25, D-72015 TUBINGEN, GERMANY
SN 0170-6241
J9 Z SEMIOTIK
JI Z. Semiot.
PY 1987
VL 9
IS 1-2
BP 13
EP 50
PG 38
SC Humanities, Multidisciplinary
GA H4634
UT ISI:A1987H463400003
ER

PT J
AU SCHUHMANN, K
SMITH, B
TI QUESTIONS, AN ESSAY IN DAUBERTIAN PHENOMENOLOGY
SO PHILOSOPHY AND PHENOMENOLOGICAL RESEARCH
LA English
DT Article
C1 UNIV MANCHESTER,MANCHESTER M13 9PL,LANCS,ENGLAND.
RP SCHUHMANN, K, STATE UNIV UTRECHT,UTRECHT,NETHERLANDS.
CR AQVIST L, 1965, NEW APPROACH LOGICAL
AVELALLEMANT E, 1975, NACHLASSE MUNCHENER
BELNAP N, 1976, LOGIC QUESTIONS ANSW
BERGLER R, 1961, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V113, P49
BOLZANO B, 1837, WISSENSCHAFTSLEHRE V
BOUDIER CEM, 1979, TIJDSCHRIFT FILOSOFI, V41, P447
BRENTANO F, 1889, VOM URSPRUNG SITTLIC, CH1
BRENTANO F, 1924, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN
BURKHARDT A, 1986, SOZIALE AKET SPRECHA
CORETH E, 1973, HDB PHILOS GRUNDBEGR, V1, P485
DELIUS H, 1982, SELF AWARENESS SEMAN
DETRACY D, 1803, ELEMENS IDEOLOGIE 2
ERDMANN B, 1907, LOGIK LOGISCHE ELEME
FALES W, 1943, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V4, P60
GEIGER M, 1911, MUNCHENER PHILOS ABH, P125
GEIGER M, 1933, NEUE MUNCHENER PHILO, P1
HARRAH D, 1961, PHILOS SCI, V28, P40
HARRAH D, 1969, LOGICAL WAY DOING TH, P3
HOPPER P, 1979, DISCOURSE SYNTAX SYN, V12, P213
HUSSERL E, BRIEFE R INGARDEN
HUSSERL E, 1900, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
HUSSERL E, 1913, IDEEN REINEN PHANOME
INGARDEN R, 1925, JB PHILOS PHANOMELOG, V7, P125
INGARDEN R, 1931, LIT KUNSTWERK
INGARDEN R, 1964, STREIT EXISTENZ WELT
KARTTUNEN L, 1977, LINGUIST PHILOS, V1, P3
KREIBIG JK, 1914, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V33, P152
LIPPS T, 1905, 5 ATT C INT PSIC, P57
LONGACRE R, 1978, CURR TRENDS LINGUIST, P103
LOTZE H, 1912, LOGIC DREI BUCHER VO
LOW F, 1928, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V66, P357
LYONS J, 1977, SEMANTICS, V2
MARTY A, 1976, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GRUND
MEINONG A, 1910, UBER ANNAHMEN
MULLIGAN K, 1986, TOPOI, V5, P115
MULLIGAN K, 1987, SPEECH ACT SACHVERHA
NEHRING A, 1963, SPRACHZEICHEN SPRECH
PAUL H, 1920, PRINZIPIEN SPRACHGES
PFANDER A, 1909, IMPERATIVENLEHRE
PFANDER A, 1963, JB PHILOS PHANOMENOL, V4, P139
POLTNER G, 1972, EINER PHANOMENOLOGIE
RAUSCH E, 1977, ARCH PSYCHOL, V123, P235
REINACH A, IN PRESS
REINACH A, 1911, MUNCHENER PHILOS ABH, P196
REINACH A, 1912, Z PHILOS PHILOS KR 1, V148, P181
REINACH A, 1912, Z PHILOS PHILOS KR 2, V149, P30
REINACH A, 1913, JB PHILOS PHANOMENOL, V1, P685
REINACH A, 1921, GESAMMELTE SCHRIFTEN
RICKERT H, 1904, GEGENSTAND ERKENNTNI
ROMBACH H, 1952, S JB PHILOS, V3, P135
RUBIN E, 1921, VISUELL WAHRGENOMMEN
SCHUHMANN K, 1977, HUSSERL CHRONIK DENK
SCHUHMANN K, 1985, PHENOMENOLOGY THEORY
SCHUHMANN K, 1985, REV METAPHYS, V38, P763
SCHUHMANN K, 1987, SPEECH ACT SACHVERAL
SEARLE JR, 1969, SPEECH ACTS
SELZ O, 1913, GESETZE GEORDNETEN D, V1
SIGWART C, 1904, LOGIK, V1
SMID RN, 1985, HUSSERL STUD, V2, P267
SMITH B, 1978, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V6, P39
SMITH B, 1982, PARTS MOMENTS STUDIE
SMITH B, 1985, IN PRESS K BUHLERS T
SMITH B, 1985, THEORETICAL LINGUIST, V2, P311
SMITH B, 1986, UNIVERSAL GRAMMAR SP, P143
SMITH B, 1987, SPEECH ACT SACHVERHA
SPIEGELBERG H, 1982, PFANDER STUDIEN
SPIEGELBERG H, 1982, PHENOMENOLOGICAL MOV
STAHL G, 1969, NOUS, V3, P211
STERN G, 1924, THESIS FREIBURG I BR
TUMLIRZ O, 1919, WESEN FRAGE BEITRAGE
WALLACE S, 1982, TENSE ASPECT SEMANTI, P200
WUNDERLICH D, 1976, STUDIEN SPRECHAKTTHE
NR 72
TC 2
PU PHILOSOPHY PHENOMENOLOGICAL RES
PI PROVIDENCE
PA BROWN UNIV BOX 1947, PROVIDENCE, RI 02912
SN 0031-8205
J9 PHIL PHENOMENOL RES
JI Philos. Phenomenol. Res.
PD MAR
PY 1987
VL 47
IS 3
BP 353
EP 384
PG 32
SC Philosophy
GA G2362
UT ISI:A1987G236200001
ER

PT J
AU GARCIA, JLA
TI THE TUNSOLLEN, THE SEINSOLLEN, AND THE SOSEINSOLLEN
SO AMERICAN PHILOSOPHICAL QUARTERLY
LA English
DT Article
RP GARCIA, JLA, UNIV NOTRE DAME,NOTRE DAME,IN 46556.
CR ARISTOTLE, METAPHYSICS
ARISTOTLE, NICOMACHEAN ETHICS
CAVELL S, 1979, CLAIM REASON WITTGEN
EWING AC, 1970, READINGS ETHICAL THE, P123
FOLLESDAL D, 1970, DEONTIC LOGIC INTRO, P9
GARCIA JLA, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI
GEACH PT, 1980, PHILOS Q, V30, P180
GEACH PT, 1982, PHILOSOPHIA, V11, P6
GREENSPAN P, 1975, J PHILOS, V72, P259
HARMAN G, 1973, PHILOS REV, V82, P235
HARMAN G, 1975, PHILOS REV, V84, P3
HARMAN G, 1978, MIDWEST STUDIES PHIL, V3, P111
HARMAN G, 1983, PHILOS PUBLIC AFFAIR, V12, P317
KANT I, GROUNDWORK METAPHYSI
MEINONG A, 1972, EMOTIONAL PRESENTATI
PRICHARD HA, 1949, MORAL OBLIGATION, P4
ROSS WD, 1930, RIGHT GOOD
SIDGWICK H, 1912, METHODS ETHICS
VANFRAASSEN BC, 1972, J PHILOS LOGIC, V1, P417
VONHILDEBRAND D, 1953, ETHICS
VONWRIGHT GH, 1951, MIND, V60
VONWRIGHT GH, 1981, NEW STUDIES DEONTIC
WILLIAMS B, 1981, MORAL LUCK, P114
NR 23
TC 2
PU BOWLING GREEN STATE UNIVERSITY
PI BOWLING GREEN
PA PHILOSOPHY DOCUMENT CENTER, BOWLING GREEN, OH 43403
SN 0003-0481
J9 AMER PHIL QUART
JI Am. Philos. Q.
PD JUL
PY 1986
VL 23
IS 3
BP 267
EP 276
PG 10
SC Philosophy
GA D2827
UT ISI:A1986D282700004
ER

PT J
AU HEIDSIECK, A
TI LOGIC AND ONTOLOGY IN KAFKA FICTION
SO GERMANIC REVIEW
LA English
DT Article
RP HEIDSIECK, A, UNIV SO CALIF,LOS ANGELES,CA 90089.
CR AQUILA R, 1977, INTENTIONALITY
BARTH JA, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
BERGMANN H, 1908, UNTERSUCHUNGEN ZUM P
BERGMANN H, 1909, PHILOS WERK B BOLZAN
BINDER H, 1979, KAFKA HDB, V1
BRENTANO F, 1874, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN, V1
BRENTANO F, 1956, LEHRE RICHTIGEN URTE
BRENTANO F, 1982, DESKRIPTIVE PSYCHOL, P21
BROD M, 1913, ANSCHAUUNG BEGRIFF
CHISHOLM RM, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
CHISHOLM RM, 1970, INTRO PHILOS MIND, P139
EHRENFELS CV, 1897, SYSTEM WERTTHEORIE, V1, R15
EHRENFELS CV, 1898, SYSTEM WERTTHEORIE, V2, P262
FINDLAY J, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
FODOR J, 1978, MONIST, V61, P507
FREGE G, SENSE REFERENCE
KAFKA F, BACHELORS ILL LUCK
KAFKA F, DESCRIPTION OF STRUG
KAFKA F, GREAT WALL OF CHINA
KAFKA F, HUNTER GRACCHUS FRAG
KAFKA F, JUDGMENT
KAFKA F, TRIAL
KAFKA F, UNHAPPINESS
LAMBERT K, 1983, MEINONG PRINCIPLE IN
LINDENFELD D, 1980, TRANSFORMATION POSIT
MARTY A, 1908, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GRUND
MARTY A, 1916, GESAMMELTE SCHRIFTEN, V2
MEINONG A, GESAMTAUSGABE, V4
MEINONG A, GESAMTAUSGABE, V7
MEINONG A, 1902, UBER ANNAHMEN
MEINONG A, 1969, GESAMTAUSGABE, V3
NEESEN P, 1972, VOM LOUVREZIRKEL ZUM
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
QUINE WVO, 1961, LOGICAL POINT VIEW
QUINE WVO, 1966, WAYS PARADOX
RUSSELL B, 1904, MIND, V13
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P479
SMITH B, 1981, STRUCTURE GESTALT, P113
NR 38
TC 2
PU HELDREF PUBLICATIONS
PI WASHINGTON
PA 1319 EIGHTEENTH ST NW, WASHINGTON, DC 20036-1802
SN 0016-8890
J9 GER REV
JI Ger. Rev.
PD WIN
PY 1986
VL 61
IS 1
BP 11
EP 17
PG 7
SC Literature, German, Dutch, Scandinavian
GA A8200
UT ISI:A1986A820000002
ER

PT J
AU HALLER, R
TI PROBLEMS OF KNOWLEDGE IN SCHLICK,MORITZ
SO SYNTHESE
LA English
DT Article
RP HALLER, R, GRAZ UNIV,INST PHILOSOPHIE,A-8010 GRAZ,AUSTRIA.
CR BLACK M, 1982, SCHLICK NEURATH SYMP
CHISHOLM RM, 1982, SCLICK NEURATH SYMPO
DAVIDSON D, 1982, SCHLICK NEURATH SYMP
ENRIQUES F, 1910, PROBLEME WISSENSCHAF
FEIGL H, 1978, PHILOS PAPERS, V1
FEYERABEND PK, 1978, WISSENSCHAFTSTHEORET
HALLER R, 1962, ARCH BEGRIFFSGESCHIC, V7, P102
HALLER R, 1974, RATIO, V16
HALLER R, 1979, STUDIEN OSTERREICHIS, V1, P178
HALLER R, 1981, SCI PHILOS TODAY, P71
HEMPEL CG, 1982, SCLICK NEURATH SYMPO
HILPINEN R, 1982, SCLICK NEURATH SYMPO
HINTIKKA J, 1972, JENSEITS SEIN NICHTS, P205
HUNG T, 1982, SCLICK NEURATH SYMPO
LAUENER H, 1982, SCLICK NEURATH SYMPO
MACH E, 1924, GRUNDGEDANKEN MACHSC
MEINONG A, 1971, GESAMTAUSGABE, V2
POPPER K, LOGIC SCI DISCOVERY
POPPER K, OBJECTIVE KNOWLEDGE
PUTNAM H, 1975, MIND LANGUAGE REALIT, V2
RUSSELL B, MYSTICISM LOGIC
RUSSELL B, 1912, PROBLEMS PHILOS
RUSSELL B, 1940, INQUIRY MEANING TRUT
RUTTE H, 1979, WITTGENSTEIN WIENER, P248
SCHLICK M, 1921, EPISTEMOLOGICAL WRIT, P335
SCHLICK M, 1974, GENERAL THEORY KNOWL
SCHLICK M, 1974, PHILOS PAPERS, V1
SCHLICK M, 1979, PHILOS PAPERS, V2
SCHULTE J, 1982, SCHLICK NEURATH SYMP
SUPPES P, 1968, J PHILOS, V65
WAISMANN F, WITTGENSTEIN VIENNA
WAISMANN F, 1979, PHILOS PAPERS, V2, R21
NR 32
TC 2
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0039-7857
J9 SYNTHESE
JI Synthese
PY 1985
VL 64
IS 3
BP 283
EP 296
PG 14
SC History & Philosophy Of Science
GA AQE07
UT ISI:A1985AQE0700002
ER

PT J
AU GROSSMANN, R
TI NONEXISTENT OBJECTS VERSUS DEFINITE DESCRIPTIONS
SO AUSTRALASIAN JOURNAL OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
RP GROSSMANN, R, INDIANA UNIV,BLOOMINGTON,IN 47401.
CR FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
GROSSMANN R, 1960, ANALYSIS, V21, P1
GROSSMANN R, 1974, MEINONG
GROSSMANN R, 1974, NOUS, V8, P67
GROSSMANN R, 1976, STUDIEN FREGE, V2
GROSSMANN R, 1983, CATEGORIAL STRUCTURE
HOCHBERG H, 1978, THOUGHT FACT REFEREN
MEINONG A, 1907, STELLUNG GEGENSTANDS
REID T, 1969, ESSAYS INTELLECTUAL
ROUTLEY R, 1980, EXPLORING MEINONGS J
RUSSELL B, PROBLEMS PHILOS
RUSSELL B, 1956, LOGIC KNOWLEDGE, P227
TWARDOWSKI K, 1977, CONTENT OBJECT PRESE
NR 13
TC 2
PU LA TROBE UNIV
PI VICTORIA
PA DEPT OF PHILOSOPHY BUNDOORA, VICTORIA AUSTRALIA
SN 0004-8402
J9 AUSTRALAS J PHIL
JI Australas. J. Philos.
PY 1984
VL 62
IS 4
BP 363
EP 377
PG 15
SC Philosophy
GA AAM08
UT ISI:A1984AAM0800004
ER

PT J
AU NEMOIANU, V
TI SOCIETAL MODELS AS SUBSTITUTE REALITY IN LITERATURE
SO POETICS TODAY
LA English
DT Article
RP NEMOIANU, V, CATHOLIC UNIV AMER,WASHINGTON,DC 20064.
CR ABRAMS MH, 1973, NATURAL SUPERNATURAL
BARRELL J, 1972, IDEA LANDSCAPE SENSE
BYRD M, 1978, LONDON TRANSFORMED I
DUTU A, 1972, ESEU TEORIA MODELELO
DYSON AE, 1957, ESSAYS CRITICISM, V7
ELLIS FH, 1951, PMLA, V66
EMPSON W, 1935, SOME VERSIONS PASTOR
GOLDMANN L, 1952, SCI HUMAINES PHILOS
GRAY T, 1935, CORRESPONDENCE
GRAY T, 1966, COMPLETE POEMS
GRUBER H, 1978, AESTHETICS SCI
HARTMANN N, 1933, PROBLEM GEISTIGEN SE
HARTMANN N, 1962, ETHIK
HAZARD P, 1935, CRISE CONSCIENCE EUR
ISER W, 1981, ACT READING THEORY A
JAMESON F, 1971, MARXISM FORM 20TH CE
JONES WP, 1965, T GRAY SCHOLAR
KETTONCREMER PW, 1955, T GRAY
KNAUTH A, 1979, ARCADIA, V14, P3
LEWIS CS, 1964, DISCARDED IMAGE INTR
LOBSIEN E, 1975, THEORIE LIT ILLUSION
LOWES JL, 1930, ROAD XANADU STUDY WA
MEINONG AV, 1963, UEBER GEGENSTANDSTHE
NEMOIANU V, 1977, MICROHARMONY GROWTH
NEMOIANU V, 1984, CLIO
NEMOIANU V, 1984, TAMING ROMANTICISM E
PAPU E, 1967, DESCOPERIRILE GEOGRA
PECKHAM M, 1956, MODERN LANGUAGE NOTE, V71
ROBERTS SC, 1952, T GRAY PEMBROKE
STARR HW, 1968, 20TH CENTURY INTERPR
STARR HW, 1968, GRAY ELEGY IN COUNTR
SUTHERLAND JH, 1957, MODERN PHILOLOGY, V55
TILLYARD EW, 1943, ELIZABETHAN WORLD PI
TUZET H, 1965, COSMOS IMAGINATION
VIANU T, 1946, TRANSFORMARILE IDEII
VIANU T, 1963, STUDII LIT UNIVERSAL
WALPOLE H, 1937, CORRESPONDENCE
WAUGH E, SWORD OF HONOUR
WILLIAMS R, 1977, MARXISM LIT
WITTGENSTEIN L, 1973, TRACTATUS LOGICO-PHI
NR 40
TC 2
PU DUKE UNIV PRESS
PI DURHAM
PA BOX 90660, DURHAM, NC 27708-0660
SN 0333-5372
J9 POETICS TODAY
JI Poetics Today
PY 1984
VL 5
IS 2
BP 275
EP 297
PG 23
SC Literature
GA TU710
UT ISI:A1984TU71000003
ER

PT J
AU KUNG, G
TI THE INTENTIONAL AND THE REAL OBJECT
SO DIALECTICA
LA English
DT Article
CR BUTCHVAROV P, 1980, MIDW STUDIES PHILOS, V5, P261
CHISHOLM RM, IN PRESS
FREGE G, 1884, GRUNDLAGEN ARITHMETI
HUSSER E, UNPUBLISHED
HUSSERL E, LEHRE VOM INHALT GEG
INGARDEN R, 1931, LIT KUNSTWERK
INGARDEN R, 1965, STREIT EXISTENZ WELT, V2
KUNG G, 1973, REV METAPHYS, V26, P670
KUNG G, 1975, MONIST, V59, P61
MEINONG A, 1971, GESAMTAUSGABE, V2
SMITH DW, 1983, SYNTHESE, V54, P95
NR 11
TC 2
PU SOC DIALECTICA C/O GEIGER AG BERN
PI BERN 16
PA HABSBURGSTRASSE 19, 3000 BERN 16, SWITZERLAND
SN 0012-2017
J9 DIALECTICA
JI Dialectica
PY 1984
VL 38
IS 2-3
BP 143
EP 156
PG 14
SC Philosophy
GA TH524
UT ISI:A1984TH52400005
ER

PT J
AU LAMBERT, K
TI A LOGICAL INTERPRETATION OF MEINONG PRINCIPLE OF INDEPENDENCE
SO TOPOI-AN INTERNATIONAL REVIEW OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
RP LAMBERT, K, UNIV CALIF IRVINE,IRVINE,CA 92717.
CR BELNAP N, 1969, LOGICAL WAY DOING TH
BURGE T, 1975, NOUS, V8, P309
CHISHOLM RN, 1972, JENSEITS SEIN NICHTS, P25
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
LAMBERT K, 1972, JENSEITS SEIN NICHTS, P37
LAMBERT K, 1974, INQUIRY, V17, P303
LAMBERT K, 1976, INQUIRY, V19
LEONARD HS, 1967, PRINCIPLES REASONING
MARGARIS A, 1967, 1ST ORDER MATH LOGIC
MEINONG A, EMOTIONAL PRESENTATI
MEINONG A, GEGENSTANDSTHEORETIS
MEINONG A, SELBSTDARSTELLUNG
MEINONG A, THEORY OBJECTS
MEINONG A, UBER ANNAHMEN
MEINONG A, WAHRHEIT WAHRSCHEINL
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P10
PARSONS T, 1974, J PHILOS, V71, P561
PARSONS T, 1978, NOUS, V12, P137
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
QUINE WVO, 1950, METHODS LOGIC
RAPPAPORT WJ, 1978, NOUS, V12
ROUTLEY R, 1976, INQUIRY, V19, P247
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, P537
RYLE G, 1972, JENSEITS SEIN NICHTS, P7
SCOTT DS, 1967, B RUSSELL PHILOS CEN, P181
SCOTT DS, 1970, PHILOS PROBLEMS LOGI
SKYRMS B, 1968, J PHILOS, V16, P477
TWARDOWSKI K, 1977, CONTENT OBJECT PRESE
VANFRAASSEN BC, 1969, LOGICAL WAY DOING TH
NR 29
TC 2
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0167-7411
J9 TOPOI-INT REV PHIL
JI Topoi-Int. Rev. Philos.
PY 1982
VL 1
IS 1-2
BP 87
EP 96
PG 10
SC Philosophy
GA QG133
UT ISI:A1982QG13300012
ER

PT J
AU LUTZEIER, PR
TI THE NOTION OF LEXICAL FIELD AND ITS APPLICATION TO ENGLISH NOUNS OF FINANCIAL INCOME
SO LINGUA
LA English
DT Article
RP LUTZEIER, PR, FREE UNIV BERLIN,FACHBEREICH 16 GERMANIST,D-1000 BERLIN 33,FED REP GER.
CR BAUMGARTNER K, 1967, SATZ WORT HEUTIGEN D, P165
BEEH V, 1973, ANSATZE WAHRHEITSFUN
BETZ W, 1954, Z VERGLEICHENDE SPRA, V71, P189
BREAL H, 1964, SEMANTICS STUDIES SC
BREKLE HE, 1972, SEMANTIK
COSERIU E, 1970, EINFUHRUNG STRUKTURE, P1
COSERIU E, 1970, EINFUHRUNG STRUKTURE, P105
CRUSE DA, 1975, ARCH LINGUIST, V6, P26
CRYSTAL D, 1969, INVESTIGATING ENGLIS
DUTCH RA, 1966, ROGETS THESAURUS ENG
GIPPER H, 1976, PROBLEME LEXIKOLOGIE, P26
HARRIS ZS, 1976, AM PHILOS Q, V13, P237
HENNE H, 1972, SEMANTIK LEXIKOGRAPH
HORNBY AS, 1974, OXFORD ADV LEARNERS
JONES T, 1963, HARRAPS STANDARD GER
KANDLER G, 1973, WORTFELDFORSCHUNG, P351
KASTOVSKY D, 1980, UNPUB
LEHRER A, 1974, SEMANTIC FIELDS LEXI
LIEB HH, 1976, FU16 FACHB
LIEB HH, 1979, 5TH LAC FOR, P66
LUTZEIER PR, 1973, MODELLTHEORIE LINGUI
LUTZEIER PR, 1980, TIME TENSE QUANTIFIE, P293
LUTZEIER PR, 1981, WORT FELD WORTSEMANT
LYONS J, 1963, STRUCTURAL SEMANTICS
LYONS J, 1968, INTRO THEORETICAL LI
LYONS J, 1977, SEMANTICS, V1
MEINONG A, 1971, ABHANDLUNGEN ERKENNT, P1
MILLER GA, 1976, LANGUAGE PERCEPTION
MURRAY JAH, 1933, OXFORD ENGLISH DICT
NIDA EA, 1975, COMPONENTIAL ANAL ME
SCHWARZ H, 1973, WORTFELDFORSCHUNG GE, P426
SEILER H, 1967, LINGUA, V18, P35
SOUTHWORTH FC, 1967, LANGUAGE, V43, P342
TRIER J, 1973, DTSCH WORTSCHATZ SIN
TRIER J, 1975, GEDENKSCHRIFT J TRIE, P1
VINCENZ AD, 1966, ORBIS SCRIPTUS DMITR, P865
WALL R, 1972, INTRO MATH LINGUISTI
WEISGERBER L, 1962, GRUNDZUGE INHALTBEZO
WEISGERBER L, 1973, WORTFELDFORSCHUNG, P278
NR 39
TC 2
PU ELSEVIER SCIENCE BV
PI AMSTERDAM
PA PO BOX 211, 1000 AE AMSTERDAM, NETHERLANDS
SN 0024-3841
J9 LINGUA
JI Lingua
PY 1982
VL 56
IS 1
BP 1
EP 42
PG 42
SC Linguistics; Language & Linguistics
GA MZ891
UT ISI:A1982MZ89100001
ER

PT J
AU GRIFFIN, N
TI RUSSELL HORRIBLE TRAVESTY OF MEINONG
SO RUSSELL-THE JOURNAL OF THE BERTRAND RUSSELL ARCHIVES
LA English
DT Article
C1 MCMASTER UNIV,DEPT PHILOSOPHY,HAMILTON L8S 4L8,ONTARIO,CANADA.
CR 1973, RUSSELL SPR
BOCHENSKI IM, 1961, HISTORY FORMAL LOGIC, P371
CAMPBELL R, 1972, PHILOSOPHICAL PAPERS, V1, P89
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE, R11
FINDLAY JN, 1977, MIND, V86, P141
GROSSMANN, 1974, MEINONG, P69
LINSKY L, 1967, REFERRING, P16
MEINONG A, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
MEINONG A, 1899, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V21, P182
MEINONG A, 1902, UBER ANNAHMEN, P154
MEINONG A, 1914, GESAMMELTE ABHANDLUN
MOORE GE, 1899, MIND, V8, P176
RAMSDEN E, 1971, RUSSELL WIN, P3
RUSSELL B, MEINONGS THEORY COMP
RUSSELL B, PHILOSOPHY B RUSSELL, P13
RUSSELL B, STELLUNG GEGENSTANDS
RUSSELL B, 1903, PRINCIPLES MATH, P43
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P530
RUSSELL B, 1907, MIND, V16, P436
RUSSELL B, 1919, INTRO MATH PHILOS, P169
RUSSELL B, 1921, ANAL MIND, P16
RUSSELL B, 1956, LOGIC KNOWLEDGE, P48
RUSSELL B, 1959, MY PHILOSOPHICAL DEV, P84
RUSSELL B, 1963, SCEPTICAL ESSAYS, P50
RUSSELL B, 1974, PROBLEMS PHILOSOPHY, CH10
RYLE G, 1971, COLLECTED PAPERS, V2, P353
SUTER R, 1966, PHILOSOPHY PHENOMENO, V27, P512
WEITZ M, 1944, PHILOSOPHY B RUSSELL, P93
NR 28
TC 2
PU MCMASTER UNIV LIBRARY PRESS
PI HAMILTON
PA BERTRAND RUSSELL ARCHIVES MCMASTER UNIV, HAMILTON ON L8S 4L6, CANADA
SN 0036-0163
J9 RUSSELL-J B RUSSELL ARCH
JI Russell-J. Bertrand Russell Arch.
PY 1977
IS 25-2
BP 39
EP 51
PG 13
SC Philosophy
GA FK450
UT ISI:A1977FK45000003
ER

PT J
AU GRIFFITHS, DA
TI RUSSELL ON EXISTENCE AND DESCRIPTIONS
SO PHILOSOPHICAL QUARTERLY
LA English
DT Discussion
C1 UNIV HONG KONG,HONG KONG,HONG KONG.
CR AYER AJ, RUSSELL MOORE ANAL H
MEINONG A, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
PEARS DF, B RUSSELL BRIT TRADI
RUSSELL BAW, DENOTING
RUSSELL BAW, LOGIC KNOWLEDGE, P251
RUSSELL BAW, PHILOSOPHY LOGICAL A
RUSSELL BAW, PRINCIPLES MATH
RUSSELL BAW, 1905, MIND JUL
RUSSELL BAW, 1910, PRINCIPIA MATH, V1
RUSSELL BAW, 1911, KNOWLEDGE ACQUAINTAN
RUSSELL BAW, 1912, PROBLEMS PHILOSOPHY
NR 11
TC 2
PU BLACKWELL PUBL LTD
PI OXFORD
PA 108 COWLEY RD, OXFORD, OXON, ENGLAND OX4 1JF
SN 0031-8094
J9 PHIL QUART
JI Philos. Q.
PY 1976
VL 26
IS 103
BP 157
EP 162
PG 6
SC Philosophy
GA GY191
UT ISI:A1976GY19100005
ER

PT J
AU HART, SL
TI AXIOLOGY - THEORY OF VALUES
SO PHILOSOPHY AND PHENOMENOLOGICAL RESEARCH
LA English
DT Article
C1 FAIRLEIGH DICKINSON UNIV,RUTHERFORD,NJ.
CR AYER AA, 1936, LANGUAGE TRUTH LOGIC
DEWEY J, 1926, EXPERIENCE NATURE
DEWEY J, 1929, QUEST CERTAINTY
DEWEY J, 1932, HUMAN NATURE CONDUCT
DEWEY J, 1939, INT ENCYCLOPEDIA UNI, V2
EATON HO, 1930, AUSTRIAN PHILOSOPHY
EHRENFELS C, 1897, SYSTEM WERTLEHRE
HART SL, 1949, TREATISE VALUES
HART SL, 1963, ETHICS QUEST GOOD LI
HARTMANN N, 1926, ETHIK
LEPLEY R, 1949, VALUE COOPERATIVE IN
LEWIS CI, 1946, ANALYSIS KNOWLEDGE V
MEINONG A, 1923, GRUNDLEGUNG ALLGEMEI
MOORE GE, 1903, PRINCIPIA ETHICA
PEPPER SC, 1958, SOURCES VALUE
PERRY RB, 1926, GENERAL THEORY VALUE
PRALL DW, 1821, STUDY THEORY VALUE
PRALL DW, 1929, AESTHETIC JUDGMENT
RUSSELL B, 1935, RELIGION SCIENCE
RUSSELL B, 1954, HUMAN SOC ETHICS POL
SCHELER M, 1913, JB PHILOSOPHIE PHENO
STEVENSON CI, 1944, ETHICS LANGUAGE
URBAN WM, 1909, VALUATION ITS NATURE
NR 23
TC 2
PU PHILOSOPHY PHENOMENOLOGICAL RES
PI PROVIDENCE
PA BROWN UNIV BOX 1947, PROVIDENCE, RI 02912
SN 0031-8205
J9 PHIL PHENOMENOL RES
JI Philos. Phenomenol. Res.
PY 1971
VL 32
IS 1
BP 29
EP 41
PG 13
SC Philosophy
GA Y0360
UT ISI:A1971Y036000003
ER

PT J
AU BARBER, K
TI MEINONGS HUME STUDIES .1. MEINONGS NOMINALISM
SO PHILOSOPHY AND PHENOMENOLOGICAL RESEARCH
LA English
DT Article
C1 STATE UNIV NEW YORK,BUFFALO,NY.
CR BERGMANN G, 1967, REALISM CRITIQUE BRE
BERKELEY, PRINCIPLES HUMAN KNO
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
FINDLAY, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE, P28
HELMHOLTZ, HDB PHYSIOLOGISCHEN, V9, P273
HICKS GD, 1922, MIND, P1
MEINONG A, LOGIC, CH2
MEINONG A, 1877, AKADEMIE WISSENSCHAF, V87, P185
MEINONG A, 1882, AKADEMIE WISSENSCHAF, V101, P573
ROBERTSON GC, 1878, MIND, V3, P386
NR 10
TC 2
PU PHILOSOPHY PHENOMENOLOGICAL RES
PI PROVIDENCE
PA BROWN UNIV BOX 1947, PROVIDENCE, RI 02912
SN 0031-8205
J9 PHIL PHENOMENOL RES
JI Philos. Phenomenol. Res.
PY 1970
VL 30
IS 4
BP 550
EP 567
PG 18
SC Philosophy
GA Y2997
UT ISI:A1970Y299700004
ER

PT J
AU von Tschermak, A
TI The simultaneous contrast of various sensory areas (eyes, movement, taste,touch and temperature)
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PHYSIOLOGIE DES MENSCHEN UND DER TIERE
LA German
DT Review
CR SKAND ARCH PHYSL, V2, P1
THEORIEN KONTRASTES, P779
1810, ZUR FARBENIEHRE, V1
1859, JAHRESB FRANKFURTER, P54
1860, NATURWISSENSCH, V17, P258
1865, PHYSL NETZHAUT SPEZI, P387
1865, SITZUNGSBER WIENER A, V52, P303
1866, SITZUNGSBER WIENER A, V54, P131
1866, SITZUNGSBER WIENER A, V54, P393
1868, SITZUNGSBER WIENER A, V57, P11
1872, SITZUNGSBER WIENER 3, V66
1872, SITZUNGSBER WIENER 3, V68
1872, SITZUNGSBER WIENER 3, V69
1872, SITZUNGSBER WIENER 3, V70
1877, SITZUNGSBER WIENER A, V75, P127
1881, ARCH AUGENBEILKUNDE, V11, P241
1881, PFLUGERS ARCH, V25, P31
1885, PHYSL OPTIK, P763
1886, PFLUGERS ARCH, V39, P159
1887, PFLUGERS ARCH GES PH, V40, P459
1887, PFLUGERS ARCH GES PH, V41, P46
1887, PFLUGERS ARCH, V40, P1
1887, PFLUGERS ARCH, V40, P172
1887, PFLUGERS ARCH, V41, P1
1887, PFLUGERS ARCH, V41, P29
1887, PFLUGERS ARCH, V41, P358
1887, PFLUGERS ARCH, V41, P91
1888, PFLUGERS ARCH GES PH, V42, P154
1888, PFLUGERS ARCH, V42, P119
1888, PFLUGERS ARCH, V43, P1
1890, PFLUGERS ARCH, V47, P236
1890, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V1, P18
1895, PFLUGERS ARCH GES PH, V60, P509
1895, PHYSL GERUCHES, P169
1896, J PHYSL, V20, R18
1896, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V9, P1
1896, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V9, P221
1897, J PHYSL, V21, P33
1897, Z OHRENHEILKUNDE, V31, P234
1898, J PHYSL, V22, P449
1898, VORSCHULE ASTHETIK, V2, P231
1898, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V14, P101
1898, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V16, P298
1898, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V18, P49
1900, PFLUGERS ARCH PHYSL, V82, P559
1900, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V24, P1
1901, DTSCH AUSGABE, P154
1901, DTSCH AUSGABE, P377
1901, DTSCH AUSGABE, P391
1901, DTSCH AUSGABE, P399
1901, DTSCH AUSGABE, P435
1902, ERGEBN PHYSL JAHRG 1, P905
1902, ERGEBN PHYSL JAHRG 1, V1, P896
1902, PHYSL PSYCHOL, V2, P207
1902, PHYSL PSYCHOL, V3, CH19
1903, ERGEBN PHYSL JAHRG 2, V2, P726
1903, ERGEBN PHYSL JAHRG 2, V2, P758
1903, P ROYAL SOC, V71, P71
1903, PFLUGERS ARCH GES PH, V94, P347
1903, PFLUGERS ARCH, V94, P533
1904, BER K EXP PSYCHOL, P45
1905, ERGEBN PHYSL JAHRG, V4, P517
1905, ERGEBN PHYSL JAHRG, V4, P553
1905, ERGEBN PHYSL, V4, P797
1905, PFLUGERS ARCH PHYSL, V110, P465
1905, PFLUGERS ARCH, V106, P93
1905, PFLUGERS ARCH, V110, P437
1905, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V38, P135
1905, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V38, P81
1905, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V41, P28
1905, ZENTRALBL PHYSL, V19, P453
1906, ZENTRALBL PHYSL, V20, P553
1907, FALSCHE LICHT NETZHA, P141
1907, GRUND RISS PSYCHOL
1907, GRUNDRISS PSYCHOL
1907, PFLUGERS ARCH GES PH, V119, P165
1907, PFLUGERS ARCH, V117, P473
1907, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V42, P109
BALDWIN JM, 1895, PSYCHOL REV, V2, P244
BARTH JA, 1905, POPULARE SCHRIFTEN, P411
BIEHL C, 1908, OBERSTEINER NEURO, V15
BOLTZMANN L, MAN VERGLEICHE ALS G
BONNIER B, PERCEPTION VISUELLE, P308
CORDS R, 1907, PFLUGERS ARCH, V119, P54
DEUTICKE F, 1907, SUBJEKTIVE HORERSCHE
DEUTICKE F, 1908, SUBJEKTIVE HORERSCHE
DOVE HW, 1865, MONATSBER BERL AKAD, P129
DUBOIS, 1865, ARCH PHYSL, P629
DUBOIS, 1868, VIERTELIJAHRSSCHR PS, P38
DUBOIS, 1882, ARCH PHYSL
DUBOIS, 1886, ANAL EMPFINDUNGEN, P92
DUBOIS, 1887, ARCH PHYSL S, P113
DUBOIS, 1906, ANAL EMPFINDUNGEN, P176
DUBOIS, 1906, SITZUNGSBER WIENER A, V115, P633
DUVAL M, 1887, COMPT REND SOC BIOL, P763
EXNER S, 1875, SITZUNGSBERICHTE AKA, V72, P156
EXNER S, 1886, PFLUGERS ARCH, V38, P217
FERE C, 1887, COMPT REND SOC BIOL, P747
GRAEFESAEMISCH, HDB GES AUGENHEIKUND, V3, CH12
GRAEFESAEMISCH, TONFREIEN WECHSCLWIR, P115
HEKMA E, 1907, FOLIA NEUROBIOLOGICA, P30
HERING E, AUSFUBRUNGEN, P114
HERING E, 1877, STIZUNGSBER WIENER A, V75, P101
HERMANN, ADAPTATION TEMPERATU, P417
HERMANN, 1880, HDB PHYSL, V3, P414
HERMANN, 1880, HDB PHYSL, V3, P424
HERMANN, 1880, HDB PHYSL, V3, P425
HERMANN, 1880, HDB PHYSL, V3, P439
HEYMANS G, 1896, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V2, P221
HEYMANS G, 1896, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V2, P420
HEYMANS G, 1898, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V14, P101
HOEFER P, 1906, PFLUGERS ARCH GES PH, V115, P483
HOEFER P, 1906, PFLUGERS ARCH GES PH, V115, P506
HOFLER A, 1896, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V10, P99
HOLTZ W, 1893, UNMITTELBAREN GROSSE, P159
HOPPE J, 1879, SCHEINBEWEGUNGEN
HOPPE J, 1894, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V7, P29
LEEGAARD, 1894, DTSCH ARCH KLIN MED, V48, P207
LIPPS T, 1898, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V15, P132
MACH E, 1875, BEZIEHUNG ZWISCHEN S
MACH E, 1904, ANAL EMPFINGUNGEN, P98
MULLER J, HDB PHYSL, V2, P371
MULLERLYER, 1889, ARCH PHYSL Z, P263
NAGEL, HDB PHYSL, V3, P647
NAGEL, HDB PHYSL, V3, P671
NAGEL, 1906, HDB PHYSL, V4, P1
OPPEL JJ, 1856, POGG ANN PHYS CHEM, V99, P540
PAULHAN F, 1888, REC SCI 3, V16, P263
PAWLOW JP, 1904, ARCH SCI BIOL, P81
PLATEAU, 1849, B ACAD ROY BRUXELLES, V16, P30
PLATEAU, 1849, POGGENDORFS ANN, V80, P150
RAGGI A, 1887, REND R I LOMB 2, V20, P269
REICHEL C, 1898, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V18, P49
REICHEL C, 1898, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V18, P59
SANTEDESANCTIS, 1895, FENOMENI CONTRASTO P
SCHUMANN F, 1889, NACHR GESELLSCH WISS, P536
SCHUMANN F, 1900, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V24, P1
STERN LW, 1894, Z PSYCHOL, V7, P321
THUNBERG T, 1894, ADAPTATIONSERSCHEINU, V30
URBANTSCHITSCH V, 1887, ANZ GESELLSCH ARZTE, P171
URBANTSCHITSCH V, 1897, Z OHRENHEILKD, V31, P234
VIERORDT K, 1877, GRUNDRISS PHYSL, P355
VONGOLDSCHEIDER, ARCH OHRENHEILKUNDE, V25, P280
VONHELMHOLTZ H, PHYSL OPTIK, P571
VONHELMHOLTZ H, PHYSL OPTIK, P714
VONHELMHOLTZ H, 1856, PHYSL OPTIK, P619
VONHELMHOLTZ H, 1885, PHYSL OPTIK, P714
VONNAGEL W, 1905, HDB PHYSL HERAUSG, V3, P237
VORSTETLUNGS, 1898, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V18, P49
WAGNER R, 1846, HANDWORTERBUCH PHYSL, V3, P553
WEBER EH, TASTSINN GEMEINGEFUH
WUNDT, 1894, PHILOS STUDIEN, V10, P532
NR 152
TC 2
PU SPRINGER
PI NEW YORK
PA 233 SPRING STREET, NEW YORK, NY 10013 USA
SN 0365-267X
J9 ARCH GESAMTE PHYSIOL MENSCHEN
PD MAR
PY 1908
VL 122
IS 1/3
BP 98
EP 118
PG 21
SC Physiology
GA V04CE
UT ISI:000200276000003
ER

PT J
AU Komatsu, K
AF Komatsu, Koji
TI Emergence of Young Children's Presentational Self in Daily Conversation and Its Semiotic Foundation
SO HUMAN DEVELOPMENT
LA English
DT Article
DE Conversation; Gestalt quality; Self; Semiotic mediation; Young children
ID EXPERIENCES
AB In this article, I take a relational and discursive perspective on young children's self observed in daily natural conversations, and consider the process of semiotic mediation in the observer's recognition. Based on the ideas of co-construction of relationships and identities in conversation, and using excerpts of dialogues between a young child and her mother that deal with the child's experiences at daycare center (hoikuen in Japan) recorded during their car rides, I present how the self of young children in relation to others appears to observers. I regard this genre of self - 'presentational self' - as a kind of Gestalt quality appearing in the act of positioning and in the configuration of the child and others presented through the conversation. As a basis of this process, I will discuss the semiotically mediated process of differentiation in 2 aspects of the conversation: first, in the process of conversation when the children and the partners make further extensions of what is shared, and second, in the array of self and others as exposed in the conversation. Copyright (C) 2010 S. Karger AG, Basel
C1 Osaka Kyoiku Univ, Fac Educ, Osaka 5430054, Japan.
RP Komatsu, K, Osaka Kyoiku Univ, Fac Educ, 4 88 Minami Kawahoricho, Osaka 5430054, Japan.
EM komatsu@cc.osaka-kyoiku.ac.jp
CR AUKRUST V, 2002, TALKING ADULTS CONTR, P55
AUKRUST VG, 2001, HUM DEV, V44, P235
BAKHTIN MM, 1981, DIALOGIC IMAGINATION, P259
BLUMKULKA S, 1997, DINNER TALK CULTURAL
DAMON W, 1988, SELF UNDERSTANDING C
DUBOIS S, 2001, HDB DISCOURSE ANAL, P282
EISENBERG AR, 1985, DISCOURSE PROCESS, V8, P177
FIVUSH R, 1993, MINN SYM CHILD PSYCH, V26, P39
FIVUSH R, 1995, J EXP CHILD PSYCHOL, V60, P32
FIVUSH R, 2003, AUTOBIOGRAPHICAL MEM, P149
GOFFMAN E, 1959, PRESENTATION SELF EV
HARRE R, 1999, POSITIONING THEORY, P1
HARRE R, 2003, SELF OTHERS POSITION, P1
HARTER S, 1999, CONSTRUCTION SELF DE
HARTER S, 2003, HDB SELF IDENTITY, P610
HEATH SB, 1983, WAYS WORDS LANGUAGE
HERMANS HJM, 1998, AM PSYCHOL, V53, P1111
HUDSON JA, 1990, KNOWING REMEMBERING, P166
JOSEPHS IE, 1999, ACTION SELF DEV, P257
KOMATSU K, CROSSING BO IN PRESS
KOMATSU K, 2000, JPN J EDUC PSYCHOL, V48, P481
KOMATSU K, 2003, JAPANESE J DEV PSYCH, V14, P294
KOMATSU K, 2006, JAPANESE J DEV PSYCH, V17, P115
KOMATSU K, 2008, 20 BIENN M INT SOC S
KUSENBACH M, 2003, ETHNOGRAPHY, V4, P455
LEVINE P, 2007, FAMILY TALK DISCOURS, P263
MARKUS HR, 1991, PSYCHOL REV, V98, P224
MARKUS HR, 1997, CONCEPTUAL SELF CONT
MEINONG A, 1983, ASSUMPTIONS
MIDDLETON D, 2005, STUDIES REMEMBERING
MILLER PJ, 1992, MERRILL PALMER QUART, V38, P45
NELSON K, 2003, AUTOBIOGRAPHICAL MEM, P3
NELSON KD, 2004, PSYCHOL REV, V111, P486, DOI 10.1037/0033-295X.111.2.486
NORRICK NR, 2000, CONVERSATIONAL NARRA
PREECE A, 1987, J CHILD LANG, V14, P353
ROMMETVEIT R, 1992, DIALOGICAL ALTERNATI, P19
TANNEN D, 1989, TALKING VOICES REPET
TANNEN D, 2007, FAMILY TALK DISCOURS
TRACY K, 2002, EVERYDAY TALK BUILDI
TURNER VW, 1969, RITUAL PROCESS STRUC
VALSINER J, 2001, HUM DEV, V44, P84
VALSINER J, 2007, C CULT SELF CHEMN
VALSINER J, 2007, CULTURE MINDS SOC FD
VANLANGENHOVE L, 1999, POSITIONING THEORY M, P14
VONEHRENFELS C, 1988, FDN GESTALT THEORY, P121
VONEHRENFELS C, 1988, FDN GESTALT THEORY, P82
WILEY AR, 1998, CHILD DEV, V69, P833
NR 47
TC 1
PU KARGER
PI BASEL
PA ALLSCHWILERSTRASSE 10, CH-4009 BASEL, SWITZERLAND
SN 0018-716X
J9 HUM DEVELOP
JI Hum. Dev.
PY 2010
VL 53
IS 4
BP 208
EP 228
DI 10.1159/000320047
PG 21
SC Psychology, Developmental
GA 661IN
UT ISI:000282719600004
ER

PT J
AU Hamburger, K
Hansen, T
AF Hamburger, Kai
Hansen, Thorsten
TI Analysis of individual variations in the classical horizontal-vertical illusion
SO ATTENTION PERCEPTION & PSYCHOPHYSICS
LA English
DT Article
ID OPTICAL ILLUSIONS; KNOWLEDGE; PERCEPTION; BISECTION; SPACE; EYE
AB In the horizontal-vertical illusion (HVI), the length of the vertical line is overestimated, whereas in the bisection illusion (BI), the horizontal bisecting line is expected to be overestimated. Here, only half of our 22 observers showed the expected BI, whereas the other half underestimated the bisecting line. Observers also differed in their judgments of the strength of the HVI: The HVI was stronger for observers showing the classical bisection effect, and weaker or absent for those underestimating the bisecting line. To account for these results, we used a linear model to individually estimate the strength of two putative factors underlying both illusions. Whereas the strength of the HVI and BI were highly correlated, the estimated factors were uncorrelated. Therefore, in two control experiments, we then measured the pure horizontal-vertical (pHVI) and bisection (pBI) illusions. A significant correlation between the estimated factors and the measured illusion variants was found. Results were robust against variations of contrast, repetitive presentations, and choice of adjusted line. Thus, the classical HVI as an additive combination of two independent factors was confirmed, but we found considerable interindividual variations in the strength of the illusions. The results stress the importance of analyzing individual data rather than taking sample means for understanding these illusions.
C1 [Hamburger, Kai] Univ Giessen, Fachbereich 06, Abt Allgemeine Psychol & Kognit Forsch, D-35394 Giessen, Germany.
RP Hamburger, K, Univ Giessen, Fachbereich 06, Abt Allgemeine Psychol & Kognit Forsch, Otto Behaghel Str 10F, D-35394 Giessen, Germany.
EM kai.hamburger@psychol.uni-giessen.de
FU German Science Foundation [885/1]
FX This research was supported by the German Science Foundation (Graduate Program "Neural Representation and Action Control-NeuroAct" 885/1). Parts of the results have been reported in abstract form (Hamburger, Hansen, & Gegenfurtner, 2006). We thank Karl R. Gegenfurtner and Lothar Spillmann for valuable comments and discussions. Correspondence concerning this article may be addressed to K. Hamburger, Justus-Liebig-Universitat Giessen, Fachbereich 06, Abteilung Allgemeine Psychologie und Kognitionsforschung, Otto-Behaghel-Strasse 10F, 35394 Giessen, Germany (e-mail: kai.hamburger@psychol.uni-giessen.de).
CR ARMSTRONG L, 1997, PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS, V59, P1200
AVERY GC, 1969, J EXP PSYCHOL, V81, P376
BRAINARD DH, 1997, SPATIAL VISION, V10, P433
BROSVIC GM, 1988, PERCEPT MOTOR SKILL, V67, P463
CHAPANIS A, 1967, PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS, V2, P249
DAY RH, 1970, J EXP PSYCHOL, V83, P172
DEREGOWSKI J, 1972, J EXP PSYCHOL, V95, P14
EBBINGHAUS H, 1913, GRUNDZUGE PHYSL, V1
FELLEMAN DJ, 1991, CEREB CORTEX, V1, P1
FICK A, 1851, ERRONE QUODAM OPTIC
FICK A, 1852, Z RATION MED, V2, P83
FINGER FW, 1947, J EXP PSYCHOL, V37, P243
GARDNER RW, 1960, PERCEPT MOTOR SKILL, V10, P107
GARDNER RW, 1960, PERCEPT MOTOR SKILL, V10, P47
GENTAZ E, 2004, PSYCHON B REV, V11, P31
GREGORY RL, 1968, P ROY SOC LOND B BIO, V171, P279
GREGORY RL, 1997, PHILOS T R SOC B, V352, P1121
GREGORY RL, 1997, TRENDS COGN SCI, V1, P190
GREGORY RL, 2001, NATURE, V410, P21
HAMBURGER K, 2006, BEITRAGE, V9, P135
HAMBURGER K, 2007, VISION RES, V47, P3276, DOI 10.1016/j.visres.2007.09.004
HELLER MA, 1993, PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS, V53, P422
HELLER MA, 1997, PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS, V59, P1297
KOFFKA K, 1999, PRINCIPLES GESTALT P
KUNNAPAS TM, 1955, J EXP PSYCHOL, V49, P134
KUNNAPAS TM, 1957, ACTA PSYCHOL, V13, P35
KUNNAPAS TM, 1958, ACTA PSYCHOL, V14, P131
KUNNAPAS TM, 1959, J PSYCHOL, V47, P41
MCBRIDE SA, 1987, PERCEPT MOTOR SKILL, V64, P943
MILLAR S, 2000, PERCEPTION, V29, P481
OPPEL JJ, 1855, JAHRESBERICHT FRANKF, P37
PAN S, 1934, N C J PSYCHOL NAT CE, V1, P125
PELLI DG, 1997, SPATIAL VISION, V10, P437
PIAGET J, 1961, ARCH PSYCHOL, V38, P23
PRINZMETAL W, 1993, PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS, V53, P81
RAUDSEPP J, 2005, PERCEPTION, V34, P421, DOI 10.1068/p5073
ROCKLAND KS, 1979, BRAIN RES, V179, P3
SCHUMANN F, 1900, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V24, P1
SILLITO A, 1995, ARTFUL EYE, P294
VANESSEN DC, 1985, CEREB CORTEX, V3, P259
WESTHEIMER G, 2008, VISION RES, V48, P2128, DOI 10.1016/j.visres.2008.05.016
NR 41
TC 1
PU PSYCHONOMIC SOC INC
PI AUSTIN
PA 1710 FORTVIEW RD, AUSTIN, TX 78704 USA
SN 1943-3921
J9 ATTEN PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS
JI Atten. Percept. Psychophys.
PD MAY
PY 2010
VL 72
IS 4
BP 1045
EP 1052
DI 10.3758/APP.72.4.1045
PG 8
SC Psychology; Psychology, Experimental
GA 653DJ
UT ISI:000282067100016
ER

PT J
AU Ross, J
AF Ross, Jacob
TI The Irreducibility of Personal Obligation
SO JOURNAL OF PHILOSOPHICAL LOGIC
LA English
DT Article
DE Personal obligation; Impersonal obligation; Meinong-Chisholm reduction; Ought; Deontic paradoxes
AB It is argued that claims about personal obligation (of the form "s ought to I center dot") cannot be reduced to claims about impersonal obligation (of the form "it ought to be the case that p"). The most common attempts at such a reduction are shown to have unacceptable implications in cases involving a plurality of agents. It is then argued that similar problems will face any attempt to reduce personal obligation to impersonal obligation.
C1 Univ So Calif, Sch Philosophy, Los Angeles, CA 90029 USA.
RP Ross, J, Univ So Calif, Sch Philosophy, 3709 Trousdale Pkwy, Los Angeles, CA 90029 USA.
EM jacobmro@usc.edu
CR ANDERSON A, 1962, RATIO, V4, P32
AQVIST L, 1967, NOUS, V1, P361
BELNAP N, 2001, FACING FUTURE AGENTS
BROOME J, BROWN U U STOC UNPUB
CASTENEDA H, 1981, PARADOXES DEONTIC LO, P37
CHISHOLM RM, 1964, AM PHILOS Q, V1, P147
DANIELSSON S, 2000, THEORIA-SPAIN, V66, P97
DANIELSSON S, 2005, THEORIA-SPAIN, V71, P20
FOLLESDAL D, 1971, DEONTIC LOGIC INTRO, P1
HANSSON B, 1969, NOUS, V3, P373
HORTY J, 2001, AGENCY DEONTIC LOGIC
HORTY JF, 1996, SYNTHESE, V108, P269
JACKSON F, 1986, PHILOS REV, V95, P233
JONES AJI, 1996, J IGPL, V4, P429
KANGER S, 1957, NEW FDN ETHICAL THEO, P36
LEWIS D, 1973, COUNTERFACTUALS
MEINONG A, 1917, EMOTIONAL PRESENTATI
PARFIT D, 1999, PHILOS TOPICS, V26, P217
PASKE G, 1990, J VALUE INQUIRY, V24, P315
ROSS A, 1941, THEORIA-SPAIN, V7, P53
ROSS J, 2009, CONDITIONAL ANAL PER
SCHROEDER M, 2010, OUGHTS AGENTS ACTION
WILLIAMS B, 1981, HIS MORAL LUCK, P114
WILLIAMS B, 1985, ETHICS LIMITS PHILOS
ZIMMERMAN J, 1996, CONCEPT MORAL OBLIGA
NR 25
TC 1
PU SPRINGER
PI DORDRECHT
PA VAN GODEWIJCKSTRAAT 30, 3311 GZ DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0022-3611
J9 J PHIL LOGIC
JI J. Philos. Log.
PD JUN
PY 2010
VL 39
IS 3
BP 307
EP 323
DI 10.1007/s10992-010-9125-7
PG 17
SC Philosophy
GA 593CW
UT ISI:000277430700004
ER

PT J
AU Reisenzein, R
Mchitarjan, I
AF Reisenzein, Rainer
Mchitarjan, Irina
TI "The teacher who had the greatest influence on my thinking" - Tracing Meinong's influence on Heider
SO SOCIAL PSYCHOLOGY
LA English
DT Article
DE attribution; common-sense psychology; Heider; history of psychology; Meinong
ID RESPONSIBILITY; ATTRIBUTION
AB According to Heider, some of his ideas about common-sense psychology presented in The Psychology of Interpersonal Relations (Heider, 1958) originally came from his academic teacher, Alexius Meinong. However, Heider makes no reference to Meinong, in his book. To clarify Meinong's influence oil Heider, we compare Heider's explication of common-sense psychology with Meinong's writings, in particular those on ethics. Our results confirm that Heider's common-sense psychology is informed by Meinong's psychological analyses in several respects: Heider adopts aspects of Meinong's theory of emotion, his theory of value, and his theory of responsibility attribution. In addition, Heider more or less continues Meinong's method of psychological inquiry. Thus, even without Meinong's name attached, many aspects of Meinong's psychology found their way into today's social psychology via Heider. Unknowingly, some of us have been Meinongians all along.
C1 [Reisenzein, Rainer] Ernst Moritz Arndt Univ Greifswald, Inst Psychol, D-17489 Greifswald, Germany.
RP Reisenzein, R, Ernst Moritz Arndt Univ Greifswald, Inst Psychol, Franz Mehring Str 47, D-17489 Greifswald, Germany.
EM rainer.reisenzein@uni-greifswald.de
CR BRENTANO F, 1874, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN, V1
CHRUDZIMSKI A, 2007, GEGENSTANDSTHEORIE T
EATON HO, 1930, AUSTRIAN PHILOSOPHV
EHRENFELS C, 1897, SYSTEM WERTTHEORIE
FABIAN R, 1986, AUSTRIAN EC HIST PHI, P37
FINCHAM FD, 1980, ADV EXPT SOCIAL PSYC, V13, P81
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
GARRETT HE, 1939, PSYCHOL REV, V46, P517
HARVEY JH, 1976, NEW DIRECTIONS ATTRI, V1
HEIDER F, 1920, THESIS U GRAZ
HEIDER F, 1926, SYMPOSION, V1, P109
HEIDER F, 1944, AM J PSYCHOL, V57, P234
HEIDER F, 1944, PSYCHOL REV, V51, P358
HEIDER F, 1946, J PSYCHOL, V21, P107
HEIDER F, 1958, PSYCHOL INTERPERSONA
HEIDER F, 1970, J HIST BEHAV SCI, V6, P131
HEIDER F, 1983, LIFE PSYCHOL AUTOBIO
HEIDER F, 1987, NOTEBOOKS, V1
HEIDER F, 1988, NOTEBOOKS, V5
HOFLER A, 1897, PSYCHOLOGIE
KINDINGER R, 1968, A MEINONG GESAMTAUSG, V3, R7
LAMBERT K, 1995, PHILOS STUDIEN, V49, P129
LAUCKEN U, 1999, BERICHTE I ERFORSCHU, V31
LEWIN K, 1936, PRINCIPLES TOPOLOGIC
MACKENZIE JS, 1895, MIND, V4, P425
MCGRAW KM, 1987, J PERS SOC PSYCHOL, V53, P247
MEINONG A, 1894, PSYCHOL ETHISCHE UNT
MEINONG A, 1906, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V6, P22
MEINONG A, 1906, ERFAHRUNGSGRUNDLAGEN
MEINONG A, 1912, LOGOS, V3, P1
MEINONG A, 1917, SITZUNGBERICHTE K PH, V183, P2
MEINONG A, 1919, BEITRAGE PADAGOGIK D, V60, P33
MEINONG A, 1923, GRUNDLEGUNG ALLGEMEI
MEINONG A, 1977, A MEINONG GESAMTAUGA, V4
MEYER WJ, 1997, J OFFENDER REHABILIT, V25, P1
MULLIGAN K, 2003, PHILOS LOGIC SEARCH, P193
PERRY W, 1926, GEN THEORY VALUE
PIAGET J, 1932, MORAL JUDGEMENT CHIL
REICHER ME, 2005, MARKT WERT GEFUHLE P
REISENZEIN R, 2003, EINFUHRUNG EMOTIONSP, V3
REISENZEIN R, 2008, SOC PSYCHOL, V39, P125, DOI 10.1027/1864-9335.39.3.125
RUSSELL B, 1904, MIND, V13, P204
RUSSELL B, 1904, MIND, V13, P336
RUSSELL B, 1904, MIND, V13, P509
SATRIS S, 1982, J HIST IDEAS, V43, P109
SCHONPFLUG W, 2007, K LEWIN PERSON WERK
SCHONPFLUG W, 2008, SOC PSYCHOL, V39, P134, DOI 10.1027/1864-9335.39.3.134
SHAW ME, 1964, J ABNORMAL SOCIAL PS, V69, P39
SMITH M, 1989, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC S, V63, P89
URBAN WM, 2009, VALUATION ITS NATURE
WEINER B, 1985, PSYCHOL BULL, V97, P74
WEINER B, 1995, JUDGEMENTS RESPONSIB
WEINER B, 2006, SOCIAL MOTIVATION JU
WERNER MH, 2002, HDB ETHIK, P521
WITASEK S, 2008, GRUNDLINEN PSYCHOL
NR 55
TC 1
PU HOGREFE & HUBER PUBLISHERS
PI GOTTINGEN
PA ROHNSWEG 25, D-37085 GOTTINGEN, GERMANY
SN 1864-9335
J9 SOC PSYCHOL
JI Soc. Psychol.
PY 2008
VL 39
IS 3
BP 141
EP 150
DI 10.1027/1864-9335.39.3.141
PG 10
SC Psychology, Social
GA 337QG
UT ISI:000258450000004
ER

PT J
AU Thompson, B
AF Thompson, Brad
TI Representationalism and the argument from hallucination
SO PACIFIC PHILOSOPHICAL QUARTERLY
LA English
DT Article
ID DIRECT REALISM; PERCEPTION; REID
AB Representationalism is sometimes advertised as providing a novel response to the argument from hallucination, one that accepts the presence of a 'common factor' between veridical and hallucinatory experience without positing sensory intermediaries between the mind and the world. I argue that much of the attractiveness of representationalism stems from a failure in the literature to distinguish between two distinct possible versions of representationalism, what I call 'content-based representationalism' and 'vehicle-based representationalism'. Generically, representationalism appears to have a response to the argument from hallucination that avoids a commitment to qualia or sense-data. But once the distinction between content-based representationalism and vehicle-based representationalism is recognized, this response to the argument from hallucination fails.
C1 So Methodist Univ, Dept Philosophy, Dallas, TX 75275 USA.
RP Thompson, B, So Methodist Univ, Dept Philosophy, Dallas, TX 75275 USA.
CR ANSCOMBE GEM, 1965, ANAL PHILOS 2 SERIES
AUSTIN J, 1962, SENSE SENSIBILIA
BONJOUR L, 2004, PHILOS PHENOMEN RES, V69, P349
BRENTANO F, 1874, PSYCHOL EMPIRICAL ST
BREWER B, 1999, PERCEPTION REASON
BROAD CD, 1923, SCI THOUGHT
BYRNE A, 2002, DONT PANIC TYES INTE
CHALMERS D, 2004, FUTURE PHILOS
COPENHAVER R, 2004, BRIT J HIST PHILOS, V12, P61
CRANE T, 1992, CONTENTS EXPERIENCE
CRANE T, 2005, STANFORD ENCY PHILOS
CUMMINS R, 1990, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V50, P755
DENNETT D, 1991, CONSCIOUSNESS EXPLAI
DRETSKE F, 1995, NATURALIZING MIND
DRETSKE F, 2003, PHILOS ISSUES, V13, P67
GUNTHER Y, 2003, ESSAYS NONCONCEPTUAL
HARMAN G, 1990, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V4, P31
HEIL J, 1993, MENTAL CAUSATION
HILBERT D, 2004, PHILOS STUD, V120, P185
HINTIKKA J, 1969, MODELS MODALITIES
HINTON JM, 1967, MIND, V76, P217
HORGAN T, 2002, PHILOS MIND CLASSICA
HUEMER M, 2001, SKEPTICISM VEIL PERC
JACKSON F, 1977, PERCEPTION REPRESENT
JOHNSTON M, 2004, PHILOS STUD, V120, P113
LOAR B, 2003, REFLECTIONS REPLIES
LYCAN W, 1996, CONSCIOUSNESS EXPERI
LYCAN W, 2001, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V15, P17
MARTIN MGF, 2004, PHILOS STUD, V120, P37
MCDOWELL J, 1982, P BRIT ACAD, V68, P455
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
MOORE GE, 1957, BRIT PHILOS MID CENT, P203
PAPPAS G, 1989, NOUS, V23, P155
PAPPAS G, 1990, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V50, P763
PITT D, 2004, PHILOS PHENOMEN RES, V69, P1
PRICE HH, 1932, PERCEPTION
REID T, 1997, INQUIRY HUMAN MIND P
REYNOLDS SL, 2000, NOUS, V34, P604
ROBINSON H, 1994, PERCEPTION
RUSSELL B, 1927, ANAL MATTER
SHOEMAKER S, 2003, PHILOS ISSUES, V13, P253
SIEGEL S, 2006, PERCEPTUAL EXPERIENC
SIEWERT C, 1998, SIGNIFICANCE CONSCIO
SMITH AD, 2002, PROBLEM PERCEPTION
SNOWDON P, 1982, P BRIT ACAD, V68, P455
STICH S, 1994, MENTAL REPRESENTATIO
TYE M, 1995, 10 PROBLEMS CONSCIOU
TYE M, 2000, COLOR CONSCIOUSNESS
TYE M, 2002, PANIC NOT PANIC
VALBERG JJ, 1992, PUZZLE EXPERIENCE
VANCLEVE J, 2004, CAMBRIDGE COMPANION
NR 51
TC 1
PU BLACKWELL PUBLISHING
PI OXFORD
PA 9600 GARSINGTON RD, OXFORD OX4 2DQ, OXON, ENGLAND
SN 0279-0750
J9 PAC PHIL QUART
JI Pac. Philos. Q.
PD SEP
PY 2008
VL 89
IS 3
BP 384
EP 412
PG 29
SC Philosophy
GA 339VZ
UT ISI:000258606700007
ER

PT J
AU Fernandez, J
AF Fernandez, Jordi
TI Memory, past and self
SO SYNTHESE
LA English
DT Article
DE intentionality; phenomenology; memory; time; self
AB The purpose of this essay is to determine how we should construe the content of memories. First, I distinguish two features of memory that a construal of mnemic content should respect. These are the 'attribution of pastness' feature (a subject is inclined to believe of those events that she remembers that they happened in the past) and the 'attribution of existence' feature (a subject is inclined to believe that she existed at the time that those events that she remembers took place). Next, I distinguish two kinds of theories of memory, which I call 'perceptual' and 'self-based' theories. I argue that those theories that belong to the first kind but not the second one have trouble accommodating the attribution of existence. And theories that belong to the second kind but not the first one leave the attribution of pastness unexplained. I then discuss two different theories that are both perceptual and self-based, which I eventually reject. Finally, I propose a perceptual, self-based theory that can account for both the attribution of pastness and the attribution of past existence.
C1 Macquarie Univ, Dept Philosophy, Sydney, NSW 2109, Australia.
RP Fernandez, J, Macquarie Univ, Dept Philosophy, W6A Bldg,Floor 7, Sydney, NSW 2109, Australia.
EM jfernandez@scmp.mq.edu.au
CR ANISFELD M, 1968, J EXP PSYCHOL, V77, P171
BADDELEY AD, 1982, PSYCHOL REV, V89, P708
BROWN NR, 1985, COGNITIVE PSYCHOL, V17, P139
GIBSON JJ, 1979, ECOLOGICAL APPROACH
GLENBERG AM, 1980, J EXPT PSYCHOL HUMAN, V6, P355
GLENBERG AM, 1983, J EXP PSYCHOL LEARN, V9, P231
GODDEN DR, 1975, BRIT J PSYCHOL, V66, P325
HINRICHS JV, 1970, J EXPT PSYCHOL GEN, V108, P356
HUME D, 1978, TREATISE HUMAN NATUR
HUSSERL E, 1964, PHENOMENOLOGY INTERN
JACOBY LL, 1981, J EXPT PSYCHOL GENER, V110, P306
MARTIN MGF, 2001, TIME MEMORY ISSUES
MEINONG A, 1973, EMPIRICAL KNOWLEDGE
MORTON J, 1968, PSYCHON SCI, V10, P219
REID T, 1994, INQUIRY ESSAYS
RUSSELL B, 1921, ANAL MIND
TULVING E, 1972, ORG MEMORY
NR 17
TC 1
PU SPRINGER
PI DORDRECHT
PA VAN GODEWIJCKSTRAAT 30, 3311 GZ DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0039-7857
J9 SYNTHESE
JI Synthese
PD JAN
PY 2008
VL 160
IS 1
BP 103
EP 121
DI 10.1007/s11229-006-9104-2
PG 19
SC History & Philosophy Of Science
GA 244OK
UT ISI:000251875000010
ER

PT J
AU ter Hark, M
AF ter Hark, Michel
TI Popper, Otto Selz and Meinong's 'Gegenstandstheorie' (Sir Karl Popper, A. Meinong)
SO ARCHIV FUR GESCHICHTE DER PHILOSOPHIE
LA English
DT Editorial Material
AB In this article it is argued that Popper's well-known deductive and falsificationistic epistemology is historically rooted in German psychology, notably the work of Otto Selz. Drawing on Popper's early and still unpublished psychological manuscripts it is shown how Otto Selz's psychology of thinking with its emphasis on the guiding role of schematic anticipations gave the impetus to Popper's theory of problem solving, his theory of the Searchlight, and its attendant rejection of empiricism, the so-called Bucket theory of knowledge. In the second part of the article it is argued that Selz's theory of schematic anticipations is rooted in Meinong's Gegen-standstheorie. Because Meinong's theory was partly an attempt to do justice to the objectivity of thinking, this may explain why the anti-psychologist Popper felt nevertheless attracted to the psychology of Selz.
CR ADLER A, 1927, UNDERSTANDING HUMAN
BAHLE J, 1930, PSYCHOL MUSIKALISCHE
BECKER A, 2001, ADV GLOB CHANGE RES, V9, P3
BERGMANN G, 1952, PHILOS Q, V2, P140
BERKSON W, 1984, LEARNING ERROR
BOHLERK, 2007, TATSACHEN PROBLEM PS
BUHLER K, 1927, KRISE PSYCHOL
DEGROOT AD, 1965, THOUGHT CHOICE CHESS
DUNCKER K, 1945, PROBLEM SOLVING
FINDLAY JN, 1933, MEINONG THEORY OBJEC
FRIJDA N, 1980, O SELZ HIS CONTRIBUT
HACOHEN M, 2000, K POPPER FORMATIVE Y
HUMPHREY G, 1951, THINKING
LINDENFELD D, 1980, TRANSFORMATION POSIT
MEINONG A, 1877, HUME STUDIEN, V1
MEINONG A, 1882, HUME STUDIEN, V2
MEINONG D, 1899, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V21, P183
MEINONG D, 1910, ANNAHMEN, V1
MUNCH D, 1997, E HUSSERL WURZBURGER
OGDEN RM, 1923, AM J PSYCHOL, V34, P223
POPPER K, 1927, GEWOHNHEIT GESETZERL
POPPER K, 1928, THESIS U VIENNA
POPPER K, 1931, QUELLE, V81, P607
POPPER K, 1935, LOGIC SCI DISCOVER
POPPER K, 1935, LOGIC SCI DISCOVERY
POPPER K, 1972, BUCKET SEARCHLIGHT 2, P341
POPPER K, 1972, OBJECTIVE KNOWLEDGE, P341
POPPER K, 1974, UNENDED QUEST INTELL
POPPER K, 1979, BEIDEN GRUNDPROBLEME
RUSSELL B, 1904, MIND, V13, P204
RUSSELL B, 1904, MIND, V13, P336
RUSSELL B, 1904, MIND, V13, P509
RUSSELL B, 1973, ESSAYS ANAL, P17
SEEBOHM H, 1970, THESIS U HEIDELBERG
SEEBOHM H, 1980, THESIS U HEIDELBERG
SELZ O, 1910, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V16, P1
SELZ O, 1910, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V16, P1
SELZ O, 1913, GESETZE GEORDNETEN D
SELZ O, 1922, PSYCHOL PRODUKTIVEN
SELZ O, 1924, KURZGEFASSTE DARSTEL, P20
SIMON H, 1980, OTTO SELZ INFORMATIO, P256
TERHARK M, 2002, STUD HIST PHILOS S A, V33, P79
TERHARK M, 2004, POPPER OTTO SELZ RIS
WITASEK S, ZEITSCHRIFT PSYCHOL, V14, P401
NR 44
TC 1
PU WALTER DE GRUYTER & CO
PI BERLIN
PA GENTHINER STRASSE 13, D-10785 BERLIN, GERMANY
SN 0003-9101
J9 ARCH GESCH PHIL
JI Arch. Gesch. Philos.
PY 2007
VL 89
IS 1
BP 60
EP 78
DI 10.1515/AGPH.2007.004
PG 19
SC Philosophy
GA 155OC
UT ISI:000245585700004
ER

PT J
AU Aikin, SF
AF Aikin, Scott F.
TI Pragmatism, naturalism, and phenomenology
SO HUMAN STUDIES
LA English
DT Article
DE naturalism; phenomenology; pragmatism; science
ID DEWEY; SCIENCE
AB Pragmatism's naturalism is inconsistent with the phenomenological tradition's anti-naturalism. This poses a problem for the methodological consistency of phenomenological work in the pragmatist tradition. Solutions such as phenomenologizing naturalism or naturalizing phenomenology have been proposed, but they fail. As a consequence, pragmatists and other naturalists must answer the phenomenological tradition's criticisms of naturalism.
C1 Vanderbilt Univ, Dept Philosophy, Nashville, TN 37240 USA.
RP Aikin, SF, Vanderbilt Univ, Dept Philosophy, 111 Furman Hall, Nashville, TN 37240 USA.
EM scott.f.aikin@vanderbilt.edu
CR ALEXANDER T, 1992, T CS PEIRCE SOC, V28, P203
BAETEN EM, 1996, METAPHILOSOPHY, V27, P408
BONNER KM, 2001, HUM STUD, V24, P267
BOURGEOIS P, 1996, J SPECULATIVE PHILOS, V10, P120
BOURGEOIS PL, 1979, PHILOS TODAY, V4, P329
BOURGEOIS PL, 1996, AM CATH PHILOS QUART, V70, P381
BRANDOM R, 1994, MAKING IT EXPLICIT R
BRANDOM R, 2000, ARTICULATING REASONS
BRENTANO F, 1874, PSYCHOL EMPIRICHEN S
BUCHLER J, 1966, METAPHYSICS NATURAL
BUSCH T, 1979, RES PHENOMENOL, V9, P127
CAPPS J, 1996, T C S PEIRCE SOC, V32, P634
CAPPS J, 2000, J SPECULATIVE PHILOS, V14, P161
COLAPIETRO VM, 1990, J PHILOS, V87, P644
DENNETT D, 1991, CONSCIOUSNESS EXPLAI
DENNETT D, 1995, DARWINS DANGEROUS ID
DEWEY J, 1907, MIDDLE WORKS, V4, P3
DEWEY J, 1925, LATE WORKS, V1
DOUGHERTY CJ, 1979, PHILOS TODAY, V23, P217
EDIE J, 1987, W JAMES PHENOMENOLOG
FODOR J, 1975, LANGUAGE THOUGHT
GOULD SJ, 1984, SCIENCE, V226, P994
GRUN M, 2003, HUMAN STUDIES, V28, P153
HARVEY C, 1989, HUSSERLS PHENOMENOLO
HEELAN PA, 1983, MAN WORLD, V16, P207
HEIDEGGER M, 1927, BEING TIME T J STAMB
HEIDEGGER M, 1953, INTRO METAPHYSICS T
HOBBS C, 2003, STREAMS W JAMES, V5, P8
HOOK S, 1960, SIDNEY HOOK PRAGMATI
HOOK S, 1961, QUEST BEING
HUSSERL E, 1900, LOGICAL INVESTIGATIO
HUSSERL E, 1910, PHENOMENOLOGY CRISIS
HUSSERL E, 1936, PHENOMENOLOGY CRISIS
IHDE D, 1986, EXPT PHENOMENOLOGY
JAMES W, 1977, WRITINGS W JAMES COM
JEANNOT T, 2001, J SPECULATIVE PHILOS, V15, P1
KESSLER GE, 1978, T CS PEIRCE SOC, V14, P101
KESTENBAUM V, 1977, PHENOMENOLOGICAL SEN
KIESEL T, 1997, MAN WORLD, V30, P329
KIM J, 1993, SUPERVENIENCE MIND
LANGER M, 1989, MERLEAU PONTYS PHENO
LEVINAS E, 1981, OTHERWISE THAN BEING
MARGOLIS J, 1999, J SPECULATIVE PHILOS, V13, P221
MARGOLIS J, 2002, REINVENTING PRAGMATI
MARGOLIS J, 2002, T C S PEIRCE SOC, V38, P117
MCDERMOTT J, 1986, STREAMS EXPERIENCE
MCDOWELL J, 1996, MIND WORLD
MEINONG A, 2004, UBER GEGENSTANDSTHEO
MERLEAUPONTY M, 1998, PHENOMENOLOGY PERCEP
MILLIKAN RG, 1993, WHITE QUEEN PSYCHOL
MURPHY A, 1993, T CS PEIRCE SOC, V29, P123
OVERGAARD M, 2004, PHENOMENOLOGY COGNIT, V3, P365
PHILSTROM S, 2002, PHILOS TODAY, V46, P102
PLOTKIN H, 1998, EVOLUTION MIND
POST J, 1987, FACES EXISTENCE ESSA
QUINE WV, 1969, ONTOLOGICAL RELATIVI, P69
RANDALL JH, 1944, NATURALISM HUMAN SPI
RORTY R, 1998, TRUTH PROGR PHILOS P
ROSENBAUM S, 2002, CONVERSATIONS PRAGMA, P63
ROSENTHAL S, 1990, J SPECULATIVE PHILOS, V4, P1
ROSENTHAL S, 1996, METAPHILOSOPHY, V27, P399
SARTRE JP, 1956, BEING NOTHINGNESS
SELINGER E, 2004, HUM STUD, V27, P107
SELLARS W, 1963, SCI PERCEPTION REALI
SHEETSJOHNSTONE M, 1999, PRIMACY MOVEMENT
SIEGFRIED H, 1988, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V48, P505
SONTAG F, 2002, IDEALISTIC STUD, V32, P53
SPIEGELBERG H, 1965, PHENOMENOLOGICAL MOV, V2
STEINBOCK AJ, 1997, HUM STUD, V20, P127
STROKER E, 1997, HUM STUD, V20, P303
STURHR J, 1997, GENEALOGICAL PRAGMAT
SULLIVAN S, 2002, HYPATIA, V17, P201
THOMPSON E, 1999, NATURALIZING PHENOME, P161
TOADVINE T, 1999, PHILOS TODAY S, V43, P124
VARELA F, 1991, EMBODIED MIND COGNTI
WASON PC, 1972, PSYCHOL REASONING ST
WILLSHIRE B, 2000, PRIMAL ROBOTS AM PHI
WILSHIRE B, 1977, T CS PEIRCE SOC, V13, P45
WILSHIRE B, 1997, HUM STUD, V20, P95
WOOD D, 2001, RES PHENOMENOL, V30, P78
ZAHAVI D, 2004, PHENOMENOLOGY COGNIT, V3, P331
NR 81
TC 1
PU SPRINGER
PI DORDRECHT
PA VAN GODEWIJCKSTRAAT 30, 3311 GZ DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0163-8548
J9 HUM STUD
JI Hum. Stud.
PD SEP
PY 2006
VL 29
IS 3
BP 317
EP 340
DI 10.1007/s10746-006-9026-5
PG 24
SC Ethics; Sociology
GA 139SY
UT ISI:000244454100004
ER

PT J
AU Ter Hark, M
AF Ter Hark, Michel
TI Wittgenstein, pretend play and the transferred use of language
SO JOURNAL FOR THE THEORY OF SOCIAL BEHAVIOUR
LA English
DT Article
ID MIND
AB This essay sketches the potential implications of Wittgensteinian thought for conceptualizations of socalled fictive mental states, e.g. mental calculating, imagination, pretend play, as they are currently discussed in developmental psychology and philosophy of mind. In developmental psychology the young child's pretend play and make-belief are seen as a manifestation of the command of an underlying individualistic "theory of mind". When saying "This banana is a telephone" the child's mind entertains simultaneously two mental representations, a primary or veridical representation about the real properties of banana's and a pretend representation. It is the task of psychology to explain how this "double knowledge" does not result in conceptual chaos. Various sorts of internal mechanisms are postulated. In this essay it is argued that the threat of chaos is misconceived, and that the solutions are irrelevant. Following Wittgenstein's sparse remarks about the secondary sense of words, I argue that pretend language does not refer to underlying individual mental representations but to the child's creative transference of words used in one, primary, domain of application to another, secondary domain. The command and use of the secondary domain logically presupposes the command and use of the primary domain. Since the latter domain is necessarily public and social, fictive mental states cannot be dealt with purely individualistically as current mentalism assumes.
C1 Univ Groningen, Fac Philsophy, NL-9712 GL Groningen, Netherlands.
RP Ter Hark, M, Univ Groningen, Fac Philsophy, Oude Boteringestr 52, NL-9712 GL Groningen, Netherlands.
EM M.R.M.ter.Hark@rug.nl
CR ARMSTRONG D, 1968, MAT THEORY MIND
AUSTIN JL, 1964, ESSAYS PHILOS PSYCHO
BARONCOHEN S, 1991, PSYCHIAT CLIN N AM, V14, P33
BUDD M, 1988, WITTGENSTEINS PHILOS
BUHLER K, 1930, MENTAL DEV CHILD
CARPENDALE JIM, 2004, BEHAV BRAIN SCI, V27, P79
CHAPMAN M, 1987, MEANING GROWTH UNDER
CHURCHLAND P, 1984, MATTER CONSCIOUSNESS
CYTOWIC RR, 1989, SYNESTHESIA UNION SE
DIAMOND C, 1991, WITTGENSTEIN REALIST
FODOR JA, 1965, AM PHILOS Q, V2, P281
GEACH P, 1957, MENTAL ACTS
GERMAN TP, 2000, REASONING MIND
GERMAN TP, 2001, BRIT J DEV PSYCHOL 1, V19, P59
HANFLING O, 1991, WITTGENSTEIN CENTENA
HANFLING O, 2002, WITTGENSTEIN HUMAN F
HARRIS PL, 1991, NATURAL THEORIES MIN
HARRIS PL, 1995, MENTAL SIMULATION
HINTIKKA J, 1986, INVESTIGATING WITTGE
LESLIE AM, 1987, PSYCHOL REV, V94, P412
LESLIE AM, 1988, DEV THEORIES MIND
LEUDAR I, 2004, THEOR PSYCHOL, V14, P601, DOI 10.1177/0959354304046175
LILLARD A, 1994, CHILDRENS EARLY UNDE
LILLARD AS, 1993, CHILD DEV, V64, P348
LILLARD AS, 1993, CHILD DEV, V64, P372
LILLARD AS, 1998, CHILD DEV, V69, P981
MCCUNENICOLICH L, 1981, CHILD DEV, V52, P785
MEINONG A, 2001, ANNAHMEN
MONTGOMERY DE, 2002, J COGN DEV, V3, P357, DOI 10.1207/S15327647JCD3,4-01
RACINE T, 2004, SOCIAL INTERACTION D
RICH AN, 2005, COGNITION, V98, P53, DOI 10.1016/j.cognition.2004.11.003
RICHAND AN, 2002, NATURE REV NEUROSCIE, V3, P42
SHARROCK W, 2004, THEOR PSYCHOL, V14, P579, DOI 10.1177/0959354304046174
SKINNER BF, 1957, VERBAL BEHAV
TERHARK MRM, 1990, BEYOND INNER OUTER
TREFFERT DA, 2004, SCI AM, V14, P14
WELLMAN HM, 1990, CHILDS THEORY MIND
WITTGENSTEIN L, 1953, PHILOS INVESTIGATION
WITTGENSTEIN L, 1967, ZETTEL
WITTGENSTEIN L, 1982, LAST WRITINGS PHILOS, V1
WOOLLEY JD, 1995, DEV REV, V15, P172
NR 41
TC 1
PU BLACKWELL PUBLISHING
PI OXFORD
PA 9600 GARSINGTON RD, OXFORD OX4 2DQ, OXON, ENGLAND
SN 0021-8308
J9 J THEOR SOC BEHAV
JI J. Theory Soc. Behav.
PD SEP
PY 2006
VL 36
IS 3
BP 299
EP +
PG 22
SC Psychology, Social
GA 077MB
UT ISI:000240032400005
ER

PT J
AU Romer, H
TI Substance, ordinance and complementarity
SO PHILOSOPHISCHES JAHRBUCH
LA German
DT Article
ID WEAK QUANTUM-THEORY; ENTANGLEMENT; HOMEOPATHY
AB Process Philosophy endeavours to replace the classical ontology of substances by a process ontology centered on notions of changes and transitions. We argue, that the substantial and processual approach are mutually complementary. Here, comptementarity is to be understood in the sense of a Generalized Quantum Theory", which is not restricted to physical phenomena. From this point of view, restricting oneself to either substance or process ontology would be as ill-advised as exclusively relying on position or momentum observables in physics. A new view on Zeno's paradox lends itself. The meaning of an ,,Internal energy observable", complementary to inner time, and its relationship to ,,akaterorial states" of the human mind will also be discussed.
CR ATMANSPACHER H, 1995, PAULIJUNG DIALOG SEI
ATMANSPACHER H, 2002, FOUND PHYS, V32, P379
ATMANSPACHER H, 2004, BIOL CYBERN, V90, P33, DOI 10.1007/s00422-003-0436-4
ATMANSPACHER H, 2006, J MIND BEHAV, V26, P161
ATMANSPACHER H, 2006, QUANTUM THEORY RECON, V3
BORGES JL, 2003, WERKE 20 BANDEN
BROWNING D, 1965, PHILOS PROCESS
GEMMER J, 2001, EUR PHYS J D, V17, P385
JAMES W, 1950, PRINCIPLES PSYCHOL
KIEFER C, 1999, CONCEPTUAL ISSUES QU
MAHLER G, 2004, MIND MATTER, V2, P67
MCTAGGART JE, 1908, MIND, V17, P456
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
PRIMAS H, 2003, MIND MATTER, V1, P81
RESCHER N, 1996, PROCESS METAPHYSICS
RESCHER N, 2000, PROCESS PHILOS SURVE
ROMER H, 2002, PHILOS JAHRB, V109, P354
ROMER H, 2004, MIND MATTER, V2, P105
WALACH H, 2003, FORSCH KOMP KLAS NAT, V10, P192
WALACH H, 2005, J ALTERN COMPLEM MED, V11, P813
WHITEHEAD AN, 1919, ENQUIRY CONCERNING P
WHITEHEAD AN, 1920, CONCEPT NATURE
NR 22
TC 1
PU VERLAG KARL ALBER
PI FREIBURG BREISGAU
PA HERMANN-HERDER-STR 4, 79104 FREIBURG BREISGAU, GERMANY
SN 0031-8183
J9 PHIL JAHRB
JI Philos. Jahrb.
PY 2006
VL 113
IS 1
BP 118
EP 136
PG 19
SC Philosophy
GA 055EA
UT ISI:000238431600007
ER

PT J
AU Chrudzimski, A
TI Three versions of Meinong's logic
SO ZEITSCHRIFT FUR PHILOSOPHISCHE FORSCHUNG
LA German
DT Article
CR ALSTON W, 1958, PHILOS STUD, V9, P8
CHRUDZIMSKI A, 2001, DIALECTICA, V55, P119
CHRUDZIMSKI A, 2004, PHENOMENOLOGY ANAL E, P105
DALE J, 1990, BRENTANO STUDIEN, V3, P177
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
FREGE G, 1879, BEGRIFFSSCHRIFT EINE
GEACH P, 1951, P AR SOC S, V25
GROSSMAN R, 1974, MEINONG
KRIPKE S, 1980, NAMING NECESSITY
LABERT K, 1986, AUFGABEN PHILOS GEGE, P281
LAMBERT K, 1983, MEINONG PRINCIPLE IN
LAMBERT K, 1991, PHILOS APPL FREE LOG
LAMBERT K, 1995, PHILOS STUDIEN, V50, P129
LAMBERT K, 1997, FREE LOGICS THEIR FD
LEJEWSKI C, 1955, BRIT J PHILOS SCI, V5, P104
LEJEWSKI C, 1970, PHYS LOGIC HIST, P173
LEJEWSKI C, 1985, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V25, P209
LEWIS D, 1986, PLURALITY WORLDS
LINSKY B, 1991, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V69, P438
MEINONG A, 1877, GESAMTAUSGABE, V1, P1
MEINONG A, 1971, GESAMTAUSGABE, V2, P481
MEINONG A, 1972, GESAMTAUSGABE, V6
MEINONG A, 1973, GESAMTAUSGABE, V5, P197
MEINONG A, 1977, GESAMTAUSGABE, V4
MORSCHER E, 2001, NEW ESSAYS FREE LOGI
PRIOR AN, 1971, OBJECTS THOUGHT
QUINE WV, 1948, REV METAPHYS, V2, P21
QUINE WVO, 1953, LOGICAL POINT VIEW
QUINE WVO, 1960, WORD OBJECT
ROUTLEY R, 1980, EXPLORING MEINONGS J
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P479
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P530
RUSSELL B, 1907, MIND, V16, P436
RYLE G, 1973, REV INT PHILOS, V27, P255
SIMONS PM, 1995, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V50, P171
TWARDOWSKI K, 1894, LEHRE INHALT GEGENST
NR 36
TC 1
PU VITTORIO KLOSTERNAMM GMBH
PI FRANKFURT-AM-MAIN
PA POSTFACH 90 06 01, D-60446 FRANKFURT-AM-MAIN, GERMANY
SN 0044-3301
J9 Z PHIL FORSCH
JI Z. Philos. Forsch.
PD JAN-MAR
PY 2005
VL 59
IS 1
BP 49
EP 70
PG 22
SC Philosophy
GA 914HQ
UT ISI:000228218800003
ER

PT J
AU Hala, V
TI On Meinong's conception of ethics
SO FILOSOFICKY CASOPIS
LA Czech
DT Article
AB The author focuses on the interpretation of the basic questions in A. Meinong's conception of ethics. He sets out from Meinong's theory of objects, in which he sees the foundation of the conception, especially in so far as is concerned the application of its basic categories - objects, objectives, dignitatives and desideratives - to the axiologicat and ethical fields. The author emphasises that it is the general theory of values that is of defining significance for Meinong's conception of ethics. Among the various distributions within the field of values the key one is considered to be Meinong's distinction between personal and impersonal values. The author considers the defining position of values towards "Sollen" to be another of Meinong's fundamental thoughts.
The author also examines Meinong's attempt to observe apriori laws within the sphere of dignitatives and desideratives. Emphasised in the overall assessment is that a serious handicap in Meinong's interpretation of philosophical ideas is the complexity and at times even the obscurity of his expression. At the same time the author points to the renewed interest in the subjects of Meinong's philosophy, especially in the English-speaking world and in Austria.
C1 Acad Sci Czech Republ, Filozoficky Ustav, Prague, Czech Republic.
RP Hala, V, Acad Sci Czech Republ, Filozoficky Ustav, Prague, Czech Republic.
CR 1955, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN, V1, P33
ALBERTAZZI L, MEINONG HIS OUT TIME, P22
ALBERTAZZI L, SCH ALEXIUS MEINONG, P13
ALBERTAZZI L, 2001, SCH ALEXIUS MEINONG
BELOHRAD R, 2003, FILOS CAS, V51, P57
BRENTANO F, 1921, URSPRUNG SITTLICHER, P15
CESKY, 1993, PUVODU MRAVNIHO POZN, P27
DAPPIANO L, 1996, SCH F BRENTANO, P378
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE, P75
HALA V, 2000, MOZNOSTI HODNOTOVE E
JACQUETTE D, AUSSERSEIN PURE OBJE, P383
JACQUETTE D, SCH ALEXIUS MEINONG, P384
JACQUETTE D, SCH F BRENTANO, P147
KALSI MLS, 1996, ELEMENTS ETHICS, P3
MEINONG A, EMOTIONALE PRASENTAT, P161
MEINONG A, GEGENSTANDSTHEORIE S, P70
MEINONG A, PSYCHOL ETHISCHE UNT, P224
MEINONG A, 1894, PSYCHOL ETHISCHE UNT, P85
MEINONG A, 1965, PHILOSOPHENBRIEFE, P205
MEINONG A, 1968, GESAMTAUSGABE, V3, P111
MEINONG A, 1988, GEGENSTANDSTHEORIE S
NR 21
TC 1
PU FILOSOFICKY CASOPIS INST PHILOSOPHY
PI PRAGUE
PA JILSKA 1, PRAGUE 110 00, CZECH REPUBLIC
SN 0015-1831
J9 FILOS CASOPIS
JI Filos. Cas.
PY 2004
VL 52
IS 3
BP 371
EP 391
PG 21
SC Ethics; Philosophy
GA 870DR
UT ISI:000225034700003
ER

PT J
AU Dilworth, J
TI Internal versus external representation
SO JOURNAL OF AESTHETICS AND ART CRITICISM
LA English
DT Article
ID THEATER
C1 Western Michigan Univ, Dept Philosophy, Kalamazoo, MI 49008 USA.
RP Dilworth, J, Western Michigan Univ, Dept Philosophy, Kalamazoo, MI 49008 USA.
EM Dilworth@wmich.edu
CR BORGES JL, 1985, LABYRINTHS
DILWORTH J, 1980, PHILOS FORUM, V12, P139
DILWORTH J, 2001, BRIT J AESTHET, V41, P353
DILWORTH J, 2002, AM PHILOS QUART, V39, P197
DILWORTH J, 2002, J AESTHET ART CRITIC, V60, P263
DONNELLAN K, 1966, PHILOS REV, V75, P281
GOODMAN N, 1968, LANGUAGES ART
LOPES D, 1996, UNDERSTANDING PICTUR
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P76
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
PHILLIPS A, 1987, PHILOS VISUAL ARTS, P317
WALTON K, 1984, CRIT INQUIRY, V11, P246
WALTON KL, 1990, MIMESIS MAKE-BELIEVE
WARBURTON N, 1988, RATIO, V1, P64
WOLLHEIM R, 1987, PAINTING AS ART
NR 15
TC 1
PU AMER SOC AESTHETICS, DEPT OF PHILOSOPHY
PI MILWAUKEE
PA C/O CURTIS L CARTER, 404 CUDAHY HALL, MARQUETTE UNIV, PO BOX 1881, MILWAUKEE, WI 53201-1881 USA
SN 0021-8529
J9 J AESTHET ART CRIT
JI J. Aesthet. Art Crit.
PD WIN
PY 2004
VL 62
IS 1
BP 23
EP 36
PG 14
SC Art; Humanities, Multidisciplinary
GA 776LC
UT ISI:000189116600003
ER

PT J
AU Doyle, JP
TI On the pure intentionality of pure intentionality (Lossada, Suarez and the disputed Scholastic doctrine of intellectual intentionality)
SO MODERN SCHOOLMAN
LA English
DT Article
C1 St Louis Univ, St Louis, MO 63103 USA.
RP Doyle, JP, St Louis Univ, St Louis, MO 63103 USA.
CR AQUINAS T, DE ENTE ET ESSENTIA
AQUINAS T, DE NATURA GENERIS
AQUINAS T, DE VERITATE
AQUINAS T, IN 12 LIBROS METAPHY
AQUINAS T, SCRIPTUM LIBROS SENT
AQUINAS T, SUMMA CONTRA GENTILE
ARISTOTLE, ANALYTICA POSTERIORA
ARISTOTLE, METAPHYSICS
ARISTOTLE, PHYSICS
AVERROES, IN METAPHYSICORUM VI
BABENSTUBER L, PHILOS METAPHYSICA
CARLETON TC, 1649, PHILOSOPHIA UNIVERSA
CHISHOLM R, 1967, ENCYCL PHILOS, V4, P201
CHISHOLM RM, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
CONIMBRICENSES, 1607, IN UNIVERSAM DIALECT
DOYLE JP, 1987, VIVARIUM, V25, P47
DOYLE JP, 1995, REV METAPHYS, V48, P771
ELORDUY E, 1948, PENSAMIENTO, P335
ENGELHARDT P, 1971, HIST WORTERBUCH PHIL, V4, P466
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONG THEORY OBJEC
GODART P, 1675, LEXICON PHILOSOPHICU, V1
HALLER R, 1971, A MEINONG GESAMTAUSG, P481
KANT I, KRITIK REINEN VERNUN
KOBUSCH T, 1987, SEIN SPRACHE HIST GR, P139
LOSSADA LD, LOGICA
LOSSADA LD, METAPHYSICA
LOSSADA LF, 1883, CURSUS PHILOSOPHICI, V1, P204
MANDONNET RP, 1929, S THOMAE AQUINATAE S, V1, P63
MAURO S, 1885, ARISTOTELIS OPERA OM, V1
MAURO S, 1987, QUAESTIONES PHILOSOP
MCKEON R, 1941, BASIC WORKS ARISTOTL, P737
MEINONG A, SELBSTDARSTELLUNG
MEINONG A, 1910, UBER ANNAHMEN
MENDOZA P, 1617, DISPUTATIONES METAPH
MILLANPUELLES A, 1990, TEORIA OBJETO PURO
NATALIS H, DE INTENTIONIBUS
PALLAVICINO S, 1628, DE UNIVERSA PHILOSOP
POINSOT J, 1930, CURSUS PHILOSSOPHICU
REEB G, 1871, THESAURUS PHILOSOPHO, P76
RENAN E, 1852, AVERROES AVERROISME, P297
RONCAGLIA G, 1995, VIVARIUM, V33, P27
RUBIO A, 1620, LOGICA MEXICANA
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P533
SCHEIBLER C, 1617, OPUS METAPHYSICORUM
SMIGLECKI M, 1658, LOGICA, V1
SPIAZZI R, 1953, AQUINAS DE VERITATE, P380
SUAREZ F, DE ENTIBUS RATIONIS
SUAREZ F, DISPUTATIONES MYSTIC
SUAREZ F, ON BEINGS REASON
SUAREZ F, 1866, OPERA OMNIA
VELARDEMAYOL V, 1980, PENSMIENTO, V45, P466
WIETROWSKI M, 1697, PHILOSOPHIA DISPUTAT
ZIMARA MA, 1562, ARISTOTELIS OPERA CU
NR 53
TC 1
PU ST LOUIS UNIV
PI ST LOUIS
PA 221 NORTH GRAND BLVD, ST LOUIS, MO 63103-2097 USA
SN 0026-8402
J9 MOD SCHOOLMAN
JI Mod. Schoolman
PD NOV
PY 2001
VL 79
IS 1
BP 57
EP 78
PG 22
SC Philosophy
GA 528WL
UT ISI:000174267400004
ER

PT J
AU Russell, B
TI Knowledge by acquaintance and knowledge by description
SO FILOSOFICKY CASOPIS
LA Czech
DT Article
CR 1905, MIND OCT
1910, MIND JUL, P380
JONESOVA EEC, 1911, MIND JAN
MEINONG A, 1910, UEBER ANNAHMEN
RUSSELL B, 1917, PHILOS ESSAYS
RUSSELL B, 1932, MYSTICISM LOGIC
NR 6
TC 1
PU FILOSOFICKY CASOPIS INST PHILOSOPHY
PI PRAGUE
PA JILSKA 1, PRAGUE 110 00, CZECH REPUBLIC
SN 0015-1831
J9 FILOS CASOPIS
JI Filos. Cas.
PY 2001
VL 49
IS 5
BP 754
EP 770
PG 17
SC Ethics; Philosophy
GA 541XM
UT ISI:000175011900004
ER

PT J
AU Amacker, R
TI The development of Saussure's ideas in the works of Charles Bally (1865-1947) and Albert Sechehaye (1870-1946)
SO HISTORIOGRAPHIA LINGUISTICA
LA French
DT Article
AB The article argues that Charles Bally (18651947) and Albert Sechehaye (18701946) were already accomplished linguists by the time Saussure died, and that they did not really use the Cours in order to establish their own theories, which they defined more accurately rather than modified in any essential way. However, it is possible to see, in their pre-1913 publications, at least some traces of a private influence that can explain certain similarities between their ideas and Saussures with regard to terminology and conceptualization (in particular concerning the linguistic sign, the idea of system, and the langue - parole distinction). After the publication of the Cours, Bally used Saussurian ideas rather superficially, whereas Sechehaye ended up interpreting them in a manner very close to our present understanding of the Cours.
C1 Univ Geneva, CH-1211 Geneva, Switzerland.
RP Amacker, R, Univ Geneva, CH-1211 Geneva, Switzerland.
CR AMACKER R, IN PRESS HIST LINGUI, V2
AMACKER R, 1988, PARTE RICEVENTE PERC, P61
AMACKER R, 1992, CAHIERS FD SAUSSURE, V46, P57
BALLY C, FD SAUSSURE ETAT ACT
BALLY C, LANGAGE VIE
BALLY C, LINGUISTIQUE GENERAL
BALLY C, PRECIS STYLISTIQUE
BALLY C, TRAITE STYLISTIQUE F
BALLY C, 1921, J PSYCHOL NORMALE PA, V17, P625
BALLY C, 1922, B SOC LINGUISTIQUE P, V23, P117
BALLY C, 1937, VOX ROMANICA, V2, P345
BALLY C, 1939, J PSYCHOL NORMALE PA, V36, P161
BALLY C, 1941, CAHIERS FD SAUSSURE, V1, P33
BLOOMFIELD L, 1926, LANGUAGE, V2, P153
BREAL M, 1879, ESSAI SEMANTIQUE SCI
BUHLER K, 1933, KANT-STUD, V38, P19
CHEVALIER JC, 1990, SPRACHTHEORIE THEORI, P95
CHEVALIER JC, 1999, CAHIERS FD SAUSSURE, V52, P69
DEMAURO T, 1967, FD SAUSSURE COURS LI
DUCROT O, 1986, CAHIERS FD SAUSSURE, V40, P13
DURRER S, 1998, INTRO LINGUISTIQUE C
EHRENFELS CV, 1897, SYSTEM WERTTHEORIE
ENGLER R, 1950, Z PHONETIK, V4, P161
ENGLER R, 1952, J PSYCHOL NORMALE PA, V45, P137
ENGLER R, 1983, Z PHONETIK SPRACHWIS, V36, P533
ENGLER R, 1986, STUDI ITALIANI LINGU, V15, P3
ENGLER R, 1987, GESCH SPRACHTHEORIE, V1, P141
FIRBAS J, 1992, FUNCTIONAL SENTENCE
FREI H, 1929, GRAMMAIRE FAUTES
FRYBAREBER AM, 1994, A SECHEHAYE SYNTAXE
GIRARD G, 1821, GRAMMAIRE CAMPAGNES
GIRARD G, 1844, ENSEIGNEMENT REGULIE
GIRARD G, 1845, COURS ED LANGUE MATE
GODEL R, 1953, CAHIERS FD SAUSSURE, V11, P30
GODEL R, 1957, SOURCES MANUSCRITES
GODEL R, 1967, CAHIERS FD SAUSSURE, V22, P53
HJELMSLEV L, PRINCIPES GRAMMAIRE
HJELMSLEV L, PROLEGOMENA THEORY L
HUMBOLDT WV, VERSCHIEDENHEIT MENS
KOENER EFK, 1973, FD SAUSSURE ORIGIN D
KOENER EFK, 1980, RECHERCHES LINGUISTI, P100
KREIBIG JC, 1902, PSYCHOL GRUNDLEGUNG
LITTRE E, 1875, DICT LANGUE FRANCAIS, V2
MALMBERG B, 1991, HIST LINGUISTIQUE SU
MEINONG A, 1894, PSYCHOL ETHISCHE UNT
PAUL H, PRINZIPIEN SPRACHGES
SAUSSURE FD, COURS LINGUISTIQUE G
SAUSSURE FD, MEMOIRE SYSTEME PRIM
SECHEHAYE A, 1905, ROMAN FORSCH, V19, P321
SECHEHAYE A, 1908, MELANGES LINGUISTIQU, P155
SECHEHAYE A, 1908, PROGRAMME METHODES L
SECHEHAYE A, 1914, GERMANISCH ROMANISCH, V5, P288
SECHEHAYE A, 1916, REV LANGUES ROMANES, V59, P44
SECHEHAYE A, 1917, REV PHILOS FRANCE ET, V42, P1
SECHEHAYE A, 1926, ABREGE GRAMMAIRE FRA
SECHEHAYE A, 1926, ESSAI STRUCTURE LOGI
SECHEHAYE A, 1927, INDOGERMANISCHE FORS, V44, P217
SECHEHAYE A, 1930, J PSYCHOL NORMALE PA, V27, P337
SECHEHAYE A, 1933, J PSYCHOL, V30, P57
SECHEHAYE A, 1939, MELANGES LINGUISTIQU, P19
SECHEHAYE A, 1940, VOX ROMANICA, V5, P1
SECHEHAYE A, 1942, CAHIERS FD SAUSSURE, V2, P45
WARTBURG WV, 1931, BERICHTE VERHANDLUNG, V83, P1
WUNDERLI P, 1976, MEMORIAM F DIEZ AKTE, P416
NR 64
TC 1
PU JOHN BENJAMINS B V PUBL
PI AMSTERDAM
PA PO BOX 75577 SUBSCRIPTIONS DEPT, 1070 AN AMSTERDAM, NETHERLANDS
SN 0302-5160
J9 HIST LING
JI Historiogr. Linguist.
PY 2000
VL 27
IS 2-3
BP 205
EP 264
PG 60
SC Language & Linguistics
GA 370GA
UT ISI:000165114100003
ER

PT J
AU Zouhar, M
TI The relationship between epistemology and logic in Russell's philosophy
SO FILOZOFIA
LA Slovak
DT Article
AB The paper examines the logical and semantical relevancy of epistemological views of Bertrand Russell. For Russell epistemological considerations were apparently on of the most important sources which provided him with a criterion for distinguishing complete and incomplete symbols. A complete symbol is defined as on having meaning in itself, while the meaning of an incomplete symbol is given by the context of a sentence. The meaning of an expression is, according to Russell, identical with its referent. Therefore, complete symbols, contrary to incomplete ones, are referential expressions. It is the task of epistemology to determine, which objects are referents of a given expression, because, according to Russell, the referent of a complete symbol is a sense-datum-an object of acquaintance for a speaker. It is argued, however, that sense-data are not suitable candidates for meanings.
C1 Comenius Univ, Fac Philosophy, Chair Logic & Sci Methodol, SK-81801 Bratislava, Slovakia.
RP Zouhar, M, Comenius Univ, Fac Philosophy, Chair Logic & Sci Methodol, Safarikovo nam 6, SK-81801 Bratislava, Slovakia.
CR FREGE G, 1992, FILOZOFIA, V47, P349
MEINONG A, 1996, ORGANON F, V3, P125
MEINONG A, 1996, ORGANON F, V3, P22
RUSSELL B, 1956, LOGIC KNOWLEDGE
RUSSELL B, 1963, PRINCIPIA MATHEMATIC
RUSSELL B, 1980, PROBLEMS PHILOS
RUSSELL B, 1995, ORGANON F, V2, P137
RUSSELL B, 1995, ORGANON F, V2, P152
RUSSELL B, 1997, ORGANON F, V4, P264
NR 9
TC 1
PU FILOZOFIA
PI BRATISLAVA
PA FILOZOFICKY USTAV SAV, KLEMENSOVA 19, 813 64 BRATISLAVA, SLOVAKIA
SN 0046-385X
J9 FILOZOFIA
JI Filozofia
PY 1999
VL 54
IS 10
BP 731
EP 741
PG 11
SC Philosophy
GA 270YE
UT ISI:000084564100003
ER

PT J
AU Heffernan, G
TI A study in the sedimented origins of evidence: Husserl and his contemporaries engaged in a collective essay in the phenomenology and psychology of epistemic justification
SO HUSSERL STUDIES
LA English
DT Review
C1 Merrimack Coll, Dept Philos, N Andover, MA 01845 USA.
RP Heffernan, G, Merrimack Coll, Dept Philos, N Andover, MA 01845 USA.
CR 1992, AM HERITAGE DICT ENG, P603
AVENARIUS R, KRITIK REINEN ERFAHR
BAUCH B, 1926, WAHRHEIT WERT WIRKLI
BENEKE FE, LEHRBUCH LOGIK KUNST
BENEKE FE, SYSTEM LOGIK KUNSTLE
BERGMANN H, 1908, UNTERSUCHUNGEN PROBL
BOLZANO B, WISSENSCHAFTSLEHRE V
BRENTANO F, LEHRE RICHTIGEN URTE
BRENTANO F, URSPRUNG SITTLICHER
BRENTANO F, 1903, VERSUCH ERKENNTNIS
BRENTANO F, 1928, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN
CARNAP R, 1928, LOGISCHE AUFBAU WELT
CARNAP R, 1928, SCHEINPROBLEME PHILO
CASSIRER E, ERKENNTNISPROBLEM PH
COHEN H, 1902, LOGIK REINEN ERKENNT
CRAMER K, 1972, HIST WB PHILOS, V2, P702
DILTHEY W, ABGRENZUNG GEISTESWI
DILTHEY W, AUFBAU GESCH WELT GE
DILTHEY W, PLAN FORTSETZUNG AUF
DILTHEY W, ZUSATZE AUFBAU GESCH
DILTHEY W, 1957, ERLEBNIS DICHTUNG
DORING A, 1912, GRUNDLINIEN LOGIK
EISLER R, 1910, WORTERBUCH PHILOS BE
ELSENHANS T, 1896, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V109, P195
ELSENHANS T, 1906, FRIES KANT BEITRAG G, V2
ELSENHANS T, 1912, LEHRBUCH PSYCHOL
ERDMANN B, 1907, LOGIK, V1
FREGE G, 1894, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V103, P313
FRIES JF, GRUNDRISS LOGIK
FRIES JF, HDB PSYCHISCHEN ANTH
FRIES JF, NEUE ANTHR KRITIK VE
FRIES JF, SCHRIFTEN REINEN PHI
FRIES JF, SYSTEM LOGIK
FRIES JF, WISSEN GLAUBE AHNDUN
GAMADER HG, 1986, WAHRHEIT METHODE GRU
GEYSER J, 1909, GRUNDLAGEN LOGIK ERK
GEYSER J, 1909, JB VEREINS CHRISTLIC, V2, P4
GEYSER J, 1916, NEUE ALTE WEGE PHILO
GEYSER J, 1916, THEOLOGISCHE REV, P49
GEYSER J, 1918, WAHRHEIT EVIDENZ
GEYSER J, 1926, KAMPFFELDE LOGIK LOG
HARTMANN N, 1921, GRUNDZUGE METAPHYSIK
HEFFERNAN G, 1998, HUSSERL STUD, V15, P1
HEIDEGGER M, BESTIMMUNG PHILOS
HEIDEGGER M, EINFUHRUNG PHANOMENO
HEIDEGGER M, FRAGE DING KANT LEHR
HEIDEGGER M, HOLZWEGE
HEIDEGGER M, KANT PROBLEM METAPHY
HEIDEGGER M, LEHRE URTEIL PSYCHOL
HEIDEGGER M, NEUERE FORSCHUNGEN L
HEIDEGGER M, PROLEGOMENA GESCH ZE
HEIDEGGER M, SEIN ZEIT
HEIDEGGER M, WESEN WAHRHEIT
HEIDEGGER M, 1954, VORTRAGE AUFSATZE
HEIDEGGER M, 1957, SATZ GRUND
HEIDEGGER M, 1967, WAHRHEITSBEGRIFF HUS
HEIM K, 1902, PSYCHOL ANTIPSYCHOL
HOFLER A, LOGIK PHILOS PROPADE
HOFLER A, 1904, GRUNDLEHREN LOGIK
HOFLER A, 1907, GRUNDLEHREN LOGIK
HOFLER A, 1922, LOGIK LOGIK ERKENNTN
HUME D, ENQUIRIES HUMAN UNDE
HUME D, TREATISE HUMAN NATUR
HUSSERL E, CARTESIANISCHE MEDIT
HUSSERL E, EINLEITUNG LOGIK ERK
HUSSERL E, ERFAHRUNG URTEIL UNT
HUSSERL E, FORMALE TRANSZENDENT
HUSSERL E, IDEE PHANOMENOLOGIE
HUSSERL E, IDEEN REINEN PHANOME
HUSSERL E, KRISIS EUROPAISCHEN
HUSSERL E, LOGIK ALLGEMEINE WIS
HUSSERL E, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
HUSSERL E, PHILOS ARITHMETIK PS
HUSSERL E, PHILOS STRENGE WISSE
HUSSERL E, PROLEGOMENA REINEN L
HUSSERL E, 1903, ARCH SYSTEMATISCHE P, V9, P398
HUSSERL E, 1987, AUFSATZE VORTRAGE 19
ISENKRAHE C, 1915, GRUNDLEGUNG BUNDIGEN
ISENKRAHE C, 1917, PROBLEM EVIDENZ WAS
KARLUHRING, LOGIK WISSENSCHAFTST
KRAUS O, 1915, BRENTANO WAHRHEIT EV, R11
KREIBIG C, 1909, INTELLEKTUELLEN FUNK
LASK E, 1911, LOGIK PHILOS KATEGOR
LASK E, 1912, LEHRE URTEIL
LIPPS T, GRUNDZUGE LOGIK
LIPPS T, 1902, FUHLEN WOLLEN DENKEN
LOTZE H, MIKROKOSMOS IDEEN NA
MACH E, BEITRAGE ANALYSE EMP
MACH E, 1905, ERKENNTNIS IRRTUM SK
MAIER H, 1908, PSYCHOL EMOTIONALEN
MEINONG A, ABHANDLUNGEN ERKENNT
MEINONG A, ANNAHMEN
MEINONG A, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
MILL JS, W HAMILTON PHILOS PR
NATORP P, 1910, LOGISCHEN GRUNDLAGEN
NATORP P, 1911, PHILOS IHR PROBLEM I
NELSON L, GESCH KRITIK ERKENNT
NELSON L, SOGENANNTE ERKENNTNI
PALAGYI M, 1902, STREIT PSYCHOLOGISTE
RICHTER R, 1904, SKEPTIZISMUS PHILOS, V1
RICKERT H, GEGENSTAND ERKENNTNI
RICKERT H, 1904, GEGENSTAND ERKENNTNI
SCHLICK M, 1918, ALLGEMEINE ERKENNTNI, V1
SCHMIDKUNZ H, 1912, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V146, P1
SIGWART C, LOGIK
STEGMULLER W, 1969, METAPHYSIK SKEPSIS W
STEGMULLER W, 1978, HAUPTSTROMUNGEN GEGE, V1
STUMPF C, 1939, ERKENNTNISLEHRE, V2
TRENDELENBURG FA, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
VOLKELT J, ERFAHRUNG DENKEN KRI
VOLKELT J, GEFUHLSGEWISSHEIT ER
VOLKELT J, 1918, GEWISSHEIT WAHRHEIT
WITASEK S, 1908, GRUNDLINIEN PSYCHOL
WUNDT W, GRUNDZUGE PHYSIOLOGI
WUNDT W, LOGIK UNTERSUCHUNG P
WUNDT W, 1906, ALLGEMEINE LOGIK ERK, V1
WUNDT W, 1906, LOGIK, V1
WUNDT W, 1910, KLEINE SCHRIFTEN, V1, P602
ZIEGLER T, GEFUHL PSYCHOL UNTER
ZIEHEN T, PSYCHOPHYSIOLOGISCHE
ZIEHEN T, 1913, ERKENNTNISTHEORIE PS
ZIEHEN T, 1920, LEHRBUCH LOGIK POSIT
NR 122
TC 1
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0167-9848
J9 HUSSERL STUD
JI Husserl Stud.
PY 1999
VL 16
IS 2
BP 83
EP 181
PG 99
SC Philosophy
GA 279JJ
UT ISI:000085040400001
ER

PT J
AU Hutt, CM
TI Husserl - Perception and the ideality of time
SO PHILOSOPHY TODAY
LA English
DT Article
C1 Mercy Coll, Dobbs Ferry, NY 10522 USA.
RP Hutt, CM, Mercy Coll, Dobbs Ferry, NY 10522 USA.
CR AUGUSTINE, CONFESSIONS
BRENTANO F, 1973, PSYCHOL EMPIRICAL ST
BROAD CD, EXAMINATION MCTAGGAR
BROAD CD, 1962, MIND ITS PLACE NATUR
BROUGH J, 1972, MAN WORLD, V5, P303
BROUGH JB, 1991, PHENOMENOLOGY CONSCI
CALLAHAN JF, 1958, HARVARD STUDIES CLAS, V62, P437
DUMMETT M, 1978, TRUTH OTHER ENIGMAS, P351
DUMMETT M, 1981, INTERPRETATION FREGE
HUSSERL E, HUSSERLIANA
HUSSERL E, IDEEN REINEN PHANOME
HUSSERL E, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
HUSSERL E, 1928, JB PHILOS PHANOMENOL
HUSSERL E, 1964, PHENOMENOLOGY INTERN
HUSSERL E, 1966, PHANOMENOLOGIE INNER
JAMES W, PRINCIPLES PSYCHOL
KERSTEN F, 1982, IDEAS
LEWY C, 1978, KANT INTRO
MCTAGGART JE, 1908, MIND
MEINONG A, 1893, SINNESORGANE, V6, P340
MEINONG A, 1899, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V21, P182
MILLER I, 1982, HUSSERL INTENTIONALI, P132
MILLER I, 1984, HUSSERL PERCEPTION T
MOHANTY JN, 1989, HUSSERLS PHENOMENOLO
RUSSELL B, 1972, HIST W PHILOS
SMITH D, HUSSERL INTENTIONALI, P193
SOKOLOWSKI R, 1974, HUSSERLIAN MEDITATIO
TAKIURA S, 1979, ANALECTA HUSSERLIANA, V8, P79
VANGELDER T, 1995, COMMUNICATION 1019
WHITEHEAD AN, PROCESS REALITY
NR 30
TC 1
PU PHILOSOPHY TODAY DEPAUL UNIV
PI CHICAGO
PA 25 EAST JACKSON BOULEVARD, CHICAGO, IL 60604 USA
SN 0031-8256
J9 PHIL TODAY
JI Philos. Today
PD WIN
PY 1999
VL 43
IS 4
BP 370
EP 385
PG 16
SC Philosophy
GA 273VC
UT ISI:000084727700005
ER

PT J
AU PERLER, D
TI INTENTIONAL VERSUS REAL EXISTENCE - A LATE MEDIEVAL CONTROVERSY
SO PHILOSOPHISCHES JAHRBUCH
LA German
DT Article
CR ADAMS MM, 1977, PHILOS REV, V86, P144
ADAMS MM, 1987, W OCKHAM
ALFERI P, 1989, G OCKHAM SINGULIER
ARISTOTLE, DE ANIMA
BOEHNER P, 1958, COLLECTED ARTICLES O
BRITO R, 1975, VIVARIUM, V13, P119
COURTENAY W, 1987, SCH SCHOLARS 14TH CE
DERIJK LM, 1990, IDEA 6 C INT ROMA 5, P89
GAMBERTINI R, 1992, INSEGNAMENTO LOGICA, P277
HERVAEUS, TRACTATUS DE SECUNDI
KAPPELI T, 1975, SCRIPTORES ORDINIS P, V2
KELLEY FE, 1978, FRANCISCAN STUDIES, V38, P260
KNUDSEN C, 1982, CAMBRIDGE HIST LATER, P479
KOBUSCH T, 1984, HIST WORTERBUCH PHIL, V6, P1027
LAMBERTINI R, 1989, CAHIERS I MOYEN AGE, V59, P3
MAIERU A, 1987, DIFFUSIONE SCI ISLAM, P243
MARENBON J, 1987, LATER MEDIEVAL PHILO
MAURER A, 1950, MEDIAEVAL STUD, V12, P216
MEINONG A, UBER GEGENSTANDSTHEO
NUCHELMANS G, 1973, THEORIES PROPOSITION
OCKHAM W, IN I SENTENTIARUM
OCKHAM W, IN III SENTENTIARUM
OCKHAM W, IN PERIHERM
OCKHAM W, QUODLIBETA
OCKHAM W, SUMMA LOGICAE
PANACCIO C, 1991, MOTS CONCEPTS CHOSES
PERLER D, 1994, ARCH HIST DOCTRINALE, V61, P227
PERLER D, 1994, MONIST, V77, P149
PERLER D, 1994, VIVARIUM, V32, P72
PETER AUREOLI, SCRIPTUM SUPER PRIMU
PINBORG J, 1974, CAHIERS I MOYEN AGE, V13, P45
QUANTIN PM, 1970, ETUDES VOCABULAIRE P, P113
RICHTER V, 1975, PHILOS JB, V82, P177
SCHULTHESS P, 1992, SEIN SIGNIFIKATION E
SMITH AM, 1981, ISIS, V72, P568
SORABJI R, 1991, OXFORD STUDIES ANCIE, V9, P227
TACHAU KH, 1988, VISION CERTITUDE AGE
VANNIROVIGHI S, 1978, STUDI FILOSOFIA MEDI, V2, P283
WEIDEMANN H, 1991, VIVARIUM, V29, P129
WODEHAM A, LECTURA SECUNDA IN L
NR 40
TC 1
PU VERLAG KARL ALBER
PI FREIBURG
PA HERMANN-HERDER-STR 4, W-7800 FREIBURG, GERMANY
SN 0031-8183
J9 PHIL JAHRB
JI Philos. Jahrb.
PY 1995
VL 102
IS 2
BP 261
EP 278
PG 18
SC Philosophy
GA TD574
UT ISI:A1995TD57400003
ER

PT J
AU BARRIOMAESTRE, JM
TI REAL DISTINCTION BETWEEN ESSENTIA AND ACTUS-ESSENDI IN AQUINAS
SO FOLIA HUMANISTICA
LA Spanish
DT Article
RP BARRIOMAESTRE, JM, UNIV COMPLUTENSE MADRID,MADRID 3,SPAIN.
CR AQUINAS T, COMP THEOL
AQUINAS T, DE ENTE ET ESSENTIA
AQUINAS T, DE POTENTIA DEI
AQUINAS T, DE SPIR CREAT
AQUINAS T, DE VERITATE
AQUINAS T, IN IV METAPH
AQUINAS T, QUAESTIONES DE QUOLI
AQUINAS T, SCRIPT SUP SENT 1
AQUINAS T, SUMMA CONTRA GENTILE
DEMARIA, ONTOLOGIA
KOCH, BEITRAGE GESCH PHILO, V26, P330
MEINONG AV, 1972, GESAMTAUSGABE, V2
MILLANPUELLES A, 1990, TEORIA OBJETO PURO
PIUS X, 1914, ACTA APOSTOLICAE SED, V6, P384
PRADO ND, 1411, DE VERITATE FUNDAMEN
NR 15
TC 1
PU FOLIA HUMANISTICA
PI BARCELONA
PA C/MUNTANER 303, 08021 BARCELONA, SPAIN
SN 0015-5594
J9 FOLIA HUMANIST
JI Folia Humanistica
PD JUL-AUG
PY 1994
VL 32
IS 339
BP 321
EP 331
PG 11
SC Humanities, Multidisciplinary
GA PA558
UT ISI:A1994PA55800004
ER

PT J
AU DETORO, A
TI BORGES AND THE GUIDED RHIZOMATIC SIMULATION, PERCEPTION AND OBJECTIVIZATION OF THE SIGNS
SO REVISTA DE ESTUDIOS HISPANICOS
LA Spanish
DT Article
CR 1957, GNOSI GNOSTICISMO EN, V2
ANDREADE JV, 1957, CHYMISCHE HOCHZEIT C
BARNSTONE W, 1982, BORGES 80 CONVERSATI
BERKELEY G, 3 DIALOGUES HYLAS PH
BERKELEY G, ALCIPHRON
BERKELEY G, TREATISE PRINCIPLES
BERKELEY G, 1979, WORKS
BLUHER KA, 1992, JL BORGES PROCEDIMIE
BORGES JL, TLON UQBAR ORBIS TER
BORGES JL, 1988, OBRAS COMPLETAS, V1
BUTLER S, FAIR HAVEN
CARLYLE T, SARTOR RESARTUS
DELEUZE G, 1977, RHIZOM
DEQUINCEY T, TALES PROSE PHANTASI
DEQUINCEY T, 1890, COLLECTED WRITINGS, V13
DETORO A, 1987, FESTSCHRIFT KA BLUHE, P31
DETORO A, 1990, ACTA LIT, V15, P71
DETORO A, 1990, GESTOS, V9, P23
DETORO A, 1991, FORGA, V162
DETORO A, 1991, HACIA MODELO TEATRO
DETORO A, 1991, IBEROAMERICANA, V15, P70
DETORO A, 1991, REV IBEROAMERICANA, V155, P441
DRIEULAROCHELLE P, GILLES
EDWARDS P, 1967, ENCY PHILOS, V2
ENGFER HJ, KINDLERS NEUES LIT L
FOUCAULT M, MOTS CHOSES ARCHEOLO
FRANK M, 1984, GESPRACH
GENETTE G, PALIMPSESTES
HASLAM S, DIVINE ASPIRATION
HOFNER E, 1980, LIT REALITAT ASPEKTE
HORN JC, 1983, STRUKTUR GRUNDES
HUME D, DIALOGUES NATURAL RE
HUME D, ENQUIRIES HUMAN UNDE
HUME D, TREATISE HUMAN NATUR
JAUSS HR, 1987, THEORIE REZEPTION RU
JENS W, 1992, KINDLERS NEUES LIT L
KAMPEN AV, 1915, ATLAS ANTIGUOS ATLAS
KAMPEN AV, 1926, ATLAS PORTATIL 28 MA
KAMPEN AV, 1936, ATLAS PORTATIL ARREG
LACHMANN R, 1982, DIALOGIZITAT THEORIE
LACHMANN R, 1984, GESPRACH, P133
LACHMANN R, 1984, GESPRACH, P489
LEIBNIZ GW, VERNUNFTPRINZIPIEN N
LOPEZBARRAL L, UNPUB VIVIO JL BORGE
MEINONG ARV, ABHANDLUNG ERNENNTNI
MEINONG ARV, BEITRAGE THEORY PSYC
MEINONG ARV, PHANTASIE-VORSTELLUN
MEINONG ARV, 1914, ABHANDLUNGEN PSYCHOL, V1
MOLINER M, 1975, DICCIONARIO USO ESPA
PERTHES J, 1935, KLEINER HANDATLAS GA
PFISTER M, 1985, INTERTEXTUALITAT FOR, P1
RITTER J, 1974, GNOSIS HIST WORTERBU, V3
RITTER JW, FRAGMENTE NACHLASSE
RITTER K, ERDKUNDE ASIEN
RITTER K, ERKUNDE VERHALTNIS N
RITTER K, VERGLEICHENDE ERDKUN
ROLOFF V, 1992, JL BORGES PROCEDIMIE
RUF O, 1973, EINS EINHEIT LEIBNIZ
RUSSELL B, AM I ATHEIST AGNOSTI
RUSSELL B, ANALYSIS MATTER
RUSSELL B, ANALYSIS MIND
RUSSELL B, HUMAN KNOWLEDGE ITS
RUSSELL B, INQUIRY MEANING TRUT
RUSSELL B, PRINCIPLES MATHEMATI
SCHICK U, 1984, POETICA, V16, P138
SCHMIDT W, 1983, DIALOG TEXTE HAMBURG
SCHULZBUSCHHAUS U, 1983, IBEROAMERICA HIST SO, V2, P849
SCHULZBUSCHHAUS U, 1984, ROMAN FORSCH, V96, P90
SCHULZBUSCHHAUS U, 1991, CANTICUM IBERICUM NE, P382
STIERLE K, 1984, GESPRACH, P139
TODOROV T, 1970, INTRO LIT FANTASTIQU
WORTON M, 1990, INTERTEXTUALITY THEO
NR 72
TC 1
PU REVISTA DE ESTUDIOS HISPANICOS
PI ST LOUIS
PA WASHINGTON UNIV, BOX 1077, DEPT ROMANCE LANG, ONE BROOKINGS DR, ST LOUIS, MO 63130-4899
SN 0034-818X
J9 REV ESTUD HISPAN
JI Rev. Estud. Hisp.
PD MAY
PY 1994
VL 28
IS 2
BP 235
EP 263
PG 29
SC Literature, Romance
GA NP018
UT ISI:A1994NP01800005
ER

PT J
AU JACQUETTE, D
TI MEINONGIAN LOGIC AND ANSELM ONTOLOGICAL PROOF FOR THE EXISTENCE OF GOD
SO PHILOSOPHICAL FORUM
LA English
DT Article
RP JACQUETTE, D, PENN STATE UNIV,UNIV PK,PA 16802.
CR ANSELM, PROSLOGIUMPLANTINGA
BRECHER R, 1985, ANSELMS ARGUMENT LOG
CHISHOLM R, 1986, BRETANO INTRINSIC VA
DESCARTES R, 1641, MEDITATIONS FIRST PH
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
GASSENDI P, 1644, DISQUISITIO METAPHYS
HARTSHORNE C, 1965, ANSELMS DISCOVERY
HENRY DP, 1967, LOGIC ST ANSELM
JACQUETTE D, 1985, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V25, P423
KANT I, CRITIQUE PURE REASON
LEIBNIZ GWV, 1714, MONADOLOGY
MALCOLM N, 1960, PHILOS REV, V69, P41
MEINONG A, 1915, MOGLICHKEIT WARSCHEI
PLANTINGA A, SELF PROFILE
PLANTINGA A, 1967, GOD OTHER MINDS
PLANTINGA A, 1974, GOD FREEDOM EVIL
PLANTINGA A, 1974, NATURE NECESSITY
ROUTLEY R, 1981, EXPLORING MEINONGS J
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14
SCHUFREIDER G, 1978, INTRO ANSELMS ARGUME
SMITH JF, 1985, PHILOS PHENOMEN RES, V45, P305
TOMBERLIN JE, 1985, A PLANTINGA
VOLTAIRE, 1769, PHILOS DICT
NR 23
TC 1
PU PHILOSOPHICAL FORUM INC BARUCH COLL-CUNY
PI NEW YORK
PA 17 LEXINGTON AVE PO BOX 239, NEW YORK, NY 10010
SN 0031-806X
J9 PHIL FOR
JI Philos. Forum
PD SPR
PY 1994
VL 25
IS 3
BP 231
EP 240
PG 10
SC Philosophy
GA NG764
UT ISI:A1994NG76400003
ER

PT J
AU SWEET, D
TI THE GESTALT CONTROVERSY - THE DEVELOPMENT OF OBJECTS OF HIGHER-ORDER IN MEINONG ONTOLOGY
SO PHILOSOPHY AND PHENOMENOLOGICAL RESEARCH
LA English
DT Article
RP SWEET, D, FORDHAM UNIV,BRONX,NY 10458.
CR BARBER K, 1971, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V31, P564
BARBER KF, 1970, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V30, P550
BERGMANN G, 1967, REALISM CRITIQUE BRE
BERGMANN G, 1979, CLASSICS ANAL METAPH, P127
BERKELEY G, 1993, PHILOS WORKS INCLUDI
BLACKMAN LL, 1984, CLASSICS ANAL METAPH
BOLZANO B, 1929, WISSENSCHAFTSLEHRE
BOLZANO B, 1972, B BOLZANO THEORY SCI
BRADLEY FH, 1911, CLASSICS ANAL METAPH, P79
BRADLEY FH, 1978, APPEARANCE REALITY
BRENTANO F, 1959, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN
BRENTANO F, 1973, PSYCHOL EMPIRICAL ST
CORNELIUS H, 1892, VIERTELJAHRSSCHRIFT, V16, P404
EHRENFELS C, 1988, F GESTALT THEORY, P82
EHRENFELS CV, 1890, VIERTELJAHRSSCHRIFT, V14, P249
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
GROSSMAN R, 1960, THEORIA, V26, P17
GROSSMAN R, 1965, STRUCTURE MIND
GROSSMAN R, 1973, ONTOLOGICAL REDUCTIO
GROSSMAN R, 1974, MEINONG
GROSSMAN R, 1974, ONTOLOGICAL TURN, P89
GROSSMAN R, 1977, CRITICA, V9, P3
GROSSMAN R, 1983, CATEGORIAL STRUCTURE
KALSI MLS, 1978, A MEINONG OBJECTS HI
KERRY B, 1886, VIERTELJAHRSSCHRIFT, V10, P419
KNEALE W, 1949, PROBABILITY INDUCTIO
MACH E, 1900, ANAL EMPFINDUNGEN
MACH E, 1914, ANAL SENSATIONS
MALLY E, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
MEINONG A, A MEINONG OBJECTS HI, P55
MEINONG A, 1877, GESAMTAUSGABE, V1, P1
MEINONG A, 1882, GA, V2, P1
MEINONG A, 1891, GA, V1, P279
MEINONG A, 1894, GA, V1, P305
MEINONG A, 1899, GA, V2, P377
MEINONG A, 1902, GA, V4
MEINONG A, 1904, GESAMTAUSGABE, V2, P481
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P76
MEINONG A, 1968, GESAMTAUSGABE GA
MEINONG A, 1983, ASSUMPTIONS
MOORE GE, 1903, CLASSICS ANAL METAPH, P419
MOORE GE, 1909, ARISTOTELIAN SOC P, P36
MOORE GE, 1953, SOME MAIN PROBLEMS P
RUSSELL B, 1903, PRINCIPLES MATH
RUSSELL B, 1904, MIND, V13, P204
RUSSELL B, 1904, MIND, V13, P336
RUSSELL B, 1904, MIND, V13, P509
RUSSELL B, 1984, CLASSICS ANAL METAPH, P73
RYLE G, 1933, OXFORD MAGAZINE 1026
SMITH B, 1988, F GESTALT THEORY
TWARDOWSKI K, 1894, LEHRE INHALT GEGENST
TWARDOWSKI K, 1977, CONTENT OBJECT PRESE
NR 52
TC 1
PU PHILOSOPHY PHENOMENOLOGICAL RES
PI PROVIDENCE
PA BROWN UNIV BOX 1947, PROVIDENCE, RI 02912
SN 0031-8205
J9 PHIL PHENOMENOL RES
JI Philos. Phenomenol. Res.
PD SEP
PY 1993
VL 53
IS 3
BP 553
EP 575
PG 23
SC Philosophy
GA LV234
UT ISI:A1993LV23400003
ER

PT J
AU PANNIER, R
SULLIVAN, TD
TI AQUINAS ON EXISTS + DISTINGUISHING THE 2 SENSES OR USES OF THE NOUN ENS (BEING)
SO AMERICAN CATHOLIC PHILOSOPHICAL QUARTERLY
LA English
DT Article
RP PANNIER, R, WILLIAM MITCHELL COLL LAW,UNIV ST THOMAS,ST PAUL,MN.
CR ANSCOMBE GEM, 1961, 3 PHILOSOPHERS
AQUINAS T, DE ENTE ET ESSENTIA
AQUINAS T, EXP IN METAPHYS
AQUINAS T, OPUSCULA PHILOSOPHIC
AQUINAS T, SUMMA THEOLOGICA
FREGE G, 1978, FOUNDATIONS ARITHMET
MARTIN C, 1988, PHILOS T AQUINAS INT
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P83
OWENS J, 1985, ELEMEMTARY CHRISTIAN
WEIDEMANN H, 1986, LOGIC T AQUINAS LOGI, P181
NR 10
TC 1
PU AMER CATHOLIC PHILOS ASSN
PI WASHINGTON
PA CATHOLIC UNIVERSITY, WASHINGTON, DC 20064
SN 1051-3558
J9 AMER CATH PHIL QUART
JI Am. Cath. Philos. Q.
PD SPR
PY 1993
VL 67
IS 2
BP 157
EP 166
PG 10
SC Philosophy
GA LF100
UT ISI:A1993LF10000001
ER

PT J
AU TALLON, A
TI THE CONCEPT OF THE HEART IN STRASSER 'PHENOMENOLOGY OF FEELING'
SO AMERICAN CATHOLIC PHILOSOPHICAL QUARTERLY
LA English
DT Article
RP TALLON, A, MARQUETTE UNIV,MILWAUKEE,WI 53233.
CR ALQUIE F, 1979, CONSCIENCE AFFECTIVE
AQUINAS T, SUMMA THEOLOGICA
ARISTOTLE, DE ANIMA
BOLLNOW OF, 1943, WESEN STIMMUNGEN
CHERNIAK S, 1974, GENESIS STRUCTURE HE, R23
DAVIS C, 1976, BODY SPIRIT NATURE R
DHORME E, 1963, EMPLOI METAPHORIQUE
EGAN HD, 1976, SPIRITUAL EXERCISES
FINANCE JD, 1973, AFFRONTEMENT AUTRE E
FRINGS MS, 1965, MAX SCHELER CONCISE
FRINGS MS, 1972, FACETS EROS, P40
HEIDEGGER M, BEING AND TIME
HEIDEGGER M, GELASSENHEIT
HEIDEGGER M, 1962, KANT PROBLEM METAPHY
HEIDEGGER M, 1968, WHAT IS CALLED THINK
HEIDEGGER M, 1969, IDENTITY DIFFERENCE
HEIDEGGER M, 1971, POETRY LANGUAGE THOU
HEIDEGGER M, 1977, QUESTION TECHNOLOGY
HENRY M, PHILOS PHENOMENOL BO
HENRY M, 1969, PHILOS TODAY, V13, P94
HENRY M, 1973, ESSENCE MANIFESTATIO
HILDEBRAND DV, 1960, PHILOS JB GORRESGESE, V68, P180
HILDEBRAND DV, 1977, ETHICS
HILDEBRAND DV, 1977, HEART ANAL HUMAN DIV
JOHNSON RA, 1973, WE UNDERSTANDING PSY
LEVINAS E, 1973, THEORY INTUITION HUS
LONERGAN BJF, 1957, INSIGHT
LONERGAN BJF, 1971, GRACE FREEDOM OPERAT
LONERGAN BJF, 1972, METHOD THEOLOGY
MEINONG A, 1972, EMOTIONAL PRESENTATI
MERLEAUPONTY M, PHENOMENOL PERCEPTIO
MERLEAUPONTY M, 1963, STRUCTURE BEHAVIOR
PEGHAIRE J, 1935, INTELLECTUS RATIO TH
PRADINES M, 1946, TRAITE PSYCHOL GENER
RACETTE J, 1969, PHILOS TODAY, V13, P83
RAHNER K, DYNAMIC ELEMENT CHUR
RAHNER K, HEARERS WORD
RAHNER K, SPIRIT WORLD
RICOEUR P, FALLIBLE MAN
RICOEUR P, 1977, PHENOMENOL FEELING, R11
ROUSSELOT P, 1935, INTELLECTUALISM ST T
SARTRE JP, BEING AND NOTHINGNES
SARTRE JP, EMOTIONS
SCHELER M, FORMALISM ETHICS
SCHELER M, NATURAL SYMPATHY
SCHELER M, 1973, SELECTED PHILOS ESSA, P98
SHEED FJ, 1979, INSTRUCTED HEART
SHEEHAN T, 1987, KARL RAHNER PHILOS F
SPOHN WC, 1983, THEOL STUDIES MAR, V44, P30
STRASSER S, 1956, GEMUT
STRASSER S, 1977, PHENOMENOL FEELING
TALLON A, 1982, PERSONAL BECOMING K
TALLON A, 1986, LIFE RELIGION PHILOS, P17
VELDMAN F, 1989, HAPTONOMIE SCI AFFEC, P170
NR 54
TC 1
PU AMER CATHOLIC PHILOS ASSN
PI WASHINGTON
PA CATHOLIC UNIVERSITY, WASHINGTON, DC 20064
SN 1051-3558
J9 AMER CATH PHIL QUART
JI Am. Cath. Philos. Q.
PD SUM
PY 1992
VL 66
IS 3
BP 341
EP 360
PG 20
SC Philosophy
GA KD747
UT ISI:A1992KD74700005
ER

PT J
AU ZALTA, EN
TI ON MALLY ALLEGED HERESY - A REPLY
SO HISTORY AND PHILOSOPHY OF LOGIC
LA English
DT Article
AB In this paper, I respond to critics who claim that E. Mally's distinction between two modes of predication, as it is employed in my theory of abstract objects, is reducible to, or analyzable in terms of, a single mode of predication plus the distinction between nuclear and extranuclear properties. I argue against these claims by developing counterexamples to the reductions and analyses. I also offer reasons for thinking that no such reduction/analysis could be successful.
RP ZALTA, EN, STANFORD UNIV,DEPT PHILOSOPHY,STANFORD,CA 94305.
CR CASTANEDA HN, 1947, PHILOSOPHIA, V4, P3
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
FINE K, 1984, PHILOS STUD, V45, P95
JACQUETTE D, 1989, HIST PHILOS LOGIC, V10, P1
MALLY E, 1912, GEGENSTANDSTHEORETIS
MEINONG A, 1915, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
PARSONS T, 1980, NONXISTENT OBJECTS
RAPAPORT WJ, 1978, NOUS, V12, P153
ZALTA E, 1983, ABSTRACT OBJECTS INT
ZALTA E, 1988, INTENSIONAL LOGIC ME
NR 10
TC 1
PU TAYLOR & FRANCIS LTD
PI LONDON
PA ONE GUNDPOWDER SQUARE, LONDON, ENGLAND EC4A 3DE
SN 0144-5340
J9 HIST PHILOS LOGIC
JI Hist. Philos. Log.
PY 1992
VL 13
IS 1
BP 59
EP 68
PG 10
SC Ethics; History & Philosophy Of Science; Philosophy
GA GZ574
UT ISI:A1992GZ57400004
ER

PT J
AU ROLLINGER, RD
TI HUSSERL AND CORNELIUS
SO HUSSERL STUDIES
LA English
DT Article
CR AVENARIUS R, 1876, PHILOS ALS DENKEN WE, R3
CORNELIUS H, 1892, VIERTELJAHRSSCHRIFT, V16, P404
CORNELIUS H, 1893, VIERTELJAHRSSCHRIFT, V17, P30
CORNELIUS H, 1897, ARCH SYSTEMATISCHE P, V3, P216
CORNELIUS H, 1903, EINLEITUNG PHILOS, P284
CORNELIUS H, 1906, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V42, P401
CORNELIUS H, 1906, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V43, P18
CORNELIUS H, 1916, TRANSCENDENTALE SYST
CORNELIUS H, 1921, DTSCH PHILOS GEGENWA, V2, P81
CORNELIUS H, 1926, KOMMENTAR KANTS KRIT
CORNELIUS H, 1931, ERKENNTNIS, V2, P191
CORNELIUS, MISTAKES ARE TYPICAL
CORNELIUS, 1900, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V22, P101
CORNELIUS, 1900, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V24, P101
GEIGER, 1909, COMMUNICATION 1228
HOLENSTEIN E, 1972, PHANOMENOLOGIE ASS S, P250
HUSSERL E, 1894, PHILOS MONATSHEFTE, V30, P159
HUSSERL E, 1903, ARCH SYSTEMATISCHE P, V9, P393
HUSSERL, 1897, COMMUNICATION 0116
HUSSERL, 1901, COMMUNICATION 0618
JAY M, 1973, DIALECTICAL IMAGINAT, P44
KUNNE W, 1986, GRUNDPROBLEME GROSSE, V4, P180
LIPPS, 1899, Z PADAGOGISCHE PSYCH, V1, P209
LIPPS, 1899, Z PADAGOGISCHE PSYCH, V1, P372
LIPPS, 1900, Z PADAGOGISCHE PSYCH, V2, P312
LIPPS, 1901, Z PADAGOGISCHE PSYCH, V3, P407
MEINONG A, 1877, SITZUNGSBERICHTE KAI, V87, P185
MEINONG, 1894, PSYCHOL PHYSL SINNES, V6, P417
MEINONG, 1894, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V6, P340
MEINONG, 1900, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V24, P34
RIEGER M, 1894, VERSUCH THEORIE EXIS
SMID RN, 1982, PFANDER STUDIEN, P114
SOMMER M, 1985, HUSSERL FRUHE POSITI
TEUBNER BG, 1897, PSYCHOL ERFAHRUNGSWI
THIELE J, 1965, Z PHILOS FORSCH, V19, P136
NR 35
TC 1
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0167-9848
J9 HUSSERL STUD
JI Husserl Stud.
PY 1991
VL 8
IS 1
BP 33
EP 56
PG 24
SC Philosophy
GA GL237
UT ISI:A1991GL23700003
ER

PT J
AU GARRETT, R
TI THE LIMITS OF GENERALIZATION IN METAPHYSICS - THE CASE OF BUCHLER
SO SOUTHERN JOURNAL OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
C1 MONTCLAIR STATE COLL,PHILOSOPHY,MONTCLAIR,NJ 07043.
CR ALLEN RE, 1960, PHILOS REV, V69, P160
BUCHLER, 1939, C PEIRCES EMPIRICISM
BUCHLER, 1951, GENERAL THEORY HUMAN
BUCHLER, 1955, NATURE JUDGMENT
BUCHLER, 1961, CONCEPT METHOD
BUCHLER, 1966, METAPHYSICS NATURAL, P1
BUCHLER, 1969, J PHILOS, V66, P589
BUCHLER, 1974, MAIN LIGHT CONCEPT P
BUCHLER, 1976, SO J PHILOS, V14, P103
BUCHLER, 1976, SO J PHILOS, V14, P121
BUCHLER, 1976, SO J PHILOS, V14, P139
BUCHLER, 1976, SO J PHILOS, V14, P47
BUCHLER, 1976, SO J PHILOS, V14, P63
BUCHLER, 1976, SO J PHILOS, V14, P85
BUCHLER, 1978, PROCESS STUD, V8, P157
BUCHLER, 1978, REV METAPHYS, V31, P555
BUCHLER, 1979, PHILOS MIRROR NATURE, P289
CHISHOLM RM, 1982, BRENTANO MEINONG STU
CORRINGTON RS, 1985, INT PHILOS Q, V25, P292
GEACH PT, 1972, LOGIC MATTERS, P160
GELBER S, 1986, PROCESS STUD, V15, P112
HARE PH, 1980, PROCESS STUD, V10, P120
HARTSHORNE C, 1984, CREATIVITY AM PHILOS, P274
KNEALE W, 1986, DEV LOGIC, P656
LINSKY L, 1977, NAMES DESCRIPTIONS, P34
LINSKY, 1967, REFERRING
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P78
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS, P38
PUTNAM H, 1987, MANY FACES REALISM
PUTNAM, 1975, PHILOS PAPERS, V1, P305
QUINE WV, 1976, WAYS PARADOX OTHER E, P1
QUINE WV, 1985, TIME MY LIFE AUTOBIO
RECK, 1968, NEW AM PHILOS EXPLOR, P149
RESCHER N, 1979, LOGIC INCONSISTENCY
RORTY, 1982, CONSEQUENCES PRAGMAT, R29
ROSS SD, 1980, TRANSITION ORDINAL M, P73
RUSSELL B, 1967, FREGE GODEL SOURCE B, P125
RUSSELL, CITED INDIRECTLY
RUSSELL, 1971, LOGIC KNOWLEDGE ESSA, P253
SINGER BJ, 1983, ORDINAL NATURALISM I, P216
SINGER BJ, 1986, MAN WORLD, V19, P471
SOSA E, 1987, J PHILOS, V84, P707
WEISS P, 1980, INT PHILOS Q, V20, P199
ZALTA EN, 1983, ABSTRACT OBJECTS INT, P93
NR 44
TC 1
PU SOUTHERN J PHILOSOPHY MEMPHIS STATE UNIV
PI MEMPHIS
PA DEPT PHILOSOPHY, MEMPHIS, TN 38152
SN 0038-4283
J9 SOUTHERN J PHIL
JI South. J. Philos.
PD SPR
PY 1989
VL 27
IS 1
BP 1
EP 28
PG 28
SC Philosophy
GA DJ893
UT ISI:A1989DJ89300001
ER

PT J
AU CHISHOLM, RM
TI THE OBJECTS OF SENSATION, A BRENTANO STUDY
SO TOPOI-AN INTERNATIONAL REVIEW OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
RP CHISHOLM, RM, BROWN UNIV,DEPT PHILOSOPHY,PROVIDENCE,RI 02912.
CR BERGMANN H, 1909, PHILOS WERK B BOLZAN
BOLZANO B, 1838, ATHANASIA GRUNDE UNS
BOLZANO B, 1979, THEORY SCI
BRENTANO F, 1982, DESKRIPTIVE PSYCHOL
EHRENFELS CV, 1916, KOSMOGONIE
JOHNSON WE, 1921, LOGIC
MEINONG A, 1907, STELLUNG GEGENSTANDS
MEINONG A, 1975, MEINONG GESAMT AUSGA, V5
NR 8
TC 1
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0167-7411
J9 TOPOI-INT REV PHIL
JI Topoi-Int. Rev. Philos.
PD MAR
PY 1989
VL 8
IS 1
BP 3
EP 8
PG 6
SC Philosophy
GA AA032
UT ISI:A1989AA03200001
ER

PT J
AU HALLER, R
TI INCOMPLETENESS AND FICTIONALITY IN MEINONG OBJECT THEORY
SO TOPOI-AN INTERNATIONAL REVIEW OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
RP HALLER, R, GRAZ UNIV,INST PHILOSOPHY,A-8010 GRAZ,AUSTRIA.
CR CASTANEDA HN, 1979, POETICS, V8
CHISHOLM RM, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
FINDLAY J, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
FINDLAY JN, 1986, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
GROSSMANN R, 1974, MEINONG
HALLER R, 1981, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V12, P105
HALLER R, 1986, FACTA FICTA
HALLER R, 1986, NONEXISTENCE PREDICA
KANT I, CRITIQUE PURE REASON
LAMBERT K, 1983, MEINONG PRINCIPLE IN
MEINONG A, GESAMTAUSGABE, V5
MEINONG A, KOLLEGHEFTE FRAGMENT
MEINONG A, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
MEINONG A, PHILOSOPHRENBRIEFE W
MEINONG A, 1904, THEORY OBJECTS
MEINONG A, 1907, STELLUNG GEGENSTANDS
MEINONG A, 1917, VIERTES KOLLEG ERKEN
MEINONG A, 1976, ASSUMPTIONS
MEINONG A, 1978, OBJECTS HIGHER ORDER
PARSONS T, 1975, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V1, P73
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
QUINE WV, 1969, ONTOLOGICAL RELATIVK
ROUTLEY R, 1980, EXPLORING MEINONGS J
RUSSELL B, 1963, MYSTICISM LOGIC, P162
RYLE G, 1933, OXFORD MAGAZINE 1026
TWARDOWSKI K, 1977, CONTENT OBJECT PRESE
WITTGENSTEIN L, PHILOS BEMERKUNGEN
NR 27
TC 1
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0167-7411
J9 TOPOI-INT REV PHIL
JI Topoi-Int. Rev. Philos.
PD MAR
PY 1989
VL 8
IS 1
BP 63
EP 70
PG 8
SC Philosophy
GA AA032
UT ISI:A1989AA03200007
ER

PT J
AU FURST, LR
TI REALISM AND ITS CODE OF ACCREDITATION
SO COMPARATIVE LITERATURE STUDIES
LA English
DT Article
RP FURST, LR, UNIV N CAROLINA,CHAPEL HILL,NC 27514.
CR AUSTEN J, 1955, LETT HER SISTER CASS
BACHELARD G, 1974, POETIQUE ESPACE
BALZAC HD, COMEDIE HUMAINE
BARTHES R, 1968, COMMUNICATIONS, V11, P84
BARTHES R, 1970, LANGUAGES CRITICISM, P134
BARTHES R, 1978, PRETEXTE R BARTHES
BRINKMANN R, 1957, WIRKLICHKEIT ILLUSIO
BUTOR M, 1964, REPERTOIRE, V2, P88
CALVINO I, 1980, PIETRA SOPRA, P310
CHAPMAN RW, 1933, NOVELS J AUSTEN, V2
DICKENS C, OUR MUTUAL FRIEND
ELIOT G, ADAM BEDE
ELIOT G, MIDDLEMARCH
ERMATH E, 1983, REALISM CONSENSUS EN
GASKELL E, MARY BARTON
GOMBRICH EH, 1960, ART ILLUSION
HARSHAV, 1984, POETICS TODAY, V5, P227
ISER W, 1978, ACT READING
LEVINE G, 1981, REALISTIC IMAGINATIO
LUTWACK L, 1985, ROLE PLACE LIT
MANN T, BUDDENBROOKS
MANN T, 1960, GESAMMELTE WERKE, P11
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P76
MILLER JH, 1971, DICKENS CENTENNIAL E, P85
MILTON J, 1957, WORKS
ONG WJ, 1975, PMLA, V90, P9
SMITH JS, 1977, TEXAS STUDIES LIT LA, V19, P188
STERN JP, 1973, REALISM
VANINWAGEN P, 1977, AM PHILOS Q, V14, P299
WALTON K, 1978, J AESTHETICS ART CRI, V37, P11
WALTON KL, 1976, NOUS, V10, P49
WALTON KL, 1983, DISPOSITIO, V5, P1
WARHOL RR, 1986, PMLA, V101, P811
WATT I, 1957, RISE NOVEL
WHITE H, 1973, METAHISTORY
WILLIAMS DA, 1978, MONSTER MIRROR
ZOLA E, ASSOMMOIR
ZOLA E, MES HAINES
ZOLA E, 1913, ROMAN EXPERIMENTAL, P109
ZORAN G, 1984, POETICS TODAY, V5, P309
NR 40
TC 1
PU PENN STATE UNIV PRESS
PI UNIVERSITY PK
PA SUITE C, BARBARA BLDG. 820 NORTH UNIVERSITY DRIVE, UNIVERSITY PK, PA 16802-1003
SN 0010-4132
J9 COMP LIT STUD
JI Comp. Lit. Stud.
PY 1988
VL 25
IS 2
BP 101
EP 126
PG 26
SC Literature
GA P1035
UT ISI:A1988P103500001
ER

PT J
AU SYLVAN, R
TI LANGUAGE, THOUGHT AND REPRESENTATION OF THE WORLD
SO REVUE INTERNATIONALE DE PHILOSOPHIE
LA English
DT Article
CR CRESSWELL MJ, 1973, LOGICS LANGUAGES
DERRIDA J, 1986, MARGINS PHILOS
DEVITT M, 1984, REALISM TRUTH
EDWARDS JC, 1982, ETHICS PHILOS
GODDARD L, 1983, LOGIC SIGNIFICANCE C
GRAVE SA, 1984, HIST PHILOS AUSTR
HAACK S, 1978, PHILOS LOGICS
IHDE D, 1983, EXISTENTIAL TECHNICS
JUDGE B, 1985, THINKING THINGS
MACNABB DGC, 1967, ENCYCL PHILOS, V4, P74
MEINONG A, 1983, ASSUMPTION
MEYER RK, 1975, EXTENSIONAL REDUCTIO
PASSMORE J, 1985, RECENT PHILOS
PLUMWOOD V, 1982, LANGUAGE ONTOLOGY
PUTNAM H, 1980, J SYMBOLIC LOGIC, V45, P464
RENNIE MK, 1974, SOME USES TYPE THEOR
RESCHER N, 1969, MANY VALUED LOGIC
RORTY R, 1980, PHILOS MIRROR NATURE
ROUTLEY R, 1976, AUSTR J PHILOS, V54, P187
ROUTLEY R, 1979, EXPLORING MEINONGS J
ROUTLEY R, 1984, 10 AUSTR NAT U DISC
RYLE G, 1949, CONCEPT MIND
SMART JJC, 1977, AUSTR ASS LOGIC C ME
SYLVAN R, 1986, REASONING, V1
SYLVAN R, 1987, REALISM RELATIVISM
TAYLOR C, 1980, MAN WORLD, V13, P281
WISDOM J, 1952, OTHER MINDS
WITTGENSTEIN L, ON CERTAINTY
WITTGENSTEIN L, TRACTATUS LOGICO-PHI
NR 29
TC 1
PU REVUE INTERNATIONALE DE PHILOSOPHIE
PI BRUSSELS
PA UNIVERSITE LIBRE DE BRUXELLES, INST DE PHILOSOPHIE CP-188, AV. ROOSEVELT, 50, B-1050 BRUSSELS, BELGIUM
SN 0048-8143
J9 REV INT PHIL
JI Rev. Int. Philos.
PY 1987
VL 41
IS 160
BP 64
EP 96
PG 33
SC Philosophy
GA H5119
UT ISI:A1987H511900004
ER

PT J
AU KNOBLOCH, C
TI MARTINAK,EDUARD AND PSYCHOLOGICAL SEMANTICS
SO KODIKAS CODE-ARS SEMEIOTICA
LA German
DT Article
RP KNOBLOCH, C, UNIV GESAMTHSCH SIEGEN,FACHBEREICH 3 SPRACH & LITERATURWISSENSCH GERMANIST,W-5900 SIEGEN 21,GERMANY.
CR BUHLER K, 1909, 3 K EXP PSYCH 22 25, P94
BUHLER K, 1934, SPRACHTHEORIE
DITTRICH O, 1913, PROBLEME SPRACHPSYCH
ERDMANN KO, 1900, BEDEUTUNG WORTES AUF
FUNKE O, 1924, INNERE SPRACHFORM EI
GARDINER A, 1951, THEORY SPEECH LANGUA
GOMPERZ H, 1908, WELTANSCHAUUNGSLEHRE, V2
GORDON WT, 1982, HIST SEMANTICS
KNOBLOCH C, 1984, HIST LING, V11, P413
KOERNER EFK, 1975, CURRENT TRENDS LINGU, V13
KRUG J, 1929, SPRACHTHEORIE BEITRA
MARTINAK E, 1894, LOGIK J LOCKES
MARTINAK E, 1898, Z OSTERREICHSCHEN GY, V49, P1
MARTINAK E, 1901, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG
MARTINAK E, 1906, 5 ATT C INT PSIC ROM, P333
MARTY A, 1875, URSPRUNG SPRACHE
MARTY A, 1908, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GRUND, V1
MARTY A, 1916, GESAMMELTE SCHRIFTEN
MEINONG A, 1902, UBER ANNAHMEN
MEYER TA, 1901, STILGESETZ POESIE
OERTEL H, 1902, LECTURES STUDY LANGU
PAUL H, 1909, PRINZIPIEN SPRACHGES
SAUSSURE FD, 1967, GRUNDFRAGEN ALLGEMEI
SCHERER TM, 1980, F DESAUSSURE
SCHUCHARDT H, 1902, LITERATURBLATT GERMA
STERN G, 1931, MEANING CHANGE MEANI
TREMEL F, 1975, OSTERR AKAD WISS, V6
TWARDOWSKI K, 1894, LEHRE VOM INHALT GEG
WEGENER P, 1885, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GRUND
WUNDT W, 1900, SPRACHE
NR 30
TC 1
PU GUNTER NARR VERLAG
PI TUBINGEN
PA DISCHINGERWEG 5, D 72070 TUBINGEN, GERMANY
SN 0171-0834
J9 KODIKAS CODE-ARS SEMEIOTICA
PD JAN-JUN
PY 1986
VL 9
IS 1-2
BP 183
EP 196
PG 14
SC Humanities, Multidisciplinary; Language & Linguistics
GA F6158
UT ISI:A1986F615800008
ER

PT J
AU SMITH, B
TI ONTOLOGICAL ASPECT OF HUSSERLIAN PHENOMENOLOGY
SO HUSSERL STUDIES
LA German
DT Article
RP SMITH, B, UNIV MANCHESTER,MANCHESTER M13 9PL,LANCS,ENGLAND.
CR ASH MG, 1982, THESIS HARVARD U
BORING EG, 1950, HIST EXPT PSYCHOL
BRENTANO F, 1976, PHILOS UNTERSUCHUNGE
BRENTANO F, 1982, DESKRIPTIVE PSYCHOL
DELIUS H, 1963, UNTERSUCHUNGEN PROBL
FINE K, 1985, THESIS UNIV EDINBURG
GRASSL W, 1986, AUSTRIAN EC HIST PHI
HARRISON BB, 1973, FORM CONTENT
HOLENSTEIN E, 1975, R JAKOBSONS PHANOMEN
HUSSERL E, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
HUSSERL E, PHANOMENOLOGIE INNER
INGARDEN BR, 1931, LIT KUNSTWERK UNTERS
KERN I, 1964, HUSSERL KANT
KRAUS O, 1919, F BRENTANO KENNTNIS
MEINONG A, 1903, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V33, P1
MEINONG A, 1969, GESAMTAUSGABE, V1
MULLIGAN K, IN PRESS
MULLIGAN K, 1980, THESIS UNIV MANCHEST
PASTORE BN, 1974, J HIST BEHAVIORAL SC, V10, P375
REINACH A, 1911, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V141, P176
REINACH A, 1913, JB PHILOS PHANOMENOL, V1, P685
REINACH A, 1914, PHANOMENOLOGIE
REINACH A, 1921, GESAMMELTEN SCHRIFTE
SCHUHMANN K, 1985, REV METAPHYS, V39, P763
SIMONS PM, 1984, PHILOS WISSENSCHAFT, P67
SMITH B, 1982, PARTS MOMENTS
SMITH B, 1983, TOPOI, V3, P73
SMITH B, 1984, DIALECTICA, V38, P157
SMITH B, 1984, THEORETICAL LINGUIST, V11, P311
SOKOLOWSKI R, 1967, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V28, P537
SOKOLOWSKI R, 1971, INQUIRY, V14, P318
SOKOLOWSKI R, 1974, HUSSERLIAN MEDITATIO
STUMPF C, 1926, SPRACHLAUTE
STUMPFS C, 1883, TONPSYCHOLOGIE, V1
WITTGENSTEIN L, 1929, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, V9, P162
NR 35
TC 1
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0167-9848
J9 HUSSERL STUD
JI Husserl Stud.
PY 1986
VL 3
IS 2
BP 115
EP 130
PG 16
SC Philosophy
GA E4587
UT ISI:A1986E458700001
ER

PT J
AU SMITH, B
TI 10 CONDITIONS ON A THEORY OF SPEECH-ACTS
SO THEORETICAL LINGUISTICS
LA English
DT Article
CR BUHLER K, 1909, GOTTINGISCHE GELEHRT, V171, P947
BUHLER K, 1934, SPRACHTHEORIE DARSTE
DAUBERT J, MSA12 FRAG
DEMPE H, 1928, THESIS JENA
GARDINER AH, 1932, THEORY SPEECH LANGUA
GOLDMAN AI, 1970, THEORY HUMAN ACTION
HERINGER HJ, 1970, THEORIE DTSCH SYNTAX
HOLENSTEIN E, 1974, R JAKOBSONS APPROACH
HUSSERI E, 1900, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
KASTIL A, 1951, PHILOS FRANZ BRENTAN
KOSCHMIEDER E, 1945, BESTIMMUNG FUNKTIONE
MARTINAK E, 1901, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG
MARTY A, 1908, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GRUND, V1
MARTY A, 1984, SUBJEKTLOSE SATZE VE
MEINONG AV, 1917, EMOTIONALE PRASENTAT
MELCUK IA, 1979, STUDIES DEPENDENCY S
MULLIGAN K, MIND MEANING METAPHY
MULLIGAN K, SPEECH ACT SACHVERHA
MULLIGAN K, 1984, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V44, P287
NEHRING A, 1963, SPRACHZEICHEN SPRECH
PAUL H, 1909, PRINZIPIEN SPRACHGES
PFANDER A, 1909, IMPERATIVENLEHRE
PFANDER A, 1921, JB PHILOS PHANOMENOL, V4, P139
REINACH A, 1913, JB PHILOS PHANOMENOL, V1, P685
REINACH A, 1921, HERAUSGEGEBEN SEINEN
REINACHA, 1983, APRIORI FOUNDATIONS
SCHUHMANN K, A REINACH 1883 1917
SCHUHMANN K, 1985, THESIS U UTRECHT
SCHWARZ H, 1908, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V132, P152
SEARLE JR, 1983, ESSAY PHILOS MIND
SEARLE JR, 1984, INFORMATION PHIL JAN, P24
SIMONS P, 1982, PARTS MOMENTS, P113
SIMONS PM, 1982, FORMALISATION HUSSER, P113
SMITH B, COGNITION STATES AFF
SMITH B, 1982, STUDIES LOGIC FORMAL
SMITH B, 1985, UNPUB K BUHLERS THEO
SPRAGUE RK, 1972, OLDER SOPHISTS
TUMLIRZ O, 1919, BEITRAGE PSYCHOL GEG
NR 38
TC 1
PU WALTER DE GRUYTER & CO
PI BERLIN
PA GENTHINER STRASSE 13, D-10785 BERLIN, GERMANY
SN 0301-4428
J9 THEOR LINGUIST
JI Theor. Linguist.
PY 1984
VL 11
IS 3
BP 311
EP 330
PG 20
SC Linguistics; Language & Linguistics
GA AWL59
UT ISI:A1984AWL5900005
ER

PT J
AU CHARPA, U
TI PARTS AND MOMENTS - STUDIES IN LOGIC AND FORMAL ONTOLOGY - SMITH,B
SO PHILOSOPHISCHE RUNDSCHAU
LA German
DT Book Review
CR BLACK M, 1971, REV METAPHYS, V24, P614
CHISHOLM RM, 1979, ERKENNTNISTHEORIE
FREGE SG, 1895, KRITISCHE BELEUCHTUN
GOODMAN N, 1972, PROBLEMS PROJECTS
HALLER R, LEHRE INHALT GEGENST
HOLENSTEIN E, 1973, TIJDSCHRIFT FILOSOFI, V35, P560
HUSSERL E, 1972, ERFAHRUNG URTEIL
HUSSERL E, 1975, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
HUSSERL E, 1979, AUFSATZE REZENSIONEN
LAUENER H, 1982, WV QUINE
MEINONG A, PSYCHOL KOMPLEXIONEN
PANZER U, UNTERSUCHUNGEN PHANO
QUINE WVO, 1953, 3 GRADES MODAL INVOL
ROSADOHADDOCK GE, 1973, THESIS BONN
RUSSELL B, 1903, PRINCIPLES MATH
SCHMITT R, 1981, HUSSERLS PHILOS MATH
SEEBOHM TM, 1972, KRITIK HERMENEUTISCH
SMITH B, 1982, PARTS MOMENTS STUDIE
SOKOLOWSKI R, 1974, HUSSERLIAN MEDITATIO
NR 19
TC 1
PU J C B MOHR
PI TUBINGEN
PA POSTFACH 2040, W-7400 TUBINGEN, GERMANY
SN 0031-8159
J9 PHIL RUNDSCH
JI Philos. Rundsch.
PY 1984
VL 31
IS 1-2
BP 52
EP 59
PG 8
SC Philosophy
GA SY955
UT ISI:A1984SY95500014
ER

PT J
AU KENT, OT
TI BRENTANO AND THE RELATIONAL VIEW OF CONSCIOUSNESS
SO MAN AND WORLD-AN INTERNATIONAL PHILOSOPHICAL REVIEW
LA English
DT Article
RP KENT, OT, ROSE HULMAN INST TECHNOL,TERRE HAUTE,IN.
CR ADDIS L, 1982, NOUS SEP
AQUILA RR, 1977, INTENTIONALITY STUDY
AQUINAS T, DE ANIMA
BRENTANO F, ORIGIN OUR KNOWLEDGE
BRENTANO F, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN
BUTCHVAROV P, 1979, BEING QUA BEING STUD
CHISHOLM RM, 1957, PERCEIVING PHILOS ST
CHISHOLM RM, 1966, BRENTANO TRUE EVIDEN, R7
CHISHOLM RM, 1967, PHENOMENOLOGY EXISTE, P6
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
GROSSMAN R, 1965, STRUCTURE MIND
GROSSMANN R, 1960, ANALYSIS, V21, P1
HUSSERL E, LOGICAL INVESTIGATIO
MCALISTER L, 1976, PHILOS BRENTANO, P151
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P83
MOHANTY JN, 1972, CONCEPT INTENTIONALI
SARTRE JP, BEING AND NOTHINGNES
SARTRE JP, PSYCHOL IMAGINATION
SPIEGELBERG H, 1965, PHENOMENOLOGICAL MOV
TWARDOWSKI K, 1977, CONTENT OBJECT PRESE
NR 20
TC 1
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0025-1534
J9 MAN WORLD-INT PHIL REV
JI Man World-Int. Philos. Rev.
PY 1984
VL 17
IS 1
BP 19
EP 51
PG 33
SC Philosophy
GA SH700
UT ISI:A1984SH70000002
ER

PT J
AU HAGG, C
TI JUST PRICE AND EQUAL-OPPORTUNITY
SO JOURNAL OF BUSINESS ETHICS
LA English
DT Article
RP HAGG, C, UNIV STOCKHOLM,DEPT BUSINESS ADM,S-10691 STOCKHOLM,SWEDEN.
CR ACTON HB, 1971, MORALS MARKETS
ARISTOTLE, 1976, NICOMACHEAN ETHICS
ARTZ FB, 1958, MIND MIDDLE AGES
BANERJEE KS, 1975, COST LIVING INDEX NU
CRAMER H, 1946, MATH METHODS STATIST
DETARDE A, 1907, IDEE JUSTE PRIX
HAGG C, 1978, FUZZY SETS SYSTEMS, V1, P81
MEINONG A, 1915, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
VALDEYRON D, 1942, RECHERCHE JUSTE PRIX
VONMISES R, 1928, WAHRSCHEINLICHKEIT S
ZADEH LA, 1978, FUZZY SETS SYSTEMS, V1, P3
NR 11
TC 1
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0167-4544
J9 J BUS ETHICS
JI J. Bus. Ethics
PY 1983
VL 2
IS 4
BP 269
EP 272
PG 4
SC Business; Ethics
GA RQ929
UT ISI:A1983RQ92900004
ER

PT J
AU WEINGARTNER, P
TI CONDITIONS OF RATIONALITY FOR THE CONCEPTS BELIEF, KNOWLEDGE, AND ASSUMPTION
SO DIALECTICA
LA English
DT Article
RP WEINGARTNER, P, SALZBURG UNIV,INST PHILOSOPHY,A-5020 SALZBURG,AUSTRIA.
CR AQUINAS T, SUMMA THEOLOGICA
CHISHOLM R, 1963, J PHILOS, V60, P773
CHISHOLM RM, 1966, THEORY KNOWLEDGE
EBERLE RA, 1974, SYNTHESE, V26, P356
HILPINEN R, 1970, SYNTHESE, V21, P109
HINTIKKA J, 1962, KNOWLEDGE BELIEF
HINTIKKA J, 1970, AJATUS, V32, P32
LEHRER K, 1974, KNOWLEDGE
LEJEWSKI C, 1981, ESSAYS SCI PHILOS
LEMMON E, 1957, J SYMBOLIC LOGIC, V22, P176
LENZEN W, 1978, ACTA PHILOS FENNICA, V30
LENZEN W, 1979, ERKENNTNIS, V14, P33
LENZEN W, 1980, GLAUBEN WISSEN WAHRS
MEINONG A, 1910, UBER ANNAHMEN
MORSCHER E, 1981, ESSAYS SCI PHILOS
WEINGARTNER P, 1980, 3RD P INT C HIST PHI
NR 16
TC 1
PU SOC DIALECTICA C/O GEIGER AG BERN
PI BERN 16
PA HABSBURGSTRASSE 19, 3000 BERN 16, SWITZERLAND
SN 0012-2017
J9 DIALECTICA
JI Dialectica
PY 1982
VL 36
IS 2-3
BP 243
EP 263
PG 21
SC Philosophy
GA PS995
UT ISI:A1982PS99500008
ER

PT J
AU SULLIVAN, TD
TI CONCEPTS + THINKING AND COGNITION
SO NEW SCHOLASTICISM
LA English
DT Article
RP SULLIVAN, TD, COLL ST THOMAS,ST PAUL,MN.
CR 1979, REV METAPHYS, V32, P639
ANSCOMBE E, 1965, ANAL PHILOS, P161
AQUINAS T, DE ENTE ET ESSENTIA
AQUINAS T, DE POTENTIA DEI
AQUINAS T, EXP IN DE TRINITATE
AQUINAS T, EXP IN LIB I PERIHER
AQUINAS T, SUMMA CONTRA GENTILE
BOSWELL J, LIFE S JOHNSON
CHISHOLM RM, 1973, PHILOS STUDIES, V24, P234
CHISHOLM RM, 1973, REV INT PHILOS, V27, P220
DONAGAN A, 1963, MONIST, V47, P228
HEATH P, 1978, MONIST, V61, P228
JAMES W, 1952, PRINCIPLES PSYCHOL
LOCKE J, ESSAY HUMAN UNDERSTA
MEINONG A, 1915, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
MEINONG A, 1967, THEORY UNIVERSALS
MOORE GE, 1953, SOME MAIN PROBLEMS P
PRICE HH, THINKING EXPERIENCE
PRICE HH, 1946, P BRIT ACADEMY, P4
PRICE HH, 1969, THINKING EXPERIENCE
PRIOR AN, 1971, OBJECTS THOUGHT
REID T, ESSAYS INTELLECTUAL
SCHMIDT RW, 1966, DOMAIN LOGIC ACCORDI
NR 23
TC 1
PU AMER CATHOLIC PHILOS ASSN
PI WASHINGTON
PA CATHOLIC UNIVERSITY, WASHINGTON, DC 20064
SN 0028-6621
J9 NEW SCHOLAST
PY 1982
VL 56
IS 2
BP 146
EP 168
PG 23
SC Philosophy; Religion
GA NY514
UT ISI:A1982NY51400002
ER

PT J
AU MELANDRI, E
TI LITERARY GENRES AND THEIR ORIGIN
SO LINGUA E STILE
LA Italian
DT Article
CR AUERBACH E, 1946, MIMESIS
BENJAMIN W, 1925, URSPRUNG DTSCH TRAUE
BERGSON H, 1899, ESSAI DONNEES IMMEDI
BULTMANN R, 1954, FRAGE ENTMYTHOLOGISI
CANGUILHEM G, 1966, NORMAL PATHOLOGIQUE
CASSIRER E, 1923, PHILOS SYMBOLISCHEN
CONTINI G, 1951, PARAGONE, V16, P3
CROCE B, 1928, AESTHETICA NUCE
CROCE B, 1948, BIBLIO VICHIANA
HABERMAS J, 1967, PHILOS RUNDSCHAU
HEIDEGGER M, 1929, KANT PROBLEM METAPHY
HEIDEGGER M, 1947, PLATONS LEHRE WAHRE
HELMHOLTZ HV, 1879, TATSACHEN WAHRNEHMUN
HERTZ H, 1894, PRINZIPIEN MECHANIK
HOFFMANN E, 1925, SPRACHE ARCHAISCHE L
HUMBOLDT WV, 1827, VERSCHIEDENHEITEN ME
JASPERS K, 1913, ALLGEMEINE PSYCHOPAT
KUHN CG, 1927, KUHN HIPPOCRATES OPE, V1
KUHN TS, 1962, STRUCTURE SCI REVOLU
MEINONG AV, 1899, GEGENSTANDE HOHERER
MELANDRI E, 1968, LINEA CIRCOLO STUDIO
NATORP P, 1903, PLATOS IDEENLEHRE
OGDEN CK, 1923, MEANING MEANING STUD
OSTWALD W, 1921, ANN NATURPHILOSOPHIE
SCHUTZ A, 1932, SINNHAFTE AUFBAU SOC
SNELL B, 1952, AUFBAU SPRACHE
STEINTHAL H, 1863, GESCH SPRACHWISSENSC
VEGETTI M, 1966, RIV CRITICA STORIA F, V1
VEGETTI M, 1967, RIV CRITICA STORIA F, V2
VEGETTI M, 1968, RIV CRITICA STORIA F, V3
WEBER M, 1913, LOGOS, V4, P427
WITTGENSTEIN L, 1921, LOGISCH PHILOS ABHAN
NR 32
TC 1
PU SOC ED IL MULINO
PI BOLOGNA
PA STRADA MAGGIORE 37, 40125 BOLOGNA, ITALY
SN 0024-385X
J9 LING STILE
JI Ling. Stile
PY 1980
VL 15
IS 3
BP 391
EP 431
PG 41
SC Language & Linguistics; Literature
GA LQ864
UT ISI:A1980LQ86400006
ER

PT J
AU MIGNOLO, WD
TI SEMANTIZATION OF LITERARY FICTION
SO DISPOSITIO-REVISTA HISPANICA DE SEMIOTICA LITERARIA
LA Spanish
DT Article
RP MIGNOLO, WD, UNIV MICHIGAN,ANN ARBOR,MI 48109.
CR ADAM JM, 1976, LINGUISTIQUE DISCOUR
ADAMS RM, 1974, NOUS, V8, P211
ANDREU JL, 1976, SEMINARIO YO EL SUPR, P61
ASCASUBI H, 1955, POESIA GAUCHESCA, V3
BANFIELD A, 1973, F LANGUAGE, V10, P1
BARRENECHEA AM, 1972, REV IBEROAMERICANA, V38, P80
BARTHES R, 1966, COMMUNICATIONS, V8
BARTHES R, 1970, INTRO STRUCTURALISM
BENSO S, 1975, THESAURUS, V30, P271
BENVENISTE E, 1956, R JAKOBSON, P251
BENVENISTE E, 1966, PROBLEMES LINGUISTIQ
BENVENISTE E, 1970, LANGAGES, V17, P12
BINNS AL, 1966, ESSAYS STYLE LANGUAG
BLESTGANA A, 1971, M RIVAS
BUHLER K, 1934, TEORIA LENGUAJE
BUTOR M, 1960, ESSAIS ROMAN
CAMBACERES E, SIN RUMBO SANGRE
DOLEZEL L, 1976, PTL J DESCRIPTIVE PO, V1, P129
DOLEZEL L, 1980, POETICS TODAY, V1, P7
DOLEZHEL L, 1976, SOUND SIGN MEANING, P543
DUCROT O, 1972, DICT ENCY SCI LANGAG
DURLING RM, 1965, FIGURE POET RENAISSA
ELIZONDO S, 1962, FARABEUF
ELIZONDO S, 1972, GRAFOGRAFO
FANTO JA, 1978, SIGN SEMIOTICS WORLD, P280
FERNANDEZ S, 1968, LOS PECES
FERNANDEZDELIZA.J, 1968, PERIQUILLO SARNIENTO
FORCIONE A, 1970, CERVANTES ARISTOTELE
FOUCAULT M, 1971, ORDRE DISCOURS
FUENTES C, 1972, AURA
GALE R, 1971, PHILOSOPHY, V46, P324
GENETTE G, 1969, FIGURES, V2
GENETTE G, 1972, FIGURES, V3
GOIC C, 1968, NOVELA CHILENA
GOIC C, 1972, HIST NOVELA HISPANOA
GUIRALDES R, 1973, DS SOMBRA
HALLIDAY MAK, 1976, COHESION ENGLISH
HAMBURGER K, 1957, LOGIC FICTION
HASAN R, 1977, CURRENT TRENDS TEXT, P228
HEREDIAYCAMPUZA.JM, 1970, POESIAS COMPLETAS
HERNANDEZ J, MARTIN FIERRO
HERRESTEINSMITH B, 1978, MARGIN DISCOURSE
HOLMBERG L, CUENTOS FANTASTICOS
JITRIK N, 1962, PROCEDIMIENTO MENSAJ
KAYSER W, 1955, CULTURA U CARACAS, P5
KURODA SY, 1976, PRAGMATICS LANGUAGE
LEJEUNE P, 1975, POETIQUE, V14, P137
LEWIS D, 1970, NOUS, V4, P175
LEWIS D, 1978, AM PHILOS Q, V15, P37
LEWIS DK, 1969, CONVENTION PHILOS ST
LEWIS DK, 1973, COUNTERFACTUALS
LINSKY L, 1967, REFERRING
LOTMAN YM, 1977, STRUCTURE ARTISTIC T
LUDMER J, 1977, ONETTI PROCESOS CONS
LUGONES L, 1967, CUENTOS FATALES
LYONS J, 1977, SEMANTICS
MARTINEZBONATI F, 1960, ESTRUCTURA OBRA LITE
MARTINEZBONATI F, 1978, DISPOSITIO, V3, P137
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
MIGNOLO WD, 1978, ELEMENTOS PARA TEORI
MIGNOLO WD, 1980, 3ER C INT SEM POET M
MIGNOLO WD, 1981, MODERN LANGUAGES NOT, V96
MOUNIN G, 1966, COMMUNICATION POETIQ, P255
OHMANN R, 1971, PHILOS RHETORIC, V4, P1
ONETTI JC, 1971, VIDA BREVE
PARSONS T, 1974, J PHILOS, V71, P561
PARSONS T, 1975, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V1, P561
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
PAZ O, 1973, SIGNO Y EL GARABATO
PRATT ML, 1977, SPEECH ACTO THEORY L
PRIETO L, 1966, MENSAJES SENALES
REIZDERIVAROLA S, 1979, LEXIS, V3, P2
RESCHER N, 1968, TOPICS PHILOS LOGIC
RESCHER N, 1975, THEORY POSSIBILITY C
RICOEUR P, 1971, SOC RES, V38, P529
RILEY EC, 1962, CERVANTES THEORY NOV
RIVERA J, 1969, VORAGINE
ROMBERG B, 1962, STUDIES NARRATIVE TE
ROSSUMGUYON FV, 1970, CRITIQUE ROMAN
ROSSUMGUYON FV, 1970, POETIQUE, V4, P476
SARDUY S, 1969, ESCRITO SOBRE CUERPO
SEARLE JR, 1975, NEW LITERARY HIST, V6, P319
SEARLE JR, 1976, LANGUAGE SOCIAL CONT, V5, P1
SIMONINGRUMBACH J, 1973, LANGUE DISCOURS SOC, P85
STRAWSON PF, 1950, PROBLEMS PHILOS LANG
TAMIR N, 1976, PTL, V1, P403
TODOROV T, 1970, INTRO LIT FANTASTIQU
TSUGAWA A, 1978, CATEGORIES C, P209
VONWRIGHT GH, 1970, ENSAYO LOGICA MODAL
WOLTERSTORFF N, 1976, J AESTHETICS ART CRI, V35, P121
WOODS J, 1974, LOGIC FICTION
NR 91
TC 1
PU UNIV MICHIGAN
PI ANN ARBOR
PA DEPT ROMANCE LANG 4222 MODERN LANGUAGES BLDG, ANN ARBOR, MI 48109
SN 0734-0591
J9 DISPOSITIO-REV HISPAN SEM LIT
PY 1981
VL 5-6
IS 15-1
BP 85
EP 127
PG 43
SC Language & Linguistics; Literature, Romance
GA LM620
UT ISI:A1981LM62000004
ER

PT J
AU SMITH, Q
TI SCHELER,MAX AND THE CLASSIFICATION OF FEELINGS
SO JOURNAL OF PHENOMENOLOGICAL PSYCHOLOGY
LA English
DT Article
RP SMITH, Q, UNIV KENTUCKY,LEXINGTON,KY 40506.
CR BRENTANO F, F CONSTRUCTION ETHIC
FRINGS M, 1974, M SCHELER CENTENNIAL, P123
HARTMANN N, ETHICS
HILDEBRAND DV, 1953, ETHICS, P351
HUSSERL E, IDEAS
MEINONG A, EMOTIONAL PRESENTATI
SCHELER M, FORMALISM ETHICS NON
SCHELER M, MEANING SUFFERING
SCHELER M, NATURE SYMPATHY
SCHELER M, ORDO AMORIS
SMITH Q, 1977, PHILOSOPHICAL STUDIE, V25
NR 11
TC 1
PU HUMANITIES PRESS INC
PI ATLANTIC HIGHLANDS
PA 165 FIRST AVENUE, ATLANTIC HIGHLANDS, NJ 07716-1289
SN 0047-2662
J9 J PHENOMENOL PSYCHOL
JI J. Phenomenol. Psychol.
PY 1978
VL 9
IS 1-2
BP 114
EP 138
PG 25
SC Psychology
GA HE139
UT ISI:A1978HE13900004
ER

PT J
AU ROUTLEY, R
ROUTLEY, V
TI (LOGICAL) IMPORTANCE OF NOT EXISTING
SO DIALOGUE-CANADIAN PHILOSOPHICAL REVIEW
LA English
DT Article
C1 AUSTRALIAN NATL UNIV,CANBERRA 2600,ACT,AUSTRALIA.
RP ROUTLEY, R, AUSTRALIAN NATL UNIV,CANBERRA 2600,ACT,AUSTRALIA.
CR ARMSTRONG DM, 1961, PERCEPTION PHYSICAL
BRADY R, 1973, AUSTR J PHILOSOPHY, V51, P211
CHISHOLM RM, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
CHISHOLM RM, 1972, JENSEITS SEIN NICHTS
CHISOLM RM, 1973, PHILOS STUD, V24, P245
HAMILTON W, 1845, WORKS T REID
HUXLEY A, 1959, DOORS PERCEPTION
KAPLAN B, 1964, INNER WORLD MENTAL I
LINSKY L, 1967, REFERRING
MEINONG A, 1910, ANNAHMEN
MOORE GE, 1959, PHILOSOPHICAL PAPERS
PARSONS T, 1974, J PHILOS, V71, P561
PARSONS T, 1975, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V1, P73
QUINE WV, MATH LOGIC
QUINE WV, SET THEORY ITS LOGIC
QUINE WV, 1964, LOGICAL POINT VIEW
ROUTLEY R, UNPUBLISHED
ROUTLEY R, 1969, NOTRE DAME J FORM L, V10, P113
ROUTLEY R, 1973, REV INT PHILOS, V27, P224
ROUTLEY R, 1975, P 15TH WORL C PHIL, V5, P581
ROUTLEY R, 1978, RELEVANT LOGICS THEI
SMART JJC, 1963, PHILOSOPHY SCI REALI
SMART JJC, 1977, AUSTR ASS LOG C MELB
THOMASON R, 1977, MONIST, V60, P340
NR 24
TC 1
PU CANADIAN PHILOSOPHICAL ASSOC
PI OTTAWA
PA MORISSET HALL #375, UNIV OTTAWA, OTTAWA ON K1N 6N5, CANADA
SN 0012-2173
J9 DIALOGUE-CAN PHIL REV
JI Dialogue-Can. Philos. Rev.
PY 1979
VL 18
IS 2
BP 129
EP 165
PG 37
SC Philosophy
GA HC400
UT ISI:A1979HC40000001
ER

PT J
AU GROSSMANN, R
TI STRUCTURES VERSUS SETS - PHILOSOPHICAL BACKGROUND OF GESTALT PSYCHOLOGY
SO CRITICA-REVISTA HISPANOAMERICANA DE FILOSOFIA
LA English
DT Article
C1 INDIANA UNIV,BLOOMINGTON,IN 47401.
CR BERGMANN G, 1944, PHILOS SCI, V11, P209
BERGMANN G, 1948, PSYCHOLOGICAL B, V45, P351
BERGMANN G, 1952, PHILOS Q, V2, P140
BERGMANN G, 1957, PHILOSOPHY SCI, P157
BERKELEY G, TREATISE CONCERNIN 1
CANTOR G, 1962, GESAMMELTE ABHANDLUN
EHRENFEL, 1965, PHILOSOPHENBRIEFE, P74
EHRENFELS CV, 1890, VIERTEL JAHRSSCHRIFT, V3, P249
GELLNER E, 1968, READINGS PHILOSOPHY
GRELLING K, 1937, ERKENNTNIS, V7, P211
GRELLING K, 1938, ERKENNTNIS, V7, P357
GROSSMANN R, 1974, MEINONG
GROSSMANN R, 1975, ACTION KNOWLEDGE REA, P129
HOCHBERG H, 1966, AM PHILOSOPHICAL Q, V3, P1
HUSSERL E, LOGICAL INVESTIGATIO, V2, P440
HUSSERL, 1894, PHILOSOPHISCHE MONAT, V30
HUSSERL, 1970, LOGICAL INVESTIGATIO
MEINONG A, 1913, GESAMMELTE ABHANDLUN, V2, P379
MEINONG A, 1914, GESAMMELTE ABHANDLUN, V1, P280
STUMPF C, 1873, PSYCHOLOGISCHEN URSP, P113
VOLKELT H, 1967, GANZHEITS PSYCHOLOGI, P31
WATSON RA, 1966, DOWNFALL CARTESIANIS
WERTHEIMER M, 1967, SOURCE BOOK GESTALT, P1
NR 23
TC 1
PU CRITICA
PI MEXICO CITY
PA APARTADO 70-447, MEXICO CITY 04510, MEXICO
SN 0011-1503
J9 CRITICA
JI Crit.-Rev. Hispanoam. Filos.
PY 1977
VL 9
IS 27
BP 3
EP 21
PG 19
SC Philosophy
GA FG513
UT ISI:A1977FG51300001
ER

PT J
AU HUSSERL, EG
TI PSYCHOLOGICAL STUDIES IN ELEMENTS OF LOGIC
SO PERSONALIST
LA English
DT Article
CR CAUCHY, COURS ANALYSE ALGEBR
CAUCHY, EXERCISES ANALYSE PH
EHRENFELS, VIERTELJAHRSSCHRIFT, V14
ERDMANN B, LOGIK, V1, P229
ERDMANN B, VIERTELJAHRSSCHRIFT, V10, P343
HUSSERL EG, PHILOSOPHIE ARITHMET, V1, CH12
JAMES W, PRINCIPLES PSYCHOLOG, V1, P258
MEINONG A, 1889, Z PHILOSOPHIE PHILOS, V95, P202
MEINONG, Z PSYCHOLOGIE PHYSIO, V2, P253
MEINONG, 1877, SITZUNGSBERICHTEN PH, V87, P200
STUMPF C, UEBER PSYCHOLOGISCHE, P109
NR 11
TC 1
PU UNIV SOUTHERN CALIF
PI LOS ANGELES
PA SCHOOL PHILOSOPHY, LOS ANGELES, CA 90007
SN 0031-5621
J9 PERSONALIST
PY 1977
VL 58
IS 4
BP 297
EP 320
PG 24
SC History; Philosophy
GA DX802
UT ISI:A1977DX80200002
ER

PT J
AU MARGOLIS, J
TI REMEMBERING
SO MIND
LA English
DT Article
C1 TEMPLE UNIV,PHILADELPHIA,PA 19122.
CR ANSCOMBE GEM, 1950, PHILOSOPHICAL ANALYS
BRANDT RB, 1955, PHILOS REV, V64, P78
CHISHOLM R, 1957, PERCEIVING
CHISHOLM R, 1966, THEORY KNOWLEDGE
DENNETT DC, 1969, CONTENT CONSCIOUSNES
DRETSKE F, 1969, SEEING KNOWING
FURLONG EJ, 1951, STUDY MEMORY, P89
LEHRER K, 1974, KNOWLEDGE, P76
LEYDEN WV, 1961, REMEMBERING, P60
MALCOLM N, 1963, KNOWLEDGE CERTAINTY, P222
MARGOLIS J, TO BE PUBLISHED
MARGOLIS J, UNPUBLISHED
MARGOLIS J, 1972, THEORY PERCEPTION ME, V3, P244
MARGOLIS J, 1973, CANADIAN J PHILOS, V2, P461
MARGOLIS J, 1973, KNOWLEDGE EXISTENCE, CH1
MARTIN CB, 1966, PHILOS REV, V75, P161
MEINONG A, 1973, EMPIRICAL KNOWLEDGE, P256
MUNSAT S, 1966, CONCEPT MEMORY
PENFIELD W, 1954, EPILEPSY FUNCTIONAL
RADFORD C, 1966, ANALYSIS, V27, P1
SMITH B, 1966, MEMORY, CH1
TINBERGEN N, 1951, STUDY INSTINCT, CH5
NR 22
TC 1
PU OXFORD UNIV PRESS
PI OXFORD
PA GREAT CLARENDON ST, OXFORD, ENGLAND OX2 6DP
SN 0026-4423
J9 MIND
JI Mind
PY 1977
VL 86
IS 342
BP 186
EP 205
PG 20
SC Philosophy
GA DB482
UT ISI:A1977DB48200002
ER

PT J
AU HALLER, R
TI CONCERNING SO-CALLED MUNCHHAUSEN TRILEMMA
SO RATIO-NEW SERIES
LA English
DT Article
CR ALBERT H, 1968, TRAKTAT KRITISCHE VE
ALBERT H, 1971, NEUE ASPEKTE WISSENS, P113
ARISTOTLE, ANAL POST, P25
ARMSTRONG DM, 1969, PAS, V70
BLACK C, 1971, ANALYSIS, V31, P152
CHISHOLM RM, 1966, THEORY KNOWLEDGE
COHEN LJ, 1966, ANALYSIS, V27, P1
FEYERABEND PK, 1962, KNOWLEDGE WITHOUT FO
FEYERABEND PK, 1972, NEUE HEFTE PHILOSOPH
FIRTH R, 1967, PHILOS REV, V76, P3
HALLER R, 1972, JENSEITS SEIN NICHTS
HARTNACK J, 1970, LANGUAGE BELIEF META, P112
HEIDELBERGER H, 1963, INQUIRY, V6, P242
JUHOS BV, 1950, ERKENNTNIS IHRE LEIS, P10
KRAFT V, 1951, WIENER KREIS
KRAFT V, 1960, ERKENNTNISLEHRE, P202
LEHRER K, 1965, ANALYSIS, V25
LENK H, 1973, METAPHYSIK SPRACHANA, P57
MEINONG A, 1906, UBER ERFAHRUNGSGRUND
MEINONG A, 1910, UBER ANNAHMEN
MEINONG A, 1971, GES ABHANDLUNGEN, V2, P174
NEURATH O, ERKENNTNIS, V3, P209
NEURATH O, 1934, ERKENNTNIS, V4
NEURATH O, 1935, ERKENNTNIS, V5
NEURATH O, 1935, GRUNDLAGEN SOZIALWIS
PAP A, 1955, ANALYTISCHE ERKENNTN
POPPER K, 1959, LOGIC SCIENTIFIC DIS
POPPER KR, 1973, OBJECTIVE KNOWLEDGE, P106
RADFORD C, 1966, ANALYSIS, V27
RUTTE H, 1970, THESIS GRAZ
SCHEFFLER I, 1967, SCIENCE SUBJECTIVITY
SCHLICK M, 1925, ALLGEMEINE ERKENNTNI
SCHLICK M, 1934, ERKENNTNIS
SCHLICK M, 1938, GES AUFSATZE, P290
SCHLICK M, 1938, GESAMMELTE AUFSATZE
UNGER P, 1971, PHILOSOPHICAL REV, V80, P213
WITTGENSTEIN L, CERTAINTY, P204
WITTGENSTEIN L, 1968, PHILOSOPHICAL INVEST, P206
WOOZLEY AD, 1952, PAS, V53
WRIGHT GHV, 1972, PROBLEMS THEORY KNOW
NR 40
TC 1
PU BLACKWELL PUBL LTD
PI OXFORD
PA 108 COWLEY RD, OXFORD, OXON, ENGLAND OX4 1JF
SN 0034-0006
J9 RATIO
JI Ratio-New Ser.
PY 1974
VL 16
IS 2
BP 125
EP 140
PG 16
SC Philosophy
GA V5852
UT ISI:A1974V585200001
ER

PT J
AU AQUILA, RE
TI CAUSES AND CONSTITUENTS OF OCCURRENT EMOTION
SO PHILOSOPHICAL QUARTERLY
LA English
DT Note
C1 UNIV TENNESSEE,KNOXVILLE,TN 37996.
CR AQUILA RE, PERCEPTIONS PERCEPTU
CLARK R, 1973, NOUS, V7, P45
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
MEINONG A, 1929, GESAMMELTE ABHANDLUN, V2, P382
SELLARS W, 1963, SCI PERCEPTION REALI
SELLARS W, 1964, J PHILOS, V61, P655
STAUDE M, 1974, PHILOS Q, V24, P151
STRONGMAN KT, 1973, PSYCHOL EMOTION
THALBERG I, 1973, PHILOS Q, V23, P1
NR 9
TC 1
PU BLACKWELL PUBL LTD
PI OXFORD
PA 108 COWLEY RD, OXFORD, OXON, ENGLAND OX4 1JF
SN 0031-8094
J9 PHIL QUART
JI Philos. Q.
PY 1975
VL 25
IS 101
BP 346
EP 349
PG 4
SC Philosophy
GA LW446
UT ISI:A1975LW44600006
ER

PT J
AU AQUILA, RE
TI BRENTANO, DESCARTES, AND HUME ON AWARENESS
SO PHILOSOPHY AND PHENOMENOLOGICAL RESEARCH
LA English
DT Article
C1 UNIV TENNESSEE,KNOXVILLE,TN.
CR BERGMANN G, 1954, METAPHYSICS LOGICAL, P277
BERGMANN G, 1960, MEANING EXISTENCE, P9
BRENTANO F, 1929, PSYCHOLOGIE EMPIRISC, V1
BRENTANO F, 1966, TRUE EVIDENT, P78
BRENTAO F, 1955, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN, P124
CARLO WE, 1966, QUEST ABSOLUTE, P47
CRONIN TJ, 1966, OBJECTIVE BEING DESC, V154, P100
DESCARTES, 1970, PHILOSOPHICAL WORKS, V2, P10
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE, P7
HUME D, 1964, TREATISE HUMAN NATUR, P191
KENNY A, 1968, DESCARTES STUDY HIS, P114
MEINONG A, 1929, GESAMMELTE ABHANDLUN, V2, P323
ONEIL BE, 1972, J HISTORY PHILOSOPHY, V10, P177
REID T, 1969, ESSAYS INTELLECTUAL, P197
TERRELL DB, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P50
NR 15
TC 1
PU PHILOSOPHY PHENOMENOLOGICAL RES
PI PROVIDENCE
PA BROWN UNIV BOX 1947, PROVIDENCE, RI 02912
SN 0031-8205
J9 PHIL PHENOMENOL RES
JI Philos. Phenomenol. Res.
PY 1974
VL 35
IS 2
BP 223
EP 239
PG 17
SC Philosophy
GA V0611
UT ISI:A1974V061100006
ER

PT J
AU HOLE, G
TI PHENOMENON OF CONVICTION IN FAITH AND IN DELUSION .2.
SO CONFINIA PSYCHIATRICA
LA German
DT Article
CR ALEXANDER H, CITED INDIRECTY
ANSCHUETZ G, 1953, PSYCHOLOGIE
ARIETI S, 1967, INTRAPSYCHIC SELF, P77
AUSUSTIN A, CITED INDIRECTY
BARTH K, 1947, KIRCHLICHE DOGMATIK, V1, P488
BATTEGAY R, 1969, MENSCH GRUPPE, V2, P121
BERKA M, 1949, KLEINES PSYCHOLOGISC
BINSWANGER L, 1961, AUSGEWAHLTE VORTRAGE, V1, P211
BLEULER E, 1966, LEHRBUCH PSYCHIATRIE
BOLLNOW O, 1956, WESEN STIMMUNGEN, P121
BRENTANO F, 1934, URSPRUNG SITTLICHER, P20
BUMKE E, 1919, DIAGNOSE GEISTESKRAN, P173
BUMKE E, 1949, SAMUEL KELLER, P21
CONRAD K, 1958, PSYCHIATR NEUROL EIN, P21
DENZINGERBANNWART, 1932, ENCHIRIDION SYMBOLOR, P802
DENZINGERBANNWART, 1932, ENCHIRIDION SYMBOLOR, P823
DENZINGERBANNWART, 1932, ENCHIRIDION SYMBOLOR, P824
DORSCH R, 1963, PSYCHOLOGISCHES WORT
EBELING G, 1958, Z THEOL KIRCHE, V55, P104
EDMUNDS H, 1951, THESIS KOLN
EMUNDS H, 1951, WESEN GEWISSHEITSERL
ERIKSON EH, 1953, PSYCHE 1, V7, P1
FRANKL VE, 1959, NEUROSENLEHRE PSYCHO, V2, P287
FREUD S, 1928, GES SCHRIFTEN, V11, P433
FREUD S, 1941, GES WERKE, V7, P108
FREUS S, 1968, GES WERKE, V18
GEYER K, 1961, ICH BIN GEWISS, V83
GIRGENSOHN K, 1930, SEELISCHE AUFBAU REL
GRUEHN W, 1960, FROMMIGKEIT GEGENWAR
GRUHLE HW, 1932, BUMKE HDB GEISTESK 5, V9
GRUHLE HW, 1948, VERSTEHENDE PSYCHOLO
HAEFNER H, 1961, HDB NEUROSENLEHRE PS, V5, P605
HARENBERG W, 1967, WAS GLAUBEN DEUTSCHE, P38
HARNACK A, 1910, LEHRBUCH DOGMEMGISCH, P434
HEHLMANN W, 1959, WORTEBUCH PSYCHOLOGI
HEIM K, 1911, GEWISSHEITSPROBLEM S
HEIM K, 1916, GLAUBENSGEWISSHEIT
HEIM K, 1923, GLAUBENSGEWISSHEIT, P38
HEIMANN H, 1956, MONATSSCHRIFT PSYCHI, V131, P16
HEIMANN H, 1961, PSYCHIATRIE GEGENWAR, V3, P475
HELLPACH W, 1961, GRUNDRISS RELIGIONSP, P153
HEUKELBACH W, MUSST BESTIMMT WISSE, P3
HOFSTAETTER PR, 1957, PSYCHOLOGIE
HOLL K, 1921, GES AUFS KIRCHENGESC, V1, P91
HOPPE A, 1919, Z GESAMTE NEUROL PSY, V51, P124
HUBER G, 1964, FORTSCHR NEUROL PSYC, V32, P429
HUBER G, 1964, FORTSCHR NEUROL PSYC, V32, P435
HUSSERL E, 1922, JAHRBUCH PHIL PHAN F, V1, P214
HUSSERL E, 1929, JAHRBUCH PHIL PHAN F, V10, P140
IDELER KW, 1947, RELIGIOSE WAHNSINN, P8
JASPERS I, 1959, ALLGEMEINE PSYCHOPAT
JASPERS I, 1962, PHILOSOPHISCHE GLAUB, P145
JODL F, 1896, LEHRBUCH PSYCHOLOGIE, P649
JUNG CG, 1962, PSYCHOLOGIE RELIGION, P19
JUNG CG, 1962, PSYCHOLOGIE RELIGION, P54
KAEHLER M, 1912, BIBLISCHEZ STREI, P341
KANT I, 1887, KRITIK REINEN VERNIN
KANT I, 1960, LOGIK 9
KATZ D, 1960, HDB PSYCHOLOGIE
KEHRER B, 1967, RELIGIOSE BEWUSSTSEI
KESSLER M, 1963, PROBLEM HEILSGEWISSH, V10
KIERKEGAARD S, 1951, EINUBUNG CHRISTENTUM, P135
KOCH M, 1964, HDB PSYCHOLOGIE, V1
KRAEPELIN E, 1909, PSYCHIATRIE
KRETSCHMER E, 1950, SENSITIVE BEZIEHUNGS, P13
LANGE J, 1930, HDB MEDIZINISCHEN PS, P654
LINDWORSKY J, 1931, EXPERIMENTELLE PSYCH, P189
LIPPS T, 1904, ARCH PSYCHOL, V4, P486
LJUNGGREN G, 1920, THESIS UPPSALA
LUTHER M, 1925, SERVI ARBUTRUI
LUTHER M, 1931, GALATER KOMMENTAR
MAIER HW, 1912, Z GESAMTE NEUROL PSY, V13, P555
MALGO W, 1963, SIEBEN KENNZEICHEN I, P7
MATUSSEK P, 1963, PSYCHIATRIE GEGENWAR, V1, P64
MEINONG A, 1906, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V6, P22
MUELLERSUUR H, 1950, FORTSCHR NEUROL OSYC, V18, P44
NESTLE E, 1948, NOVUM TESTAMENTUM GR, P408
OESTERREICH K, 1910, GRUNDPROBLEMEN, V1, P171
PAULEIKHOFF B, 1953, NERVENARZT, V24, P199
POELL W, 1965, RELIGIONSPSYCHOLOGIE, P65
POULAIN A, 1925, HDB MYSTIK, P267
ROHRACHER H, 1965, EINFUHRUNG PSYCHOLOG
ROTHERT HJ, 1963, GEWISSHEIT VERGEWISS
RUEMKE HC, 1924, MONOGR GES GEB NEURO, V39, P54
SARGANT W, 1969, BRIT J PSYCHIAT, V115, P505
SCAEDER E, 1908, SCHRIFTGLAUBE HEILSG
SCHLEIERMACHER F, 1930, CHRISTLICHE GLAUGE, V1
SCHNEIDER K, 1928, EINFUHRUNG RELIGIONS
SCHNEIDER K, 1952, PSYCHIATRIE HEUTE, P10
SCHNEIDER K, 1953, MON PSYCHIATR NEUROL, V125, P666
SCHNEIDER K, 1967, KLINISCHE PSYCHOPATH, P2
SIGWART C, 1904, LOGIK, V1, P15
SPECHT G, 1901, THESIS U ERLANGEN
STAKEMEIER A, 1947, KONZIL TRIENT UBER H
STRANSKY E, 1913, Z GES NEUR PSYCHIAT, V18, P387
STRANSKY E, 1914, NEURAKRANKHAFTE IDEE, P37
SURY K, 1967, WORTERBUCH PSYCHOLOG
TELLENBACH H, 1966, JB PSYCHOL PSYCHOTHE, V14, P278
TILLICH P, 1961, WESEN WANDEL GLAUBEN, P119
TUMLIRZ O, 1955, ANTHROPOLOGISCHE PSY
VOLKELT J, 1918, GEWISSHEIT WAHRHEIT
VOLKELT J, 1922, GEFUHLSGEWISSHEIT, P71
WEISCHENK C, 1965, SCHWEIZ ARCH NEUROL, V95, P91
WEITBRECHT HJ, 1964, CONFINIA PSYCHIAT, V7, P160
WEITBRICHT HJ, 1948, BEITRAGE RELIGIONSPS
WEITBRICHT HJ, 1968, BIBL PSYCHIAT NEUROL, P131
WIECK HH, 1967, LEHRBUCH PSYCHIATRIE, P219
ZIEHEN T, 1920, LEHRBUCH LOGIK, P314
ZUTT J, 1953, NERVENARZT, V24, P177
NR 109
TC 1
PU KARGER
PI BASEL
PA ALLSCHWILERSTRASSE 10, CH-4009 BASEL, SWITZERLAND
SN 0010-5686
J9 CONFIN PSYCHIAT
PY 1971
VL 14
IS 3-4
BP 145
EP &
PG 0
SC Psychiatry
GA L8519
UT ISI:A1971L851900001
ER

PT J
AU VICK, GR
TI HEIDEGGERS LINGUISTIC REHABILITATION OF PARMENIDES BEING
SO AMERICAN PHILOSOPHICAL QUARTERLY
LA English
DT Article
C1 CALIF STATE COLL,LOS ANGELES,CA.
CR AYER AJ, 1934, MIND, V43, P335
CARNAP R, 1932, ERKENNTNIS, V2, P219
CARNAP R, 1964, BASIC PROBLEMS PHILO
HEGEL GWF, 1929, SCIENCE LOGIC, V1, CH1
HEIDEGGER, SEIN ZEIT
HEIDEGGER, 1931, WESEN GRUNDES, P5
HEIDEGGER, 1953, EINFUHRUNG METAPHYSI
HEIDEGGER, 1962, BEING TIME
HUME D, TREATISE HUMAN NAT 2
HUSSERL E, 1958, IDEAS, P51
HUSSERL, 1900, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
KIRK GS, 1960, MIND, P325
MANNHEIM R, 1959, INTRO METAPHYSICS
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P76
MOORE GE, 1936, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC S, V15, P175
NIETZCHE F, TWILIGHT IDOLS, P16
RUSSELL B, 1918, MONIST, V27, P495
RUSSELL B, 1919, INTRO MATHEMATICAL P, CH16
SPIEGELBERG, 1965, PHENOMENOLOGICAL MOV, V1, P312
NR 19
TC 1
PU BOWLING GREEN STATE UNIVERSITY
PI BOWLING GREEN
PA PHILOSOPHY DOCUMENT CENTER, BOWLING GREEN, OH 43403
SN 0003-0481
J9 AMER PHIL QUART
JI Am. Philos. Q.
PY 1971
VL 8
IS 2
BP 139
EP 150
PG 12
SC Philosophy
GA Y1858
UT ISI:A1971Y185800003
ER

PT J
AU AMMONS, CH
TI PERCEPTION BIBLIOGRAPHY .15. BALDWINS DICTIONARY, 1893-1904
SO PERCEPTUAL AND MOTOR SKILLS
LA English
DT Review
CR ALLBUTT TC, 1894, NATURE, V49, P340
ALTENBURG O, 1899, KUNST PSYCHOL BEOBAC
ARREAT L, 1899, REV PHIL, V48, P58
BACHMANN J, 1900, NEUE METAPH RNDSCH, V3, P186
BAILEY EHS, 1893, AM J PSYCHOL, V5, P94
BALDWIN JM, 1896, SCIENCE, V4, P774
BALDWIN JM, 1899, HDB PSYCHOL, V1
BEUCKE K, 1900, UEBER OPTISCHEN TAEU
BINET A, 1894, REV PHILOSOPHIQUE, V37, P348
BINET A, 1895, ANN PSYCHOL, V2, P201
BLOCH E, 1893, BINAURALE HOEREN
BOLTON TL, 1893, AM J PSYCHOL, V5, P294
BOURDON B, 1893, REV PHILOS, V35, P507
BRANDE M, 1899, THESIS LEMB
BRENTANO F, 1893, Z PSYCHOL, V6, P1
BRUNOT, 1893, REV SCI, V52, P210
BRYAN WL, 1899, PSYCHOL REV, V6, P346
COHN J, 1898, Z PSYCHOL, V15, P161
COMBARIEU J, 1897, THEORIE RHYTHME COMP
CORNELIUS H, 1899, Z PSYCHOL, V22, P101
DELBOEUF J, 1893, REV SCI, V51, P237
DESBANCELS JL, 1899, ANN PSYCHOL, V6, P144
DODGE R, 1904, PSYCHOL REV, V10, P1
DUPRAT L, 1896, REV PHIL, V41, P44
DWELSHAUVERS G, 1893, PSYCHOL LABORATOIRE
EATON DC, 1900, POP SCI MO, V56, P685
ETTLINGER M, 1900, Z PSYCHOL, V22, P161
ETTLINGER M, 1900, Z PSYCHOL, V22, P240
FAVRE L, 1900, MUSIQUE COULEURS
FERE C, 1896, REV PHILOS, V41, P39
FERE C, 1902, ANN PSYCHOL, V8, P49
FERRERO G, 1894, REV PHIL, V37, P169
FINZI J, 1900, PSYCHOL ARBEIT, V3, P289
FRANKLIN CL, 1895, PSYCHOL REV, V2, P312
FRANKLIN CL, 1895, PSYCHOL REV, V2, P516
FRANKLIN CL, 1895, PSYCHOL REV, V2, P627
FRANKLIN CL, 1895, PSYCHOL REV, V2, P84
FRANKLIN CL, 1896, PSYCHOL REV, V3, P229
FRANKLIN CL, 1896, PSYCHOL REV, V3, P338
FRANKLIN CL, 1896, PSYCHOL REV, V3, P450
FRANKLIN CL, 1896, PSYCHOL REV, V3, P573
FRANKLIN CL, 1896, PSYCHOL REV, V3, P692
FULLERTON GS, 1902, PERCEPTION SMALL DIF
FURSAC JD, 1900, REV PHIL, V50, P625
GALABERT E, 1898, REV INT SOCIOL, V6, P1
GIBSON WRB, 1900, MIND, V9, P469
GILBERT JA, 1897, U IOWA STUD PSYCHOL, V1, P62
GLOSSNER M, 1893, JB PHIL SPECUL THEOL, V7, P326
GRIFFING H, 1896, PSYCHOL REV, V3, P513
HANDKE H, 1896, THEORIE SCHOENHEIT R
HENRI V, 1896, REV PHILOS, V42, P55
HENRY C, 1895, QUELQUES APERCUS EST
HOEFFDING H, 1893, PHIL STUD, V8, P86
HOPPE J, 1894, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL, V8, P29
JASTROW J, 1893, AM J PSYCHOL, V5, P214
JASTROW J, 1897, FR REV SCI, V7, P465
JASTROW J, 1897, POP SCI MO, V50, P361
KIESOW F, 1903, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V33, P453
KIRSCHMANN A, 1900, U TORONTO STUD P, P1
KODIS J, 1893, ANAL APPERCEPTIONSBE
KORN, 1901, UEBER SINNESWAHRENHM
KRUEGER F, 1900, PHIL STUD, V16, P317
KRUEGER F, 1900, PHILOS STUD, V16, P568
KUELPE O, 1897, Z PHIL PHIL KR, V110, P7
KUELPE O, 1899, VTLJSCH WISS PHIL, V23, P145
LICHTWARK A, 1900, ERZIEHUNG FARBENSINN
LIPPS T, 1897, RAUMAESTHETIK GEOMET
MACDOUGAL R, 1898, PSY REV, V5, P463
MACDOUGALL R, 1902, PSYCHOL REV, V9, P460
MACDOUGALL R, 1903, PSYCHOL REV, V10, P15
MARTIN F, 1894, PERCEPTION EXTERIEUR
MEINONG A, 1899, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V21, P182
MEUMANN E, 1893, PHILOS STUD, V8, P431
MEUMANN E, 1894, PHILOS STUD, V9, P264
MEUMANN E, 1896, PHILOS STUD, V12, P127
MEYER M, 1900, PSYCHOL REV, V7, P241
MUELLER GE, 1896, Z PSYCHOL, V12, P226
MUELLER GE, 1897, Z PSYCHOL, V14, P1
MUELLER GE, 1897, Z PSYCHOL, V14, P161
MUELLERLYER FC, 1899, BOIS REYMONDS ARCH S, P263
OSTWALD F, 1896, REV SCI, V5, P466
PIERON H, 1903, REV PHIL, V7, P89
RAYMOND GL, 1900, REPRESENTATIVE SIGNI
REGNARD A, 1894, ETUDES ESTHETIQUE SC
RUEDIN E, 1902, PSYCHOL ARB, V4, P435
SANFORD EC, 1896, AM J PSYCHOL, V7, P412
SHAW MA, 1898, U TORONTO STUD, V1
SLAUGHTER JW, 1900, AM J PSYCHOL, V11, P303
SMITH MK, 1900, PHIL STUD, V60, P197
SMITH MK, 1900, PHIL STUD, V60, P71
STOLZE F, 1894, STEREOSKOPIE STEREOS
UHTHOFF W, 1897, JB SCHLES GESELL VAT, P154
URBANTSCHITSCH V, 1894, ARCH GES PHYSL, V42, P154
VONFRIMMEL T, 1897, VOM SEHEN KUNSTPHYSI
VONZEHENDER W, 1898, ABHANDL SACHS GES MP, V24, P53
WASHBURN MF, 1895, UEBER EINFLUSS GESIC
WITMER L, 1894, PHILOS STUDIEN, V9, P209
WITMER L, 1894, PHILOS STUDIEN, V9, P96
NR 98
TC 1
PU PERCEPTUAL MOTOR SKILLS
PI MISSOULA
PA PO BOX 9229, MISSOULA, MT 59807
SN 0031-5125
J9 PERCEPT MOT SKILLS
JI Percept. Mot. Skills
PY 1964
VL 19
IS 2
BP 400
EP 402
PG 3
SC Psychology, Experimental
GA CCX73
UT ISI:A1964CCX7300011
ER

PT J
AU MISHALANI, JK
TI THOUGHT AND OBJECT
SO PHILOSOPHICAL REVIEW
LA English
DT Article
CR CHISHOLM RM, 1958, MINNESOTA STUDIES PH, V2, P511
FINDLAY JM, 1933, MEINONG THEORY OBJEC, CH2
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P76
RUSSELL B, 1920, INTRO MATH PHILOS, P169
NR 4
TC 1
PU CORNELL UNIV SAGE SCHOOL PHILOSOPHY
PI ITHACA
PA PHILOSOPHICAL REVIEW 220 GOLDWIN SMITH HALL, ITHACA, NY 14853
SN 0031-8108
J9 PHIL REV
JI Philos. Rev.
PY 1962
VL 71
IS 2
BP 185
EP 201
PG 17
SC Philosophy
GA CGX06
UT ISI:A1962CGX0600003
ER

PT J
AU HEIDER, F
TI ON PERCEPTION, EVENT STRUCTURE, AND PSYCHOLOGICAL ENVIRONMENT
SO PSYCHOLOGICAL ISSUES
LA English
DT Article
CR ALLPORT FH, 1955, THEORIES PERCEPTION
ANGYAL A, 1941, F SCI PERSONALITY
ATTNEAVE F, 1954, PSYCHOL REV, V61, P183
BECHER E, 1911, GEHIRN SEELE
BENTLEY AF, 1935, BEHAVIOR KNOWLEDGE F
BLONDEL C, 1932, PSYCHOGRAPHIE M PROU
BORING EG, 1929, HIST EXPT PSYCHOL
BRUNSWIK E, 1934, WAHRNEHMUNG GEGENSTA
BRUNSWIK E, 1936, 25TH P ANN CEL IN GR, P122
BRUNSWIK E, 1937, PHILOS SCI, V4, P227
BRUNSWIK E, 1938, EINHEITSWISSENSCHAFT, V6, P17
BRUNSWIK E, 1943, PSYCHOL REV, V50, P255
BRUNSWIK E, 1955, INT ENCY UNIFIED SCI, V1, P655
BRUNSWIK E, 1957, CONT APPROACHES COGN, P5
BUHLER K, 1929, KRISE PSYCHOL
CARTWRIGHT D, 1959, PSYCHOL STUDY SCI, V2, P7
CASSIRER E, 1944, ESSAY MAN
CHEIN I, 1954, J SOC PSYCHOL, V39, P115
COURNOT A, 1956, WORLD MATH, P1203
CROZIER WJ, 1934, HDB GEN EXPT PSYCHOL, P3
DANDIEU A, 1930, M PROUST REVELATION
DEUTSCH M, 1954, HDB SOCIAL PSYCHOL, P181
DUNCKER K, 1929, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V12, P180
ELLIS H, 1935, ATLANTIC MONTHLY, V156, P421
HILGARD ER, 1936, PSYCHOL REV, V43, P366
HILGARD ER, 1936, PSYCHOL REV, V43, P547
HOBHOUSE LT, 1926, MIND EVOLUTION
HOCHBERG J, 1953, J EXP PSYCHOL, V46, P361
HOCHBERG JE, 1957, PSYCHOL REV, V64, P73
HOLT EB, 1915, FREUDIAN WISH
HULL CL, 1934, PSYCHOL REV, V41, P134
HULL CL, 1934, PSYCHOL REV, V41, P33
JAMES W, 1890, PRINCIPLES PSYCHOL
JOHANSSON G, 1950, CONFIGURATIONS EVENT
KLUVER H, 1933, BEHAVIOR MECHANISMS
KLUVER H, 1936, CHARACT PERSON, V5, P91
KOFFKA K, 1935, PRINCIPLES GESTALT P
KOHLER W, 1929, GESTALT PSYCHOL
LAPLACE PS, 1956, WORLD MATH, P1325
LEEPER RW, 1943, LEWIN TOPOLOGICAL VE
LENZEN VF, 1955, INT ENCY UNIFIED SCI, V1, P279
LEWIN K, 1917, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V12, P440
LEWIN K, 1922, BEGRIFF GENESE PHYSI
LEWIN K, 1926, SYMPOSIUM, V1, P61
LEWIN K, 1927, SYMPOSION, V1, P375
LEWIN K, 1935, DYNAMIC THEORY PERSO
LEWIN K, 1936, PRINCIPLES TOPOLOGIC
LEWIN K, 1938, CONTR PSYCHOL THEORY, V1
LONDON ID, 1944, PSYCHOL REV, V51, P266
MACH E, 1897, CONTRIBUTIONS ANAL S
MEINONG A, 1906, Z PHYSIKAL CHEM UNTE
PIAGET J, 1954, CONSTRUCTION REALITY
PROUST M, 1919, BUDDING GROVE 1 2
PROUST M, 1920, GUERMANTES WAYS 1 2
PROUST M, 1921, CITIES PLAIN 1 2
PROUST M, 1924, CAPTIVE
PROUST M, 1925, SWEET CHEAT GONE
PROUST M, 1927, PAST RECAPTURED
PROUST M, 1928, SWANNS WAY
RUBIN E, 1927, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V103, P384
RUSSELL B, 1948, HUMAN KNOWLEDGE ITS
SKINNER BF, 1935, J GEN PSYCHOL, V12, P40
SPENCE KW, 1944, PSYCHOL REV, V51, P47
TOLMAN EC, 1935, PSYCHOL REV, V42, P43
TOLMAN EC, 1937, PSYCHOL REV, V44, P195
VONKRIES J, 1901, MATERIELLEN GRUNDLAG
WEISS AP, 1925, THEORETICAL BASIS HU
WERNER H, 1957, COMP PSYCHOL MENTAL
NR 68
TC 1
PU INT UNIV PRESS INC
PI MADISON
PA 59 BOSTON POST RD PO BOX 1524, MADISON, CT 06443-1524
SN 0048-5748
J9 PSYCHOL ISSUES
PY 1959
VL 1
IS 3
BP R1
EP 123
PG 0
SC Psychology
GA CGV18
UT ISI:A1959CGV1800001
ER

PT J
AU Weiland, W
AF Weiland, Werner
TI Personality Types and Assessment - A psychological Study of Adolescents between 17 and 19 Years
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Article
CR 1932, Z PSYCHOL S, V19
DILTHEY W, ZELLER FESTSCHRIFT, P365
FECHNER GT, 1897, VORSCHULE ASTHETIK, V1, P24
GOLDSCHEID R, 1902, ETHIK GESAMTWILLENS, V1, P99
GOLDSCHEID R, 1908, ENTWICKLUNGSWERTTHEO, P23
GRUEHN W, 1924, RELIGIONSPSYCHOLOGIS
GRUEHN W, 1924, RELIGIONSPSYCHOLOGIS, P5
HAERING L, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V24
HAERING L, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V27
HAERING L, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V27, P345
HIPPIUS R, 1933, NEUE JB WISSENSCHAFT, V10, P85
HOFLER W, PSYCHOL, P402
JAENSCH E, GRUNDFORMEN MENSCHLI, P18
JAENSCH E, SONDERDRUCK JB PHILO, V3, P160
JAENSCH E, 1927, AUFBAU WAHRNEHMUNGSW, P559
JAENSCH E, 1929, WIRKLICHKEIT WERT PH, P114
JAENSCH E, 1933, LAGE AUFGABE PSYCHOL, P28
JAENSCH E, 1933, LAGE AUFGABEN PSYCHO, P43
JAENSCH E, 1937, GEGENTYPUS
JAENSCH, 1929, GRUNDFORMEN MENSCHLI
KRELLENBERG P, Z PSYCHOL PHYS, V88, P56
KRUEGER F, 1898, BEGRIFF ABSOLUT WERT, P61
LEGOWSKY, 1908, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V12
LOTZ F, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL S, V73, P203
MARBE K, 1901, EXPT PSYCHOL UNTERSU
MEINONG A, 1894, PSYCHOL ETH UNTERSUC, P252
MESSER A, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V34, P115
MESSER A, 1905, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V4
STORRING G, 1906, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V6
NR 29
TC 1
SN 0724-7842
J9 ARCG GESAMTE PSYCHOL
JI Archiv. Gesamte Psychol.
PD FEB
PY 1939
VL 102
IS 3-4
BP 457
EP 516
PG 60
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V02GT
UT ISI:000206912400004
ER

PT J
AU Hilzensauer, H
AF Hilzensauer, Hans
TI Our Perceptional System of Event Replay
SO ZEITSCHRIFT FUR PSYCHOLOGIE UND PHYSIOLOGIE DER SINNESORGANE
LA German
DT Article
CR ABRAHAM, 1926, Z PSYCHOL, V98, P233
BAHLE J, 1930, ARCH GES PSYCH, V74, P289
BETHE A, 1908, PFLUG ARCH GES PHYSL, V121
BRAUN L, 1928, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V106, P1
BREUKING, 1910, Z ANG PSYCHOL, V3
BURKAMP W, 1929, STRUKTUR GANZHEITEN
BURKHARDT H, 1933, NEUE PSYCHOL STUD, V7
COBURN CH, 1914, J ANIM BEH, V14
CZOLBE H, GRUND URSPRUNG MENSC, P64
DYROFF A, 1930, PHIL PERENN
EBBINGHAUS H, GRUNDZUGE PSYCHOL, V2
EISLER R, 1927, WORTERBUCH PHIL BEGR, V1
ENGEL P, 1928, Z PSYCHOL, V107, P273
FRISCHEISENKOHL.I, 1933, THESIS BERLIN
FROBES J, 1923, LEHRB EXPER PSYCHOL, V1
FROBES J, 1929, LEHRB EXPER PSYCHOL, V2
HEMPELMANN F, 1926, TIERPSYCHOLOGIE STAN, P411
HOFLER A, 1897, PSYCHOLOGIE, P153
IPSEN G, 1926, NEUE PSYCHOL STUD, V1, P462
JOHANNSEN W, 1926, ELEMENTE EXAKTEN ERB, P372
KANT I, 1888, PROLEGOMENA
KOCH K, 1931, Z PSYCHOL, V121, P104
KOFFKA C, PSYCH FORSCH, V2
KOFFKA C, 1913, Z PSYCHOL, V67, P353
KOHLER W, 1920, PHYS GESTALT RUHE ST, P35
KRETSCHMER E, 1926, MED PSYCHOL
LINDEMANN E, PSYCH FORSCH, V2, P13
MAIMON S, 1912, VERSUCH NEUEN LOGIK
NADEL S, 1927, Z PSYCHOL, V101, P89
POPPELBEUTER W, 1917, PSYCHISCHEN SCHADIGU, V1
REE P, PHILOSOPHIE, P114
REICHENBACH H, 1932, ERKENNTNIS
RIEHL A, PHILOS KRITIZISMUS, V2, P240
ROTERS W, 1930, ARCH GES PSYCH, V77, P358
RUBIN E, 1932, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V124, P193
SCHUMANN F, 1900, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V24, P1
SCHUMANN F, 1900, Z PSYCHOL, V28, P1
SOLTMANN, 1890, SCHRIFT SPIEGELSCHRI, P432
STERN W, 1897, Z PSYCHOL, V13, P325
STERN W, 1909, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V2, P412
STERZINGER O, 1927, RECHTS LINKSHANDIGKE, P29
STRATTON GM, 1897, PSYCHOL REV, V4, P341
STRATTON GM, 1897, PSYCHOL REV, V4, P463
VAIHINGER H, 1911, PHILOS ALS OB, P43
VONEHRENFELS C, 1890, VIERTELJAHRSSCH WISS, V14, P269
VONEHRENFELS C, 1922, PRIMZAHLENGESETZ
WEINHANDEL F, 1927, GESTALTANALYSE
WERNER H, 1919, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V82, P198
WINDELBAND W, 1912, EINLEITUNG PHILOS, P141
NR 49
TC 1
PU SWETS ZEITLINGER PUBLISHERS
PI LISSE
PA P O BOX 825, 2160 SZ LISSE, NETHERLANDS
J9 Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SINNESORG
JI Z. Psychol. Physiol. Sinnesorg.
PD JUL
PY 1935
VL 135
IS 4-6
BP 288
EP 347
PG 60
SC Psychology, Biological
GA V96PT
UT ISI:000206530500003
ER

PT J
AU Huber, K
AF Huber, Kurt
TI The Vocal Mix and the Quality System of Vowels
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Article
CR 1913, AKUST UNTERSUCHUNGEN, V3, P160
BECHER E, 1926, EINFUHRUNG PHILOS, P53
HELLWAG C, 1781, DISSERTATIO FORMATIO
HUBER K, 1926, 9 K PSYCH MUNCH, P168
KOHLER W, AKUST UNTERSUCHUNGEN, V2, P88
KOHLER W, Z PSYCHOL, V58, P84
KOHLER W, 1911, Z PSYCHOL, P128
KOHLER W, 1911, Z PSYCHOL, P99
KOHLER W, 1911, Z PSYCHOL, V58, P78
KOHLER W, 1915, Z PSYCHOL, V72, P32
LACHMUND H, 1922, Z PSYCHOL, V88, P28
MEINONG A, 1903, Z PSYCHOL, V33, P76
MULLER GE, 1896, Z PSYCHOL, V10, P14
MULLER GE, 1896, Z PSYCHOL, V16
SCHENK FX, 1912, THESIS MARB
SIEVERS, 1901, GRUNDZUGE PHONETIK, P97
STIRLING, 1901, J PHYSL, V27, R23
STUMPF C, SPRACHLAUTE, P249
STUMPF C, 1926, SPRACHLAUTE EXPT PHO, P245
TRENDELENBURG W, 1914, Z SINNESPSYCHOL, V48
VONHORNBOSTEL EM, 1923, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V4, P65
VONHORNBOSTEL, 1926, HDB NORM PATHOLOG PH, V11, P705
VONMEINONG A, GES ABHANDLUNGEN, V1, P497
VONMEINONG A, 1903, Z PSYCHOL, V23, P1
VONTSCHERMAK I, 1921, EXAKTE SUBJEKTIVISMU
ZOTH O, 1914, NATUR MISCHFARBEN GR
NR 26
TC 1
SN 0724-7842
J9 ARCG GESAMTE PSYCHOL
JI Archiv. Gesamte Psychol.
PD MAY
PY 1934
VL 91
IS 1-2
BP 153
EP 199
PG 47
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V01SG
UT ISI:000206874700004
ER

PT J
AU Betzendahl, W
AF Betzendahl, Walter
TI The verdict and the appearances at the time comparison. Experimental investigations of fiber time sense
SO MONATSSCHRIFT FUR PSYCHIATRIE UND NEUROLOGIE
LA German
DT Article
CR BETHE A, PFLUGERS ARCH, V121, P4
FECHNER GT, 1851, ZEND AVESTA
FECHNER GT, 1860, PSYCHOPHYSIK
GROOS K, Z PSYCH, V9, P321
HAGEN FW, 1870, STUDIEN GEBIETE ARZT
HERING E, 1878, LEHRE LICHTSINNE
HERING E, 1899, THEORIE NERVENTATIGK
LIPPS T, 1903, LTFADEN PSYCHOL
LOTZE H, 1852, MED PSYCHOL
MEINONG A, Z PSYCH, P181
MEUMANN E, PHILOS STUDIEN, V8, P431
NATORP P, 1911, ALLGEMEINE PSYCHOL N
RIEHL A, 1876, PHILISOPHISCHE KRITI
RIEHL A, 1879, PHILISOPHISCHE KRITI
RIEHL A, 1887, PHILISOPHISCHE KRITI
STERN W, Z PSYCHOL, V13, P325
STUMPF C, 1890, TONPSYCHOLOGIE
VIERORDT, 1868, ZEITSINN
VONBAER KE, 1864, REDEN V WELCHE AUFFA
VONBAER KE, 1886, REDEN V WELCHE AUFFA, P254
VONKRIES J, DTSCH Z NERV, P352
VONKRIES J, Z PSYCH, V8
VONKRIES J, 1901, MATERIELLEN GRUNDLAG
VONKRIES J, 1923, ALLGEMEINE SINNESPHY
WUNDT W, 1906, VORLESUNGEN MENSCHEN, V4
NR 25
TC 1
PU KARGER
PI BASEL
PA ALLSCHWILERSTRASSE 10, CH-4009 BASEL, SWITZERLAND
SN 0369-1519
J9 MON PSYCHIATR NEUROL
JI Mon. Psychiatr. Neurol.
PD MAR
PY 1934
VL 88
IS 3
BP 151
EP 172
PG 22
SC Psychiatry
GA V92SL
UT ISI:000206267100002
ER

PT J
AU Ramul, K
AF Ramul, Konstantin
TI Not About Empirical Psychology.
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Review
CR ALLGEM PSYCHOPATHOLO, P117
1905, SITZUNGS BERICHTE H, P626
1906, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V129
1907, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V130
1910, LOGOS, V1
1911, Z PSYCHOL 1 S, V5, P2
1913, ABHANDLUNGEN ERKENNT
1913, JB PHILOS PHANOMENOL, V1
1917, Z PSICHOLOGISCHESKOJ, V1, P1
1918, Z PSICHOLOGISCHESKOJ, V1, P3
1927, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V58, P292
BECHER E, 1921, GEISTESWISSENSCHAFTE, P20
BECHER SE, 1921, GEISTESWISSENSCHAFTE, P26
BRENTANO, PSYCHOLOGIE, V1, P261
BRENTANO, PSYCHOLOGIE, V1, R17
BRENTANO, PSYCHOLOGIE, V1, R18
BRENTANO, PSYCHOLOGIE, V1, R62
BRENTANO, PSYCHOLOGIE, V1, R90
BRENTANO, 1895, MEME LETZTEN WUNSCHE, P34
BRENTANO, 1922, URSPRUNGE SITTLICHER, P76
BRENTANO, 1924, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN, V1, P10
DILTHEY W, 1924, GESAMMELTE SCHRIFTEN, V5
DILTHEY, IDEEN BESCHREIBENDE, P153
EBBINGHAUS, 1919, GRUNDZUGE PSYCHOL, V1, P370
ELSENHANS ST, 1915, PHANOMENOLOGIE PSYCH, V20, P242
GEIGER M, BEITRAGE PHANOMENOLO, V1
HUME D, ENQUIRY CONCERNING 1
HUSSERL, ABHANDLUNGEN KONIGLI, P12
HUSSERL, ENQUIRY CONCERNING 1, P118
HUSSERL, ERFAHRUNGSGRUNDLAGEN, P16
HUSSERL, ERFAHRUNGSGRUNDLAGEN, R10
HUSSERL, F BRENTANO, P39
HUSSERL, GEGENSTANDSTHEORIE A, P118
HUSSERL, LOGOS, V1, P302
HUSSERL, LOGOS, V1, P303
HUSSERL, LOGOS, V1, P316
HUSSERL, PSICHOL OBOZR, P133
HUSSERL, PSICHOL OBOZR, P181
HUSSERL, PSYCHOLOGIE, P140
HUSSERL, UMRISS 1, P13
HUSSERL, UMRISS 1, P132
HUSSERL, UMRISS 1, P17
HUSSERL, UMRISS 1, P43
HUSSERL, 1915, PHANOMENOLOGIE PSYCH, V20, P38
HUSSERL, 1917, RECHT PHANOMENOLOGIE, V21, P81
HUSSERL, 1921, GEISTESWISSENSCHAFTE, P4
HUSSERLS E, VORLESUNGEN PHANOMEN, V9
JASPERS H, 1912, Z GES NEUROL PSYCHIA, V9
JASPERS H, 1923, ALLGEMEINE PSYCHOPAT
JASPERS, 1923, ALLGEMEINE PSYCHOPAT, P18
KANTS, 1870, GESAMMELTE SCHRIFTEN, V4, P471
KRAUS O, PSYCHOLOGIE, R17
KRAUS O, PSYCHOLOGIE, V1, R91
KRAUS O, 1919, F BRENTANO, P59
KRAUS, F BRENTANO, P58
KRAUS, F BRENTANO, P60
KRAUS, PSYCHOLOGIE, V1, R59
LINDWORSKY J, 1922, EXPT PSYCHOL, P53
LINKE P, PHANOMENOLOGIE EXPT, V2
LINKE P, 1918, GRUNDFRAGEN WAHRNEHM
LINKE PF, 1918, GRUNDFRAGEN WAHRNEHM, R5
LINKE, GRUNDFRAGEN WAHRNEHM, R16
LINKE, 1917, RECHT PHANOMENOLOGIE, V21, P202
LINKE, 1917, RECHT PHANOMENOLOGIE, V21, P219
LIPPS T, 1905, SITZUNGSBER PHILO H
LIPPS, INHALT GEGENSTAND SI, P649
LIPPS, INHALT GEGENSTAND SI, P650
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
MEINONG, ABHANDLUNGEN, P485
MEINONG, ERFAHRUNGSGRUNDLAGEN, P5
MEINONG, ERFAHRUNGSGRUNDLAGEN, P7
MEINONG, ERFAHRUNGSGRUNDLAGEN, R9
MEINONG, GEGENSTANDSTHEORIE A, P510
MEINONG, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V129, P73
MEINONG, ZEITSCHRIFT, V129, P77
MEINONG, 1906, Z PHYSIKALISCHEN CHE, P5
MESSER A, 1912, ARCH GES PSYCH, V22, P121
PFANDER A, JB, V1
PFANDER A, JB, V3
SCHAPP W, 1910, BEITRAGE PHANOMENOLO
SCHELER M, FORMALISMUS ETHIK MA, V1
SCHELER M, FORMALISMUS ETHIK MA, V2
SCHMIEDKOWARZIK, PSYCHOL OBOZR, V1, P14
SCHMIEDKOWARZIK, UMRISS 1, P12
SCHMIEDKOWARZIK, UMRISS 1, P150
SCHMIEDKOWARZIK, UMRISS 1, P154
SCHMIEDKOWARZIK, UMRISS 1, P24
SCHMIEDKOWARZIK, UMRISS 1, P25
SCHMIEDKOWARZIK, UMRISS 1, P34
SCHMIEDKOWARZIK, UMRISS 1, P46
SCHMIEDKOWARZIK, UMRISS 1, P63
SCHMIEDKOWARZIK, UMRISS 1, P71
SCHMIEDKOWARZIK, UMRISS 1, P80
SCHMIEDKOWARZIK, UMRISS 1, P87
SCHMIEDKOWARZIK, UMRISS 1, P9
SCHMIEDKOWARZIK, UMRISS, P133
SCHMIEDKOWARZIK, UMRISS, P192
SCHMIEDKOWARZIK, UMRISS, P6
SCHMIEDKOWARZIK, UMRISS, P76
SCHUMANN F, 1914, 6 K EXP PSYCH GOTT 1, P145
STORRING G, 1927, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V58, P441
STUMPF C, 1906, ABHANDLUNGEN PREUSS
STUMPF, 1906, ABHANDLUNGEN KONIGLI, P31
TSCHELPANOW, ERFAHRUNGSGRUNDLAGEN, R11
TSCHELPANOW, PSICHOL OBOZR, P13
TSCHELPANOW, PSICHOL OBOZR, V1, P11
TSCHELPANOW, PSICHOL OBOZR, V1, P4
TSCHELPANOW, PSICHOL OBOZR, V1, P468
TSCHELPANOW, PSICHOLOGITSCHESKOPE, V1, P3
TSCHELPANOW, PSYCHOL OBOZR, V1, P14
TSCHELPANOW, PSYCHOLOGIE, P9
TSCHELPANOW, UMRISS 1, P11
TSCHELPANOW, UMRISS 1, P13
TSCHELPANOW, UMRISS 1, P16
TSCHELPANOW, UMRISS 1, P8
TSCHOLPANOW, PSICHOL OBOZR, V1, P14
UTITZ E, 1918, F BRENTANO KANTSTUDI, V22, P223
VONDERPFORDTEN O, 1913, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V28, P309
VORSTELLUNGEN, F BRENTANO, P60
WINDELBAND W, 1909, PHILOS DTSCH GEISTES, P92
NR 120
TC 1
SN 0724-7842
J9 ARCG GESAMTE PSYCHOL
JI Archiv. Gesamte Psychol.
PD DEC
PY 1929
VL 73
IS 3-4
BP 369
EP 406
PG 38
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V01WC
UT ISI:000206884700002
ER

PT J
AU Nagel, R
AF Nagel, Rudolf
TI The Control of the Constancy of a heterochromic comparative brightness, especially at the Hands of the Correspondence Rate of Equivalent Values
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Article
CR WUNDTS PSYCHOL STUD, V9, P236
1918, PHYSL OPTIK, P57
BERLINER B, PSYCHOL STUD, V3, P91
BOEHM M, Z SINNESPHYSIOL, V42, P155
CORNELIUS H, 1897, PSYCHOL ERFAHRUNGSWI, P44
HERFURTH C, WUNDTS PSYCHOL STUD, V9, P220
HERFURTH, THESIS, P233
HERRMANN F, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V41, P1
HERRMANN F, 1919, THESIS LEIPZIG
KOBELT W, 1904, THESIS LEIPZIG, P96
LANGFELD HS, 1909, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V53, P113
LIPS E, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V40, P193
MEINONG A, 1896, Z PSYCH PHYS SINNESO, V11, P225
MULLER GE, 1904, GESICHTSPUNKTE TATSA, P188
WIRTH W, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V24, P141
WIRTH W, PSYCHOPHYSIK, P188
WIRTH W, PSYCHOPHYSIK, P246
WIRTH W, SPEZIELLE PSYCHOPHYS, P272
WIRTH W, 1908, EXPT ANAL BEWUSSTSEI, P24
WIRTH, PSYCHOPHYSIK, P299
WIRTH, SPEZIELLE PSYCHOPHYS, P277
WIRTH, 1901, WUNDTS PHIL STUD, V17, P312
WIRTH, 1902, WUNDTS PHIL STUD, V18, P610
WUNDT, 1911, GRUNDZUGE PHYSL PSYC, V3, P503
ZAHN A, 1911, Z SINNESPHYS, V46, P287
NR 25
TC 1
SN 0724-7842
J9 ARCG GESAMTE PSYCHOL
JI Archiv. Gesamte Psychol.
PD APR 8
PY 1924
VL 47
IS 1-2
BP 143
EP 218
PG 76
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V01TU
UT ISI:000206878700007
ER

PT J
AU Crosland, HR
AF Crosland, Harold R.
TI A QUALITATIVE ANALYSIS OF THE PROCESS OF FORGETTING
SO PSYCHOLOGICAL MONOGRAPHS
LA English
DT Review
CR ABRAMOWSKI E, 1910, ARCH PSYCHOL, V9, P1
ABRAMOWSKI E, 1910, J PSYCHOL NORM PATH, V7, P301
ABRAMOWSKI E, 1911, J PSYCHOL NORM PATH, V8, P221
ABRAMOWSKI E, 1913, J PSYCHOL NORM PATH, V10, P375
ACH N, 1905, WILLENSTATIGKEIT DEN
ADLER H, 1914, AM J PSYCHOL, V25, P293
ALLING ME, 1903, PSYCHOL REV, V10, P178
ANGELL EB, 1906, J ABNORM PSYCHOL, V1, P155
ANGELL F, 1899, AM J PSYCHOL, V11, P67
ANGELL F, 1900, AM J PSYCHOL, V12, P58
ANGELL J, 1897, PHILOS REV, V6, P532
ANGELL JR, 1897, PHILOS REV, V6, P646
ANGELL JR, 1906, J PHILOS PSYCHOL SCI, V3, P637
ANGELL JR, 1910, PHIL REV 2, V19, P319
ANGELL JR, 1910, PSYCHOL REV MONOG S, V23, P61
ANGELL JR, 1911, PHILOS REV, V20, P545
ANGELL JR, 1913, J PHILOS PSYCHOL SCI, V10, P609
ARISTOTLE, 1902, PSYCHOLOGY
ARNOLD F, 1907, AM J PSYCHOL, V18, P239
BAIRD JW, 1911, PSYCHOL BULL, V8, P243
BAIRD JW, 1912, PSYCHOL BULL, V9, P321
BAIRD JW, 1913, PSYCHOL BULL, V10, P333
BAIRD JW, 1914, PSYCHOL BULL, V11, P305
BAIRD JW, 1915, PSYCHOL BULL, V12, P333
BAIRD JW, 1916, PSYCHOL BULL, V13, P333
BAIRD JW, 1916, PSYCHOL BULL, V13, P373
BALDWIN JM, 1895, PSYCHOL REV, V2, P236
BALLARD PB, 1913, BRIT J PSYCHOL MON S, V2
BAWDEN, 1900, PSYCHOL REV MONOG S, V3, P1
BENTLEY IM, 1899, AM J PSYCHOL, V11, P1
BENTLEY IM, 1905, PHILOS REV, V14, P253
BETTS GH, 1909, COLUMBIA U CONTRIBUT, V26
BETZ W, 1910, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V17, P266
BETZ W, 1911, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V20, P186
BINET A, 1903, ETUDE EXPT INTELLIGE
BOOK WF, 1910, PSYCHOL REV, V17, P381
BOREL P, 1913, J PSYCHOL NORM PATH, V10, P522
BREESE BB, 1899, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V3, P1
BRENTANO FC, 1874, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN, V1, P223
BUEHLER K, 1907, ARCH GESAAMTEN PSYCH, V9, P297
BUEHLER K, 1908, ARCH FUER GESAMTE PS, V12, P1
BUEHLER K, 1908, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V12, P24
BUEHLER K, 1908, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V12, P93
BURNHAM WH, 1889, AM J PSYCHOL, V2, P225
BURNHAM WH, 1889, AM J PSYCHOL, V2, P39
BURNHAM WH, 1889, AM J PSYCHOL, V2, P431
BURNHAM WH, 1889, AM J PSYCHOL, V2, P568
BURNHAM WH, 1892, SCRIBNERS MAG, V11, P185
BURNHAM WH, 1903, AM J PSYCHOL, V14, P382
BURTT HE, 1916, AM J PSYCHOL, V27, P87
CHAPIN MW, 1912, AM J PSYCHOL, V23, P109
CIONCI D, 1913, RIV PSICOL, V9, P271
CLAPAREDE E, 1915, ARCH PSYCHOL, V15, P306
CLARK H, 1916, AM J PSYCHOL, V27, P461
CLARKE HM, 1911, AM J PSYCHOL, V22, P214
COLEGROVE FW, 1900, MEMORY
COLVIN SS, 1908, PSYCHOL REV, V15, P158
COLVIN SS, 1909, PSYCHOL BULL, V6, P223
COLVIN SS, 1910, PSYCHOL REV, V17, P260
DANIELS AH, 1895, AM J PSYCHOL, V6, P558
DAVIES AE, 1912, PSYCHOL REV, V19, P147
DEGARMO C, 1895, HERBART HERBARTIANS
DELBOEUF J, 1880, REV PHILOSOPHIQUE, V9, P129
DURR E, 1908, Z PSYCHOL, V49, P313
EBBINGHAUS H, 1913, MEMORY
FECHNER GT, 1889, ELEMENTE PSYCHOPHYSI, V2, P469
FERNALD MR, 1910, PSYCHOL BULL, V7, P88
FERNALD MR, 1912, PSYCHOL REV MONOG S, V14
FINKENBINDER EO, 1914, AM J PSYCHOL, V25, P32
FINZI J, 1901, PSYCHOL ARBEITEN, V3, P289
FISHER SC, 1916, PSYCHOL REV MONOG S, V21
FISHER SC, 1917, AM J PSYCHOL, V28, P57
FLETCHER JM, 1914, AM J PSYCHOL, V25, P201
FOSTER WS, 1914, AM J PSYCHOL, V25, P393
FREUD S, 1913, INTERPRETATION DREAM
FREUD S, 1914, PSYCHO PATHOLOGY EVE
FRINK HW, 1914, J ABNORM PSYCHOL, V8, P385
GALLINGER A, 1914, GRUNDLEGUNG LEHRE ER
GALTON F, 1883, INQUIRIES HUMAN FACU
GEISSLER LR, 1909, AM J PSYCHOL, V20, P473
GORDON K, 1903, PSYCHOL REV, V10, P267
GORDON K, 1905, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V4, P437
HALL GS, 1899, PEDAGOGICAL SEMINARY, V6, P485
HENDERSON EN, 1903, PSYCHOL REV MONOG S, V5
HENDERSON EN, 1911, J PHIL PSYCHOL SCI M, V8, P432
HENNIG R, 1913, Z PSYCHOTHER MED PSY, V5, P257
HERBART JF, 1894, TXB PSYCHOL
HOLLINGWORTH HL, 1910, J PHILOS PSYCHOL SCI, V7, P709
HOLLINGWORTH HL, 1911, J PHILOS PSYCHOL SCI, V8, P688
HOLLINGWORTH HL, 1913, AM J PSYCHOL, V24, P532
HUGUENIN C, 1914, ARCH PSYCHOL, V14, P379
JACOBSON E, 1911, AM J PSYCHOL, V22, P553
JONES E, 1913, PAPERS PSYCHOANALYSI
JONES E, 1915, BRIT J PSYCHOL 1, V8, P33
JOST A, 1897, Z PSYCHOL, V14, P436
JUDD CH, 1908, J PHIL PSYCHOL, V5, P676
KAKISE H, 1911, AM J PSYCHOL, V22, P14
KENNEDY F, 1898, PSYCHOL REV, V5, P477
KOFFKA K, 1912, ANAL VORSTELLUNGEN I
KOWALEWSKI A, 1904, GRENZFRAGEN NERVEN S, V4
KUHLMANN F, 1905, AM J PSYCHOL, V16, P337
KUHLMANN F, 1905, AM J PSYCHOL, V16, P389
KUHLMANN F, 1906, PSYCHOL REV, V13, P316
KUHLMANN F, 1907, AM J PSYCHOL, V18, P389
KUHLMANN F, 1907, J PHIL PSYCHOL, V4, P5
KUHLMANN F, 1909, AM J PSYCHOL, V20, P194
KULPE O, 1902, MONIST, V13, P38
KULPE O, 1909, OUTLINES PSYCHOL, P412
LANGFELD HS, 1916, PSYCHOL REV, V23, P180
LAY W, 1898, PSYCHOL REV MONOGR S, V2, P1
LAY W, 1903, PSYCHOL REV, V10, P300
LEHMANN A, 1889, PHILOS STUD, V5, P96
LEHMANN A, 1892, PHILOS STUD, V7, P169
LEUBA JH, 1893, AM J PSYCHOL, V5, P370
LOTZE H, 1886, OUTLINES PSYCHOL
LOTZE H, 1887, METAPHYSIC, P217
MACLENNEN SF, 1902, PSYCHOL REV, V9, P69
MARBE K, 1902, EXPT PSYCHOL UNTERSU
MARBE K, 1914, FORTS PSYCHOL, V3, P1
MARTIN LJ, 1912, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V61, P321
MARTIN LJ, 1913, PSYCHOL BULL, V10, P61
MARTIN LJ, 1915, AM J PSYCHOL, V26, P251
MAYER A, 1901, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V26, P1
MEAKIN F, 1903, PSYCHOL REV-MONOGR S, V4, P235
MEINONG A, 1891, Z PSYCHOL, V2, P245
MERKEL J, 1888, PHILOS STUD, V4, P251
MESSER A, 1906, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V8
METCALF JT, 1917, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V23, P181
MEUMANN E, 1913, PSYCHOL LEARNING
MEYER P, 1913, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V64, P34
MICHOTTE A, 1912, ANN I SUPERIEUR PHIL, V1, P1
MICHOTTE A, 1913, ANN I SUP PHILOS, V2, P535
MICHOTTE A, 1914, ANN I SUPERIEUR PHIL, V3, P367
MILES GH, 1915, BRIT J PSYCHOL 1, V8, P93
MILLER DS, 1895, PSYCHOL REV, V2, P535
MOORE CS, 1903, PSYCHOL REV-MONOGR S, V4, P277
MOORE TV, 1915, PSYCHOL REV, V22, P177
MULLER GE, 1913, Z PSYCHOL S, V8
MULLERFREIENFEL.R, 1913, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V27, P381
MULLERFREIENFEL.R, 1913, Z ANGEW PSYCHOL, V7, P121
MULLERFREIENFEL.R, 1913, Z PSYCHOL, V64, P386
MULLERFREIENFEL.R, 1914, VIERTELJ WISS PHIL, V38, P215
MULLERFREIENFEL.R, 1914, VIERTELJ WISS PHIL, V38, P335
MURRAY E, 1906, AM J PSYCHOL, V7, P227
MYERS GC, 1914, PSYCHOL REV, V21, P442
MYERS GC, 1915, J PHIL PSYCHOL SCI M, V12, P85
OGDEN RM, 1911, PSYCHOL BULL, V8, P183
OGDEN RM, 1913, PSYCHOL REV, V20, P378
OGDEN RM, 1914, INTRO GEN PSYCHOL
OKABE T, 1910, AM J PSYCHOL, V21, P563
ORTH J, 1903, SAMML ABH GEBIETE PA, V6, P223
OWEN RB, 1915, PSYCHOL REV MONOG S, V20, P1
PEAR TH, 1914, BRIT J PSYCHOL, V8, P139
PEAR TH, 1914, BRIT J PSYCHOL, V8, P147
PEAR TH, 1914, BRIT J PSYCHOL, V8, P154
PEAR TH, 1914, BRIT J PSYCHOL, V8, P161
PERKY CW, 1910, AM J PSYCHOL, V21, P422
PERRIN FAC, 1914, PSYCHOL MONOGR, V16, P1
PETERS W, 1911, PSYCHOL ARBEIT, V6, P197
PETERSON HA, 1903, PSYCHOL REV-MONOGR S, V4, P207
PETERSON J, 1916, PSYCHOL REV, V23, P153
PHILIPPE J, 1897, REV PHILOS, V44, P508
PHILIPPE J, 1903, IMAGE MENTALE
PHILLIPE J, 1895, REV PHIL FRANCE ETRA, V40, P672
PIERCE AH, 1915, PSYCHOL BULL, V12, P1
PIERON H, 1910, EVOLUTION MEMOIRE
PIERON H, 1910, REV PHIL, V70, P409
PIERON H, 1913, ANN PSYCHOL, V19, P91
PILLSBURY WB, 1908, ATTENTION
PILLSBURY WB, 1908, PSYCHOL REV, V15, P150
PYLE WH, 1909, AM J PSYCHOL, V20, P530
PYLE WH, 1913, J EDUC PSYCHOL, V4, P148
RANSCHBURG P, 1911, KRANKE GEDACHTNIS
RAWITZ K, 1914, ARCH SYST PHIL, V20, P265
RENDA A, 1910, OBLIO SAGGIO SULL AT
RIBOT T, 1882, DIS MEMORY
ROBERTSON TB, 1914, FOLIA NEURO BIOL, V8, P485
ROSE G, 1914, Z PSYCHOL, V69, P161
RUSSELL SB, 1915, PSYCHOL REV, V22, P163
RYBNIKOFF N, 1914, PUBLICATIONS PSYCHOL, V1, P54
SCHAUB AD, 1911, AM J PSYCHOL, V22, P346
SCHUMANN F, 1902, Z PSYCHOL, V30, P321
SLAUGHTER JW, 1902, AM J PSYCHOL, V13, P526
SMITH F, 1914, BRIT J PSYCHOL 3-4, V6, P321
SMITH TL, 1896, AM J PSYCHOL, V7, P453
SMITH TL, 1913, AM J PSYCHOL, V24, P52
SMITH WG, 1895, MIND, V4, P47
SPAIER A, 1914, REV PHIL, V77, P283
STARKE P, 1886, PHILOS STUD, V3, P264
STOUT GF, 1896, ANAL PSYCHOL, V1
STOUT GF, 1898, PHILOS REV, V7, P72
STRATTON GM, 1914, EXPT PSYCHOL CULTURE
STUMPF K, 1907, ABH PREUSS AK WISSEN
SYLVESTER RH, 1913, PSYCHOL BULL, V10, P210
TAIT WD, 1913, J ABNORM PSYCHOL, V8, P10
THORNDIKE EL, 1907, J PHILOS PSYCHOL SCI, V4, P324
THORNDIKE EL, 1911, ANIMAL INTELLIGENCE
THORNDIKE EL, 1913, PSYCHOL REV, V20, P91
THORNDIKE EL, 1914, ED PSYCHOL BRIEFER C
TITCHENER EB, 1908, PSYCHOL FEELING ATTE
TITCHENER EB, 1909, EXPT PSYCHOL THOUGHT
TITCHENER EB, 1911, AM J PSYCHOL, V22, P540
TITCHENER EB, 1911, MIND, V20, P258
TITCHENER EB, 1911, TXB PSYCHOL, V1
TITCHENER EB, 1911, TXB PSYCHOL, V2
TITCHENER EB, 1912, PSYCHOL REV, V19, P158
TITCHENER EB, 1913, AM J PSYCHOL, V24, P124
TOLMAN EC, 1917, PSYCHOL REV, V24, P114
TOMOR E, 1910, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V17, P362
VONASTER E, 1908, Z PSYCHOL, V49, P56
VONSYBEL A, 1909, Z PSYCHOL, V53, P257
VONTSCHISCH W, 1897, DRITTER INT K PSYCHO, P95
WARREN HC, 1895, PSYCHOL REV, V2, P239
WASHBURN MF, 1914, PSYCHOL REV, V21, P376
WATKINS SH, 1914, BRIT J PSYCHOL 3, V7, P319
WATSON JB, 1913, J PHILOS PSYCHOL SCI, V10, P421
WATSON JB, 1914, ANIMAL BEHAV
WATT HJ, 1905, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V4, P289
WATT HJ, 1910, MIND, V19, P570
WATT HJ, 1911, MIND, V20, P108
WATT HJ, 1911, MIND, V20, P402
WELLS FL, 1917, MENTAL ADJUSTMENTS
WHIPPLE GM, 1901, AM J PSYCHOL, V12, P409
WHIPPLE GM, 1902, AM J PSYCHOL, V13, P219
WHIPPLE GM, 1915, MANUAL MENTAL PHYS T, V2
WINCH WH, 1908, J PHILOS PSYCHOL SCI, V5, P337
WOHLGEMUTH A, 1913, BRIT J PSYCHOL 4, V5, P447
WOHLGEMUTH A, 1914, BRIT J PSYCHOL, V7, P434
WOLFE HK, 1886, PHILOS STUD, V3, P534
WOLFE HK, 1898, AM J PSYCHOL, V9, P137
WOODS EL, 1915, AM J PSYCHOL, V26, P313
WOODWORTH RS, 1906, J PHILOS PSYCHOL SCI, V3, P701
WOODWORTH, 1908, CONSCIOUSNESS RELATI, P483
WUNDT W, 1891, PHILOS STUD, V6, P335
WUNDT W, 1894, PHILOS STUDIEN, V10, P1
XILLIEZ P, 1895, ANN PSYCHOL, V2, P193
ZIEHEN T, 1909, INTRO STUDY PHYSL PS
NR 237
TC 1
PU AMER PSYCHOLOGICAL ASSOC
PI WASHINGTON
PA 750 FIRST ST NE, WASHINGTON, DC 20002-4242 USA
SN 0096-9753
J9 PSYCHOL MONOGRAPHS
JI Psychol. Monogr.
PY 1921
VL 29
IS 1
BP 1
EP 159
PG 159
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V99CO
UT ISI:000206699000001
ER

PT J
AU Sterzinger, O
AF Sterzinger, Othmar
TI The pieces consisted of the poetic image in the aspects of his creation
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Article
CR ASTHETIK, V2, P471
POETIK, P962
Z ASTH ALLG KUNSTWIS, V12, P69
1878, METAPHER BONN, P24
BAIR H, LECT RHETORIC, V1, P396
BEHAGHEL O, BEWUSSTES UNBEWUSSTE
BENUSSI V, Z PSYCHOL, V45, P217
BENUSSI V, 1904, PSYCHOL GESTALTERFAS
BETZ W, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V17, P280
BEYER C, 1882, DTSCH POETIK, V1, P152
BLEULERLEHMANN, 1881, ZWANGSMUSSIGE LIEHTE, P55
BROD, 1913, ANSCHANUNG BEGRIFF
BUHLER K, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V12
BUHLER K, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V9
BUHLER K, 1913, GESTALTWAHRNEHMUNGEN
BUHLER K, 1913, GESTALTWAHRNEHMUNGEN, P215
EHRENFELS C, 1890, GESTALTQUALITATEN VI, P249
ELSTER E, 1897, PRINZIPIEN LITERATUR, V1, P362
ELSTERS E, 1897, PRINZIPIEN LITERATUR, V1, P375
GOTTSCHALL R, 1873, POETIK, V1, P183
GRUNBAUM AA, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V12, P340
HACKER F, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V21, P1
HOFLER A, Z PSYCHOL, V60, P210
HOFLER A, Z PSYCHOL, V60, P213
HOFLER A, 1897, PSYCHOLOGIE
HOFLER A, 1897, PSYCHOLOGIE, P47
HUSSERL E, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
KOFFKA K, Z PSYCHOL, V67, P353
MEINONG A, Z PSYCH, V2, P245
MESSER A, 1914, PSYCHOLOGIE, P204
MEYER RM, 1906, HDB DTSCH UNTERRICHT, P101
MEYER TA, 1901, STILGESETZ POESIE, P188
QUINTILIAN, I ORATOR, V8, P6
ROETTEKEN H, 1902, POETIK MUNCHEN, P73
RUTHS H, 1898, EXPERIMENTALUNTERSUC, P193
STAHLIN W, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V31, P297
VISCHER FT, 1847, ASTHETIK WISSENSCHAF, V3
VOLKELT J, SYSTEM ASTHETIK, V1, P114
VOLKMANN, 1885, RHETORIK GRIECHEN RO, P418
WACKERNAGEL W, 1873, POETIK RHETORIK STIL, P380
WERTHEIMER M, Z PSYCHOL, V61, P248
WUNDT W, VOLKERPSYCHOLOGIE, P581
NR 42
TC 1
SN 0724-7842
J9 ARCG GESAMTE PSYCHOL
JI Archiv. Gesamte Psychol.
PD JUN 28
PY 1918
VL 37
IS 4
BP 363
EP 401
PG 39
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V98HV
UT ISI:000206645100002
ER

PT J
AU Leeser, O
AF Leeser, Otto
TI The Lines and Surfaces Comparison.
SO ZEITSCHRIFT FUR PSYCHOLOGIE UND PHYSIOLOGIE DER SINNESORGANE
LA German
DT Article
CR AUBERT, 1865, PHYSL NETZHAUT, P262
BALDWIN, 1895, PSYCHOL REV, V2, P236
BEST, 1910, ARCH GES PHYSL, V136, P248
BEST, 1910, ARCH OPHTHALMOL-CHIC, V74, P400
BINET, 1890, REV PHILOS, V30, P68
BINET, 1894, REV PHILOS, V37, P348
BOLTON, 1898, AM J PSYCHOL, V9, P178
BUHLER, 1912, 5 K EXP PSYCH BERL, P183
BUHLER, 1913, GESTALTWAHRNEHMUNGEN, V1, P153
CHODIN, 1876, ARCH OPHTHALMOL-CHIC, V23, P92
COLARDEAU, 1898, REV SCI, V10
COLEGROVE, 1899, AM J PSYCHOL, V10, P292
FECHNER, 1860, ELEMENTE PSYCHOPHYSI, P211
FEILCHENFELD, 1902, ARCH OPHTHALMOL-CHIC, V53, P401
FISCHER R, 1891, ARCH OPHTHALMOL 1, V37, P97
FISCHER R, 1891, ARCH OPHTHALMOL-CHIC, V37, P55
GIERING, 1904, Z PSYCHOL, V39, P42
GROSSMANN, 1906, ASTRON NACHR, V4066, P149
GUILLERY, 1896, Z PSYCHOL, V10, P83
HEGELMAIER, 1852, ARCH PHYSL HEILKUNDE, V11, P844
HIGIER, 1890, THESIS DORPAT
HIGIER, 1892, PHILOS STUDIEN, V7, P232
HOEFER, 1906, ARCH GES PHYSL, V115, P483
KUNDT, 1863, POGGENDORFFS ANN, V120, P118
LAUB, 1908, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V12, P312
LEWY, 1895, Z PSYCHOL, V8, P231
LIEPMANN, 1900, BERL KL W, P838
MACH, 1861, SITZUNGSBERICHTE WIE, V43, P215
MCCREA, 1897, AM J PSYCHOL, V8, P494
MESSER, THESIS WURZBURG
MESSER, 1876, POGGENDORFFS ANN, V157, P172
MUNSTERBERG, 1889, BEITRAGE EXPT PSYCHO, P125
QUANTZ, 1895, AM J PSYCHOL, V7, P26
RADOSLAWOWHADJI., 1900, PHILOS STUDIEN, V15, P318
SCHUMANN F, 1900, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V24, P1
SCHUMANN F, 1900, Z PSYCHOL, V24, P16
SCHUMANN F, 1902, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V30, P241
SWIFT, 1900, AM J PSYCHOL, V11, P527
VOLKMANN, 1853, PHYSL UNTERSUCHUNGEN, V1, P114
VONKRIES, 1891, BEITRAGE LEHRE AUGEN, P175
WARREN, 1895, PSYCHOL REV, V2, P239
WEBER EH, 1834, ANNOTATIONES ANATOM, P142
WEBER EH, 1846, WAGNERS HANDWORTERBU, P559
WOLFE, 1898, AM J PSYCHOL, V9, P137
WOODWORTH, 1900, PSYCHOL REV, V3, P344
NR 45
TC 1
PU SWETS ZEITLINGER PUBLISHERS
PI LISSE
PA P O BOX 825, 2160 SZ LISSE, NETHERLANDS
J9 Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SINNESORG
JI Z. Psychol. Physiol. Sinnesorg.
PY 1916
VL 74
BP 1
EP 127
PG 127
SC Psychology, Biological
GA V96LN
UT ISI:000206519500001
ER

PT J
AU Langfeld, HS
AF Langfeld, Herbert Sidney
TI TEXT-BOOKS AND GENERAL TREATISES
SO PSYCHOLOGICAL BULLETIN
LA English
DT Article
CR BREITWIESER JV, 1914, PSYCHOL EXPT
CALKINS MW, 1914, 1 BOOK PSYCHOL
HOLLINGWORTH HL, 1914, OUTLINES EXPT PSYCHO, P109
KLEINPETER H, 1914, VORTRAGE EINFUHRUNG
KOSTYLEFF N, 1914, MECANISME CEREBRAL P, P313
MAJOR DR, 1914, ELEMENTS PSYCHOL
MEINONG A, 1914, ABHANDLUNGEN PSYCHOL
MESSER A, 1914, PSYCHOL
MUNSTERBERG H, 1914, PSYCHOL GEN APPL
OGDEN RM, 1914, INTRO GEN PSYCHOL
REY A, PSYCHOL PHILOS, P355
SCHUMANN F, 1914, BER 6 K EXP PSYCH GO
TIGERSTEDT R, 1914, HDB PHYSL METHODIK, V3, P1
WATSON JB, 1914, BEHAV INTRO COMP PSY
NR 14
TC 1
PU AMER PSYCHOLOGICAL ASSOC
PI WASHINGTON
PA 750 FIRST ST NE, WASHINGTON, DC 20002-4242 USA
SN 0033-2909
J9 PSYCHOL BULL
JI Psychol. Bull.
PD JAN 15
PY 1915
VL 12
IS 1
BP 30
EP 37
PG 8
SC Psychology; Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V87KY
UT ISI:000205909600008
ER

PT J
AU Benussi, V
AF Benussi, Vittorio
TI On "attention-direction" in Space and Time Compared.
SO ZEITSCHRIFT FUR PSYCHOLOGIE UND PHYSIOLOGIE DER SINNESORGANE
LA German
DT Article
CR ARCH GES PSYCH, V13, P115
ARCH GES PSYCH, V13, P71
ARCH GES PSYCH, V13, P81
ARCH GES PSYCH, V9
ARCH GES PSYCH, V9, P366
ARCH GESAM PSYCHOL, V13, P119
ARCH GESAM PSYCHOL, V13, P81
ARCH GESAM PSYCHOL, V9, P366
ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V9, P372
EXPT ANAL ZIETVERGLE, P441
1904, ATT 5 C INT PSIC ROM, P267
AMESEDER A, PSYCH GESTALTERF
MEINONG A, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN, V9, P525
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERS GEGENSTANDSTH, V5
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GESGE
NR 15
TC 1
PU SWETS ZEITLINGER PUBLISHERS
PI LISSE
PA P O BOX 825, 2160 SZ LISSE, NETHERLANDS
J9 Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SINNESORG
JI Z. Psychol. Physiol. Sinnesorg.
PY 1909
VL 51
BP 73
EP 107
PG 35
SC Psychology, Biological
GA V96JZ
UT ISI:000206515500002
ER

PT J
AU Saxinger, R
AF Saxinger, Robert
TI Emotional Suggestion and Sense of Imagination
SO ZEITSCHRIFT FUR PSYCHOLOGIE UND PHYSIOLOGIE DER SINNESORGANE
LA German
DT Article
CR ANMERKUNG, V1, P413
ANNAHMEN, P254
GOTT GELEHRTE ANZ, P63
GOTT GELEHRTE ANZ, P64
GOTT GELEHRTE ANZ, P65
GOTT GELEHRTE ANZ, P66
GOTT GELEHRTE ANZ, P67
GOTT GELEHRTE ANZ, P68
GOTTINGISCHE GELEHRT, P63
NATUR PHANTASIEGEFUH, P413
NATUR PHANTASIEGEFUH, P582
NATUR PHANTASIEGEFUH, P585
NATUR PHANTASIEGEFUH, P587
NATUR PHANTASIEGEFUH, P588
NATUR PHANTASIEGEFUH, P590
NATUR PHANTASIEGEFUH, P592
NATUR PHANTASIEGEFUH, P595
NATUR PHANTSSIEGEFUB, P587
OBEN ANMERKUNG, V1, P413
Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V27, P26
Z PSYCHOL, V27, P24
Z PSYCHOL, V27, P25
ZEITSCHR, V30, P393
1906, GOTTINGISCHE GELEHRT, V1, P14
FOREL, HYPNOTISMUS, P38
HOFLER, PSYCHOL, P413
LEHMANN, HAMPTGESETZE MENSCHL, P192
LEWY, NATURLICHE WILLENSBI
LOWENFELD, HYPNOTISMUS, P334
LOWENFELD, HYPNOTISMUS, P89
MEINONG A, 1904, HERAUSGEG
MEINONG, ANNAHMEN
MEINONG, ANNAHMEN, P151
MEINONG, ANNAHMEN, P209
MEINONG, ANNAHMEN, P233
MEINONG, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V6, P35
MEINONG, ERFAHRUNGSGRUNDLAGEN, P76
MEINONG, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN, P579
MEINONG, 1906, PHILOS NATURWISSENSC, V1, P75
SCHWARZ, ARCH SYST PHIL, V12, P96
SOHWARZ, ARCH SYST PHILOS, V11
SOHWARZ, ARCH SYST PHILOS, V12
VONEHRENFELS, SYSTEM WERTTHEORIE, V1, P120
VONEHRENFELS, SYSTEM WERTTHEORIE, V1, P122
VONEHRENFELS, SYSTEM WERTTHEORIE, V1, P126
WITASEK, GRUNDZUGE ALLG ASTHE, P114
WITASEK, Z PSYCHOL, V40, P146
NR 47
TC 1
PU SWETS ZEITLINGER PUBLISHERS
PI LISSE
PA P O BOX 825, 2160 SZ LISSE, NETHERLANDS
J9 Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SINNESORG
JI Z. Psychol. Physiol. Sinnesorg.
PY 1908
VL 46
BP 401
EP 428
PG 28
SC Psychology, Biological
GA V96JU
UT ISI:000206515000049
ER

PT J
AU Saxinger, R
AF Saxinger, Robert
TI Contribution to the Doctrine on Emotional Fantasy
SO ZEITSCHRIFT FUR PSYCHOLOGIE UND PHYSIOLOGIE DER SINNESORGANE
LA German
DT Article
CR DISPOSITIONSPSYCHOLO, P418
UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN, P596
UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN, P597
Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V30, P416
Z PSYCHOL, V27, P24
ELSENHANS, Z PSYCHOL, V24, P3
HOFLER S, 1890, LOGIK, P32
HOFLER, PSYCHOLOGIE, P413
LEHMANN, HAUPTGESETZE MENSCHL, P266
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN, P579
MEINONG, ANNAHMEN, P238
MEINONG, 1902, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V2
RIBOT, 1897, ANN PSYCHOL, V3, P1
VONEHRENFELS, SYSTEM WERTTHEORIE, V1, P121
NR 14
TC 1
PU SWETS ZEITLINGER PUBLISHERS
PI LISSE
PA P O BOX 825, 2160 SZ LISSE, NETHERLANDS
J9 Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SINNESORG
JI Z. Psychol. Physiol. Sinnesorg.
PY 1906
VL 40
BP 145
EP 159
PG 15
SC Psychology, Biological
GA V96JO
UT ISI:000206514400008
ER

PT J
AU Kirschmann, A
AF Kirschmann, A.
TI Normal and Abnormal Colour Systems
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Article
CR K EXP PSYCH, P14
PHILOS STUDIEN, V8, P196
PHILOS STUDIEN, V8, P609
U TORONTO STUDIES PS, V1, P100
1895, AM J PSYCHOL, V7, P391
1907, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V3, P354
BAIRD JW, COLOR SENSITIVITY PE, P30
BENUSSI, K EXP PSYCH, P17
KIRSCHMANN, DIMENSIONEN RAUMES, P86
KIRSEHMANN, AM J PSYCHOL, V14, P294
MEINONG A, Z PSYCHOL, V33, P20
MULLER GE, K EXP PSYCH, P6
RAEHLMANN, FARHENSEHEN MALERCI
VINTSCHGAN, PHILOS STUD, V8, P189
WUNDT, PHYSL PSYCH, V2, P187
WUNDT, PHYSL PSYCH, V2, P238
ZINDLER, 1899, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V20, P281
NR 17
TC 1
SN 0724-7842
J9 ARCG GESAMTE PSYCHOL
JI Archiv. Gesamte Psychol.
PD JAN 12
PY 1906
VL 6
IS 4
BP 397
EP 424
PG 28
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V98BS
UT ISI:000206629200001
ER

PT J
AU Frechette, G
AF Frechette, Guillaume
TI INTENTIONALITY AND QUALITATIVE CHARACTER OF EXPERIENCES
SO STUDIA PHAENOMENOLOGICA
LA French
DT Article
C1 Univ Quebec, Dept Philosophie, Montreal, PQ H3C 3P8, Canada.
RP Frechette, G, Univ Quebec, Dept Philosophie, CP8888 Succ Ctr Ville, Montreal, PQ H3C 3P8, Canada.
EM frechette.guillaume@me.com
CR ACKERKNECHT E, 1904, THEORIE LOKALZEICHEN, P4
ANTONELLI M, 2001, SEIENDES BEWUSSTSEIN, P368
AQUILA R, 1977, INTENTIONALITY STUDY
BAUMGARTNER W, 1993, BRENTANO STUDIEN, V4, P131
BEYER C, 1996, BOLZANO HUSSERL
BRENTANO E, 1929, ZUKUNFT PHILOS
BRENTANO F, 1874, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN
BRENTANO F, 1926, VIER PHASEN PHILOS
BRENTANO F, 1959, GRUNDZUGE ARTHETIK, P80
BRENTANO F, 1979, UNTERSUCHUNGEN SINNE, P69
CASPARI O, 1883, H LOTZE SEINER STELL
CHISHOLM R, 1957, PERCEIVING PHILOS ST
CHISHOLM R, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
CHISHOLM R, 1967, PHENOMENOLOGY EXISTE, P1
CHISHOLM R, 1982, BRENTANO MEINONG STU
DASTUR F, 1994, KAIROS, V5, P31
FALCKENBERG R, 1913, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V150, P37
FELLMANN F, 1989, PHANOMENOLOGIE ALS A, P54
FISETTE D, 2006, C STUMPF RENAISSANCE
FISETTE D, 2007, ECOLE BRENTANO WURZB
FOSTER FH, 1882, DOCTRINE TRANSCENDEN
FRECHETTE G, 2010, GEGENSTANDSLOSE VORS
GEYER R, 1885, PHILOS MONATSHEFTE, V20, P525
HAUSER K, 2003, ARCH GESCH PHILOS, V85, P152
HEIDELBERGER M, 1993, PHILOS NATURALIS, V30, P3
HELMHOLTZ H, 1867, HDB PHYSL OPTIK, P430
HUSSERL E, PHILOS ARITHMETIK, P193
HUSSERL E, 1900, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN, V1, P227
HUSSERL E, 1969, PHANOMENOLOGIE INNER
HUSSERL E, 1979, AUFSATZE REZENSIONEN
HUSSERL E, 1980, PHANTASIE BILDBEWUSS
HUSSERL E, 1990, BRENTANO STUDIEN, V3, P142
HUSSERL E, 1994, BRIEFWECHSEL, V2, P36
HUSSERL E, 2004, WAHRNEHMUNG AUFMERKS, P136
LOTZE RH, 1846, HANDWORTERBUCH PHYSL, P134
LOTZE RH, 1852, MED PSYCHOL
LOTZE RH, 1853, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V20, P181
LOTZE RH, 1877, REV PHILOS FRANCE ET, V4, P346
LOTZE RH, 1879, METAPHYSIK, P548
LOTZE RH, 1881, GRUNDZUGE PSYCHOL DI, P31
LOTZE RH, 1885, GRUNDZUGE LOGIK, P9
MAXSEIN A, 1933, THESIS GIESSEN
MEINONG A, 1886, VIERTELJAHRSSCHRIFT, V10, P7
ORTH EW, 1997, BRENTANO STUDIEN, V7, P15
PESTER R, 1997, H LOTZE WEGE SEINES
PESTER R, 2001, KANT BERLINER AUFKLA, P297
QUINE WVO, 1960, WORD OBJECT, P220
ROLLINGER RD, 2004, POZNAN STUD, V82, P147
SCHUHMANN K, 1977, HUSSERL CHRONIK, P20
SCHUHMANN K, 2004, K SCHUHMANN SELECTED, P112
SEPP HR, 1987, HUSSERL HALLE, P161
SMITH B, AUSTRIAN PHILOS LEGA, P44
SMITH B, 1993, BRENTANO STUDIEN, V4, P43
SMITH B, 1996, SCH F BRENTANO, P328
SMITH DW, 1982, HUSSERL INTENTIONALI, P41
STUMPF C, F BRENTANO KENNTNIS, P87
STUMPF C, PSYCHOL URSPRUNG RAU, P7
STUMPF C, 1873, URSPRUNG RAUMVORSTEL, P315
STUMPF C, 1917, KANT-STUD, V22, P1
STUMPF C, 1924, PHILOS GEGENWART SEL, V5, P1
TWARDOWSKI K, 1894, LEHRE INHALT GEGENST
WOODWARD WR, 1978, ISIS, V69, P573
NR 62
TC 0
PU ROMANIAN SOC PHENOMENOLOGY
PI BUCHAREST
PA 49 MIHAIL KOGALNICEANU BLVD, AP 45, BUCHAREST, 050104, ROMANIA
SN 1582-5647
J9 STUD PHAENOMENOL
JI Stud. Phaenomenol.
PY 2010
VL 10
BP 91
EP 117
PG 27
SC Philosophy
GA 733QW
UT ISI:000288278800005
ER

PT J
AU Albertazzi, L
AF Albertazzi, Liliana
TI RENATA CALABRESI: The Experimental Analysis of the Present
SO HISTORY OF PSYCHOLOGY
LA English
DT Article
DE subjective present; presentation; time intervals; Calabresi
ID REPRESENTATIONAL MOMENTUM; TIME; CONSCIOUSNESS; PERCEPTION; ATTENTION; SEGREGATION; MOTION; MEMORY; NUMBER
AB Between the 1920s and 1930s, Renata Calabresi conducted pioneering laboratory researches on the nature, extensity, and quality of the psychic present. Her analyses stemmed from the Central European tradition initiated by Stern, Brentano, Meinong, and Benussi. Her work has remained largely unrecognized, because of both the decline of the underlying theoretical paradigm, namely descriptive psychology, and the historical events of the time that swept aside the lives of those involved. This article presents her researches on the roots of phenomenal consciousness. She proved that in the subjective time there occur perceptual events that are at least partially independent from those of the time of objective sequences. Subjective and objective time, therefore, do not flow in unison, and the continuum of perceptive sequences has modalities of existence that differ from those of the continuum of physical sequences.
C1 [Albertazzi, Liliana] CIMeC, I-38068 Rovereto, Italy.
[Albertazzi, Liliana] Univ Trent, Rovereto, Italy.
RP Albertazzi, L, CIMeC, Corso Bettini 31, I-38068 Rovereto, Italy.
EM liliana.albertazzi@unitn.it
CR ALBERTAZZI L, 1991, FAMILIE BRENTANOS, P92
ALBERTAZZI L, 1991, KAZIMIERZ AJDUKIEWIC, P17
ALBERTAZZI L, 1992, BRENTANO STUDIEN, V4, P155
ALBERTAZZI L, 1993, AXIOMATHES, V4, P389
ALBERTAZZI L, 1993, BRENTANO ITALIA, P131
ALBERTAZZI L, 1994, AXIOMATHES, V5, P145
ALBERTAZZI L, 1996, ITINERE EUROPEAN CIT, P177
ALBERTAZZI L, 1996, SCH F BRENTANO, P423
ALBERTAZZI L, 1999, AXIOMATHES, V10, P49
ALBERTAZZI L, 1999, F DESARLO LAB FIOREN, P331
ALBERTAZZI L, 1999, UGO SPIRITO FILOSOFO, P46
ALBERTAZZI L, 2001, DAWN COGNITIVE SCI E, P29
ALBERTAZZI L, 2001, SCH A MEINONG, P239
ALBERTAZZI L, 2003, AXIOMATHES, V13, P239
ALBERTAZZI L, 2004, ARISTOTE 19 SIECLE, P249
ALBERTAZZI L, 2006, IMMANENT REALISM INT
ALBERTAZZI L, 2007, SPECIAL, V14, P94
ALBERTAZZI L, 2010, PSICOLOGIA ITALIANA, P120
ALBERTAZZI L, 2011, INFERENCE I IN PRESS
BARTLETT FC, 1916, BRIT J PSYCHOL 2, V8, P222
BARTLETT FC, 1932, REMEMBERING
BENUSSI V, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN, P3030
BENUSSI V, 1905, ATT CONV INT PSIC, P440
BENUSSI V, 1912, BEITRAGE PSYCHOL GES, V1, P50
BENUSSI V, 1913, PSYCHOL ZEITAUFFASSU
BONAVENTURA E, 1913, CULTURA FILOSOFICA, V7, P518
BONAVENTURA E, 1914, CULTURA FILOSOFICA, V11, P514
BONAVENTURA E, 1914, RIV PSICOL, V20, P76
BONAVENTURA E, 1915, PSICHE, V4, P48
BONAVENTURA E, 1916, QUALITA MONDO FISICO
BONAVENTURA E, 1922, J PSYCHOL, V19, P481
BONAVENTURA E, 1925, E BONAVENTURA, P161
BONAVENTURA E, 1928, ARCH ITALIAN PSICOLO, V6, P180
BONAVENTURA E, 1928, ARCH ITALIAN PSICOLO, V6, P78
BONAVENTURA E, 1929, PROBLEMA PSICOLOGICO
BONAVENTURA E, 1961, PROBLEMA PSICOLOGICO
BORING EG, 1965, SOURCE BOOK HIST PSY
BOZZI P, 1988, EREDITA PSICOLOGIA G, P33
BREITMEYER BG, 2006, VISUAL MASKING TIME
BRENTANO F, 1874, PSYCHOL EMPIRICAL ST
BRENTANO F, 1911, KLASSIFIKATION PSYCH
BRENTANO F, 1933, THEORY CATEGORIES
BRENTANO F, 1968, SENSORY NOETIC CONSC
BRENTANO F, 1968, VIER PHASEN PHILOS I
BRENTANO F, 1982, DESCRIPTIVE PSYCHOL
BRENTANO F, 1987, CONCEPTUS, P25
BRENTANO F, 1987, CONCEPTUS, P53
BRENTANO F, 1988, PHILOS LECT SPACE TI
CALABRESI R, 1923, RIV FILOSOFIA, V14, P253
CALABRESI R, 1930, DETERMINAZIONE PRESE
CALABRESI R, 1931, RIV SCI APPL ALLEDUC, V2, P3
CALABRESI R, 1932, ATT 21 RIUN SOC IT P, V3, P222
CALABRESI R, 1933, ARCH ITALIANO PSICOL, V11, P1
CALABRESI R, 1933, RIV PSICOL, V39, P120
CALABRESI R, 1933, RIV PSICOL, V39, P147
CALABRESI R, 1933, SCRITTI PSICOLOGIA O, P75
CALABRESI R, 1934, RIV PSICOL, V30, P141
CALABRESI R, 1936, ATT 8 CONV PSIC IT R
CALABRESI R, 1937, B INFORM ORIENTAMENT
CALO G, 1908, CULTURA FILOSOFICA, P337
CATTELL J, 1885, PHILOS STUDIEN, V1, P1
CHENG K, 2004, ANIMAL COGNITION, V7, P267
CHISHOLM RM, 1981, MIDWEST STUD PHILOS, V6, P3
CHURCH RM, 1984, SCIENCE, V423, P566
CLAY ER, 1882, ALTERNATIVE STUDY PS
COLTHEART M, 1980, PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS, V27, P183
CONDRY KF, 2008, J EXP PSYCHOL GEN, V137, P22, DOI 10.1037/0096-3445.137.1.22
CROCE B, 1905, LOGICA COME SCI CONC
DEBRU C, 2001, SCI CONTEXT, V14, P471
DEHEVIA MD, 2009, COGNITION, V110, P198, DOI 10.1016/j.cognition.2008.11.003
DERUGGIERO R, 1929, FILOSOFIA CONT
DESARLO F, 1903, DATI ESPERIENZA PSIC
DESARLO F, 1923, MEMORIE REAL ACCADEM
DESARLO F, 1928, INTRO FILOSOFIA
DESARLO F, 1935, VITA PSICHE SAGGIO F
DURGIN FH, 2002, CONSCIOUS COGN, V11, P284, DOI 10.1006/ccog.2002.0566
EHRENSTEIN WH, 2003, AXIOMATHES, V13, P433
FECHNER T, 1860, ELEMENTE PSYCHOPHYSI
FRAISSE P, 1952, ANN PSYCHOL, V52, P39
FRAISSE P, 1964, PSYCHOL TIME
FRAISSE P, 1974, PSYCHOL RYTHME
FREYD JJ, 1984, J EXP PSYCHOL LEARN, V10, P126
FROLICH FW, 1929, EMPFINDUNGSZEIT
HOLUBAR J, 1969, SENSE TIME ELECTROPH
HUBBARD TL, 1988, PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS, V44, P211
HUSSERL E, 1891, PHILOS ARITHMETIK PS
HUSSERL E, 1900, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
HUSSERL E, 1913, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
HUSSERL E, 1939, ERFAHRUNG URTEIL UNT
HUSSERL E, 1975, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN, V1
HUSSERL E, 1984, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN, V1
HUSSERL E, 1984, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN, V2
HUSSERL E, 1985, TEXTE PHANOMENOLOGIE
JAMES W, 1890, PRINCIPLES PSYCHOL
KANIZSA G, 1952, ARCH PSICOLOGIA NEUR, V15, P251
KANIZSA G, 1991, VEDERE PENSARE
KANT I, 1871, WERKE, V3, P4
KASTIL A, 1951, PHILOS F BRENTANOS
KNUFER C, 1911, GRUNDZUGE GESCH BEGR
KOHLER W, 1938, PLACE VALUE WORLD FA
KORNER D, 1987, TOPOI, V6, P11
KRAUS O, 1930, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V75, P1
KUBOVY M, 2002, EXPT PSYCHOL, V4, P87
LAZZERONI V, 1990, ENZO BONAVENTURA, P13
LEJEUNE H, 2000, BEHAV PROCESS, V52, P71
LEWYGINSBURG R, 1928, ARCH ITALIANO PSICOL, V6, P103
LI XJ, 1999, PERCEPT PSYCHOPHYS, V61, P771
LIBET B, 1982, HUMAN NEUROBIOLOGY, V1, P235
LIBET B, 1983, BRAIN, V106, P623
LUCCIO R, 1990, E BONAVENTURA 1891 1, P25
MAGER A, 1920, MUNCHENER STUDIEN PS
MAGER A, 1925, PSYCHOLOGIE, V53, P391
MCCLELLAND JL, 1985, J EXP PSYCHOL GEN, V114, P159
MEINONG A, 1899, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V21, P182
MEINONG A, 1902, ANNAHMEN
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
MELANDRI E, 1978, TOPOI, V6, P51
METZGER W, 1941, PSYCHOL ENTWICKLUNG
MEUMANN E, 1893, PHILOS STUD, V8, P431
MEUMANN E, 1894, PHILOS STUD, V9, P264
MEZEI BM, 1998, 4 PHASES PHILOS
MICHON JA, 1967, TIMING TEMPORAL TRAC
MICHON JA, 1985, TIME MIND BEHAV
MICHOTTE A, 1912, ANN I SUPERIEUR PHIL, V1, P568
MICHOTTE A, 1962, CAUSALITE PERMANENCE, P347
MODENATO F, 1979, COSCIENZA ESSERE F B
MOUTOUSSIS K, 1997, P ROY SOC LOND B BIO, V264, P1407
MUNSTERBERG J, 1889, BEITRAGE EXPT PSYCHO, V2
NIJHAWAN R, 2001, PERCEPTION, V30, P263
OREGAN JK, 2001, BEHAV BRAIN SCI, V24, P939
ORNSTEIN RE, 1969, EXPERIENCE TIME
PIAZZA M, 2006, BRAIN RES, V1106, P172
POPPEL E, 1994, INT REV NEUROBIOL, V37, P185
RENSINK RA, 2000, VISION RES, V40, P1469
RENSINK RA, 2002, ANNU REV PSYCHOL, V53, P245
ROSS J, 2003, PERCEPTION, V32, P867, DOI 10.1068/p5029
ROSS J, 2010, J VISION, V10, ARTN 10
ROSSI G, 1926, GIUDIZIO RAZIOCINIO
SCHUHMANN K, 1993, POLISH SCI PHILOS LV, P41
SCHUMANN F, 1890, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V17, P106
SIMONS P, 1990, MIND MEANING METAPHY, P157
SPERLING G, 1970, PSYCHOL MONOGRAPHY, V74, P1
STERN W, 1897, Z PSYCHOL, V13, P325
STERN W, 1898, PSYCHOL VERANDERUNGS
STROUD JM, 1956, INFORMATION THEORY P, P174
THINES G, 1977, PHENOMENOLOGY SCI BE
TREISMAN AM, 1980, COGNITIVE PSYCHOL, V12, P97
TWARDOWSKI K, 1894, LEHRE INHALT GEGENST
UNDERWOO.G, 1973, PERCEPTION, V2, P101
VANDEGRIND W, 2002, CONSCIOUS COGN, V11, P241, DOI 10.1006/ccog.2002.0560
VERFAILLIE K, 1991, J EXP PSYCHOL LEARN, V17, P302
VICARIO GB, 1973, TEMPO PSICOLOGICO EV
VICARIO GB, 2005, TEMPO
VIERORDT K, 1868, ZEITSINN NACH VERSUC
VOLPI F, 1989, TOPOI S, V4, P127
WERNER A, 1930, PSYCHOL ERKENNTNISTH
WERTHEIMER M, 1912, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V61, P161
WHITHROW GJ, 1989, TIME HIST
WIRTH W, 1934, PSYCHOLOGIE, V91, P507
WIRTH W, 1937, AM J PSYCHOL, V50, P79
WUNDT W, 1873, GRUNDZUGE PHYSL PSYC
ZEKI S, 1998, P R SOC B, V265, P1583
NR 162
TC 0
PU EDUCATIONAL PUBLISHING FOUNDATION-AMERICAN PSYCHOLOGICAL ASSOC
PI WASHINGTON
PA 750 FIRST ST, NE, WASHINGTON, DC 20002-4242 USA
SN 1093-4510
J9 HIST PSYCHOL
JI Hist. Psychol.
PD FEB
PY 2011
VL 14
IS 1
BP 53
EP 79
DI 10.1037/a0021104
PG 27
SC History Of Social Sciences; Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA 728QZ
UT ISI:000287890900003
ER

PT J
AU Connolly, N
AF Connolly, Niall
TI How the Dead Live
SO PHILOSOPHIA
LA English
DT Article
DE Metaphysics; Death; Presentism; Non-existence; Bare particulars
ID OBJECTS
AB This paper maintains (following Yougrau 1987; 2000 and Hinchliff 1996) that the dead and other former existents count as examples of non-existent objects. If the dead number among the things there are, a further question arises: what is it to be dead-how should the state of being dead be characterised? It is argued that this state should be characterised negatively: the dead are not persons, philosophers etc. They lack any of the (intrinsic) qualities they had while they lived. The only facts involving the dead are facts about the relations they stand in-including the relations they bear to the qualities they formerly instantiated, and the intentional relations they stand in to us. Given an appropriate conception of qualities the dead can be said to be quality-less objects: bare particulars. The 'Bare Particular Theory' of individuals, it is argued, is coherent if and only if it concedes that the bare particulars it allows for don't exist. The account of the dead and other former existents as bare particulars does justice to the misfortune of death, and points the way to a general theory of nonexistent objects.
C1 Trinity Coll Dublin, Dept Philosophy, Dublin, Ireland.
RP Connolly, N, Trinity Coll Dublin, Dept Philosophy, Dublin, Ireland.
EM niconnol@tcd.ie
CR ADAMS RM, 1986, MIDWEST STUD PHILOS, V11, P315
BOURNE C, 2006, FUTURE PRESENTISM
BRADLEY B, 2009, WELL BEING DEATH
CAMERON RP, OXFORD STUD IN PRESS, V6
CAMERON RP, 2008, NOUS, V42, P410
CRANE T, 2001, ELEMENTS MIND INTRO
CRANE T, 2001, RATIO, V14, P298
GROSSMAN R, 2001, SCH A MEINONG, P477
HAWTHORNE J, 1995, ANALYSIS, V55, P191
HINCHLIFF M, 2000, PHILOS SCI S, V67, S575
HOSSACK K, 2007, METAPHYSICS KNOWLEDG
JOHANSSON I, 1989, ONTOLOGICAL INVESTIG
LEWIS D, 1986, PLURALITY WORLDS
LEWIS D, 2002, MIND, V111, P1
LINSKY B, 1991, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V69, P438
LOUX MJ, 1998, CONT READINGS FDN ME, P233
MARKOSIAN N, 2004, OXFORD STUDIES METAP, V1, P82
MCMICHAEL A, 1980, J PHILOS LOGIC, V9, P297
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
MERRICKS T, 2007, TRUTH ONTOLOGY
MONTON B, 2006, ONTOLOGY SPACETIME, P263
MORELAND JP, 1998, PAC PHILOS QUART, V79, P251
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
PRIEST G, 2005, NONBEING LOGIC METAP
PUTNAM H, 1967, J PHILOS, V64, P240
QUINE WVO, 1980, LOGICAL POINT VIEW, P1
ROSENKRANTZ GS, 1993, HAECCEITY ONTOLOGICA
SIDER T, 1996, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V74, P433
SIDER T, 2006, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V20, P387
SMITH B, 1999, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V77, P274
WIGGINS D, 2001, SAMENESS SUBSTANCE R
WILLIAMSON T, 1998, ERKENNTNIS, V48, P257
WILLIAMSON T, 2002, ROY I PH S, V51, P233
YOURGRAU P, 1987, J PHILOS, V84, P84
YOURGRAU P, 2000, MIDWEST STUD PHILOS, V24, P46
ZALTA EN, 2006, NOUS, V40, P591
NR 36
TC 0
PU SPRINGER
PI DORDRECHT
PA VAN GODEWIJCKSTRAAT 30, 3311 GZ DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0048-3893
J9 PHILOSOPHIA
JI Philosophia
PD MAR
PY 2011
VL 39
IS 1
BP 83
EP 103
DI 10.1007/s11406-010-9258-5
PG 21
SC Philosophy
GA 716BD
UT ISI:000286939000009
ER

PT J
AU Pinna, B
AF Pinna, Baingio
TI What Comes Before Psychophysics? The Problem of 'What We Perceive' and the Phenomenological Exploration of New Effects
SO SEEING AND PERCEIVING
LA English
DT Article
DE Gestalt psychology; psychophysics; phenomenology; visual illusions; perceptual organization
ID PERCEPTION
AB The psychophysical methods were developed by Fechner to find out the perceptual threshold of a stimulus, that is, the weakest stimulus that could be perceived. In spite of the strong efficiency in measuring thresholds, psychophysics does not help to define the multiplicity and complexity of possible percepts emerging from the same stimulus conditions, and accordingly, of what we perceive. In order to define what we perceive it is also necessary to define what we can perceive within the multiplicity of possible visual outcomes and how they are reciprocally organized. Usually the main experimental task is aimed at focusing on the specific attribute to be measured: what conies before psychophysics, i.e., the phenomenological exploration, is typically not fully investigated either epistemologically or phenomenally, even if it assumes a basic role in the process of scientific discovery. In this work, the importance of the traditional approach is not denied. Our main purpose is to place the two approaches side by side so that they complement each other: the phenomenological exploration complements the quantitative psychophysical measurement of the qualities that emerge through the preliminary exploration. To demonstrate the basic role played by the phenomenological exploration in complementing the psychophysical investigation we introduce three critical visual conditions, called visual gradient of perceptibility, perceptible invisibility and visual levels of perceptibility. Through these conditions several new illusions are studied and some phenomenological rules are suggested. (C) Koninklijke Brill NV, Leiden, 2010
C1 Univ Sassari, Dept Architecture Design & Planning, I-07041 Alghero, SS, Italy.
RP Pinna, B, Univ Sassari, Dept Architecture Design & Planning, Palazzo Pou Salit,Piazza Duomo 6, I-07041 Alghero, SS, Italy.
EM baingio@uniss.it
FU Finanziamento della Regione Autonoma della Sardegna ; Alexander von Humboldt Foundation
FX Supported by Finanziamento della Regione Autonoma della Sardegna, ai sensi della L.R. 7 agosto 2007, n. 7, Fondo d'Ateneo (ex 60%) and Alexander von Humboldt Foundation. I thank the Guest Editor and the Reviewers for their suggestions that greatly improved the paper.
CR BOZZI P, 1989, FENOMENOLOGIA SPERIM
BOZZI P, 1990, FISICA INGENUA OSCIL
DAPOS O, 1996, VISUAL ILLUSIONS EFF
FECHNER G, 1860, ELEMENTS PSYCHOPHYSI, V1
HERMANN L, 1870, PFLUGERS ARCH GESAMT, V3, P13
KANIZSA G, 1980, GRAMMATICA VEDERE
KANIZSA G, 1991, VEDERE PENSARE
KERSTEN D, 1999, NEW COGNITIVE NEUROS
KERSTEN D, 2004, ANNU REV PSYCHOL, V55, P271
KNILL DC, 1996, PERCEPTION BAYESIAN
KNILL DC, 2004, TRENDS NEUROSCI, V27, P712
KOFFKA K, 1935, PRINCIPLES GESTALT P
KRISTOF W, 1961, ACTA PSYCHOL, V18, P17
MACH E, 1914, ANAL SENSATION
MAMASSIAN P, 2002, NEU INF PRO, P13
MASIN SC, 1993, FDN PERCEPTUAL THEOR
MASSIRONI M, 1998, FENOMENOLOGIA PERCEZ
METZGER W, 1941, PSYCHOL ENTWICKLUNG
METZGER W, 1975, GESETZE SEHENS
OPPEL JJ, 1854, GEOMETRISCH OPTISCHE, P37
PINNA B, INFORM PERC IN PRESS
PINNA B, 2008, ART PERCEPTION VIS 2, P1
PINNA B, 2009, SPATIAL VISION, V22, P225
PINNA B, 2010, GESTALT THEORY, V32, P1
RAO RPN, 2002, PROBABILISTIC MODELS
SCHUMANN F, 1900, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V24, P1
SPILLMANN L, 2009, VISION RES, V49, P1507, DOI 10.1016/j.visres.2009.02.022
THINES G, 1977, PHENOMENOLOGY SCI BE
VICARIO GB, 2001, PSICOLOGIA GENERALE
VICARIO GB, 2005, TEMPO SAGGIO PSICOLO
VONHELMHOLTZ H, 1866, HDB PHYSIOLOGISCHE 3
WERTHEIMER M, 1922, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V1, P47
WERTHEIMER M, 1923, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V4, P301
NR 33
TC 0
PU BRILL ACADEMIC PUBLISHERS
PI LEIDEN
PA PLANTIJNSTRAAT 2, P O BOX 9000, 2300 PA LEIDEN, NETHERLANDS
SN 1878-4755
J9 SEEING PERCEIVING
JI Seeing Perceiving
PY 2010
VL 23
IS 5-6
BP 463
EP 481
DI 10.1163/187847510X541144
PG 19
SC Biophysics; Psychology; Psychology, Experimental
GA 724YR
UT ISI:000287612900005
ER

PT J
AU Jago, M
AF Jago, Mark
TI Setting the Facts Straight
SO JOURNAL OF PHILOSOPHICAL LOGIC
LA English
DT Article
DE Facts; States of affairs; Ontology; Negative facts; Properties; Truthmaking; lambda-calculus; Reduction
ID NEGATIVE TRUTHS; TRUTHMAKERS
AB Substantial facts (or states of affairs) are not well-understood entities. Many philosophers object to their existence on this basis. Yet facts, if they can be understood, promise to do a lot of philosophical work: they can be used to construct theories of property possession and truthmaking, for example. Here, I give a formal theory of facts, including negative and logically complex facts. I provide a theory of reduction similar to that of the typed lambda-calculus and use it to provide identity conditions for facts. This theory validates truthmaker maximalism: it provides truthmakers for all truths. I then show how the usual truth-in-a-model relation can be replaced by two relations: one between models and facts, saying that a given fact obtains relative to the model, and the other between facts and propositions: the truthmaking relation.
C1 Macquarie Univ, Dept Philosophy, Sydney, NSW 2109, Australia.
RP Jago, M, Macquarie Univ, Dept Philosophy, Sydney, NSW 2109, Australia.
EM mark.jago@gmail.com
CR ARMSTRONG D, 1989, COMBINATORIAL THEORY
ARMSTRONG D, 1997, WORLD STATES AFFAIRS
ARMSTRONG D, 2004, TRUTH TRUTHMAKERS
BARENDREGT H, 1984, LAMBDA CALCULUS ITS
BEALL JC, 2000, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V78, P264
CAMERON R, 2007, NOUS, V42, P410
CAMERON RP, 2008, SYNTHESE, V161, P27, DOI 10.1007/s11229-006-9152-7
FINE K, 1982, SYNTHESE, V53, P43
HORWICH P, 1990, TRUTH
JAGO M, 2010, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI
LEWIS D, 1986, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V64, P25
LEWIS D, 1986, PLURALITY WORLDS
MARTINLOF P, 1984, INTUITIONISTIC TYPE
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
MOLNAR G, 2000, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V78, P72
MUMFORD S, 2007, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, V107, P45
PARSONS J, 2006, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V84, P591, DOI 10.1080/00048400601079144
PRIEST G, 2005, NONBEING
RESTALL G, 2004, PHILOS QUART, V54, P420
RUSSELL B, 1985, PHILOS LOGICAL ATOMI, P35
SIDER T, 2005, NOUS, V39, P679
TAIT W, 1967, J SYMBOLIC LOGIC, V32, P198
VANFRAASSEN B, 1969, J PHILOS, V66, P477
WITTGENSTEIN L, 1922, TRACTATUS LOGICO PHI
WRIGHT C, 1992, TRUTH OBJECTIVITY
ZALTA E, 1993, J PHILOS LOGIC, V22, P385
NR 26
TC 0
PU SPRINGER
PI DORDRECHT
PA VAN GODEWIJCKSTRAAT 30, 3311 GZ DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0022-3611
J9 J PHIL LOGIC
JI J. Philos. Log.
PD FEB
PY 2011
VL 40
IS 1
BP 33
EP 54
DI 10.1007/s10992-010-9141-7
PG 22
SC Philosophy
GA 708AK
UT ISI:000286332500003
ER

PT J
AU Sendlak, M
AF Sendlak, Maciej
TI Dispute over the Nonactual Possibilities
SO FILOZOFIA NAUKI
LA Polish
DT Article
DE nonactual possibilities; principle of independence; neo-meinongianism; noneism; Alexius Meinong; Willard van Orman Quine
AB In 1947 Quine wrote one of the most important and influential articles in the twentieth century philosophy - On What There Is". One of the aims of this article was a critique of Meinong's Theory of Object. The critique was especially focused upon nonactual possibilities, which (according to Meinong) are some kinds of nonexistent objects. In my paper I want to present Neo-Meinongian refutations of Quine's critique. In order to do this I discuss: (i) the main thesis of On What There Is",(ii) premises of Meinongian Theory, (iii) views of proponents and opponents of the idea of nonexistent objects, (iv) Quine's critique aimed at nonactual possibilities, (v) Terence Parsons' theory, based on the distinction between nuclear and extranucler properties, and (vi) noneism, defended by Richard Routley. I also try to give a reply to the most popular critiques aimed at both Neo-Meinongian theories. The main conclusion is that Quine's critique and his arguments against nonactual possibilities aren't dangerous for theories endorsing Meinong's Theory of Object. Contrary to what Gilbert Ryle once claimed (If Meinongianism isn't dead, nothing is), Meinongian theories are still alive and doing well.
C1 Uniwersytetu Szczecinskiego, Inst Filozofii, PL-71017 Szczecin, Poland.
RP Sendlak, M, Uniwersytetu Szczecinskiego, Inst Filozofii, Ul Krakowska 61-69, PL-71017 Szczecin, Poland.
CR CHRUDZIMSKI A, 2008, PRZEGLAD FILOZOFICZN, V17, P149
CONTESSA G, 2009, WHO IS AFRAID IMAGIN, P248
GRIFFIN N, 2009, RUSSELL VS MEINONG L
LAMBERT K, 1983, MEINONG PRINCIPLE IN
LEWIS D, 1990, MIND, V99, P23
LEWIS D, 1991, PRAWDA FIKCJI, P169
MEINONG A, 1994, PRINCIPIA, V8, P171
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
PARSONS T, 1991, MEINONGOWSKA ANALIZA, P137
PASNICZEK J, 1991, ONTOLOGIA FIKCJI
PRIEST G, 2007, NONBEING LOGIC METAP
QUINE WV, 2000, PUNKTU WIDZENIE LOGI
QUINE WV, 2000, TYM CO ISTNIEJE, P29
RESCHER N, 1980, LOGIC INCOINSISTENCY
ROUTLEY R, 1982, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V43, P151
SAINSBURY RM, 2010, FICTION FICTIONALISM
VANINWAGEN P, 2003, METAONTOLOGY, P13
VANINWAGEN P, 2003, ONTOLOGY IDENTITY MO
ZEGLEN UM, 1990, MODALNOSC LOGICE FIL
NR 19
TC 0
PU WARSAW UNIV, INST PHILOSOPHY
PI WARSAW
PA UL KRAKOWSKIE PRZEDMIESCIE 3, WARSAW, 00-927, POLAND
SN 1230-6894
J9 FILOZ NAUK
JI Filoz. Nauk.
PD MAR
PY 2010
VL 18
IS 1
BP 17
EP +
PG 19
SC Philosophy
GA 720JF
UT ISI:000287276200002
ER

PT J
AU Berto, F
AF Berto, Francesco
TI Modal Meinongianism and fiction: the best of three worlds
SO PHILOSOPHICAL STUDIES
LA English
DT Article
DE Meinongianism; Impossible worlds; Fictional entities
ID NEGATIVE EXISTENTIALS; NONEXISTENCE
AB We outline a neo-Meinongian framework labeled as Modal Meinongian Metaphysics (MMM) to account for the ontology and semantics of fictional discourse. Several competing accounts of fictional objects are originated by the fact that our talking of them mirrors incoherent intuitions: mainstream theories of fiction privilege some such intuitions, but are forced to account for others via complicated paraphrases of the relevant sentences. An ideal theory should resort to as few paraphrases as possible. In Sect. 1, we make this explicit via two methodological principles, called the Minimal Revision and the Acceptability Constraint. In Sect. 2, we introduce the standard distinction between internal and external fictional discourse. In Sects. 3-5, we discuss the approaches of (traditional) Meinongianism, Fictionalism, and Realism-and their main troubles. In Sect. 6 we propose our MMM approach. This is based upon (1) a modal semantics including impossible worlds (Subsect. 6.1); (2) a qualified Comprehension Principle for objects (Subsect. 6.2); (3) a notion of existence-entailment for properties (Subsect. 6.3). In Sect. 7 we present a formal semantics for MMM based upon a representation operator. And in Sect. 8 we have a look at how MMM solves the problems of the three aforementioned theories.
C1 [Berto, Francesco] Univ Aberdeen, Dept Philosophy, Aberdeen AB24 3UB, Scotland.
[Berto, Francesco] Univ Aberdeen, No Inst Philosophy Metaphys Log & Philosophy Math, Aberdeen AB24 3UB, Scotland.
RP Berto, F, Univ Aberdeen, Dept Philosophy, High St,Old Brewery OBG12, Aberdeen AB24 3UB, Scotland.
EM f.berto@abdn.ac.uk
CR BARWISE J, 1997, NOTRE DAME J FORM L, V38, P488
BERTO F, 2009, STANFORD ENCY PHILOS
BERTO F, 2010, PHILOS Q IN PRESS
CURRIE G, 1990, NATURE FICTION
FINE K, 1982, TOPOI-INT REV PHILOS, V1, P97
FINE K, 1984, PHILOS STUD, V45, P94
GRIFFIN N, 1998, COMMUNICATION
JACQUETTE D, 1996, MEINONGIAN LOGIC SEM
LEWIS D, 1978, AM PHILOS Q, V15, P37
LINSKY B, 1994, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V8, P431
LYCAN W, 1994, MODALITY MEANING
MEINONG A, 1969, ALEXIUS MEINONG GESA
NOLAN D, 1998, COMMUNICATION
PARSONS T, 1979, J PHILOS, V76, P649
PARSONS T, 1979, THEOR DECIS, V11, P95
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
PRIEST G, 1992, LOGIQUE ANAL, V35, P291
PRIEST G, 1997, NOTRE DAME J FORM L, V38, P481
PRIEST G, 2005, NONBEING LOGIC METAP
RANTALA V, 1982, ACTA PHILOS FENN, V35, P106
RESTALL G, 1997, NOTRE DAME J FORM L, V38, P583
ROUTLEY R, 1980, EXPLORING MEINONGS J
ROUTLEY R, 1982, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V43, P151
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P479
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P530
SALMON N, 1998, NOUS, V32, P277
THOMASSON A, 1999, FICTION METAPHYSICS
THOMASSON AL, 2001, AM PHILOS QUART, V38, P319
THOMASSON AL, 2003, DIALECTICA, V57, P205
VANINWAGEN P, 1977, AM PHILOS Q, V14, P299
VANINWAGEN P, 2003, OXFORD HDB METAPHYSI
WALTON K, 1990, MIMESIS MAKE BELIEVE
WALTON K, 1991, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V51, P379
WALTON KL, 2003, DIALECTICA, V57, P239
WOLSTERTORFF N, 1961, PHILOS Q, V11, P335
WOLTERSTORFF N, 1980, WORKS WORLDS ART
ZALTA E, 1983, ABSTRACT OBJECTS INT
NR 37
TC 0
PU SPRINGER
PI DORDRECHT
PA VAN GODEWIJCKSTRAAT 30, 3311 GZ DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0031-8116
J9 PHIL STUD
JI Philos. Stud.
PD FEB
PY 2011
VL 152
IS 3
BP 313
EP 334
DI 10.1007/s11098-009-9479-2
PG 22
SC Philosophy
GA 706GG
UT ISI:000286205400001
ER

PT J
AU McDaniel, K
AF McDaniel, Kris
TI A Return to the Analogy of Being
SO PHILOSOPHY AND PHENOMENOLOGICAL RESEARCH
LA English
DT Article
C1 Syracuse Univ, Syracuse, NY 13244 USA.
RP McDaniel, K, Syracuse Univ, Syracuse, NY 13244 USA.
CR AQUINAS T, 1948, SUMMA THEOLOGICA, V1
AQUINAS T, 1961, COMMENTARY METAPHYSI, V1
AQUINAS T, 1993, SELECTED PHILOS WRIT
ARISTOTLE, 1984, METAPHYSICS COMPLETE, V2
ARMSTRONG DM, 1997, WORLD STATES AFFAIRS
BARNES J, 1972, ONTOLOGICAL ARGUMENT
BRUECKNER, 1998, PACIFIC PHILOS Q, V79, P295
CROSS R, 1999, D SCOTUS
FINDLAY JN, 1933, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
FREDE M, 1987, ESSAYS ANCIENT PHILO
FREGE G, 1884, FDN ARITHMETIC
FREGE G, 1980, TRANSLATIONS PHILOS
GEACH PT, 1980, LOGIC MATTERS
GILMORE C, 2007, OXFORD STUDIES METAP, V3, P177
HAACK S, 1978, PHILOS LOGICS
HASLANGER, 1989, ANALYSIS, V49, P119
HAWTHORNE J, 2002, PHILOS TOPICS, V30, P53
HEIDEGGER M, BEING TIME
HIRSCH E, 2002, PHILOS ISSUES, V12, P51
HIRSCH E, 2002, PHILOS TOPICS, V30, P103
HIRSCH E, 2005, PHILOS PHENOMEN RES, V70, P67
HIRSCH E, 2005, PHILOS PHENOMEN RES, V70, P67
HUDSON H, 2005, METAPHYSICS HYPERSPA
HUGHES C, 1989, COMPLEX THEORY SIMPL
HUSSERL E, LOGICAL INVESTIGATIO, V1
HUSSERL E, LOGICAL INVESTIGATIO, V2
KANT I, CRITIQUE PURE REASON
KENNY A, 1969, AQUINAS COLLECTION C
KLEINSCHMIDT, 2007, PHILOS STUD, V135, P407
LAYCOCK H, 2006, WORDS OBJECTS
LEWIS D, 1983, PHILOSOPHY, V61, P343
LEWIS D, 1986, PLURALITY WORLDS
LEWIS D, 1991, PARTS CLASSES
LYCAN W, 1994, MODALITY MEANING
MARKOSIAN N, 2004, MONIST, V87, P405
MARKOSIAN, 2004, MONIST, V87, P405
MCDANIEL K, AUSTRALASIA IN PRESS
MCDANIEL K, METAMETAPHY IN PRESS
MCDANIEL K, 2006, PHILO, P47
MCDANIEL K, 2007, PHILOS STUD, P131
MCKAY T, 2006, PLURAL PREDICATION
MEINONG A, ASSUMPTIONS
MELLOR DH, 1995, FACTS CAUSATION
MILLER B, 2002, FULLNESS BEING
MULHALL S, 1996, HEIDEGGER BEING TIME
PLATO, 1997, TIMAEUS
PRIEST G, 1989, PARACONSISTENT LOGIC
PRIEST G, 2004, LAW NONCONTRADICTION
PRIEST G, 2004, STANFORD ENCY PHILOS
QUINE WVO, 1969, ONTOLOGICAL RELATIVI
QUINE WVO, 1976, WORD OBJECT
RUSSELL B, 1912, PROBLEMS PHILOS
RUSSELL B, 1956, LOGIC KNOWLEDGE
RUSSELL B, 1973, ESSAYS ANAL
SIDER T, METAMETAPHY IN PRESS
SIDER T, 2001, 4 DIMENSIONALISM ONT
SIDER T, 2004, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V68, P674
SIMONS P, 1987, PARTS ESSAY ONTOLOGY
SMITH B, 1982, PARTS MOMENTS
SOSA E, 1993, PHILOSOPHY, V90, P605
STUMP E, 1999, COMPANION PHILOS REL
VANINWAGEN P, 1998, METAPHYSICS BIG QUES
VANINWAGEN P, 2001, ONTOLOGY IDENTITY MO
WASSERMAN, 2003, PHILOSOPHY, V81, P413
ZIMMERMAN, 1997, ANALYSIS, V57, P19
NR 65
TC 0
PU WILEY-BLACKWELL PUBLISHING, INC
PI MALDEN
PA COMMERCE PLACE, 350 MAIN ST, MALDEN 02148, MA USA
SN 0031-8205
J9 PHIL PHENOMENOL RES
JI Philos. Phenomenol. Res.
PD NOV
PY 2010
VL 81
IS 3
BP 688
EP 717
DI 10.1111/j.1933-1592.2010.00378.x
PG 30
SC Philosophy
GA 685GN
UT ISI:000284617300008
ER

PT J
AU Frechette, G
AF Frechette, Guillaume
TI Current news of Carl Stumpf
SO DIALOGUE-CANADIAN PHILOSOPHICAL REVIEW
LA French
DT Article
C1 Univ Quebec, Montreal, PQ H3C 3P8, Canada.
RP Frechette, G, Univ Quebec, Montreal, PQ H3C 3P8, Canada.
CR ASH M, 1998, GESTALT PSYCHOL GERM
BAUMGARTNER W, 2001, BRENTANO STUDIEN, V9
BAUMGARTNER W, 2009, PHILOS A MARTYS, V12
BERGMANN H, 1908, UNTERSUCHUNGEN PROBL
BESOLI S, 2001, CARL STUMPF FENOMENO
BINSWANGER L, 1922, EINFUHRUNG PROBLEME
BONACCHI S, 2009, STUMPF, V31
BORING EG, 1929, HIST EXPT PSYCHOL
BRENTANO F, 1867, MOHLERS KIRCHENGE 11, V3, P103
BRENTANO F, 1869, CHILIANEUM BALLTTER, V2, P15
BRENTANO F, 1926, VIER PHASEN PHILOS A
BRENTANO F, 1929, ZUKUNFT PHILOS
BRENTANO F, 1987, GESCH PHILOS NEUZEIT
BUHLER K, 1908, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V11, P1
ENOCH W, 1893, PHILOS MONATSHEFTE, V29, P433
EWEN W, 2008, C STUMPF G FREGE
HALLER R, 1997, AUSTRIAN PHILOS PAST
HUSSERL E, 1900, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN, V1
KAISERELSAFTI M, 2003, MUSIK SPRACHE PHANOM
KRAUS O, 1925, OFFENE BRIEFE A EINS
KULPE O, 1919, EINLEITUNG PHILOS
MARTY A, 1908, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GRUND, V1
MARTY A, 1909, KANTSTUDIEN, V14, P477
MEINONG A, 1910, ANNAHMEN, V2
MULLIGAN K, 1990, MIND MEANING METAPHY
MUNCH D, 2002, BRENTANO STUDIEN, V10, P11
POPPER K, 2006, FRUHE SCHRIFTEN
PREYER W, 1877, ELEMENTE REINEN EMPF
REINACH A, 1989, SAMTLICHE WERKE
SCHLICK M, 1918, ALLGEMEINE ERKENNTNI
SCHMIDT R, 1924, PHILOS GEGENWART SEL
SELZ O, 1913, GESETZE GEORDNETEN D
SPIEGELBERG H, 1959, PHENOMENOLOGICAL MOV
SPRUNG H, 2006, C STUMPF BIOGRAPHIE
STUMPF C, 1873, PSYCHOL URSPRUNG RAU
STUMPF C, 1883, TONPSYCHOLOGIE E BAN
STUMPF C, 1890, TONPSYCHOLOGIE ZWEIT
STUMPF C, 1910, PHILOS REDEN VORTRGE, P197
STUMPF C, 1939, ERKENNTNISLEHRE
STUMPF C, 1992, PSICOLOGIA METAFI SI
STUMPF C, 1997, SCHRIFTEN PSYCHOL
STUMPF C, 2008, GRUNDSTZE MATH
STUMPF C, 2009, RINASCITA FILOSOFI S
NR 43
TC 0
PU CAMBRIDGE UNIV PRESS
PI NEW YORK
PA 32 AVENUE OF THE AMERICAS, NEW YORK, NY 10013-2473 USA
SN 0012-2173
J9 DIALOGUE-CAN PHIL REV
JI Dialogue-Can. Philos. Rev.
PD JUN
PY 2010
VL 49
IS 2
BP 267
EP 285
PG 19
SC Philosophy
GA 663OA
UT ISI:000282896000005
ER

PT J
AU Piccinini, G
Scott, S
AF Piccinini, Gualtiero
Scott, Sam
TI Recovering What Is Said With Empty Names
SO CANADIAN JOURNAL OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
ID PROPER-NAMES
C1 [Piccinini, Gualtiero] Univ Missouri, St Louis, MO 63132 USA.
RP Piccinini, G, Univ Missouri, St Louis, MO 63132 USA.
CR ADAMS F, 1992, PACIFIC PHILOS Q, V73, P375
ADAMS F, 1994, MIND LANG, V9, P387
ADAMS F, 2004, PAC PHILOS QUART, V85, P125
ADAMS F, 2007, CAN J PHILOS, V37, P449
BACH K, 1994, MIND LANG, V9, P124
BACH K, 1994, THOUGHT REFERENCE
BACH K, 2001, SYNTHESE, V128, P15
BACH K, 2002, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V16, P73
BACH K, 2006, PHILOS PHENOMEN RES, V73, P435
BACH K, 2007, PHILOS REV, V116, P303, DOI 10.1215/00318108-2006-045
BORG E, 2004, MINIMAL SEMANTICS
BRAUN D, 1993, NOUS, V27, P449
BRAUN D, 2005, NOUS, V39, P596
BURGESS JP, 1997, SUBJECT NO OBJECT ST
CAPLAN B, 2002, THESIS U CALIFORNIA
CAPLAN B, 2007, PHILOS STUD, V133, P181, DOI 10.1007/s11098-005-4544-y
CAPPELEN H, 2005, INSENSITIVE SEMANTIC
DONNELLAN K, 1970, SYNTHESE, V21, P335
DORR C, 2007, CONT DEBATES METAPHY
EDWARDS K, MIND LANGUA IN PRESS
ELUGARDO R, 2005, ELLIPSIS NONSENTENTI
EVERETT A, 2003, PHILOS STUD, V116, P1
EVERETT A, 2005, J PHILOS, V102, P624
EVERETT A, 2007, PHILOS PHENOMEN RES, V74, P56
FIELD H, 1989, REALISM MATH MODALIT
GREEN MS, ESSAYS EMPT IN PRESS
GREEN MS, 2007, CAN J PHILOS, V37, P419
GRICE HP, 1989, STUDIES WAY WORDS
JACKSON F, 1998, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V12, P201
KATZ J, 1994, PHILOS REV, V103, P1
KRIPKE SA, 1980, NAMING NECESSITY
LARSON RK, 1995, KNOWLEDGE MEANING IN
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
PERRY J, 2001, REFERENCE REFLEXIVIT
PICCININI G, 2006, PHILOS SCI, V73, P390
PREDELLI S, 2002, DIALECTICA, V56, P261
PRIEST G, 2005, NONBEING LOGIC METAP
RECANATI F, 1989, MIND LANG, V4, P295
RECANATI F, 2004, LITERAL MEANING
REIMER M, 2001, AM PHILOS QUART, V38, P233
REIMER M, 2001, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V79, P491
RYCKMAN TC, 1988, PHILOS ANAL DEFENSE
SAINSBURY M, 2005, REFERENCE REFERENTS
SALMON N, 1998, NOUS, V32, P277
SEARLE JR, 1983, INTENTIONALITY ESSAY
SEGAL G, 2001, MIND LANG, V16, P547
SOAMES S, 2002, RIGIDITY UNFINISHED
STAINTON R, 2005, SEMANTIC PRAGMATICS
STANLEY J, 2000, LINGUIST PHILOS, V23, P391
TAYLOR K, 2003, REFERENCE RATIONAL M
TAYLOR KA, 2001, SYNTHESE, V128, P45
THAU M, 2002, CONSCIOUSNESS COGNIT
WYATT N, 2007, DIALOGUE-CAN PHILOS, V46, P663
ZALTA EN, 2000, EMPTY NAMES FICTION
NR 55
TC 0
PU UNIV CALGARY PRESS
PI CALGARY
PA 2500 UNIVERSITY DR NW, CALGARY, ALBERTA T2N 1N4, CANADA
SN 0045-5091
J9 CAN J PHIL
JI Can. J. Philos.
PD JUN
PY 2010
VL 40
IS 2
BP 239
EP 273
PG 35
SC Philosophy
GA 647KR
UT ISI:000281617900004
ER

PT J
AU Coffman, EJ
AF Coffman, E. J.
TI MISLEADING DISPOSITIONS AND THE VALUE OF KNOWLEDGE
SO JOURNAL OF PHILOSOPHICAL RESEARCH
LA English
DT Article
ID EPISTEMIC LUCK
AB Gettiered beliefs are those whose agents are subject to the kind of epistemologically significant luck illustrated by Gettier Cases. Provided that knowledge requires ungettiered belief, we can learn something about knowledge by figuring out how luck blocks it in Gettier Cases. After criticizing the most promising of the going approaches to gettiered belief-the Risk of False Belief Approach-, I explain and defend a new approach: the Risk of Misleading Dispositions Approach. Roughly, this view says that a belief is gettiered just in case its unfortunate subject has at best just luckily avoided being disposed by his belief's actual grounds to believe a wide class of falsehoods about his environment. I then show how this approach undercuts an influential recent argument that knowledge has no more value than certain subsets of its components.
C1 Univ Tennessee, Knoxville, TN 37996 USA.
RP Coffman, EJ, Univ Tennessee, Knoxville, TN 37996 USA.
CR ALSTON W, 1989, EPISTEMIC JUSTIFICAT
AUDI R, 1993, STRUCTURE JUSTIFICAT
AUDI R, 1994, NOUS, V28, P419
BECKER K, 2008, PHILOS STUD, V139, P353, DOI 10.1007/s11098-007-9122-z
COFFMAN EJ, 2007, SYNTHESE, V158, P385, DOI 10.1007/s11229-006-9046-8
EGAN A, 2005, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V19, P77
ENGEL M, 1992, SO J PHILOS, V30, P59
GENDLER TS, 2005, PHILOS STUD, V124, P331
GETTIER E, 1963, ANALYSIS, V23, P121
GOLDMAN A, 1976, J PHILOS, V73, P771
GRECO J, 2003, INTELLECTUAL VIRTUE, P111
HARMAN G, 1973, THOUGHT
HAWTHORNE J, 2004, KNOWLEDGE LOTTERIES
HILLER A, 2007, SYNTHESE, V158, P303, DOI 10.1007/s11229-006-9041-0
HOWARDSNYDER D, 2003, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V63, P304
KVANVIG J, 2003, VALUE KNOWLEDGE PURS
LACKEY J, 2006, PHILOS QUART, V56, P284
LACKEY J, 2007, SYNTHESE, V158, P345, DOI 10.1007/s11229-006-9044-x
LACKEY J, 2008, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V86, P255, DOI 10.1080/00048400801886207
LACKEY J, 2009, PHILOS STUD, V142, P27, DOI 10.1007/s11098-008-9304-3
MEINONG A, 1973, GESAMTAUSGABE
PLANTINGA A, 1993, WARRANT PROPER FUNCT
PRITCHARD D, 2005, EPISTEMIC LUCK
PRITCHARD D, 2007, SYNTHESE, V158, P273, DOI 10.1007/s11229-006-9038-8
PRITCHARD DH, 2004, J PHILOS RES, V29, P193
RIGGS W, 2007, SYNTHESE, V158, P329, DOI 10.1007/s11229-006-9043-y
RIGGS W, 2009, EPISTEMIC VALUE
RUSSELL B, 1948, HUMAN KNOWLEDGE ITS
SHOPE R, 1983, ANAL KNOWING DECADE
SOSA E, 2007, VIRTUE EPISTEMOLOGY
SUTTON J, 2005, NOUS, V39, P359
SUTTON J, 2007, JUSTIFICATION
WILLIAMSON T, 2000, KNOWLEDGE ITS LIMITS
ZAGZEBSKI L, 1999, BLACKWELL GUIDE EPIS, P92
NR 34
TC 0
PU PHILOSOPHY DOCUMENTATION CENTER
PI CHARLOTTESVILLE
PA PO BOX 7147, CHARLOTTESVILLE, VA 22906-7147 USA
SN 1053-8364
J9 J PHILOS RES
JI J. Philos. Res.
PY 2010
VL 35
BP 241
EP 258
PG 18
SC Philosophy
GA 636IL
UT ISI:000280725200013
ER

PT J
AU Huemer, W
Landerer, C
AF Huemer, Wolfgang
Landerer, Christoph
TI Mathematics, experience and laboratories: Herbart's and Brentano's role in the rise of scientific psychology
SO HISTORY OF THE HUMAN SCIENCES
LA English
DT Article
DE empirical psychology; Franz Brentano; history of psychology; Johann Friedrich Herbart; phenomenology
AB In this article we present and compare two early attempts to establish psychology as an independent scientific discipline that had considerable influence in central Europe: the theories of Johann Friedrich Herbart (1776-1841) and Franz Brentano (1838-1917). While both of them emphasize that psychology ought to be conceived as an empirical science, their conceptions show revealing differences. Herbart starts with metaphysical principles and aims at mathematizing psychology, whereas Brentano rejects all metaphysics and bases his method on a conception of inner perception (as opposed to inner observation) as a secondary consciousness, by means of which one gets to be aware of all of one's own conscious phenomena. Brentano's focus on inner perception brings him to deny the claim that there could be unconscious mental phenomena - a view that stands in sharp contrast to Herbart's emphasis on unconscious, 'repressed' presentations as a core element of his mechanics of mind. Herbart, on the other hand, denies any role for psychological experiments, while Brentano encouraged laboratory work, thus paving the road for the more experimental work of his students like Stumpf and Meinong. By briefly tracing the fate of the schools of Herbart and Brentano, respectively, we aim to illustrate their impact on the development of psychological research, mainly in central Europe.
C1 [Huemer, Wolfgang] Univ Parma, Dipartimento Filosofia, I-43125 Parma, Italy.
[Landerer, Christoph] Salzburg Univ, Dept Philosophy, A-5020 Salzburg, Austria.
RP Huemer, W, Univ Parma, Dipartimento Filosofia, Via DAzeglio 85-A, I-43125 Parma, Italy.
EM wolfgang.huemer@unipr.it
christoph.landerer@sbg.ac.at
CR ALLESCH CG, 2001, HERBARTS KULTURSYSTE, P51
BRENTANO F, 1895, MEINE LETZTEN WUNSCH
BRENTANO F, 1929, ZUKUNFT PHILOS
BRENTANO F, 1977, GRUNDZUGE ASHETIK
BRENTANO F, 1995, DESCRIPTIVE PSYCHOL
BRENTANO F, 1995, PSYCHOL EMPIRICAL ST
BRENTANO F, 1998, 4 PHASES PHILOS, P81
DOLLING E, 1999, ALEXIUS MEINONG SKIZ
HALLER R, 1979, STUDIEN OSTERREICHIS, P5
HALLER R, 1991, REDISCOVERING FORGOT, P41
HEMECKER W, 1991, FREUD PHILOSOPHIEGES
HERBART JF, 1965, LEHRBUCH PSYCHOL
HERBART JF, 1968, PSYCHOL WISSENSCHAFT
HERBART JF, 1993, LEHRBUCH EINLEITUNG
HOFLER A, 1884, PROPADEUTIKFRAGE
HUEMER W, 2004, PHENOMENOLOGY ANAL E, P199
HUEMER W, 2007, STANFORD ENCY PHILOS
HUSSERL E, 2001, LOGICAL INVESTIGATIO
JACQUETTE D, 1996, SCH FRANZ BRENTANO, P131
JAGER G, 1982, OSTERREICHISCHE LIT, P195
JOHNSTON W, 1972, AUSTRIAN MIND INTELL
KONKE KC, 1986, ENTSTEHUNG AUFSTIEG
LANDERER C, 2009, FORMALISMES ESTHETIQ, P73
LANGE FA, 1974, GESCH MAT
MEINONG A, 1988, GEGENSTANDSTHEORIE S, P53
PETITOT J, 1999, NATURALIZING PHENOME
SMITH B, 1994, AUSTRIAN PHILOS
STUMPF C, 1939, ERKENNTNISLEHRE, V1
TITCHENER EB, 1921, AM J PSYCHOL, V32, P108
WITASEK S, 1908, GRUNDLINIEN PSYCHOL
ZELLER E, 1873, GESCH DTSCH PHILOS S
NR 31
TC 0
PU SAGE PUBLICATIONS LTD
PI LONDON
PA 1 OLIVERS YARD, 55 CITY ROAD, LONDON EC1Y 1SP, ENGLAND
SN 0952-6951
J9 HIST HUM SCI
JI Hist. Hum. Sci.
PD JUL
PY 2010
VL 23
IS 3
BP 72
EP 94
DI 10.1177/0952695110363639
PG 23
SC History & Philosophy Of Science; History Of Social Sciences
GA 631LG
UT ISI:000280347900005
ER

PT J
AU Magid, S
AF Magid, Shaul
TI Lurianic Kabbalah and Its Literary Form: Myth, Fiction, History
SO PROOFTEXTS-A JOURNAL OF JEWISH LITERARY HISTORY
LA English
DT Article
AB The academic study of Kabbalah has largely been limited to myth and symbol as the two viable forms of kabbalistic discourse. In this essay, I resist those limitations and explore two other possible literary forms: history and fiction. I do not mean history in any positivistic sense but closer to Steven Greenblatt's description of new historicism as cultural poetics. This suggests that literature not only reflects a historical setting but also creates that setting, constructing reality in its own image and directing it toward its desired ends. In looking at Lurianic Kabbalah as fiction, I raise the issue of the "real" and the "true" as it relates to fictive narratives more generally. This essay does not claim that the kabbalists in question did or did not intend to write cultural poetics or fiction. Rather, I use cultural poetics and fiction as possible lenses through which a nontraditional interested reader (i.e., one not invested in the literature as authoritative) can read these texts in a way that can speak to the contemporary world in which we live and think.
C1 Indiana Univ, Dept Religious Studies, Bloomington, IN 47405 USA.
RP Magid, S, Indiana Univ, Dept Religious Studies, Bloomington, IN 47405 USA.
CR 1997, AJS REV, V22, P37
ABRAMS D, 2009, KABBALAH, V20, P7
ALTER R, 1981, THEART BIBLICAL NARR, P23
ANIDJAR G, 2002, OUR PLACE ANDALUS KA, P171
FISHBANE M, 1998, EXEGETICAL IMAGINATI, P88
GARB J, 2007, J STUDY RELIG IDEOL, V6, P20
GILIER P, 2001, READING ZOHAR, P37
GREENBLATT S, 1989, NEW HISTORICISM, P1
HELLNERESHED M, 2009, RIVER FLOWS EDEN LAN
HUSS B, 2007, PEAMIN, P9
HUSS B, 2007, ZEEK MAGAZINE DEC
IDEL M, 1995, HASIDISM ECSTASY MAG, P33
KAVKA M, 2006, CROSS CURRENTS SUM, P190
KELLNER M, 2006, MAIMONIDES CONFRONTA
LACAPRA D, 1985, HIST CRITICISM, P19
LICHTENSTEIN A, 1963, JUDAISM, V12, P260
LIEBES Y, 1993, STUDIES JEWISH MYTH, P4
LIEBES Y, 1995, ESSENTIAL PAPERS KAB, P223
LIEBES Y, 1997, DIMUI, V14, P6
LIEBESS Y, 2008, ALILUT ELOHIM
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
NETANYAHU B, 1995, ORIGINS INQUISITION, P848
NOVAK D, 2005, TALKING CHRISTIANS M, P218
PAVEL T, 1986, FICTIONAL WORLDS
RADFORD C, 1975, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC S, V49, P67
RICOEUR P, 1967, SYMBOLISM OEVIL, P3
RICOEUR P, 1974, CONFLICT INTERPRETAT, P287
SCHOLEM G, 1965, KABBALAH ITS SYMBOLI, P96
SCHOLEM, 1997, POSSIBILITY OFFEWISH, P48
SEGAL E, 1993, AJS REV, V17, P31
STERN SM, 1955, J JEWISH STUD, V6, P73
SUITS DB, 2006, PACIFIC PHILOS Q, V87, P379
WALTON K, 1980, DISPOSITO, V6, P13
WALTON K, 1984, AESTHETICS, P179
WASSERSTROM S, 1999, RELIG AFTER RELIG, P112
WAUGH P, 1984, THEORY PRACTICE SELF
WHITE H, 1989, NEW HIST, P294
WINEMAN A, 1988, MYSTICAL TALES ZOBAR
WOLFSONS ER, 2007, LANGUAGE EROS BEING, P25
WOLSKI N, 2008, PROOFTEXTS, V28, P101
YERUSHALMI YH, 1989, ZAKHOR JEWISH HIST J
NR 41
TC 0
PU INDIANA UNIV PRESS
PI BLOOMINGTON
PA 601 N MORTON STREET, BLOOMINGTON, IN 47404-3797 USA
SN 0272-9601
J9 PROOFTEXTS-J JEWISH LIT HIST
JI Prooftexts-J. Jew. Lit. Hist.
PD FAL
PY 2009
VL 29
IS 3
SI Sp. Iss. SI
BP 362
EP 397
PG 36
SC Literature
GA 620SV
UT ISI:000279521100003
ER

PT J
AU Schnieder, B
AF Schnieder, Benjamin
TI BAD EXAMPLES?
SO AMERICAN PHILOSOPHICAL QUARTERLY
LA English
DT Article
ID FICTIONAL REALISM
CR AZZOUNI J, 2007, NOUS, V41, P204
EVANS G, 1982, VARIETIES REFERENCE
EVERETT A, 2005, J PHILOS, V102, P624
HOFFMAN G, 1994, SUBSTANCE OTHER CATE
KRIPKE S, 1973, REFERENCE EXISTENCE
MEINONG A, ALEXIUS MEINONG GESA, V5, P199
MEINONG A, 1972, ALEXIUS MEINONG GESA, V6
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
SALMON N, 1998, NOUS, V32, P277
SCHIFFER S, 2003, THINGS WE MEAN
SCHNIEDER B, 2007, J HIST PHILOS, V45, P525
SCHNIEDER B, 2009, PHILOS QUART, V59, P138, DOI 10.1111/j.1467-9213.2008.583.x
THOMASSON A, 1999, FICTION METAPHYSICS
THOMASSON A, 2009, STANFORD EN IN PRESS
URMSON JO, 1976, AM PHILOS Q, V13, P153
VANINWAGEN P, 1977, AM PHILOS Q, V14, P299
VANINWAGEN P, 2003, OXFORD HDB METAPHYSI, P131
WOLTERSTORFF N, 1980, WORKS WORLDS ART
NR 18
TC 0
PU UNIV ILLINOIS PRESS
PI CHAMPAIGN
PA 1325 S OAK ST, CHAMPAIGN, IL 61820-6903 USA
SN 0003-0481
J9 AMER PHIL QUART
JI Am. Philos. Q.
PD JUL
PY 2010
VL 47
IS 3
BP 279
EP 286
PG 8
SC Philosophy
GA 621KT
UT ISI:000279577900006
ER

PT J
AU Liebert, RS
AF Liebert, Rana Saadi
TI FACT AND FICTION IN PLATO'S ION
SO AMERICAN JOURNAL OF PHILOLOGY
LA English
DT Article
ID POETIC INSPIRATION; 'ION'; CRITICISM
AB Plato's Ion develops a concept of fiction distinct from the mimetic accounts of poetry found in the Republic and Aristotle's Poetics. The dialogue dramatically exposes the fictionality of poetry by (1) revealing a disparity between propositional and poetic semantics, (2) identifying the paradox of belief in imaginary worlds, and (3) showing that fictional constructions emerge from novel arrangements of real-world facts. Ultimately, the Ion examines the fraught relationship between literature and the real world, and the peculiar nature of literary knowledge, which takes both fact and fiction as its objects.
C1 Univ Chicago, Chicago, IL 60637 USA.
RP Liebert, RS, Univ Chicago, Chicago, IL 60637 USA.
EM alsaadi@uchicago.edu
CR ANNAS J, 1982, PLATO BEAUTY WISDOM, P1
AUSTIN JL, 1962, DO THINGS WORDS W JA
BAKKER E, 2005, POINTING FORMULA PER
BARTHES R, 1986, RUSTLE LANGUAGE
BLOOM A, 1987, ROOTS POLITICAL PHIL, P371
BUSHNELL R, 1988, PROPHESYING TRAGEDY
CAMPBELL PN, 1986, RES PUBLICA LITT STU, V9, P59
COLERIDGE ST, 1907, BIOGRAPHICA LITERARI
COLLINS D, 2004, MASTER GAME COMPETIT
DELCOURT M, 1937, BAGB, V55, P4
DOLEZEL L, 1998, HETEROCOSMICA FICTIO
DORTER K, 1973, J AESTHETICS ART CRI, V32, P65
ELIAS J, 1984, PLATOS DEFENSE POETR
FARNESS J, 1985, PQ, V64, P155
FEENEY DC, 1993, LIES FICTION ANCIENT, P230
FENDT G, 1997, ISP, V4, P23
FERRARI GRF, 1989, CAMBRIDGE HIST LIT C, V1, P92
FISH S, 1980, IS THERE TEXT THIS C
FLASHAR H, 1958, DIALOG ION ALS ZEUGN
FORD A, 2002, ORIGINS CRITICISM LI
GENTILI B, 1988, POETRY ITS PUBLIC AN
GILL C, 1993, LIES FICTION ANCIENT, P38
GUTHRIE WKC, 1975, HIST GREEK PHILOS, V4
HALLIWELL S, 2002, AESTHETICS MIMESIS A
HARRIS J, 2004, DAIMONOPYLAI ESSAYS, P189
HAVELOCK E, 1963, PREFACE PLATO
ISER WG, 1993, FICTIVE IMAGINARY CH
JANAWAY C, 1992, OXFORD STUDIES ANCIE, V10, P1
KAHN CH, 1993, NOMODEIKTES GREEK ST, P369
KURKE L, 1991, TRAFFIC PRAISE PINDA
LADRIERE C, 1951, J AESTHETICS ART CRI, V10, P26
LOWENSTAM S, 1993, RAMUS, V22, P19
MANETTI G, 1993, THEORIES SIGN CLASSI
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, V76
MOORE J, 1974, GREEK ROMAN BYZANTIN, V15, P421
MORAN R, 1994, PHILOS REV, V103, P75
MURRAY P, 1981, J HELLENIC STUD, V101, P87
MURRAY P, 1997, PLATO POETRY ION REP
NEHAMAS A, 1988, MONIST, V71, P214
PAVEL T, 1986, FICTIONAL WORLDS
PAYNE M, 2007, THEOCRIMS INVENTION
PRATT L, 1993, LYING POETRY HOMER P
PRESS G, 1993, PLATOS DIALOGUES NEW
RANTA J, 1967, J AESTHETICS ART CRI, V26, P219
RICHTER D, 1998, CRITICAL TRADITION C
RIJKSBARON A, 2007, AMSTERDAM STUDIES CL, V14
RONEN R, 1994, POSSIBLE WORLDS LIT
RUSSO J, 1992, COMMENTARY HOMERS OD, V3
SPRAGUE RK, 1962, PLATOS USE FALLACY S
STANFORD WB, 1948, HOMER ODYSSEY 12 24
TAYLOR AE, 1956, PLATO MAN HIS WORLD
TIGERSTEDT EN, 1970, COMMENTATIONES HUMAN, V44, P18
TIGERSTEDT EN, 1970, JHI, V31, P163
WALSH G, 1984, VARIETIES ENCHANTMEN
WEINECK SM, 1998, ARETHUSA, V31, P19
WILCOX JF, 1987, LIT PHILOS PHILOS LI, P155
WOOLF R, 1997, APEIRON, V30, P189
NR 57
TC 0
PU JOHNS HOPKINS UNIV PRESS
PI BALTIMORE
PA JOURNALS PUBLISHING DIVISION, 2715 NORTH CHARLES ST, BALTIMORE, MD 21218-4363 USA
SN 0002-9475
J9 AMER J PHILOL
JI Am. J. Philol.
PD SUM
PY 2010
VL 131
IS 2
BP 179
EP 218
PG 40
SC Classics
GA 618OE
UT ISI:000279364500001
ER

PT J
AU De Waal, C
AF De Waal, Cornelis
TI The history of philosophy conceived as a struggle between nominalism and realism
SO SEMIOTICA
LA English
DT Article
DE Aquinas; Deely; nominalism; Peirce; postmodernism; realism
ID PEIRCE
AB In this article I trace some of the main tenets of the struggle between nominalism and realism as identified by John Deely in his Four ages of understanding. The aim is to assess Deely's claim that the Age of Modernity was nominalist and that the coming age, the Age of Postmodernism - which he portrays as a renaissance of the late middle ages and as starting with Peirce - is realist. After a general overview of how Peirce interpreted the nominalist-realist controversy, Deely gives special attention to Thomas Aquinas's On being and essence and the realism it entails. A subsequent discussion of the Modern Period shows that the issue of nominalism and realism is very much tied up with different conceptions of the intellect. Deely credits the theory of evolution with bringing us a conception of the intellect that is closer to that of the Middle Ages and that opens the way for a truly realistic "fourth age" of the understanding.
EM cdwaal@iupui.edu
CR AQUINAS T, 1937, BEING ESSENCE
AQUINAS T, 1953, INTRO METAPHYSICS ST
AQUINAS T, 1965, AQUINAS BEING ESSENC
AQUINAS T, 1980, S THOMAE AQUINATIS O, V2, P184
ARISTOTLE, 1941, BASIC WORKS ARISTOTL
DEELY JN, 1969, THOMIST, V33, P251
DEELY JN, 1969, THOMIST, V33, P77
DEELY JN, 2001, 4 AGES UNDERSTANDING
DEWAAL C, 1996, T CS PEIRCE SOC, V32, P425
DEWAAL C, 1997, LOCKE NEWSLETTER, V28, P1
DEWAAL C, 1998, T C S PEIRCE SOC, V34, P183
DEWAAL C, 2006, J HIST IDEAS, V67, P291
KLIMA G, 1993, SYNTHESE, V96, P25
KLIMA G, 2007, MEDIEVAL PHILOS
MEINONG A, 1968, LOGIC PHILOS SELECTE, P116
PEIRCE CS, 1931, COLLECTED PAPERS CS
PEIRCE CS, 1967, ANNOTATED CATALOGUE
PEIRCE CS, 1982, WRITINGS CS PEIRCE C
QUINE WVO, 1968, LOGIC PHILOS SELECTE, P146
ROYCE J, 1901, DICT PHILOS PSYCHOL, V1, P628
SCOTUS JD, 1950, OPERA OMNIA
SPADE PV, 1999, CAMBRIDGE COMPANION, P100
WEIDEMANN H, 2002, T AQUINAS CONT PHILO, P77
NR 23
TC 0
PU WALTER DE GRUYTER & CO
PI BERLIN
PA GENTHINER STRASSE 13, D-10785 BERLIN, GERMANY
SN 0037-1998
J9 SEMIOTICA
JI Semiotica
PD APR
PY 2010
VL 179
IS 1-4
BP 295
EP 313
DI 10.1515/semi.2010.025
PG 19
SC Humanities, Multidisciplinary
GA 612NA
UT ISI:000278904700011
ER

PT J
AU Mousavian, SN
AF Mousavian, Seyed N.
TI NEO-MEINONGIAN NEO-RUSSELLIANS
SO PACIFIC PHILOSOPHICAL QUARTERLY
LA English
DT Article
ID EMPTY NAMES; PROPOSITIONS; FICTION
AB Neo-Russellianism, which incorporates both Millianism (with regard to proper names) and the thesis of singular Russellian propositions, has widely been defended after the publication of Kripke's Naming and Necessity. The view, however, encounters various problems regarding empty names, names that do not have semantic referents. Nathan Salmon and Scott Soames have defended neo-Russellianism against such problems in a novel way; to account for various intuitions of competent and rational speakers regarding utterances of sentences containing empty names, Salmon and Soames appeal neither to entities similar to Fregean senses, e.g. propositional guises or modes of presentation, nor to Gricean implicatures. In this paper, however, I argue that their view slips into neo-Meinongianism; it is committed to nonexistent objects, assigns various properties to them, and allows quantifiers range over such entities. This, I conclude, makes Salmon and Soames' view less appealing, if not implausible.
C1 [Mousavian, Seyed N.] Univ Alberta, Dept Philosophy, Edmonton, AB T6G 2M7, Canada.
RP Mousavian, SN, Univ Alberta, Dept Philosophy, Edmonton, AB T6G 2M7, Canada.
CR ADAMS F, 1994, MIND LANG, V9, P387
ADAMS F, 1997, PAC PHILOS QUART, V78, P128
ADAMS F, 2004, PAC PHILOS QUART, V85, P125
ADAMS F, 2007, CAN J PHILOS, V37, P449
BRAUN D, 1993, NOUS, V27, P449
BRAUN D, 1998, PHILOS REV, V107, P555
BRAUN D, 2002, PHILOS STUD, V108, P65
BRAUN D, 2005, NOUS, V39, P449
CASTANEDA HN, 1974, PHILOSOPHIA, V4, P3
CHISHOLM RM, 1967, ENCY PHILOS
CHISHOLM RM, 1972, PHILOS STUD, V24, P245
EVERETT A, 2003, PHILOS STUD, V116, P1
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
FINE K, 1984, PHILOS STUD, V45, P95
GREEN MS, 2007, CAN J PHILOS, V37, P419
JACQUETTE D, 1988, INT STUD PHILOS, V20, P92
JACQUETTE D, 1991, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V51, P439
JACQUETTE D, 1996, MEINONGIAN LOGIC
KAPLAN D, 1989, THEMES KAPLAN, P481
KRIPKE S, REFERENCE EXIS UNPUB
KRIPKE S, 1980, NAMING NECESSITY
LAMBERT K, 1983, MEINONG PRINCIPLE IN
MALLY E, 1912, GEGENSTANDSTHEORETIS
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
MOUSAVIAN SN, 2008, THESIS U ALBERTA
NELSON M, 2009, PHILOS STUD, V142, P277, DOI 10.1007/s11098-007-9186-9
PARSONS T, 1978, NOUS, V12, P137
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
PASNICZEK J, 1998, LOGIC INTENTIONAL OB
PERRY J, 1979, NOUS, V13, P3
PRIEST G, 2005, NONBEING LOGIC METAP
QUINE WVO, 1940, MATH LOGIC
RAPAPORT W, 1979, ANALYSIS, V39, P75
RAPAPORT W, 1982, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V19, P17
RAPAPORT WJ, 1978, NOUS, V12, P153
RAPAPORT WJ, 1984, PHILOS PHENOMEN RES, V44, P539
REICHER M, 2005, DENOTING 1905 2005, P167
REICHER M, 2006, STANFORD ENCY PHILOS
REIMER M, 2001, AM PHILOS QUART, V38, P233
ROUTLEY R, 1980, EXPLORING MEINONGS J
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V56, P480
SALMON N, 1987, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V1, P49
SALMON N, 1998, NOUS, V32, P277
SALMON N, 2002, MEANING TRUTH INVEST, P105
SALMON N, 2005, METAPHYSICS MATH MEA
SALMON N, 2005, REFERENCE ESSENCE
SAUL J, 2007, SIMPLE SENTENCES SUB
SOAMES S, 2002, RIGIDITY UNFINISHED
SOAMES S, 2005, REFERENCE DESCRIPTIO
TAYLOR KA, 2000, EMPTY NAMES FICTION, P17
VANINWAGEN P, 1977, AM PHILOS Q, V14, P299
VANINWAGEN P, 1983, PHILOS LITERATURE, V7, P67
VANINWAGEN P, 2003, OXFORD HDB METAPHYSI, P131
VOLTOLINI A, 2006, FICTA FOLLOW FICTION
ZALTA EN, 1983, ABSTRACT OBJECTS INT
ZALTA EN, 1986, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V25, P447
ZALTA EN, 1988, INTENTIONAL LOGIC ME
ZALTA EN, 1992, HIST PHILOS LOGIC, V13, P59
NR 58
TC 0
PU WILEY-BLACKWELL PUBLISHING, INC
PI MALDEN
PA COMMERCE PLACE, 350 MAIN ST, MALDEN 02148, MA USA
SN 0279-0750
J9 PAC PHIL QUART
JI Pac. Philos. Q.
PD JUN
PY 2010
VL 91
IS 2
BP 229
EP 259
PG 31
SC Philosophy
GA 604YI
UT ISI:000278314000005
ER

PT J
AU Posadzki, P
AF Posadzki, Paul
TI The sociology of Qi Gong: A qualitative study
SO COMPLEMENTARY THERAPIES IN MEDICINE
LA English
DT Article
DE Qi Gong; Sociology; Interpersonal relationships; Health
ID ESSENTIAL-HYPERTENSION; QIGONG EXERCISE; HEALTH; DISORDERS; IMPACT; TRIAL
AB This paper presents an in-depth, idiographic study of how individuals experience others during Qi Gong practice. Semi-structured interviews were conducted with three Qi Gong groups to collect research data. These data were transcribed verbatim and subjected to content and thematic analysis across and within groups. The analysis indicates extraordinary experiences of Qi Gong practitioners at various levels of their social functioning. Qi Gong influences their social health in complex and \dimensional ways. The author compares and contrasts his results with those of recent research. Implications for practice are briefly outlined and possible strategies for future research are presented. (C) 2010 Elsevier Ltd. All rights reserved.
C1 Univ E Anglia, Sch Med Hlth Policy & Practice, Norwich NR4 7TJ, Norfolk, England.
RP Posadzki, P, Univ E Anglia, Sch Med Hlth Policy & Practice, Norwich NR4 7TJ, Norfolk, England.
EM P.Posadzki@uea.ac.uk
CR ARGYLE M, 1981, SOCIAL SKILLS HLTH, V1
AUERBACH SM, 2002, J BEHAV MED, V25, P17
BLAKE H, 2009, CLIN REHABIL, P23
BRENNAN T, 2004, TRANSMISSION AFFECT
BURNS N, 2005, PRACTICE NURSING RES
CHEUNG BMY, 2005, J HUM HYPERTENS, V19, P697, DOI 10.1038/sj.jhh.1001884
CHOW YWY, 2007, J ALTERN COMPLEM MED, V13, P831, DOI 10.1089/acm.2007.7166
CHRISMAN JA, 2009, J HUMANIST PSYCHOL, V49, P236, DOI 10.1177/0022167808327750
CRASKE NJ, 2008, EVID BASED COMPLEMEN
DEANGELIS T, 2007, MONITOR PSYCHOL, V38, P50
FISHER L, 2000, J FAM PRACTICE, V49, P561
GIDDENS A, 2006, SOCIOLOGY
GLASER B, 1978, THEORETICAL SENSITIV
GRIFFITH JM, 2008, J ALTERN COMPLEM MED, V14, P939, DOI 10.1089/acm.2007.0814
GUBA EG, 1998, LANDSCAPE QUALITATIV
HEIDEGGER M, 2003, BEING TIME
HESSEBIBER SN, 2006, PRACTICE QUALITATIVE
JANOWSKY DS, 2003, CURR PSYCHIAT REP, V5, P451
JONES B, 2001, IMECHE SEM, V2001, P1
KENNEDY S, 1988, BRIT J MED PSYCHOL, V61, P77
KRIPPENDORFF K, 2004, CONTENT ANAL INTRO
LEE MS, 2004, J ALTERN COMPLEM MED, V10, P675
LEE MS, 2007, J HYPERTENS, V25, P1525
LITSCHER G, 2001, NEUROL RES, V23, P501
LOUW DA, 2002, HUMAN DEV
LUSKIN FM, 2000, ALTERN THER HEALTH M, V6, P46
MANNERKORPI K, 2005, CURR OPIN RHEUMATOL, V17, P190
MCCAFFREY R, 2003, HOLISTIC NURSING PRA, V17, P110
MEINONG A, 1978, OBJECTS HIGHER ORDER
MERLEAUPONTY M, 1992, TEXTS DIALOGUES
MORSE JM, 2000, QUAL HEALTH RES, V10, P3
MOSSHOLDER KW, 1982, ACAD MANAGE J, V25, P575
PATTON MQ, 2002, QUALITATIVE EVALUATI
POSADZKI P, CHIN J INTE IN PRESS
POSADZKI P, INTEGR MED IN PRESS
POSADZKI P, J BODYWORK IN PRESS
POSADZKI P, 2009, EUR J INTEGR MED, V1, P139
POSADZKI P, 2010, J BODYWORK MOVEMENT, V14, P73
POSADZKI RQI, 2009, EUR J INTEGR MED, V1, P87
ROBSON C, 2002, REAL WORLD RES
ROECKELEIN JE, 2007, NEW RES SOCIAL PERCE
SANDER KM, 1999, J ALTERN COMPLEM MED, V5, P383
SANDER KM, 2003, J ALTERN COMPLEM MED, V9, P235
SARTRE JP, 1992, TRUTH EXISTENCE
SHEFFIELD M, 1995, PSYCHOL REP, V76, P947
SILVERMAN D, 2005, DOING QUALITATIVE RE
SILVERMAN D, 2006, INTERPRETING QUALITA
SIU JYM, 2007, J CLIN NURS, V16, P769, DOI 10.1111/j.1365-2702.2006.01695.x
TSANG HWH, 2003, INT J GERIATR PSYCH, V18, P441, DOI 10.1002/gps.861
TSANG HWH, 2006, INT J GERIATR PSYCH, V21, P890, DOI 10.1002/gps.1582
WITT C, 2005, J ALTERN COMPLEM MED, V11, P41
XIN L, 2007, J ALTERN COMPLEM MED, V13, P427, DOI 10.1089/acm.2006.6052
YIN RK, 2009, CASE STUDY RES DESIG
NR 53
TC 0
PU CHURCHILL LIVINGSTONE
PI EDINBURGH
PA JOURNAL PRODUCTION DEPT, ROBERT STEVENSON HOUSE, 1-3 BAXTERS PLACE, LEITH WALK, EDINBURGH EH1 3AF, MIDLOTHIAN, SCOTLAND
SN 0965-2299
J9 COMPLEMENT THER MED
JI Complement. Ther. Med.
PD APR
PY 2010
VL 18
IS 2
BP 87
EP 94
DI 10.1016/j.ctim.2009.12.002
PG 8
SC Integrative & Complementary Medicine
GA 602TD
UT ISI:000278160800004
ER

PT J
AU Gepshtein, S
AF Gepshtein, Sergei
TI Two psychologies of perception and the prospect of their synthesis
SO PHILOSOPHICAL PSYCHOLOGY
LA English
DT Article
DE Brentano; Economics; Fechner; Gabor; Gestalt; Mechanism; Normativity; Phenomenology; Psychophysics; Uncertainty Principle
ID RECEPTIVE-FIELDS; GESTALT PSYCHOLOGY; VISUAL-CORTEX; FUNCTIONAL ARCHITECTURE; SPATIAL-FREQUENCY; CUE COMBINATION; STRIATE CORTEX; DOT LATTICES; OPTIC-NERVE; PROXIMITY
AB Two traditions have had a great impact on the theoretical and experimental research of perception. One tradition is statistical, stretching from Fechner's enunciation of psychophysics in 1860 to the modern view of perception as statistical decision making. The other tradition is phenomenological, from Brentano's "empirical standpoint'' of 1874 to the Gestalt movement and the modern work on perceptual organization. Each tradition has at its core a distinctive assumption about the indivisible constituents of perception: the just-noticeable differences of sensation in the tradition of Fechner vs. the phenomenological Gestalts in the tradition of Brentano. But some key results from the two traditions can be explained and connected using an approach that is neither statistical nor phenomenological. This approach rests on a basic property of any information exchange: a principle of measurement formulated in 1946 by Gabor as a part of his quantal theory of information. Here the indivisible components are units ( quanta) of information that remain invariant under changes of precision of measurement. This approach helped to understand how sensory measurements are implemented by single neural cells. But recent analyses suggest that this approach has the power to explain larger-scale characteristics of sensory systems.
C1 [Gepshtein, Sergei] Salk Inst Biol Studies, Vis Ctr Lab, San Diego, CA 92138 USA.
RP Gepshtein, S, 10010 N Torrey Pines Rd, La Jolla, CA 92037 USA.
EM sergei@salk.edu
CR ADRIAN ED, 1927, J PHYSIOL-LONDON, V63, P378
ALBRIGHT TD, 1994, TRENDS NEUROSCI, V17, P175
ALBRIGHT TD, 2002, ANNU REV NEUROSCI, V25, P339, DOI 10.1146/annurev.neuro.25.112701.142900
ALEXANDER DM, 2009, MAPPING CONTEXTUAL M, DOI 10.1007/S11571-009-9098-9
ALLMAN J, 1985, ANNU REV NEUROSCI, V8, P407
ASH MG, 1998, GESTALT PSYCHOL GERM
BANKS MS, 2004, J NEUROSCI, V24, P2077, DOI 10.1523/JNEUROSCI.3852-02.2004
BARLOW HB, 1953, J PHYSIOL-LONDON, V119, P69
BARLOW HB, 1972, PERCEPTION, V1, P371
BASAR E, 1980, EEG BRAIN DYNAMICS R
BECK J, 1982, ORG REPRESENTATION P
BLAKEMORE C, 1990, VISION CODING EFFICI
BORING EG, 1929, HIST EXPT PSYCHOL
BOUDEWIJNSE GJA, 1999, GESTALT THEORY, V21, P140
BRENTANO F, 1902, ORIGIN KNOWLEDGE RIG
BRENTANO F, 1973, PSYCHOL EMPIRICAL ST
BRENTANO F, 1995, DESCRIPTIVE PSYCHOL
BRITTEN KH, 1992, J NEUROSCI, V12, P4745
BRUNSWIK E, 1953, AM J PSYCHOL, V66, P20
BURGE J, 2005, J VISION, V5, P534, DOI 10.1167/5.6.5
BURT P, 1981, PSYCHOL REV, V88, P171
CAMPBELL FW, 1968, J PHYSIOL-LONDON, V197, P551
CHERRY C, 1959, HUMAN COMMUNICATION
CLARK JJ, 1990, DATA FUSION SENSORY
COBB PW, 1934, J OPT SOC AM, V24, P107
COBB PW, 1934, J OPT SOC AM, V24, P91
COCHRAN WG, 1937, J ROY STATIST SOC S, V4, P102
DAUGMAN JG, 1985, J OPT SOC AM A, V2, P1160
DELANGE H, 1952, PHYSICA, V18, P935
DESCARTES R, 1984, PHILOS WRITINGS DESC, V2, P1
DESIMONE R, 1995, ANNU REV NEUROSCI, V18, P193
DOMINI F, 2009, J VISION, V9, ARTN 25
DZHAFAROV EN, 1999, PSYCHON B REV, V6, P239
ELDER JH, 2002, J VISION, V2, P324, DOI 10.1167/2.4.5
ELLIS W, 1938, SOURCE BOOK GESTALT
EPSTEIN W, 1988, PSYCHOL RES, V50, P2
EPSTEIN W, 1994, PHILOS PSYCHOL, V7, P163
ERNST MO, 2002, NATURE, V415, P429
ERNST MO, 2004, TRENDS COGN SCI, V8, P162, DOI 10.1016/j.tics.2004.02.002
FALMAGNE JC, 1971, J MATH PSYCHOL, V8, P22
FALMAGNE JC, 1985, ELEMENTS PSYCHOPHYSI
FECHNER GT, 1966, ELEMENTS PSYCHOPHYSI, V1
FREEMAN WJ, 1975, MASS ACTION NERVOUS
FREEMAN WJ, 1991, SCI AM, V264, P78
FREEMAN WJ, 1995, SPRINGER SERIES SYNE, V64, P421
GABOR D, 1946, IEE LONDON, V93, P429
GABOR D, 1949, P ROYAL SOC LOND B 3, V93, P446
GABOR D, 1952, TECHNICAL REPORT, V238, P1
GEISLER WS, 1989, PSYCHOL REV, V96, P267
GEISLER WS, 2001, VISION RES, V41, P711
GEISLER WS, 2008, ANNU REV PSYCHOL, V59, P167, DOI 10.1146/annurev.psych.58.110405.085632
GEPSHTEIN S, 2000, P NATL ACAD SCI USA, V97, P8186
GEPSHTEIN S, 2003, CURR BIOL, V13, P483, DOI 10.1016/S0960-9822(03)00133-7
GEPSHTEIN S, 2007, FECHNER DAY 2007, P57
GEPSHTEIN S, 2007, J VISION, V7, P1, DOI 10.1167/7.8.9
GEPSHTEIN S, 2008, J VISION, V8, ARTN i
GEPSHTEIN S, 2009, FRONT SYST NEUR, DOI 10.3389/CONF.NEURO.06.2009.03.336
GIBSON JJ, 1979, ECOLOGICAL APPROACH
GIGERENZER G, 1987, COGNITION INTUITIVE
GILBERT CD, 1991, ADV UNDERSTANDING VI, P239
GREEN DM, 1966, SIGNAL DETECTION THE
HARTLEY RVL, 1928, BELL SYST TECH J, V7, P535
HARTLINE HK, 1940, AM J PHYSIOL, V130, P690
HECHT S, 1942, J GEN PHYSIOL, V25, P819
HEFT H, 2001, ECOLOGICAL PSYCHOL C
HEIDELBERGER M, 2004, NATURE GT FECHNER HI
HEIDER F, 1926, SYMPOSION, V1, P109
HEIDER F, 1958, PSYCHOL INTERPERSONA
HEIDER F, 1959, PERCEPTION EVENT STR
HUBEL DH, 1962, J PHYSIOL-LONDON, V160, P106
HUBEL DH, 1968, J PHYSIOL-LONDON, V195, P215
HUSSERL E, 1891, PHILOS ARITHMETIK
HUSSERL E, 1900, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
IVES HE, 1922, J OPT SOC AM, V6, P253
JASTROW J, 1899, POPULAR SCI MONTHLY, V54, P299
JONES JP, 1987, J NEUROPHYSIOL, V58, P1233
JURICA P, 2007, P 3 INT C INT SENS S, P179
KANADE T, 1994, IEEE T PATTERN ANAL, V16, P920
KANIZSA G, 1979, ORG VISION ESSAYS GE
KELLY DH, 1969, J OPT SOC AM, V59, P1361
KELLY DH, 1972, VISION RES, V12, P89
KELLY DH, 1979, J OPT SOC AM, V69, P1340
KELLY DH, 1994, VISUAL SCI ENG MODEL
KELLY DH, 1994, VISUAL SCI ENG MODEL, P93
KIMCHI R, 1985, J EXP PSYCHOL HUMAN, V11, P673
KNILL DC, 1996, PERCEPTION BAYESIAN
KOFFKA K, 1938, SOURCEBOOK GESTALT P, P371
KOFFKA K, 1963, HARBINGER BOOK
KOHLER W, 1940, DYNAMICS PSYCHOL
KOHLER W, 1947, GESTALT PSYCHOL INTR
KOHLER W, 1969, TASK GESTALT PSYCHOL
KORTE A, 1915, Z PSYCHOL, V72, P194
KRUEGER LE, 1989, BEHAV BRAIN SCI, V12, P251
KUBOVY M, 1981, PERCEPTUAL ORG
KUBOVY M, 1994, PSYCHON B REV, V1, P182
KUBOVY M, 1995, PSYCHOL SCI, V6, P225
KUBOVY M, 1998, COGNITIVE PSYCHOL, V35, P71
KUBOVY M, 2003, PERCEPTUAL ORG VISIO, P45
KUBOVY M, 2008, PSYCHOL REV, V115, P131, DOI 10.1037/0033-295X.115.1.131
KUFFLER SW, 1953, J NEUROPHYSIOL, V16, P37
KULIKOWSKI JJ, 1982, BIOL CYBERN, V43, P187
LANDY MS, 1995, VISION RES, V35, P389
LETTVIN JY, 1959, P IRE, V47, P1940
LINK SW, 1992, WAVE THEORY DIFFEREN
LUCE RD, 1963, HDB MATH PSYCHOL, V1, P191
MACH E, 1959, ANAL SENSATIONS
MACKAY DM, 1981, NATURE, V289, P117
MACKENZIE KJ, 2008, J VISION, V8, P1, DOI 10.1167/8.8.5
MACNAMARA J, 1999, REARVIEW MIRROR HIST
MAKEIG S, 2002, SCIENCE, V295, P690
MALONEY LT, 2002, PERCEPTION PHYS WORL, P145
MARCELJA S, 1980, J OPT SOC AM, V70, P1297
MARR D, 1982, VISION COMPUTATIONAL
MCDONNELL C, 2006, YB IRISH PHILOS SOC, P124
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN, P181
METELLI F, 1974, SCI AM, V230, P91
MURPHY G, 1949, HIST INTRO MODERN PS
MUSATTI CL, 1975, STUDIES PERCEPTION F, P166
NECKER LA, 1832, LONDON EDINBURGH PHI, V1, P329
NIKOLAEV AR, 2010, CEREB CORTEX, V20, P365, DOI 10.1093/cercor/bhp107
ORUC I, 2003, VISION RES, V43, P2451, DOI 10.1016/S0042-6989(03)00435-8
OYAMA T, 1961, PERCEPT MOTOR SKILL, V13, P305
PALMER S, 1994, PSYCHON B REV, V1, P29
PALMER SE, 1999, VISION SCI PHOTONS P
PARKER AJ, 1998, ANNU REV NEUROSCI, V21, P227
PEIRCE CS, 1884, MEMOIRS NATIONAL ACA, V3, P73
PERRONE JA, 2001, NAT NEUROSCI, V4, P526
REGAN D, 1985, SYSTEMS APPROACH VIS
REICHARDT W, 1961, SENS COMMUN, P303
RESNIKOFF HL, 1989, ILLUSION REALITY
ROBSON JG, 1966, J OPT SOC AM, V56, P1141
RUBIN E, 1915, SYNSOPLEVEDE FIGURE
SAVAGE LJ, 1954, FDN STAT
SCHADE OH, 1956, J OPT SOC AM, V46, P721
SHERRINGTON CS, 1906, INTEGRATIVE ACTION N
SIMONS P, 2004, CAMBRIDGE COMPANION, P45
SMITH B, 1988, BRENTANO STUDIEN, V1, P75
SMITH B, 1995, AUSTRIAN PHILOS LEGA
SPERLING G, 1964, DOC OPHTHALMOL, V18, P3
SPERLING G, 1986, HDB PERCEPTION HUMAN, V1, P2
SPILLMANN L, 1997, PERCEPTION, V26, P1341
SPRUNG H, 2000, PORTRAITS PIONEERS P, V4, P51
STEINMAN RM, 2000, VISION RES, V40, P2257
STEVENS SS, 1961, SENS COMMUN, P1
STIGLER SM, 1986, HIST STAT MEASUREMEN
STROTHER L, 2006, J EXP PSYCHOL HUMAN, V32, P226, DOI 10.1037/0096-1523.32.2.226
STUMPF C, 1930, HIST PSYCHOL AUTOBIO, V1, P389
SWETS JA, 1961, PSYCHOL REV, V68, P301
SWINDALE NV, 2004, NETWORK-COMP NEURAL, V15, P217
TITCHENER EB, 1921, AM J PSYCHOL, V32, P108
ULLMAN S, 1980, BEHAVIORAL BRAIN SCI, V3, P373
VANLEEUWEN C, 1997, J MATH PSYCHOL, V41, P319
VANLEEUWEN C, 2007, J CONSCIOUSNESS STUD, V14, P115
VERSTEGEN I, 2000, J HIST BEHAV SCI, V36, P31
VONBEKESY G, 1960, EXPT HEARING
VONEHRENFELS C, 1890, VIERTELJAHRSSCHRIFT, V14, P249
WERTHEIMER M, 1912, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V61, P161
WERTHEIMER M, 1923, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V4, P301
WHITEHEAD AN, 1997, SCI MODERN WORLD
WOODWORTH RS, 1931, CONT SCH PSYCHOL
WUNDT WM, 1904, PRINCIPLES PHYSL PSY
ZHOU H, 2000, J NEUROSCI, V20, P6594
NR 162
TC 0
PU ROUTLEDGE JOURNALS, TAYLOR & FRANCIS LTD
PI ABINGDON
PA 4 PARK SQUARE, MILTON PARK, ABINGDON OX14 4RN, OXFORDSHIRE, ENGLAND
SN 0951-5089
J9 PHILOS PSYCHOL
JI Philos. Psychol.
PY 2010
VL 23
IS 2
BP 217
EP 281
DI 10.1080/09515081003727483
PG 65
SC Ethics; Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA 587II
UT ISI:000276983800007
ER

PT J
AU de Courtenay, N
AF de Courtenay, Nadine
TI The epistemological virtues of assumptions: towards a coming of age of Boltzmann and Meinong's objections to 'the prejudice in favour of the actual'?
SO STUDIES IN HISTORY AND PHILOSOPHY OF SCIENCE
LA English
DT Article
DE Assumption; Hypothesis; Description; Mode of presentation; Ludwig Boltzmann; Alexius Meinong
ID PHYSICS
AB Two complementary debates of the turn of the nineteenth and twentieth century are examined here: the debate on the legitimacy of hypotheses in the natural sciences and the debate on intentionality and 'representations without object' in philosophy. Both are shown to rest on two core issues: the attitude of the subject and the mode of presentation chosen to display a domain of phenomena. An orientation other than the one which contributed to shape twentieth-century philosophy of science is explored through the analysis of the role given to assumptions in Boltzmann's research strategy, where assumptions are contrasted to hypotheses, axioms, and principles, and in Meinong's criticism of the privileged status attributed to representations in mental activities. Boltzmann's computational style in mathematics and Meinong's criticism of the confusion between representation and judgment give prominence to an indirect mode of presentation, adopted in a state of suspended belief which is characteristic of assumptions and which enables one to grasp objects that cannot be reached through direct representation or even analogies. The discussion shows how assumptions and the movement to fiction can be essential steps in the quest for objectivity. The conclusion restates the issues of the two debates in a contemporary perspective and shows how recent developments in philosophy of science and philosophy of language and mind can be brought together by arguing for a twofold conception of reference. (C) 2009 Elsevier Ltd. All rights reserved.
C1 Univ Paris 07, CNRS, Equipe Rehseis Case 7093, Lab Sphere,UMR Conservatoire Natl Arts & Metiers, F-75205 Paris 13, France.
RP de Courtenay, N, Univ Paris 07, CNRS, Equipe Rehseis Case 7093, Lab Sphere,UMR Conservatoire Natl Arts & Metiers, 5 Rue Thomas Mann, F-75205 Paris 13, France.
EM decourtenay@wanadoo.fr
FU Max Planck Institut fur Wissenschaftsgeschichte
FX Part of the research for this article has been made thanks to the support of the Max Planck Institut fur Wissenschaftsgeschichte. I am very grateful to Olivier Darrigol, Michael Heidelbergerjean-Jacclues Rosat and Gregor Schiemann for prompting me to clarify certain ideas as far as I could. I am also grateful to Paolo Mancosu for making the English translation of Meinong's 'Ober Annahmen' available to me. I would like to thank as well for their remarks the participants in the conference on 'The significance of the hypothetical in the natural sciences' held at the University of TWA ngen, from 22-24 February 2005 where a first version of this paper was presented. I am very much indebted to Micah Ross for revising the English of a considerable part of this article. The remaining mistakes are mine.
CR BARBEROUSSE A, 2008, BOST STUD PHILOS SCI, V255, P87
BENOIST J, 2001, REPRESENTATIONS SANS
BLACKMORE J, 2001, E MACHS VIENNA 1895, P237
BOLTZMANN L, 1909, WISSENSCH ABHANDL, V1, P316
BOLTZMANN L, 1974, THEORETICAL PHYS PHI
BOLTZMANN L, 1990, L BOLTZMANN PRINCIPI, P162
CORRY L, 1997, ARCH HIST EXACT SCI, V51, P83
DARRIGOL O, 1988, HIST STUD PHYS BIOL, V19, P17
DECOURTENAY N, 1999, THESIS U PARIS 4 SOR
DECOURTENAY N, 2002, HIST PHILOS SCI, P103
DECOURTENAY N, 2007, COMPRENDE 19 SIECLE, P79
DONNELLAN K, 1966, PHILOS REV, V75, P281
DUMMETT MAE, 1993, ORIGINS ANAL CHEM
ELIOT TS, 1991, COLLECTED POEMS 1909
ENGEL P, 1999, DIALECTICA, V53, P211
FASOLBOLTZMANN IM, 1990, L BOLTZMAN PRINCIPIE
FEYNMAN R, 1977, CHARACTER PHYS LAW
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
FREGE G, 1952, TRANSLATIONS PHILOS, P21
FREGE G, 1952, TRANSLATIONS PHILOS, P56
FRENCH S, 1999, INT STUDIES PHILOS S, V13, P103
FRENCH S, 2006, PHILOS SCI, V73, P548
GIERE R, 2001, COMPANION PHILOS SCI, P515
HERTZ H, 1956, PRINCIPLES MECH PRES
HEYMANS G, 1902, ANN NATURPHILOSOPHIE, V1, P473
HOFLER A, 1906, ABHANDLUNGEN DIDAKIT, V1, P2
HOFLER A, 1906, GOTTINGISCHEN GELEHR, V3, P209
HUMPHREYS P, 2004, EXTENDING OURSELVES
KLEIN F, 1896, B AM MATH SOC, V2, P241
KLEINPETER H, 1901, VIERTELJAHRSCHRIFT W, V25, P401
KOCH E, 1905, VIERTELJAHRSSCHRIFT, V29, P133
LACKI J, 2007, COMPRENDRE 19 SIECLE, P241
LINDENFELD D, 1980, TRANSFORMATION POSIT
MACH E, 1976, KNOWLEDGE ERROR SKET
MANCOSU P, 2009, STANFORD ENCY PHILOS
MCMULLIN E, 1984, MIDWEST STUD PHILOS, V9, P205
MEINONG A, 1979, ASSUMPTIONS
NEALE S, 1990, DESCRIPTIONS
OSTWALD W, 1902, VORLESUNGEN NATURPHI
PERRIN J, 1909, CEUVRES SCI J PERRIN, P171
RAMSEY JL, 1992, PSA 1992, V1, P154
RAMSEY JL, 1995, PHILOS SCI, V62, P1
REDHEAD MLG, 1980, BRIT J PHILOS SCI, V31, P145
RUSSELL B, 1904, MIND, V13, P336
SANTAMBROGIO M, 1990, NOUS, V24, P647
SANTAMBROGIO M, 1992, LANGUAGE TRUTH ONTOL, P133
SCHAEFFER JM, 1999, POURQUOI FICTION
SIMON B, 1995, Z NATURFORSCH C, V50, P173
SMITH B, 1994, AUSTRIAN PHILOS LEGA
SUPPE F, 1977, STRUCTURE SCI THEORI
SUPPES P, 1967, PHILOS SCI TODAY, P55
THOMSON W, 1867, TREATISE NATURAL PHI
UEBEL T, 1999, GERMAN PHILOS KANT, P249
VAIHINGER H, 1924, PHILOS SYSTEM THEORE
VERNANT D, 1997, DISCOURS ACTION
VOLKMANN P, 1900, EINFUHRUNG STUDIUM T
WIMSATT WC, 2007, REENGINEERING PHILOS
WOODWARD J, 1989, SYNTHESE, V79, P393
ZALTA EN, 1988, INTENTIONAL LOGIC ME
NR 59
TC 0
PU ELSEVIER SCI LTD
PI OXFORD
PA THE BOULEVARD, LANGFORD LANE, KIDLINGTON, OXFORD OX5 1GB, OXON, ENGLAND
SN 0039-3681
J9 STUD HIST PHIL SCI
JI Stud. Hist. Philos. Sci.
PD MAR
PY 2010
VL 41
IS 1
BP 41
EP 57
DI 10.1016/j.shpsa.2009.12.010
PG 17
SC History & Philosophy Of Science
GA 583IQ
UT ISI:000276668100005
ER

PT J
AU ter Hark, M
AF ter Hark, Michel
TI THE PSYCHOLOGY OF THINKING BEFORE THE COGNITIVE REVOLUTION: Otto Selz on Problems, Schemas, and Creativity
SO HISTORY OF PSYCHOLOGY
LA English
DT Article
DE Selz; problem solving; schema; creative thinking
ID POPPER,KARL; SELZ,OTTO; FACTS
AB Otto Selz has been hailed as one of the most important precursors of the cognitive revolution, yet surprisingly few studies of his work exist. He is often mentioned in the context of the Wurzburg School of the psychology of thinking and sometimes in the context of Gestalt psychology. In this paper, it is argued that Selz's emphasis on the role of problems and schemas in the direction of thought processes and creativity sets him apart from the program of the Wurzburg School. On the other hand, by developing a theory of thinking that is exclusively at the intentional level, Selz also differs from psychologists that take physics as a model for psychology, such as the Gestalt psychology of Wolfgang Kohler. Special emphasis is given in this paper to Selz's use of the concept of problem or task and the concept of the schema. It is further argued that the concept of the schema is the result of Selz's adaptation of the theory of relations as developed by the philosopher Meinong. The paper begins with a sketch of Selz's life that ended so tragically.
C1 Univ Groningen, Fac Philosophy, NL-9712 GL Groningen, Netherlands.
RP ter Hark, M, Univ Groningen, Fac Philosophy, Oude Boteringestr 52, NL-9712 GL Groningen, Netherlands.
EM michel.ter.hark@rug.nl
CR ACH N, 1905, WILLENSTATIGKEIT DEN
ACH N, 1910, WILLENSAKT TEMPERAME
ACH N, 2011, WILLENSAKT
ASH M, 1998, GESTALT PSYCHOL GERM
BAHLE J, 1930, PSYCHOL MUSIKALISCHE
BECKER A, 2001, ADV GLOB CHANGE RES, V9, P3
BENARY W, 1923, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V3, P417
BORING EG, 1950, HIST EXPT PSYCHOL
BRETT GS, 1953, HIST PSYCHOL
BUHLER K, 1907, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V9, P297
BUHLER K, 1908, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V12, P1
BUHLER K, 1926, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V99, P145
DEGROOT A, 1946, DENKEN SCHAKER
DEGROOT A, 1965, THOUGHT CHOICE CHESS
DEGROOT A, 1981, O SELZ HIS CONTRIBUT, P192
DUNCKER K, 1935, PSYCHOL PRODUKTIVEN
FRIJDA N, 1981, OTTO SELZ HIS CONTRI
GRUNBAUM AA, 1908, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V12, P340
HUMPHREY G, 1951, THINKING
HUSSERL E, 1901, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
JANKE WS, 1999, HUNDERT JAHRE I PSYC
KOFFKA K, 1912, ANAL VORSTELLUNGEN I
KOFFKA K, 1915, Z PSYCHOL, V73, P11
KOFFKA K, 1925, GRUNDLAGEN PSYCHISCH
KOFFKA K, 1925, LEHRBUCH PHILOS, V2, P495
KOFFKA K, 1927, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V9, P163
KOHLER W, 1917, ABHANDLUNG PREUSI PM, V1
KOHLER W, 1918, NACHWEIS EINFACHER S
KOHLER W, 1919, PHYS GESTALTEN RUHE
KOHLER W, 1925, MENTALITY APES
KULPE O, 1912, INT MONATSCHRIFT WIS, P1069
KUSCH M, 1999, PSYCHOL KNOWLEDGE SO
MANDLER JM, 1964, THINKING ASS GESTALT
MARBE K, 1901, EXPT PSYCHOL UNTERSU
MAYER A, 1901, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V26, P1
MEINONG A, 1877, SITZUNGSBERICHTE KAI, V78, P185
MEINONG A, 1882, SITZUNGSBERICHTE PH, V101, P573
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
METRAUX A, 1991, O SELZ WAHRNEHMUNGSA
MULLER GE, 1894, Z PSYCHOL, V6, P81
MULLER GE, 1913, Z PSYCHOL S, V8, P567
NEWELL A, 1958, PSYCHOL REV, V65, P151
ODGEN R, 1951, AM J PSYCHOL, V61, P4
PIAGET J, 1947, PSYCHOL INTELLIGENCE
POPPER KR, 1972, OBJECTIVE KNOWLEDGE
POPPER KR, 2006, K POPPER FRUHE SCHRI
PRINS FW, 1951, EXPT DIDACTISCHE BIJ
SEEBOHM H, 1970, O SELZ BEITRAG GESCH
SEEBOHM H, 1981, O SELZ HIS CONTRIBUT, P1
SELZ O, 1910, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V16, P1
SELZ O, 1910, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V57, P241
SELZ O, 1912, BER 5 K EXP PSYCH, P229
SELZ O, 1913, GESETZE GEORDNETEN D
SELZ O, 1920, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V83, P211
SELZ O, 1922, PSYCHOL PRODUKTIVEN
SELZ O, 1924, GESETZE PRODUKTIVEN
SELZ O, 1926, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V99, P160
SELZ O, 1927, KANTSTUDIEN, V32, P273
SELZ O, 1935, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V134, P236
SELZ O, 1941, ACTA PSYCHOL, V5, P7
SMITH B, 1989, MONIST, V72, P52
STUMPF C, 1907, ABHANDLUNGEN KONIGLI, V2, P465
TERHARK M, 1993, STUD HIST PHILOS M P, V24, P585
TERHARK M, 2004, J HIST BEHAV SCI, V40, P375, DOI 10.1002/jhbs.20024
TERHARK M, 2007, ARCH GESCH PHILOS, V89, P60, DOI 10.1515/AGPH.2007.004
TERHARK MRM, 2004, POPPER O SELZ RISE E
TITCHENER EB, 1909, LECT EXPT PSYCHOL TH
VONEHRENFELS C, 1890, VIERTELJAHRSSCHRIFT, V14, P249
WATSON RI, 1963, GREAT PSYCHOL ARISTO
WOODWORTH RS, 1938, EXPT PSYCHOL
NR 70
TC 0
PU EDUCATIONAL PUBLISHING FOUNDATION
PI WASHINGTON
PA 750 FIRST ST, NE, WASHINGTON, DC 20002-4242 USA
SN 1093-4510
J9 HIST PSYCHOL
JI Hist. Psychol.
PD FEB
PY 2010
VL 13
IS 1
BP 2
EP 24
DI 10.1037/a0017442
PG 23
SC History Of Social Sciences; Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA 578LD
UT ISI:000276294200002
ER

PT B
AU Schlemmer, MJ
Prankl, J
Vincze, M
AF Schlemmer, Matthias J.
Prankl, Johann
Vincze, Markus
GP IEEE
TI Vision for Situated Robot Companions - Fusing Top-Down Knowledge and Bottom-Up Data
SO 2009 AFRICON, VOLS 1 AND 2
LA English
DT Proceedings Paper
CT 9th IEEE Africon Conference
CY SEP 23-25, 2009
CL Nairobi, KENYA
SP IEEE
ID OBJECT DETECTION; SEGMENTATION
AB In this paper we try to countersteer the observed dissociation of computer vision research from robotics and artificial intelligence. We propose a theoretical framework of cognitive functions with which the overall agent's knowledge (serving as top-down information repository) and bottom-up vision data can be glued together. It is argued that vision is always intentionally directed, working in a concrete situation for a concrete task. We call this paradigm situated vision-and argue for a variety of different vision techniques working with and on the same ontology of the agent. We present three distinct methods and show how they may support a robot in a concrete showcase example.
C1 [Schlemmer, Matthias J.; Prankl, Johann; Vincze, Markus] Vienna Univ Technol, Automat & Control Inst, Vienna, Austria.
RP Schlemmer, MJ, Vienna Univ Technol, Automat & Control Inst, Vienna, Austria.
EM ms@acin.tuwien.ac.at
jp@acin.tuwien.ac.at
vm@acin.tuwien.ac.at
CR AGARWAL S, 2004, IEEE T PATTERN ANAL, V26, P1475
ANTENREITER M, 2009, 33 WORKSH AUSTR ASS
DALAL N, 2005, CVPR, V1, P886
DICKINSON SJ, 1997, IMAGE VISION COMPUT, V15, P277
FELZENSZWALB PF, 2004, INT J COMPUT VISION, V59, P167
GRUBER TR, 1993, KNOWL ACQUIS, V5, P199
HAARSLEV V, 2003, RACER CORE INFERENCE, P27
HAWKINS J, 2004, INTELLIGENCE
KANADE T, 1978, P 4 INT JOINT C PATT, P95
LEIBE B, 2008, INT J COMPUT VISION, V77, P259, DOI 10.1007/s11263-007-0095-3
LOWE DG, 2004, INT J COMPUT VISION, V60, P91
MAILLOT N, 2004, MACH VISION APPL, V16, P33, DOI 10.1007/s00138-004-0142-9
MEINONG A, 1913, MEINONGS GESAMMELTE, V2
NEUMANN B, 1996, P ECCV WORKSH CONC D, P58
NEUMANN B, 2003, P 3 INT C COMP VIS S, P212
PAUL A, 2006, ACM SE 44, P748
PYLYSHYN ZW, 2001, COGNITION, V80, P127
RICHTSFELD A, 2009, GERM WORKSH IN PRESS
SARKAR S, 1994, IEEE T SYST MAN CYB, V24, P246
SCHLAGBAUER M, 2007, RADIAT PROT DOSIM, V125, P149, DOI 10.1093/rpd/ncm206
SCHLEMMER M, 2008, SIMULATING MIND TECH, P302
SCHLEMMER M, 2009, THESIS VIENNA U TECH
SCHNEIDERMAN H, 2004, INT J COMPUT VISION, V56, P151
SLOMAN A, 2002, GETTING MEANING OFF
SLOMAN A, 2006, P 21 AAAI C ART INT
SOLMS M, 2008, SIMULATING MIND TECH, P115
VERNON D, 2007, IEEE T EVOLUT COMPUT, V11, P151, DOI 10.1109/TEVC.2006.890274
VIOLA P, 2004, INT J COMPUT VISION, V57, P137
WINSTON P, 1970, THESIS MIT CAMBRIDGE
ZILLICH M, 2007, 31 WORKSH AUSTR ASS, P25
NR 30
TC 0
PU IEEE
PI NEW YORK
PA 345 E 47TH ST, NEW YORK, NY 10017 USA
BN 978-1-4244-3918-8
PY 2009
BP 322
EP 327
PG 6
SC Computer Science, Theory & Methods; Engineering, Electrical & Electronic
GA BNP02
UT ISI:000275165500058
ER

PT J
AU Abbott, MB
Vojinovic, Z
AF Abbott, M. B.
Vojinovic, Z.
TI Realising social justice in the water sector: 1
SO JOURNAL OF HYDROINFORMATICS
LA English
DT Article
DE numerical modelling; social justice; software as a service; stakeholder participation
ID DEPTH-INTEGRATED FLOWS; MODELING CIRCULATIONS
AB The present work is directed to the analysis, design and construction of web-based systems capable of catalysing processes of stakeholder participation in such ways as to realise changes that are judged by these stakeholders as positive in the water sectors of both the human and the natural economies. The thesis is advanced that the judgement that is so passed is a recognition on the part of the stakeholders of a realisation of social justice. This paper is thus given over in its first part to an analysis of the origins and the nature of social justice in this sector. it is emphasised that, although the resources of hydroinformatics in this endeavour are largely based upon quantitative assessments, the ways in which these translate through stakeholder participation into experiences of social justice are essentially qualitative. Thus, although we are currently concerned for the most part with a hydroinformatics of the quantities, this now has to be extended into a hydroinformatics of the qualities.
C1 [Abbott, M. B.] European Inst Ind Leadership, Chateau Latour Freins, B-1180 Brussels, Belgium.
[Vojinovic, Z.] UNESCO, IHE Inst Water Educ, NL-2601 DA Delft, Netherlands.
RP Abbott, MB, European Inst Ind Leadership, Chateau Latour Freins, B-1180 Brussels, Belgium.
EM knowledge.engineering@skynet.be
CR ABBOTT MB, 1985, J HYDRAUL RES, V23, P309
ABBOTT MB, 1985, J HYDRAUL RES, V23, P397
ABBOTT MB, 1989, COMPUTATIONAL FLUID
ABBOTT MB, 1991, HYDROINFORMATICS INF
ABBOTT MB, 1998, COMPUTATIONAL HYDRAU
ABBOTT MB, 1999, MEM S P FORCHH A SCH
ABBOTT MB, 2002, J HYDROINFORM, V4, P1
ABBOTT MB, 2004, EUROPEAN IND LEADERS
ABBOTT MB, 2007, NEW CIVIL ENG, V160, P26
BARTH K, 1938, KIRCHLICHE DOGMATIK
CANTOR G, 1895, MATH ANN, V46, P481
CANTOR G, 1897, MATH ANN, V49, P207
CAREY J, 2007, TEMENOS ACAD REV, V10, P7
CORBIN H, 1958, BOLLIGNER SERIES, V91
DEPELSENAIRE Y, 2004, ANAL AVEC DIEU
DILTHEY W, 1976, SELECTED WRITINGS
DURNING D, 1999, J POLICY ANAL MANAG, V18, P389
EVERS M, 2008, DECISION SUPPORT SYS
FINDLAY JN, 1977, PHENOMENOLOGY SPIRIT
FLEW A, 1993, SOCIAL JUSTICE ISNT
FOUCAULT M, 1972, POWER KNOWLEDGE SELE
FRASER JT, 1978, STUDY TIME, V3
HARVEY H, 2009, P WORLD CIT WAT FOR
HEGEL GW, 1807, PHANOMENOLGIE GEISTE
HEGEL GWF, 1977, HEGELS PHENOMENOLOGY
HEIDEGGER M, 1927, SEIN Z
HEIDEGGER M, 1963, TECHNIK KEHRE
HERMANS HJM, 1996, PSYCHOL BULL, V119, P31
HOPPE R, 1999, SCI PUBL POLICY, V26, P201
HUME D, 1748, ENQUIRY HUMAN UNDERS
JAMES H, 1890, PRINCIPLES PSYCHOL, V1
JAMES H, 1976, ESSAYS RADICAL EMPIR
JONOSKI A, 2002, HYDROINFORMATICS SOC
JUNG CG, 1944, PSYCHOL ALCHEMIE
KANT I, 1787, KRITIK REINEN VERNUN
KEEBLE B, 2004, TEMENOS ACAD REV, V7, P27
KELLY JS, 1976, ARROW IMPOSSIBILITY
KIERKEGAARD SA, 1843, FRYGT BAEVEN
KIERKEGAARD SA, 1844, BEGREBET ANGEST
KIERKEGAARD SA, 1849, SYGDOMMEN DODEN
KIERKEGAARD SA, 1965, SYGDOMMEN DODEN
KIERKEGAARD SA, 1980, CONCEPT ANXIETY
KIERKEGAARD SA, 1983, FEAR TREMBLING
KIERKEGAARD SA, 1985, FEAR TREMBLING
KIERKEGAARD SA, 1985, SICKNESS DEATH
KIERKEGAARD SA, 1989, SICKNESS DEATH
KLINKENBERG JM, 1996, PRECIS SEMIOTIQUE GE
KOLMOGOROV AN, 1953, ELEMENTS THEORY FUNC, V1
KOLMOGOROV AN, 1961, METRIC NORMED SPACES, V2
LAGOUR B, 1991, NOUS NAVONS JAMAIS M
LAGOUR B, 1993, WE HAVE NEVER BEEN M
LEVINAS E, 1995, ALTERITE TRANSCENDEN
LOCKE J, 1690, ESSAY CANCERNING HUM
MACHIAVELLI N, 1516, TUTTE OPERE STORICHE
MANIN YI, 1977, COURSE MATH LOGIC
MEINONG A, 1913, ABHANDLUNGEN ERKENTN
MILLER D, 1999, PRINCIPLES SOCIAL JU
PASCAL B, 1670, PENSEES
PAUL HHJ, 1994, CROSSING THRESHOLD H
PAUL HHJ, 1998, FIDES RATIO
RAWLS J, 1971, THEORY JUSTICE
RHEES R, 1981, WITTGENSTEIN HIST TI, P69
ROY A, 1999, COST LIVING
SARTRE JP, 1943, ETRE NEANT
SARTRE JP, 1958, BEING NOTHINGNESS
SIMONS P, 1996, MEINONG GEGENSTANDST, P171
THORKILSEN M, 2001, J HYDROINFORM, V3, P105
TROISFONTAINES R, 1953, EXISTANCE ETRE PHILO
TUMWESIGYE E, 2009, WATER WEBFRAME MODEL
VOJINOVIC Z, 2007, URBAN WATER J, V4, P211
WAHL J, 1959, PHILOS EXISTENCE
WAHL J, 1969, PHILOS EXISTENCE
WINCH P, 1967, ENCYCL PHILOS, V66, P44
NR 73
TC 0
PU I W A PUBLISHING
PI LONDON
PA ALLIANCE HOUSE, 12 CAXTON ST, LONDON SW1H0QS, ENGLAND
SN 1464-7141
J9 J HYDROINFORM
JI J. Hydroinform.
PD JAN
PY 2010
VL 12
IS 1
BP 97
EP 117
DI 10.2166/hydro.2010.065
PG 21
SC Computer Science, Interdisciplinary Applications; Engineering, Civil; Environmental Sciences; Water Resources
GA 541CC
UT ISI:000273389400007
ER

PT J
AU Perry, J
AF Perry, John
TI Hume and Frege on identity
SO PHILOSOPHICAL STUDIES
LA English
DT Article
C1 Stanford Univ, Dept Philosophy, Stanford, CA 94305 USA.
RP Perry, J, Stanford Univ, Dept Philosophy, Bldg 90, Stanford, CA 94305 USA.
EM johnperry43@gmail.com
CR AUSTIN DF, 1990, WHATS MEANING THIS
BAXTER DLM, 2008, HUMES DIFFICULTY
DONNELLAN K, 1970, SYNTHESE, V21, P335
FREGE G, 1892, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V100, P25
FREGE G, 1956, MIND, V65, P289
KAPLAN D, 1969, WORDS OBJECTIONS ESS, P206
KAPLAN D, 1989, THEMES KAPLAN, P481
KRIPKE S, 1980, NAMING NECESSITY
MALLY E, 1912, Z PHILOS PHILOS KR S, P148
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P479
ZALTA E, 1983, ABSTRACT OBJECTS INT
ZALTA E, 1988, INTENSIONAL LOGIC ME
NR 13
TC 0
PU SPRINGER
PI DORDRECHT
PA VAN GODEWIJCKSTRAAT 30, 3311 GZ DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0031-8116
J9 PHIL STUD
JI Philos. Stud.
PD DEC
PY 2009
VL 146
IS 3
BP 413
EP 423
DI 10.1007/s11098-009-9431-5
PG 11
SC Philosophy
GA 522HE
UT ISI:000271987700008
ER

PT J
AU Gaskin, R
AF Gaskin, Richard
TI Bradley's Regress and the Unity of the Proposition
SO DEUTSCHE ZEITSCHRIFT FUR PHILOSOPHIE
LA German
DT Article
C1 Univ Liverpool, Dept Philosophy, Liverpool L69 7WY, Merseyside, England.
RP Gaskin, R, Univ Liverpool, Dept Philosophy, 7 Abercromby Sq, Liverpool L69 7WY, Merseyside, England.
CR BENTHAM J, 1843, WORKS J BENTHAM, V6, P1
CHOMSKY N, 1965, ASPECTS THEORY SYNTA, P8
FREGE G, 1980, FUNKTION BEGRIFF, P80
FREGE G, 1983, NACHGELASSENE SCHRIF, P193
FREGE G, 1988, GRUNDLAGEN ARITHMETI, P62
MEINONG A, 1971, GEGENSTANDE HOHERER, P390
QUINE WVO, 1984, INQUIRIES TRUTH INTE, P222
WIGGINS D, 1980, SAMENESS SUBSTANCE, V159, P13
WITTGENSTEIN L, PHILOS UNTERSUCHGEN, P1
WITTGENSTEIN L, 1922, TRACTATUS LOGICOPHIL
WITTGENSTEIN L, 1977, PHILOS UNTERSUCHUNGE, V1, P49
NR 11
TC 0
PU AKADEMIE VERLAG GMBH
PI BERLIN
PA PALISADENSTR 40, D-10243 BERLIN, GERMANY
SN 0012-1045
J9 DEUT Z PHIL
JI Dtsch. Z. Philos.
PY 2009
VL 57
IS 4
BP 575
EP 582
PG 8
SC Philosophy
GA 502CH
UT ISI:000270431300004
ER

PT J
AU Cocchiarella, NB
AF Cocchiarella, Nino B.
TI Reply to Andriy Vasylchenko's Review of Formal Ontology and Conceptual Realism
SO AXIOMATHES
LA English
DT Editorial Material
C1 Indiana Univ, Bloomington, IN 47405 USA.
RP Cocchiarella, NB, Indiana Univ, Bloomington, IN 47405 USA.
EM cocchiar@indiana.edu
CR BULLOUGH E, 1912, BRIT J PSYCHOL 2, V5, P87
COCCHIARELLA NB, 1969, THEORIA-SPAIN, V2, P81
COCCHIARELLA NB, 1982, J PHILOS LOGIC, V11, P183
COCCHIARELLA NB, 1986, LOGICAL INVESTIGATIO
COCCHIARELLA NB, 1987, LOGICAL STUDIES EARL
COCCHIARELLA NB, 2008, SYNTHESE LIB SERIES, V339
COCCHIARELLA NB, 2009, J PHILOS LOGIC, V38, P343, DOI 10.1007/s10992-008-9096-0
LAMBERT K, 1991, PHILOS APPL FREE LOG
LANDINI G, 1990, GRAZER PHILSOPHISCHE, V37, P93
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
THURBER J, 1939, NEW YORKER 1031
NR 11
TC 0
PU SPRINGER
PI NEW YORK
PA 233 SPRING ST, NEW YORK, NY 10013 USA
SN 1122-1151
J9 AXIOMATHES
JI Axiomathes
PD JUN
PY 2009
VL 19
IS 2
BP 167
EP 178
DI 10.1007/s10516-009-9061-8
PG 12
SC Philosophy
GA 495HY
UT ISI:000269882900005
ER

PT S
AU Ter Hark, M
AF Ter Hark, Michel
ED Parusnikova, Z; Cohen, R
TI Popper's Theory of the Searchlight: A Historical Assessment of Its Significance
SO RETHINKING POPPER
SE Boston Studies in the Philosophy of Science
LA English
DT Proceedings Paper
CT International Conference on Rethinking Popper
CY SEP, 2007
CL Prague, CZECH REPUBLIC
HO Inst Philosophy Czech Acad Sci
AB On the basis of a correspondence between Karl Popper and the Dutch psychologist Adriaan de Groot, it is argued that the former's epistemology of the searchlight is historically rooted in early cognitive psychology of Otto Selz. It is furthermore argued that Popper's later critique of information processing psychology is the fruit of his assimilation of Selz's evolutionarily inspired program. In light of the current interest in evolutionary approaches to the mind, it is argued that this Popper-Selz program is as actual as ever.
In my recent book Popper, Otto Selz and the Rise of Evolutionary Epistemology (ter Hark 2004), I have attempted both to trace the origins of Popper's epistemology of the searchlight back to early German psychology, in particular the work of Otto Selz, and to point out the way the work of the latter diverges from the mainstream psychology at the time including the programme of the closely related Wurzburger School of psychology. As I also pointed out in my book, and as has been mentioned by others as well, Otto Selz played a formative role in the rise of cognitive science in the early 1950s of the last century in the USA, notably the work of later Nobel laureates Allen Newell and Herbert A. Simon. A mediating role here has been played by the Dutch psychologist and methodologist Adriaan de Groot, who was the first to apply Selz's ideas to the thinking processes of chess masters, and whose book Het Denken van den Schaker (de Groot 1946) was studied by Newell and Simon, in the original language, in 1954, a year before the revolution started. In 1965, an English translation of de Groot's book, On Thought and Chess appeared. As some of the new footnotes make clear, de Groot in his turn has been influenced by the American reception of Selz's ideas. For now, in the computational era, he claims that thought processes, as analyzed by Selz in the pre-computational era, might be simulated by a machine-program. As the further development of cognitive science has shown, the idea of so-called strong artificial intelligence, vigorously defended by Simon by means of his notion of a physical symbol system having the necessary and sufficient means for general intelligent action, has come increasingly under attack (Simon 1996). More and more, the idea of physical symbol systems has made place for an evolutionary or biological approach to the study of intelligence.
As was pointed out in the final chapter of my book, the evolutionary approach to intelligence has been a pervasive feature of Selz's work, even neglected by de Groot. But not by young Popper. In his work on epistemology and the mind-body problem from the 1960s onwards, the evolutionary approach is again a dominating feature. From this perspective Popper's correspondence with de Groot is particularly interesting. My point of departure in this chapter is a particular letter in which they discuss the significance of Selz both for methodology and psychology, as well as the approach taken by Newell and Simon. What is illustrated by this letter is not only that there has been a typical European approach to the study of cognition, different from the American approach, but also that young Popper showed precocious awareness of the lasting significance of one of the most important contributors to this European tradition.
C1 [Ter Hark, Michel] Univ Groningen, Fac Philosophy, NL-9712 GL Groningen, Netherlands.
CR DEGROOT A, 1946, HET DENKEN SCHAKER
DEGROOT A, 1965, THOUGHT CHOICE CHESS
FRIJDA N, 1980, O SELZ HIS CONTRIBUT
JENNINGS H, 1905, BEHAV LOWER ORGANISM
JENNINGS H, 1927, SCIENCE, V45, P19
MANDLER G, 2007, HIST MODERN EXPT PSY
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
ODGEN R, 1951, AM J PSYCHOL, V61, P4
PIAGET J, 1947, PSYCHOL INTELLIGENCE
POPPER K, 1931, QUELLE, V81, P607
POPPER KR, 1928, THESIS U VIENNA
POPPER KR, 1949, GESETZ WIRKLICHKEIT, P43
POPPER KR, 1972, OBJECTIVE KNOWLEDGE
POPPER KR, 1974, UNENDED QUEST
POPPER KR, 1977, SELF ITS BRAIN
POPPER KR, 1979, BEIDEN GRUNDPROBLEME
SCHLICK M, 1918, ALLGEMEINE ERKENNTNI
SELZ O, 1913, GESETZE GEORDNETEN D
SELZ O, 1924, O SELZ HIS CONTRIBUT
SIMON H, 1980, O SELX HIS CONTRIBUT
SIMON HA, 1996, PHILOS PSYCHOL, P160
TERHARK M, 2004, POPPER O SELZ RISE E
VOLKELT H, 1914, VORSTELLUNGEN TIERE
NR 23
TC 0
PU SPRINGER
PI DORDRECHT
PA PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
BN 978-1-4020-9337-1
J9 BOSTON STUD PHILOS SCI
PY 2009
VL 272
BP 175
EP 184
PG 10
SC History & Philosophy Of Science
GA BKP08
UT ISI:000268846300015
ER

PT J
AU Montague, M
AF Montague, Michelle
TI The logic, intentionality, and phenomenology of emotion
SO PHILOSOPHICAL STUDIES
LA English
DT Article
DE Emotion; Intentionality; Phenomenology; Consciousness; Logic; Frege puzzles; Content
AB My concern in this paper is with the intentionality of emotions. Desires and cognitions are the traditional paradigm cases of intentional attitudes, and one very direct approach to the question of the intentionality of emotions is to treat it as sui generis-as on a par with the intentionality of desires and cognitions but in no way reducible to it. A more common approach seeks to reduce the intentionality of emotions to the intentionality of familiar intentional attitudes like desires and cognitions. In this paper, I argue for the sui generis approach.
C1 Univ Oxford St Johns Coll, Oxford OX1 3JP, England.
RP Montague, M, Univ Oxford St Johns Coll, Oxford OX1 3JP, England.
EM michellemontague@mac.com
CR ARMSTRONG D, 1997, WORLD STATES AFFAIRS
BEALER G, 1982, QUALITY CONCEPT
BEALER G, 1993, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V7, P17
CHARLAND LC, 2002, BRIT J PHILOS SCI, V53, P511
DARMS J, 2000, PHILOS PHENOMEN RES, V61, P65
DAVIDSON D, 1968, SAYING HIS INQUIRIES
DAVIES M, 1992, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, V92, P21
DESOUSA R, 1987, RATIONALITY EMOTION
DESOUSA R, 2007, STANFORD ENCY PHILOS
FREGE G, 1892, PHILOS LANGUAGE, P186
GOLDIE P, 2000, EMOTIONS PHILOS EXPL
GOLDIE P, 2006, MIND, V115, P453, DOI 10.1093/mind/fzl453
GREENSPAN P, 1988, EMOTIONS REASONS
GRIFFITHS P, 1997, WHAT EMOTIONS REALLY
HARMAN G, 1990, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V4, P31
HORGAN T, 2002, PHILOS MIND CLASSICA
HORGAN T, 2006, SELF REPRESENTATIONA
KRIEGEL U, 2006, SELF REPRESENTATIONA
LARSON R, 1993, READINGS PHILOS LANG, P993
LARSON R, 1995, KNOWLEDGE MEANING
LARSON R, 2002, LOGICAL LANGUAGE
LUDLOW P, 2000, PRAGMATICS PROPOSITI
LYCAN W, 1990, MIND COGNITION
LYONS W, 1980, EMOTION
MARAK JCM, 2003, PERSON INTERDISCIPLI, P163
MCGINN C, 1997, CHARACTER MIND
MEINONG A, 1968, ALEXIUS MEINONG GEST, V4, R15
MONTAGUE M, RUSSELLS PR IN PRESS
MONTAGUE M, 2007, NOUS, V41, P503
MONTAGUE M, 2007, OXFORD HDB IN PRESS
NUSSBAUM M, 1990, LOVES KNOWLEDGE
NUSSBAUM M, 1994, THERAPY DESIRE
OAKLEY J, 1992, MORALITY EMOTIONS
PITT D, 2004, PHILOS PHENOMEN RES, V69, P1
PRINZ J, 2004, GUT REACTIONS PERCEP
ROBERTS R, 2003, EMOTIONS
SMITH D, 1989, CIRCLE ACQUAINTANCE
SOAMES S, 1987, PHILOS TOPICS, V15, P47
SOLOMON R, 1977, NOUS, V11, P41
SOLOMON RC, 1976, PASSIONS
STRAWSON G, 1994, MENTAL REALITY
STRAWSON G, 2004, PHENOMENOLOGY COGNIT, V3, P287
TAPPOLET C, 2000, EMOTIONS VALEURS
TICHY P, 1988, FDN FREGES LOGIC
TYE M, 1995, 10 PROBLEMS CONSCIOU
TYE M, 2000, CONSCIOUSNESS COLOR
TYE M, 2002, PHILOS MIND CONT CLA
WILLIFORD K, 2006, SELF REPRESENTATIONA
WOLLHEIM R, 1999, EMOTIONS
ZAHAVI D, 2006, SUBJECTIVITY SELFHOO
NR 50
TC 0
PU SPRINGER
PI DORDRECHT
PA VAN GODEWIJCKSTRAAT 30, 3311 GZ DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0031-8116
J9 PHIL STUD
JI Philos. Stud.
PD AUG
PY 2009
VL 145
IS 2
BP 171
EP 192
DI 10.1007/s11098-008-9218-0
PG 22
SC Philosophy
GA 476MC
UT ISI:000268445200001
ER

PT J
AU McDaniel, K
AF McDaniel, Kris
TI STRUCTURE-MAKING
SO AUSTRALASIAN JOURNAL OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
ID UNIVERSALS; IDENTITY; CONSTITUTION; PARTS
AB Friends of states of affairs and structural universals appeal to a relation, structure-making, that is allegedly a kind of composition relation: structure-making 'builds' facts out of particulars and universals, and 'builds' structural universals out of unstructured universals. D. M. Armstrong, ail eminent champion of structures, endorses two interesting theses concerning composition. First, that structure-making is a composition relation. Second, that it is not the only (fundamental) composition relation: Armstrong also believes in a mode of composition that he calls mereological, and which he takes to be the only kind of composition recognized by his philosophical adversaries, such as David Lewis. Armstrong, accordingly, is a kind of pluralist about compositional relations: there is more than one way to make wholes from parts. In this paper, I critically evaluate Armstrong's compositional Pluralism.
C1 Syracuse Univ, Syracuse, NY 13244 USA.
RP McDaniel, K, Syracuse Univ, Syracuse, NY 13244 USA.
CR ARMSTRONG DM, 1978, THEORY UNIVERSALS UN, V2
ARMSTRONG DM, 1983, WHAT IS LAW NATURE
ARMSTRONG DM, 1986, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V64, P85
ARMSTRONG DM, 1989, COMBINATORRIAL THEOR
ARMSTRONG DM, 1989, UNIVERSALS OPINIONAT
ARMSTRONG DM, 1991, MIND, V100, P189
ARMSTRONG DM, 1997, WORLD STATES AFFAIRS
ARMSTRONG DM, 2004, OXFORD STUDIES METAP, V1, P139
ARMSTRONG DM, 2004, TRUTH TRUTHMAKERS
BAKER LR, 1997, J PHILOS, V94, P599
BAKER LR, 2000, PERSONS BODIES
BAXTER DLM, 1988, PHILOS PAPERS, V17, P193
BENNETT K, 2004, PHILOS STUD, V118, P339
BIGELOW J, 1986, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V64, P94
BOOLOS G, 1985, PHILOS REV, V94, P327
COX D, 1997, PAC PHILOS QUART, V78, P45
DALY C, 1997, PROPERTIES, P140
DAVID M, 1994, CORRES DISQUOTATION
DORR C, 2004, OXFORD STUDIES METAP, V1, P155
FINE K, 1994, NOUS, V28, P137
FINE K, 1999, MIDW STUDIES PHILOS, V23, P61
FORREST P, 1986, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V64, P15
FORREST P, 1986, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V64, P89
FREGE G, 1980, PHILOS MATH CORRES
GROSSMAN R, 1973, ONTOLOGICAL REDUCTIO
HUSSERL E, 1901, LOGICAL INVESTIGATIO, V2
LEWIS D, 1970, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V48, P206
LEWIS D, 1971, J PHILOS, V68, P203
LEWIS D, 1983, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V61, P343, DOI 10.1080/00048408312341131
LEWIS D, 1983, PHILOS PAPERS, V1
LEWIS D, 1986, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V64, P25
LEWIS D, 1986, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V64, P92
LEWIS D, 1986, PLURALITY WORLDS
LEWIS D, 1991, PARTS CLASSES
MCDANIEL K, 2004, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V82, P137
MCDANIEL K, 2007, OXFORD STUDIES METAP, V3, P233
MCDANIEL K, 2008, ANALYSIS, V68, P128
MCTAGGART JME, 1924, CONT BRIT PHILOS PER
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
MELLOR DH, 1993, ONTOLOGY CAUSALITY M
MELLOR DH, 1998, REAL TIME 2
MELLOR DH, 2003, REAL METAPHYSICS
MERRICKS T, 1999, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V77, P192
NOLAN D, 2006, NOUS, V40, P716
OLIVER A, 1996, MIND, V105, P1
QUINE WVO, 1951, PHILOS STUD, V2, P11
RESCHER N, 1955, PHILOS STUD, V6, P8
ROSEN G, 1995, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V73, P612
RUSSELL B, 1973, ESSAYS ANAL
RUSSELL B, 1985, PHILOS LOGICAL ATOMI
SIDER T, 2001, 4 DIMENSIONALISM
SIDER T, 2007, PHILOS REV, V116, P51, DOI 10.1215/00318108-2006-022
SIMONS P, 1987, PARTS STUDY ONTOLOGY
THOMSON JJ, 1998, NOUS, V32, P149
VANINWAGEN P, 1981, PACIFIC PHILOS Q, V62, P123
VANINWAGEN P, 1986, MIDWEST STUD PHILOS, V11, P185
VANINWAGEN P, 1990, MAT BEINGS
VANINWAGEN P, 1994, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V8, P207
VARZI A, 2006, APPL ONTOLOGY, V1, P141
WETZEL T, 2003, STANFORD ENCY PHILOS
WIGGINS D, 2001, SAMENESS SUBSTANCE R
ZIMMERMAN DW, 1995, PHILOS REV, V104, P53
NR 62
TC 0
PU ROUTLEDGE JOURNALS, TAYLOR & FRANCIS LTD
PI ABINGDON
PA 4 PARK SQUARE, MILTON PARK, ABINGDON OX14 4RN, OXFORDSHIRE, ENGLAND
SN 0004-8402
J9 AUSTRALAS J PHIL
JI Australas. J. Philos.
PD JUN
PY 2009
VL 87
IS 2
BP 251
EP 274
DI 10.1080/00048400802587374
PG 24
SC Philosophy
GA 473HJ
UT ISI:000268196600005
ER

PT J
AU Voltolini, A
AF Voltolini, Alberto
TI How Ficta Follow Fiction: Replies to Commentators
SO DIALECTICA
LA English
DT Editorial Material
C1 Univ Turin, Dept Philosophy, I-10124 Turin, Italy.
RP Voltolini, A, Univ Turin, Dept Philosophy, Via S Ottavio 20, I-10124 Turin, Italy.
EM alberto.voltolini@unito.it
CR ADAMS RM, 1981, SYNTHESE, V49, P3
CAPLAN B, 2004, AM PHILOS QUART, V41, P331
CASTANEDA HN, 1989, THINKING LANGUAGE EX
EVERETT A, 2007, PHILOS PHENOMEN RES, V74, P56
FREGE G, 1892, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V100, P25
GOODMAN N, 1960, REV METAPHYS, V14, P48
KAPLAN D, 1989, THEMES KAPLAN, P481
KRIPKE S, 1973, J LOCKE LECT 1 UNPUB
KRIPKE S, 1980, NAMING NECESSITY
MEINONG A, 1891, Z PSYCHOL, V2, P245
ORILIA F, 2002, ULISSE QUADRATO ROTO
PREDELLI S, 2002, DIALECTICA, V56, P261
RECANATI F, 2000, ORATIO OBLIQUA ORATI
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P479
THOMASSON AL, 1999, FICTION METAPHYSICS
VOLTOLINI A, 2006, SYNTHESE, V153, P23, DOI 10.1007/s11229-006-0001-5
WALTON KL, 1990, MIMESIS MAKE BELIEVE
WILLIAMS DC, 1953, REV METAPHYS, V7, P171
WILLIAMS DC, 1953, REV METAPHYS, V7, P3
WILLIAMSON T, 2002, LOGIC THOUGHT LANGUA, P233
YABLO S, 2001, MIDWEST STUD PHILOS, V25, P72
NR 21
TC 0
PU WILEY-BLACKWELL PUBLISHING, INC
PI MALDEN
PA COMMERCE PLACE, 350 MAIN ST, MALDEN 02148, MA USA
SN 0012-2017
J9 DIALECTICA
JI Dialectica
PD MAR
PY 2009
VL 63
IS 1
BP 75
EP 84
DI 10.1111/j.1746-8361.2009.01177.x
PG 10
SC Philosophy
GA 421QG
UT ISI:000264372800007
ER

PT J
AU Cronan, T
AF Cronan, Todd
TI Georg Simmel's Timeless Impressionism
SO NEW GERMAN CRITIQUE
LA English
DT Proceedings Paper
CT Conference on Culture and Modernity - George Simmel in Context
CY 2005
CL Cambridge, MA
HO Harvard Univ
C1 Virginia Commonwealth Univ, Dept Art Hist, Richmond, VA 23284 USA.
RP Cronan, T, Virginia Commonwealth Univ, Dept Art Hist, Richmond, VA 23284 USA.
CR 1923, SCEPTICISM ANIMAL FA, P11
1974, MODERN ARCHITECTURE, P11
1999, SUSPENSIONS PERCEPTI
2001, SCHOPENHAUER NIETZSC
ADORNO TW, 1974, GESAMMELTE SCHRIFTEN, V11, P556
ADORNO TW, 1992, NOTES LIT, V2, P214
BAUDELAIRE C, 1863, FIGARO 1126
BAUDELAIRE C, 1972, SELECTED WRITINGS AR, P392
BENJAMIN W, 1928, URSPRUNG DTSCH TRAUE
BENJAMIN W, 1998, ORIGIN GERMAN TRAGIC
FRISBY D, 1986, FRAGMENTS MODERNITY, P107
HOLT EB, 1912, NEW REALISM COOPERAT
HUBERFUNK S, 1984, G SIMMEL MODERNE NEU, P183
HUSSERL E, 1901, PROLEGOMENA REINEN 1
KAHN G, 1900, PLUME, P316
KRACAUER S, 1963, ORNAMENT MASSE ESSAY, P209
KRACAUER S, 1995, MASS ORNAMENT WEIMAR, P251
LASH S, 2005, THEOR CULT SOC, V22, P1, DOI 10.1177/0263276405053717
LUKACS G, 1991, THEOR CULT SOC, V8, P147
MEINONG A, 1902, ANNAHMEN
MEINONG A, 1983, ASSUMPTIONS
NIETZSCHE F, 1888, FALL WAGNER MUSIKANT
NIETZSCHE F, 1967, BIRTH TRAGEDY CASE W, P192
PANOFSKY E, 1924, IDEA BEITRAG BEGRIFF
PANOFSKY E, 1968, IDEA CONCEPT ART THE
RIEGL A, 1923, ENTSTEHUNG BAROCKKUN
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P530
RUSSELL B, 1959, PROBLEMS PHILOS, P22
SANTAYANA G, 1918, J PHILOS PSYCHOL SCI, V15, P421
SANTAYANA G, 1930, REALM MATTER, P165
SIMMEL G, 1911, PHILOS KULTUR GESAMM, P168
STEINBERG L, 1972, OTHER CRITERIA CONFR, P338
SZONDI P, 1961, VERSUCH TRAGISCHE, P49
SZONDI P, 2002, ESSAY TRAGIC, P45
YOLTONS JW, 1967, METAPHYSICAL ANAL, P3
ZEIDLER S, 2004, NEGERPLASTIK, V107, P31
NR 36
TC 0
PU DUKE UNIV PRESS
PI DURHAM
PA 905 W MAIN ST, STE 18-B, DURHAM, NC 27701 USA
SN 0094-033X
J9 NEW GER CRIT
JI New Ger. Crit.
PD WIN
PY 2009
IS 106
BP 83
EP 101
DI 10.1215/0094033X-2008-022
PG 19
SC Literary Theory & Criticism
GA 419SH
UT ISI:000264239500005
ER

PT J
AU Lenarda, A
AF Lenarda, Antonio
TI Drama theory of Giovane Lukacs and Nietzsche
SO GIORNALE CRITICO DELLA FILOSOFIA ITALIANA
LA Italian
DT Article
CR 1909, DRAMMA, P9
1957, MANIERA TUTTA PROPRI, V2, P899
1963, DIARIO, P67
1981, OSSERVAZIONI TEORIA, P91
2007, ARCH STORIA CULTURA, V20, P111
BIRAULT H, 1967, BEATITUDE CHEZ NIETZ
DERRIDA J, 1986, PARTECIPATION SANS A, P251
DILTHEY P, 2005, IMMAGINAZIONE POETA, P218
LIPPS T, 1903, PANTRAGISMUS SYSTEM
LIPPS T, 2002, DISCIPLINE FILOSOFIC, V12, P12
LUKACS G, 1964, SCRITTI SOCIOLOGIE L
LUKACS G, 1976, DRAMMA MODERNO, P25
MAJ B, 2003, IDEA TRAGICO COSCIEN, P49
MEINONG A, 2002, TEORIA OGGETTO, P162
RICKERT H, 2002, FILOSOFIA MITOLOGIA, P187
SAMPAOLO G, 1999, STUDI GERMANICI, V37, P108
SCHELLING FW, 1990, FILOSOFIA MITOLOGIA, P39
SERPA F, 1972, POLEMICA ARTE TRAGIC, P43
SIMMEL G, 1996, PROBLEMI FONDAMENTAL, P32
SZONDI P, 1999, SAGGIO TRAGICO, P70
NR 20
TC 0
PU CASA EDITRICE G C SANSONI SPA
PI FLORENCE
PA VIA BENEDETTO VARCHI 47, 50100 FLORENCE, ITALY
SN 0017-0089
J9 G CRIT FILOS ITAL
JI G. Crit. Filos. Ital.
PD SEP-DEC
PY 2008
VL 4
IS 3
BP 478
EP 505
PG 28
SC Philosophy
GA 407OE
UT ISI:000263373400005
ER

PT J
AU Barz, W
AF Barz, Wolfgang
TI Beside itself of a true item - Point of contact between opinion and Quine
SO ZEITSCHRIFT FUR PHILOSOPHISCHE FORSCHUNG
LA German
DT Article
C1 Free Univ Berlin, Inst Philosophy, D-14156 Berlin, Germany.
RP Barz, W, Free Univ Berlin, Inst Philosophy, Habelschwerdter Allee 30, D-14156 Berlin, Germany.
CR CASTANEDA HN, 1972, CRITICA, V6, P43
CHISHOLM RN, 1972, JENSEITS SEIN NICHTS, P25
CHRUDZIMSKI A, 2001, DIALECTICA, V55, P119
CHURCH A, 1943, J SYMBOLIC LOGIC, V8, P45
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
FREGE G, 1892, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V100, P25
GROSSMANN R, 1974, NOUS, V8, P67
KRIPKE S, 1972, SEMANTICS NATURAL LA, P253
LINSKY L, 1968, REFERRING
MARCUS RB, 1961, SYNTHESE, V13, P302
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUGNEN GEGEN, P1
MEINONG A, 1915, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
QUINE WV, 1943, J PHILOS, V40, P113
QUINE WV, 1948, REV METAPHYS, V2, P21
QUINE WV, 1953, LOGICAL POINT VIEW, P139
QUINE WVO, 1960, WORD OBJECT
RAPAPORT WJ, 1978, NOUS, V12, P153
REICHER M, 2001, BAUSTEINE GESCHICHTE, P173
REICHER M, 2001, BAUSTEINE GESCHICHTE, P219
REICHER M, 2006, STANFORD ENCY PHILOS
ROUTLEY R, 1980, EXPLORING MEINONGS J
ROUTLEY R, 1982, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V43, P151
RUSSELL B, 1918, MONIST, V28, P495
RUSSELL B, 1919, MONIST, V28, P190
RUSSELL B, 1919, MONIST, V29, P32
ZALTA E, 1983, ABSTR OBJ
ZALTA E, 1988, INTENSIONAL LOGIC ME
NR 28
TC 0
PU VITTORIO KLOSTERNAMM GMBH
PI FRANKFURT-AM-MAIN
PA POSTFACH 90 06 01, D-60446 FRANKFURT-AM-MAIN, GERMANY
SN 0044-3301
J9 Z PHIL FORSCH
JI Z. Philos. Forsch.
PD JUL-SEP
PY 2008
VL 62
IS 3
BP 358
EP 384
PG 27
SC Philosophy
GA 341JY
UT ISI:000258711700003
ER

PT J
AU Bisin, L
AF Bisin, Luca
TI What does it mean to orientate in seeing? Plurality and visibility of the self in Husserl
SO RIVISTA DI STORIA DELLA FILOSOFIA
LA Italian
DT Article
CR 1961, CRISI SCIENZE EUROPE, P191
1978, HUMANISME AUTRE HOMM
1988, RICERCHE LOGICHE
1998, UMANESIMO ALTRO UOMO
2001, FENOMENOLOGIA COSCIE
BEGOUT B, 2001, REV PHILOS LOUVAIN, P564
BENEKE E, 1842, SYSTEM LOGIK ALS KUN, P279
BENOIST J, 1997, HUSSERL MYTHE SIGNIF, P21
BENOIST J, 1999, PRIORI CONCEPTUEL BO, P94
BENOIST J, 2002, IRIDE FILOSOFIA DISC, V37, P641
BENOIST J, 2005, AVEC FREGE BRISER FL, P91
BERG J, 1987, BERNARD BOLZANO GE 1, V11, P30
BESOLI M, 2002, NEOKANTISMO FENOMENO, P121
BESOLI S, 1988, CONTENUTO OGGETTO, P71
CASSIRER E, 2001, GESAMMELTE WERKE HAM, V9, P68
CENTI B, 2004, FENOMENOLOGIA RAGION, P264
COSTA V, 2002, IDEE FENOMENOLOGIA P, V1, P307
DESCOMBES V, 1983, GRAMMAIRE OBJECTS TO, P56
ENGLISH J, 2002, VOCABULAIRE HUSSERL, P13
GRIMM J, 1905, DTSCH WORTERBUCH, V10
HERBART JF, 1825, PSYCHOL ALS WISSENSC, P162
HICKERSON R, 2005, J HIST PHILOS, V43, P461
JANICAUD D, 1998, PHENOMENOLOGIE ECLAT, P36
KUHN R, 1998, HUSSERLS BEGRIFF PAS, P115
LANDGREBE L, 1999, ERFAHRUNG URTEIL UNT, P76
LEVINAS E, 1988, DECOUVRANT EXISTENCE, P126
MEINONG A, 1971, GESAWTAUSGABE, V2, P385
MELANDRI E, 1960, LOGICA ESPERIENZA HU, P53
MOHANTY JN, 1974, HUSSERL FREGE NEW LO, P51
SCHUHMANN K, 2004, SELECTED PAPERS PHEN, P135
SIMONS P, 1992, PHILOS LOGIC CENTRAL, P371
SOSSI F, 1998, SCOPRIRE ESISTENZA C, P142
SPINICCI P, 1987, RIV STOR FILOS, P519
SPINICCI P, 1993, LEZIONI SINTESI PASS
STUMPF C, 1873, PSYCHOLOGISCHEN URSP, P109
THURNAU D, 1995, HIST WORTERBUCH PHIL, V9
TWARDOWSKI K, 1894, LEHRE INHALT GEGENST, P18
VONEHRENFELS C, 1988, PHILOS SCHRIFTEN, V3, P128
WILLARD D, 1980, HUSSERL LOGIC FAILED, P46
WITTGENSTEIN L, 1969, TRACTATUS LOGICO PHI, V1
WITTGENSTEIN L, 1971, PROTOTRACTATUS EARLY, P48
NR 41
TC 0
PU FRANCO ANGELI
PI MILAN
PA VIALE MONZA 106, 20127 MILAN, ITALY
SN 0393-2516
J9 RIV STOR FILOS
JI Riv. Stor. Filos.
PY 2008
VL 63
SU Suppl. 2
BP 25
EP 72
PG 48
SC Philosophy
GA 329AN
UT ISI:000257839400003
ER

PT J
AU Jacquette, D
AF Jacquette, Dale
TI Object theory logic and mathematics: Two essays by Ernst Mally
SO HISTORY AND PHILOSOPHY OF LOGIC
LA English
DT Editorial Material
AB Presented here are translations of two essays of the Austrian logician, philosopher and experimental psychologist Ernst Mally, originally delivered at the Third International Congress of Philosophy in Heidelberg, Germany. Both essays conclude with discussion between Mally and Kurt Grelling. Mally was a student of Alexius Meinong and a contributor to logical investigations in the field of object theory (Gegenstandstheorie). In these essays, Mally introduces a vital distinction between formal and extra-formal 'determinations' (Bestimmungen), and he argues that formal determinations are not part of the identity conditions for intended objects, but provide the basis for a theory Of pure logical and mathematical relations. M ally then proceeds to develop a formal logic of formal and extra-formal determinations, whose interrelations of ontic and modal predications provide an analysis of fundamental object theory concepts.
C1 Univ Bern, Inst Philosophie, CH-3000 Bern 9, Switzerland.
RP Jacquette, D, Univ Bern, Inst Philosophie, Langgassstr 49A, CH-3000 Bern 9, Switzerland.
CR BRENTANO F, 1973, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN
FINDLAY JN, 1995, MEINONG THEORY OBJEC
JACQUETTE D, 1982, GRAZER PHILOSOPHISCH, V15, P1
JACQUETTE D, 1986, GRAZER PHILOSOPHISCH, V25, P423
JACQUETTE D, 1989, MAN WORLD, V22, P215
JACQUETTE D, 1990, BRENTANO STUDIEN, V3, P277
JACQUETTE D, 1996, MEINONGIAN LOGIC SEM
JACQUETTE D, 2001, SCH ALEXIUS MEINONG, P373
JACQUETTE D, 2004, CAMBRIDGE COMPANION, P98
JACQUETTE D, 2006, ACTIONS PRODUCTS THI, P9
LOKHORST GJC, 1999, NOTRE DAME J FORM L, V40, P273
LOKHORST GJC, 2004, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V67, P37
MALLY E, 1902, Z PADIGOGISCHE PSYCH, V5, P381
MALLY E, 1908, 3 INT C PHIL HEID 1, P881
MALLY E, 1912, Z PHILOS PHILOSOPHIS, V148
MALLY E, 1914, Z PHILOS PHILOSOPHIS, V160, P37
MALLY E, 1926, GRUNDGESETZE SOLLENS
MALLY E, 1971, E MALLY LOGISCHE SCH
MALLY E, 2008, 3 INT C PHIL HEID 1, P862
MEINONG A, 1969, GESAMTAUSGABE, V6
MEINONG A, 2004, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
MORSCHER E, 1998, PROPHIL PROJEKTE PHI, V2, P81
ROUTLEY R, 1981, EXPLORING MEINONGS J
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, P14
WEINBERGER O, 2001, STUDIEN OESTERREICHI, V32, P289
WOLENSKI J, 1998, PROPHIL PROJEKTE PHI, V2, P73
NR 26
TC 0
PU TAYLOR & FRANCIS LTD
PI ABINGDON
PA 4 PARK SQUARE, MILTON PARK, ABINGDON OX14 4RN, OXON, ENGLAND
SN 0144-5340
J9 HIST PHILOS LOGIC
JI Hist. Philos. Log.
PD MAY
PY 2008
VL 29
IS 2
BP 167
EP 182
DI 10.1080/01445340802011164
PG 16
SC Ethics; History & Philosophy Of Science; Philosophy
GA 317LL
UT ISI:000257021600004
ER

PT J
AU Engelmann, A
AF Engelmann, Arno
TI From the terrible loneliness to the wonderful agreement of human beings
SO INTEGRATIVE PSYCHOLOGICAL AND BEHAVIORAL SCIENCE
LA English
DT Article
DE epistemology; consciousness; reality; probability; hypothesis
ID SHORT-TERM; ISOMORPHISM; MODEL
AB What would be the "terrible loneliness" and what would be the "wonderful agreement" in the present paper? The "terrible loneliness" is the only reality that a person perceives and/or thinks during the now going on. For the person, an enormous quantity of occurrences is in the present moment absent. A very small quantity of occurrences is present. The person is the only being in having this. And, this is only during a little moment. The person never thinks about his loneliness in this moment. On the contrary, he thinks he is plenty of people and full of occurrences. But, if he were thinking about reality, he would live in a terrible loneliness. How does he escape himself from this loneliness? He thinks that the probable occurrences are real occurrences. He may be right in a plenty of times. Going through what I call opening hypotheses-basic hypotheses and non-basic but important hypotheses-and going through what I call simply hypotheses he is able to sanction a wonderful agreement of human beings about the known parts of the Universe. However, they are hypotheses, not absolute realities.
C1 Univ Sao Paulo, Inst Philosophy, Sao Paulo, Brazil.
RP Engelmann, A, Rua Consolacao,3617 Ap 42, BR-01416001 Sao Paulo, Brazil.
EM arno.engelmann@gmail.com
CR 1907, CONFESSIONS
1933, OXFORD ENLISH DICT
ARNEHIM R, 1986, AM PSYCHOL, V41, P820
ARNHEIM R, 1949, PSYCHOL REV, V56, P156
AYER AJ, 1946, LANGUAGE TRUTH LOGIC
AYER AJ, 1956, PROBLEM KNOWLEDGE
BALASHOV Y, 2002, PHILOS SCI, P285
BERGSON H, 1888, ESSAI DONNEES IMMEDI
BREHIER E, 1931, HIST PHILOS
BRIDGMAN PW, 1940, PHILOS SCI, V7, P36
BRIDGMAN PW, 1959, WAY THINGS ARE
BURNYEAT MF, 1983, SKEPTICAL TRADITION, P1
CHURCHLAND PS, 1982, NEUROSCIENCE, V7, P1041
CLAPAREDE E, 1925, ARCH PSYCHOL, V19, P172
COUISSIN P, 1983, SCEPTICAL TRADITION, P31
COURNOT AA, 1975, ESSAI FONDEMENTS CON
DAMASIO A, 1999, FEELING WHAT HAPPENS
DENNETT DC, 1991, CONSCIOUSNESS EXPLAI
DESCARTES R, 1967, MEDITATIONS TOUCHANT
EINSTEIN A, 1956, PHYS REALITY OUT MY
ENGELMANN A, 1997, PSICOLOGIA USP, V8, P25
ENGELMANN A, 2006, GESTALT THEORY, V28, P223
ENGELMANN A, 2008, SPANISH J PSYCHOL
ENGELMANN A, 2008, YB IDIOGRAPHIC SCI 2
FECHNER GT, 1889, ELEMENTE PSYCHOPHYSI
FRAISSE P, 1967, PSYCHOL TEMPS
GOUDGE TA, 1967, ENCYCL PHILOS, V2, P474
GUZELDERE G, 1997, NATURE CONSCIOUSNESS, P789
HAKEN H, 2005, GESTALT THEORY, V27, P8
HALMERS DJ, 1996, SCI CONSCIOUSNESS, P5
HAWKING SW, 1988, BRIEF HIST TIME
HEMPEL CG, 1966, PHILOS NATURAL SCI
HUME D, 1955, INQUIRY CONCERNING H
JAMES W, 1950, PRINCIPLES PSYCHOL
JOHNS EE, 2003, MEM COGNITION, V31, P285
KANISZA G, 1980, GRAMMATICA VEDERE
KANT I, 1956, KRITIK REINEN VERNUN
KOFFKA K, 1931, ENCY SOCIAL SCI, V6, P642
KOFFKA K, 1935, PRINCIPLES GESTALT P
KOHLER W, 1929, GESTALT PSYCHOL
KOHLER W, 1938, PLACE VALUE WORLD FA
KOHLER W, 1944, P AM PHILOS SOC, V88, P269
KOHLER W, 1969, TASK GESTALT PSYCHOL
KOHLER W, 1971, SELECTED PAPERS W KO, P83
LEHAR S, 2003, BEHAV BRAIN SCI, V26, P375
LEHAR S, 2003, WORLD YOUR HEAD
MALLE BF, 2005, OTHER MINDS
MCMULLIN E, 2002, PHILOS SCI CONT READ, P248
MEINONG A, 1972, EMOTIONAL PRESENTATI
MELZACK R, 1992, SCI AM, V266, P90
METZGER W, 1963, PSYCHOLOGIE
METZGER W, 1974, PERCEPTION, P57
MONTEIRO JP, 1984, PHILOS ANAL LATIN AM, P339
MOORE GE, 2000, EPISTEMOLOGY, P33
MUSGRAVE A, 1993, COMMON SENSE SCI SCE
NAGEL E, 1961, STRUCTURE SCI
NAIRNE JS, 2002, ANNU REV PSYCHOL, V53, P53
OHLE W, 1924, PHYS GESTALTEN RUHE
OSGOOD CE, 1980, LECT LANGUAGE PERFOR
POPPEL E, 1988, MINDWORKS
POPPER KR, 1968, LOGIC SCI DISCOVERY
RUSSELL B, 1948, HUMAN KNOWLEDGE
SCHEERER E, 1994, PHILOS PSYCHOL, V7, P183
SHEPARD RN, 1998, SCI CONSCIOUSNESS, V2, P143
SKINNER BF, 1974, BEHAVIORISM
SMITH SS, 1995, NEW INT WEBSTERS COM
STADLER M, 1994, PHILOS PSYCHOL, V7, P211
STEVENS SS, 1951, HDB EXPT PSYCHOL, P1
TOLMAN EC, 1951, BEHAV PSYCHOL MAN, P94
TOLMAN EC, 1960, PURPOSIVE BEHAV ANIM
TUNNEY RJ, 2003, MEM COGNITION, V31, P1060
VONBERTALANFFY L, 1968, GEN SYSTEM THEORY
VONBERTALANFFY L, 1975, PERSPECTIVES GEN SYS, P149
WERTHEIMER M, 1938, SOURCE BOOK GESTALT, P1
WERTHEIMER M, 1938, SOURCE BOOK GESTALT, P12
WUNDT W, 1973, INTRO PSYCHOL
NR 76
TC 0
PU SPRINGER
PI NEW YORK
PA 233 SPRING STREET, NEW YORK, NY 10013 USA
SN 1053-881X
J9 INTEGR PSYCHOL BEHAV SCI
JI Integr. Psychol. Behav. Sci.
PD MAR
PY 2008
VL 42
IS 1
BP 56
EP 75
DI 10.1007/s12124-008-9053-z
PG 20
SC Psychology, Biological; Neurosciences
GA 267RD
UT ISI:000253526000007
ER

PT J
AU Kroon, F
AF Kroon, Frederick
TI Much ado about nothing: Priest and the reinvention of noneism (Richard Sylvan, Graham Priest)
SO PHILOSOPHY AND PHENOMENOLOGICAL RESEARCH
LA English
DT Editorial Material
ID PRETENSE; FREGE
C1 Univ Auckland, Auckland 1, New Zealand.
RP Kroon, F, Univ Auckland, Auckland 1, New Zealand.
CR CRIMMINS M, 1998, PHILOS REV, V107, P1
INGARDEN R, 1973, LIT WORK ART
KRIPKE S, 1973, UNPUB J LOCKE LECT
KROON F, 2004, PHILOS REV, V113, P1
LEWIS D, 1990, MIND, V99, P23
MEINONG A, 1904, REALISM BACKGROUND P
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
ROUTLEY R, 1980, EXPLORING MEINONGS J
SALMON N, 1998, NOUS, V32, P277
THOMASSON A, 1999, FICTION METAPHYSICS
VANINWAGEN P, 1977, AM PHILOS Q, V14, P299
WALTON K, 1990, MIMESIS MAKE BELIEVE
YABLO S, 2001, MIDWEST STUD PHILOS, V25, P72
ZALTA E, 1988, INTENSIONAL LOGIC ME
NR 14
TC 0
PU BLACKWELL PUBLISHING
PI OXFORD
PA 9600 GARSINGTON RD, OXFORD OX4 2DQ, OXON, ENGLAND
SN 0031-8205
J9 PHIL PHENOMENOL RES
JI Philos. Phenomenol. Res.
PD JAN
PY 2008
VL 76
IS 1
BP 199
EP 207
PG 9
SC Philosophy
GA 254MM
UT ISI:000252590700012
ER

PT J
AU Hilpinen, R
AF Hilpinen, Risto
TI Peirce's theory of signs
SO TRANSACTIONS OF THE CHARLES S PEIRCE SOCIETY
LA English
DT Book Review
DE TL Short; Alexius Meinong; sign; icon; index; dynamic object; immediate object; proposition
AB This paper is a commentary on some topics discussed by Thomas Short in his recent book Peirce's Theory of Signs: Peirce's distinction between iconic and indexical signs, the objects of propositions, and different ways of interpreting the distinction between the immediate and dynamic objects of signs. Peirce's distinction between immediate and dynamic objects is in certain respects analogous to Alexius Meinong's distinction between the "auxiliary objects" and the 11 ultimate objects" ("target objects") of mental representations. It is suggested that the models of a theory can be regarded as its immediate objects, and the real systems represented by the models are the dynamic objects of the theory.
C1 [Hilpinen, Risto] Miami Univ, Oxford, OH 45056 USA.
RP Hilpinen, R, Miami Univ, Oxford, OH 45056 USA.
EM hilpinen@miami.edu
CR AUSTIN J, 1950, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC S, V24, P85
BACK A, 1996, REDUPLICATION LOGICA
COPELAND BJ, 2002, J PHILOS LOGIC, V31, P99
DORDRECHT D, 1973, SYNTHESE, V25, P372
FINE K, 1982, LANGUAGE ONTOLOGY, P97
FREGE G, 1893, BASIC LAWS ARITHMETI
GIERE R, 1988, EXPLAINING SCI COGNI
HILPINEN R, 2004, HDB HIST LOGIC, V1, P611
HINTIKKA J, 1973, INTENTIONS INTENTION, P76
HUSSERL E, 1913, LOGICAL INVESTIGATIO, V1
JACQUETTE D, 1995, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V50, P233
KORTE T, 2001, FREGE EPIGONES HIST, V7
MATES B, 1953, STOCI LOGIC
MEINONG A, 1915, A MEINONG GESAMTAUSG, V6
PARTEE BH, 1989, POSSIBLE WORLDS HUMA, P93
PEIRCE CS, 1893, ESSENTIAL PEIRCE SEL, V2
PEIRCE CS, 1931, COLLECTED PAPERS C S, V1
PEIRCE CS, 1958, COLLECTED PAPERS C S, V7
PEIRCE CS, 1976, NEW ELEMENTS MATH, V1
ROGERS Y, 1992, MODELS MIND THEORY P
SAJAMA S, 1987, HIST INTRO PHENOMENO
SHORT H, 2007, PEIRCES THEORY SIGNS
SHORT T, 2007, PIERCES THEORY SIGNS
SHORT TL, 2004, CAMBRIDGE COMPANION, P214
VANFRAASSEN BC, 1980, SCI IMAGE
NR 25
TC 0
PU INDIANA UNIV PRESS
PI BLOOMINGTON
PA 601 N MORTON STREET, BLOOMINGTON, IN 47404-3797 USA
SN 0009-1774
J9 TRANS C S PEIRCE SOC
JI Trans. Charles S Peirce Soc.
PD FAL
PY 2007
VL 43
IS 4
BP 610
EP 618
PG 9
SC Philosophy
GA 247KP
UT ISI:000252078100002
ER

PT J
AU Shchedrovitsky, PG
AF Shchedrovitsky, P. G.
TI Changes in thinking on a boundary of XXI century: social and cultural calls
SO VOPROSY FILOSOFII
LA Russian
DT Article
CR BRODEL F, 1988, MAT TSIVILIZATSIYA E, V2
BURDE P, 1994, NACHALA
GALTUNG J, 1993, EUROTOPIA ZUKUNFT EI
GENISARETSKII OI, 1987, SOTSIALNOKULTURNYE P
GENISARETSKII OI, 1988, THESIS
GENISARETSKII OI, 1994, DEYATELNOST PROEKTIR
GENISARETSKII OI, 1996, KENTAVR
KANT I, 1966, SOCH, V5
KHABERMAS Y, 1992, DEMOKRATIYA RAZUM N
KHABERMAS Y, 2001, PRAKTICHESKII SMYSL
KULPE O, 1923, REALISIERUNG BEITRAG, V1
MEINONG A, 2004, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
MEINONG A, 2007, STELLUNG GEGENSTANDS
SHCHEDROVITSKII GP, 1991, VOPROSY METODOLOGII
SHCHEDROVITSKII GP, 1992, VOPROSY METODOLOGII
SHCHEDROVITSKII GP, 1995, IZBRANNYE T
SHCHEDROVITSKII GP, 2000, KENTAVR
SHCHEDROVITSKII GP, 2006, EKSPERIMENTALNAYA ZH
SHCHEDROVITSKII GP, 2006, METODE ISSLEDOVANIYA
SHCHEDROVITSKII GP, 2006, PROBLEMY SEMANTIKI
SHCHEDROVITSKII GP, 2006, ZNAK DEYATELNOST
SHCHEDROVITSKII PG, 1993, AVGUR
SHCHEDROVITSKII PG, 2006, SOOBSHCHENIE
SHOPENGAUER A, 1880, MIR VOLYA PREDSTAVLE
TEILOR EB, 1989, PERVOBYTNAYA KULTURA
VALLERSTAIN I, 2003, KONETS ZNAKOMOGO MIR
VYGOTSKII LS, 1982, SOCH
NR 27
TC 0
PU MEZHDUNARODNAYA KNIGA
PI MOSCOW
PA 39 DIMITROVA UL., 113095 MOSCOW, RUSSIA
SN 0042-8744
J9 VOP FILOS
JI Vopr. Filos.
PY 2007
IS 7
BP 36
EP 54
PG 19
SC Philosophy
GA 199MO
UT ISI:000248700100004
ER

PT J
AU Boukema, H
AF Boukema, Harm
TI Russell, Meinong and the origin of the theory of descriptions (Bertrand Russell, A Meinong)
SO RUSSELL-THE JOURNAL OF THE BERTRAND RUSSELL STUDIES
LA English
DT Proceedings Paper
CT Conference on Russell Versus Meinong - 100 Years after On Denoting
CY MAY 14-18, 2005
CL Hamilton, CANADA
HO McMaster Univ, Bertrand Russell Res Ctr
AB According to his own account, Russell was "led to" the Theory of Descriptions by "the desire to avoid Meinong's unduly populous realm of being". This "official view" has been subjected to severe criticism. However stimulating this criticism may be, it is too extreme and therefore not critical enough. It fails to fully acknowledge both the way it is itself opposed to Russell and the way Russell and Meinong were opposed to their opponents. In order to avoid these failures, a more "dialectical" kind of analysis will be applied. It leads to unravelling two confusions shared by the official and the unofficial views: the confusion between conception and adoption of the theory of descriptions and the confusion between three varieties of Meinongianism. By means of these distinctions both a significant kernel of truth contained in Russell's account and the underlying motive for his distortion of the historical facts can be laid bare.
C1 Radboud Univ Nijmegen, NL-6500 HD Nijmegen, Netherlands.
RP Boukema, H, Radboud Univ Nijmegen, NL-6500 HD Nijmegen, Netherlands.
EM HBOUKEMA@PHIL.RU.NL
CR AYER AJ, 1971, RUSSELL MOORE ANAL H
BOUKEMA HP, 2005, TEOREMA, V24, P133
CARTWRIGHT R, 1987, PHILOS ESSAYS, P95
COFFA JA, 1980, SYNTHESE, V45, P43
FREGE G, 1879, BEGRIFFSSCHRIFT
FREGE G, 1884, GRUNDLAGEN ARITHMETI
FREGE G, 1892, KLEINE SCHRIFTEN, P143
FREGE G, 1893, GRUNDGESETZE ARITHME, V1
GRIFFIN N, 1996, B RUSSELL ORIGIN ANA, P23
HYLTON P, 1990, RUSSELL IDEALISM EME, P237
HYLTON P, 2004, CAMBRIDGE COMPANION, P202
LACKEY D, 1973, RUSSELL, P15
MEINONG A, 1904, GEGENSTANDSTHEORIE S, P1
QUINE WVO, 1948, LOGICAL POINT VIEW, P1
QUINE WVO, 1967, B RUSSELL PHILOS CEN
RUSSELL B, PAPERS, V4, P315
RUSSELL B, PAPERS, V4, P360
RUSSELL B, PAPERS, V4, P415
RUSSELL B, PAPERS, V4, P596
RUSSELL B, 1897, ESSAY FDN GEOMETRY
RUSSELL B, 1899, PAPERS, V2, P138
RUSSELL B, 1900, CRITICAL EXPOSITION
RUSSELL B, 1903, PRINCIPLES MATH
RUSSELL B, 1904, PAPERS, V4, P432
RUSSELL B, 1905, PAPERS, V4, P486
RUSSELL B, 1906, PHILOS ESSAYS, P139
RUSSELL B, 1909, PHILOS ESSAYS, P147
RUSSELL B, 1911, MYSTICISM LOGIC OTHE, P152
RUSSELL B, 1913, PAPERS, V7
RUSSELL B, 1918, LOGIC KNOWLEDGE, P177
RUSSELL B, 1919, INTRO MATH PHILOS
RUSSELL B, 1944, PHILOS B RUSSELL, P5
WHITEHEAD AN, 1910, PRINCIPIA MATH, V1
NR 33
TC 0
PU BETRAND RUSSELL RESEARCH CENTRE
PI HAMILTON
PA MCMASTER UNIVERSITY, HAMILTON, ONTARIO L8S 4M2, CANADA
SN 0036-0163
J9 RUSSELL-J B RUSSELL STUD
JI Russell-J. Bertrand Russell Stud.
PD SUM
PY 2007
VL 27
IS 1
BP 41
EP 72
PG 32
SC Philosophy
GA 176CD
UT ISI:000247059500004
ER

PT J
AU Chrudzimski, A
AF Chrudzimski, Arkadiusz
TI Meinong's version of the description theory (Alexius Meinong)
SO RUSSELL-THE JOURNAL OF THE BERTRAND RUSSELL STUDIES
LA English
DT Proceedings Paper
CT Conference on Russell Versus Meinong - 100 Years after On Denoting
CY MAY 14-18, 2005
CL Hamilton, CANADA
HO McMaster Univ, Bertrand Russell Res Ctr
AB About 1904 Meinong formulated his most famous idea: there are no empty (non-referential) terms. Russell also did not accept non-referential singular terms, but in "On Denoting" he claimed that all singular terms that are apparently empty could be explained away as apparent singular terms. However, if we take a more careful look at both theories, the picture becomes more complex. It is well known that Russell's concept of a genuine proper name is very technical; but this is also true of Meinong. Also, according to Meinong we can refer "directly" only to a very special category of ontologically simple objects. However, a very important difference is that, in the domain of Meinongian objects, a plurality of objects always corresponds to each description. Thus, if Meinong were right, there could be no definite descriptions. If we narrow the domain of reference to existent objects, we can secure the uniqueness of the reference object by specifying a collection of predicates that is contingently satisfied by only one (existing) object. But if we operate in the domain of all possible objects, we have to specify all properties that are had by the object in question. It turns out that such a "Leibnizian" specification amounts to the complete description of a possible world.
C1 Salzburg Univ, Univ Szczecin, A-5020 Salzburg, Austria.
RP Chrudzimski, A, Salzburg Univ, Univ Szczecin, A-5020 Salzburg, Austria.
EM ARKADIUSZ.CHRUDZIMSKI@SBG.AC.AT
CR CHRUDZIMSKI A, 2001, DIALECTICA, V55, P119
CHRUDZIMSKI A, 2003, METAPHYSICA, V4, P39
CHRUDZIMSKI A, 2005, MEINONG STUDIES, V1, P7
CHRUDZIMSKI A, 2005, Z PHILOS FORSCH, V59, P49
MEINONG A, 1902, ANNAHMEN
MEINONG A, 1904, GESAMTAUSGABE, V2, P481
MEINONG A, 1910, GESAMTAUSGABE, V4
MEINONG A, 1915, GESAMTAUSGABE, V6
MEINONG A, 1969, GESAMTAUSGABE
RUSSELL B, 1903, PRINCIPLES MATH
RUSSELL B, 1905, PAPERS, V4, P415
RUSSELL B, 1910, PAPERS, V6, P354
NR 12
TC 0
PU BETRAND RUSSELL RESEARCH CENTRE
PI HAMILTON
PA MCMASTER UNIVERSITY, HAMILTON, ONTARIO L8S 4M2, CANADA
SN 0036-0163
J9 RUSSELL-J B RUSSELL STUD
JI Russell-J. Bertrand Russell Stud.
PD SUM
PY 2007
VL 27
IS 1
BP 73
EP 85
PG 13
SC Philosophy
GA 176CD
UT ISI:000247059500005
ER

PT J
AU Kaye, SM
AF Kaye, Sharon M.
TI True friendship and the logic of lying
SO JOURNAL OF VALUE INQUIRY
LA English
DT Article
C1 John Carroll Univ, Dept Philosophy, University Hts, OH 44118 USA.
RP Kaye, SM, John Carroll Univ, Dept Philosophy, 20700 N Pk Blvd, University Hts, OH 44118 USA.
EM skaye@jcu.edu
CR BOEHNER P, 1958, COLLECTED ARTICLES O, P254
BOK S, 1979, LYING
CORAZZA E, 2003, DIALECTICA, V57
DEOCKHAM G, 1974, OPERA PHILOS, V1, P744
DEOCKHAM G, 1981, OPERA THEOLOGICA, V2, P561
DIAMOND C, 1976, WITTGENSTEINS LECT F, P207
HERZBERGER HG, 1975, CONT RES PHILOS LOGI, P72
KIERKEGAARD S, 1973, CONCLUDING UNSCIENCT, P213
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
OCKHAM W, 1983, PREDESTINATION GODS
PAKALUK M, 1991, OTHER SELVES PHILOS, P137
PERLOFF M, 1996, WITTGENSTEINS LADDER, P18
REUTER M, 1998, VIVARIUM, V36, P112
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14
SIMMONS K, 1987, HIST PHILOS LOGIC, V8
SPADE P, 1974, NOTRE DAME J FORMAL, V15
SPADE P, 1981, VIVARIUM, V19
WITTGENSTEIN L, 1958, PHILOS INVEST, P160
NR 18
TC 0
PU SPRINGER
PI DORDRECHT
PA VAN GODEWIJCKSTRAAT 30, 3311 GZ DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0022-5363
J9 J VALUE INQUIRY
JI J. Value Inq.
PD DEC
PY 2005
VL 39
IS 3-4
BP 475
EP 485
DI 10.1007/s10790-006-7527-0
PG 11
SC Ethics; Philosophy
GA 177RO
UT ISI:000247170400012
ER

PT J
AU Rapaport, WJ
AF Rapaport, William J.
TI How Helen Keller used syntactic semantics to escape from a Chinese Room
SO MINDS AND MACHINES
LA English
DT Review
DE animal communication; Chinese Room Argument; Helen Keller; Herbert Terrace; knowledge representation; names; natural-language understanding; SNePS; syntactic semantics
ID ARTIFICIAL-INTELLIGENCE; IMPLEMENTATION; COGNITION; MACHINE; SCIENCE; HOLISM; MINDS
AB A computer can come to understand natural language the same way Helen Keller did: by using "syntactic semantics"-a theory of how syntax can suffice for semantics, i.e., how semantics for natural language can be provided by means of computational symbol manipulation. This essay considers real-life approximations of Chinese Rooms, focusing on Helen Keller's experiences growing up deaf and blind, locked in a sort of Chinese Room yet learning how to communicate with the outside world. Using the SNePS computational knowledge-representation system, the essay analyzes Keller's belief that learning that "everything has a name" was the key to her success, enabling her to "partition" her mental concepts into mental representations of: words, objects, and the naming relations between them. It next looks at Herbert Terrace's theory of naming, which is akin to Keller's, and which only humans are supposed to be capable of. The essay suggests that computers at least, and perhaps non-human primates, are also capable of this kind of naming.
C1 SUNY Buffalo, Dept Comp Sci & Engn, Buffalo, NY 14260 USA.
SUNY Buffalo, Dept Philosophy, Buffalo, NY 14260 USA.
SUNY Buffalo, Dept Linguist, Buffalo, NY 14260 USA.
SUNY Buffalo, Ctr Cognit Sci, Buffalo, NY 14260 USA.
RP Rapaport, WJ, SUNY Buffalo, Dept Comp Sci & Engn, Buffalo, NY 14260 USA.
EM rapaport@cse.buffalo.edu
CR ALLAIRE EB, 1963, PHILOS STUD, V14, P235
ALLAIRE EB, 1970, PHILOS STUD, V16, P250
ALLEN JF, 1980, ARTIF INTELL, V15, P143
ANDERSON ML, 2003, ARTIF INTELL, V149, P91, DOI 10.1016/S0004-3702(03)00054-7
ARAHI K, 1990, IPSJ SIG REPORTS, V90
ARRIGHI C, 2005, COMPUTING PHILOS COG, P295
BAKER R, 1967, NOUS, V1, P211
BERNERSLEE T, 1999, WEAVING WEB
BERNERSLEE T, 2001, SCI AM 0517
BROWN R, 1973, 1 LANGUAGE
BRUCE BC, 1975, THEORETICAL ISSUES N, V1, P64
BRUDER GA, 1986, 8620 SUNY BUFF DEP C
BRUNER J, CHILDS TALK, P83
CASTANEDA HN, 1980, PHILOS METHOD
CASTANEDA HN, 1984, PRINCIPLES PHILOS RE, P227
CEUSTERS W, 2005, ONTOLOGY NEED INT CO
CHAPPELL VC, 1970, PHILOS STUD, V15, P245
CHRISLEY R, 2003, ARTIF INTELL, V149, P131, DOI 10.1016/S0004-3702(03)00055-9
CHUN SA, 1987, 19 SNERG SUNY BUFF D
CLARK A, 1998, ANALYSIS, V58, P10
COHEN PR, 1979, COGNITIVE SCI, V3, P177
COHEN PR, 1985, P 23 ANN M ASS COMP, P49
COHEN PR, 1990, INTENTIONS COMMUNICA, P221
DAMASIO AR, 1989, MIND LANG, V4, P24
DAVIDSON D, 1967, LOGIC DECISION ACTIO
DEHAENE S, 1992, COGNITION, V44, P1
DRESNER E, 2002, LINGUIST PHILOS, V25, P419
DUCHAN JF, 1995, DEIXIS NARRATIVE
EHRLICH K, 1995, 9509 SUNY BUFF DEP C
EHRLICH K, 1997, P 19 ANN C COGN SCI, P205
EHRLICH K, 2004, P 15 MIDW ART INT CO, P4
EHRLICH K, 2004, P 26 ANN C COG SCI S, P1555
ELGIN SH, 1984, NATIVE TONGUE
FITCH WT, 2006, AM SCI JUL, P369
GALBRAITH M, 1995, MIND MACH, V5, P513
GEACH PT, 1967, J PHILOS, V64, P627
GIERE RN, 2002, PHILOS SCI, V69, P637
GOLDFAIN A, 2004, USING SNEPS MATH COG
GOLDFAIN A, 2006, COMPUTATIONAL THEORY
GREENFIELD PM, 1990, GRAMMATICAL COMBINAT, P540
GROSZ B, 1986, COMPUTATIONAL LINGUI, V12, P175
HALLER SM, 1994, 9440 SUNY BUFF DEP C
HALLER SM, 1995, INTELLIGENT SYSTEMS, P61
HAREL G, 1998, AM MATH MON, V105, P497
HARMAN G, 1987, NEW DIRECTIONS SEMAN, P55
HARNAD S, 1990, PHYSICA D, V42, P335
HOFSTADTER DR, 2001, ANALOGICAL MIND PERS, P499
HUTCHINS E, 1995, COGNITION WILD
HUTCHINS E, 1995, COGNITIVE SCI, V19, P265
ISMAIL HO, 2000, PRINCIPLES KNOWLEDGE, P355
IWANSKA LM, 2000, NATURAL LANGUAGE PRO
JACKENDOFF R, 2002, FDN LANGUAGE
JONES KS, 1967, TM3304 SYST DEV CORP
KALDERON ME, 2001, PHILOS STUD, V105, P129
KAMP H, 1993, DISCOURSE LOGIC
KELLER H, 1903, OPTIMISM
KELLER H, 1905, STORY MY LIFE
KIBBY MW, MULTISENSORY LEARNIN
LAMMENS J, 1994, 9426 SUNY BUFF DEP C
LEIBER J, 1996, PHILOS PSYCHOL, V9, P419
LOUX MJ, 1970, UNIVERSALS PARTICULA
MAIDA AS, 1982, COGNITIVE SCI, V6, P291
MALONEY JC, 1987, SYNTHESE, V70, P349
MALONEY JC, 1989, MUNDANE MATTER MENTA
MARTINS JP, 1988, ARTIF INTELL, V35, P25
MAYES AR, 1991, BRIT J PSYCHOL, V2, P109
MCDERMOTT D, 1981, MIND DESIGN, P143
MEINONG A, 1904, ALEXIUS MEINONG GESA, V2, P481
MILES HL, 1990, COMP EV PERSPECTIVES, P511
MORRIS C, 1938, FDN THEORY SIGNS
NAGEL T, 1986, VIEW NOWHERE
NEAL JG, 1987, NATURAL LANGUAGE PAR, P49
PAPINEAU D, 1998, NEW YORK TIMES 0719, P9
PARKER ST, 1990, LANGUAGE INTELLECT M
PARNAS DL, 1972, COMMUN ACM, V15, P330
PRESTON J, 2002, VIEWS CHINESE ROOM
PUTNAM H, 1975, MIND LANGUAGE REALIT, P215
QUINE WVO, 1953, LOGICAL POINT VIEW, CH1
QUINE WVO, 1960, WORD OBJECT
QUINE WVO, 1969, ONTOLOGICAL RELATIVI, P26
RAPAPORT WJ, 1976, THEISS INDIANA U
RAPAPORT WJ, 1978, NOUS, V12, P153
RAPAPORT WJ, 1981, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V14, P1
RAPAPORT WJ, 1982, AM PHILOS Q, V19, P289
RAPAPORT WJ, 1985, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V25, P61
RAPAPORT WJ, 1985, P 7 ANN C COGN SCI S, P341
RAPAPORT WJ, 1986, COGNITIVE SCI, V10, P371
RAPAPORT WJ, 1986, PHILOS SCI, V53, P271
RAPAPORT WJ, 1988, ASPECTS ARTIFICIAL I, P1
RAPAPORT WJ, 1988, NOUS, V22, P585
RAPAPORT WJ, 1989, 8901 SUNY BUFF DEP C
RAPAPORT WJ, 1989, 8907 SUNY BUFF DEP C
RAPAPORT WJ, 1990, 9013 SUNY BUFF DEP C
RAPAPORT WJ, 1991, HDB METAPHYSICS ONTO, P516
RAPAPORT WJ, 1991, TOPOI-INT REV PHILOS, V10, P79
RAPAPORT WJ, 1993, MIND MACH, V3, P11
RAPAPORT WJ, 1995, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V9, P49
RAPAPORT WJ, 1996, 9626 SUNY BUFF DEP C
RAPAPORT WJ, 1997, 8615 SUNY BUFF DEP C
RAPAPORT WJ, 1997, COGNITIVE SCI, V21, P63
RAPAPORT WJ, 1998, J EXP THEOR ARTIF IN, V10, P403
RAPAPORT WJ, 1999, MONIST, V82, P109
RAPAPORT WJ, 2000, J LOGIC LANGUAGE INF, V9, P467
RAPAPORT WJ, 2002, MIND MACH, V12, P3
RAPAPORT WJ, 2002, P 6 WORLD MULT SYST, V2, P261
RAPAPORT WJ, 2003, MIND MACH, V13, P397
RAPAPORT WJ, 2003, P ICCS ASCS 2003, V2, P547
RAPAPORT WJ, 2005, COMPUT LINGUIST, V31, P407
RAPAPORT WJ, 2005, ENCY LANG LING, V13, P151
RAPAPORT WJ, 2005, J EXP THEOR ARTIF IN, V17, P385, DOI 10.1080/09528130500283998
RAPAPORT WJ, 2005, SPRINGER VERLAG LECT, V3554, P396
RAPAPORT WJ, 2006, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V84, P129
ROGERS H, 1959, J SOC IND APPL MATH, V7, P114
SANTORE JF, 2004, ANCHORING SYMBOLS SE, P1
SEARLE JR, 1973, THINK, V2, P68
SEARLE JR, 1980, BEHAVIORAL BRAIN SCI, V3, P417
SELLARS W, 1963, SCI PERCEPTION REALI
SEVERO R, 1999, NY TIMES 0621, B5
SHAPIRO SC, 1979, ASS NETWORKS REPRESE, P179
SHAPIRO SC, 1981, 173 SUNY BUFF DEP CO
SHAPIRO SC, 1982, AM J COMPUTATIONAL L, V8, P12
SHAPIRO SC, 1986, P IEEE, V74, P1354
SHAPIRO SC, 1987, KNOWLEDGE FRONTIER E, P262
SHAPIRO SC, 1989, LECT NOTES ARTIF INT, V390, P362
SHAPIRO SC, 1991, PHILOS AI ESSAYS INT, P215
SHAPIRO SC, 1992, COMPUT MATH APPL, V23, P243
SHAPIRO SC, 1992, ENCY ARTIFICIAL INTE, P54
SHAPIRO SC, 1996, DICT SNEPS CASE FRAM
SHAPIRO SC, 1998, COGNITIVE ROBOTICS, P136
SHAPIRO SC, 2000, AAAI 2000 SPRING S N, P57
SHAPIRO SC, 2003, 35 SNERG SUNY BUFF D
SHAPIRO SC, 2003, ROBOT AUTON SYST, V43, P97
SHAPIRO SC, 2006, SNEPS WIKIPEDIA
SHECKLEY R, 1954, UNTOUCHED HUMAN HAND, P155
SHIEBER SM, 2004, TURING TEST
SMITH BC, 1982, P 20 ANN M ASS COMP, P9
SRIHARI RK, 1989, P 11 ANN C COG SCI S, P364
SRIHARI RK, 1990, SPRINGER VERLAG LECT, V437, P5
SRIHARI RK, 1991, 9117 SUNY BUFF DEP C
SRIHARI RK, 1991, P 9 NAT C ART INT AA, P80
SRIHARI RK, 1993, P INT C DOC AN REC, P664
SRIHARI RK, 1994, P C APPL IM PATT REC, P186
SWAN J, 1994, CONSTRUCTION AUTHORS, P57
TARSKI A, 1969, SCI AM, V220, P63
TERRACE HS, 1985, AM PSYCHOL, V40, P1011
TERRACE HS, 1991, NEW YORK REV BOOKS, V3, P53
THOMASON RH, 2003, CONTEXT 2003, P328
TURING AM, 1950, MIND, V59, P433
VONGLASERSFELD E, 1977, LANGUAGE LEARNING CH, P55
WEIZENBAUM J, 1966, COMMUN ACM, V9, P36
WILSON FR, 1998, HAND
WINSTON PH, 1975, READINGS KNOWLEDGE R, P141
WITTGENSTEIN L, 1958, PHILOS INVESTIGATION
WOODS WA, 1975, REPRESENTATION UNDER, P35
ZUCKERMANN LS, 1991, NEW YORK REV BOOKS, V3, P53
NR 155
TC 0
PU SPRINGER
PI DORDRECHT
PA VAN GODEWIJCKSTRAAT 30, 3311 GZ DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0924-6495
J9 MIND MACH
JI Minds Mach.
PD DEC
PY 2006
VL 16
IS 4
BP 381
EP 436
DI 10.1007/s11023-007-9054-6
PG 56
SC Computer Science, Artificial Intelligence
GA 151NV
UT ISI:000245298300001
ER

PT J
AU Caplan, B
AF Caplan, Ben
TI A new defence of the modal existence requirement
SO SYNTHESE
LA English
DT Article
AB In this paper, I defend the claim that an object can have a property only if it exists from two arguments, both of which turn on how to understand Plantinga's notion of the alpha-transform of a property.
C1 Univ Manitoba, Dept Philosophy, Winnipeg, MB R3T 2M8, Canada.
RP Caplan, B, Univ Manitoba, Dept Philosophy, 468 Univ Coll, Winnipeg, MB R3T 2M8, Canada.
EM ben_caplan@umanitoba.ca
CR ADAMS RM, 1974, NOUS, V8, P211
CHISHOLM RM, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
FINE K, 1985, A PLANTINGA, P145
KAPLAN D, 1973, SYNTHESE LIB, V49, P490
KAPLAN D, 1989, THEMES KAPLAN, P481
KRIPKE SA, 1980, NAMING NECESSITY
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUGNEN GEGEN, P1
PLANTINGA A, 1978, AM PHILOS Q, V15, P129
PLANTINGA A, 2003, ESSAYS METAPHYSICS M
SALMON N, 1981, REFERENCE ESSENCE
YAGISAWA T, 2005, ANALYSIS, V65, P39
NR 11
TC 0
PU SPRINGER
PI DORDRECHT
PA VAN GODEWIJCKSTRAAT 30, 3311 GZ DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0039-7857
J9 SYNTHESE
JI Synthese
PD JAN
PY 2007
VL 154
IS 2
BP 335
EP 343
DI 10.1007/s11229-005-3491-7
PG 9
SC History & Philosophy Of Science
GA 121XL
UT ISI:000243190200008
ER

PT J
AU McDaniel, K
AF McDaniel, Kris
TI Modal realisms
SO NOUS
LA English
DT Article
ID POSSIBLE WORLDS; STRUCTURAL UNIVERSALS; TEMPORARY INTRINSICS; ACTUALISM; METAPHYSICS; ENDURANCE; THISNESS; TROPES; LEWIS
C1 Syracuse Univ, Syracuse, NY USA.
RP McDaniel, K, Syracuse Univ, Syracuse, NY USA.
CR ADAMS RM, 1974, NOUS, V8, P211
ADAMS RM, 1979, J PHILOS, V76, P5
ADAMS RM, 1981, SYNTHESE, V49, P3
ARMSTRONG DM, 1986, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V64, P85
ARMSTRONG DM, 1989, UNIVERSALS OPINIONAT
ARMSTRONG DM, 1997, WORLD STATES AFFAIRS
ARMSTRONG DM, 2004, TRUTH TRUTHMAKERS
BACON J, 2002, STANFORD ENCY PHILOS
BENNETT K, IN PRESS PHILOS REV
BENNETT K, IN PRESS PHILOS STUD
BENNETT K, 2004, PHILOS STUD, V118, P339
BRICKER P, 1996, PHILOS STUD, V84, P225
BRICKER P, 2001, REALITY HUMEAN SUPER, P27
CAMPBELL K, 1990, ABSTRACT PARTICULARS
CAMPELL K, 1981, MIDWEST STUD PHILOS, P471
EGAN A, 2004, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V82, P48
EHRING D, 1997, ANALYSIS, V57, P254
EHRING D, 2004, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V82, P436
FORREST P, 1984, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V62, P164
FORREST P, 1984, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V64, P15
FORREST P, 1986, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V64, P89
HASLANGER S, 1989, ANALYSIS, V49, P119
HELLER M, 1998, J PHILOS, V95, P293
HINCHLIFF M, 1996, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V10, P119
JOHNSTON M, 1987, ARISTOTELIAN SOC S, V61, P107
KAPLAN D, 1975, J PHILOS, V72, P716
LEWIS D, 1970, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V48, P206
LEWIS D, 1970, NOUS, V4, P175
LEWIS D, 1971, J PHILOS, V68, P203
LEWIS D, 1973, COUNTERFACTUALS
LEWIS D, 1983, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V61, P343, DOI 10.1080/00048408312341131
LEWIS D, 1983, PHILOS PAPERS, V1
LEWIS D, 1986, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V64, P25
LEWIS D, 1986, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V64, P92
LEWIS D, 1986, PHILOS PAPERS, V2
LEWIS D, 1986, PLURALITY WORLDS
LEWIS D, 1991, PARTS CLASSES
LEWIS D, 1999, PAPERS METAPHYSICS E
LEWIS D, 2004, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V82, P3
LINSKY B, 1994, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V8, P431
LOUX M, 1979, POSSIBLE ACTUAL
MARTIN CB, 1980, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V58, P3
MCDANIEL K, IN PRESS PHILOS STUD
MCDANIEL K, UNPUB STRUCTURE MAKI
MCDANIEL K, 2004, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V82, P137
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
MELLOR DH, 1981, REAL TIME
MENZEL C, 2000, STANFORD ENCY PHILOS
MERRICKS T, 1994, J PHILOS, V91, P165
MILLER RB, 2001, PHILOSOPHIA, V28, P3
OLEARYHAWTHORNE J, 1998, PHILOS STUD, V91, P205
OLIVER A, 1996, MIND, V105, P1
PARSONS J, IN PRESS OXFORD STUD
PLANTINGA A, 1974, NATURE NECESSITY
PLANTINGA A, 1976, THEORIA-SPAIN, V42, P139
QUINE WVO, 1951, PHILOS STUD, V2, P11
QUINE WVO, 1953, LOGICAL POINT VIEW, P1
RODRIGUEZPEREYRA G, 2004, ANALYSIS, V64, P72
SCHAFFER J, 2001, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V79, P247
SIDER T, 1996, PHILOS STUD, V81, P283
SKOW B, IN PRESS PHILOS STUD
TOMBERLIN JE, 1996, PHILOS STUD, V84, P263
VANINWAGEN P, 1986, MW STUDIES PHILOS, P185
VANINWAGEN P, 1990, NOUS, V24, P245
WILLIAMS DC, 1953, REV METAPHYS, V7, P3
NR 65
TC 0
PU BLACKWELL PUBLISHING
PI OXFORD
PA 9600 GARSINGTON RD, OXFORD OX4 2DQ, OXON, ENGLAND
SN 0029-4624
J9 NOUS
JI Nous
PY 2006
SU Suppl. S
BP 303
EP 331
PG 29
SC Philosophy
GA 119QH
UT ISI:000243027300010
ER

PT J
AU Macey, D
AF Macey, David
TI Res, Ens LATIN - Eng. thing, something
SO RADICAL PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
CR ANSELM, 1986, OEUVRE SAINT ANSELME
AUGUSTINE, 1941, BIBLIO AUGUSTINIENNE, V6
AUGUSTINE, 1949, MAGISTERE CHRETIEN
AUGUSTINE, 1997, CHRISTIAN TEACHING
AVICENNA, 1978, METAPHYSIUQE SHIF
BONAVENTURE, 1882, OPERA OMINA
CICERO, 1965, NATURA DEORUM
CLAUBERG J, 1691, OPERA OMNIA PHILOS
DAURIOLE P, 1956, P AUREOLI SCVRIPTUM
DELIBERA A, 1996, QUERELLE U PLATON FI
DELIBERA A, 1999, ART GEN THEORIES ABS
DERIJK LM, 1987, LOGOS PRAGMA ESSAYS
DOYLE JP, 1998, MEDIOEVO RIVISTA STO, V24
DUNS S, 1950, OPERA OMINA STUDIO C
ERNOUT A, 1994, DICT ETYMOLOGIQUE LA
FATTORI M, 1982, 3 C INT LESS INT EUR
FONSECA P, 1964, I DIALECTARIUM LIBRI
GOCLENIUS R, 1613, LEXICON PHILOS TANQU
GOICHON AM, 1937, DISTINCTION ESSENCE
HADOT P, 1999, ETUDES PHILOS ANCIEN
HENRY GHENT, 1961, QUODL
HENRY GHENT, 1979, OPERA OMNIA
JAVELLI C, 1563, TOTIUS PHILOS COMPEN
JOLIVET J, 1984, ETUDES AVICENNE
JOLIVET J, 1987, ASPECTS PENSEE MEDIE
KOBUSCH T, 1996, J DUNS SCOTUS METAPH
LATINUS A, 1977, LIBER PHILOS PRIMA S
LOHMANN J, 1951, LEXIS STUDIEN SPRACH, V2
LONG AA, 1986, PRINCIPAL SOURCES PH, V2
MEINONG A, 1999, THEORIE OBJET PRESEN
MOINGT J, 1966, THEOLOGIE TRINITAIRE
PAULUS J, 1938, H GAND ESSAI TENDANC
PLATO, 1932, LETT LUCILIUS
POLENZ M, 1959, STOA GESCHICHTE EINE
SINA, 1960, AL SHIFA
SUAREZ F, 1856, DISUPTATIONES METAPH, V25
VALLA L, 1540, OPERA OMNIA
VONARNIM J, 1964, STOICORUM VETERMUN F
VONARNIM J, 1998, STOICI ANTICHI TUTTI
WIELAND W, 1970, ARISTOTELISCHE PHYS
NR 40
TC 0
PU RADICAL PHILOSOPHY
PI LONDON
PA C/O CENTRAL BOOKS, 99 WALLIS RD, LONDON E9 5LN, ENGLAND
SN 0300-211X
J9 RADICAL PHILOS
JI Radic. Philos.
PD SEP-OCT
PY 2006
IS 139
BP 36
EP 50
PG 15
SC Ethics; Women's Studies
GA 080NE
UT ISI:000240253800006
ER

PT J
AU Betti, A
TI Propositions and states of affairs in Twardowski
SO DIALOGUE-CANADIAN PHILOSOPHICAL REVIEW
LA French
DT Article
AB Twardowski's On the Content and Object of Presentations (1894) is one of the most influential works that Austrian philosophy has left to posterity. The manuscript Logik (1894-1895) supplements that work and allows us to reconstruct Twardowski's theory of judgement. These texts raise several issues, in particular whether Twardowski accepts propositions and states of affairs in his theory of judgement and whether his theory is acceptable. This article presents Twardowski's theory, shows that he accepts states of affairs, that he has a notion of proposition, and that his theory is interesting and sophisticated.
C1 Univ Libre Amsterdam, Amsterdam, Netherlands.
RP Betti, A, Univ Libre Amsterdam, Amsterdam, Netherlands.
CR ARMSTRONG DM, 1997, WORLD STATES AFFAIRS
BENOIST J, 2001, REPRESENTATIONS OBJE
BENOIST J, 2002, ENTRE ACTE SENS THEO
BETTI A, 2004, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V67, P1
BETTI A, 2004, IN PRESS LOGICS PHIL
BILAT A, 2001, SLOWNIK POJEC FILOZI, P254
BOLZANO B, 1837, WISSENSCHAFTSLEHRE
BRANDL J, 2000, STANFORD ENCY PHILOS
BRENTANO F, 1973, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN
BRENTANO F, 1974, WAHRHEIT EVIDENZ, P3
CASARI E, 1992, BOLZANOS WISSENSCHAF, P55
CHISHOLM R, 1976, PERSON OBJECT METAPH
CHISHOLM R, 1977, THEORY KNOWLEDGE
CHISHOLM R, 1982, BRENTANO MEINONG STU
CHURCH A, 1956, PROBLEM UNIVERSALS, P3
CZEZOWSKI T, 1918, PRZEGLAD FILOZOFICZN, V21
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
HOFLER A, 1890, PHILOS PROPADEUTIK, V1
HUSSERL E, 1900, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
HUSSERL E, 1979, HUSSERLIANA, V22, P303
INGARDEN R, 1960, DZIELE LIT BADANIA P
INGARDEN R, 1961, SPOR ISTNIENIE SWIAT, V2
MARKOSIAN N, 2004, OXFORD STUDIES METAP, V1, P47
MEINONG A, 1971, GESAMTAUSGABE, V2, P379
MEINONG A, 1978, GESAMTAUSGABE, V7, P199
MULLIGAN K, 1984, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V44, P287
MULLIGAN K, 1985, TEORIA, V5, P145
MULLIGAN K, 1989, EPISTEMOLOGIA, V12, P207
MULLIGAN K, 1989, TOPOI S, V2, P117
PRIOR AN, 1976, DOCTIRNE PROPOSITION
RASPA V, 1995, STUDI URBINATI B, V67, P115
REINACH A, 1911, MUNCHENER PHILOS ABH
SIMONS P, 1992, DISCIPLINE FILOSOFIC, V7, P29
SMITH B, 1989, TRADITION ANAL PHILO, P415
TWARDOWSKI K, 1894, LEHRE INHALT GEGENST
TWARDOWSKI K, 1894, LOGIKA
TWARDOWSKI K, 1895, LOGIKA
TWARDOWSKI K, 1991, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V39, P1
TWARDOWSKI K, 1996, FILOZOFIA NAUKI, V4, P155
VALLICELLA WF, 2000, NOUS, V34, P237
WETZEL T, 2003, STANFORD ENCY PH FAL
ZEGLEN UM, 1996, AXIOMATHES, P267
NR 42
TC 0
PU CANADIAN PHILOSOPHICAL ASSOC
PI OTTAWA
PA MORISSET HALL #375, UNIV OTTAWA, OTTAWA, ONTARIO K1N 6N5, CANADA
SN 0012-2173
J9 DIALOGUE-CAN PHIL REV
JI Dialogue-Can. Philos. Rev.
PD SUM
PY 2005
VL 44
IS 3
BP 469
EP 492
PG 24
SC Philosophy
GA 999TX
UT ISI:000234414500003
ER

PT J
AU Plourde, J
TI Wittgenstein and the judgement theories of Russel and de Meinong
SO DIALOGUE-CANADIAN PHILOSOPHICAL REVIEW
LA French
DT Article
AB One of the main challenges faced by Russell's theory of judgement was to provide a satisfactory account of judgement that was not committed to the existence of true, false, or non-existent complex entities such as Meinongian objectives. In the study of the Russell-Wittgenstein debate on that theory, scholars never considered the idea that Wittgenstein might not have followed Russell on that issue. In this article, I address that question and hold, first, that problems raised by Russell's theory of judgement find their solution in the picture theory. Then, I show that Wittgenstein hesitated for a long period of time in the Notebooks between a version of his solution which is committed to the existence of possible (non-existing) complex entities and one which is not. Finally, I argue that he did, along with Meinong, go for a committing version in the Tractatus.
C1 Univ Quebec, Montreal, PQ H3C 3P8, Canada.
RP Plourde, J, Univ Quebec, Montreal, PQ H3C 3P8, Canada.
CR ANSCOMBE GEM, 1959, INTRO WITTGENSTEINS
BLACKWELL K, 1981, PERSPECTIVES PHILOS, P1
BOGEN J, 1972, WITTGENSTEINS PHILOS
CANDLISH S, 1996, UNITY PROPOSITION RU, P103
FRASCOLLA P, 2000, TRACTATUS LOGICOPHIL
GRIFFIN J, 1964, WITTGENSTEINS LOGICA
GRIFFIN J, 1980, SYNTHESE, V45, P117
GRIFFIN J, 1985, RUSSELL, P132
GRIFFIN J, 1991, DIALOGUE, V30, P549
GRIFFIN N, 1985, PHILOS STUD, V47, P213
HOCHBERG H, 2000, THEORIA-SPAIN, V43, P3
HYDER D, 2002, MECH MEANING PROPOSI
MAURY A, 1977, ACTA PHILOS FENNICA, V29
MEINONG A, 1977, ANNAHMEN GESAMTAUSGA, V4
MONK R, 1996, B RUSSELL ORIGINS AN
MONK R, 1996, B RUSSELL SPIRIT SOL
MULLIGAN K, 1986, TOPOI, V5, P115
MULLIGAN K, 1988, TOPOI S, V2, P117
PEARS D, 1977, PHILOS REV, V86, P177
PEARS D, 1979, P 3 INT WITTG S VIEN, P101
PEARS D, 1987, FALSE PRISON STUDY D, V1
PEARS D, 1989, REREADING RUSSELL ES, V12, P169
PLOURDE J, 2004, THESIS U GENEVE
RAMSDENEAMES E, 1984, INTRO RUSSELL, R5
RUSSELL B, 1904, COLLECTED PAPERS B R, V4, P431
RUSSELL B, 1906, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, V7, P28
RUSSELL B, 1991, AUTOBIOGRAPHY B RUSS, V2
RUSSELL B, 1994, LOGIC KNOWLEDGE, P177
RUSSELL B, 1994, PHILOS ESSAYS, P147
RUSSELL B, 1999, PROBLEMS PHILOS
RUSSELL B, 2002, COLLECTED PAPERS B R, V7
RUSSELL BAW, 1992, COLLECTED PAPERS B R, V6, P54
SIMONS PM, 1992, PHILOS LOGIC CENTRAL, P319
SOMMERVILLE SS, 1980, LANGUAGE LOGIC PHILO, P182
STOCK G, 1972, UNDERSTANDING WITTGE, V7, P62
TULLY RE, 1988, DIALOGUE, V27, P299
VONWRIGHT GH, 1982, WITTGENSTEIN, P183
WITTGENSTEIN L, 1979, NOTEBOOKS 1914 1916
WITTGENSTEIN L, 1993, LOGISCHPHILOSOPHISCH
NR 39
TC 0
PU CANADIAN PHILOSOPHICAL ASSOC
PI OTTAWA
PA MORISSET HALL #375, UNIV OTTAWA, OTTAWA, ONTARIO K1N 6N5, CANADA
SN 0012-2173
J9 DIALOGUE-CAN PHIL REV
JI Dialogue-Can. Philos. Rev.
PD SPR
PY 2005
VL 44
IS 2
BP 249
EP 283
PG 35
SC Philosophy
GA 951NH
UT ISI:000230936900003
ER

PT J
AU Goldstick, D
TI On what there is
SO PACIFIC PHILOSOPHICAL QUARTERLY
LA English
DT Article
AB This paper programmatically outlines a case for "nominalism". If brown and colored are so related logically that being colored is nothing over and above being brown, then whatever "exists" other than concreta is nothing over and above concreta. Possibilities of rain and "universals" like the shape, circularity (= the logical possibility of being so shaped), lack "existence" in another sense. ("There are things that don't exist" shows that 'there are' is used even more broadly than 'there exist'.) The univocity of,exist' is disproved by "A prime number between 6 and 10 exists" being analytic despite the invalidity of ontological arguments.
C1 Univ Toronto, Dept Philosophy, Toronto, ON M5S 1A1, Canada.
RP Goldstick, D, Univ Toronto, Dept Philosophy, Toronto, ON M5S 1A1, Canada.
CR ANSELM, ANSELM CANTERBURY, V1
AUSTIN JL, 1961, PHILOS PAPERS, P126
GOLDSTICK D, 1972, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V32, P533
GOLDSTICK D, 1978, MIND, V87, P1
GOLDSTICK D, 1980, DIALECTICA, V34, P183
GOLDSTICK D, 1989, AM PHILOS Q, V26, P231
GOLDSTICK D, 1989, LOGIQUE ANAL, V32, P139
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P83
NORMAN M, 1960, PHILOS REV, V69, P52
QUINE WV, 1960, LOGICAL POINT VIEW, P20
QUINE WV, 1960, WORD OBJECT, P26
QUINE WVO, 1961, LOGICAL POINT VIEW, P1
WILLIAMS DC, 1953, REV METAPHYS, V7, P3
NR 13
TC 0
PU BLACKWELL PUBLISHING
PI OXFORD
PA 9600 GARSINGTON RD, OXFORD OX4 2DQ, OXON, ENGLAND
SN 0031-5621
J9 PAC PHIL QUART
JI Pac. Philos. Q.
PD SEP
PY 2005
VL 86
IS 3
BP 313
EP 320
PG 8
SC Philosophy
GA 961BF
UT ISI:000231636200002
ER

PT B
AU Quesada, RM
ED Weingartner, P
TI Does metaphysics need a non-classical logic?
SO ALTERNATIVE LOGICS: DO SCIENCES NEED THEM?
LA English
DT Proceedings Paper
CT Conference on Alternative Logics - Do Sciences Need Them
CY MAY, 1999
CL Salzburg, AUSTRIA
SP Acad Int Philosoph Sci
HO Inst Wissenschaftstheorie, Int Forsch Zentrum
CR ARISTOTLE, 1928, POSTERIOR ANAL
ARISTOTLE, 1928, PRIOR ANAL
ARMSTRONG DM, 1961, PERCEPTION PHYS WORL
AUGSTIN, 1845, CITE DIEU
BATENS D, 1989, PARACONSISTENT LOGIC
BERGSON H, 1981, EVOLUTION CREATRICE
BERGSON H, 1982, 2 SOURCES MORALE REL
BUNGE M, 1967, FDN PHYS
BUNGE M, 1977, TREATISE BASIC PHILO
BUNGE M, 1980, EPISTEMOLOGIA
DACOSTA NCA, 1963, THESIS U FEDERAL PAR
DACOSTA NCA, 1974, NOTRE DAME J FORM L, V15, P497
ENGELS F, 1959, DIALEKTIK NATUR
ENGLEWOOD C, 1973, ROOTS REFERENCE
GASSET JOY, 1933, TORNO GALILEO
HEGEL GWF, 1931, PHENOMENOLOGY MIND
HEGEL GWF, 1951, WISSENSCHAFT LOGIK
HEMPEL CG, 1966, PHILOS NATURAL SCI
KANT I, 1924, KRITIK REINEN VERNUN
KOSKO B, 1997, 2 FUZZY PENSIERO
KRUSE R, 1994, FDN FUZZY SYSTEMS
MARITAIN J, 1994, ORDEN CONCEPTOS
MARX K, 1985, IDEOLOGIA ALEMANA CO
MARX K, 1995, HEILIGE FAMILIE
MEINONG A, 1988, GEGENSTANDSTHEORIE
MILL S, 1981, SYSTEM LOGIC RATIOCI
NGUYEN HT, 1997, 1 COURSE FUZZY LOGIC
PLATO, PARMENIDES
PLATO, 1966, REPUBLIQUE
PLOTINUS, 1956, PLOTINS SCHRIFTEN
PRIEST G, PARACONSISTENT LOGIC
QUESADA FM, 1980, LOGICA I FILOSOFIA M
QUESADA FM, 1989, PARACONSISTENT LOGIC
QUESADA FM, 1997, PHILOS MATH TODAY
QUINE WV, 1961, LOGICAL POINT VIEW
QUINE WV, 1966, WAYS PARADOX
QUINE WV, 1970, PHILOS LOGIC
ROUTLEY R, 1980, EXPLORING MEINONGS J
ROUTLEY R, 1982, RELEVANT LOGICS THEI
ROUTLEY R, 1989, PARACONSISTENT LOGIC
SARTRE JP, 1943, ETRE NEANT
SCHELLING FWJ, 1988, SISTEMA IDEALISMO TR
TOMAS, 1967, SUMA GENTILES
WHITEHEAD AN, 1936, PROCESS REALITY
ZADEH L, 1980, INFERENCE FUZZY LOGI
ZADEH LA, 1965, INFORM CONTR, V8, P338, DOI 10.1016/S0019-9958(65)90241-X
NR 46
TC 0
PU SPRINGER-VERLAG BERLIN
PI BERLIN
PA HEIDELBERGER PLATZ 3, D-14197 BERLIN, GERMANY
BN 3-540-40744-8
PY 2004
BP 27
EP 39
PG 13
SC History & Philosophy Of Science
GA BY69L
UT ISI:000189440700002
ER

PT J
AU Corazza, E
Whitsey, M
TI Indexicals, fictions, and ficta
SO DIALECTICA
LA English
DT Article
AB We defend the view that an indexical uttered by an actor works on the model of deferred reference. If it defers to a character which does not exist, it is an empty term, just as 'Hamlet' and 'Ophelia' are. The utterance in which it appears does not express a proposition and thus lacks a truth value. We advocate an ontologically parsimonious, anti-realist, position. We show how the notion of truth in our use and understanding of indexicals (and fictional name) as they appear within a fiction is not a central issue. We claim that our use and understanding of indexicals (and names) rests on the fact that their cognitive contribution is not exhausted by their semantic contribution.
C1 Univ Nottingham, Dept Philosophy, Nottingham NG7 2RD, England.
RP Corazza, E, Univ Nottingham, Dept Philosophy, Nottingham NG7 2RD, England.
EM eros.corazza@nottingham.ac.uk
mtw@cs.nott.ac.uk
CR BRAUN D, 1993, NOUS, V27, P449
CORAZZA E, 2002, PHILOS STUD, V107, P1
CORAZZA E, 2003, ERKENNTNIS, V59, P263
CORAZZA E, 2004, SYNTHESE, V138
CULY C, 1994, LINGUISTICS, V32, P1055
CULY C, 1997, LINGUISTICS, V35, P845
CURRIE G, 1990, NATURE FICTION
DONNELLAN K, 1974, PHILOS REV, V83, P3
GORDON RM, 1995, MENTAL SIMULATION EV, P53
HAGEGE GN, 1974, B SOC LINGUISTIQUE P, V69, P287
KAPLAN D, 1977, THEMES KAPLAN
KING J, 2001, COMPLEX DEMONSTRATIV
KRIPKE S, 1980, NAMING NECESSITY
LEWIS D, 1978, PHILOS PAPERS
MAY R, 1985, LOGICAL FORM ITS STR
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
NUNBERG G, 1993, LINGUIST PHILOS, V16, P1
PERRY J, 2001, REFERENCE REFLEXIVIT
PREDELLI S, 2002, DIALECTICA, V56, P3
RUSSELL B, 1918, LOGIC KNOWLEDGE
RUSSELL B, 1919, INTRO MATH PHILOS
SALMON N, 1998, NOUS, V32, P277
VOLTOLINI A, 1994, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V48, P75
WALTON K, 1978, J PHILOS, V75, P5
WALTON K, 1990, MIMESIS MAKE-BELIEVE
WHITSEY M, 2003, LECT NOTES ARTIF INT, V2680, P356
ZALTA E, 1983, ABSTRACT OBJECTS INT
NR 27
TC 0
PU SOC DIALECTICA C/O GEIGER AG BERN
PI BERN 16
PA HABSBURGSTRASSE 19, 3000 BERN 16, SWITZERLAND
SN 0012-2017
J9 DIALECTICA
JI Dialectica
PY 2003
VL 57
IS 2
BP 121
EP 136
PG 16
SC Philosophy
GA 766FD
UT ISI:000188355300003
ER

PT J
AU Mayr, E
TI Fictional terms (model-theoretical semantics)
SO PHILOSOPHISCHES JAHRBUCH
LA German
DT Article
ID OBJECTS; TRUTH
AB How can sentences containing fictional terms be true? There are two standard, diverging answers to this question: the one assumes that there are fictive objects, while the other holds that all apparent reference to nonexistents in these sentences - if they are true - can be paraphrased away. In this paper I propose a new method to paraphrase sentences containing fictional terms, using model-theoretical semantics. Especially, this method enables us to analyse sentences that are apparently about the real properties of fictive objects (like being famous) with the help of sets of criteria that are determined by what is said about the fictive objects in their respective story of origin.
CR BERTOLET R, 1984, SYNTHESE, V60, P413
CARNAP R, MEANING NECESSITY
FREGE G, FUNKTION BEGRIFF BED
GABRIEL G, 1991, LOGIK LIT
INWAGEN PV, 2001, ONTOLOGY IDENTITY MO
KUNNE W, 1982, ABSTRAKTE GEGENSTAND
KUNNE W, 1995, METAPHYS NEUE ZUGANG, P141
LEWIS D, 1978, AM PHILOS Q, V15, P37
MEINONG A, 1972, GESAMTAUSGABE
PARSONS T, 1979, THEOR DECIS, V11, P95
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
PARSONS T, 1982, TOPOI, V1, P81
PHILLIPS JF, 1999, PHILOS STUD, V94, P273
QUINE WVO, LOGICAL POINT VIEW
WILLIAMS CJF, WHAT IS EXISTENCE
NR 15
TC 0
PU VERLAG KARL ALBER
PI FREIBURG
PA HERMANN-HERDER-STR 4, W-7800 FREIBURG, GERMANY
SN 0031-8183
J9 PHIL JAHRB
JI Philos. Jahrb.
PY 2003
VL 110
IS 2
BP 287
EP 310
PG 24
SC Philosophy
GA 744AT
UT ISI:000186606300007
ER

PT J
AU Cantens, BJ
TI Suarez on beings of reason: What kind of beings (entia) are beings of reason, and what kind of being (esse) do they have? (Regarding the metaphysical nature and ontological status of essential existence)
SO AMERICAN CATHOLIC PHILOSOPHICAL QUARTERLY
LA English
DT Article
ID ETERNAL TRUTHS; DESCARTES
C1 Barry Univ, Miami, FL 33161 USA.
RP Cantens, BJ, Barry Univ, Miami, FL 33161 USA.
CR AUGUSTINE, TEACHER
CANTENS BJ, 2000, MODERN SCHOOLMAN, V72, P127
CANTENS BJ, 2000, SAPIENTIA, V55, P25
CRONIN TJ, 1966, OBJECTIVE BEING DESC
DOIG JC, 1977, NEW SCHOLASTICISM, V51, P350
DOYLE JP, 1967, MODERN SCHOOLMAN, V46, P323
DOYLE JP, 1969, MODERN SCHOOLMAN, V46, P219
DOYLE JP, 1969, MODERN SCHOOLMAN, V46, P323
DOYLE JP, 1987, VIVARIUM, V25, P47
DOYLE JP, 1987, VIVARIUM, V26, P51
GRACIA J, 1991, AMER CATH PHILOS Q, V67, P287
GRACIA JE, 1993, AM CATH PHILOS QUART, V67, P349
KING P, 1995, AUGUSTINE TEACHER
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P76
RABADE S, 1960, SUAREZ DISPUT METAFI, V1
RUSSELL B, ON DENOTING
RUSSELL B, 1990, PHILOS LANGUAGE, P203
SUAREZ F, DISPUTATIONES METAPH
SUAREZ F, ON BEINGS OF REASON
WELLS NJ, 1967, MODERN SCHOOLMAN, V45, P49
WELLS NJ, 1979, NEW SCHOLASTICISM, V52, P515
WELLS NJ, 1981, MODERN SCHOOLMAN, V58, P159
WELLS NJ, 1981, MODERN SCHOOLMAN, V58, P73
WELLS NJ, 1983, SUAREZ ESSENCE FINIT
WELLS NJ, 1993, AM CATH PHILOS QUART, V67, P339
WELLS NJ, 1993, AM CATH PHILOS QUART, V67, P513
YELA JF, 1948, PENSAMIENTO, V4, P271
NR 27
TC 0
PU AMER CATHOLIC PHILOSOPHICAL ASSOC
PI BRONX
PA C/O FORDHAM UNIV, BRONX, NY 10458 USA
SN 1051-3558
J9 AMER CATH PHIL QUART
JI Am. Cath. Philos. Q.
PD SPR
PY 2003
VL 77
IS 2
BP 171
EP 187
PG 17
SC Philosophy
GA 719DL
UT ISI:000185188300002
ER

PT J
AU Calan, RD
TI "Relations of ideas" - The basis of the phenomenological synthetic a-priori
SO REVUE DE METAPHYSIQUE ET DE MORALE
LA French
DT Article
AB One suggests the possibility that Hume's relations of ideas must have constituted the bassi of the phenomenological synthetic a priori., in a specific sense: first considered as internal relations, they must have been partially snatched out of the representational context - a legacy of Franz Brentano - being then expressed in terms of ontological structures, relations of essences.
C1 ENSLSH, Lyon, France.
RP Calan, RD, ENSLSH, Lyon, France.
CR BENOIST J, 1997, PHENOMENOLOGIE SEMAN, P51
CHURCH RW, D HUME CRIT ASSESSME, V1, P241
CHURCH RW, 1941, PHILSOPHICAL REV, V4
HUME D, TREATISE HUMAN NATUR, V1
HUSSERL E, RECH LOGIQUES, V5, P248
MEINONG A, 1971, GESAMTAUSGABE, V2, P3
REINACH, 1989, SAMTLICHE WERKE, P67
NR 7
TC 0
PU LIBRAIRIE ARMAND COLIN
PI PARIS
PA 34 BIS RUE DE L UNIVERSITE, 75007 PARIS, FRANCE
SN 0035-1571
J9 REV METAPHYSIQUE MORALE
JI Rev. Metaphys. Morale
PD JUN
PY 2003
IS 2
BP 145
EP 158
PG 14
SC Philosophy
GA 701EM
UT ISI:000184155300003
ER

PT J
AU Kroon, F
TI On pretending that things do not exist: Evans, existence, and existentials
SO DIALOGUE-CANADIAN PHILOSOPHICAL REVIEW
LA English
DT Article
ID NEGATIVE EXISTENTIALS
C1 Univ Auckland, Auckland 1, New Zealand.
RP Kroon, F, Univ Auckland, Auckland 1, New Zealand.
CR CARTWRIGHT RL, 1960, J PHILOS, V57, P629
CASTANEDA HN, 1985, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V25, P3
CHAKRABARTI A, 1997, DENYING EXISTENCE
CRIMMINS M, 1998, PHILOS REV, V107, P1
DEVITT M, 1981, DESIGNATION
DONNELLAN K, 1974, PHILOS REV, V83, P3
EVANS G, 1982, VARIETIES REFERENCE
FREGE G, 1979, POSTHUMOUS WRITINGS
KRIPKE SA, 1973, UNPUB REFERENCE EXIS
KROON F, 1996, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V51, P163
KROON F, 2000, EMPTY NAMES FICTION, P95
MACKIE J, 1976, ARISTOTELIAN SOC P, V50, P247
MEINONG A, 1904, GEGENSTANDSTHEORIE
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
NAKHNIKIAN G, 1957, PHILOS REV, V66, P535
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
ROUTLEY R, 1980, EXPLORING MEINONGS J
SALMON N, 1998, NOUS, V32, P277
SCHIFFER S, 1988, J PHILOS, V85, P33
VANINWAGEN P, 1977, AM PHILOS Q, V14, P299
WALTON KL, 1990, MIMESIS MAKE-BELIEVE
ZALTA E, 1988, INTENSIONAL LOGIC ME
NR 22
TC 0
PU CANADIAN PHILOSOPHICAL ASSOC
PI OTTAWA
PA MORISSET HALL #375, UNIV OTTAWA, OTTAWA, ONTARIO K1N 6N5, CANADA
SN 0012-2173
J9 DIALOGUE-CAN PHIL REV
JI Dialogue-Can. Philos. Rev.
PD SPR
PY 2003
VL 42
IS 2
BP 235
EP 255
PG 21
SC Philosophy
GA 691BW
UT ISI:000183585800002
ER

PT J
AU Plourde, J
TI Alexius Meinong, 'Theory of the Object' (1904) and 'Self-Representation' (1921) - Translated from German with introduction
SO DIALOGUE-CANADIAN PHILOSOPHICAL REVIEW
LA French
DT Book Review
C1 Univ Quebec, Montreal, PQ H3C 3P8, Canada.
RP Plourde, J, Univ Quebec, Montreal, PQ H3C 3P8, Canada.
CR COURTINE JF, 1999, MEINONG THEORIE OBJE
MEINONG A, 1904, GEGENSTANDSTHEORIE
MEINONG A, 1921, SELBSTDARSTELLUNG
MEINONG A, 1999, THEORIE OBJET 1904 P
NR 4
TC 0
PU CANADIAN PHILOSOPHICAL ASSOC
PI OTTAWA
PA MORISSET HALL #375, UNIV OTTAWA, OTTAWA, ONTARIO K1N 6N5, CANADA
SN 0012-2173
J9 DIALOGUE-CAN PHIL REV
JI Dialogue-Can. Philos. Rev.
PD WIN
PY 2003
VL 42
IS 1
BP 164
EP 168
PG 5
SC Philosophy
GA 661PN
UT ISI:000181899100015
ER

PT J
AU Monnoyer, JM
TI Dispositions: should we attribute or reduce them?
SO REVUE DE METAPHYSIQUE ET DE MORALE
LA French
DT Article
AB Dispositions can be of many kinds (physical, artefactual, psychological). In order to analyse those entities, we have to used conditional predicates and expressions. The metaphysical problem stems out of the impossibility of counterfactual conditionals to capture this kind of properties. We have to distinguish between the basis of a disposition and its manifestations but this difference produces new problems. In contemporary terms, this distinction could be denied by a categorial monism and would be modified into the separation between the functional attribute and the strict causal role but then, metaphysical inquiry would be subordinated to a conceptual analysis. It remains then necessary to separate conceptual terms from those types or properties.
CR ARMSTRONG DM, 1969, ANALYSIS, V30, P23
ARMSTRONG DM, 1983, WHAT IS LAW NATURE
ARMSTRONG DM, 1996, DISPOSITIONS DEBATE
ARMSTRONG DM, 1997, WORLD STATE AFFAIRS
ARMSTRONG DM, 2002, IN PRESS STRUCTURE M
BACON J, 1993, ONTOLOGY CAUSALITY M
BARWISE J, 1989, SITUATION IN LOGIC, CH5
BRADDONMITCHELL D, 1996, PHILOS MIND COGNITIO
CARNAP R, 1997, SIGNIFICATION NECESS
FINE K, 1994, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V8
GOODMAN N, 1984, FAITS FICTIONS PREDI
JACKSON F, 1990, PHILOS PHENOMEN RES, V50, P195
JOHANSSON I, 1989, ONTOLOGICAL INVESTIG
KIM J, 1999, METAPHYS ANTHOL
LEWIS D, 1973, COUNTERFACTUALS
LEWIS D, 1999, PAPERS METAPHYS ONTO
LOWE EJ, 1998, POSSIBILITY METAPHYS
LOWE EJ, 2001, METAPHYSICA, V2, P5
MACKIE JL, 1988, SYNTHESE, V34, P351
MARTIN CB, 1993, ONTOLOGY CAUSALITY M, P175
MEINONG AV, 1919, ALLGEMEINES LEHRE DI, V6, P289
MELLOR H, 1974, PHILOS REV, V83, P157
MELLOR H, 2002, IN PRESS STRUCTURE M
MUMFORD S, 1998, DISPOSITIONS
NEF F, 2001, PHILOS AUTRICHIENNE
OSHAUGHNESSEY B, 1970, ANALYSIS, V31, P1
POPPER K, 1973, LOGIK FORSCHUNG
POPPER K, 1990, WORLD PROPENSITIES
PRIOR E, 1985, DISPOSITIONS
QUINE WV, 1960, WORD OBJECT
QUINE WV, 1969, ONTOLOGICAL RELATIVI
QUINE WV, 1974, ROOTS REFERENCE
QUINE WV, 1990, PURSUIT TRUTH
RYLE G, 1949, CONCEPT OF MIND
SAINSBURY M, 1991, LOGICAL FORMS
SHOEMAKER S, 1982, IDENTITY CAUSE MIND
WRIGHT C, 1992, TRUTH OBJECTIVITY
NR 37
TC 0
PU LIBRAIRIE ARMAND COLIN
PI PARIS
PA 34 BIS RUE DE L UNIVERSITE, 75007 PARIS, FRANCE
SN 0035-1571
J9 REV METAPHYSIQUE MORALE
JI Rev. Metaphys. Morale
PD OCT-DEC
PY 2002
IS 4
BP 473
EP 490
PG 18
SC Philosophy
GA 639GA
UT ISI:000180618200003
ER

PT J
AU Spinicci, P
TI Phenomenological objectivity and language pragmatics. The fundamental concepts of Anton Marty's view of language
SO ZEITSCHRIFT FUR SEMIOTIK
LA German
DT Article
AB According to Marty, linguistic form depends both on the psychological nature of meaning and on the real conditions for human communication. Marty believed that a universal and general grammar has to fulfill two different tasks: firstly, it has to bring to light the phenomenological basic structures of our inner (and outer) experience which are expressed by every human language. Secondly, it has to attempt to explain some of the universal language structures resulting from the basic properties of speaking as communicative action. This paper elaborates the latter topic in particular, giving an account of Marty's pragmatic foundation of language.
C1 Univ Milan, I-20122 Milan, Italy.
RP Spinicci, P, Univ Milan, I-20122 Milan, Italy.
EM Paolo.Spinicci@unimi.it
CR AARSLEFF H, 1982, LOCKE SAUSSURE ESSAY
BENFEY T, GESCH SPRACHWISSENSC
BOLZANO B, WISSENSCHAFTSLEHRE
BREAL M, ESSAI SEMANTIQUE SCI
BRENTANO F, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN
BUHLER K, SPRACHTHEORIE
BUHLER K, 1909, GOTTINGISCHE GELEHRT, V171, P947
EGIDI R, 1992, INT BIBLIO OSTERREIC, P23
GABELENTZ GVD, 1901, SPRACHWISSENSCHAFT A
GARDINER AH, 1932, THEORY SPEECH LANGUA
GEIGER L, URSPRUNG SPRACHE
GRICE P, 1971, SEMANTICS
GRIMM J, URSPRUNG SPRACHE
HEYSE KL, 1856, SYSTEM WISSENSCHAFT
HUMBOLDT WV, VERSCHIEDENHEIT MENS
HUSSERL E, AUFSATZE REZENSIONEN
HUSSERL E, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
HUSSERL E, PHILOS ARITHMETIK
KURODA SY, 1973, FDN LANGUAGE, V10, P169
LANDGREBE L, NENNFUNKTION WORTBED
MADVIG JN, KLEINE PHILOLOGISCHE
MARTINAK E, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG
MARTY A, DEDUCTIVE INDUCTIVE
MARTY A, FRAGE GESCH ENTWICKE
MARTY A, PSYCHE SPRACHSTRUKTU
MARTY A, SATZ WORT
MARTY A, SPRACHPHILOS LOGISCH
MARTY A, SPRACHREFLEX NATIVIS
MARTY A, UNTERSUCHUGNEN GRUND
MARTY A, URSPRUNG SPRACHE
MARTY A, VERHALTNIS GRAMMATIK
MARTY A, WERT METHODE ALLGEME
MEINONG AV, ANNAHMEN
MISTELI F, CHARAKTERISTIK HAUPT
MULLER FM, LECTURES SCI LANGUAG
MULLIGAN K, MIND MEANING METAPHY
MUNCH D, INTENTION ZEICHEN UN
PARRET H, 1976, HIST LINGUISTIC THOU, P732
PAUL H, PRINZIPIEN SPRACHGES
RAYNAUD S, A MARTY FILOSOFO LIN
SAUSSURE FD, COURS LINGUISTIQUE G
SCHLEICHER A, DARWINSCHE THEORIE S
SPINICCI P, 1988, RIV STOR FILOS, V2, P307
SPINICCI P, 1991, DISCIPLINE FILOSOFIC, V2, P229
SPINICCI P, 1991, SIGNIFICATO FORMA LI
SPINICCI P, 1992, HIST EPISTEMOLOGIE L, V14, P203
STEINTHAL H, ABRISS SPRACHWISSENS
STEINTHAL H, URSPRUNG SPRACHE
TWARDOWSKY K, LEHRE INHALT GEGENST
WEGENER P, GRUNDFRAGEN SPRACHLE
WHITNEY WD, LANGUAGE STUDY LANGU
WHITNEY WD, ORIENTAL LINGUISTIC
WUNDT W, VOLKERPSYCHOL SPRACH
NR 53
TC 0
PU STAUFFENBURG VERLAG
PI TUBINGEN
PA BRIGITTE NARR GMBH P.O. BOX 2525, D-72015 TUBINGEN, GERMANY
SN 0170-6241
J9 Z SEMIOTIK
JI Z. Semiot.
PY 2001
VL 23
IS 1
BP 39
EP 56
PG 18
SC Humanities, Multidisciplinary
GA 627YR
UT ISI:000179964900004
ER

PT J
AU Raspa, V
TI Signs, shadow-like expression and fictional objects: Meinong's observations of a semiotics of fiction
SO ZEITSCHRIFT FUR SEMIOTIK
LA German
DT Article
AB The aim of this contribution is to apply Meinong's theory of signs to an analysis of literature. The focus lies on words and sentences which, according to Meinong, express fantasy experiences when they occur in literature. He distinguishes between "serious" and "shadow-like" fantasy experiences. The serious ones can be detached from their fictional context, i.e., they are also understandable in other contexts. The shadow-like fantasies, however, are dependent on their fictional contexts. This implies that shadow-like experiences are less specific than serious ones. The objects presented by these experiences or expressions are identical with the meanings of the signs involved. The specificity of the experience is related to the completeness of its object; consequently, objects involved in shadow-like experiences are incomplete. In addition to being incomplete, fictional objects can be defined as non-existent objects of a higher-order, produced by human fantasy. They come into the world through linguistic expression and are tied to the context(s) in which the fantasy has placed them.
C1 Univ Urbino, I-61029 Urbino, Italy.
RP Raspa, V, Univ Urbino, I-61029 Urbino, Italy.
EM v.raspa@uniurb.it
CR BOLZANO B, WISSENSCHAFTSLEHRE V
BRENTANO F, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN
CHISHOLM RM, 1973, REV INT PHILOS, V27
DOLEZEL L, 1998, HETEROCOSMICA FICTIO
DOLLING E, 1998, BRENTANO PUZZLE, P199
DOLLING E, 1998, KODIKAS, V21, P1
DOLLING E, 1999, WAHRHEIT SUCHEN WAHR
DYCHE RE, 1982, PHENOMENOLOGY DIALOG, P229
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
GAETSCHENBERGER R, GRUNDZUGE PSYCHOL ZE
GROSSMANN R, 1974, MEINONG
GUNTHER A, 1987, Z SEMIOTIK, V9, P1
HALLER R, FACTA FICTA
HALLER R, 1983, ERKENNTNIS, V19, P153
HALLER R, 1989, TOPOI, V8, P63
HOFLER A, PHILOS PROPADEUTIK
HUSSERL E, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
LAMBERT K, MEINONG PRINCIPLE IN
LINDENFELD DF, TRANSFORMATION POSIT
LOTZE RH, SYSTEM PHILOS
MARTINAK E, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG
MARTINAK E, 1898, Z OSTERREICHSCHEN GY, V49, P1
MEINONG A, ANNAHMEN
MEINONG A, DTSCH PHILOS GEGENWA
MEINONG A, EMOTIONALE PRASENTAT
MEINONG A, ERFAHRUNGSGRUNDLAGEN
MEINONG A, KOLLEGHEFTE FRAGMENT
MEINONG A, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
MEINONG A, STELLUNG GEGENSTANDS
MEINONG A, 1877, SITZUNGSBERICHTE KAI, V87, P185
MEINONG A, 1889, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V95, P161
MEINONG A, 1899, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V21, P182
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUGNEN GEGEN, P1
MEINONG A, 1968, GESAMTAUSGABE
MORSCHER E, 1973, REV INT PHILOS, V27
PARSONS T, 1975, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V1, P73
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
RASPA V, 1995, STUDI URBINATI B, V67, P115
RASPA V, 1999, IMAGO PHANTASIA DEPI, P339
RASPA V, 1999, IN-CONTRADDIZIONE PR
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P479
SIGWART C, LOGIK
STENDHAL, CHARTREUSE DE PARME
STENDHAL, KARTAUSE VON PARMA
TWARDOWSKI K, LEHRE INHALT GESCH L
VASALLI S, CUORI PIETRA
ZIMMERMANN R, PHILOS PROPAEDEUTIK
NR 47
TC 0
PU STAUFFENBURG VERLAG
PI TUBINGEN
PA BRIGITTE NARR GMBH P.O. BOX 2525, D-72015 TUBINGEN, GERMANY
SN 0170-6241
J9 Z SEMIOTIK
JI Z. Semiot.
PY 2001
VL 23
IS 1
BP 57
EP 77
PG 21
SC Humanities, Multidisciplinary
GA 627YR
UT ISI:000179964900005
ER

PT J
AU Chrudzimski, A
TI From Brentano to Ingarden. Phenomenological theory of meaning
SO HUSSERL STUDIES
LA German
DT Article
C1 Salzburg Univ, A-5020 Salzburg, Austria.
RP Chrudzimski, A, Salzburg Univ, A-5020 Salzburg, Austria.
CR BRENTANO F, LOGIK
BRENTANO F, PSYCHOL ARISTOTELES
BRENTANO F, 1862, MANNIGFACHEN BEDEUTU
BRENTANO F, 1874, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN
BRENTANO F, 1877, ALTE NEUE LOGIK
BRENTANO F, 1889, ABSTRAKTION
BRENTANO F, 1982, DESKRIPTIVE PSYCHOL
CHRUDZIMSKI A, 1998, EDUKACJA FILOSZOFICZ, V25, P249
CHRUDZIMSKI A, 1999, CONCEPTUS, V32, P99
CHRUDZIMSKI A, 1999, ERKENNTNISTHEORIE R
CHRUDZIMSKI A, 1999, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V57, P45
CHRUDZIMSKI A, 2001, DIALECTICA, V55, P119
CHRUDZIMSKI A, 2001, INTENTIONALITATSTHEO
FOLLESDAL D, 1957, HUSSERL FREGE
FOLLESDAL D, 1969, J PHILOS, V66, P680
FREGE G, 1892, Z PHILOS PHILOS KIRI, V1002, P5
FREGE G, 1967, KLEINE SCHRIFTEN
GROSSMAN R, 1947, MEINONG
HOFLER A, 1890, LOGIK
HUSSERL E, EINLEITUNG LOGIK ERK
HUSSERL E, LOGISCHE UNTERSCHUNG
HUSSERL E, PHANOMENOLOGIE INTER
HUSSERL E, VORLESUNGEN BEDEUTUN
HUSSERL E, 1913, IDEEN REINEN PHANOME
HUSSERL E, 1950, CARTESIANISCHE MEDIT
HUSSERL E, 1979, AUFSATZE REZENSIONEN
INGARDEN R, 1931, LIT KUNSTWERK
INGARDEN R, 1965, STREIT EXISTENZ WELT
INGARDEN R, 1992, EINFUHRUNG E HUSSERL
INGARDEN R, 1998, SCHRIFTEN PHANOMENOL
KRIPKE S, 1980, NAMING NECESSITY
KUNG G, 1973, REV METAPHYS, V23, P670
MARTY A, 1884, VJS WISSENSCH PHILOS, V8, P56
MEINONG A, ERFAHRUNGSGRUNDLAGEN
MEINONG A, GEGENSTANDTHEORIE
MEINONG A, 1910, ANNAHMEN
MEINONG A, 1915, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
MELLE U, 1984, HUSSERL EINLEITUNG L
MOHANTY JN, 1974, RES PHENOMENOL, V4, P51
PUTNAM H, 1975, MIND LANGUAGE REALIT
ROMPP G, 1992, HUSSERLS PHANOMENOLO
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P479
SMITH B, 1994, AUSTRIAN PHILOS LEGA
TWARDOWSKI K, 1894, LEHRE INHALT GEGENST
NR 44
TC 0
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA VAN GODEWIJCKSTRAAT 30, 3311 GZ DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0167-9848
J9 HUSSERL STUD
JI Husserl Stud.
PY 2002
VL 18
IS 3
BP 185
EP 208
PG 24
SC Philosophy
GA 610MK
UT ISI:000178963700002
ER

PT J
AU Seuren, PAM
TI The cognitive dimension in language study
SO FOLIA LINGUISTICA
LA English
DT Article
ID LOGIC
AB The main argument of this paper is that language, like cognition, is basically intensional, i.e. expression of thoughts. The philosophical and logical consequences of this view are discussed and partly elaborated. The paper implies a fundamental critique of the study of language during the 20th century, which failed to recognize the essential cognitive (intensional) nature of language. A plea is made for a re-appraisal of late 19th century approaches in philosophy (e.g. Meinong, Stout), which are said to have been on the right track though lacking in formal precision. The 20th century extensional view of logic and language, which goes back to the early 1900s, is subjected to a fundamental critique. The intensional nature of language is shown to have far-reaching consequences for the theory of grammar and meaning. The formal grammatical and semantic theories developed during the 20th century from an extensional point of view are best seen as a prelude to more adequate intensional formal theories.
C1 Max Planck Inst Psycholinguist, NL-6500 AH Nijmegen, Netherlands.
RP Seuren, PAM, Max Planck Inst Psycholinguist, Wundtlaan 1, NL-6500 AH Nijmegen, Netherlands.
CR BARWISE J, 1983, SITUATIONS ATTITUDES
BECH G, 1983, STUDIEN DTSCH VERBUM
BLOOMFIELD L, LANGUAGE
BUHLER K, SPRACHTHEORIE
CHOMSKY N, MINIMALIST PROGRAM
DELBRUCK B, 1901, GRUNDFRAGEN SPRACHFO
DONNELLAN K, 1966, PHILOS REV, V75, P281
DOWTY DR, 1981, INTRO MONTAGUE SEMAN
EVERS A, 1975, THESIS UTRECHT U
FREGE G, 1918, BEITRAGE PHILOS DTSC, V1, P58
GAZDAR G, 1985, GENERALIZED PHRASE S
GROENENDIJK J, 1991, LINGUIST PHILOS, V14, P39
HARRIS M, 1987, HIST DEV AUXILIARIES
HARRIS RA, 1993, LINGUISTICS WARS
HARRIS ZS, 1951, METHODS STRUCTURAL L
HINRICHS EW, 1998, COMPLEX PREDICATES N
HUCK GJ, 1995, IDEOLOGY LINGUISTIC
JOHNSON D, 1997, LINGUIST PHILOS, V20, P273
JOSHI AK, 1987, MATH LANGUAGE
KAMP H, 1981, FORMAL METHODS STUDY, P277
KAMP H, 1993, DISCOURSE LOGIC INTR
KATZ JJ, 1963, LANGUAGE, V39, P170
KATZ JJ, 1964, INTEGRATED THEORY LI
KUTEVA T, 2001, AUXILIATION ENQUIRY
LANDMAN F, 1986, THESIS AMSTERDAM U
LANGACKER RW, 1973, PAPERS HONOR H KAHAN, P468
LANGACKER RW, 1987, FOUNDATIONS COGNITIV, V1
LANGACKER RW, 1991, FOUNDATIONS COGNITIV, V2
LEWIS D, 1979, SEMANTICS DIFFERENT, P172
LINSKY L, 1967, REFERRING
MATHESIUS V, 1964, ACTES 1ER C INT LING, P59
MCCAWLEY JD, 1980, LINGUISTICS, V18, P911
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
MONTAGUE R, 1973, APPROACHES NATURAL L, P221
NEWMEYER FJ, 1980, LINGUISTIC THEORY AM
OGDEN CK, 1923, MEANING MEANING STUD
POLLARD C, 1994, HEAD-DRIVEN PHASE ST
QUINE WV, LOGICAL POINT VIEW
QUINE WV, WORD OBJECT
RAMBOW O, 1994, THESIS U PENN
RUSSELL B, PRINCIPLES MATH
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P530
RUSSELL B, 1957, MIND, V66, P385
SEUREN PAM, UNPUB INTENSIONAL QU
SEUREN PAM, 1972, PREDICATE RAISING DA
SEUREN PAM, 1975, TUSSEN TAAL DENKEN B
SEUREN PAM, 1985, DISCOURSE SEMANTICS
SEUREN PAM, 1998, W LINGUISTICS HIST I
SEUREN PAM, 2000, J LINGUIST, V36, P261
SEUREN PAM, 2001, LINGUIST PHILOS, V24, P531
SEUREN PAM, 2001, VIEW LANGUAGE
SKINNER VF, 1957, VERBAL BEHAV
STAROSTA S, 1971, LEXICAL VARIATION CA
STOUT GF, 1896, ANAL PSYCHOL
STRAWSON PF, 1997, ENTITY IDENTITY
VELTMAN F, 1985, THESIS AMSTERDAM U
WUNDT W, 1901, SPRACHGESCH SPRACHPS
YNGVE VH, 1962, P 1961 INT C MECHANI, V1, P65
NR 58
TC 0
PU WALTER DE GRUYTER & CO
PI BERLIN
PA GENTHINER STRASSE 13, D-10785 BERLIN, GERMANY
SN 0165-4004
J9 FOLIA LINGUIST
JI Folia Linguist.
PY 2001
VL 35
IS 3-4
BP 209
EP 242
PG 34
SC Linguistics; Language & Linguistics
GA 558AL
UT ISI:000175942000001
ER

PT J
AU Tegtmeier, E
TI Meinong's complexes
SO MONIST
LA English
DT Article
C1 Univ Mannheim, Mannheim, Germany.
RP Tegtmeier, E, Univ Mannheim, Mannheim, Germany.
CR BERGMANN G, 1967, REALISM CRITIQUE BRE
GROSSMANN R, 1974, MEINONG
MEINONG A, GEGENSTANDE HOHERER
MEINONG A, 1913, ABHANDLUNGEN ERKENNT
MEINONG A, 1913, PSYCHOL KOMPLEXIONEN
TEGTMEIER E, 1992, GRUNDZUGE KATEGORIAL
NR 6
TC 0
PU HEGELER INST
PI LA SALLE
PA PO BOX 600, LA SALLE, IL 61301 USA
SN 0026-9662
J9 MONIST
JI Monist
PD JAN
PY 2000
VL 83
IS 1
BP 89
EP 100
PG 12
SC Philosophy
GA 547QW
UT ISI:000175344100005
ER

PT J
AU Kroon, FW
TI Parts and pretense
SO PHILOSOPHY AND PHENOMENOLOGICAL RESEARCH
LA English
DT Article
ID MODAL FICTIONALISM; POSSIBLE WORLDS
C1 Univ Auckland, Auckland 1, New Zealand.
RP Kroon, FW, Univ Auckland, Auckland 1, New Zealand.
CR ANSCOMBE E, 1981, COLLECTED PHILOS PAP, V2
BROCK S, 1993, MIND, V102, P147
BUTTERFIELD J, 1985, PHILOS Q, V35, P32
CARLSON GN, 1977, LINGUIST PHILOS, V1, P413
CRIMMINS M, 1998, PHILOS REV, V107, P1
EVANS G, 1982, VARIETIES REFERENCE
FORBES G, 1987, ARISTOTELIAN SOC S, V61
GARRISON J, 1988, ON TRAIL OF ASSASSIN
HALES B, 1995, ANALYSIS, V55, P63
KRIPKE S, 1973, REFERENCE EXISTENCE
KROON F, 2001, PHILOS QUART, V51, P165
KROON FW, 1992, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V52, P499
KROON FW, 1994, PHILOS STUD, V75, P201
LEWIS D, 1955, J PHILOS, V67, P231
LEWIS D, 1986, PLURALITY WORLDS
MEINONG A, UBER ANNAHMEN
MENZIES P, 1994, ANALYSIS, V54, P27
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
PRIEST G, 1994, BEYOND LIMITS THOUGH
QUINE WV, WORD OBJECT
ROSEN G, 1965, ANALYSIS, V55, P67
ROSEN G, 1990, MIND, V99, P327
ROSEN G, 1993, ANALYSIS, V53, P71
VANINWAGEN P, 1990, MATERIAL BEINGS
WALTON K, 1990, MIMESIS MAKE BELIEVE
WALTON K, 1993, EUR J PHILOS, V1, P39
YABLO S, 1998, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC S, V72, P229
ZALTA E, 1988, INTENSIONAL LOGIC ME
NR 28
TC 0
PU PHILOSOPHY PHENOMENOLOGICAL RES
PI PROVIDENCE
PA BROWN UNIV BOX 1947, PROVIDENCE, RI 02912 USA
SN 0031-8205
J9 PHIL PHENOMENOL RES
JI Philos. Phenomenol. Res.
PD NOV
PY 2001
VL 63
IS 3
BP 543
EP 560
PG 18
SC Philosophy
GA 511DR
UT ISI:000173249800003
ER

PT J
AU Mozetic, G
TI Edgar Zilsel's 'Soziologische Bermerkungen zur Philosophie der Gegenwart' from 1930 (Introduction)
SO DEUTSCHE ZEITSCHRIFT FUR PHILOSOPHIE
LA German
DT Article
C1 Graz Univ, Inst Soziol, A-8010 Graz, Austria.
RP Mozetic, G, Graz Univ, Inst Soziol, A-8010 Graz, Austria.
CR BAUER O, WELTBILD KAPITALISMU
BAUER O, 1926, ENTSTEHUNG GENIEBEGR
BOUTROUX E, CONTINGENCE LOI NATU
CONRADMARTIUS H, 1924, REALONTOLOGIE
DVORAK J, 1981, E ZILSEL EINHEIT ERK
HAAS A, 1929, MATERIEWELLEN QUANTE
MEINONG A, 1915, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
STAMMLER R, WIRTSCHAFT RECHT MAT
ZILSEL E, SOZIOLOGISCHE BEMERK
ZILSEL E, 1929, KAMPF, V22, P178
ZILSEL E, 1976, SOZIALEN URSPRUNGE N
ZILSEL E, 1990, GENIERELIG KRITISCHE
ZILSEL E, 1992, WISSENSCHAFT WELTANS
ZILSEL E, 2000, SOCIAL ORIGINS MODER
NR 14
TC 0
PU AKADEMIE VERLAG GMBH
PI BERLIN
PA MUHLENSTRASSE 33-34, D-13187 BERLIN, GERMANY
SN 0012-1045
J9 DEUT Z PHIL
JI Dtsch. Z. Philos.
PY 2001
VL 49
IS 3
BP 439
EP +
PG 0
SC Philosophy
GA 461TX
UT ISI:000170380500008
ER

PT J
AU Modenato, F
TI The incomplete objectives and the principle of the excluded third according to Alexius Meinong
SO RIVISTA DI STORIA DELLA FILOSOFIA
LA Italian
DT Article
CR BERKLEY G, 1949, TREATISE PRINCIPLES, V2, P45
BUJAS R, 1910, SPRACHWISSENSCHAFT G, P177
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONG THEORY OBJEC, P153
HOFLER A, 1890, LOGIK, P102
HUSSERL E, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
JAQUETTE D, 1995, MEINONG CONCEPT IMPL, P239
LENOCI M, 1995, GRAZER PHILOSPHISCHE, P211
LOCKE J, ESSAY HUMAN UNDERSTA
MALLY E, 1912, GEGENSTANDSTHEORETIS, P76
MEINONG A, UBER ANNAHMEN
MEINONG A, 1969, GESAMTAUSGABE, V1, P1
MEINONG A, 1971, GESAMTAUSGABE, V2, P394
MEINONG A, 1972, GESAMTAUSGABE, P58
MEINONG A, 1972, GESAMTAUSGABE, V6, P168
MEINONG A, 1973, GESAMTAUSGABE, V5, P393
MEINONG A, 1973, GESAMTAUSGABE, V5, P63
MEINONG A, 1973, STELLUNG GEGENSTANDS, V5, P326
MEINONG F, 1994, A MEINONG FENOMENO N, P384
MODENATO F, 1991, A MEINONG ASTRATTO U, P541
MODENATO F, 1995, BRENTANO STUDIEN, V6, P248
MODENATO F, 1995, MEINONG THEORY OBJEC, P100
MODENATO F, 1996, RIV STOR FILOS, P40
MODENATO F, 1997, MEINONG HUSSERL OBJE, P144
MODENATO F, 1999, RIV STOR FILOS, P437
NR 24
TC 0
PU FRANCO ANGELI
PI MILAN
PA VIALE MONZA 106, 20127 MILAN, ITALY
SN 0393-2516
J9 RIV STOR FILOS
JI Riv. Stor. Filos.
PY 2001
VL 56
IS 1
BP 64
EP 90
PG 27
SC Philosophy
GA 434PY
UT ISI:000168826100003
ER

PT J
AU Bouveresse, J
TI Representations without objects
SO ETUDES PHILOSOPHIQUES
LA French
DT Article
AB Jacques Bouveresse places Bolzano's work within the framework of the history of Austrian philosophy. He shows how the famous problem of "objectless presentations," which the Brentanian school has much dealt with, originates in the work of the Czech philosopher. He compares the Bolzanian treatment of the problem and the various ones which were attempted among members of the Brentanian school. Eventually, he sheds a light on the specificity of Wittgenstein's position on this question: like Bolzano (but against Brentano), Wittgenstein rejects a psychological interpretation of the problem, but he refuses too (as Brentano does) Bolzano's semantical objectivism.
CR BOLZANO B, WISSENSCHAFTSLEHRE
BRENTANO F, COMMUNICATIONS
BRENTANO F, WAHRHEIT EVIDENZ
HUSSERL E, 1903, OBJETS INTENTIONELS
KRAUS O, 1973, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN
MEINONG A, 1899, GEGENSTANDE HOHERER
SMITH B, 1994, AUSTRIAN PHILOS
NR 7
TC 0
PU PRESSES UNIV FRANCE
PI EVRY CEDEX
PA DEPT DES REVUES 14, AVENUE DU BOIS-DE-L EPINE B P 90, 91003 EVRY CEDEX, FRANCE
SN 0014-2166
J9 ETUD PHIL
JI Etud. Philos.
PD OCT-DEC
PY 2000
IS 4
BP 419
EP 534
PG 116
SC Philosophy
GA 386WP
UT ISI:000166087300006
ER

PT J
AU Brachtendorf, J
TI Frege's discussion with Punjer on "existence" as a predicate ('Dialog mit Punjer')
SO PHILOSOPHISCHES JAHRBUCH
LA German
DT Article
AB Frege's "Dialog mit Punjer" is the earliest document of the analytical discussion on "existence" as a predicate. Frege develops a twofold thesis: singular existential propositions are redundant and, thus, senseless; general existential propositions are well-formed, but claim instantiation of concepts, not existence of objects. Punjer argues forcefully for the necessity of singular existential propositions. It is a considerable weakness of Frege's position that it compels him to declare fictive, non-denoting speech to be a "mere noise." In "Uber Sinn and Bedeutung" Frege distinguishes scientific and poetic speech, thereby correcting his early, over-restricted concept of speech.
CR AYER AJ, 1970, SPRACHE WAHRHEIT LOG
BARNES J, 1972, ONTOLOGICAL ARGUMENT
BROAD CD, 1973, PHILOS RELIG SELECTE, P115
DALFERTH IU, 1984, EXISTENZ GOTTES CHRI
FORGIE JW, 1972, NOUS, V6, P215
FREGE G, AUFZEICHNUNGEN L DAR
FREGE G, BEGRIFF GEGENSTAND
FREGE G, DIALOG MIT PUNJER UB
FREGE G, FUNKTION BEGRIFF BED
FREGE G, GRUNDLAGEN ARITHMETI
FREGE G, GRUNDLANGE GEOMETRIE
FREGE G, 1990, KLEINE SCHRIFTEN
GABRIEL G, 1990, G FREGE SCHRIFTEN LO
GEACH P, 1952, TRANSLATIONS PHILOS
GOMBROCZ WL, 1983, UBER E
HAAPARANTA L, 1985, FREGES DOCTRINE BEIN
HAAPARANTA L, 1986, LOGIC BEING, P269
HINTIKKA J, 1986, LOGIC BEING, P259
KNEALE W, 1949, READINGS PHILOS ANAL, P29
KNUUTTILA S, 1986, LOGIC BEING
LISKE MT, 1998, ALLGEMEINE Z PHILOS, V23, P107
MEINONG A, UBER GEGENSTANDSTHEO
MILLER B, 1975, MIND, V84, P338
MOREWEDGE P, 1982, PHILOS EXISTENCE ANC
OPPY G, 1995, ONTOLOGICAL ARGUMENT
PEARS D, 1967, PHILOS LOGIC, P97
RESCHER N, 1969, ESSAYS PHILOS ANAL, P73
ROHLS J, 1987, THEOLOGIE METAPHYSIK
RUSSELL B, ON DENOTING
RUSSELL B, PHILOS LOGICAL ATOMI
RUSSELL B, PHILOS POLITISCHE AU
RUSSELL B, PRINCIPIA MATHEMATIC
RUSSELL B, 1976, PHILOS LOGISCHEN ATO
SHAFFER J, 1962, MIND, V71, P307
SIMONS P, 1986, GRUNDPROBLEME GROSSE, P113
STUHLMANNLAEISZ R, 1975, FREGE MODERNE GRUNDL, P119
WILLIAMS CJF, 1981, WHAT IS EXISTENCE
NR 37
TC 0
PU VERLAG KARL ALBER
PI FREIBURG
PA HERMANN-HERDER-STR 4, W-7800 FREIBURG, GERMANY
SN 0031-8183
J9 PHIL JAHRB
JI Philos. Jahrb.
PY 2000
VL 107
IS 2
BP 341
EP 357
PG 17
SC Philosophy
GA 373NE
UT ISI:000165294900005
ER

PT J
AU Tappolet, C
TI To the rescue of moral Platonism
SO DIALOGUE-CANADIAN PHILOSOPHICAL REVIEW
LA French
DT Article
ID REALISM
AB Moral platonism, the claim that moral entities are both objective and prescriptive, is generally thought to be a dead end. In an attempt to defend a moderate form of moral platonism or more precisely platonism about values. I first argue that several of the many versions of this doctrine are not committed to ontological extravagances. I then discuss an important objection due to John McDowell and developed by Michael Sith, according to which moral platonism is incoherent. I argue that objectivism is compatible with the claim that certain ways of being aware of vales, namely those involving emotions, are motivating.
C1 Univ Montreal, Montreal, PQ H3C 3J7, Canada.
RP Tappolet, C, Univ Montreal, Montreal, PQ H3C 3J7, Canada.
CR ANDERSON E, 1993, VALUES ETHICS EC
ARMSTRONG DM, 1989, UNIVERSALS OPINIONAT
BLACKBURN S, 1971, ESSAYS QUASI-REALISM, P111
BLACKBURN S, 1984, SPREADING WORD
BLACKBURN S, 1985, ESSAYS QUASI-REALISM, P130
BOYD R, 1988, ESSAYS MORAL REALISM, P181
BROAD CD, 1930, 5 TYPES ETHICAL THEO
BRUNK DO, 1989, MORAL REALISM FDN ET
CANTOSPERBER M, 1996, DICT ETHIQUE PHILOS, P417
CASTANEDA HN, 1957, THINKING DOING
COOPER AA, 1699, INQUIRY VIRTUE MERIT
DANCY J, 1993, MORAL REASONS
DESOUSA R, 1978, RATIONALITY EMOTIONS
EWING AC, 1947, DEFINITION GOOD
FOTO P, 1972, VIRTUES VICES, P157
FRANKENA WK, 1976, PERSPECTIVES MORALIT, P49
GEACH P, 1991, LOGIC ETHICS
GIBBARD A, 1990, WISE CHOICES APT FEE
HACKER PMS, 1987, APPEARANCE REALITY
HALL EW, 1961, OUR KNOWLEDGE FACT V
HARE RM, 1952, LANGUAGE MORALS
HARMAN G, 1984, MORALITY REASON TURT, P27
HARMAN GH, 1975, PHILOS REV, V48, P3
HUME D, TREATISE HUMAN NATUR
HUME D, 1757, STANDARD TASTE OTHER
HURLEY S, 1989, NATURAL REASONS
HUSSERL E, 1913, IDEEN REINEN PHANOME
HUSSERL E, 1988, VORLESUNG ETHIK WERT
HUTCHESON F, 1725, INQUIRY ORIGINAL OUR
JACKSON F, 1992, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V70, P475
JACKSON F, 1995, PHILOS Q, V45, P20
JOHNSTON M, 1989, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, V63, P139
LEMOS NM, 1994, INTRINSIC VALUE CONC
LEWIS D, 1983, PHILOS PAPERS
LOCKE J, 1690, ESSAY HUMAN UNDERSTA
MACKIE JL, 1977, ETHICS INVENTING RIG
MCDOWELL J, 1978, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, V52, P13
MCDOWELL J, 1985, MORALITY OBJECTIVITY, P110
MCGINN C, 1996, J PHILOS, V93, P537
MCNAUGHTON D, 1988, MORAL VISION
MEINONG A, 1917, KAISERLICHE AKAD WIS, V183, P1
MORRE GE, 1922, PHILOS STUD, P253
MULLIGAN K, 1989, UNPUB WIE VERHALTEN
MULLIGAN K, 1995, COULEUR PENSEES RAIS, V6, P65
MULLIGAN K, 1998, MONIST, V81, P161
NAGEL T, 1970, POSSIBILITY ALTRUISM
NOWELLSMITH P, 1957, ETHICS
OGIEN R, 1969, DICT ETHIQUE PHILOS, P1052
OGIEN R, 1999, REALISME
PETTIT P, 1991, MIND, V100, P587
PETTIT P, 1993, COMMON MIND
PETTIT P, 1998, EUROPEAN REV PHILOS, V3, P55
PLATTS M, 1981, REFERENCE TRUTH RELA, P69
RAILTON P, 1986, PHILOS REV, V95, P163
SCANLON TM, 1982, UTILITARIANISM, P103
SCHELER M, 1916, FORMALISMUS ETHIK MA
SIDGWICK H, 1907, METHODS ETHICS
SMITH M, 1994, MORAL PROBLEM
SMITH M, 1995, RATIO, V8, P277
STEVENSON CL, 1937, MIND, V46, P14
STURGEON N, 1984, ESSAYS MORAL REALISM, P229
TAPPOLET C, IN PRESS EMOTIONS VA
TAPPOLET C, 1995, RAISONS PRATIQUES, V6, P237
TAPPOLET C, 1999, REALISME MORAL, P272
THOMSON JJ, 1996, MORAL REALISM MORAL, P67
TOLHURST W, 1990, SO J PHILOS, V29, P67
TOLHURST W, 1995, AM PHILOS Q, V32, P187
VONWRIGHT GH, 1951, MIND, V60, P1
WEDGWOOD R, 1995, EUR J PHILOS, V3, P273
WIGGINS D, 1987, NEEDS VALUES TRUTH
WINCH P, 1965, MONIST, V49, P196
NR 71
TC 0
PU CANADIAN PHILOSOPHICAL ASSOC
PI OTTAWA
PA MORISSET HALL #375, UNIV OTTAWA, OTTAWA, ONTARIO K1N 6N5, CANADA
SN 0012-2173
J9 DIALOGUE-CAN PHIL REV
JI Dialogue-Can. Philos. Rev.
PD SUM
PY 2000
VL 39
IS 3
BP 531
EP 556
PG 26
SC Philosophy
GA 367TF
UT ISI:000090077000006
ER

PT J
AU Cantens, BJ
TI The relationship between God and essences and the notion of eternal truths according to Francisco Suarez
SO MODERN SCHOOLMAN
LA English
DT Article
C1 St John Vianney Coll Seminary, Miami, FL USA.
RP Cantens, BJ, St John Vianney Coll Seminary, Miami, FL USA.
CR CANTENS B, 1999, SUAREZ MEINONG ON BE
CRONIN, 1966, OBJECTIVE BEING DESC
DESCARTES R, 1991, PHILOS WRITINGS DESC, V3, P24
DOIG JC, 1977, NEW SCHOLASTICISM, V51, P350
DOIG JC, 1979, NEW SCHOLASTICISM, V52, P515
DOYLE JP, 1967, MODERN SCHOOLMAN, V45, P29
DOYLE JP, 1967, MODERN SCHOOLMAN, V46, P323
DOYLE JP, 1969, MODERN SCHOOLMAN, V46, P219
DOYLE JP, 1987, VIVARIUM, V25, P47
DOYLE JP, 1987, VIVARIUM, V25, P47
DOYLE JP, 1987, VIVARIUM, V25, P60
DOYLE JP, 1995, SUAREZ ON BEING OF R
GRACIA J, 1992, TOPOI, V11, P113
GRACIA JJE, 1992, TOPOI-INT REV PHILOS, V11, P121
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P76
PLANTINGA A, 1994, NATURE NECESSITY
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P479
SUAREZ F, DE ENTIBUS RATIONIS
SUAREZ F, DISPUTATIONES METAPH
UTRILLA JFY, 1948, PENSAMIENTO, V4, P271
WELLS NJ, 1967, MODERN SCHOOLMAN, V45, P59
WELLS NJ, 1981, MODERN SCHOOLMAN, V58, P159
WELLS NJ, 1981, MODERN SCHOOLMAN, V58, P73
WELLS NJ, 1983, SUAREZ ON ESSENCE OF
WELLS NJ, 1993, AM CATH PHILOS QUART, V67, P513
NR 25
TC 0
PU ST LOUIS UNIV
PI ST LOUIS
PA 221 NORTH GRAND BLVD, ST LOUIS, MO 63103-2097 USA
SN 0026-8402
J9 MOD SCHOOLMAN
JI Mod. Schoolman
PD JAN
PY 2000
VL 77
IS 2
BP 127
EP 143
PG 17
SC Philosophy
GA 330MZ
UT ISI:000087967000002
ER

PT J
AU Voltolini, A
TI Are all alleged possible objects there? (Moderate possibilism)
SO TOPOI-AN INTERNATIONAL REVIEW OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
ID ACTUALISM; THISNESS
C1 Univ E Piedmont, Vercelli, Italy.
RP Voltolini, A, Univ E Piedmont, Vercelli, Italy.
CR ADAMS RM, 1974, NOUS, V8, P211
ADAMS RM, 1979, J PHILOS, V76, P5
ADAMS RM, 1981, SYNTHESE, V49, P3
ALMOG J, 1991, NOUS, V25, P591
ALMOG J, 1996, NOUS, V30, P413
ARMSTRONG D, 1989, COMBINATORIAL THEORY
BARCANMARCUS R, 1985, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V25, P108
BEDFORDNAYLOR M, 1986, ANALYSIS, V46, P28
BRADLEY R, 1989, CANADIAN J PHILOS, V19, P15
CASTANEDA HN, 1989, THINKING LANGUAGE EX, P235
CASTANEDA HN, 1990, THINKING STRUCTURE W, P459
CHISHOLM RM, 1976, PERSON OBJECT
CHISHOLM RM, 1982, J PHILOS, V79, P537
COBURN RC, 1986, MIDW STUDIES PHILOS, V11, P165
FORBES G, 1980, PHILOS STUD, V37, P353
FREGE G, 1967, KLEINE SCHRIFTEN
FREGE G, 1986, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
GEACH PT, 1996, GOD SOUL
KAPLAN D, 1973, APPROACHES NATURAL L, P490
KAPLAN D, 1989, THEMES KAPLAN
KING PJ, 1993, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, V93, P193
LEWIS D, 1968, J PHILOS, V65, P113
LEWIS D, 1973, COUNTERFACTUALS
LEWIS D, 1986, PLURALITY WORLDS
LINSKY B, 1994, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V8, P432
LINSKY B, 1996, PHILOS STUD, V84, P283
LOFFLER W, 1998, ERKENNTNIS, V48, P264
LYCAN W, 1993, ONTOLOGY CAUSALITY M, P3
LYCAN WG, 1990, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, V91, P215
MCMICHAEL A, 1983, PHILOS REV, V92, P49
MEINONG A, 1971, GESAMMELTE ABHANDLUN
NAPOLI E, 1992, INTRO FILOS ANAL LIN, P385
NOONAN H, 1983, MIND, V92, P1
NUTE D, 1998, THOUGHT LANGUAGE ONT, P153
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
PLANTINGA A, 1974, NATURE NECESSITY
PLANTINGA A, 1979, POSSIBLE ACTUAL, P253
PRICE MS, 1982, CANADIAN J PHILOS, V12, P33
QUINE WVO, 1961, LOGICAL POINT VIEW
ROSENKRANTZ G, 1984, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V22, P127
ROSENKRANTZ G, 1985, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V25, P197
RUSSELL B, 1937, PRINCIPLES MATH
SALMON N, 1987, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V1, P49
SALMON N, 1998, NOUS, V32, P277
SALMON NU, 1982, REFERENCE ESSENCE
SIMONS P, 1990, PHILOS LOGIC CENTRAL, P159
TOMBERLIN JE, 1994, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V8, P459
TONBERLIN JE, 1996, PHILOS STUD, V48, P263
VOLTOLINI A, 1991, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V41, P1
VOLTOLINI A, 1994, ACTA ANAL, V13, P65
WILLIAMSON T, 1990, WITTGENSTEIN RE-EVAL, P168
WILLIAMSON T, 1998, ERKENNTNIS, V48, P257
YAGISAWA T, 1988, PHILOS STUD, V53, P175
ZALTA EN, 1988, INTENSIONAL LOGIC ME
NR 54
TC 0
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0167-7411
J9 TOPOI-INT REV PHIL
JI Topoi-Int. Rev. Philos.
PD SEP
PY 2000
VL 19
IS 2
BP 209
EP 219
PG 11
SC Philosophy
GA 348ZB
UT ISI:000089015400011
ER

PT J
AU Rovira, R
TI Paradoxical quiddities: On the contribution of Antonio Millan-Puelles to the classical doctrine of entities of reason
SO PENSAMIENTO
LA Spanish
DT Article
C1 Univ Complutense Madrid, Fac Filosofia, E-28040 Madrid, Spain.
RP Rovira, R, Univ Complutense Madrid, Fac Filosofia, E-28040 Madrid, Spain.
CR AQUINAS T, SUMMA THEOLOGIAE
ARAUJO FD, COMMENTARIORUM UNIVE
ARISTOTLE, ANALYTICA POSTERIORA
BRENTANO F, ABKEHR NICHTREALEN
GREDT J, ELEMENTA PHILOSOPHIA
HUSSERL E, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
MEINONG A, GEGENSTANDSTHEORIE
MILLANPUELLES A, TEORIA OBJETO PURO
PALACIOS LE, FILOS SABER
SUAREZ F, DISPUTACIONES METAPH
WOLFF C, PHILOSOPHIA PRIMA SI
NR 11
TC 0
PU CENT LOYOLA ESTUD COMUN SOC
PI MADRID
PA PABLO ARANDA 3, 6 MADRID, SPAIN
SN 0031-4749
J9 PENSAMIENTO
JI Pensamiento
PD MAY-AUG
PY 2000
VL 56
IS 215
BP 265
EP 284
PG 20
SC Philosophy
GA 316RH
UT ISI:000087181500004
ER

PT J
AU Koyre, A
Zambelli, P
TI Insolubilia, a logical study of the bases of set theory (edition of a previously unpublished dissertation)
SO GIORNALE CRITICO DELLA FILOSOFIA ITALIANA
LA German
DT Article
CR FRIES JF, 1811, SYSTEM LOGIK, P245
GIANNANTONI G, 1997, SCUOLE SOCRATICHE MI, P46
HESSENBERG, GRUNDBEGRIFFE MENGEN
HUSSERL E, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN, P544
MOLINE J, 1969, MIND, V78, P393
RABELAIS F, GARGANTUA
RABELAIS F, 1955, OEUVRES COMPLETES, P75
REINACH, THEORIE NEGATIVEN UR
RUSTOW A, 1910, LUGNER
SAVONAROLA G, 1982, OPERE FILOSOFICHE, V1, P152
URBACH B, 1910, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V140, P81
NR 12
TC 0
PU CASA EDITRICE G C SANSONI SPA
PI FLORENCE
PA VIA BENEDETTO VARCHI 47, 50100 FLORENCE, ITALY
SN 0017-0089
J9 G CRIT FILOS ITAL
JI G. Crit. Filos. Ital.
PD SEP-DEC
PY 1999
VL 19
IS 3
BP 323
EP 354
PG 32
SC Philosophy
GA 279XJ
UT ISI:000085070100002
ER

PT J
AU Modenato, F
TI The objective of factuality according to Alexius Meinong
SO RIVISTA DI STORIA DELLA FILOSOFIA
LA Italian
DT Article
CR BRENTANO F, 1971, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN, V2, P48
BRENTANO F, 1974, WAHRHEIT EVIDENZ, P26
BRENTANO F, 1976, PHILOS UNTERSUCHUNGE, P126
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONG THEORY OBJEC, P337
GROSSMANN R, 1965, STRUCTURE MIND, P169
GROSSMANN R, 1974, MEINONG, P118
HUSSERL E, 1922, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN, V2, P402
HUSSERL E, 1968, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN, V2, P450
JACKSON R, 1934, MIND, P380
LENOCI M, TEORIA CONOSCENZA A, P165
LENOCI M, 1972, TEORIA CONOSCENZA AL, P158
MAREK JC, 1995, GEGENSTANDE INHALT I, P341
MARTY A, 1908, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GRUND, P314
MEINONG A, ERFAHRUNGSGRUNDLAGEN
MEINONG A, GEGENSTANDE HOHERER
MEINONG A, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
MEINONG A, STELLUNG GEGENSTANDS
MEINONG A, UBER ANNAHMEN
MEINONG A, UBER ERFAHRUNGSGRUND
MEINONG A, UBER GEGENSTANDSTHEO
MEINONG A, UBER STELLUNG GEGENS
MEINONG A, UBER URTEILSGEFUHLE
MEINONG A, 1969, GESAMTAUSGABE, V1, P590
MODENATO F, 1979, COSCIENZA ESSERE F B, P283
MODENATO F, 1993, METAFISICA MODERNITA, P221
MODENATO F, 1994, A MEINONG FENOMENO N, P361
MODENATO F, 1995, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, P91
MODENATO F, 1996, AXIOMATES, P43
MODENATO F, 1996, BRENTANO STUDIEN, V6, P245
MODENATO F, 1996, RIV STOR FILOS, P35
MODENATO F, 1997, AXIOMATES, P150
RADAKOVIC M, 1952, MEINONG-GEDENKSCHRIF, P106
RUSSELL B, NATURE TRUTH FALSEHO
RUSSELL B, 1904, MIND, P523
RUSSELL B, 1910, PHILOS ESSAYS, P176
SPINICCI P, 1985, PENSIERI ESPERIENZA, P70
NR 36
TC 0
PU FRANCO ANGELI
PI MILAN
PA VIALE MONZA 106, 20127 MILAN, ITALY
SN 0393-2516
J9 RIV STOR FILOS
JI Riv. Stor. Filos.
PY 1999
VL 54
IS 3
BP 437
EP 464
PG 28
SC Philosophy
GA 279DN
UT ISI:000085029100003
ER

PT J
AU Gaidenko, PP
TI Metaphysics of concrete all-unity, or, absolute realism of S.L. Frank
SO VOPROSY FILOSOFII
LA Russian
DT Article
CR ALEKSEEV SA, 1914, MYSL DEISTVITELNOST
ANGELUS SILESIU., CHERUBINISCHER WANDE
ARISTOTLE, FIZIKA
BERGSON H, ESSAIS DONNEES IMMED
BERGSON H, EVOLUTION CREATRICE
BERGSON H, MATIERE MEMOIRE
BERGSON H, VREMYA SVOBODA VOLI
BINSWANGER HP, VOSPOMINANIYA SL FRA
DESCARTES R, 1950, IZBRANNYE PROIZVEDEN
EVLAMPIEV II, 1995, FRANK PREDMET ZNANIY, P15
FRANK SL, DUKHOVNYE OSNOVY OBS
FRANK SL, DUSHA CHELOVEKA
FRANK SL, ERES UTOPIZMA KRITIK
FRANK SL, NEPOSTIZHIMOE
FRANK SL, PREDMET ZNANIYA DUSH
FRANK SL, PREDMET ZNANIYA
FRANK SL, REALNOST CHELOVEK ME
FRANK SL, RUSSKOE MIROVOZZRENI
FRANK SL, VVEDENIE FILOSOFIYU
FRANK SL, 1908, RUSSKAYA MYSL, V6
FRANK SL, 1913, RUSSKAYA MYSL, V3
FRANK SL, 1914, RUSSKAYA MYSL, V4
FRANK SL, 1928, PUT, V12
GANDILLAC MD, 1943, BIBLIOTHEQUE PHILOS, P179
GLOY K, 1984, PHILOS JB, V91, P290
HEGEL GWF, ENTSIKLOPEDIIA FILOS
HEIDEGGER M, SEIN UND ZEIT
ILIN VN, 1954, SB PAMYATI SL FRANKA, P85
KANT I, KRITIKA CHISTOGO RAZ
LOSSKY N, TEORIYA ZNANIYA SL F
LOSSKY N, 1919, OSNOVNYE VOPROSY GEN
LOSSKY NO, ISTORIYA RUSSKOI FIL
MEINONG A, 1906, ERFAHRUNGSGRUNDLAGEN
MELIS G, 1912, LOGOS
NICHOLAS CUSA, SOCHINENIYA
PLATO, PARMENID
PLOTINUS, ENNEADY
PROCLUS, PERVOOSNOVY TEOLOGII
RILKE RM, STUNDENBUCH
RILKE RM, 1965, LIRIKA
SCHELER M, 1919, UMSTURZ WERTE, V2
SCHULZ H, 1923, FICHTE VERTRAULICHEN
SOLOVEV SM, RUSSIE EGLISE UNIVER
SOLOVEV VS, SOBRANIE SOCHINENII, V3
STEPUN F, LOGOS 1911-1912
TYUTCHEV FI, TENI SIZYE SMESILIS
TYUTCHEV FI, 1966, LIRIKA, V1
ZENKOVSKII VV, ISTORIYA RUSSKOI FIL
NR 48
TC 0
PU MEZHDUNARODNAYA KNIGA
PI MOSCOW
PA 39 DIMITROVA UL., 113095 MOSCOW, RUSSIA
SN 0042-8744
J9 VOP FILOS
JI Vopr. Filos.
PY 1999
IS 5
BP 114
EP 150
PG 37
SC Philosophy
GA 257EK
UT ISI:000083769400011
ER

PT J
AU Owens, D
TI The authority of memory (Belief, epistemology, reason)
SO EUROPEAN JOURNAL OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
C1 Univ Sheffield, Dept Philosophy, Sheffield S10 2TN, S Yorkshire, England.
RP Owens, D, Univ Sheffield, Dept Philosophy, Sheffield S10 2TN, S Yorkshire, England.
CR ADLER J, 1996, ANALYSIS, V56, P80
BACH K, 1985, MONIST, V68, P246
BRATMAN M, 1987, INTENTIONS PLANS PRA
BURGE T, 1993, PHILOS REV, V102, P457
BURGE T, 1997, PHILOS STUD, V86, P21
CHISHOLM R, 1977, THEORY KNOWLEDGE
CHRISTENSEN D, 1997, PHILOS STUD, V86, P1
DENNETT D, 1991, FUTURE FOLK PSYCHOL
DESCARTES R, PHILOS WRITINGS
DUMMETT M, 1992, SEAS LANGUAGE
FIRTH R, 1981, P ADDRESSES AM PHILO, V55, P5
FOLEY R, 1993, WORKING WITHOUT NET
FOSTER J, 1985, AJ AYER
GOLDMAN A, 1988, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V2
HARMAN G, 1973, THOUGHT
HARMAN G, 1986, CHANGE VIEW
LOCKE J, 1975, ESSAY HUMAN UNDERSTA
MALCOLM N, 1963, KNOWLEDGE CERTAINTY
MCDOWELL J, 1998, MEANING KNOWLEDGE RE
MEINONG A, 1973, EMPIRICAL KNOLWEDGE
MORAN R, 1997, EUR J PHILOS, V5, P141
OWENS D, 1996, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V54, P319
OWENS D, 2000, REASON WITHOUT FREED
PEACOCKE C, 1986, THOUGHTS ESSAY CONTE
PINK T, 1996, PSYCHOL FREEDOM
PLANTINGA A, 1993, WARRANT PROPER FUNCT
POLLOCK J, 1974, KNOWLEDGE JSUTIFICAT
POLLOCK J, 1986, CONT THEORIES KNOWLE
RAZ J, 1975, PRACTICAL REASON NOR
VANFRAASSEN BC, 1984, J PHILOS, V81, P235
VELLEMAN J, 1989, PRACTICAL REFLECTION
NR 31
TC 0
PU BLACKWELL PUBL LTD
PI OXFORD
PA 108 COWLEY RD, OXFORD OX4 1JF, OXON, ENGLAND
SN 0966-8373
J9 EUR J PHILOS
JI Eur. J. Philos.
PD DEC
PY 1999
VL 7
IS 3
BP 312
EP 329
PG 18
SC Philosophy
GA 261ZR
UT ISI:000084041700002
ER

PT J
AU Benoist, J
TI Is there something beyond psychology?
SO REVUE PHILOSOPHIQUE DE LA FRANCE ET DE L ETRANGER
LA French
DT Article
C1 Univ Paris 01, F-75231 Paris 05, France.
RP Benoist, J, Univ Paris 01, F-75231 Paris 05, France.
CR BENOIST J, 1997, PHENOMENOLOGIE SEMAN
BIEMEL W, 1976, CRISE SCI EUROPEENNE
BOLZANO B, 1873, WISSENSCHAFTSLEHRE
BOUVERESSE J, 1987, MYTHE INTERIORITE
CAVELL S, 1976, MUST WE MEAN WHAT WE
COFFA A, 1991, SEMANTIC TRADITION K
DEUMMETT M, 1991, FREGE OTHER PHILOS
DIAMOND C, 1991, REALISTIC SPIRIT
ENGEL P, 1996, PHILOS PSYCHOLOGIE
ENGLISH J, 1975, ARTICLES LOGIQUE
FISETTE D, 1994, LECTURE FREGEENNE PH
FRANCK D, 1989, CRITIQUE MAR, V502
HOLZHEY H, 1986, COHEN NATORP
HUSSERL E, BRIEFWECHSEL
HUSSERL E, EINLEITUNG LOGIK ERK
HUSSERL E, LOGIQUE FORMELLE LOG
HUSSERL E, PROLEGOMENES
HUSSERL E, RECHERCHES LOGIQUES
HUSSERL E, 1979, AUFSATZE REZENSIONEN
JOUMIER L, 1998, HUSSERL INTRO LOGIQU
KUSCH M, 1995, PSYCHOLOGISM CASE ST
LAUGIER S, 1992, ANTHR LOGIQUE QUINE
LAX J, 1993, BOLZANO CRITIQUE KAN
LESSING HU, 1985, DILTHEY JB, V3, P228
MEINONG A, GEGENSTANDSTHEORIE
MELLE U, 1995, BRENTANO STUDIEN, V6, P103
NATORP P, 1910, KANTSTUDIEN, V6
PEIRCE CS, 1906, PHANEROSCOPY
PICARDI E, 1996, FREGE IMPORTANCE LEG, P307
PICARDI E, 1997, EUR J PHILOS, V5, P162
QUINE WVO, 1977, RELATIVITE ONTOLOGIE
NR 31
TC 0
PU PRESSES UNIV FRANCE
PI EVRY
PA DEPT DES REVUES 14, AVENUE DU BOIS-DE-L'EPINE B.P. 90, 91003 EVRY, FRANCE
SN 0035-3833
J9 REV PHIL FRAN ETRANG
JI Rev. Philos. Fr. Etrang.
PD JUL-SEP
PY 1999
VL 124
IS 3
BP 345
EP 361
PG 17
SC Philosophy
GA 247QA
UT ISI:000083230400005
ER

PT J
AU Centi, B
TI Kant and Johann Friedrich Herbart, mathematics and psychology in the works of Ernst Mach
SO GIORNALE CRITICO DELLA FILOSOFIA ITALIANA
LA Italian
DT Article
CR BENEKE FE, 1842, SYSTEM LOGIK KUNSTLE, V2, P141
BLACKMORE J, 1992, E MACH DEEPER LOOK D, P111
BLACKMORE JT, 1988, E MACH WIRK WIRKUNG, P465
BONAMEYER J, 1870, KANT PSYCHOL DARGEST
BRENTANO F, 1988, UBER E MACH ERKENNTN, P40
CANTOR G, 1883, GRUNDLAGEN ALLGEMEIN
CASSIRER E, 1958, STOR FILOS MODERNA, V4, P65
DELIA A, 1968, E MACH MECCANICA SUO
FEYERABEND PK, 1988, E MACH WIRK WIRKUNG, P446
FRIES JF, 1819, SYSTEM LOGIK
FRIES JF, 1979, SCHRIFTEN ANGEWANDTE, P11
HALLER R, 1988, E MACH WERK WIRKUNG, P74
HOFFMANN D, 1991, E MACH STUDIEN DOKUM
KANT I, KRITIK REINEN VERNUN
KANT I, 1967, CRITICA RAGION PURA, P84
LEINFELLNER W, 1988, E MACH WIRK WIRKUNG, P127
MACH E, 1883, MECHANIK IHRE ENTWIC
MACH E, 1896, POPULARWISSENSCHAFTL, P117
MACH E, 1906, ANAL EMPFINDUNGEN VE, P7
MACH E, 1906, ERKENNTNIS IRRTUM, P12
MACH E, 1975, ANAL SENSAZIONI RAPP, P42
MACH E, 1990, LETTURE SCI POPOLARI, P92
MEINONG A, 1877, SITZUNGSBER KAISERLI, V87, P184
PETTOELLO R, 1992, POVERO DIAVOLO EMPIR, P178
POGGI S, 1977, SISTEMI ESPERIENZA, P409
POGGI S, 1992, PROBLEMI PSICOLOGIA, V38, P659
RICKERT H, 1902, GRENZEN NATURWISSENS, R4
RIEHL A, PHILOS KRITIZISMUS S
STADLER F, 1988, E MACH WERK WIRKUNG, P12
SWOBODA WW, 1988, E MACH WIRK WIRKUNG, P385
WAGNER R, HANDWORTERBUCH PHYSI
WEBER EH, 1852, RAUMSINN EMPFINDUNGS
WOLTERS G, 1990, INTERSEZIONI, V10, P325
NR 33
TC 0
PU CASA EDITRICE G C SANSONI SPA
PI FLORENCE
PA VIA BENEDETTO VARCHI 47, 50100 FLORENCE, ITALY
SN 0017-0089
J9 G CRIT FILOS ITAL
JI G. Crit. Filos. Ital.
PD SEP-DEC
PY 1997
VL 17
IS 3
BP 446
EP 460
PG 15
SC Philosophy
GA ZB534
UT ISI:000072482200006
ER

PT J
AU Yagisawa, T
TI A somewhat Russellian theory of intensional contexts
SO NOUS
LA English
DT Article
ID BELIEF
C1 Calif State Univ Northridge, Northridge, CA 91330 USA.
RP Yagisawa, T, Calif State Univ Northridge, Northridge, CA 91330 USA.
CR ALMOG J, 1988, THEMES KAPLAN
ARNAUD R, 1976, NOUS, V10, P69
AUSTIN D, WHATS MEANING THIS P
BACH K, THOUGHT REFERENCE
BENACERRAF P, 1965, PHILOS REV, V74, P47
BLACKBURN S, 1975, MEANING REFERENCE NE, P182
BOER S, KNOWING WHO
CARGILE J, 1972, NOTRE DAME J FORM L, V13, P105
CARNAP R, MEANING NECESSITY
CASTANEDA HN, 1967, AM PHILOS Q, V4, P85
CASTANEDA HN, 1968, J PHILOS, V65, P439
CHANDLER H, 1976, ANAL, V36, P106
CHISHOLM RM, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
CHURCH A, 1950, ANALYSIS, V10, P97
CHURCH A, 1954, PHILOS STUD, V5, P65
CRESSWELL MJ, STRUCTURED MEANINGS
DAVIDSON D, 1968, SYNTHESE, V19, P130
DAVIDSON D, 1972, SEMANTICS NATURAL LA
DAVIDSON D, 1991, PHILOS ISSUES, V1
DAVIES M, MEANING QUANTIFICATI
KAPLAN D, DEMONSTRATIVES
KRIPKE S, 1979, MEANING USE, P239
KRIPKE S, 1979, MEANING USE, P239
KRIPKE SA, NAMING NECESSITY
LEWIS D, PLURALITY WORLDS
LEWIS D, 1972, SEMANTICS NATURAL LA, P169
LEWIS D, 1974, SYNTHESE, V23, P331
LEWIS D, 1979, PHILOS REV, V88, P513
LINSKY L, 1952, SEMANTICS PHILOS LAN
LOUX MJ, 1979, POSSIBLE ACTUAL READ
LYCAN W, 1979, POSSIBLE ACTUAL READ, P274
LYCAN WG, 1972, ANAL, V33, P138
MARGALIT A, 1979, MEANING USE
MATES B, 1950, U CALIF PUBL PHILOS, V25
MCDOWELL J, 1980, REFERENCE TRUTH REAL, P206
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
NEALE S, DESCRIPTIONS
PARSONS T, NON-EXISTENT OBJECTS
PERRY J, 1979, NOUS, V13, P3
PLATTS M, WAYS MEANING INTRO P
PLATTS M, 1980, REFERENCE TRUTH REAL
QUINE WV, MATHEMATICAL LOGIC
RICHARD M, PROPOSITIONAL ATTITU
RICHARD M, 1983, J PHILOS LOGIC, V12, P425
RICHARD M, 1992, PHILOS STUD, V65, P37
RICHARD M, 1993, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V7
RIEBER S, 1992, ANALYSIS, V52, P224
SALMON N, FREGES PUZZLE
SALMON N, REFERENCE ESSENCE
SALMON N, 1984, ANALYSIS, V44, P114
SALMON N, 1986, MIDWEST STUD PHILOS, V11, P75
SALMON N, 1989, PHILOS REV, V98, P3
SALMON N, 1994, VERY POSSIBILIT 0411
SALMON N, 1995, NOUS, V29, P1
SCHIFFER S, REMNANTS MEANING
SELLARS W, 1954, PHILOS REV, V63, P197
SOAMES S, 1989, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V3, P575
STALNAKER R, INQUIRY
TASCHEK WW, 1990, J PHILOS, P38
TOMBERLIN JE, 1989, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V3
TOMBERLIN JE, 1993, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V7
VILLANUEVA E, 1991, PHILOS ISSUES
YAGISAWA T, 1988, ERKENNTNIS, V53, P175
ZALTA EN, INTENSIONAL LOGIC ME
NR 64
TC 0
PU BLACKWELL PUBLISHERS
PI MALDEN
PA 350 MAIN STREET, STE 6, MALDEN, MA 02148 USA
SN 0029-4624
J9 NOUS
JI Nous
PY 1997
SU Suppl. S
BP 43
EP 82
PG 40
SC Philosophy
GA YT290
UT ISI:000071585900003
ER

PT J
AU Graves, PR
TI Reference and imperfective paradox
SO PHILOSOPHICAL STUDIES
LA English
DT Article
CR CHISHOLM RM, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
DEVITT M, 1981, DESIGNATION
FREGE G, 1892, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V100, P25
GEACH PT, 1952, TRANSLATIONS PHILOS
KRIPKE SA, 1980, NAMING NECESSITY
LEWIS D, 1973, J PHILOS LOGIC, V2
MEINONG A, 1904, THEORY OBJECTS
RUSSELL B, 1903, PRINCIPLES MATH
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P479
SEARLE J, 1958, MIND, V57, P166
STALNAKER R, 1968, STUDIES LOGICAL THEO
TARSKI A, 1933, PROJECIE PRAWDY JEZY
TARSKI A, 1956, LOGIC SEMANTICS META
NR 13
TC 0
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0031-8116
J9 PHIL STUD
JI Philos. Stud.
PD OCT
PY 1997
VL 88
IS 1
BP 81
EP 101
PG 21
SC Philosophy
GA XW519
UT ISI:A1997XW51900005
ER

PT J
AU MODENATO, F
TI MEINONG,ALEXIUS - INTENTION AND EXTERNAL PERCEPTION
SO RIVISTA DI STORIA DELLA FILOSOFIA
LA Italian
DT Proceedings Paper
CT Conference on Meinong and His School - A Meinong, How to Get Into Touch With Things
CY DEC 09-10, 1994
CL TRENT, ITALY
CR BIEMEL W, 1956, PHILOS PHENOMENOL RE, P295
BRENTANO F, 1973, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN, V1, P112
BUJAS R, 1910, VERHANDLUNGEN 50 VER, P177
FANO V, 1993, FILOS EVIDENZA, P69
FINDLAY JN, 1972, EINIGE HAUPTPUNKTE M, P21
GRIFFIN N, 1985, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, P380
HUSSERL E, ANAL PASSIVEN SYNTHE
HUSSERL E, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
HUSSERL E, 1950, HUSSERLIANA, V3, P79
KUNG G, NOEMA GEGENSTAND
LENOCI M, 1972, TEORIA CONOSCENZA A, P244
LINDENFELD DF, 1980, TRANSFORMATION POSIT, P158
MALLY E, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN, P127
MEINONG A, GEGENSTANDE HOHERER
MEINONG A, HUME-STUDIEN
MEINONG A, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
MEINONG A, PSYCHOL ETHISCHE UNT
MEINONG A, UBER ANNAHMEN
MEINONG A, 1973, GESAMTAUSGABE, V5, P478
MODENATO F, 1993, METAFISICA MODERNITA, P221
MODENATO F, 1994, A MEINONG FENOMENO N, P361
MODENATO, 1991, ETHOS CULTURA, P527
RUSSELL B, 1904, MIND, P521
SPINICCI P, 1985, PENSIERI ESPERIENZA, P48
NR 24
TC 0
PU FRANCO ANGELI
PI MILAN
PA VIALE MONZA 106, 20127 MILAN, ITALY
SN 0393-2516
J9 RIV STOR FILOS
JI Riv. Stor. Filos.
PY 1996
VL 51
IS 1
BP 29
EP 57
PG 29
SC Philosophy
GA UZ669
UT ISI:A1996UZ66900002
ER

PT J
AU WITHERALL, A
TI FLIGHTS OF IMAGINATION
SO PHILOSOPHICAL FORUM
LA English
DT Article
CR HUSSERL E, IDEAS
KANT I, CRITIQUE PURE REASON
MEINONG A, 1910, UBER ANNAHMEN
MURDOCH I, 1992, METAPHYSICS GUIDE MO
REYNOLDS SL, 1989, NOUS, V23, P616
ROUTLEY R, 1980, EXPLORING MEINONGS J
TWARDOWSKI K, 1977, CONTENT OBJECT PRESE
WHITE AR, 1990, LANGUAGE IMAGINATION
NR 8
TC 0
PU PHILOSOPHICAL FORUM INC BARUCH COLL-CUNY
PI NEW YORK
PA 17 LEXINGTON AVE PO BOX 239, NEW YORK, NY 10010
SN 0031-806X
J9 PHIL FOR
JI Philos. Forum
PD SPR
PY 1996
VL 27
IS 3
BP 269
EP 286
PG 18
SC Philosophy
GA UR896
UT ISI:A1996UR89600004
ER

PT J
AU MISKIEWICZ, W
TI THE HUSSERLIAN CONCEPT OF REPRESENTATION
SO ARCHIVES DE PHILOSOPHIE
LA French
DT Article
DE PHENOMENOLOGY; NATURALIZATION; REPRESENTATION; REPRESENTATIONAL PARADIGM; INTENTIONALITY; CONTENTS OF CONSCIOUSNESS; SUBSTANCE OF CONSCIOUSNESS
CR BANCHETTI MP, 1993, HUSSERL STUDIES, V10
COBBSTEVENS R, HUSSERL ANAL PHILOS
DARWIN C, ORIGINE ESPECES
DREYFUS H, 1972, LIFE WORLD CONSCIOUS
DREYFUS H, 1991, ETUDES PHILOS 1
DREYFUS HL, HUSSERL INTENTIONALI
EMBREE LE, 1972, LIFE WORLD CONSCIOUS
ENGLISH J, 1993, HUSSERL-TWARDOWSKI O
FOLLESDAL D, HUSSERL FREGE
GIBSON AB, PHILOS DESCARTES
GIBSON JJ, ECOLOGICAL APPROACH
HUSSERL E, ARTICLES LOGIQUE 189
HUSSERL E, HUSSERLIANA, V10
HUSSERL E, HUSSERLIANA, V19
HUSSERL E, HUSSERLIANA, V2
HUSSERL E, HUSSERLIANA, V22
HUSSERL E, HUSSERLIANA, V26
HUSSERL E, HUSSERLIANA, V27
HUSSERL E, IDEE PHENOMENOLOGIE
HUSSERL E, LECONS PHENOMENOLOGI
HUSSERL E, LOGIQUE FORMELLE LOG
HUSSERL E, RECHERCHES LOGIQUES, V1
HUSSERL E, RECHERCHES LOGIQUES, V2
HUSSERL E, RECHERCHES LOGIQUES, V3
LEVINAS E, DECOUVRANT EXISTENCE
MATURANA HR, TREE KNOWLEDGE
MCINTYRE R, 1987, J PHILOS, V84
MCINTYRE R, 1991, ETUDES PHILOS 1
MEINONG A, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
MISKIEWICZ W, 1994, REV METAPHYS MORALE, V3, P345
MOHANTY JN, HUSSERL FREGE
NATORP P, ALLGEMEINE PSYCHOL
RABANAQUE LR, 1993, HUSSERL STUDIES, V10
SALANSKIS JM, 1993, INTELLECTICA 2
SOKOLOWSKI R, 1987, J PHILOS, V84
STEWARD J, 1992, INTELLECTICA 16
STUMPF C, PSYCHOL URSPRUNG RAU
VARELA F, AUTONOMIE CONNAISSAN
WUNDT, F PSYCHOL PHYSIOLOGI
NR 39
TC 0
PU EDITIONS BEAUCHESNE
PI PARIS
PA 72 RUE DES SAINTS-PERES, 75007 PARIS, FRANCE
SN 0003-9632
J9 ARCH PHIL
JI Arch. Philos.
PD OCT-DEC
PY 1995
VL 58
IS 4
BP 617
EP 630
PG 14
SC Philosophy
GA TN013
UT ISI:A1995TN01300008
ER

PT J
AU KANITSCHEIDER, B
TI THE IMAGE OF MAN AND THE PERSPECTIVES OF SCIENTIFIC PROGRESS FOR THE FUTURE
SO FOLIA HUMANISTICA
LA Spanish
DT Article
RP KANITSCHEIDER, B, UNIV GIESSEN,W-6300 GIESSEN,GERMANY.
CR CARRASCOSA JL, 1992, QUIMERAS CONOCIMIENT
DESCARTES R, ABHANDLUNG METHODE
DEUTSCH D, 1991, PHYS REV D, V44, P3197
DYSON F, 1991, INFINITO TODAS DIREC
GRUSSER OJ, 1983, HOMINID EVOLUTION PA, P457
GRUSSER OJ, 1990, MED FORSCHUNG, V5, P85
HAKEN H, 1981, ERFOLGSGEHEIMNISSE N
KANITSCHEIDER B, 1994, FOLIA HUMANISTICA, V32, P89
LASKAR J, 1989, NATURE, V338, P237
MACCORMAC E, 1995, NEUE REALITATEN HERA, P210
MEINONG A, 1915, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
NAISBITT J, 1990, MEGATENDENCIAS
NICHOLLS P, 1987, CIENCIA CIENCIA FICC
POPPER KR, 1965, ELEND HISTORIZISMUS
QUERALTO R, 1993, MUNDO TECNOLOGIA RAZ
QUERALTO R, 1994, ANUARIO FILOSOFICO, V27, P683
VILACOROBARRACH.MD, 1993, DERECHO ANTE PROYECT, V1
WOLFHEIDEGGER G, 1967, ANATOMISCHE SEKTION
NR 18
TC 0
PU FOLIA HUMANISTICA
PI BARCELONA
PA C/MUNTANER 303, 08021 BARCELONA, SPAIN
SN 0015-5594
J9 FOLIA HUMANIST
JI Folia Humanistica
PD NOV-DEC
PY 1995
VL 33
IS 347
BP 405
EP 426
PG 22
SC Humanities, Multidisciplinary
GA TL864
UT ISI:A1995TL86400002
ER

PT J
AU JACQUETTE, D
TI VIRTUAL RELATIONS
SO IDEALISTIC STUDIES
LA English
DT Article
RP JACQUETTE, D, PENN STATE UNIV,UNIVERSITY PK,PA 16802.
CR ARMSTRONG DM, 1978, THEORY UNIVERSALS
BARBER KF, 1966, MEINONGS HUME STUDIE
BARBER KF, 1970, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V30, P550
BERGMANN G, 1967, REALISM CRITIQUE BRE
BERKELEY G, 3 DIALOGUES HYLAS PH
CARRE MH, 1946, REALISTS NOMINALISTS
CHISHOLM RM, 1972, PHILOS STUD, V24, P245
CHURCH A, 1941, CALCULI LAMBDA CONVE
GRIFFIN N, 1979, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V9, P23
GRIFFIN N, 1986, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V25, P375
GROSSMANN R, 1974, NOUS, V8, P67
HENNINGER MG, 1989, RELATIONS MEDIEVAL T
HUME D, ENQUIRY HUMAN UNDERS
HUME D, TREATISE HUMAN NATUR
JACQUETTE D, IN PRESS MEINONGIAN
JACQUETTE D, 1991, HDB METAPHYSICS ONTO, P201
JACQUETTE D, 1994, AXIOMATHES, V5, P345
JINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
LAMBERT K, 1982, TOPOI, V1, P87
LAMBERT K, 1983, MEINONG PRINCIPLE IN
LOUX MJ, 1970, UNIVERSALS PARTICULA
MALLY E, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN, P127
MEINONG A, GEGENSTANDE HOHERER
MEINONG A, GEGENSTANDSTHEORIE
MEINONG A, UBER ANNAHMEN
PARSONS CD, 1965, PHILOS IN AM, P182
PERSZYK KJ, 1993, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
PLATO, THEAETETUS
QUINE WV, 1969, ONTOLOGICAL RELATIVI
ROSS WD, 1961, PLATOS THEORY IDEAS
RUSSELL B, PRINCIPIA MATHEMATIC
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P479
RUSSELL B, 1910, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, V11, P108
RUSSELL B, 1911, P AR SOC, V12, P1
RUSSELL B, 1912, PROBLEMS PHILOS
SMITH JF, 1985, PHILOS PHENOMEN RES, V45, P305
WOLTERSTORFF N, 1970, UNIVERSALS PARTICULA
NR 37
TC 0
PU CLARK UNIV PRESS
PI WORCESTER
PA DEPT PHILOSOPHY CLARK UNIV, WORCESTER, MA 01610
SN 0046-8541
J9 IDEAL STUD
JI Ideal. Stud.
PD SPR-SUM
PY 1995
VL 25
IS 2
BP 141
EP 154
PG 14
SC Philosophy
GA TF012
UT ISI:A1995TF01200002
ER

PT J
AU HALA, V
TI DIALOGUE AND CONTEXT
SO FILOSOFICKY CASOPIS
LA Czech
DT Article
AB The author concentrates primarily on the problem of ''formalism'' in Habermas' conception of discursive ethics, since he considers this to be the key to its fundamental intent. On the basis of the historical reference to the concept of the ''material evaluation of ethics'' he seeks to show the changes through which the categories of ''material'' and ''formalism'' in ethics acquired their meaning. While M. Scheler and N. Hartmann sought to show the tensions between apriorism and formalism found in Kant with the concept of ''material a priori'' Habermas conceives the problem of ''content'' as one of contextual dependence.
Differently from the ''contextual'' or ''communitarian'' concept, Habermas is convinced that it is possible in principle to distinguish ethical or evaluative questions from moral ones on the basis of an abstraction from the automatic validity of contextually dependent ideas and projects of ''the good life''. For him, this identification of value must be transformed into norms, ''candidates'' for inter-subjective acceptability, on the basis of a universally valid procedure of rational argumentation.
The reason that Habermas' conception is attractive in more than purely philosophical terms is its stress on democratically open dialogue, the egalitarianism of its adherents and the emphasis on the principle of justice. Its greatest problem is that it overcomes contextual dependence purely on the basis of abstraction from the obvious validity of contexts and not from the contexts themselves. Here the author emphasises that Habermas' ''formalism'' shares Kant's almost too unambiguous trust in the structure and function of reality, primarily in the possibility of rational argumentation.
RP HALA, V, ACAD SCI CZECH REPUBL,FILOSOFICKY USTAV,PRAGUE,CZECH REPUBLIC.
CR 1978, UNTERSCHIED ZWISCHEN
COHEN J, 1990, UNIVERSALISM COMMUNI, P84
FRAZER N, 1989, UNRULY PRACTICES POW, P111
HABERMAS J, 1968, ERKENNTNIS INTERESSE
HABERMAS J, 1973, LEGITIMATIONSPROBLEM
HABERMAS J, 1983, MORALBEWUSSTSEIN KOM, P114
HABERMAS J, 1991, ERLAUTERUNGEN DISLAU, P7
HALA V, 1994, IMPULSY KANTOVY ETIK, P49
KANT I, 1944, KRITIKA PRAKTICKEHO, P160
LYOTARD JF, 1993, POSTMODERNISMU
LYOTARD JF, 1993, POSTMODERNISMU, P29
MACINTYRE A, 1984, VIRTUE STUDY MORAL T, V2, P56
MALIANDI RG, 1966, WERTOBJEKTVITAT REAL
MEINONG A, 1968, GESAMMTAUSGABE, V3
PATZIG G, 1971, ETHIK OHNE METAPHYSI
PESEK J, 1974, FILOS CAS, V22, P484
RASMUSSEN D, 1990, UNIVERSALISM COMMUNI
RAWLS J, 1971, THEORY JUSTICE
RAWLS J, 1987, OXFORD J LEGAL STUDI, V7, P1
REINER H, 1974, GRUNDLAGEN SITTLICHK
RORTY R, 1987, VIRGINIA STATUE RELI
SCHELER M, 1966, GESAMMELTE WERKE
TUGENDHAT E, 1987, PROBLEME ETHIK
VONEHRENFELS C, 1982, PHILOS SCRIFTEN, V1
WEINKE K, 1977, RATIONALITAT MORAL, P44
WUKETITS F, 1993, VERDAMNU UNMORAL NAT, P208
NR 26
TC 0
PU FILOSOFICKY CASOPIS
PI PRAGUE
PA JILSKA 1, PRAGUE, CZECH REPUBLIC 1
SN 0015-1831
J9 FILOS CASOPIS
JI Filos. Cas.
PY 1995
VL 43
IS 2
BP 272
EP 286
PG 15
SC Ethics; Philosophy
GA RL024
UT ISI:A1995RL02400008
ER

PT J
AU JACQUETTE, D
TI TARSKI QUANTIFICATIONAL SEMANTICS AND MEINONGIAN OBJECT THEORY DOMAINS
SO PACIFIC PHILOSOPHICAL QUARTERLY
LA English
DT Article
ID RUSSELL
RP JACQUETTE, D, PENN STATE UNIV,UNIVERSITY PK,PA 16802.
CR ETCHEMENDY J, 1988, J SYMBOLIC LOGIC, V53, P51
ETCHEMENDY J, 1990, CONCEPT LOGICAL CONS
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
JACQUETTE D, 1989, OGIQUE ANAL, V125, P113
JACQUETTE D, 1994, IN PRESS MONIST
JACQUETTE D, 1995, IN PRESS ACTA ANAL
LAMBERT K, 1983, MEINONG PRINCIPLE IN
MCCARTHY T, 1981, J PHILOS, V78, P499
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN, P481
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
QUIGLEY FD, 1970, MANUAL AXIOMATIC SET
ROUTLEY R, 1981, EXPLORING MEINONGS J
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P479
RUSSELL B, 1927, PRINCIPIA MATHEMATIC
RUSSELL B, 1938, PRINCIPLES MATH
SHER G, 1991, BOUNDS LOGIC GENERAL
SMITH JF, 1985, PHILOS PHENOMEN RES, V45, P305
SMITH JF, 1988, RUSSELL, V8, P179
STOLL RR, 1963, SET THEORY LOGIC
TARSKI A, 1936, LOGIC SEMANTICS META
TARSKI A, 1986, HIST PHILOS LOGIC, V7, P143
WITTGENSTEIN L, 1922, TRACTATUS LOGICO-PHI
NR 22
TC 0
PU BLACKWELL PUBL LTD
PI OXFORD
PA 108 COWLEY RD, OXFORD, OXON, ENGLAND OX4 1JF
SN 0031-5621
J9 PAC PHIL QUART
JI Pac. Philos. Q.
PD JUN
PY 1994
VL 75
IS 2
BP 88
EP 107
PG 20
SC Philosophy
GA QJ981
UT ISI:A1994QJ98100002
ER

PT J
AU ESCHBACH, A
TI MARTINAK,EDUARD - SEMATOLOGIST
SO KODIKAS CODE-ARS SEMEIOTICA
LA German
DT Article
CR BUHLER K, 1907, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V9, P297
BUHLER K, 1908, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V12, P1
BUHLER K, 1934, SPRACHTHEORIE
GATSCHENBERGER R, 1901, GRUNDZUGE PSYCHOL ZE
KNOBLOCH C, 1986, KODIKAS CODE, V9, P183
MARTINAK E, 1929, PSYCHOL PADAGOGISCHE
MEINONG A, 1919, BEITRAGE PADAGOGIK D
SMART BH, 1978, GRUNDLAGEN ZEICHENTH
TREMEL F, 1975, OSTERREICHISCHES BIO, V6
NR 9
TC 0
PU GUNTER NARR VERLAG
PI TUBINGEN
PA DISCHINGERWEG 5, D 72070 TUBINGEN, GERMANY
SN 0171-0834
J9 KODIKAS CODE-ARS SEMEIOTICA
PD JAN-JUN
PY 1993
VL 16
IS 1-2
BP 113
EP 123
PG 11
SC Humanities, Multidisciplinary; Language & Linguistics
GA PX300
UT ISI:A1993PX30000008
ER

PT J
AU VOLTOLINI, A
TI CAN NEGATIVE EXISTENTIALS BE REFERENTIALLY VINDICATED + A LOOK AT SOLUTIONS PROPOSED BY KRIPKE,S, EVANS,G, DONNELLAN,K AND ALMOG,J
SO LINGUA E STILE
LA English
DT Article
CR ADAMS RM, 1981, SYNTHESE, V49, P3
ALMOG J, 1981, PHILOS STUD, V39, P347
ALMOG J, 1986, J PHILOS, V83, P210
ALMOG J, 1991, NOUS, V25, P591
ANDUSCHUS PM, 1993, PHILOS COGNITIVE SCI, P17
BACH K, 1986, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V25, P359
BAKER L, 1991, MEANING MIND FODOR H, P17
BALDWIN T, 1982, ANALYSIS, V42, P133
BENCIVENGA E, 1988, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V48, P533
BONOMI A, 1979, UNIVERSI DISCORSO
CASTANEDA HN, 1990, THINKING STRUCTURE W, P459
DIFRANCESCO M, 1991, REALISMO ANALITICO
DONNELLAN K, 1974, PHILOS REV, V83, P3
DONNELLAN K, 1979, CONT PERSPECTIVES PH, P28
EVANS G, 1982, VARIETIES REFERENCE
FODOR JA, 1990, THEORY CONTENT OTHER
GEACH PT, 1980, REFERENCE GENERALITY
KAPLAN D, 1989, THEMES KAPLAN, P565
KRIPKE S, 1973, JOHN LOCKE LECTURES
KRIPKE SA, 1980, NAMING NECESSITY
LAMBERT K, 1983, MEINONG PRINCIPLE IN
LINSKY B, 1994, PHILOSOPHICAL PERSPE, V8, P1
MCLAUGHLIN BP, 1989, CAUSE MIND REALITY, P111
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P76
MEINONG A, 1960, THEORY OBJECTS
MULLIGAN K, 1986, TOPOI, V5, P115
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P473
RUSSELL B, 1956, LOGIC KNOWLEDGE, P177
RYCKMAN TC, 1988, PHILOS ANAL DEFENSE, P241
SALMON N, 1987, PHILOS PERSPECTIVES, V1, P49
SIMONS P, 1990, PHILOS LOGIC CENTRAL, P159
SMITH B, 1984, AESTHETICS, P196
SMITH B, 1984, DIALECTICA, V38, P157
VOLTOLINI A, 1993, FICTA VERSUS POSSIBI
VOLTOLINI A, 1993, NAMEABILITY POSSIBLE
NR 36
TC 0
PU SOC ED IL MULINO
PI BOLOGNA
PA STRADA MAGGIORE 37, 40125 BOLOGNA, ITALY
SN 0024-385X
J9 LING STILE
JI Ling. Stile
PD SEP
PY 1994
VL 29
IS 3
BP 349
EP 371
PG 23
SC Language & Linguistics; Literature
GA PT069
UT ISI:A1994PT06900002
ER

PT J
AU TALLON, A
TI AFFECTION, COGNITION, VOLITION + A STUDY OF HILDEBRAND,DIETRICH,VON CONTRIBUTION TO A PHILOSOPHY OF THE ETHICAL AND MYSTICAL RELATIONS OF THE SOUL - THE TRIADIC MEANING OF HEART IN ETHICS
SO AMERICAN CATHOLIC PHILOSOPHICAL QUARTERLY
LA English
DT Article
RP TALLON, A, MARQUETTE UNIV,MILWAUKEE,WI 53233.
CR BOLLNOW OF, 1943, WESEN STIMMUNGEN
DAVIS C, 1976, BODY AS SPIRIT NATUR
EISENBERG N, 1982, DEVELOPMENT PRO-SOCI
FINANCE JD, 1973, AFFRONTEMENT AUTRE E
GUERIN M, 1993, AFFECTIVITE PENSEE
HILDEBRAND DV, 1953, ETHICS
HILDEBRAND DV, 1960, PHILOS JB GORRESGESE, V68, P180
HILDEBRAND DV, 1966, CHRISTIAN PHILOS REL, P3
HILDEBRAND DV, 1966, MAN WOMAN
HILDEBRAND DV, 1977, HEART ANALYSIS HUMAN
LONERGAN BJF, 1971, GRACE FREEDOM OPERAT
MARITAIN J, 1953, CREATIVE INTUITION A
MEINONG A, 1972, EMOTIONAL PRESENTATI
NEWMAN JH, 1949, ESSAY DEV CHRISTIAN, V1
PEGHAIRE J, 1936, INTELLECTUS RATIO SE
PFANDER A, 1967, PHENOMENOLOGY WILLIN
PIAGET J, 1981, INTELLIGENCE AFFECTI
RICOEUR P, 1960, FALLIBLE MAN
ROUSSELOT P, 1935, INTELLECTUALISM ST T
SALIERS DE, 1980, SOUL PARAPHRASE PRAY
SARTRE JP, 1953, BEING AND NOTHINGNES
SCHELER M, 1954, NATURE OF SYMPATHY
SHEEHAN T, 1987, K RAHNER PHILOS FOUN
SHELDON CM, 1990, MORALITY OF HEART
STEIN E, 1989, ON PROBLEM OF EMPATH
STRASSER S, 1977, PHENOMENOLOGY FEELIN
STRAYER J, 1987, EMPATHY ITS DEVELOPM
SWEENEY RD, 1972, PHENOMENOLOGICAL REA, P80
TALLON A, 1992, THEOL STUD, V53, P700
NR 29
TC 0
PU AMER CATHOLIC PHILOS ASSN
PI WASHINGTON
PA CATHOLIC UNIVERSITY, WASHINGTON, DC 20064
SN 1051-3558
J9 AMER CATH PHIL QUART
JI Am. Cath. Philos. Q.
PD SPR
PY 1994
VL 68
IS 2
BP 211
EP 232
PG 22
SC Philosophy
GA PE140
UT ISI:A1994PE14000005
ER

PT J
AU HALES, SD
TI CERTAINTY AND PHENOMENAL STATES
SO CANADIAN JOURNAL OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
RP HALES, SD, GEORGIA STATE UNIV,ATLANTA,GA 30303.
CR ALSTON W, 1989, EPISTEMIC JUSTIFICAT
ARNAULD A, PORT ROYAL LOGIC
AUGUSTINE, CONTRA ACADEMICOS
BERKELEY G, PRINCIPLES HUMAN KNO
BRENTANO F, DISTINCTION MENTAL P
CHISHOLM R, 1942, MIND, V51, P368
CHISHOLM RM, 1989, THEORY KNOWLEDGE
DESCARTES R, MEDITATIONS
DUNSSCOTUS J, HUMAN KNOWLEDGE
FIRTH R, 1967, PHILOS REV, V76, P3
HARDY GH, 1940, RAMANUJAN
HEIDELBERGER H, 1979, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V7, P59
HILL AL, 1974, MENT RETARD, V12, P12
HUME D, TREATISE HUMAN NATUR
KLEIN P, 1981, CERTAINTY
LEIBNIZ GW, NEW ESSAYS HUMAN UND
LURIA AR, 1968, MIND MNEMONIST
MALCOLM N, 1963, KNOWLEDGE CERTAINTY
MEINONG A, EMOTIONAL PRESENTATI
MILLER RW, 1978, MIND, V87, P46
MOORE GE, CERTAINTY
MOORE GE, DEFENSE COMMON SENSE
RUSSELL B, KNOWLEDGE ACQUAINTAN
SACKS O, MAN WHO MISTOOK HIS
SARTRE JP, BEING AND NOTHINGNES
SOSA E, 1991, KNOWLEDGE PERSPECTIV
SOSA E, 1992, MENTAL CAUSATION
VANCLEVE J, 1979, PHILOS REV, V88, P55
NR 28
TC 0
PU UNIV CALGARY PRESS
PI CALGARY
PA 2500 UNIVERSITY DR NW, CALGARY AB T2N 1N4, CANADA
SN 0045-5091
J9 CAN J PHIL
JI Can. J. Philos.
PD MAR
PY 1994
VL 24
IS 1
BP 57
EP 72
PG 16
SC Philosophy
GA NK548
UT ISI:A1994NK54800005
ER

PT J
AU BALDI, M
TI EMPIRICISM AND NOMINALISM - STUDIES ON HUME - ITALIAN - MEINONG,A, BRIGATI,R, TRANSLATOR
SO RIVISTA DI STORIA DELLA FILOSOFIA
LA Italian
DT Book Review
CR MEINONG A, 1991, EMPIRISMO NOMINALISM
NR 1
TC 0
PU FRANCO ANGELI
PI MILAN
PA VIALE MONZA 106, 20127 MILAN, ITALY
SN 0393-2516
J9 RIV STOR FILOS
JI Riv. Stor. Filos.
PY 1993
VL 48
IS 4
BP 847
EP 849
PG 3
SC Philosophy
GA MZ980
UT ISI:A1993MZ98000027
ER

PT J
AU ROLLINGER, RD
TI HUSSERL AND BRENTANO ON IMAGINATION
SO ARCHIV FUR GESCHICHTE DER PHILOSOPHIE
LA English
DT Article
CR BELL D, 1990, HUSSERL
BRENTANO F, PSYCHOLOGIE EMPIRISC
BRENTATNO F, LEHRE VOM RICHTIGEN
BRUCK M, 1933, VERHALTNIS E HUSSERL
DROST MP, 1990, PHILOS PHENOMEN RES, V50, P569
HUSSERL E, CARTESIANISCHE MEDIT
HUSSERL E, HAUPTSTUCKE DESKRIPT
HUSSERL E, KRISIS EUROPAISCHEN
HUSSERL E, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
HUSSERL E, PSYCHOL STUDIEN ELEM
HUSSERL E, 1894, PHILOS MONATSHEFTE, V30, P159
KRAUS O, 1919, F BRENTANO KENNTNIS
MAYERHILLEBRAND F, 1959, GRUNDZUGE ASTHETIK
MEINONG A, 1888, VIERTELJAHRSSCHRIFT, V12, P497
MEINONG A, 1889, VIERTELJAHRSSCHRIFT, V13, P1
MEINONG A, 1889, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V95, P161
SARAIVA M, 1970, IMAGINATION SELON HU
SCHUHMANN K, 1977, HUSSERL CHRONIK DENK
SCHUMANN K, POLISH SCI PHILOS LV
TWARDOWSKI K, LEHRE INHALT GEGENST
TYE M, 1988, PHILOS REV, V97, P497
NR 21
TC 0
PU WALTER DE GRUYTER & CO
PI BERLIN
PA GENTHINER STRASSE 13, D-10785 BERLIN, GERMANY
SN 0003-9101
J9 ARCH GESCH PHIL
JI Arch. Gesch. Philos.
PY 1993
VL 75
IS 2
BP 195
EP 210
PG 16
SC Philosophy
GA MN249
UT ISI:A1993MN24900004
ER

PT J
AU POLAKOVA, J
TI REAL POSSIBILITIES OF THE THEORY OF VALUE
SO FILOSOFICKY CASOPIS
LA Czech
DT Article
AB The article aims at a new clarification of the real specifics of axiology and of its place and role in the overall context of philosophical thought. The central question of what is value is discussed in the light of the historical development of the concept of the fundamental status of value from classical philosophy up to the present. After a comparative analysis of the approaches the author attempts a synthesis. The development of the problematics of value is seen as a gradual exchange of three paradigms: ontocentric, anthropocentric and - in the axiology of the 20th century - agathocentric. The article systematically demonstrates why only the last of these conceptions realizes the true possibilities of the theory of value. It shows the deeper spiritual context of this conception and its implications for the overall self-interpretation of philosophy in present times.
RP POLAKOVA, J, CZECHOSLOVAK ACAD SCI,USTAV FILOSOFICKY,CS-11142 PRAGUE 1,CZECHOSLOVAKIA.
CR ENS BONUM CONVERTUNT
BRENTANO F, 1889, VOM URSPRUNG SITTLIC
EDEL A, 1963, METHOD ETHICAL THEOR, P191
HARTMANN N, 1926, ETHIK
HUME D, ENQUIRY PRINCIPLES M
MEINONG A, 1894, PSYCHOL ETHISCHE UNT
MEINONG A, 1917, EMOTIONALE PRASENTAT
MEINONG A, 1923, GRUNDLEGUNG ALLGEMEI
PERRY RB, 1929, GENERAL THEORY VALUE
PLATON, POLITEIA
POLIN R, 1945, CREATION VALEURS
REINER H, 1951, PFLICHT NEIGUNG
REINER H, 1974, GRUNDLAGEN SITTLICHK
RICKERT H, 1896, GRENZEN NATURWISSENS
RICKERT H, 1899, KULTURWISSENSCHAFT N
RICKERT H, 1912, VOM SYSTEM WERTE, V3
ROTH A, 1960, E HUSSERLS ETHISCHE
SCHELER M, 1913, FORMALISMUS ETHIK MA
SPINOZA B, 1977, ETIKA, P190
SPINOZA B, 1977, ETIKA, P264
URBANEM WM, 1909, VALUATION ITS NATURE
WINDELBAND W, 1894, PRALUDIEN, V1
NR 22
TC 0
PU FILOSOFICKY CASOPIS
PI PRAGUE
PA JILSKA 1, PRAGUE, CZECH REPUBLIC 1
SN 0015-1831
J9 FILOS CASOPIS
JI Filos. Cas.
PY 1993
VL 41
IS 2
BP 289
EP 299
PG 11
SC Ethics; Philosophy
GA LM195
UT ISI:A1993LM19500008
ER

PT J
AU HERMAN, D
TI 'ULYSSES' AND VACUOUS PLURALISM
SO PHILOSOPHY AND LITERATURE
LA English
DT Article
RP HERMAN, D, UNIV PENN,PHILADELPHIA,PA 19104.
CR BARTSCH R, 1987, NORMS LANGUAGE THEOR
BRENTANO F, 1930, WAHRHEIT EVIDENZ ERK
BRENTANO F, 1966, ABKEHR NICHTREALEN
BRENTANO F, 1973, PSYCHOL EMPIRICAL ST
CHAMPAGNY R, 1986, SENSE ANTISENSE NONS
CHISHOLM RM, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
HAYMAN D, 1982, ULYSSES MECHANICS ME
HEATH S, 1984, POSTSTRUCTURALIST JO
HERMAN D, 1992, NEOPHILOLOGUS, V76, P321
HERRING P, 1987, JOYCES UNCERTAINTY P
HUSSERL E, EXPERIENCE JUDGMENT
JOYCE J, ULYSSES
MAHAFFEY V, 1988, REAUTHORIZING JOYCE
MEINONG A, 1971, GESAMTAUSGABE, V2
MORRIS CW, 1938, F THEORY SIGNS
NEHAMAS A, 1985, NIETZSCHE LIFE LIT
PAVEL T, 1986, FICTIONAL WORLDS
PLETT H, 1975, TEXTWISSENSCHAFT TEX
RYLE G, 1972, JENSEITS SEIN NICHST
STRAWSON PF, 1966, BOUNDS OF SENSE
NR 20
TC 0
PU JOHNS HOPKINS UNIV PRESS
PI BALTIMORE
PA JOURNALS PUBLISHING DIVISION, 2715 NORTH CHARLES ST, BALTIMORE, MD 21218-4319
SN 0190-0013
J9 PHIL LIT
JI Philos. Lit.
PD APR
PY 1993
VL 17
IS 1
BP 65
EP 76
PG 12
SC Literary Theory & Criticism; Literature
GA KX879
UT ISI:A1993KX87900005
ER

PT J
AU GUIDETTI, L
TI EMPIRICISM AND NOMINALISM - ITALIAN - MEINONG,A
SO LINGUA E STILE
LA Italian
DT Book Review
CR MEINONG A, 1991, EMPIRISMO NOMINALISM
NR 1
TC 0
PU SOC ED IL MULINO
PI BOLOGNA
PA STRADA MAGGIORE 37, 40125 BOLOGNA, ITALY
SN 0024-385X
J9 LING STILE
JI Ling. Stile
PD DEC
PY 1992
VL 27
IS 4
BP 550
EP 553
PG 4
SC Language & Linguistics; Literature
GA KN330
UT ISI:A1992KN33000007
ER

PT J
AU SCHMIT, R
TI IDEA OF LOGICAL GRAMMAR ACCORDING TO HUSSERL - HISTORICAL EXAMINATION
SO HUSSERL STUDIES
LA German
DT Article
RP SCHMIT, R, CTR UNIV LUXEMBOURG,LUXEMBOURG,LUXEMBOURG.
CR BACON F, 1857, WORKS, V1, P653
BARHILLEL Y, 1950, THEORIA, V16, P105
BARHILLEL Y, 1957, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V17, P362
BARHILLEL, 1934, LOGISCHE SYNTAX SPRA
BODNAR J, 1980, BOLZANO HUSSERL LOGI, P58
BOLZANO B, 1978, GRUNDLEGUNG LOGIK AU, V1
BOLZANO B, 1978, GRUNDLEGUNG LOGIK AU, V2
BOLZANO B, 1985, WISSENSCHAFTSLEHRE
BRENTANO F, 1956, LEHRE VOM RICHTIGEN, V5, P35
BRENTANO F, 1956, LEHRE VOM RICHTIGEN, V5, P46
CAMPANELLA T, 1638, PHILOS RATIONALIS PA, V5, P3
FREGE G, 1976, WISSENSCHAFTLICHER B, P102
GEDANKEN B, 1909, PHILOS WERK B BOLZAN, P76
HADDOCK GER, 1973, E HUSSERLS PHILOS LO, P68
LEIBNIZ GW, 1931, PHILOS SCHRIFTEN, V7, P28
LESNIEWSKI N, 1935, STUD PHILOS, V1, P2
LESNIEWSKI S, 1929, FUND MATH, V14, P13
LUSCHEI EC, 1962, LOGICAL SYSTEMS LESN, P9
MARTY A, 1875, URSPRUNG SPRACHE, P107
MARTY A, 1893, SYMBOLAE PRAGENSES, P99
MARTY A, 1908, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GRUND, P205
MEINONG A, 1891, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V2, P253
MILL JS, 1843, SYSTEM LOGIC RATIOCI
MOHANTY J, 1969, E HUSSERLS THEORY ME, P86
MULLIGAN K, 1990, MIND MEANING METAPHY, P226
QUINE WVO, 1970, PHILOS LOGIC, P18
ROOS H, 1974, HIST WORTERBUCH PHIL, V3, P846
SCHMIT R, 1990, HIST PHILOS LOGIC, V11, P14
SCHOLZ H, 1959, ABRISS GESCH LOGIK, P38
SMITH B, 1982, PARTS MOMENTS STUDIE, P15
SMITH B, 1986, HUSSERL STUD, V3, P115
STUMPF C, 1873, PSYCHOL URSPRUNG RAU, P108
TARSKI A, 1935, STUDIA PHILOS, V1, P261
TUGENDHAT E, 1976, VORLESUNGEN EINFUHRU, P167
TWARDOWSKI UK, 1894, LEHRE VOM INHALT GEG
VONEHRENFELS C, 1890, VIERTELJAHRSSCHRIFT, V14, P249
WERLE JM, 1989, F BRENTANO ZUKUNFT P
WILKINS J, 1668, ESSAY REAL CHARACTER, V3, P297
WOLENSKI J, 1989, LOGIC PHILOS LVOV WA, P146
WOLENSKI J, 1990, MIND MEANING METAPHY, P215
NR 40
TC 0
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0167-9848
J9 HUSSERL STUD
JI Husserl Stud.
PY 1992
VL 9
IS 1
BP 31
EP 49
PG 19
SC Philosophy
GA JM825
UT ISI:A1992JM82500002
ER

PT J
AU HALLER, R
TI THOUGHTS ON PHILOSOPHICAL PROPEDEUTICS
SO DEUTSCHE ZEITSCHRIFT FUR PHILOSOPHIE
LA German
DT Article
RP HALLER, R, GRAZ UNIV,INST PHILOSOPHIE,HEINRICHSTR 26,A-8010 GRAZ,AUSTRIA.
CR 1980, HDB WISSENSCHAFTSTHE, V8, P680
DESCARTES R, DISCOURS METHODE, V6, P3
MEINONG A, 1975, GESAMTAUSGABE, V5, P35
RORTY R, 1986, POSTANALYTIC PHILOS
RORTY R, 1988, SOLIDARITAT OBJEKTIV, P15
WEINGARTNER P, 1965, RATIO, V7, P55
WEINGARTNRE P, 1964, SALZBURGER JB PHILOS, V8, P31
NR 7
TC 0
PU AKADEMIE VERLAG GMBH
PI BERLIN
PA MUHLENSTRASSE 33-34, D-13187 BERLIN, GERMANY
SN 0012-1045
J9 DEUT Z PHIL
JI Dtsch. Z. Philos.
PY 1991
VL 39
IS 10
BP 1061
EP 1068
PG 8
SC Philosophy
GA HL748
UT ISI:A1991HL74800001
ER

PT J
AU SERRAVEZZA, A
TI HELMHOLTZ, STUMPF, RIEMANN - AN ITINERARY
SO RIVISTA ITALIANA DI MUSICOLOGIA
LA Italian
DT Article
CR BESSELER H, 1959, MUSIKALISCHE HORER N
CONRAT F, 1904, HV HELMHOLTZ PSYCHOL
DAHLHAUS C, 1970, MUSIKTHEORIE, P51
DAHLHAUS C, 1984, MUSIKTHEORIE 18 19 J
EHRENFELS CV, 1890, VEIRTELJAHRESSCHRIFT, V14, P253
ERMEN R, 1986, NEUE Z MUSIK, P14
GURLITT W, 1951, H RIEMANN 1849-1919
HELMHOLTZ HV, 1865, POPULARE WISSENSCHAF, V1, P90
HELMHOLTZ HV, 1876, POPULARE WISSENSCHAF, V3, P59
HELMHOLTZ HV, 1884, VORTRAGE REDEN, V2, P213
HELMHOLTZ HV, 1896, LEHRE TONEMPFINDUNGE
HELMHOLTZ HV, 1911, HDB PHYSIOLOGISCHEN, V3
HELMHOLTZ HV, 1966, OPERE, P49
HELMHOLTZ HV, 1971, PHILOS VORTRAGE AUFS, P10
HUSSERL E, 1968, RICERCHE LOGICHE, V1
HUSSERL E, 1980, FENOMENOLOGIA CONSCI
KOENIGSBERGER L, 1902, HV HELMHOLTZ, V2
KOHNKE KC, 1986, ENTSTEHUNG AUFSTIEG
KRUEGER F, 1903, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V1, P237
KUMMEL WF, 1973, BIOLOGISMUS 19 JAHRH, P138
LIPPS, 1892, PHILOS MONATSHEFTE, V28, P547
MACH E, 1896, ANAL EMPFINDUNGEN
MACH, 1900, LETT SCI POPOLARI
MEINONG A, Z PSYCHOL, V15, P189
MUNNICH R, 1909, RIEMANN FESTSCHRIFT
POGGI S, 1977, SISTEMI ESPERIENZA P
RIEHL A, PHILOS KRITICISMUS S, V2
RIEHL A, 1904, HV HELMHOLTZ SEINEM
RIEMANN H, MUSIKLEXIKON
RIEMANN H, 1877, MUSIKALISCHE SYNTAXI
RIEMANN H, 1882, NATUR HARMONIK
RIEMANN H, 1884, MUSIKALISCHE LOGIK
RIEMANN H, 1898, GESCH MUSIKTHEORIE 1
RIEMANN H, 1901, PRALUDIEN STUDIEN GE, V3, P34
RIEMANN H, 1905, NEUE Z MUSIK, V72, P25
RIEMANN H, 1910, 1090 JB MUSIKBIBLIOT, V16, P46
RIEMANN H, 1911, Z INT MUSIKGESELLSCH, V13, P96
RIEMANN H, 1916, FOLKLORISTISCHE TONA
RIEMANN H, 1917, 1916 JB MUSIKBIBLIOT, P2
RIEMANN H, 1918, Z MUSIKWISSENSCHAFT, V1, P26
RIEMANN H, 1921, GRUNDLINIEN MUSIKAST
RIEMANN H, 1921, HDB AKUSTIK MUSIKWIS
RYNNEBGIKKER O, 1967, MUSIKTHEORETISCHES D
SCHUHMACHER G, 1980, BERICHTE INT MUSIKWI, P491
SEIDEL E, 1966, BEITRAGE MUSIKTHEORI
SMITH FJ, 1979, EXPERIENCING MUSICAL, P91
SPIEGELBERG H, 1960, PHENOMENOLOGICAL MOV, V1
STECKER C, 1890, VIETELJAHRSSCHRIFT M, V6, P437
STUMPF C, 1883, TONPSYCHOL, V1
STUMPF C, 1890, TONPSYCHOL, V2
STUMPF C, 1895, ARCH GESCH PHILOS, V8, P310
STUMPF C, 1897, GESCH KONSONANZSBEGR
STUMPF C, 1898, BEITR AKUST MUSIKWIS, V1, P1
STUMPF C, 1898, BEITRAGE AKUSTIK MUS, V2, P8
STUMPF C, 1910, FESTSCHRIFT RV LILIE, P331
STUMPF C, 1911, ANFANGE MUSIK
STUMPF C, 1939, ERKENNTNISLEHRE, V1
WIENKE G, 1952, THESIS U FREIBURG
NR 58
TC 0
PU CASA EDITRICE LEO S OLSCHKI
PI FLORENCE
PA CASELLA POSTALE 66 VIUZZO DEL POZZETTO, I-50126 FLORENCE, ITALY
SN 0035-6867
J9 RIV ITAL MUSIC
JI Riv. Ital. Musicol.
PY 1989
VL 24
IS 2
BP 347
EP 422
PG 76
SC Music
GA FF550
UT ISI:A1989FF55000004
ER

PT J
AU DOLLING, E
TI DUMMETT,MICHAEL AND THE ORIGINS OF ANALYTICAL PHILOSOPHY, OR - THE PHILOSOPHY OF THOUGHT VERSUS THE PHILOSOPHY OF LANGUAGE
SO DEUTSCHE ZEITSCHRIFT FUR PHILOSOPHIE
LA German
DT Article
C1 ACAD SCI GDR,ZENT INST SPRACHWISSENSCH,O-1100 BERLIN,GERMANY.
RP DOLLING, E, ACAD SCI GDR,ZENT INST PHILOSOPHIE,OTTO NUSCHKE STR 10-11,O-1086 BERLIN,GERMANY.
CR APEL KO, 1ST INTENTIONALITAT
DOLLING E, INTENTIONALIT VERSTE
DOLLING E, 1989, DZFPH
DUMMETT M, URSPRUNGE ANAL PHILO, P13
DUMMETT M, 1988, USPRUNGE ANAL PHILOS, P7
EVANS G, 1982, VARIETIES REFERENCE
FREGE G, 1973, SCHRIFTEN LOGIK NACH, P63
HEYE, 1987, LOGIK SEMANTIK SEMAN
MARKE JC, 1977, OSTERREICHISCHE PHIL, V1, P77
MEINONG A, 1921, PHILOS GEGENWART SEL, V1, P143
SEARLE J, 1987, INTENTIONALITAT ABHA, P203
NR 11
TC 0
PU AKADEMIE VERLAG GMBH
PI BERLIN
PA MUHLENSTRASSE 33-34, D-13187 BERLIN, GERMANY
SN 0012-1045
J9 DEUT Z PHIL
JI Dtsch. Z. Philos.
PY 1990
VL 38
IS 8
BP 751
EP 758
PG 8
SC Philosophy
GA EN261
UT ISI:A1990EN26100006
ER

PT J
AU VELARDEMAYOL, V
TI THE THEORY OF OBJECTS ACCORDING TO MEINONG,ALEXIUS
SO PENSAMIENTO
LA Spanish
DT Article
C1 DANIEL URRABIETA 16,E-28002 MADRID,SPAIN.
RP VELARDEMAYOL, V, UNIV COMPLUTENSE MADRID,MADRID 3,SPAIN.
CR ASTRADA C, 1963, GEGENSTANDSTHEORIE M
BRENTANO F, 1924, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN, V2
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
HALLER R, 1966, J HIST PHILOS, V4, P313
KANT I, CRITICA RAZON PURA
LAMBERT K, 1983, MEINONG PRINCIPLE IN
MEINONG A, EMOTIONALE PRASENTAT
MEINONG A, GEGENSTANDE HOHERER
MEINONG A, GEGENSTANDSTHEORIE
MEINONG A, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
MEINONG A, SELBSTDARSTELLUNG
MEINONG A, UBER ANNAHMEN
RUSSELL B, 1904, MIND, V13, P204
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P479
UBERWEG F, 1951, GRUNDRISS GESCH PHIL, V4
NR 15
TC 0
PU CENT LOYOLA ESTUD COMUN SOC
PI MADRID
PA PABLO ARANDA 3, 6 MADRID, SPAIN
SN 0031-4749
J9 PENSAMIENTO
JI Pensamiento
PD OCT-DEC
PY 1989
VL 45
IS 180
BP 461
EP 475
PG 15
SC Philosophy
GA CZ995
UT ISI:A1989CZ99500004
ER

PT J
AU HEIDSIECK, A
TI KAFKA FICTIONAL ONTOLOGY AND NARRATIVE PERSPECTIVE - THEIR RELATION TO FIN-DE-SIECLE AUSTRIAN PHILOSOPHY
SO POETICA-ZEITSCHRIFT FUR SPRACH-UND LITERATURWISSENSCHAFT
LA German
DT Article
CR BINDER H, 1976, KAFKA NEUER SICHT
BINDER H, 1983, KAFKA SCHAFFENSPROZE
COHN D, 1978, TRANSPARENT MINDS NA
DESCARTES R, 1912, MEDITATIONES
DESCARTES R, 1915, MEDITATIONEN GRUNDLA
EHRENFELS CV, PHILOS SCHRIFTEN, V3
HALLER R, 1972, JENSEITS SEIN NICHTS
HEIDSIECK A, 1986, GER REV, V61, P11
HEIDSIECK A, 1987, PHILOS LITERATURE, V11, P242
HEIDSIECK A, 1989, GERMAN Q, V62
KAFKA F, PROZESS
KAFKA F, SCHLOSS
KAFKA F, 1953, HOCHZEITSVORBEREITUN
KAFKA F, 1970, SAMTLICHE ERZAHLUNGE
KAFKA F, 1973, TAGEBUCHER 1910 1923
KASTIL A, 1909, STUDIEN NEUEREN ERKE, V1, P26
LEA HC, 1888, HIST INQUISITION MID
LINSKY L, 1977, NAMES DESCRIPTIONS
MARTY A, 1916, GESAMMELTE SCHRIFTEN
MARTY A, 1940, PSYCHE SPRACHSTRUKTU
MEINONG A, 1971, ABHANDLUNGEN ERKENNT
MEINONG A, 1971, GESAMTAUSGABE, V2
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
PARSONS T, 1982, POETICS, V11, P311
SHISHOLM RM, 1978, PHILOS F BRENTANOS
SMMITH B, 1981, STRUCTURE GESTALT PH, P113
SOKEL WH, 1984, JUNGE KAFKA, P133
SOKEL WH, 1985, GER REV, V60, P69
NR 28
TC 0
PU FERDINAND SCHOENINGH
PI PADERBORN
PA JUEHENPLATZ 1 POSTFACH 2540, W-4790 PADERBORN, GERMANY
SN 0032-2016
J9 POETICA-Z SPRACH LIT
JI Poetica-Z. Sprach- Lit.wiss.
PY 1989
VL 21
IS 3-4
BP 389
EP 402
PG 14
SC Literature
GA CM427
UT ISI:A1989CM42700007
ER

PT J
AU PIETERSMA, H
TI THE PROBLEM OF KNOWLEDGE AND PHENOMENOLOGY
SO PHILOSOPHY AND PHENOMENOLOGICAL RESEARCH
LA English
DT Article
RP PIETERSMA, H, UNIV TORONTO,VICTORIA COLL,TORONTO M5S 1A1,ONTARIO,CANADA.
CR GRICE HP, CAUSAL THEORY PERCEP
HEIDEGGER M, BEING AND TIME
HUSSERL E, IDEA PHENOMENOLOGY
MEINONG A, 1917, EMOTIONAL PRESENTATI
MERLEAUPONTY M, VISIBLE INVISIBLE
MOHANTY JN, IN PRESS HUSSERLS PH
MOORE GE, PHILOS GE MOORE
PIETERSMA H, HUSSERL EXPOSITIONS
PIETERSMA H, 1987, CRITICAL DIALECTICAL, P176
RORTY R, PHILOS MIRROR NATURE
NR 10
TC 0
PU PHILOSOPHY PHENOMENOLOGICAL RES
PI PROVIDENCE
PA BROWN UNIV BOX 1947, PROVIDENCE, RI 02912
SN 0031-8205
J9 PHIL PHENOMENOL RES
JI Philos. Phenomenol. Res.
PD SEP
PY 1989
VL 50
IS 1
BP 27
EP 47
PG 21
SC Philosophy
GA AV718
UT ISI:A1989AV71800002
ER

PT J
AU STOCK, WG
TI A DATA-BASE ON THE GRAZER-SCHULE - A SPECIAL DATA-BASE IN THE AREA OF THE HISTORY OF PHILOSOPHY AND PSYCHOLOGY
SO ZEITSCHRIFT FUR PHILOSOPHISCHE FORSCHUNG
LA German
DT Article
CR DIENER A, 1967, Z PHILOS FORSCH, V21, P437
HENRICHS N, 1969, FORSCHUNG, V23, P122
HENRICHS N, 1970, NACHR DOK, V21, P20
HENRICHS N, 1980, DATENBASENDATENBANKE, V3, P157
KUHN TS, 1979, STRUKTUR WISSENSCHAF
MAYERL L, 1988, INFORMATION PHILOS, V16, P50
MEINONG A, 1910, UBER ANNAHMEN
STOCK WG, 1984, INT CLASSIF, V11, P151
STOCK WG, 1985, ALLGEMEINE Z PHILOS, P43
STOCK WG, 1985, Z PHILOS FORSCH, V39, P431
NR 10
TC 0
PU VITTORIO KLOSTERNAMM GMBH
PI FRANKFURT-AM-MAIN
PA POSTFACH 90 06 01, D-60446 FRANKFURT-AM-MAIN, GERMANY
SN 0044-3301
J9 Z PHIL FORSCH
JI Z. Philos. Forsch.
PD APR-JUN
PY 1989
VL 43
IS 2
BP 347
EP 364
PG 18
SC Philosophy
GA AM488
UT ISI:A1989AM48800007
ER

PT J
AU SIMONS, P
TI DETERMINACY OF ABSTRACT OBJECTS - THE PLATONISTS DILEMMA
SO TOPOI-AN INTERNATIONAL REVIEW OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
RP SIMONS, P, SALZBURG UNIV,DEPT PHILOSOPHY,A-5020 SALZBURG,AUSTRIA.
CR ANGELELLI I, 1985, PHILOS NATURALIS, V21, P453
BENACERRAF P, 1965, PHILOS REV, V74, P47
BURGE T, 1984, PHILOS REV, V93, P3
DEVITT M, 1984, REALISM TRUTH
DUMMETT M, 1959, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, V59, P141
DUMMETT M, 1978, TRUTH OTHER ENIGMAS
FIELD H, 1980, SCI WITHOUT NUMBERS
FREGE G, PHILOS MATH CORRESD
FREGE G, 1884, GRUNDLAGEN ARITHMETI
FREGE G, 1893, GRUNDGESETZE ARITHME
FREGE G, 1969, NACHGELASSENE SCHRIF
FREGE G, 1976, WISSENSCHAFTLICHER B
FREGE G, 1979, POSTHUMOUS WRITINGS
HUSSERL E, 1970, LOGICAL INVESTIGATIO
HUSSERL E, 1984, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
LAMBERT K, 1989, ESSAYS MEINONG
LORENZEN P, 1962, RATIO, V4, P85
MEINONG A, 1915, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
PARSONS T, 1987, NOTRE DAME J FORM L, V28, P161
PEANO G, 1915, B MATHESIS, V7, P106
QUINE WV, 1969, SET THEORY ITS LOGIC
RESNIK M, 1981, NOUS, V15, P529
SCHROEDERHEISTE.P, 1987, NOTRE DAME J FORM L, V28, P69
SIMONS P, 1987, HIST PHILOS, V8, P25
SIMONS PM, 1981, PHILOS WISSENSCHAFT, P355
SIMONS PM, 1987, PARTS
VERAART A, 1976, STUDIEN FREGE, V1, P49
WEYL H, 1949, PHILOS MATH NATURAL
NR 28
TC 0
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0167-7411
J9 TOPOI-INT REV PHIL
JI Topoi-Int. Rev. Philos.
PD MAR
PY 1989
VL 8
IS 1
BP 35
EP 42
PG 8
SC Philosophy
GA AA032
UT ISI:A1989AA03200004
ER

PT J
AU SMITH, B
TI THE PRIMACY OF PLACE, AN INVESTIGATION IN BRENTANIAN ONTOLOGY
SO TOPOI-AN INTERNATIONAL REVIEW OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
RP SMITH, B, UNIV MANCHESTER,DEPT PHILOSOPHY,MANCHESTER M13 9PL,LANCS,ENGLAND.
CR AJUDKIEWICZ K, 1935, STUDIA PHILOS, V1, P1
BRENTANO F, 1862, MANNIGFACHEN BEDEUTU
BRENTANO F, 1924, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN
BRENTANO F, 1930, WAHRHEIT EVIDENZ
BRENTANO F, 1933, KATEGORIENLEHRE
BRENTANO F, 1976, PHILOS UNTERSUCHUNGE
BRENTANO F, 1982, DESKRIPTIVE PSYCHOL
CHISHOLM RM, 1978, PHILOS BRENTANOS, P197
CHISHOLM RM, 1982, BRENTANO MEINONG STU
CHISHOLM RM, 1986, BRENTANO INTRINSIC V
FINE K, 1985, REASONING ARBITRARY
GOODMAN N, 1951, STRUCTURE APPEARANCE
GROSSMNN R, 1977, CONTENT OBJECT PRESE
HUSSERL E, 1900, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
INGARDEN R, 1938, NAUCZYCIEL UCZONY OB, P13
INGARDEN R, 1964, STREIT EXISTENZ WELT
KOTARBINSKI T, 1966, GNOSIOLOGY SCI APPRO
LEJEWSKI C, 1979, ONTOLOGY LOGIC, P197
LEONARD HS, 1940, J SYMBOLIC LOGIC, V5, P45
MARTY A, 1908, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GRUND, V1
MCCALL S, 1967, POLISH LOGIC 1920 39
MEINONG A, 1906, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN
MUNCH D, 1986, BOLZANO WITTGENSTEIN, P119
REINACH A, 1911, MUNCHENER PHILOS ABH, P196
SIMONS P, 1983, TOPOI-INT REV PHILOS, V2, P99
SMITH B, 1981, P AR SOC S, V55, P47
SMITH B, 1987, HIST WORTERBUCH PHIL, V7
SMITH B, 1987, TOPOI, V6, P37
SMITH B, 1988, IN PRESS MIND MEANIN
SMITH B, 1988, KOTARBINSKI LOGIC SE
STUMPF C, 1873, PSYCHOL URSPRUNG RAU
TWARDOWSKI K, 1894, LEHRE VOM INHALT GEG
VONEHRENFELS CF, 1990, VIERTELJAHRESSCHRIFT, V14, P242
NR 33
TC 0
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0167-7411
J9 TOPOI-INT REV PHIL
JI Topoi-Int. Rev. Philos.
PD MAR
PY 1989
VL 8
IS 1
BP 43
EP 51
PG 9
SC Philosophy
GA AA032
UT ISI:A1989AA03200005
ER

PT J
AU JACQUETTE, D
TI INTENTIONAL SEMANTICS AND THE LOGIC OF FICTION
SO BRITISH JOURNAL OF AESTHETICS
LA English
DT Article
RP JACQUETTE, D, PENN STATE UNIV,DEPT PHILOSOPHY,UNIVERSITY PK,PA 16802.
CR CHISHOLM RM, 1982, J PHILOS, V79, P537
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
JACQUETTE, 1985, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V25, P423
KRIPKE SA, 1980, NAMING NECESSITY
MARGOLIS J, 1965, LANGUAGE ART CRITICI
MEINONG A, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
PARSONS T, 1974, J PHILOS, V71, P575
PARSONS T, 1975, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V1, P83
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
PLANTINGA A, 1974, NATURE NECESSITY
ROUTLEY R, EXPLORING MEINONGS J
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P533
SARTRE JP, 1948, PSYCHOL IMAGINATION
SMITH B, 1980, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V41, P93
WOODS J, 1974, LOCIG FICTION PHILOS
ZALTA E, 1983, ABSTR OBJECTS INTRO
NR 17
TC 0
PU OXFORD UNIV PRESS UNITED KINGDOM
PI OXFORD
PA WALTON ST JOURNALS DEPT, OXFORD, ENGLAND OX2 6DP
SN 0007-0904
J9 BRIT J AESTHET
JI Br. J. Aesthet.
PD SPR
PY 1989
VL 29
IS 2
BP 168
EP 176
PG 9
SC Art; Humanities, Multidisciplinary
GA U3038
UT ISI:A1989U303800008
ER

PT J
AU STAHL, G
TI CONTRADICTORY AND INDIVIDUALIZABLE DESCRIPTIONS
SO REVUE PHILOSOPHIQUE DE LA FRANCE ET DE L ETRANGER
LA French
DT Article
CR BURIDANUS J, 1977, SOPHISMATA
CARNAP R, 1954, EINFUHRUNG SYMBOLISC
HALLER R, 1986, NONEXISTENCE PREDICA
MEINONG A, 1913, GESAMMELTE ABHANDLUN, V2
RUSSELL B, 1919, INTRO MATH PHILOS
STAHL G, 1960, REV PHILOS FRANCE ET, P97
STAHL G, 1977, ESTRUCTURA CONOCIMIM
STAHL G, 1978, REV PHILOS FRANCE ET, P145
STAHL G, 1979, REV PHILOS FRANCE ET, P273
STAHL G, 1982, REV PHILOS FRANCE ET, P487
STAHL G, 1983, REV PHILOS FRANCE ET, P311
STAHL G, 1985, REV PHILOS FRANCE ET, P289
WHITEHEAD AN, 1925, PRINCIPIA MATHEMATIC
NR 13
TC 0
PU PRESSES UNIV FRANCE
PI EVRY
PA DEPT DES REVUES 14, AVENUE DU BOIS-DE-L'EPINE B.P. 90, 91003 EVRY, FRANCE
SN 0035-3833
J9 REV PHIL FRAN ETRANG
JI Rev. Philos. Fr. Etrang.
PD JAN-MAR
PY 1989
VL 114
IS 1
BP 85
EP 91
PG 7
SC Philosophy
GA U0308
UT ISI:A1989U030800007
ER

PT J
AU POLI, R
TI ABSTRACTION AND IDEALIZATION
SO VERIFICHE
LA Italian
DT Article
CR ARISTOTLE, ANALITICI SECONDI
ARISTOTLE, TOPICI
ARNAULD A, 1978, LOGIQUE ART PENSER
BARTH EM, 1974, LOGIC ARTICLES TRADI
BERTALANFFY LV, 1968, GENERAL SYSTEM THEOR
BETH E, 1956, KANT-STUD, P461
BETH E, 1957, CRISE RAISON LOGIQUE
BETH E, 1970, ASPECTS MODERN LOGIC
CASSIRER E, 1910, SUBSTANCE FUNCTION E
CASTANEDA HN, 1980, PHILOS METHOD, V1
CONIGLIONE F, 1987, NOWACK OLTRE MARX MA
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
FINE K, 1985, REASONING ARBITARY O
GEHLEN A, 1978, MENSCH NATUR STELLUN
GRIMLEYKUNTZ P, 1971, SANTAYANA LOTZES SYS
HARTMANN N, 1933, PROBLEM GEISTIGEN SE
HARTMANN N, 1942, NEUE WEGE ONTOLOGIE
HARTMANN N, 1948, GRUNDLEGUNG ONTOLOGI
HARTMANN N, 1949, AUFBAU REALEN WELT
HARTMANN N, 1949, MOGLICHKEIT WIRKLICH
HENRY DP, 1983, ATTI CONVEGNO INT ST, P59
LALANDE A, 1926, VUCABULAIRE TECHNIQU
LEWIN K, 1926, SYMPOSIUM, V1, P61
LEWIN K, 1931, ERKENNTNIS, V1, P421
LOTZE RH, 1843, LOGIK
LOTZE RH, 1874, MIKROKOSMUS IDEEN NA
LOTZE RH, 1880, LOGIK 3 BUCHER VOM D
LOTZE RH, 1883, GRUNZUGE LOGIK ENCY
LUHMAN N, 1980, GESELLSCHAFTSSTRUKTU
LUHMANN N, 1970, SOZIOLOGISCHE AUFKLA
LUSCHEI EC, 1962, LOGICAL SYSTEMS LESN
MATTEUZZI M, 1981, FORMA TEORIA STUDIO
MEINONG A, 1902, UBER ANNAHMEN
MEINONG A, 1915, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
MEINONG A, 1968, GESAMTAUSGABE
MELANDRI E, 1964, RIV FILOSOFIA, V58, P31
MOHANTY JN, 1957, N HARTMANN AN WHITEH
NOWAK L, 1977, SCI COME IDEALIZZAZI
NOWAK L, 1980, STRUCTURE IDEALIZATI
NOWAK L, 1987, OLTRE MARX UN MATERI
ORTH EW, 1986, GRUNDPROBLEME GROSSE, V4, P8
PASCAL B, ESPRIT GEOMETRIQUE
POLI R, 1988, IN PRESS IDEE
SHARVY R, 1983, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, P227
SIMONS P, 1987, PARTS
SRZEDNICKI J, 1984, LESNIEWSKIS SYSTEMS
WHITEHEAD AN, 1926, SCI MODERN WORLD
NR 47
TC 0
PU ASSN TRENTINA SCI UMANE
PI TRENT
PA PIAZZA CESARE BATTISTI 30 CASELLA POSTALE 269, 38100 TRENT, ITALY
SN 0391-4186
J9 VERIFICHE
JI Verifiche
PD JUL-SEP
PY 1988
VL 17
IS 3
BP 189
EP 207
PG 19
SC Philosophy
GA R2015
UT ISI:A1988R201500001
ER

PT J
AU SCHUHMANN, K
TI THE HUSSERL IDEA OF PHILOSOPHY
SO HUSSERL STUDIES
LA German
DT Article
RP SCHUHMANN, K, STATE UNIV UTRECHT,UTRECHT,NETHERLANDS.
CR 1907, ABHANDLUNGEN KGL PRE, P26
1954, FORMALISMUS ETHIK MA, P102
1973, PHILOS PHANOMENOLOGI, P32
CHALYBAUS HM, 1861, FUNDAMENTALPHILOSOPH, P51
FICHTE JG, 1962, AUSGEWAHLTE WERKE, V1, P173
GEBHARDT, SPINOZAS BRIEF
HALLENSER, 1977, HUSSERL CHRONIK, P22
HANDELNS, 1883, GRUNDZUGE LOGIK ENCY, P91
HEGEL A, 1952, PHANOMENOLOGIE GEIST, P12
HUSSERL E, HUA, V24, P217
HUSSERL E, HUA, V7, P376
HUSSERL E, HUA, V8, P338
HUSSERL E, HUA, V9, P298
HUSSERL E, METAPHYSIK
KERN I, 1964, HUSSERL KANT UNTERSU, P179
LEMBECK KH, 1987, HUSSERL STUD, V3, P209
MALINGREY AM, 1961, PHILOS ETUDE UN GROU, P49
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN, P38
RICKERT H, 1915, GEGENSTAND ERKENNTNI, P21
ROSENKRANZ K, 1858, METAPHYSIK, P102
SCHUHMANN K, 1828, NEUE ODER ANTHR KRIT, P32
SCHUHMANN K, 1971, FUNDAMENTALBETRACHTU, P44
SCHUHMANN K, 1984, HUSSERL STUD, V1, P38
STROKER E, 1987, SELBSTBEGRUNDUNG PHI, P108
VONHARTMANN E, 1908, SYSTEMS PHILOS GRUND
NR 25
TC 0
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0167-9848
J9 HUSSERL STUD
JI Husserl Stud.
PD DEC
PY 1988
VL 5
IS 3
BP 235
EP 256
PG 22
SC Philosophy
GA R4101
UT ISI:A1988R410100003
ER

PT J
AU ECKARDT, G
TI KOHLER,WOLFGANG, GESTALT PSYCHOLOGY AND NATURAL-PHILOSOPHY OF THE CONFIGURATION - ON THE 100TH-BIRTHDAY OF THE CO-FOUNDER OF THE BERLIN-SCHOOL
SO ZEITSCHRIFT FUR PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Article
C1 FRIEDRICH SCHILLER UNIV,SEKT PSYCHOL,DDR-6900 JENA,GER DEM REP.
CR *BERG SIND UNT INT, 1967, VOM VORST AUSSCHL BE, P3
ASH M, 1980, CENTRAL EUROPEAN HIS, V13, P255
ASH MG, 1982, THESIS HARVARD U
BERGIUS R, 1967, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V31, R1
BERGIUS R, 1980, NEUE DTSCH BIOGRAPHI, V12, P302
BISCHOF N, 1966, HDB PSYCHOL, V1
BORING EG, 1957, HIST EXPT PSYCHOL
BUHLER K, 1922, GEISTIGE ENTWICKLUNG
BUYTENDIJK FJJ, 1959, HUSSERL DENKEN NEUZE
CORNELIUS H, 1900, Z PSYCHOL, V24, P117
ECKARDT G, 1968, WISS Z FSU JENA, V17, P237
ECKARDT G, 1981, WORTERBUCH PSYCHOL
HEIDER F, 1970, J HIST BEHAV SCI, V6, P131
HENLE M, 1978, AM PSYCHOL, V33, P939
HIEBSCH H, 1974, PHILOS WORTERBUCH, P500
HORMANN H, 1967, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V31, R15
HUSSERL E, 1900, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
HUSSERL E, 1913, IDEEN EINER REINEN P
JAGER S, 1987, NACHRICHTENBLATT DEU, V4, P5
KLIX F, 1973, INFORMATION VERHALTE
KLIX F, 1979, GESCH PSYCHOL
KOHLER W, 1910, Z PSYCHOL, V54, P241
KOHLER W, 1911, Z PSYCHOL, V58, P59
KOHLER W, 1913, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V64, P92
KOHLER W, 1913, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V66, P51
KOHLER W, 1915, Z PSYCHOL, V72, P1
KOHLER W, 1921, INTELLIGENZPRUFUNGEN
KOHLER W, 1922, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V1, P2
KOHLER W, 1924, PHYSISCHEN GESTALTEN, P58
KOHLER W, 1933, PSYCHOL PROBLEME
KOHLER W, 1944, FIGURAL AFTER EFFECT
KOHLER W, 1947, FIGURAL AFTER EFFECT
KOHLER W, 1949, SCIENCE, V109, P442
KOHLER W, 1949, SCIENCE, V110, P414
KOHLER W, 1958, DYNAMISCHE ZUSAMMENH
KOHLER W, 1965, MOVEMENT AFTER EFFEC
KOHLER W, 1965, UNSOLVED PROBLEMS FI
KOHLER W, 1967, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V31, R18
KOHLER W, 1971, AUFGABEN GESTALTPSYC
LEONTJEW AN, 1985, AUSGEWAHLTE SCHRIFTE, V1
MEILI R, 1972, PSYCHOL SELBSTDARSTE
MEINONG A, 1891, Z PSYCHOL, V2, P245
METZGER W, 1954, PSYCHOL ENTWICKLUNG
METZGER W, 1970, SCHWEIZERISCHE Z PSY, V29, P16
METZGER W, 1972, PSYCHOL SELBSTDARSTE
NOACK H, 1976, PHILOS WESTEUROPAS
PETROWSKI AW, 1967, GESCH SOWJETISCHEN P, P211
PRATT CC, 1971, AUFGABEN GESTALTPSYC, P3
RUBINSTEIN SL, 1984, GRUNDLAGEN ALLGEMEIN
SCHEERER E, 1980, PSYCHOL RES, V41, P113
SCHMIDT HD, 1970, ALLGEMEINE ENTWICKLU
SPRUNG L, 1986, Z PSYCHOL, V194, P509
SPRUNG L, 1987, GESCH PSYCHOL BERLIN, V2
TEMBROCK G, 1963, GRUNDLAGEN TIERPSYCH
TEUBER HL, 1967, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V31, R6
WYGOTSKI LS, 1964, DENKEN SPRECHEN, P85
WYGOTSKI LS, 1985, AUSGEWAHLTE SCHRIFTE, V1, P81
NR 57
TC 0
PU JOHANN AMBROSIUS BARTH VERLAG
PI HEIDELBERG
PA IM WEIHER 10, D-69121 HEIDELBERG, GERMANY
SN 0044-3409
J9 Z PSYCHOL
JI Z. Psychol.
PY 1988
VL 196
IS 1
BP 3
EP 25
PG 23
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA P6545
UT ISI:A1988P654500002
ER

PT J
AU BURKHARDT, H
TI MODALITIES IN LANGUAGE, THOUGHT AND REALITY IN LEIBNIZ, DESCARTES AND CRUSIUS
SO SYNTHESE
LA English
DT Article
RP BURKHARDT, H, UNIV ERLANGEN NURNBERG,D-8520 ERLANGEN,FED REP GER.
CR ABELARD P, 1970, DIALECTICA
ANDERSON AR, 1958, MIND, V67, P100
AQUINAS T, IN DE COELO
ARISTOTLE, DE INTERPRETATIONE
ARISTOTLE, 1831, OPERA
BAILHACHE P, 1979, ARCH RECHTS SOZIALPH, V65, P269
BAUDRY L, 1950, QUERELLE FUTURS CONT
BECKER A, 1933, ARISTOTELISCHE THEOR
BECKER O, 1952, UNTERSUCHUNGEN MODAL
BURKHARDT H, 1980, LOGIK SEMIOTIK PHILO
BURKHARDT H, 1980, STUDIA LEIBNITIA S18, V3, P83
BURKHARDT H, 1983, ANUARIO FILOSOFICO, V16, P273
BURKHARDT H, 1985, ANN DISCIPLINE FILOS, P273
BURKHARDT H, 1985, PHILOS GEISTES PHILO, P537
BURMS A, 1979, STUDIA LEIBNITIANA, V11, P124
CLAUBERGIUS J, 1652, DEFENSIO CARTESIANA
COPP D, 1973, STUDIA LEIBNITIANA, V5, P26
COUTURAT L, 1901, LOGIQUE LEIBNIZ
CRUSIUS CA, 1753, ENTWURF NOTWENDIGEN
CURLEY EM, 1972, LEIBNITZ COLLECTION, P69
DEKU H, 1956, PHILOS JB, V64, P1
DESCARTES R, 1910, OEUVRES, V1
DICK SJ, 1982, PLURALITY WORLDS ORI
DICKER G, 1982, STUD LEIBNITIANA, V14, P221
DUFOUR C, 1988, SINN REFERENZ THEORI
FRANKEL L, 1984, STUD LEIBNITIANA, V16, P45
GOCHET P, 1986, ASCENT TRUTH CRITICA
GOCLENIUS R, 1613, LEXICON PHILOS QUO T
HACKING I, 1975, EMERGENCE PROBABILIT
HINTIKKA J, 1972, LEIBNIZ COLLECTION C, P155
HOSTLER J, 1973, STUDIA LEIBNITIANA, V5, P281
HULSER KH, 1982, FRAGMENTE DIALEKTIK
ISHIGURO H, 1972, LEIBNIZS PHILOS LOGI
ISHIGURO H, 1978, STUDIA LEIBNITIA S18, V2, P33
JACOBI K, 1980, MODALBEGRIFFE LOGISC
KALINOWSKI G, 1974, ARCH RECHTS SOZIALPH, V60, P79
KALINOWSKI G, 1985, SEMIOTIQUE PHILOS PA
KAUPPI R, 1960, ACTA PHILOS FENNICA, V12
KNEALE W, 1962, DEV LOGIC
KNUUTTILA S, 1981, REFORGING GREAT CHAI, P163
KRUGER L, 1981, ARCH GESCH PHILOS, V63, P47
LEIBNIZ GW, 1948, TEXTES INEDITS APRES
LEIBNIZ GW, 1969, PHILOS PAPERS LETT S
LEIBNIZ GWV, CONFESSIO PHILOS A, V6, P126
LEIBNIZ GWV, PHILOS PAPERS LETT, V6, P283
LEIBNIZ GWV, 1875, PHILOS SCHRIFTEN
LEIBNIZ GWV, 1889, LEIBNIZ HANDSCHRIFTE
LEIBNIZ GWV, 1903, OPUSCULES FRAGMENTS
LEIBNIZ GWV, 1923, SAMTLICHE SCHRIFTEN
LEIBNIZ GWV, 1960, FRAGMENTE LOGIK
LEIBNIZ GWV, 1966, LOGICAL PAPERS
LEIBNIZ GWV, 1985, THEODICY
LENZEN W, 1984, STUD LEIBNITIANA, V16, P187
LOVEJOY AO, 1972, LEIBNIZ COLLECTION C, P281
MAHER P, 1980, STUDIA LEIBNITIANA, V12, P236
MATES B, 1972, LEIBNIZ COLLECTION C, P335
MATES B, 1972, STUDIA LEIBNITIANA, V4, P81
MATES B, 1986, PHILOS LEIBNIZ METAP
MEIJERING T, 1978, STUDIA LEIBNITIANA, V10, P22
MEINONG A, 1915, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
MEYER A, 1900, THESIS BERN
MONDADORI F, 1973, STUDIA LEIBNITIANA, V5, P74
POSER H, 1969, THEORIE MODALBEGRIFF
QUINE WV, 1953, LOGICAL POINT VIEW
RESCHER N, 1967, PHILOS LEIBNIZ
RESCHER N, 1968, STUDIA LEIBNITIANA S, V2, P253
RESCHER N, 1974, AM PHILOS Q MONOGRAP, V8, P57
RESCHER N, 1979, LEIBNIZ INTRO HIS PH
RUSSELL B, 1937, CRITICAL EXPOSITION
VERBURG PA, 1976, HIST LINGUISTIC THOU, P593
VUILLEMIN J, 1984, NECESSITE CONTINGENC
WEINERT F, 1980, STUDIA LEIBNITIANA, V12, P125
WUNDT M, 1939, DTSCH SCHULMETAPHYSI
NR 73
TC 0
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0039-7857
J9 SYNTHESE
JI Synthese
PD MAY
PY 1988
VL 75
IS 2
BP 183
EP 215
PG 33
SC History & Philosophy Of Science
GA P1928
UT ISI:A1988P192800005
ER

PT J
AU VOLTOLINI, A
TI BELIEF AND INTENTIONALITY
SO TOPOI-AN INTERNATIONAL REVIEW OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
RP VOLTOLINI, A, SCUOLA NORMALE SUPER,I-56100 PISA,ITALY.
CR BACH K, 1981, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V59, P371
BACH K, 1982, THOUGHT OBJECT ESSAY, P121
BENCIVENGA E, 1974, LINGUA STILE, V9, P147
BENCIVENGA E, 1983, J PHILOS, V80, P785
BIRO JI, 1984, LOGIQUE ANAL, V107, P267
BONOMI A, 1974, VIE RIFERIMENTO
BONOMI A, 1979, OGGETTI DISCORSO
BONOMI A, 1983, EVENTI MENTALI
BONOMI A, 1987, IMMAGINI NOMI
CASTANEDA HN, 1974, PHILOSOPHIA, V4, P3
CASTANEDA HN, 1975, PHILOSOPHIA, V5, P120
CASTANEDA HN, 1977, SYNTHESE, V35, P285
CHISHOLM RM, 1981, 1ST PERSON ESSAY REF
CHISHOLM RM, 1985, PHILOS MIND PHILOS P
DONNELLAN K, 1966, PHILOS REV, V75, P281
DONNELLAN K, 1970, SYNTHESE, V21, P335
DUMMETT M, 1981, FREGE PHILOS LANGUAG
DUMMETT M, 1981, INTERPRETATION FREGE
DUMMETT M, 1982, FILOSOFIA LINGUAGGIO
EVANS G, 1973, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC S, V47, P187
FREGE G, 1892, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V100, P25
FRENCH PA, 1979, CONT PERSPECTIVES PH
GEACH PT, 1982, LOGIC MATTERS, P139
HARRISON B, 1982, MIND, V91, P321
HINTIKKA KJI, 1973, APPROACHES NATURAL L
HUSSERL E, 1950, IDEEN REINEN PHANOME
HUSSERL E, 1959, KRISIS EUROPAISCHEN
KAPLAN D, 1973, APPROACHES NATURAL L, P490
KRIPKE S, 1979, CONT PERSPECTIVES PH, P6
KRIPKE S, 1979, MEANING USE, P239
KRIPKE SA, 1971, IDENTITY INDIVIDUATI
KUNG G, 1985, PHILOS MIND PHILOS P, P31
LAURIER D, 1986, PHILOS QUART, V36, P37
LEWIS D, 1981, AUSTRALAS J PHILOS, V59, P283
LINSKI L, 1980, OBLIQUE CONTEXTS
LUMSDEN D, 1984, PACIFIC PHILOS Q, P189
MARCUS RB, 1983, J PHILOS, V80, P321
MARGALIT A, 1979, MEANING USE
MCGINN C, 1982, THOUGHT OBJECT, P207
MEINONG A, GEGENSTANDSTHEORIE
MUNITZ MK, 1971, IDENTITY INDIVIDUATI
NOONAN H, 1980, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, V81, P93
OVER DE, MIND, V92, P253
PARSONS T, 1980, NONEXISTENT OBJECTS
PUTNAM H, 1979, MEANING USE, P284
QUINE WV, 1956, J PHILOS, V53, P177
SEARLE JR, 1985, INTENZIONALITA
WITTGENSTEIN L, ON CERTAINTY
WITTGENSTEIN L, TRACTATUS LOGICO-PHI
WOODFIELD A, 1982, THOUGHT OBJECT
NR 50
TC 0
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0167-7411
J9 TOPOI-INT REV PHIL
JI Topoi-Int. Rev. Philos.
PD SEP
PY 1987
VL 6
IS 2
BP 121
EP 131
PG 11
SC Philosophy
GA K7339
UT ISI:A1987K733900007
ER

PT J
AU SPINICCI, P
TI ABSTRACTION AND REFLECTION IN HUSSERL,EDMUND 'FILOSOFIA DELL ARITMETICA'
SO RIVISTA DI STORIA DELLA FILOSOFIA
LA Italian
DT Article
CR BERKELEY G, TREATISE PRINCIPLES
BRENTANO F, 1874, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN
BRENTANO F, 1970, WAHRHEIT EVIDENZ
BRENTANO F, 1982, DESKRIPTIVE PSYCHOL
DEBOER T, 1978, DEV HUSSERLS THOUGHT
DENTONI F, 1977, FORMAZIONE PROBLEMAT
DENTONI F, 1978, ALLE ORIGINI FENOMEN
FREGE G, 1977, LOGICA ARITMETICA
HOLENSTEIN E, 1975, HUSSERLIANA, V18, R18
HUSSERL E, ERFAHRUNG URTEIL
HUSSERL E, 1887, UEBER BEGRIFF ZAHL
HUSSERL E, 1891, PHILOS ARITHMETIK
HUSSERL E, 1965, IDEE UNA FENOMENOLOG, V1
HUSSERL E, 1968, RICERCHE LOGICHE, V2
HUSSERL E, 1970, HUSSERLIANA, V12
HUSSERL E, 1983, HUSSERLIANA, V21
HUSSERL E, 1984, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
MARTY A, 1950, UEBER WERT METHODE E
MEINONG A, 1877, GESCH KRITIK MODERNE
MEINONG A, 1882, HUME STUDIEN, V2
MILL JS, EXAMINATION W HAMILT
MILLER JP, 1982, NUMBERS PRESENCE ABS
MOHANTHY JN, 1982, HUSSERL FREGE
PIANA G, 1979, ELEMENTI UNA DOTTRIN
SIGWART C, 1924, LOGIK 1873 78
WILLARD D, 1984, OBJECTIVITY KNOWLEDG
NR 26
TC 0
PU FRANCO ANGELI
PI MILAN
PA VIALE MONZA 106, 20127 MILAN, ITALY
SN 0393-2516
J9 RIV STOR FILOS
JI Riv. Stor. Filos.
PY 1987
VL 42
IS 3
BP 519
EP 537
PG 19
SC Philosophy
GA K1935
UT ISI:A1987K193500006
ER

PT J
AU CARLETON, LR
TI ON ASSUMPTIONS - MEINONG,A
SO MODERN SCHOOLMAN
LA English
DT Book Review
RP CARLETON, LR, UNIV SAN DIEGO,SAN DIEGO,CA 92110.
CR MEINONG A, 1983, ASSUMPTIONS
NR 1
TC 0
PU ST LOUIS UNIV
PI ST LOUIS
PA 221 NORTH GRAND BLVD, ST LOUIS, MO 63103-2097
SN 0026-8402
J9 MOD SCHOOLMAN
JI Mod. Schoolman
PD JAN
PY 1987
VL 64
IS 2
BP 136
EP 138
PG 3
SC Philosophy
GA G6376
UT ISI:A1987G637600013
ER

PT J
AU SAJAMA, S
TI SUPEREROGATION AND HIGH VALUES
SO THEORIA
LA English
DT Article
RP SAJAMA, S, UNIV TURKU,SF-20500 TURKU 50,FINLAND.
CR BOSWELL J, 1952, LIFE S JOHNSON, V44
CHISHOLM RM, 1963, RATIO, V5
CHISHOLM RM, 1982, BRENTANO MEINONG STU
HARTMANN N, 1962, ETHIK
KANT I, 1785, GRUNDLEGUNG METAPHYS
MEINONG A, 1968, ETHISCHE BAUSTEINE, V3
MEINONG A, 1968, PSYCHOL ETHISCHE UNT, V3
URMSON JO, 1958, ESSAYS MORAL PHILOS
NR 8
TC 0
PU THEORIA FILOSOFISKA INSTITUTIONEN
PI LUND
PA KUNGSHUSET I LUNDAGARD, S-223 50 LUND, SWEDEN
SN 0040-5817
J9 THEORIA
PY 1985
VL 51
PN Part 2
BP 77
EP 88
PG 12
SC Humanities, Multidisciplinary; Philosophy; Social Sciences, Interdisciplinary
GA E4548
UT ISI:A1985E454800002
ER

PT J
AU WILSON, F
TI HUMES SENTIMENTS - JONES,P
SO NOUS
LA English
DT Book Review
RP WILSON, F, UNIV TORONTO,TORONTO M5S 1A1,ONTARIO,CANADA.
CR ARDAL PS, 1976, HUME REVALUATION
BEAUCHAMP TL, 1981, HUME PROBLEM CAUSATI
BERGMANN G, 1952, METAPHYSICS LOGICAL
CAPALDI N, 1975, D HUME NEWTONIAN PHI
JONES P, HUMES SENTIMENTS
LIVINGSTON DW, 1984, HUMES PHILOS COMMON
MEINONG A, 1877, HUME STUDIES, V1
NORTON DF, 1982, D HUME COMMON SENSE
NOXON J, 1973, HUMES PHILOS DEV
SELLARS WS, 1967, PHILOSOPHICAL PERSPE
SMITH NK, 1941, PHILOS D HUME CRITIC
STOVE DC, 1979, MCGILL HUME STUDIES
STROUD B, 1978, HUME
WILSON F, 1975, PHILOS STUDIES, V28
WILSON F, 1982, J BUSINESS ETHICS, V1
WILSON F, 1982, MILL NEWS LETT, V17
WILSON F, 1983, DIALOGUE, V22
WILSON F, 1983, PHILOS RES ARCH, V9
WILSON F, 1983, PHILOS STUDIES, V44
WILSON F, 1985, HUME STUDIES, V2
WILSON F, 1986, EARLY MODERN PHILOS
NR 21
TC 0
PU BLACKWELL PUBLISHERS
PI CAMBRIDGE
PA 350 MAIN STREET, STE 6, CAMBRIDGE, MA 02148-5023
SN 0029-4624
J9 NOUS
JI Nous
PD JUN
PY 1986
VL 20
IS 2
BP 274
EP 281
PG 8
SC Philosophy
GA D0125
UT ISI:A1986D012500012
ER

PT J
AU GRIFFIN, N
TI ON ASSUMPTIONS - MEINONG,A
SO DIALOGUE-CANADIAN PHILOSOPHICAL REVIEW
LA English
DT Book Review
RP GRIFFIN, N, MCMASTER UNIV,HAMILTON L8S 4L8,ONTARIO,CANADA.
CR MEINONG A, 1983, ASSUMPTIONS
NR 1
TC 0
PU CANADIAN PHILOSOPHICAL ASSOC
PI OTTAWA
PA MORISSET HALL #375, UNIV OTTAWA, OTTAWA ON K1N 6N5, CANADA
SN 0012-2173
J9 DIALOGUE-CAN PHIL REV
JI Dialogue-Can. Philos. Rev.
PD WIN
PY 1985
VL 24
IS 4
BP 726
EP 728
PG 3
SC Philosophy
GA C2117
UT ISI:A1985C211700017
ER

PT J
AU STAHL, G
TI EXISTENTIAL PREDICATES IN FORMAL-LOGIC
SO REVUE PHILOSOPHIQUE DE LA FRANCE ET DE L ETRANGER
LA French
DT Article
RP STAHL, G, CNRS,F-75005 PARIS,FRANCE.
CR 1977, ESTRUCTURA CONOCIMIE
1978, REV PHILOS FRANCE ET, V2, P145
1979, PHILOS PHENOM RES PH, V39, P511
1979, REV PHILOS FRANCE ET, V3, P273
1982, REV PHILOS FRANCE ET, V3, P487
1984, REV PHILOS FRANCE ET, V4, P443
BURIDAN J, 1977, SOPHISMATA
KLEIBER G, 1983, NOTION SEMANTICO LOG
MEINONG A, 1913, GESAMMELTE ABHANDLUN, V2
PRANTL C, 1957, GESCH LOGIK ABENDLAN
PRIOR AN, 1967, PAST PRESENT FUTURE
STAHL G, 1960, REV PHILOS FRANCE ET, V1, P97
STAHL G, 1969, PHILOS PHENOM RES PH, V30, P252
STAHL G, 1981, LOGIQUE ANAL
VUILLEMIN J, 1984, NECESSITE CONTINGENC
NR 15
TC 0
PU PRESSES UNIV FRANCE
PI EVRY
PA DEPT DES REVUES 14, AVENUE DU BOIS-DE-L'EPINE B.P. 90, 91003 EVRY, FRANCE
SN 0035-3833
J9 REV PHIL FRAN ETRANG
JI Rev. Philos. Fr. Etrang.
PY 1985
VL 110
IS 3
BP 289
EP 295
PG 7
SC Philosophy
GA ATT07
UT ISI:A1985ATT0700003
ER

PT J
AU WEINBERGER, O
TI FREEDOM, RANGE FOR ACTION, AND THE ONTOLOGY OF NORMS
SO SYNTHESE
LA English
DT Article
RP WEINBERGER, O, GRAZ UNIV,INST RECHTSPHILOS,A-8010 GRAZ,AUSTRIA.
CR ALCHOURRON CE, 1981, NEW STUDIES DEONTIC, P95
ANSCOMBE GEM, 1958, ANALYSIS, V18
ENGLIS K, 1964, ARSP, V50, P315
HARTMANN N, 1933, PROBLEM GEISTIGEN SE
HARTMANN N, 1940, AUFBAU REALEN WELT
JORGENSEN J, 1937, ERKENNTNIS, V7
KANT I, GRUNDLEGUNG METAPHYS
KELSEN H, 1960, REINE RECHTSLEHRE
MACCORMICK DN, 1985, GRUNDLAGEN I RECHTSP
MEINONG A, PHILOS SELBSTDARSTEL, V1, P1
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
MORSCHER E, 1972, Z PHILOS FORSCHUNG, V26, P282
POPPER KR, 1973, OBJECTIVE KNOWLEDGE
SEARLE JR, 1969, SPEECH ACTS, CH2
VONWRIGHT GH, 1963, NORM ACTION
VONWRIGHT GH, 1977, HANDLUNG NORM INTENT, P87
WEINBERGER C, 1976, LOGIK ANNAHMEN
WEINBERGER C, 1979, LOGIK SEMANTIK HERME
WEINBERGER O, 1958, SOLLSATZPROBLEMATIK
WEINBERGER O, 1977, RECHTSTHEORIE, V1, P19
WEINBERGER O, 1980, Z PHILOS FORSCHUNG, V34, P607
WEINBERGER O, 1982, 1982 WORLD C PHILOS
WEINBERGER O, 1983, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V20, P219
NR 23
TC 0
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0039-7857
J9 SYNTHESE
JI Synthese
PY 1985
VL 65
IS 2
BP 307
EP 324
PG 18
SC History & Philosophy Of Science
GA ATZ96
UT ISI:A1985ATZ9600009
ER

PT J
AU SMITH, B
TI MODIFICATION OF SENSITIVITY, THE AESTHETIC OF THE GRAZ-SCHOOL + WITASEK,STEPHAN AND MEINOG,ALEXIUS
SO REVUE D ESTHETIQUE
LA French
DT Article
RP SMITH, B, UNIV MANCHESTER,MANCHESTER M13 9PL,LANCS,ENGLAND.
CR BENUSSI V, 1914, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V32, P396
BRENTANO F, 1925, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN
BRENTANO F, 1982, DESKRIPTIVE PSYCHOL
DUNCKER K, 1941, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V1, P391
EHRENFELS CV, 1890, VIERTELJAHRSSCHRIFT, V14, P249
EHRENFELS CV, 1960, GESTALTHAFTES SEHEN, P11
EHRENFELS CV, 1982, PHILOS SCHRIFTEN, V1
EVANS G, 1982, VARIETIES EXPERIENCE
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
HELLER E, 1928, JB PHILOS PHANOMENOL, V10, P485
HUSSERL E, 1900, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
INGARDEN R, 1931, LOGIK LITERATURWISSE
INGARDEN R, 1960, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V21, P289
INGARDEN R, 1983, MAN VALUE
KOFFKA K, 1915, Z PSYCHOL, V73, P11
LANGE K, 1895, BEWUSSTE SELBSTTAUSC
LANGE K, 1907, WESEN KUNST GRUNDZUG
MACH E, 1886, BEITRAGE ANAL EMPFIN
MACH E, 1903, ANAL EMPFINUNGEN VER
MEINONG A, 1891, Z PSYCHOL, V2, P245
MEINONG A, 1894, PSYCHOL ETHISCHE UNT
MEINONG A, 1899, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V21, P182
MEINONG A, 1906, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V6, P22
MEINONG A, 1910, UBER ANNAHMEN
MEINONG H, 1889, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V95, P161
MEINONG H, 1968, GESAMTAUSGABE, V1
MOLLER A, 1903, MONATSBERICHTE KUNST, V3, P230
MULLIGAN K, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI
MULLIGAN K, 1984, PHILOS CHRISTIAN EHR
ODEBRECHT R, 1927, GRUNDLEGUNG EINER AS, V1
RUSSELL B, 1910, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, V11, P108
SAXINGER R, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN, P579
SAXINGER R, 1906, Z PSYCHOL, V40, P145
SAXINGER R, 1908, Z PSYCHOL, V46, P401
SCHULZKI E, 1980, MENSCH ALS ELEMENTEN
SMITH B, 1984, AESTHETICS
SMITH B, 1984, DIALECTICA, V38, P157
SMITH B, 1985, F GESTALT THEORY
WALTON K, 1973, PHILOS REV, V82, P283
WALTON K, 1978, J PHILOS, V75, P5
WITASEK S, 1896, Z PSYCHOL, V12, P185
WITASEK S, 1897, ARCH SYSTEMAT PHILOS, V3, P273
WITASEK S, 1897, Z PSYCHOL, V14, P401
WITASEK S, 1898, NATUR GEOMETRISCHOPT
WITASEK S, 1899, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V19, P81
WITASEK S, 1901, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V25, P1
WITASEK S, 1902, ARCH SYSTEMATISCHE P, V8, P164
WITASEK S, 1904, GRUNDZUGE ALLGEMEINE
WITASEK S, 1908, GRUNDINIEN PSYCHOL
WITASEK S, 1915, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V157, P87
NR 50
TC 0
PU EDITIONS JEAN-MICHEL PLACE
PI PARIS
PA 12 RUE PIERRE-ET-MARIE-CURIE, 75005 PARIS, FRANCE
SN 0035-2292
J9 REV ESTHET
JI Rev. Esthet.
PY 1985
IS 9
BP 19
EP 37
PG 19
SC Humanities, Multidisciplinary
GA AMQ27
UT ISI:A1985AMQ2700003
ER

PT J
AU SCHUBERTKALSI, ML
TI ON EVIDENCE ACCORDING TO MEINONG AND CHISHOLM
SO PHILOSOPHICAL TOPICS
LA English
DT Article
RP SCHUBERTKALSI, ML, TEXAS A&M UNIV,COLLEGE STN,TX 77843.
CR BRENTANO F, 1930, WAHRHEIT EVIDENZ
BRENTANO F, 1966, TRUE EVIDENT
FOGELIN RF, 1967, EVIDENCE MEANING
MEINONG A, EMOTIONAL PRESENTATI
MEINONG A, 1972, GESAMTAUSGABE, V1
ORNSTEIN JH, 1972, MIND BRAIN
POPPER KR, SELF ITS BRAIN
RODERICK M, 1974, PERCEIVING PHILOS ST
ROSEN K, 1977, EVIDENZ HUSSERLS DES
SCHUBERTKALSI ML, 1978, A MEINONG OBJECTS HI
NR 10
TC 0
PU PHILOSOPHICAL TOPICS INC
PI FAYETTEVILLE
PA UNIV ARKANSAS DEPT PHILOSOPHY 127 KIMPEL HALL, FAYETTEVILLE, AR 72701
SN 0276-2080
J9 PHIL TOPICS
PY 1985
VL 13
IS 2
BP 77
EP 85
PG 9
SC Philosophy
GA ALX10
UT ISI:A1985ALX1000009
ER

PT J
AU BERGER, G
TI PARTS AND MOMENTS - STUDIES IN LOGIC AND FORMAL ONTOLOGY - SMITH,B
SO NOUS
LA English
DT Book Review
RP BERGER, G, ERASMUS UNIV,3000 DR ROTTERDAM,NETHERLANDS.
CR BERGMANN G, 1964, LOGIC REALITY
BOLZANO B, 1972, THEORY SCI
CHISHOLM RM, 1976, PERSON OBJECT METAPH
EBERLE R, 1970, NOMINALISTIC SYSTEMS
GOODMAN N, 1966, STRUCTURE APPEARANCE
HUSSERL E, 1970, LOGICAL INVESTIGATIO, V1
LEJEWSKI C, 1967, NOTRE DAME J FORMAL, V8, P279
LUSCHEI EC, 1962, LOGICAL SYSTEMS LESN
MEINONG A, 1978, A MEINONG OBJECTS HI
SMITH B, 1982, PARTS MOMENTS STUDIE
TARSKI A, 1956, LOGIC SEMANTICS META
TWARDOWSKI K, 1977, CONTENT OBJECT PRESE
NR 12
TC 0
PU BLACKWELL PUBLISHERS
PI CAMBRIDGE
PA 350 MAIN STREET, STE 6, CAMBRIDGE, MA 02148-5023
SN 0029-4624
J9 NOUS
JI Nous
PY 1985
VL 19
IS 1
BP 115
EP 121
PG 7
SC Philosophy
GA AFF56
UT ISI:A1985AFF5600079
ER

PT J
AU SAYWARD, C
TI MINDS, SUBSTANCES, AND CAPACITIES
SO PHILOSOPHY AND PHENOMENOLOGICAL RESEARCH
LA English
DT Article
RP SAYWARD, C, UNIV NEBRASKA,LINCOLN,NE 68588.
CR ARMSTRONG DM, 1968, MATERIALIST THEORY M
CHISHOLM RM, 1966, THEORY OF KNOWLEDGE
DESCARTES R, MEDITATIONS
MEINONG A, 1917, EMOTIONALE PRASENTAT
RYLE G, 1949, CONCEPT OF MIND
NR 5
TC 0
PU PHILOSOPHY PHENOMENOLOGICAL RES
PI PROVIDENCE
PA BROWN UNIV BOX 1947, PROVIDENCE, RI 02912
SN 0031-8205
J9 PHIL PHENOMENOL RES
JI Philos. Phenomenol. Res.
PY 1983
VL 44
IS 2
BP 213
EP 225
PG 13
SC Philosophy
GA RT496
UT ISI:A1983RT49600004
ER

PT J
AU HALLER, R
TI OBJECTS, ACTS, AND ATTITUDES
SO DIALECTICA
LA English
DT Article
RP HALLER, R, GRAZ UNIV,A-8010 GRAZ,AUSTRIA.
CR BRAND M, UNPUB INTENDING BELI
CASTANEDA HN, 1975, THINKING DOING PHILO
CHISHOLM RM, 1971, IDENTITY INDIVIDUATI, P24
CHISHOLM RM, 1972, JENSEITS SEIN NICHTS, P30
GEACH PT, 1976, MONIST, V59, P306
HALLER R, 1972, JENSEITS SEIN NICHTS, P223
MEINONG A, UBER ANNAHMEN
MEINONG A, 1971, GESAMTAUSGABE, V2
PRIOR AN, 1971, OBJECTS THOUGHT
QUINE WVO, 1969, ONTOLOGICAL RELATIVI
SCRUTON R, 1971, P ARISTOTELIAN SOC, P197
SMITH B, 1978, GRAZER PHILOS STUDIE, V6, P47
TWARDOWSKI K, 1977, CONTENT OBJECT PRESE
NR 13
TC 0
PU SOC DIALECTICA C/O GEIGER AG BERN
PI BERN 16
PA HABSBURGSTRASSE 19, 3000 BERN 16, SWITZERLAND
SN 0012-2017
J9 DIALECTICA
JI Dialectica
PY 1984
VL 38
IS 2-3
BP 179
EP 190
PG 12
SC Philosophy
GA TH524
UT ISI:A1984TH52400007
ER

PT J
AU MODENATO, F
TI ACT, CONTENT AND OBJECT FROM BRENTANO,FRANZ TO TWARDOWSKI,KASIMIERZ
SO VERIFICHE
LA Italian
DT Article
CR BOLZANO B, 1837, WISSENSCHAFTSLEHRE
BONFANTINI MA, 1969, MEINONG SVOLTA VERSO
BRENTANO F, 1874, PSYCH EMPIRISCHEN ST
BRENTANO F, 1889, VOM URSPRUNG SITTLIC
BRENTANO F, 1899, BEGRIFF WAHRHEIT
BRENTANO F, 1906, VON OBJEKT
BRENTANO F, 1911, ARISTOTELES SEINE WE
BRENTANO F, 1911, KLASSIFIKATION PSYCH
BRENTANO F, 1930, WAHRHEIT EVIDENZ, P76
BRENTANO F, 1933, KATEGORIENLEHRE
BRENTANO F, 1956, LEHRE VOM RICHTIGEN
BUCZYNSKAGAREWI.H, 1980, DIALECTICS HUMANISM, P155
BUCZYNSKAGAREWI.H, 1981, PHENOMENOLOGY INFORM, P11
CHISHOLM RN, 1972, JENSEITS SEIN NICHTS, P25
CZEZOWSKI T, 1939, STUDIA PHILOS, P13
CZEZOWSKI T, 1960, J PHILOS, P212
DESCARTES R, MEDITATIONES
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
GILSON L, 1955, PSYCHOL DESCRIPTIVE
HOFLER A, 1890, LOGIK
HUSSERL E, 1950, IDEEN REINEN PHANOME
INGARDEN R, 1939, STUDIA PHILOS, P26
KANT I, KRITIK REINEN VERNUN
KUNG G, 1972, JENSEITS SEIN NICHTS, P55
MALLY E, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN, P127
MARTY A, 1884, VIERTELJAHRSCHRIFT W, V8, P293
MARTY A, 1908, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GRUND
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
MEINONG A, 1910, ANNEHMEN
MODENATO F, 1979, COSCIENZA ED ESSERE
PACI E, 1974, FILOSOFIA CONT
PELC J, 1979, SEMIOTICS POLAND
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, V14, P479
SKOLIMOWSKI H, 1967, POLISH ANAL PHILOS
TWARDOWSKI F, 1894, LEHRE INHALT GEGENST
TWARDOWSKI K, 1977, CONTENT OBJECT PRESE
TWARDOWSKI K, 1979, SEMIOTICS POLAND 189, P28
TWARDOWSKY K, 1912, CZYNNOSCHIACH WYTWOR
ZIMMERMANN R, 1867, PHILOS PROPADEUTIK
NR 39
TC 0
PU ASSN TRENTINA SCI UMANE
PI TRENT
PA PIAZZA CESARE BATTISTI 30 CASELLA POSTALE 269, 38100 TRENT, ITALY
SN 0391-4186
J9 VERIFICHE
JI Verifiche
PY 1984
VL 13
IS 1
BP 55
EP 78
PG 24
SC Philosophy
GA SU650
UT ISI:A1984SU65000003
ER

PT J
AU BERNET, R
TI THE PRESENCE OF THE PAST IN THE HUSSERLIAN ANALYSIS OF CONSCIOUSNESS OF TIME
SO REVUE DE METAPHYSIQUE ET DE MORALE
LA French
DT Article
CR BERNET R, 1982, RES PHENOMENOLOGY, V12
BRENTANO F, GRUNDZUGE AESTHETIK
BRENTANO F, PHILOS UNTERSUCHUNGE
BROUGH J, 1972, MAN WORLD, V5, P74
DUVAL R, 1981, REV SCI PHILOS THEOL, V65, P521
HUSSERL E, HUSSERLIANA, V10
HUSSERL E, LECONS PHENOMENOLOGI
HUSSERL E, PHANTASIE BILDBEWUSS
HUSSERL E, 1900, RECHERCHES LOGIQUES
HUSSERL E, 1913, IDEES, V1
MEINONG A, GESAMTAUSGABE, V1
MEINONG A, GESAMTAUSGABE, V2
STERN LW, PSYCHISCHE PRASENZZE
VALERY P, 1941, TEL QUEL, V1, P15
NR 14
TC 0
PU LIBRAIRIE ARMAND COLIN
PI PARIS
PA 54 BD RASPAIL, 75006 PARIS, FRANCE
SN 0035-1571
J9 REV METAPHYSIQUE MORALE
JI Rev. Metaphys. Morale
PY 1983
VL 88
IS 2
BP 178
EP 198
PG 21
SC Philosophy
GA RN063
UT ISI:A1983RN06300003
ER

PT J
AU HESS, PH
TI DOXASTIC OBLIGATIONS AND THE TRADITIONAL DEFINITION OF KNOWLEDGE
SO DIALOGUE-CANADIAN PHILOSOPHICAL REVIEW
LA English
DT Article
RP HESS, PH, UNIV TORONTO,TORONTO M5S 1A1,ONTARIO,CANADA.
CR ARMSTRONG CM, BELIEF TRUTH KNOWLED
CHISHOLM RM, 1977, THEORY KNOWLEDGE
HESS PH, DIALOGUE, V20, P665
MEINONG A, 1973, GESAMTAUSGABE
NR 4
TC 0
PU CANADIAN PHILOSOPHICAL ASSOC
PI OTTAWA
PA MORISSET HALL #375, UNIV OTTAWA, OTTAWA ON K1N 6N5, CANADA
SN 0012-2173
J9 DIALOGUE-CAN PHIL REV
JI Dialogue-Can. Philos. Rev.
PY 1983
VL 22
IS 2
BP 291
EP 298
PG 8
SC Philosophy
GA RC785
UT ISI:A1983RC78500007
ER

PT J
AU TOIT, AD
TI THE CRITIQUE OF PSYCHOLOGISM IN ITS HISTORICAL AND PHILOSOPHICAL SETTING
SO SOUTH AFRICAN JOURNAL OF PHILOSOPHY-SUID-AFRIKAANSE TYDSKRIF VIR WYSBEGEERTE
LA English
DT Article
RP TOIT, AD, UNIV STELLENBOSCH,DEPT POLIT PHILOS,STELLENBOSCH,SOUTH AFRICA.
CR ABBAGNANO N, 1968, ENCY PHILOS, V6, P520
ADAMSON R, 1911, SHORT HIST LOGIC, P244
BALDWIN JM, 1902, DICT PHILOS PSYCHOL
BERGMANN H, 1945, PHILOS PHENOMENOL RE, P281
BETH EW, 1960, BESCHOUWINGEN LOGISC
BOWNE GD, 1966, PHILOS LOGIC 1880 19
BRADLEY FH, 1883, PRINCIPLES
BRADLEY FH, 1893, APPEARANCE REALITY
BRADLEY FH, 1963, PRINCIPLES LOGIC
BRENTANO F, 1889, URSPRUNG SITTLICHER
BRENTANO F, 1924, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN
BRENTANO F, 1929, ZUKUNFT PHILOS
CARRE MH, 1949, PHASES THOUGHT ENGLA
CHISHOLM RM, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
COPLESTON F, 1963, HIST PHILOS
DEBOER T, 1966, ONTWIKKELINGSGANG DE
DELIUS HU, 1963, UNTERSUCHUNGEN PROBL
DEWEY J, 1909, STUDIES LOGICAL THEO
DUMMETT M, 1968, ENCY PHILOS, V3, P225
EDWARDS P, 1968, ENCY PHILOS
ERDMANN B, 1907, LOGIK
FARBER M, 1940, PHILOS ESSAYS MEMORY
FARBER M, 1964, F PHENOMENOLOGY
FREGE G, 1884, GRUNDLAGEN ARITHMETI
FREGE G, 1893, GRUNDGESETZE ARITHME
FREGE G, 1894, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V103, P313
GILSON L, 1955, METHODE METAPHYSIQUE
GOLDEL RW, 1935, LEHRE IDENTITAT DTSC
HEIDEGGER M, 1912, LITERARISCHE RUNDSCH, V38
HEIDEGGER M, 1914, LEHRE URTEIL PSYCHOL
HEIM K, 1902, PSYCHOL ANTIPSYCHOL
HOCHE HU, 1964, NICHTEMPIRISCHE ERKE
HUME D, 1748, INQUIRY HUMAN UNDERS
HUSSERL E, PHILOS ARITHMETIK
HUSSERL E, 1900, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
HUSSERL E, 1903, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V31
HUSSERL E, 1910, LOGOS, V1, P289
HUSSERL E, 1939, TIJDSCHR FILOS, V1, P331
HUSSERL E, 1950, IDEEN REINEN PHANOME
JERUSALEM W, 1897, VJSCHR WISS PHILOS, V21, P157
KANT I, 1781, KRITIK REINEN VERNUN
KERN I, 1964, HUSSERL KANT
KINDINGER R, 1965, PHILOS BRIEFE WISSEN
KNEALE WC, 1962, DEV LOGIC
LANDGREBE L, 1967, WEG PHANOMENOLOGIE, P11
LIPPS T, 1905, INHALT GEGENSTAND PS
MAIER H, 1914, FESTSCHRIFT A RIEHL, P313
MARBE K, 1901, EXPERIMENTALL PSYCHO
MEINONG A, UBER ANNAHMEN
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
MERZ JT, 1912, HIST EUROPEAN THOUGH
MILL JS, 1843, SYSTEM LOGIC
MOOG W, 1918, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V37
MOORE GE, 1899, MIND, V8
MOORE GE, 1903, INT J ETHICS, V14, P115
MOORE GE, 1903, PRINCIPIA ETHICA
MUIRHEAD JH, 1924, CONT BRIT PHILOS
NATORP P, 1887, PHILOS MONATSHEFTE, V23
NATORP P, 1888, EINLEITUNG PSYCHOL
NATORP P, 1891, PHILOS MONATSHEFTE, V27, P1
NATORP P, 1901, KANTSTUDIEN, V6, P270
NATORP P, 1912, ALLGEMEINE PSYCHOL
NELSON JO, 1968, ENCY PHILOS, V5, P372
NELSON L, 1908, SOGENANNTE ERKENNTNI
PALAGYI M, STREIT PSYCHOL FORMA
PAP A, 1958, SEMANTICS NECESSARY
PASSMORE JA, 1966, 100 YEARS PHILOS
PEARS DF, 1967, B RUSSELL BRIT TRADI
QUINE WVO, 1953, LOGICAL POINT VIEW
RICKERT H, 1909, KANTSTUDIEN, V14
ROYCE J, 1902, RECENT LOGICAL INQUI
RUSSELL B, 1897, ESSAY F GEOMETRY
RUSSELL B, 1924, LOGICAL ATOMISM
RUSSELL B, 1928, SCEPTICAL ESSAYS
RUSSELL B, 1944, MY MENTAL DEV
RUSSELL B, 1956, LOGIC KNOWLEDGE
RUSSELL B, 1959, MY PHILOS DEV
RYLE G, 1963, REVOLUTION PHILOS
SCHILPP PA, 1944, PHILOS B RUSSELL
SCHOLZ H, 1931, GESCH LOGIK
SIGWART C, 1911, LOGIK
SPIEGELBERG H, 1965, PHENOMENOLOGICAL MOV
STUMPF C, 1891, ABHANDLUNGEN KONIGLI, V19, P467
TATARKIEWICZ M, 1959, HUSSERL
URMSON JO, 1956, PHILOS ANAL
VANPEURSEN CA, 1967, FENOMENOLOGIE WERKEL
WARNOCK GJ, ENGLISH PHILOS 1900
WILD J, 1940, PHILOS ESSAYS MEMORY
WINDELBAND W, 1909, PHILOS DTSCH GEISTES
WINDELBAND W, 1950, LEHRBUCH GESCH PHILO
WOLLHEIM R, 1959, FH BRADLEY
WUNDT W, 1910, PSYCHOLOGISMUS LOGIS
ZIEHEN T, 1920, LEHRBUCH LOGIK
NR 93
TC 0
PU BUREAU SCIENTIFIC PUBL
PI PRETORIA
PA P O BOX 1758, PRETORIA 0001, SOUTH AFRICA
SN 0258-0136
J9 S AFR J PHIL
JI South Afr. J. Philos.-Suid-Afr. Tydsk. Wysbegeerte
PY 1983
VL 2
IS 2
BP 72
EP 84
PG 13
SC Philosophy
GA QT780
UT ISI:A1983QT78000006
ER

PT J
AU KERNER, GC
TI EMOTIONS ARE JUDGMENTS OF VALUE
SO TOPOI-AN INTERNATIONAL REVIEW OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
RP KERNER, GC, MICHIGAN STATE UNIV,E LANSING,MI 48824.
CR BRENTANO F, URSPRUNG SITTLICHER
KERNER GC, 1970, PHILOS PHENOMENO DEC
MEINONG A, EMOTIONALE PRAESENTA
NR 3
TC 0
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0167-7411
J9 TOPOI-INT REV PHIL
JI Topoi-Int. Rev. Philos.
PY 1982
VL 1
IS 1-2
BP 52
EP 56
PG 5
SC Philosophy
GA QG133
UT ISI:A1982QG13300004
ER

PT J
AU BARON, L
TI DISCIPLESHIP AND DISSENT - LESSING,THEODOR AND HUSSERL,EDMUND
SO PROCEEDINGS OF THE AMERICAN PHILOSOPHICAL SOCIETY
LA English
DT Article
RP BARON, L, ST LAWRENCE UNIV,CANTON,NY 13617.
CR BARON L, 1981, L BAECK I YB, V26, P323
BARON L, 1982, J CONTEMP HIST, V17, P165
BORING EG, 1950, HIST EXPT PSYCHOL, P280
BRENTANO F, 1902, ORIGIN OUR KNOWLEDGE
CAMPO M, 1967, ENCY PHILOS, V7, P194
DEBOER T, 1978, DEV HUSSERLS THOUGHT
FARBER M, 1966, AIMS PHENOMENOLOGY M
GOETZE W, 1930, GEGENSATZLICHKEIT GE
GRUNFELD FV, 1979, PROPHETS HONOR BACKG
HIERONIMUS E, 1964, T LESSING O MEYERHOF
HIERONIMUS E, 1972, T LESSING LEBENSSKIZ
HILLER K, 1950, KOEPFE TROEPFE PROFI
HUESGEN HD, 1961, THESIS MAINZ
HUSSERL E, 1962, IDEAS GENERAL INTRO, P204
HUSSERL E, 1962, KRISIS EUROPAISCHEN
HUSSERL E, 1964, IDEA PHENOMENOLOGY, P43
HUSSERL E, 1969, FORMAL TRANSCENDENTA, P137
HUSSERL, LIT PHANOMENOLOGIE, P2
KALTENBRUNNER GK, 1969, TRIBUNE Z ZUM VERSTA, V8, P3126
KOCKELMANS JL, 1967, E HUSSERLS PHENOMENO
KUCHLER M, 1976, LIT PHILOS ENTWICKLU
LANDRY H, 1959, JUDEN DTSCH KULTURBE, P271
LESSING T, 1900, AFRICAN SPIRS ERKENN
LESSING T, 1901, KANT STUDIEN, V6, P102
LESSING T, 1906, SCHOPENHAUER WAGNER
LESSING T, 1907, UEBER HYPNOSE SUGGES
LESSING T, 1908, ARCH SYSTEMATISCHE P, V14, P58
LESSING T, 1908, BRUCH ETHIK KANTS WE
LESSING T, 1908, COMMUNICATION 0412
LESSING T, 1914, PHILOS ALS TAT
LESSING T, 1914, STUDIEN WERTAXIOMATI
LESSING T, 1917, AKTION, V7, P540
LESSING T, 1922, ARCH SYSTEMATISCHE P, V26, P87
LESSING T, 1923, EUROPA ASIEN ODER ME
LESSING T, 1923, JB SCHOPENHAUER GESE, V12, P3
LESSING T, 1925, NIETZSCHE
LESSING T, 1926, PRINZIPIEN CHARAKTER
LESSING T, 1927, GESCH SINNGEBUNG SIN
LESSING T, 1962, GESCH SINNGEBUNG SIN, P316
LESSING T, 1969, EINMAL NIE WIEDER
LESSING, CITED INDIRECTLY
LINDENFELD D, 1980, TRANSFORMATION POSIT, P244
LIPPS T, 1926, PSYCHOL STUDIES, P266
LIPPS, CITED INDIRECTLY
LIPTZIN S, 1944, GERMANYS STEPCHILDRE
LUKACS G, 1960, ZERSTORUNG VERNUNFT
MAYER H, 1971, REPRASENTANT MARTYRE
MEINONG A, 1968, ABHANDLUNGEN WERTTHE
MESSER A, 1926, FALL LESSING
MULLERFREIENFEL.R, 1935, EVOLUTION MODERN PSY
NATANSON M, 1973, E HUSSERL PHILOS INF
POETZL H, 1978, THESIS U MASSACHUSET
REINTJES H, 1958, GEIST ZEIT, V1, P153
RINGER FK, 1969, DECLINE GERMAN MANDA, P309
ROMAN C, 1966, VYSTRELY VE VILE EDE
ROTH A, 1960, E HUSSERLS ETHISCHE
SCHOPENHAUER A, 1979, PREISSCHRIFT GRUNDLA
SCHRODER HE, 1970, T LESSINGS AUTOBIOGR
STEINBERG MS, 1971, THESIS J HOPKINS U
TITCHENER EB, 1972, SYSTEMATIC PSYCHOL P
ZWEIG A, 1967, ENCY PHILOS, V4, P485
NR 61
TC 0
PU AMER PHILOSOPHICAL SOC
PI PHILADELPHIA
PA 104 SOUTH FIFTH ST, PHILADELPHIA, PA 19106-3387
SN 0003-049X
J9 PROC AMER PHIL SOC
JI Proc. Amer. Philos. Soc.
PY 1983
VL 127
IS 1
BP 32
EP 49
PG 18
SC Humanities, Multidisciplinary
GA QH340
UT ISI:A1983QH34000003
ER

PT J
AU SMITH, Q
TI MEINONG,ALEXIUS - ON OBJECTS OF HIGHER-ORDER AND HUSSERL PHENOMENOLOGY - MEINONG,A, SCHUBERTKALSI,ML, EDITOR
SO PHILOSOPHY AND PHENOMENOLOGICAL RESEARCH
LA English
DT Book Review
CR MEINONG A, 1978, OBJECTS HIGHER ORDER
SCHUBERTKALSI ML, 1978, MEINONG OBJECTS HIGH
NR 2
TC 0
PU PHILOSOPHY PHENOMENOLOGICAL RES
PI PROVIDENCE
PA BROWN UNIV BOX 1947, PROVIDENCE, RI 02912
SN 0031-8205
J9 PHIL PHENOMENOL RES
JI Philos. Phenomenol. Res.
PY 1982
VL 42
IS 3
BP 451
EP 452
PG 2
SC Philosophy
GA NM710
UT ISI:A1982NM71000016
ER

PT J
AU WEINGARTNER, P
TI ON THE DEMARCATION BETWEEN LOGIC AND MATHEMATICS
SO MONIST
LA English
DT Article
RP WEINGARTNER, P, SALZBURG UNIV,A-5020 SALZBURG,AUSTRIA.
CR ACKERMANN W, 1956, MATH ANN, V131, P336
ACKERMANN W, 1957, RATIO, V1, P1
ANDERSON AR, 1975, ENTAILMENT LOGIC REL
BRENTANO F, 1874, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN
EINSTEIN A, 1905, ANN PHYSIK, V17
FRAENKEL A, 1961, AXIOMATIK SET THEORY
FRAENKEL A, 1973, F SET THEORY
GODEL K, 1940, CONSISTENCY AXIOM CH
LESNIEWSKI S, 1930, CR HEBD ACAD SCI, V23, P111
MALLY E, 1912, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V148
MEINONG A, 1923, PHILOS GEGENWART SEL
MEYER RK, 1973, STUDIA LOGICA, V32, P51
QUINE WVO, 1969, MATH LOGIC
QUINE WVO, 1970, PHILOS LOGIC
REINHARDT WN, 1970, ANN MATH LOGIC, V2, P189
RESCHER N, 1969, MANY VALUED LOGIC
RUSSELL B, 1919, INTRO MATH PHILOS
TARSKI A, 1938, FUND MATH, V30, P68
TARSKI A, 1939, FUND MATH, V32, P176
WEINGARTNER P, 1976, WISSENSCHAFTSTHEOR 1, V2
WEINGARTNER P, 1980, RATIONALITY SCI, P209
NR 21
TC 0
PU HEGELER INST
PI LA SALLE
PA PO BOX 600, LA SALLE, IL 61301
SN 0026-9662
J9 MONIST
JI Monist
PY 1982
VL 65
IS 1
BP 38
EP 51
PG 14
SC Philosophy
GA NH543
UT ISI:A1982NH54300004
ER

PT J
AU GROSSMANN, R
TI UNIVERSALS AND SCIENTIFIC REALISM, VOL 1, NOMINALISM AND REALISM, VOL 2, A THEORY OF UNIVERSALS - ARMSTRONG,DM
SO NOUS
LA English
DT Book Review
RP GROSSMANN, R, INDIANA UNIV,BLOOMINGTON,IN 47401.
CR 1967, REALISM CRITIQUE BRE
ARMSTRONG DM, 1978, UNIVERSALS SCI REALI, V1
ARMSTRONG DM, 1978, UNIVERSALS SCI REALI, V2
FREGE G, 1960, TRANSLATIONS PHILOS
GROSSMANN R, 1973, ONTOLOGICAL REDUCTIO
MCTAGGART JME, 1921, NATURE EXISTENCE, V1
MEINONG A, GESAMMELTE ABHANDLUN
MOORE GE, 1953, SOME MAIN PROBLEMS P
SELLARS WS, 1963, SCI PERCEPTION REALI
WITTGENSTEIN L, TRACTATUS LOGICO PHI
NR 10
TC 0
PU BLACKWELL PUBLISHERS
PI CAMBRIDGE
PA 350 MAIN STREET, STE 6, CAMBRIDGE, MA 02148-5023
SN 0029-4624
J9 NOUS
JI Nous
PY 1982
VL 16
IS 1
BP 133
EP 142
PG 10
SC Philosophy
GA NG385
UT ISI:A1982NG38500020
ER

PT J
AU BOURGEOIS, VW
TI BEYOND RUSSELL AND MEINONG
SO CANADIAN JOURNAL OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
RP BOURGEOIS, VW, UNIV BRITISH COLUMBIA,VANCOUVER V6T 1W5,BC,CANADA.
CR CASTANEDA HN, 1972, CRITICA, V6, P43
CHISHOLM RM, ENCY PHILOS
CHISHOLM RM, 1973, REV INT PHILOS, V27, P206
CHURCH A, 1941, CALCULI LAMBDA CONVE
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
LAMBERT K, 1972, DERIVATION COUNTEREX
LAMBERT K, 1974, INQUIRY, V17, P303
LEBLANC H, 1968, FUNDAMENTA MATH, V52, P125
LINSKY L, 1972, PHENOMENOLOGY EXISTE, P192
MEINONG A, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
MEINONG A, STELLUNG GEGENSTANDS
MEINONG A, THEORY OBJECTS
MEINONG A, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
PARSONS T, 1974, J PHILOS, V71, P561
QUINE WVO, 1953, LOGICAL POINT VIEW
ROUTLEY R, 1973, REV INT PHILOS, V27, P224
RUSSELL B, 1903, PRINCIPLES MATH
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, P530
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND, P533
RUSSELL B, 1907, MIND, P439
RUSSELL B, 1956, LOGIC KNOWLEDGE, P47
RYLE G, 1973, REV INT PHILOS, V27, P255
NR 22
TC 0
PU UNIV CALGARY PRESS
PI CALGARY
PA 2500 UNIVERSITY DR NW, CALGARY AB T2N 1N4, CANADA
SN 0045-5091
J9 CAN J PHIL
JI Can. J. Philos.
PY 1981
VL 11
IS 4
BP 653
EP 666
PG 14
SC Philosophy
GA NE628
UT ISI:A1981NE62800006
ER

PT J
AU KREJDLIN, GE
TI LOGICAL ANALYSIS OF NATURAL-LANGUAGE - PAPERS PRESENTED AT THE 2ND SOVIET-FINNISH COLLOQUIM ON LOGIC
SO NAUCHNO-TEKHNICHESKAYA INFORMATSIYA SERIYA 2-INFORMATSIONNYE PROTSESSY I SISTEMY
LA Russian
DT Article
CR 1976, SEMIOTIKA INFORMATIK, P181
1979, 2OM SOV FINSK K LOG
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P
NR 3
TC 0
PU VSESOYUZNYI INST NAUCHNO- TEKHNICHESKOI INFORM
PI MOSCOW
PA BALTIISKAYA UL 14, 1-19 MOSCOW, RUSSIA
SN 0548-0027
J9 NAUCHN-TEKHN INFORM SER 2
JI Nauchn-Tekhnicheskaya Informatsiya Seriya 2-Informatsionnye Protsessy I Sistemy
PY 1981
IS 3
BP 25
EP 31
PG 7
SC Computer Science, Information Systems; Information Science & Library Science
GA LR654
UT ISI:A1981LR65400005
ER

PT J
AU DOLLING, E
TI EMPTY TERMS AND EXISTENTIAL PROPOSITIONS
SO DEUTSCHE ZEITSCHRIFT FUR PHILOSOPHIE
LA German
DT Editorial Material
RP DOLLING, E, AKAD WISSENSCH DDR,ZENT INST PHILOSOPHIE,OTTO NUSCHKE STR 10-11,DDR-1080 BERLIN,GER DEM REP.
CR BRENTANO F, 1924, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN
CARNAP R, 1971, SCHEINPROBLEME PHILO
DOLLING E, 1980, DZFPH
FREGE G, 1973, SCHRIFTEN LOGIK
FREGE JG, SCHRIFTEN LOGIK, P23
GOODMAN N, 1955, FACT FICTION FORECAS
HUME D, 1790, ABHANDLUNG MENSCHLIC, P142
KANT I, 1876, KRITIK REINEN VERNUN, P480
LEDNIKOW EE, 1973, KRITITSCHESKI ANAL N
LESNIEWSKI S, 1931, COMPTES RENDUS SEANC
MEINONG A, 1907, STELLUNG GEGENSTANDS
QUINE WVO, 1936, J PHILOS, P708
QUINE WVO, 1960, WORD OBJECT
RUSSELL B, 1905, MIND
RUSSELL B, 1932, EINFUHRUNG MATH LOGI, P96
SCHENK G, 1973, GESCH LOGISCHEN FORM
SMIRNOWA ED, 1972, QUANTOREN MODALITATE
STEGMULLER W, 1956, ARCH PHILOS
STEGMULLER W, 1957, ARCH PHILOS
STMILL J, 1862, SYSTEM DEDUCTIVEN IN
VONSAVIGNY E, 1969, PHILOS NORMALEN SPRA
WESSEL H, UNPUBLISHED
WESSEL H, 1976, LOGIK PHILOS, P93
WESSEL H, 1978, DZFPH
ZELISCHTSCHEW WW, 1976, LOGIKA SUSCHTSCHESTW
NR 25
TC 0
PU AKADEMIE VERLAG GMBH
PI BERLIN
PA MUHLENSTRASSE 33-34, D-13187 BERLIN, GERMANY
SN 0012-1045
J9 DEUT Z PHIL
JI Dtsch. Z. Philos.
PY 1980
VL 28
IS 12
BP 1515
EP 1522
PG 8
SC Philosophy
GA LC059
UT ISI:A1980LC05900009
ER

PT J
AU SMITH, B
TI ON OBJECTS OF HIGHER-ORDER AND HUSSERL PHENOMENOLOGY - MEINONG,A
SO PHILOSOPHICAL QUARTERLY
LA English
DT Book Review
CR MEINONG A, 1979, OBJECTS HIGHER ORDER
NR 1
TC 0
PU BLACKWELL PUBL LTD
PI OXFORD
PA 108 COWLEY RD, OXFORD, OXON, ENGLAND OX4 1JF
SN 0031-8094
J9 PHIL QUART
JI Philos. Q.
PY 1980
VL 30
IS 120
BP 252
EP 254
PG 3
SC Philosophy
GA KF596
UT ISI:A1980KF59600011
ER

PT J
AU KALSI, MLS
TI ON MEINONG PSEUDO-OBJECTS
SO SOUTHWESTERN JOURNAL OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
CR ACKERMANN D, SW J PHILOSOPHY, V9, P145
CHISHOLM RM, 1967, REALISM BACKGROUND P
KALSI MLS, 1978, A MEINONG OBJECTS HI
MEINONG A, UEBER ANNAHMEN, V2
MEINONG A, 1978, EMOTIONAL PRESENTATI
RAPAPORT WJ, 1978, NOUS, P12
NR 6
TC 0
PU SOUTHWESTERN J PHILOS
PI NORMAN
PA 605 DALE HALL TOWER 455 W LINDSEY, NORMAN, OK 73019
SN 0038-481X
J9 SOUTHWEST J PHIL
PY 1980
VL 11
IS 1
BP 115
EP 123
PG 9
SC Philosophy; Social Sciences, Interdisciplinary
GA KB917
UT ISI:A1980KB91700012
ER

PT J
AU STACK, GJ
TI NIETZSCHE AND THE QUESTION OF VALUE
SO FOLIA HUMANISTICA
LA Spanish
DT Article
RP STACK, GJ, SUNY COLL BROCKPORT,DEPT FILOSOFIA,BROCKPORT,NY 14420.
CR GESAMMELTE WERKE, V16, P245
WERKE, V2, P323
1926, WERKE, V12, P95
KAUFFMANN W, 1968, VOLUNTAD PODER, P380
LEVY O, 1964, OBRAS COMPLETAS NIET, V14, P113
LEVY O, 1964, OBRAS COMPLETAS NIET, V15
MEINONG A, 1894, PSYCHOLOGISCH ETICHE, P15
WILLIAMS WD, 1952, NIETZSCHE FRENCH, P104
NR 8
TC 0
PU FOLIA HUMANISTICA
PI BARCELONA
PA C/MUNTANER 303, 08021 BARCELONA, SPAIN
SN 0015-5594
J9 FOLIA HUMANIST
JI Folia Humanistica
PY 1979
VL 17
IS 204
BP 701
EP 713
PG 13
SC Humanities, Multidisciplinary
GA JD922
UT ISI:A1979JD92200005
ER

PT J
AU SMITH, B
TI COMPLETE WORKS, VOL 1, PUBLICATIONS ON PSYCHOLOGY, VOL 2, PUBLICATIONS ON THEORY OF KNOWLEDGE AND THEORY OF OBJECTS, VOL 3, PUBLICATIONS ON THEORY OF VALUE, VOL 4, ASSUMPTIONS, VOL 5, PHILOSOPHY AND OTHER WORKS, VOL 6, POSSIBILITY AND PROBABILITY, VOL 7, HITHERTO UNCOLLECTED WRITING
SO ANNALS OF SCIENCE
LA English
DT Book Review
RP SMITH, B, UNIV MANCHEST,DEPT PHILOSOPHY,MANCHESTER M13 9PL,ENGLAND.
CR MEINONG A, GESAMTAUSGABE, V2
MEINONG A, GESAMTAUSGABE, V3
MEINONG A, GESAMTAUSGABE, V4
MEINONG A, GESAMTAUSGABE, V5
MEINONG A, GESAMTAUSGABE, V6
MEINONG A, GESAMTAUSGABE, V7
MEINONG A, 1969, GESAMTAUSGABE, V1
NR 7
TC 0
PU TAYLOR & FRANCIS LTD
PI LONDON
PA ONE GUNPOWDER SQUARE, LONDON, ENGLAND EC4A 3DE
SN 0003-3790
J9 ANN SCI
JI Ann. Sci.
PY 1979
VL 36
IS 6
BP 636
EP 638
PG 3
SC History & Philosophy Of Science
GA HZ593
UT ISI:A1979HZ59300012
ER

PT J
AU SMITH, B
TI COMPLETE WORKS - SUPPLEMENT ON UNPUBLISHED NOTES AND FRAGMENTS
SO ANNALS OF SCIENCE
LA English
DT Book Review
CR MEINONG A, 1978, GESAMTAUSGABE ERGANZ
NR 1
TC 0
PU TAYLOR & FRANCIS LTD
PI LONDON
PA ONE GUNPOWDER SQUARE, LONDON, ENGLAND EC4A 3DE
SN 0003-3790
J9 ANN SCI
JI Ann. Sci.
PY 1979
VL 36
IS 6
BP 636
EP 638
PG 3
SC History & Philosophy Of Science
GA HZ593
UT ISI:A1979HZ59300013
ER

PT J
AU PIETERSMA, H
TI VALUE OF MAN AS A KNOWER
SO HUMANITAS
LA English
DT Article
RP PIETERSMA, H, UNIV TORONTO,TORONTO M5S 1A1,ONTARIO,CANADA.
CR CARNAP R, EMPIRICISM SEMANTICS
DESCARTES, PHILOSOPHICAL WRITIN
KOERNER S, 1974, CATEGORIAL FRAMEWORK
MARCEL, 1965, BEING HAVING, P109
MEINONG AV, EMOTIONAL PRESENTATI
NIETZSCHE, WILL POWER
PASCAL, PENSEES
TAYLOR R, 1974, METAPHYSICS, P118
NR 8
TC 0
PU INST FORMATIVE SPIRITUALITY
PI PITTSBURGH
PA DUQUESNE UNIV, PITTSBURGH, PA 15282
J9 HUMANITAS
PY 1979
VL 15
IS 2
BP 177
EP 190
PG 14
SC Philosophy; Social Sciences, Interdisciplinary; Religion
GA GV836
UT ISI:A1979GV83600005
ER

PT J
AU [Anon]
TI METATHEORY OF EDUCATION - GERMAN - DERBOLAV,J
SO PADAGOGISCHE RUNDSCHAU
LA German
DT Book Review
CR BOLLNOW OF, 1971, Z PAD, V17, P683
BREZINKA W, 1955, ERZIEHUNG ALS BERUF
BREZINKA W, 1966, ERZIEHER SEINE AUFGA
BREZINKA W, 1971, ERZIEHUNG LEBENSHILF
BREZINKA, 1966, VEROFFENTLICHUNGEN W
BREZINKA, 1974, GRUNDBEGRIFFE ERZIEH
BREZINKA, 1976, ERZIEHUNGSZIELE ERZI
CHERNISS H, 1944, ARISTOTLES CRITICISM, V1
DERBOLAV J, METATHEORIE ERZIEHUN
DERBOLAV J, 1970, PADAGOGISCHE STUDIEN, P93
DERBOLAV J, 1975, GRUNDLAGEN WISSENSCH, V29, P38
DERBOLAV J, 1975, PADAGOGIK POLITIK, P91
DERBOLAV J, 1976, GRUNDLAGEN PROBLEME
DERBOLAV J, 1976, KRITIK METAKRITIK PR
FEUERBACHS L, 1846, SAMTLICHE WERKE, V2, P18
KANTS, 1962, VGL DAZU EINSCHLAGIG, V16, P171
MARX K, 1953, FRUHSCHRIFTEN, P214
MEINONG A, 1919, BEITRAGE PADAGOGIK D, P36
RITZEL W, 1978, 6 K DTSCH GES ERZ TU
ROMBACH H, 1967, Z PADAGOGIK, V13, P37
SCHLEIERMACHER F, 1957, PADAGOGISCHE SCHRIFT, V1
WATZLAWICK B, 1974, MENSCHLICHE KOMMUNIK
NR 22
TC 0
PU VERLAG HANS RICHARZ
PI ST AUGUSTIN 1
PA POSTFACH 1165, W-5205 ST AUGUSTIN 1, GERMANY
SN 0030-9273
J9 PADAGOG RUNDSCH
PY 1978
VL 32
IS 4
BP 331
EP 342
PG 12
SC Education & Educational Research
GA FF263
UT ISI:A1978FF26300007
ER

PT J
AU ROLLMANN, H
TI DEUSSEN, NIETZSCHE, AND VEDANTA
SO JOURNAL OF THE HISTORY OF IDEAS
LA English
DT Article
RP ROLLMANN, H, MCMASTER UNIV,HAMILTON L8S 4L8,ONTARIO,CANADA.
CR ALSDORF L, 1942, DEUTSCH INDISCHE GEI, V7
CARUS P, 1913, OPEN COURT, V27, P616
DEUSSEN P, 1900, WIENER RUNDSCHAU, V4, P353
DEUSSEN P, 1901, ERINNERUNGEN F NIETZ
DEUSSEN P, 1901, LEIPZIGER TAGEBLATT
DEUSSEN P, 1912, JB SCHOPENHAUER GESE, V1, P13
DEUSSEN P, 1922, MEIN LEBEN
DEUSSEN, F NIETZSCH GES, V2
GAST P, F NIETZSCH GES, V5
GLASENAPP HV, 1960, INDIENBILD DEUTSCHER
LEIPZIG, F NIETZSCH GES, V1
MEINONG A, 1920, ALMANACH WIENER AKAD, V70, P242
MEYSENBURG M, F NIETZSCH GES, V4
MOCKRAUER F, 1928, JB SCHOPENHAUER GESE, V9, P1
NIETZSCHE F, 1966, BEYOND GOOD EVIL
NIETZSCHE F, 1968, WILL POWER
NIETZSCHE F, 1969, GENEALOGY MORALS
NIETZSCHE F, 1973, WERKE BANDEN
OEHLER R, 1916, F NIETZSCHES BRIEFWE
ROHDE, F NIETZSCH GES, V3
SCHOLZ H, 1920, KANT STUDIEN, V24, P304
STRAUSS O, 1917, DEUTSCHES BIOGRAPHIS, V2, P360
NR 22
TC 0
PU J HISTORY IDEAS
PI PHILADELPHIA
PA TEMPLE UNIV-SUITE 750 HUMANITIES BLDG, PHILADELPHIA, PA 19122
SN 0022-5037
J9 J HIST IDEA
JI J. Hist. Ideas
PY 1978
VL 39
IS 1
BP 125
EP 132
PG 8
SC Ethics; History; Philosophy
GA EL465
UT ISI:A1978EL46500008
ER

PT J
AU HARTMANN, K
TI SELF-EVIDENCE
SO JOURNAL OF THE BRITISH SOCIETY FOR PHENOMENOLOGY
LA English
DT Article
C1 UNIV TUBINGEN,D-7400 TUBINGEN 1,FED REP GER.
CR CARTESIANISCHE MEDIT, V5, P121
LOGICAL INVESTIGATIO, V1, P342
LOGICAL INVESTIGATIO, V2, P552
1933, KATEGORIENLEHRE, P210
1950, CARTESIANISCHE MEDIT, P97
1956, LEHRE RICHTIGEN URTE, P101
1964, PHENOMENOLOGY INTERN
ALSTON WP, 1964, IDEA PHENOMENOLOGY
BRENTANO, 1874, PSYCHOLOGIE EMPIRISC, V2, P180
BRENTANO, 1924, PSYCHOLOGIE EMPIRISC, V1, P124
CHISHOLM R, ENCYCLOPEDIA PHILOSO
CHISHOLM R, 1967, ENCYCLOPEDIA PHILOSO
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE, CH1
FINDLAY JN, 1970, LOGICAL INVESTIGATIO, V1, P40
FINDLAY JN, 1970, LOGICAL INVESTIGATIO, V2, P728
FINDLAY JN, 1970, LOGICAL INVESTIGATIO, V3
FINDLAY JN, 1975, LOGICAL INVESTIGATIO, V4
GIBSON WRB, IDEAS
GOTTINGEN, 1947, IDEE PHANOMENOLOGIE
HARTMANN K, 1971, JBSP, V2, P10
HARTMANN K, 1972, HEGEL COLLECTION CRI, P101
HUSSERL, 1954, KRISIS EUROPAISCHEN
HUSSERL, 1959, ERSTE PHILOSOPHIE, V2
HUSSERL, 1962, IDEAS, V1, P177
HUSSERL, 1966, ANALYSEN PASSIVEN SY
KANT I, 1929, CRITIQUE PURE REASON, P154
MAYERHILLEBRAND F, 1970, VERSUCH ERKENNTNIS
MEINONG A, 1902, UEBER ANNAHMEN
PFERD, 1930, WAHRHEIT EVIDENZ, P88
RUSSELL, 1971, PHANOMENOLOGIE SPRAC
SARTRE, 1936, RECHERCHES PHILOSOPH, P85
SOKOLOWSKI R, 1964, FORMATION HUSSERL CO, P65
SPIEGELBERG H, 1960, PHENOMENOLOGICAL MOV, V1, P107
STEGMULLER W, 1960, HAUPSTROMUNGEN GEGEN, P35
TUGENDAT, 1976, VORLESUNGEN EINFUHRU
TUGENDHAT E, 1967, WAHRHEITSBEGRIFF HUS, P32
WAGNER H, 1953, PHILOSOPHISCHE RUNDS, V1, P1
WAGNER H, 1959, PHILOSOPHIE REFLEXIO, P59
NR 38
TC 0
PU HAIGH & HOCHLAND LTD
PI MANCHESTER
PA PRECINCT CENTRE OXFORD RD, MANCHESTER, ENGLAND M13 9QA
SN 0007-1773
J9 J BRIT SOC PHENOMENOL
JI J. Br. Soc. Phenomenol.
PY 1977
VL 8
IS 2
BP 79
EP 93
PG 15
SC Philosophy
GA DL920
UT ISI:A1977DL92000002
ER

PT J
AU DEVINE, PE
TI DOES STANSELM BEG QUESTION
SO PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Article
C1 N ADAMS STATE COLL,N ADAMS,MA.
CR BRADLEY AC, 1929, SHAKESPEAREAN TRAGED
FINDLAY JN, 1963, MEINONGS THEORY OBJE
FREGE G, 1968, F ARITHMETIC, P65
HODGES M, 1971, MIND, V80, P5
HUME D, 1896, TREATISE HUMAN NATUR, P67
KENNY A, 1969, FACT EXISTENCE
LINSKY L, 1963, PHILOSOPHY ORDINARY, P85
MEINONG A, 1960, REALISM BACKGROUND P, P76
NAKHNIKIAN G, 1957, PHILOSOPHICAL REV, V66, P541
PLANTINGA A, 1965, ONTOLOGICAL ARGUMENT, P46
RYLE G, 1933, P ARISTOTELIAN S S12, P27
RYLE G, 1965, LINGUISTIC TURN, CH5
NR 12
TC 0
PU CAMBRIDGE UNIV PRESS
PI NEW YORK
PA 40 WEST 20TH STREET, NEW YORK, NY 10011-4211
SN 0031-8191
J9 PHILOSOPHY
JI Philosophy
PY 1975
VL 50
IS 193
BP 271
EP 281
PG 11
SC Philosophy
GA AT076
UT ISI:A1975AT07600002
ER

PT J
AU ROUTLEY, R
TI ANOTHER FATAL OBJECTION TO MEINONGIAN OBJECTS
SO PHILOSOPHICAL STUDIES
LA English
DT Article
C1 AUSTRALIAN NATL UNIV,CANBERRA 2600,ACT,AUSTRALIA.
CR CHURCH A, 1956, INTRO MATHEMATICAL L
MARGOLIS J, 1969, FACT EXISTENCE
MEINONG A, 1915, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
RYLE G, 1971, COLLECTED PAPERS, V2
NR 4
TC 0
PU KLUWER ACADEMIC PUBL
PI DORDRECHT
PA SPUIBOULEVARD 50, PO BOX 17, 3300 AA DORDRECHT, NETHERLANDS
SN 0031-8116
J9 PHIL STUD
JI Philos. Stud.
PY 1974
VL 25
IS 2
BP 131
EP 135
PG 5
SC Philosophy
GA AC915
UT ISI:A1974AC91500005
ER

PT J
AU NATHAN, NML
TI BRENTANOS NECESSITARIANISM
SO RATIO-ENGLAND
LA English
DT Article
C1 UNIV READING,READING,ENGLAND.
CR HOBBES, 1840, ENGLISH WORKS, P276
KASTIL A, 1925, VERSUCH ERKENNTNIS 4, P154
KASTIL A, 1929, DASEIN GOTTES, P451
KENNY A, 1966, BRIT ANALYTICAL PHIL, P131
KNEALE W, 1929, DASEIN GOTTES, P453
KNEALE W, 1949, PROBABILITY INDUCTIO, P30
KNEALE W, 1962, DEVELOPMENT LOGIC, P628
MACKIE JL, 1962, ANAL PHILOS, P66
MAYERHILLEBRAND F, 1952, GRUNDLEGUNG AUFBAU E, P281
MAYERHILLEBRAND F, 1956, LEHRE RICHTIGEN URTE, P299
MAYERHILLEBRAND F, 1956, RELIGION PHILOSOPHIE, P120
MEINONG A, 1919, SITZUNGSBERICHTE PH, V189
NR 12
TC 0
J9 RATIO-ENGLAND
PY 1971
VL 13
IS 1
BP 44
EP 55
PG 12
SC Ethics; Philosophy
GA Y2521
UT ISI:A1971Y252100004
ER

PT J
AU LOURENS, PJD
TI CLASSIFICATION OF VALUES
SO PSYCHOLOGIA AFRICANA
LA Flemish
DT Article
CR ADAMS J, 1953, PSYCHOL REV, V60, P50
ALLPORT GW, 1960, STUDY VALUES MANUAL
ALLPORT GW, 1960, STUDY VALUES TEST
ARISTOTLE, 1954, NICOMACHEAN ETHICS V
ASTIN AW, 1964, J APPL PSYCHOL, V48, P50
BERG IA, 1961, CONFORMITY DEVIATION
BERLEANT A, 1964, PHILOS PHENOMENOLOGI, V25, P239
BLISS AJ, 1966, DICTIONARY FOREIGN W
BREHM JW, 1962, EXPLORATIONS COGNITI
BROWN JS, 1961, MOTIVATION BEHAVIOUR
CATTON WR, 1959, AM SOCIOL REV, V24, P310
CLAUSS W, 1943, DEUTSCHE LITERATUR
CRONBACH LJ, 1965, 6 MENT MEAS YEARB, P387
DETOCQUEVILLE A, 1945, DEMOCRACY AM, V2
DILTHEY W, 1961, GESAMMELTE SCHRIFTEN, V5, P139
DORSCH F, 1959, PSYCHOLOGISCHES WORT
DUKES WF, 1955, PSYCHOL BULL, V52, P24
ENGLISH HB, 1958, DICTIONARY PSYCHOLOG
FEIBLEMAN JK, 1956, I SOCIETY
FEIFEL H, 1959, MEANING DEATH
FESTINGER L, 1964, CONFLICT DECISION DI
GAGE NL, 1959, 5 MENT MEAS YEARB, P200
GEIGER G, 1950, J SOCIAL ISSUES, V6, P8
GINSBERG M, 1963, PHILOSOPHY, V38, P99
GOODSTEIN LD, 1965, 6 MENTAL MEASUREMENT, P388
GORLOW L, 1965, J SOC PSYCHOL, V66, P271
GOULD J, 1964, DICTIONARY SOCIAL SC
GOVE PB, 1961, 3 WEBST NEW INT DICT
GUILFORD JP, 1959, PERSONALITY
HARDING LW, 1944, J SOC PSYCHOL, V19, P53
HARRIMAN PL, 1961, DICTIONARY PSYCHOLOG
HARTMANN N, 1932, ETHICS, V2
HEHLMANN W, 1959, WORTERBUCH PSYCHOLOG
HORWITZ M, 1956, STATE SOCIAL SCI, P162
IYENGAR KRS, 1942, METAPHYSICS VALUE, V1
KEYSERLING H, 1923, REISETAGEBUCH PHILOS, V1
KIRK R, 1954, CONSERVATIVE MIND
KLUCKHOHN C, 1962, PERSONALITY
KLUCKHOHN FR, 1961, VARIATIONS VALUE ORI
KOHLER W, 1938, PLACE VALUE WORLD FA
KRECH D, 1962, INDIVIDUAL SOCIETY
LAIRD J, 1929, IDEA VALUE
LAMONT WD, 1955, VALUE JUDGEMENT
LASSWELL HD, 1951, POLICY SCI RECENT DE, P3
LASSWELL HD, 1951, POLICY SCIENCES, P102
LERSCH P, 1956, AUFBAU PERSON
LEWIS CI, 1946, ANALYSIS KNOWLEDGE V
LINTON R, 1947, CULTURAL BACKGROUND
LORING LM, 1966, 2 KINDS VALUES
MACCURDY JT, 1950, B J PSYCHOL-GEN 1-2, V41, P1
MARTLAND TR, 1966, J PHIL, V63, P509
MASLOW AH, 1964, RELIGIONS VALUES PEA
MCCURDY HG, 1965, PERSONALITY SCIENCE
MEINONG A, 1923, GRUNDLEGUNG ALLGEMEI
MEWCOMB TM, 1965, SOCIAL PSYCHOLOGY
MILL JS, 1931, ANTHOLOGY MODERN PHI, P731
MORRIS B, 1964, PHILOSOPHY PHENOM RE, V25, P1
MORRIS C, 1955, J ABNORMAL SOCIAL PS, V51, P523
MORRIS C, 1956, VARIETIES HUMAN VALU
MURPHY G, 1947, PERSONALITY
OSGOOD CE, 1961, J ABNORM SOC PSYCHOL, V62, P62
PARSONS T, 1961, CULTURE SOCIAL CHARA, P89
PARTRIDGE PH, 1963, PHILOSOPHY, V38, P117
PEPPER SC, 1958, SOURCES VALUE
PERRY RB, 1926, GENERAL THEORY VALUE
PLATO, 1953, DIALOGUES, V4
RAWLS J, 1963, PHILOS REV, V72, P281
RIESMAN D, 1950, LONELY CROWD
ROHRACHER H, 1956, KLEINE CHARAKTERKUND
ROSE AM, 1962, HUMAN BEHAVIOUR SOCI
RUNES DD, 1944, DICTIONARY PHILOSOPH
SCOTT WA, 1959, AM SOCIOL REV, V24, P299
SCOTT WA, 1960, DECISIONS VALUES GRO, V1, P154
SHERIF M, 1947, PSYCHOLOGY EGOINVOLV
SPRANGER E, 1950, LEBENSFORMEN
STEVENSON CL, 1963, FACTS VALUES
STIRNER M, 1992, EINZIGE EIGENTUM
SUPER DE, 1962, J APPL PSYCHOL, V46, P231
TAYLOR PW, 1961, NORMATIVE DISCOURSE
THOMAE H, 1960, MENSCH ENTSCHEIDUNG
THOMPSON SM, 1962, ETHICS, V73, P1
TILLICH P, 1960, ADVENTURES MIND, P47
URMSON JO, 1960, WESTERN PHILOSOPHY
VIERECK P, 1956, CONSERVATISM JOHN AD
VONMERING O, 1961, GRAMMAR HUMAN VALUES
WALLACE AFC, 1961, STUDYING PERSONALITY, P129
WARD LR, 1930, PHILOSOPHY VALUE
WEBER M, 1962, BASIC CONCEPTS SOCIO
WHITE RK, 1944, J SOC PSYCHOL, V19, P351
WHITE RK, 1947, J ABNORM SOC PSYCH, V42, P440
YOUNG PT, 1961, MOTIVATION EMOTION
ZADROZNY JT, 1959, DICTIONARY SOCIAL SC
ZIMMERMAN RL, 1964, PHILOSOPHY PHENOM RE, V25, P169
NR 93
TC 0
PU NAT INST PERSONNEL RES
PI JOHANNESBURG
PA S AFR COUN SCI IND RES BOX 10319, JOHANNESBURG 2000, SOUTH AFRICA
J9 PSYCHOL AFR
PY 1970
VL 13
IS 2-3
BP 173
EP &
PG 0
SC Psychology; Psychology, Social
GA H9049
UT ISI:A1970H904900011
ER

PT J
AU SHUFORD, HR
TI PRESIDENTIAL ADDRESS - CERTAINTY AND JUSTIFICATION
SO SOUTHWESTERN JOURNAL OF PHILOSOPHY
LA English
DT Editorial Material
C1 UNIV HOUSTON,HOUSTON,TX.
CR CASTANEDA HN, 1965, REV METAPHYSICS, V18, P508
CHISHOLM R, 1966, THEORY KNOWLEDGE, N23
CHISHOLM RM, 1961, ANALYSIS, V22, P1
CHISHOLM RM, 1963, J PHILOSOPHY, V60, P783
CHISHOLM, 1956, PHILOSOPHY PHENOMENO, V16, P447
CHISHOLM, 1957, PERCEIVING PHILOSOPH, P3
DANTO AC, 1967, EPISTEMOLOGY NEW ESS, P32
FIRTH R, TO BE PUBLISHED
FIRTH R, 1965, J PHILOSOPHY, V61, P545
FIRTH R, 1967, PHILOS REV, V76, P3
FRANKFURT HG, 1962, PHILOSOPHICAL REVIEW, V71, P303
GETTIER E, 1963, ANALYSIS, V23, P121
HINTIKKA J, 1962, KNOWLEDGE BELIEF, P105
HINTIKKA J, 1962, PHILOS REV, V71, P6
LEMMON EJ, 1967, EPISTEMOLOGY NEW ESS, P54
LEWIS CI, 1952, PHILOS REV, V61, P168
MALCOLM N, 1963, KNOWLEDGE CERTAINTY, P58
MEINONG A, 1917, EMOTIONALE PRASENTAT
PELTZ RW, 1962, PHILOSOPHICAL STUDIE, V13, P39
QUINTON AM, 1965, PERCEIVING SENSING K, P499
REICHENBACH H, 1952, PHILOSOPHICAL REV, V61, P152
SHUFORD HR, 7TH P INT AM C PHIL, V2, P25
SHUFORD HR, 1966, TEXAS J SCIENCE, V18, P145
NR 23
TC 0
PU SOUTHWESTERN J PHILOS
PI NORMAN
PA 605 DALE HALL TOWER 455 W LINDSEY, NORMAN, OK 73019
SN 0038-481X
J9 SOUTHWEST J PHIL
PY 1970
VL 1
IS 1-2
BP 95
EP 110
PG 16
SC Philosophy; Social Sciences, Interdisciplinary
GA Y3620
UT ISI:A1970Y362000012
ER

PT J
AU AREZZO, G
TI GESTALT AS STRUCTURE
SO BOLLETTINO DI PSICOLOGIA APPLICATA
LA Italian
DT Article
CR BASTIDE R, 1965, SENS USAGES MOT STRU
BERTALANFFY L, 1926, ROUX ARCH, P108
BERTALANFFY L, 1949, ATLANTIS, P8
BERTALANFFY L, 1949, BIOLOGISCHE WELTBILD
BOLELLI T, 1965, STORIA RICERCA LINGU
BONOMI A, 1968, STRUTTURALISMO
BOZZI P, 1966, PRINCIPI DINAMICI PS
BUZZATITRAVERSO A, 1947, FONDAMENTI LOGICI SC
CANESTRARI R, 1958, PENSIERO AM CONTEMPO
CARNAP R, 1928, LOGISCHE AUFBAU WELT
CARNAP R, 1934, LOGISCHE SYNTAX SPRA
CHOMSKY N, 1968, PROBLEMI ATTUALI LIN
DESAUSSURE F, 1916, COURS LINGUISTIQUE G
DOBZHANSKY T, 1956, BIOLOGICAL BASIS HUM
DRIESCH H, 1909, PHILOSOPHIE ORGANISC
DUNCKER K, 1935, PSYCHOLOGIE PRODUKTI
ECO U, 1968, STRUTTURA ASSENTE
EHRENFELS CV, 1890, VIERTELJAHRSCHRIFTEN, V14
GOETHE W, 1810, FARBENLEHRE
GOLDSTEIN K, 1934, AUFBAU ORGANISMUS
GOTTSCHALDT K, 1926, PSYCHOLOGISCHE FORSC, V8
GOTTSCHALDT K, 1929, PSYCHOLOGISCHE FORSC, V12
GUILLAUME P, 1937, PSYCHOLOGIE FORME
GURWITSCH A, 1957, THEORIE CHAMP CONSCI
HEITLER W, 1961, MENSCH NATURWISSENSC
HEMPEL CG, 1966, PHILOSOPHY NATURAL S
HUSSERL E, 1891, PHILOSOPHIE ARITHMET
HUSSERL E, 1900, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN
JAKOBSON R, 1929, TRAVAUX CERCLE LINGU, V2
KOFFKA K, 1935, PRINCIPLES GESTALT P
KOHLER W, PSYCHOLOGIES 1930
KOHLER W, 1913, Z PSYCHOLOGIE, P66
KOHLER W, 1915, ABHANDLUNGEN PREU PM
KOHLER W, 1917, ABHANDLUNGEN PREU PM
KOHLER W, 1918, ABHANDLUNGEN PREU PM
KOHLER W, 1920, PHYSISCHEN GESTALTEN
KOHLER W, 1922, JAHRESBERICHT GESAMT
KOHLER W, 1929, GESTALT PSYCHOLOGY
KOHLER W, 1930, J PSYCHOLOGIE, V27
KOHLER W, 1935, PSYCHOLOGISCHE FORSC, V21
KOHLER W, 1940, DYNAMICS PSYCHOLOGY
KOHLER W, 1966, PRINCIPI DINAMICI PS
KULPE O, 1912, BEITRAG GRUNDLEGUNG
LEPSCKY GC, 1966, LINGUISTICA STRUTTUR
LEVISTRAUSS C, 1949, STRUCTURES ELEMENTAI
LEVISTRAUSS C, 1958, ANTHROPOLOGIE STRUCT
LEWIN K, 1921, PSYCHOLOGISCHE FORSC, V1
LEWIN K, 1926, PSYCHOLOGISCHE FORSC, V7
LEWIN K, 1929, Z PSYCHOLOGIE, V113
LEWIN K, 1934, PS FORSCH, V19
LEWIN K, 1935, DYNAMIC THEORY PERSO
LOTZE H, 1881, GRUNDZUGE PSCHOLOGIE
MACH E, 1886, BEITRAGE ANALYSE EMP
MALINOWSKY B, 1944, SCIENTIFIC THEORY CU
MAXWELL JC, 1873, TREATISE ELECTRICITY
MEINONG A, 1899, Z PSYCHOLOGIE, V21
MICHOTTE, 1946, PERCEPTION CAUSALITE
MORAVIA S, 1969, RAGIONE NASCOSTA
MUSATTI C, 1929, RIV FILOSOFIA
MUSATTI C, 1964, CONDIZIONI ESPERIENZ
NAGEL E, 1961, STRUCTURE SCIENCE
NEURATH OV, 1931, SCIENTIA, V50
OMBREDANE A, 1955, S ASSOC PSYCHOLOGIE
PIAGET J, 1936, NAISSANCE INTELLIGEN
PIAGET J, 1961, MECANISMES PERCEPTIF
PIAGET J, 1965, SAGESSE ILLUSIONS PH
PIAGET J, 1968, STRUCTURALISME
PLANCK M, 1914, KULTUR GEGENWART 3, V1
PLANCK M, 1929, WELTBILD NEUEN PHYSI
PLANCK M, 1933, WEGE PHYSIKALISCHER
PLANCK M, 1965, SCIENZA FILOSOFIA RE
POPPER K, 1935, LOGIK FORSCHUNG
RUBIN E, 1921, VISUELLWAHRGENOMMENE
THORNDIKE EL, 1898, ANIMAL INTELLIGENCE
TRUBECKOJ NS, 1933, J PSYCHOLOGIE, V30
VALERI V, 1968, NATURA CULTURA
VIAUD G, 1946, INTELLIGENCE EVOLUTI
WERTHEIMER M, 1921, PSYCHOLOGISCHE FORSC, V1
WERTHEIMER M, 1923, PSYCHOLOGISCHE FORSC, V2, P4
WERTHEIMER M, 1924, DEC C SOC KANT BERL
WERTHEIMER M, 1945, PRODUCTIVE THINKING
WERTHEMER M, 1912, Z PSYCHOLOGIE, V61
YERKES RM, 1916, BEHAVIOUR MONOGRAPHS, V2
NR 83
TC 0
SN 0006-6761
J9 B PSIC APPL
PY 1970
IS 100-
BP 155
EP 202
PG 48
SC Psychology, Applied
GA J1374
UT ISI:A1970J137400005
ER

PT J
AU SUTER, R
TI RUSSELLS REFUTATION OF MEINONG IN ON DENOTING
SO PHILOSOPHY AND PHENOMENOLOGICAL RESEARCH
LA English
DT Article
C1 MICHIGAN STATE UNIV,E LANSING,MI 48823.
CR MEINONG A, 1907, STELLUNG GEGENSTANDS, P16
QUINE, 1953, LOGICAL POINT VIEW, P3
NR 2
TC 0
PU PHILOSOPHY PHENOMENOLOGICAL RES
PI PROVIDENCE
PA BROWN UNIV BOX 1947, PROVIDENCE, RI 02912
SN 0031-8205
J9 PHIL PHENOMENOL RES
JI Philos. Phenomenol. Res.
PY 1967
VL 27
IS 4
BP 512
EP 516
PG 5
SC Philosophy
GA ZH972
UT ISI:A1967ZH97200003
ER

PT J
AU AMMONS, RB
AMMONS, CH
TI PERCEPTION BIBLIOGRAPHY .10. PSYCHOLOGICAL INDEX, NO. 7, 1900
SO PERCEPTUAL AND MOTOR SKILLS
LA English
DT Review
CR 1900, Z PSYCHOL, V23, P321
ABNEY WD, 1900, P ROY SOC LOND B BIO, V67, P118
ACH N, 1900, KRAEPELINS PSYCHOL A, V3, P203
ALT F, 1900, WEINER KLIN RUNDSCHA, V14, P225
AMENT W, 1900, PHILOS STUD WUNDT, V16, P135
BAGLEY WC, 1900, AM J PSYCHOL, V12, P80
BALTALOFF TP, 1900, VOPROSI PHIL, V11, P2
BALTALOFF TP, 1900, VOPROSI PHIL, V11, P3
BAWDEN HH, 1900, PSYCHOL REV MONOGR S, V14, P122
BERGER E, 1900, REV GEN OPHTAL, V19, P97
BERGER E, 1900, VERH PHYSIK GES BERL, V2, P160
BIELSCHOWSKY A, 1900, VONGRAEFES ARCH OPHT, V50, P406
BINET A, 1900, ANN PSYCHOL, V6, P405
BOURDON B, 1900, REV PHIL FRANCE ETRA, V49, P74
BOURDON B, 1900, REV PHIL, V50, P1
BURCH GJ, 1900, J PHYSL, V25, P427
CALKINS MW, 1900, PSYCHOL REV, V7, P580
CHARTIER E, 1900, REV MET MOR, V8, P745
CLAPAREDE E, 1900, BIBL U ARCH SCI PHYS, V9, P583
CLAVIERE J, 1900, REV SCI, V11, P975
DISSARD MA, 1899, REV SCI, V12, P257
DISSARD MA, 1899, REV SCI, V12, P296
DODGE R, 1900, PSYCHOL REV, V7, P454
DUERR E, 1900, PHIL STUD, V15, P501
DUNLAP K, 1900, PSYCHOL REV, V7, P435
EDRIDGEGREEN FW, 1900, J MENT SCI, V46, P756
ERDMANN B, 1900, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V22, P241
GOEDSEELS, 1900, REV QUEST SCI 2E S, V17, P144
GRADENIGO G, 1900, PAROLE, V10, P129
GRAY AA, 1900, J ANAT PHYSL, V34, P324
HALM, 1900, PSYCHISCHE STUD, V27, P213
HEINE L, 1900, VONGRAEFES ARCH OPHT, V51, P146
HELLER T, 1900, Z PAED PSYCHOL, V2, P190
HELLPACH W, 1900, PHILOS STUDIEN, V15, P524
HERMAN RA, 1900, TREATISE GEOMETRICAL
HOFMANN FB, 1900, PFLUG ARCH GES PHYS, V80, P1
HOLDEN WA, 1900, ARCH OPHTHALMOL-CHIC, V29, P261
HUEY EB, 1900, AM J PSYCHOL, V11, P283
JASTROW J, 1900, PSYCHOL REV, V7, P47
JUDD CH, 1900, PSYCHOL REV, V7, P606
KOENIG, 1900, REC OPHTALM 3E S, V22, P397
LAGRANGE, 1900, J MED BORDEAUX, V30, P380
LEY, 1900, J NEUROL, V5, P309
LIPPS T, 1900, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V22, P383
LOBSIEN M, 1900, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL, V24, P285
MACH E, 1900, ANAL EMPFINDUNGEN VE
MALLY E, 1900, ARCH SYST PHIL, V6, P291
MARKOVA C, 1900, CONTRIBUTION ETUDE P
MEYER M, 1900, AM J PSYCHOL, V11, P530
MORGAN CL, 1900, PSYCHOL REV, V7, P217
MUELLER GE, 1900, Z PSYCHOL, V24, P142
PARINAUD H, 1900, ANN OCUL, V124, P17
PARINAUD H, 1900, ANN OCUL, V124, P177
PIERCE AH, 1900, PSYCHOL REV, V7, P356
PIERCE AH, 1900, PSYCHOL REV, V7, P490
POLACK A, 1900, ROLE ETAT REFRACTION
RIEU M, 1900, HALLUCINATIONS PSYCH
SCHAEFER KL, 1900, PFLUEG ARCH GES PHYS, V78, P505
SCHENCK F, 1898, SITZ BER PHYSIK MED, P18
SCHUMANN F, 1900, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V23, P1
SCHUMANN F, 1900, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V24, P1
SEASHORE CE, 1900, PSYCHOL REV, V7, P592
SECOR WB, 1900, AM J PSYCHOL, V11, P225
SHARGHA IK, 1900, CRITICAL ESSAY BERKE
SOLOMONS LM, 1900, PSYCHOL REV, V7, P234
STERN P, 1900, Z PHIL PH KR, V115, P193
STEWART CC, 1900, AM J PSYCHOL, V11, P240
STRATTON GM, 1900, PSYCHOL REV, V7, P429
SUTER WN, 1900, ARCH OPHTHAL, V29, P417
SWIFT EJ, 1900, AM J PSYCHOL, V11, P527
THORNER W, 1900, DTSCH MED ZTG, V21, P169
THORNER W, 1900, Z PSYCHOL, V23, P187
TOULOUSE E, 1900, C R ACAD SCI, V130, P199
TOULOUSE E, 1900, C R ACAD SCI, V130, P529
TOULOUSE E, 1900, C R ACAD SCI, V130, P669
TOULOUSE E, 1900, CR HEBD ACAD SCI, V130, P803
TOULOUSE E, 1900, CR HEBD ACAD SCI, V131, P128
TOULOUSE E, 1900, REV PSYCHIAT, V3, P359
TRIPLETT N, 1900, AM J PSYCHOL, V11, P439
URIBETRONSCO, 1900, ANN OCUL, V123, P161
VERHOEFF FH, 1900, ARCH OPHTHALMOL-CHIC, V29, P565
VERHOEFF FH, 1900, PSYCHOL REV, V7, P610
VONBECHTEREW W, 1900, DTSCH Z NERVENHK, V16, P209
VONSTEIN S, 1900, ARCH INT LARYNGOL OT, V13, P323
VONSTEIN S, 1900, CENTRALBL PHYSL, V14, P222
VONZEHENDER W, 1900, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V24, P218
WASHBURN MF, 1900, PSYCHOL REV, V7, P39
WHIPPLE GM, 1900, AM J PSYCHOL, V11, P377
WIRTH W, 1900, PHIL STUD, V16, P465
WOODWORTH RS, 1900, PSYCHOL REV, V7, P344
WUNDT W, 1900, PHILOS STUD, V16, P61
WURDEMANN HV, 1900, J AMER MED ASSOC, V34, P1111
ZEITLER J, 1900, PHILOS STUDIEN, V16, P380
NR 93
TC 0
PU PERCEPTUAL MOTOR SKILLS
PI MISSOULA
PA PO BOX 9229, MISSOULA, MT 59807
SN 0031-5125
J9 PERCEPT MOT SKILLS
JI Percept. Mot. Skills
PY 1963
VL 17
IS 3
BP 727
EP 730
PG 4
SC Psychology, Experimental
GA CCX70
UT ISI:A1963CCX7000021
ER

PT J
AU Wirth, W
AF Wirth, Wilhelm
TI Psychological Analysis of musical Hearing and irs Types
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Article
CR 1883, GRUNDTATSACHEN SEELE, P261
1890, Z PSYCHOL, V1, P419
1897, GRUNDZUGE PSYCHOL, V1, P278
1902, PHIL STUD, V20, P494
1902, PHIL STUD, V20, P521
1902, Z PSYCHOL, V27, P163
1904, GESICHTSP PSYCHOPHYS, P237
1904, GESICHTSP TATS PSYCH, P13
1907, UNTERSUCHUNGEN SINNE, P101
1908, ANAL BEWUSSTSEINSPHA, P19
1911, Z PSYCHOL, V58, P321
1932, Z PSYCHOL ERG, V22, P1
1934, Z MUSIKWISS, V16, P481
1938, NOVA ACTA LEOPOLDINA, V6, P54
ABRAHAM O, 1923, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V4, P1
ABRAHAM, 1901, SAMMELBANDE INT MUSI, V3, P1
ANSCHUTZ G, 1925, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V51, P155
BERLAGE F, 1910, WUNDTS PSYCHOL STUDI, V6, P39
CLAUDIUS M, AUSGEWAHLTE WERKE, P10
EHLER H, 1941, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V108, P260
GILBERT J, 1916, EXPER PSYCHOL, V1, P13
GILBERT J, 1919, AM J PSYCHOL, V30, P121
HAUSMANN G, 1935, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V93, P289
HELD H, 1927, PFLUG ARCH GES PHYS, V216, P1
HERING E, 1905, OSTWALDS KLASS, P118
HERMANN F, 1920, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V40, P1
JAENSCH ER, 1913, Z SINNESPHYSIOL, V47, P219
JAMCLE J, 1930, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V78, P103
KEITER F, RASSE KULTUR, V3, P269
KOHLER W, 1915, Z PSYCHOL, V72, P188
KOHLER W, 1915, Z PSYCHOL, V72, P65
KRUEGERS F, 1934, N PSYCHOL, V12, P113
LOTZE, MIKROKOSMUS, V1, P243
MEINONG A, 1899, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V21, P182
MEYER M, 1898, BEITR AKUST MUSIKW, P66
MOEDE W, 1913, PSYCHOL STUD, V8, P327
NADEL S, 1928, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V64, P37
QUENSEL, ZSCH NERVENHEILK, V77
QUENSEL, 1923, Z GES NEUR PSYCHIAT, V81, P311
REVESZ G, 1912, Z INTERNATIONALEN MU, V14, P137
REVESZ G, 1913, GRUNDLEGUNG TONPSYCH, P36
RIEMANN H, 1911, Z INT MUSIKGESELLSCH, V13, P269
SANDER F, 1932, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V85
SCRIPTURE, 1897, STUD YALE LAB, V4, P69
STUMPF C, 1898, BEITR AKUST MUSIKW, P84
STUMPF C, 1911, ANFANGE MUSIK, P57
STUMPF, 1911, ANFANGE MUSIK, P97
VONEHRENFELS, 1890, VIERTELJAHRSSCHR WIS, V14, P249
VONHORNBOSTEL, BETHES HDB NORM PATH, V11, P701
WEBER, 1846, WAGNERS HANDWB, P561
WEINERT L, 1929, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCHOL, V73, P1
WELLEK A, 1927, MONATSBLATTER ANBRUC, P421
WELLEK A, 1938, ABSOLUTE GEHOR TYPEN, P191
WELLEK A, 1939, TYPOLOGIE MUSIKBEGAB, P107
WELLEK, 1934, Z MUSIKWISSENSCH, V16, P481
WELLEK, 1939, NEUE PSYCHOL STUD, V14, P1
WERNER H, 1926, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V98, P74
WUNDT, 1891, PHILOS STUD, V6, P26
WUNDT, 1891, PHILOS STUD, V6, P90
ZAUMSEIL E, 1939, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V105, P124
ZINDLER K, 1898, Z PSYCHOL, V20, P225
NR 61
TC 0
SN 0724-7842
J9 ARCG GESAMTE PSYCHOL
JI Archiv. Gesamte Psychol.
PD JUL
PY 1941
VL 109
IS 2-3
BP 129
EP 296
PG 168
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V02RN
UT ISI:000206940400001
ER

PT J
AU [Anon]
TI PERCEPTUAL CONSTRUCTION AND LOGICO-ARITHMETIC CONSTRUCTION OF THOUGHT
SO ARCHIVES DE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA French
DT Article
CR ACH N, 1905, UEBER WILLENSTATIGKE
BECHTEREV W, 1913, PSYCHOL OBJECTIVE
BERGSON H, 1902, REV PHIL, V13
BORING EG, 1933, PHYS DIMENSIONS CONS
BUEL J, 1938, PSYCHOL REV, V45, P395
BUHLER K, 1929, KRISE PSYCHOL
CLAPAREDE E, 1903, ASS IDEES
CLAPAREDE E, 1920, REV GENEVE
CLAPAREDE E, 1931, ED FONCTIONNELLE
CLAPAREDE E, 1934, GENESE HYPOTHESE
CLAPAREDE E, 1939, INTELLIGENCE ANIMALE
DELACROIX H, 1938, DUMAS NOUV T PSYCH, V5, P85
DEWEY J, 1909, WE THINK
DUNCKER K, 1926, PED SEM, V33
DUNCKER K, 1935, PSYCHOL PRODUKTIVEN
DUNCKER K, 1939, PSYCHOL REV, V46, P176
FREUD S, 1922, PSYCHOPATHOLOGIE VIE
GUILLAUME P, 1927, PSYCHOL FORME
GUTHRIE ER, 1935, PSYCHOL LEARNING
GUTHRIE ER, 1937, PSYCHOL REV, V44, P525
HEGEL F, 1875, COURS ESTHETIQUE
HULL C, 1935, PS REV, V41, P134
HULL C, 1939, PS MON, V28
HULL CL, 1935, PSYCHOL REV, V41, P35
HULL CL, 1937, PSYCHOL REV, V44, P1
HULL CL, 1938, PSYCHOL REV, V45, P271
HULL CL, 1939, PSYCHOL REV, V46, P9
HUME D, 1937, 9 SEM INT SYNTH PAR
ISCHLONDSKY R, 1932, BEDINGTE REFLEX
JAMES W, 1891, PRINCIPLES PSYCHOL
JANET P, 1928, EVOLUTION MEMOIRE NO
JANET P, 1935, DEBUTS INTELLIGENCE
JANET P, 1936, INTELLIGENCE AVANT L
KOFFKA K, 1925, GRUNDLAGEN PSYCHISCH
KOFFKA K, 1927, PSYCHOL FORSCH, V9, P163
KOHLER W, 1925, PS FOR, V6, P350
KOHLER W, 1926, PS FOR, V8, P236
KOHLER W, 1929, GESTALTPSYCHOLOGY
KRECHEVSKY I, 1938, PSYCHOL REV, V45, P107
LASHLEY KS, 1932, STUDIES DYNAMICS BEH
LEROY, 1905, REV MET
LINDWORSKY J, 1916, SCHLUSSFOLGERNDE DEN
LOCKE NM, 1938, PSYCHOL REV, V45, P335
MACH E, 1889, ANAL EMPFINDUNGEN
MACH E, 1913, CONNAISSANCE ERREUR
MAIER NRF, 1930, J COMP PS, V10
MAIER NRF, 1931, J COMP PS, V12
MAIER NRF, 1933, BRIT J PS, V24
MAIER NRF, 1937, PSYCHOL REV, V44, P365
MEILI R, 1930, AR PS, V22
MEINONG A, 1914, GESAMMELTE ABHANDLUN
MEYERSON E, 1933, CHEMINEMENT PENSEE
MEYERSON I, 1928, J PSYCH
MONTMASSON JM, 1928, ROLE INCONSCIENT INV
MOORE TV, 1938, PSYCHOL REV, V45, P219
MULLER GE, 1911, ZNAL GEDACHTNISTATIG
MULLER GE, 1923, KOMPLEXTHEORIE GESTA
MULLER GE, 1924, ABRISS PSYCHOL
MULLER GE, 1926, Z PS, V99
NICOLLE C, 1932, BIOL INVENTION
PAULHAN, 1911, PSYCHOL INVENTION
PAVLOV JP, 1927, CONDITIONED REFLEXES
PIAGET J, 1924, JUGEMENT RAISONNEMEN
PIAGET J, 1928, CAUSALITE PHYS CHEZ
PIAGET J, 1937, CONSTRUCTION REEL CH
PIERON H, 1926, PED SEM, V33
POINCARE H, 1908, B I GEN PSYCH, P182
REGINANO E, 1920, PSYCHOL RAISONNEMENT
REY A, 1938, ARCH PSYCHOLOGIE, V27, P1
RIBOT T, 1908, ESSAI IMAGINATION CR
ROYCE, 1898, PSYCH REV
SELZ O, 1913, GESETZE GEORDNETEN D
SELZ O, 1920, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V83, P211
SELZ O, 1922, PSYCHOL PRODUKTIVEN
SELZ O, 1922, Z PS, V85, P160
SELZ O, 1924, GESETZE PRODUKTIVEN
SOURIAU P, 1883, THEORIE INVENTION
SPEARMAN C, 1923, NATURE INTELLIGENCE
SPEARMAN C, 1930, CREATIVE MIND
STUMPF C, 1898, ERSCHEINUNGEN PSYCHI
THORNDIKE E, 1900, PSYCHOL REV, V7, P466
THORNDIKE EL, 1911, ANIMAL INTELLIGENCE
THORNDIKE EL, 1913, ORIGINAL NATURE MAN
THORNDIKE EL, 1913, PSYCHOL LEARNING
THORNDIKE EL, 1914, MENTAL WORK FATIGUE
THORNDIKE EL, 1926, MEASUREMENT INTELLIG
THORNDIKE EL, 1926, PSYCHOL ARITHMETIC
THORNDIKE EL, 1932, FUNDAMENTALS LEARNIN
TITCHENER, 1909, EXPT PSYCHOL THOUGHT
TOLMAN CE, 1913, PS REV, V40, P246
TOLMAN CE, 1926, PS REV, V33, P352
TOLMAN CE, 1930, U COL PUB, V4, P215
TOLMAN CE, 1932, PURPOSIVE BEHAV ANIM
TOLMAN CE, 1935, PHIL SC, V2, P356
TOLMAN CE, 1935, PS REV, V40, P356
TOLMAN CE, 1938, PS REV, V45, P1
WALLON H, 1934, ORIGINES CARACTERE C
WATSON JB, 1919, PSYCHOL STANDPOINT B
WETHEIMER M, 1920, SCHLUSSPROZESSE PROD
WUNDT W, 1886, ELEMENTS PSYCHOL PHY
NR 100
TC 0
PU MEDECINE ET HYGIENE
PI GENEVA 4
PA 78, AVE DE LA ROSERAIE, CASE POSTALE 456,, CH-1211 GENEVA 4, SWITZERLAND
SN 0003-9640
J9 ARCH PSYCHOLOGIE
JI Arch. Psychol.
PY 1940
VL 28
IS 110
PG 62
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V65DA
UT ISI:000204401800001
ER

PT J
AU Eaton, HO
AF Eaton, Howard O.
TI THE UNITY OF AXIOLOGICAL ETHICS
SO INTERNATIONAL JOURNAL OF ETHICS
LA English
DT Article
CR 1932, INT J ETHICS, V42, P132
EATON, 1930, AUSTR PHILOS VALUES, P223
HARTMANN N, 1926, ETHIK
HOLT EB, 1931, ANIMAL DRIVE LEARNIN, P249
HOOK S, 1930, INT J ETHICS, V40, P179
KRAUS O, 1914, JAHRBILCHER PHILOS, V2, P17
MEINONG A, 1894, PSYCHOLOGISCHETHISCH, P25
MEINONG A, 1912, LOGOS, V3, P10
MEINONG A, 1917, SITZB AKAD WIS PHIL, V183
PERRY RB, 1931, INT J ETHICS, V41, P430
PERRY RB, 1931, J PHILOS, V28, P458
SCHELER M, 1927, FORMALISMUS ETHIK MA, P373
NR 12
TC 0
PU UNIV CHICAGO PRESS
PI CHICAGO
PA 1427 E 60TH ST, CHICAGO, IL 60637-2954 USA
SN 1526-422X
J9 INT J ETHICS
JI Int. J. Ethics
PD OCT
PY 1932
VL 43
IS 1
BP 20
EP 36
PG 17
SC Ethics
GA V82RX
UT ISI:000205589700002
ER

PT J
AU Grossart, F
AF Grossart, Friedrich
TI Critique of prevalent Theories on Emotions
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Article
CR ACHELIS, Z PSYCH PHYS 2, V56
ADLER A, 1919, NERVOSE CHARAKTER
ADLER A, 1928, MENSCHENKENUTNIS
BECHER E, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V34
BERGER H, 1904, KORPERLICHE AUSSERUN
BRENTANO F, 1907, UNTERSUCHUNGEN SINNE
BRENTANO F, 1911, KLASSIFIKATION PSYCH
BRENTANO F, 1925, PSYCHOL EMPIRISCHEN, V1
COHN J, ARCH GES PSYCH, V72
CORNELIUS H, 1897, PSYCHOL ERFAHRUNGSWI
DILTHEY W, 1894, IDEEN BESCHREIBENDE
DILTHEY W, 1924, JETZL GESAMM SCHRIFT, V1
DUMAS G, REV PHILOS, V47
EBBINGHAUS H, 1905, GRUNDZUGE PSYCHOL, V1
EBBINGHAUS H, 1919, GRUNDZUGE PSYCHOL, V1
FANKHAUSER, 1919, WESEN BEDEUTUNG AFFE
FOERSTER O, 1927, LEITUNGSBAHNEN SCHME
FOUILLE A, 1908, EVOLUTIONISMUS KRAFT
FREUD S, 1917, VORLESUNGEN EINFUHRU
FREUD S, 1920, JENSEITS LUSTPRINZIP
FREUD S, 1923, DAS ICH UND DAS ES
FREUD S, 1924, TECHNIK PSYCHOANALYS
GIRGENSOHN K, 1921, SEELISCHE AUFBAU REL
HENNING H, 1924, GERUCH
HERBART JH, SAMTL WERKE, V6
HOFFDING H, 1914, PSYCHOL UMRISSEN
JAMES W, 1884, WHAT IS EMOTION
JAMES W, 1891, PRINCIPLES PSYCHOL, V2
JANET P, 1923, TENSION PSYCHOL TRAI, V1
JODL F, 1924, LEHRBUCH PSYCHOL, V2
KRUEGER F, NEUE PSYCHOL STUDIEN, V1
KRUEGER F, 1918, TIEFENDIMENSION GEGE
KRUEGER F, 1928, WESEN GEFUHLE
KULPE O, 1913, HANDWORTERBUCH NATUR
KULPE O, 1922, VORLESUNGEN PSYCHOL
LANGE K, 1903, SINNESGENUSSE KUNSTG
LANGE K, 1910, GEMUTSBEWEGUNGEN
LEHMANN A, 1899, KORPERLICHEN AUSSERU, V1
LEHMANN A, 1914, HAUPTGESETZE MENSCHL
LIPPS T, 1901, SELBSTBEWUSSTSEIN EM
LIPPS T, 1906, LEITFADEN PSYCHOL
LIPPS T, 1907, FUHLEN WOLLEN DENKEN
LIPPS T, 1907, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHU 1
LOTZE H, 1852, MED PSYCHOL
LOTZE H, 1896, MIKROKOSMOS, V1
MACDOUGALL W, 1923, INTRO SOCIALPSYCHOLO
MACDOUGALL W, 1924, OUTLINE PSYCHOL
MACDOUGALL W, 1928, DASS DTSCH GRUNDLAGE
MAIER H, 1908, PSYCHOL EMOTIONALEN
MEINONG A, 1917, EMOTIONALE PRASENTAT
MEINONG A, 1923, GRUNDLEGUNG ALLGEMEI
MESSER A, 1920, PSYCHOLOGIE
MULLERFREIENFEL.R, 1924, GEFUHLS WILLENSLEBEN
NADEJDE AC, 1905, THESIS MUNCHENER
NADEJDE AC, 1907, THESIS MUNCHENER
NADEJDE AC, 1908, BIOL THEORIE LUST UN
NAHLOWSKY, 1884, GEFUHLSLEBEN
REHMKE J, 1911, LEHRE GEMUT
RIBOT T, 1903, PSYCHOL GEFUHLE
RIBOT T, 1923, ESSAI PASSIONS
RIGNANO E, ARCH GES PSYCH, V20
SHAND A, 1920, FDN CHARACTER
SOLLIER P, 1905, MECANISME EMOTIONS
STORRING G, 1916, PSYCHOL MENSCHLICHEN
STUMPF K, Z PSYCH, V21
STUMPF K, Z PSYCH, V44
STUMPF K, Z PSYCH, V75
STUMPF K, 1928, GEFUHL GEFUHLSEMPFIN
STWITASEK, 1908, GRUNDLINIEN PSYCHOL
THALBITZER S, 1920, STIMMUNGEN GEFUHLE G
TITCHENER EB, 1908, LECT ELEMENTARY PSYC
TITCHENER EB, 1910, LEHRBUCH PSYCHOL, V12
VOLKELT J, 1930, VERSUCH FUHTEN WOLLE
VONDERPFORDTEN O, Z PSYCH, V62
VONEHRENFELS C, 1897, SYSTEM WERTTHEORIE
VONHARTMANN E, 1908, GRUNDRISS PSYCHOL
VONMAYENDORF N, Z ALLG PHYSL, V14
WATSON JB, 1925, BEHAVIORISM
WEBER E, 1910, EINFLUSS PSYCHISCHER
WUNDT W, 1902, GRUNDZUGE PHYSL PSYC, V1
WUNDT W, 1909, GRUNDRISS PSYCHOL
ZIEGLER T, 1912, GEFUHL
ZIEHEN T, 1924, LEITFADEN PHYSL PSYC
NR 83
TC 0
SN 0724-7842
J9 ARCG GESAMTE PSYCHOL
JI Archiv. Gesamte Psychol.
PD JAN
PY 1930
VL 74
IS 3-4
BP 401
EP 454
PG 54
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V01WE
UT ISI:000206884900003
ER

PT J
AU Williams, G
AF Williams, Gardner
TI FEELING AS THE BASIS OF DUTY
SO INTERNATIONAL JOURNAL OF ETHICS
LA English
DT Article
CR REASON SCI, P249
BENTHAM, 1838, COLLECT WORKS, V1, P23
MEINONG A, 1894, PSYCHOL ETHISCHE UNT
PEPPER SC, 1923, U CALIFORNIA PUBLICA, V4, P107
PERRY RB, 1926, GEN THEORY VALUE
SANTAYANA G, REASON SCI, P223
URBAN WM, 1909, VALUATION ITS NATURE
VONEHRENFELS C, 1897, SYSTEM WERTTHEORIE
NR 8
TC 0
PU UNIV CHICAGO PRESS
PI CHICAGO
PA 1427 E 60TH ST, CHICAGO, IL 60637-2954 USA
SN 1526-422X
J9 INT J ETHICS
JI Int. J. Ethics
PD JUL
PY 1930
VL 40
IS 4
BP 525
EP 541
PG 17
SC Ethics
GA V82RO
UT ISI:000205588800006
ER

PT J
AU Straub, W
AF Straub, Werner
TI Sound Quality and Pitch
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Article
CR ABRAHAM O, 1926, Z PSYCHOL, V98
BRENTANO F, 1907, UNTERSUCHUNGEN SINNE
DUNLAP K, 1905, PSYCH REV, V12
GARTEN S, 1921, ABH SACHS AKAD WI MP, V38
HUBER K, VOKALMISCHU IN PRESS
HUBER K, 1928, Z PSYCHOL, V106
JAENSCH ER, 1925, Z PSYCHOL, V97
KNUDSEN VO, 1923, PHYS REV, V21
KOHLER W, 1909, Z PSYCH, V54
KOHLER W, 1915, Z PSYCHOL, V72
MACH E, 1922, ANAL EMPFINDUNGEN
MEINONG A, 1903, Z PSYCHOL, V33
MEYER E, 1927, HDB PHYS
MEYER M, 1898, Z PSYCHOL, V16
OGDEN RM, 1918, PSYCH REV, V25
PAULI R, 1925, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V51
REVESZ G, 1913, GRUNDLEGUNG TONPSYCH
REVESZ G, 1926, Z PSYCHOL, V99
RICH GI, 1919, AM J PSYCH, V30
STBALEY, 1915, Z PSYCHOL, V70
STERN W, 1902, Z PSYCHOL, V30
STUCKER N, 1907, SITZ BER K AK W MN 2, V116
STUCKER N, 1908, Z SINNESPHYSIOL, V42
STUMPF G, 1883, TONPSYCHOLOGIE, V1
STUMPF G, 1890, TONPSYCHOLOGIE, V2
STUMPF G, 1901, BEITR Z AKUSTIK MUSI
STUMPF G, 1914, 6 K EXP PSYCH
STUMPF G, 1916, Z PSYCHOL, V75
STUMPF G, 1924, Z PSYCHOL, V94
STUMPF G, 1926, SPRACHLAUTE
STUMPF, 1898, Z PSYCHOL, V18
TITTEL M, 1921, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V41
VONHELMHOLTZ H, 1913, LEHRE TONEMPFINDUNGE
VONHORNBOSTEL, 1908, Z PSYCHOL, V48
VONLIEBERMANN P, 1914, Z PSYCHOL, V69
VONMALTZEW C, 1913, Z PSYCHOL, V64
WATT HJ, 1917, PSYCHOL SOUND
WERNER H, 1926, Z PSYCHOL, V98
WERNER H, 1927, Z PSYCHOL, V101
WINKELMANNS, 1909, HDB PHYS, V2
WIRTH W, 1912, PSYCHOPHYSIK
NR 41
TC 0
SN 0724-7842
J9 ARCG GESAMTE PSYCHOL
JI Archiv. Gesamte Psychol.
PD MAY
PY 1929
VL 69
IS 3-4
BP 289
EP 395
PG 109
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V01VU
UT ISI:000206883900001
ER

PT J
AU Lenart, E
AF Lenart, Edith
TI Viewing Contents in esthetic Experiences
SO ZEITSCHRIFT FUR PSYCHOLOGIE UND PHYSIOLOGIE DER SINNESORGANE
LA German
DT Article
CR MEINONG A, 1902, ANNAHMEN
VONEHRENFELS C, 1890, VIERTELJAHRSSCHR WIS, P279
NR 2
TC 0
PU SWETS ZEITLINGER PUBLISHERS
PI LISSE
PA P O BOX 825, 2160 SZ LISSE, NETHERLANDS
J9 Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SINNESORG
JI Z. Psychol. Physiol. Sinnesorg.
PY 1926
VL 99
BP 357
EP 374
PG 18
SC Psychology, Biological
GA V96MW
UT ISI:000206523000033
ER

PT J
AU Thaer, C
TI The degree of possibility and the rate of possibility
SO NATURWISSENSCHAFTEN
LA German
DT Article
CR 1764, GENERA PLANTARUM, V6
1908, OEUVRES BLAISE PASCA, P388
BRUNS H, 1906, WAHRSCHEINLICHKEITSR, P98
COURNOT A, 1843, EXPOSITION THEORIE C
CZUBER BE, 1908, WAHRSCHEINLICHKEITSR, P35
CZUBER E, 1923, PHILOS GRUNDLAGEN WA
FECHNER GT, 1897, KOLLEKTIVMASSLEHRE
FRIES JF, 1842, VERSUCH KRITIK PRINZ
LEXIS W, 1877, GESELLSCHAFT PROGRAM
MEINONG A, 1915, MOGLICHKEIT WAHRSCHE
REICHENBACH H, 1916, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V161
SCHNUSE, 1849, BRAUNSCHWEIG
STUMPF C, 1892, SITZUNGSBER PHIL AKA
VENN J, 1876, LOGIC CHANCE
VONHAUSSNER, 1899, OSTWALDS KLASSIKER, V2, P72
VONMISES R, 1919, MATH Z, V5
VONSMOLUCHOWSKI M, 1918, NATURWISSENSCHAFTEN, V6
WINDELBAND W, 1870, THESIS BERLIN, P70
NR 18
TC 0
PU SPRINGER
PI NEW YORK
PA 233 SPRING STREET, NEW YORK, NY 10013 USA
SN 0028-1042
J9 NATURWISSENSCHAFTEN
JI Naturwissenschaften
PY 1924
VL 12
BP 1094
EP 1099
PG 6
SC Multidisciplinary Sciences
GA V03WZ
UT ISI:000200262500246
ER

PT J
AU Moog, W
AF Moog, Willy
TI The criticism of pychologism by modern logic and epistemology
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Article
CR KL SCHRIFTEN, V1, P621
LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN, V1, P120
1887, PHILOS MONATSHEFTE, V23, P257
1901, PSYCHOL WISSENSCHAIT, P3
1905, STIZUNGSBER BAYR AKA
1906, ATTI 5 C INT PSIC, P323
1906, ATTI 5 C INT PSICOL, P57
1906, ATTI 5 C INT PSICOLO, P322
1908, ABHANDLUNGEN FRIESSC, V2
1909, KANTSTUDIEN, V14, P169
1910, LOGOS, V1, P303
1911, NEUE AUSG, P165
1912, PSYCHOL UNTERSUCHUNG, V2, P1
1913, Z PHILOS PH KR, V149, P86
1913, Z PHILOS PH KR, V149, P96
1914, KANTSTUDIEN, V19, P303
BOLZANO B, 1837, WISSENSOHAFTSLEHRE, V1, P52
ELSENHANS T, 1915, KANTSTUDIEN, V20, P259
ERDMANN B, 1885, REFLEXIONEN KANTS, P130
ERDMANN, 1885, REFLEXIONEN KANTS, P130
GROOS K, 1912, Z PSYCHOL, V62, P273
HEIM K, 1902, PSYCHOLOGISMUS ANTIP, P25
INHALT, 1905, SITZUNGSBER BAYR AK, P629
KINKEL, PHILOS BIBL, V43, P15
LAPP A, 1913, WAHRHEIT, P30
LAPP A, 1913, WAHRHEIT, P31
LOTZE, AUSG G MISCH, P525
LOTZE, MISCH PHILOS BIBL, V141, R110
MEINONG A, 1902, ANNAHMEN, P196
MEINONG A, 1907, STELLUNG GEGENSTANDS, P142
MEINONG A, 1910, ANNAHMEN, P97
NATORP P, 1912, ALLGEMOINE PSYCHOL, P18
RICKERT H, GEGENSTAND ERKENNTNI, P130
RICKERT H, 1910, BEGRIFF PHILOS, P23
WUNDT W, 1910, KLEINE SCHRIFTEN, V1, P511
WUNDT, 1910, SOHRIFTEN, V1, P622
WUNDT, 1910, SOHRIFTEN, V1, P628
NR 37
TC 0
SN 0724-7842
J9 ARCG GESAMTE PSYCHOL
JI Archiv. Gesamte Psychol.
PD JUN 28
PY 1918
VL 37
IS 4
BP 301
EP 362
PG 62
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V98HV
UT ISI:000206645100001
ER

PT J
AU Buhler, C
AF Buehler, Charlotte
TI On Thought Genesis
SO ZEITSCHRIFT FUR PSYCHOLOGIE UND PHYSIOLOGIE DER SINNESORGANE
LA German
DT Article
CR 1889, SITZUNGSBER WIENE PH, V118, P21
1891, Z PSYCHOL PHYS SINNE, V2, P245
1898, Z PSYCHOL PHYS SINNE, V21, P181
1907, ABH K PR AKAD WISS, P22
1912, Z PSYCHOL, V60, P161
1913, GESAMMELTEN ABHANDLU, V1
1913, GESAMMELTEN ABHANDLU, V2
BUHLER K, 1907, ARCH G PSYCH, V9, P320
BUHLER K, 1913, GESTALTWAHRNEHMUNGEN, P160
ERDMANN, 1907, LOGIK, V1, P335
GELB A, 1911, Z PSYCHOL, V58, P1
GRUNBAUM A, 1912, BER 5 K EXP PSYCH, P208
HUSSERL, 1901, LOGISCHE UNTERSUCHUN, V2, P230
LINDWORSKY, 1916, EXP PSYCH UNTERSUCHU, P132
LINDWORSKY, 1916, EXP PSYCH UNTERSUCHU, P406
LIPPS T, 1902, EINHEITEN RELATIONEN, P35
MALLY E, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
MEINONG A, 1913, GESAMMELTE ABHANDLUN, V2
MESSER, 1906, ARCH G PSYCH, V8
SEGAL J, 1916, MUNCHENER STUDIEN PS
SEIFERT F, 1917, Z PSYCHOL, V78, P101
SELZ O, 1913, GESETZE GEORDNETEN D, P222
STAHLIN W, 1914, ARCH PSYCHOL, V31, P297
NR 23
TC 0
PU SWETS ZEITLINGER PUBLISHERS
PI LISSE
PA P O BOX 825, 2160 SZ LISSE, NETHERLANDS
J9 Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SINNESORG
JI Z. Psychol. Physiol. Sinnesorg.
PY 1918
VL 80
BP 129
EP 200
PG 72
SC Psychology, Biological
GA V96LT
UT ISI:000206520100013
ER

PT J
AU Linke, PF
AF Linke, P. F.
TI Regarding Assumptions, 2nd edition
SO ZEITSCHRIFT FUR PSYCHOLOGIE UND PHYSIOLOGIE DER SINNESORGANE
LA German
DT Book Review
CR MEINONG A, 1910, ANNAHMEN
NR 1
TC 0
PU SWETS ZEITLINGER PUBLISHERS
PI LISSE
PA P O BOX 825, 2160 SZ LISSE, NETHERLANDS
J9 Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SINNESORG
JI Z. Psychol. Physiol. Sinnesorg.
PY 1913
VL 65
BP 408
EP 411
PG 4
SC Psychology, Biological
GA V96KR
UT ISI:000206517300045
ER

PT J
AU Kreibig
AF Kreibig
TI Essays regarding Epistemology and Theory of Objects
SO ZEITSCHRIFT FUR PSYCHOLOGIE UND PHYSIOLOGIE DER SINNESORGANE
LA German
DT Book Review
CR MEINONG A, 1913, ABHANDLUNGEN ERKENNT
NR 1
TC 0
PU SWETS ZEITLINGER PUBLISHERS
PI LISSE
PA P O BOX 825, 2160 SZ LISSE, NETHERLANDS
J9 Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SINNESORG
JI Z. Psychol. Physiol. Sinnesorg.
PY 1913
VL 65
BP 405
EP 407
PG 3
SC Psychology, Biological
GA V96KR
UT ISI:000206517300044
ER

PT J
AU [Anon]
TI Regarding Assumptions, 2nd edition
SO ARCHIVES DE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA French
DT Book Review
CR MEINONG A, 1910, ANNAHMEN
NR 1
TC 0
PU MEDECINE ET HYGIENE
PI CHENE-BOURG
PA CH DE LA MOUSSE 46, CASE POSTALE 475, CH-1225 CHENE-BOURG, SWITZERLAND
SN 0003-9640
J9 ARCH PSYCHOLOGIE
JI Arch. Psychol.
PD DEC
PY 1912
VL 12
IS 48
BP 395
EP 395
PG 1
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V93MD
UT ISI:000206318300011
ER

PT J
AU Urban, WM
AF Urban, Wilbur M.
TI VALUES
SO PSYCHOLOGICAL BULLETIN
LA English
DT Article
CR ANDERSON BM, 1911, SOCIAL VALUE STUDY E
BALDWIN JM, 1911, THOUGHT THINGS, V3
BOSANQUET B, 1911, PRINCIPLE INDIVIDUAL
DURKHEIM E, 1911, REV METAPHYS MORALE, V19, P437
GILLETT MS, REV SCI PHIL THEOL, V6, P5
KALLEN HM, 1912, J PHIL PSYCHOL, V9, P253
KING I, 1911, DEV RELIG, CH3
LUDEMANN H, 1910, ERKENNEN WERTURTEILE
MAUGE F, 1910, REV PHIL, V69, P387
MEINONG A, LOGOS, V3
PERRY RB, 1912, PRESENT PHILOS TENDE
QUICK OC, 1910, MIND, V19, P218
QUICK OC, 1910, MIND, V20, P256
RICKERT H, LOGOS, V1
RUBINSTEIN M, 1910, KANTSTUD, V15, P263
RUSSELL JE, 1910, MIND, V19, P547
RUSSELL JE, 1911, MIND, V20, P538
VONDERPFORDTEN O, 1910, KONFORMISMUS PHILOS
NR 18
TC 0
PU AMER PSYCHOLOGICAL ASSOC
PI WASHINGTON
PA 750 FIRST ST NE, WASHINGTON, DC 20002-4242 USA
SN 0033-2909
J9 PSYCHOL BULL
JI Psychol. Bull.
PD JUL 15
PY 1912
VL 9
IS 7
BP 260
EP 264
PG 5
SC Psychology; Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V86ZY
UT ISI:000205881000005
ER

PT J
AU Meumann, E
AF Meumann, E.
TI Assumptions
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Book Review
CR MEINONG A, 1910, ANNAHMEN
NR 1
TC 0
SN 0724-7842
J9 ARCG GESAMTE PSYCHOL
JI Archiv. Gesamte Psychol.
PD FEB 14
PY 1911
VL 20
IS 1
BP A9
EP A9
PG 1
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V98FT
UT ISI:000206639700006
ER

PT J
AU Sheldon, WH
AF Sheldon, W. H.
TI MEMORY, THOUGHT, JUDGMENT, LOGIC (THEORY)
SO PSYCHOLOGICAL BULLETIN
LA English
DT Review
CR CALKINS MW, 1910, PSYCHOL BULL, V7, P293
CLAPAREDE E, 1911, ARCH PSYCHOL, V10, P361
CREIGHTON JE, 1910, PHILOS REV, V19, P53
GELB A, 1910, Z PSYCHOL, V58, P1
GROOS K, 1910, Z PSYCHOL, V55, P177
KERLER DH, 1910, UEBER ANNAHMEN, P36
LINDSAY J, 1910, ARCH SYST PHIL, V16, P293
MCGILVARY EB, 1911, PHILOS REV, V20, P137
MEAD GH, 1911, PSYCHOL BULL, V7, P397
MEINONG A, 1910, UEBER ANNAHMEN
PIAT C, 1910, REV NEO SCOLAST, V17, P165
PILLSBURY WB, 1910, PSYCHOL REASONING, P306
NR 12
TC 0
PU AMER PSYCHOLOGICAL ASSOC
PI WASHINGTON
PA 750 FIRST ST NE, WASHINGTON, DC 20002-4242 USA
SN 0033-2909
J9 PSYCHOL BULL
JI Psychol. Bull.
PD SEP 15
PY 1911
VL 8
IS 9
BP 303
EP 306
PG 4
SC Psychology; Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V86ZH
UT ISI:000205879300001
ER

PT J
AU Urban, WM
AF Urban, Wilbur M.
TI VALUES
SO PSYCHOLOGICAL BULLETIN
LA English
DT Article
CR FONSEGRIVE G, 1910, REV PHIL, P44
FONSEGRIVE G, 1910, REV PHIL, P553
LANDMANNKALISCH.E, 1910, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V1, P1
LEIGHTON JA, 1910, INT J ETHICS, V21, P23
MEINONG A, 1910, UEBER ANNAHMEN
MOORE JS, 1910, J PHILOS, V7, P282
SCHLESINGER A, 1909, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V15, P137
SCHLESINGER A, 1910, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V17, P186
NR 8
TC 0
PU AMER PSYCHOLOGICAL ASSOC
PI WASHINGTON
PA 750 FIRST ST NE, WASHINGTON, DC 20002-4242 USA
SN 0033-2909
J9 PSYCHOL BULL
JI Psychol. Bull.
PD NOV 15
PY 1910
VL 7
IS 11
BP 372
EP 375
PG 4
SC Psychology; Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V86WN
UT ISI:000205872100003
ER

PT J
AU [Anon]
TI Additional Experiments in a larger Number of Persons
SO ZEITSCHRIFT FUR PSYCHOLOGIE UND PHYSIOLOGIE DER SINNESORGANE
LA German
DT Article
CR ABELSDORFF G, 1900, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V22, P81
ABNEY WD, 1889, PHILOS MAGAZIN 5, V27, P62
BRUCKNER A, PFLUGERS ARCH GES PH, V98, P90
CORNELIUS H, 1897, PSYCHOL ERFAHRUNGSWI
EBBINGHAUS H, 1905, GRUNDZUGE PSYCHOL
FRAUENHOFER J, 1815, DENKSCHRIFTEN BAYR A, P193
FROBES SJJ, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V36, P241
FROBES SJJ, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V36, P344
GORHAM J, 1884, P ROY SOC LONDON, V37, P425
HAYCRAFT JB, J PHYSL, V21, P126
HERING E, 1905, GRUNDZUGE LEHRE LICH
HILLEBRAND F, SITZUNGSBERICHT KA 3, V98, P70
JACOBSOHN S, Z PSYCHOL, V43, P204
JACOBSOHN S, Z PSYCHOL, V43, P40
KIRSCHMANN, 1891, WUNDTS PHILOS STUDIE, V6, P424
KOFFKA K, Z SINNESPHYSIOL, V43, P123
KONIG A, BEITRAGE PSYCHOL PHY, P309
KULPE O, 1893, GRUNDRIFS PSYCHOL
MARTIUS G, 1905, BEITRAGE PSYCHOL PHY, V1, P95
MEINONG A, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V11, P81
MULLER GE, 1904, GESICHTSPUNKTE TATSA
POLIMANTI O, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V19, P263
RIVERS WHR, 1897, J PHYSL, V22, P137
ROOD ON, 1878, AM J SCI, V15, P81
ROOD ON, 1893, AM J SCI, V46, P173
SACHS M, 1892, PFLUG ARCH GES PHYSL, V52, P79
SCHENCK F, 1896, PFLUGERS ARCH, V64, P607
SIEBECK R, Z PHYSL, V41, P89
STUMPF C, 1890, TONPSYCHOLOGIE
STUMPF C, 1906, ABHANDLUNGEN KONIGL
VIERORDT C, POGGENDORFS ANN, V137, P200
VONHELMHOLTZ H, PHYSL OPTIK
VONKRIES J, HDB PHYSL MENSCHEN, V3
VONKRIES J, PSYCHOL SINNE, P16
VONKRIES J, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V15, P247
VONSZILAGYI E, 1884, ZENTRALBL MED WISSEN, P289
NR 36
TC 0
PU SWETS ZEITLINGER PUBLISHERS
PI LISSE
PA P O BOX 825, 2160 SZ LISSE, NETHERLANDS
J9 Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SINNESORG
JI Z. Psychol. Physiol. Sinnesorg.
PY 1909
VL 53
BP 171
EP 178
PG 8
SC Psychology, Biological
GA V96KB
UT ISI:000206515700007
ER

PT J
AU Sheldon, WH
AF Sheldon, W. H.
TI Objective Theory in a System of Science, vol 8
SO PSYCHOLOGICAL BULLETIN
LA English
DT Book Review
CR MEINONG A, 1907, STELL GEGENSTAND, V8
NR 1
TC 0
PU AMER PSYCHOLOGICAL ASSOC
PI WASHINGTON
PA 750 FIRST ST NE, WASHINGTON, DC 20002-4242 USA
SN 0033-2909
J9 PSYCHOL BULL
JI Psychol. Bull.
PD NOV 15
PY 1909
VL 6
IS 11
BP 379
EP 382
PG 4
SC Psychology; Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V86VY
UT ISI:000205870600002
ER

PT J
AU Benussi, V
AF Benussi, V.
TI Experiments on Inadequacy of Imagination
SO ZEITSCHRIFT FUR PSYCHOLOGIE UND PHYSIOLOGIE DER SINNESORGANE
LA German
DT Article
CR ARCH GES PSYCH
ARCH GES PSYCH, V7, P155
1906, ATT 5 C INT PSIC ROM, P267
KATZ, 1906, Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SI, V42, P304
MEINONG A, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
WATT, ARCH GES PSYCH, V11, P1
WATT, ARCH GES PSYCH, V7, P29
NR 7
TC 0
PU SWETS ZEITLINGER PUBLISHERS
PI LISSE
PA P O BOX 825, 2160 SZ LISSE, NETHERLANDS
J9 Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SINNESORG
JI Z. Psychol. Physiol. Sinnesorg.
PY 1907
VL 45
BP 188
EP 230
PG 43
SC Psychology, Biological
GA V96JT
UT ISI:000206514900013
ER

PT J
AU Marvin, WT
AF Marvin, W. T.
TI Analysis of Perception as an act of Knowing, vol 3
SO PSYCHOLOGICAL BULLETIN
LA English
DT Book Review
CR MEINONG A, 1906, ERFAHRUNGSGRUND WISS, V3
NR 1
TC 0
PU AMER PSYCHOLOGICAL ASSOC
PI WASHINGTON
PA 750 FIRST ST NE, WASHINGTON, DC 20002-4242 USA
SN 0033-2909
J9 PSYCHOL BULL
JI Psychol. Bull.
PD AUG 15
PY 1907
VL 4
IS 8
BP 261
EP 264
PG 4
SC Psychology; Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V86UL
UT ISI:000205866700004
ER

PT J
AU Brittain, HL
TI A study in imagination.
SO PEDAGOGICAL SEMINARY
LA English
DT Article
CR ADAMS C, 1890, REV PHILOS, V29, P156
ANGELL JR, 1897, PHILOS REV, V6, P646
ARMSTRONG AC, 1894, PSYCHOL REV, V1, P496
ARNOLD F, 1906, PSYCHOL REV, V13, P221
ARREAT L, 1895, MEMORIE IMAGINATION
BAIN A, 1880, MIND, V5, P564
BAIN A, 1894, SENSES INTELLECT
BALLET G, 1888, LANGAGE INTERIEUR DI
BINET A, 1886, REV PHILOS, V21, P159
BINET A, 1887, REV PHILOS, V23, P473
BINET A, 1903, ETUDE EXPT INTELLIGE
BINET A, 1903, REV PHILOS, V55, P138
BORST M, 1904, ARCH PSYCHOL, V3, P233
BURNHAM WH, 1893, PED SEM, V2, P204
CHALMERS LH, 1900, PED SEM, V7, P111
CHAMBERLAIN AF, 1903, CHILD STUDY EVOLUTIO, P498
CHASE RH, 1889, AM J INSANITY, V56, P285
DAVIDSON T, 1900, HIST ED
DEARBORN GV, 1898, AM J PSYCHOL, V9, P183
DEBONALD M, 1826, RECHERCHES PHILOS PR, V2
DECARDAILLAC M, 1830, ETUDES ELEMENTAIRES, V2
DILTHEY W, 1886, DICHTERISCHE EINBILD
DILTHEY W, 1887, PHILOS AUFSATZE, P303
DUGAS L, 1903, IMAGINATION
EGGER ME, 1887, OBSERVATIONS REFLEXI
EGGER V, 1881, PAROLE INTERIEURE
FRENCH FC, 1902, PSYCHOL REV, V9, P40
FROHSCHAMMER J, 1877, PHANTASIE GRANDPRINC
GALTON F, 1880, MIND, V5, P301
GALTON F, 1883, INQUIRIES HUMAN FACU
GROOS K, 1901, PLAY MAN
HALL GS, 1891, PEDAGOGICAL SEMINARY, V1, P211
HALL GS, 1902, PED SEM, V9, P460
HALL GS, 1903, PED SEM, V10, P159
HALL GS, 1903, PED SEM, V10, P315
HALL GS, 1905, ADOLESCENCE, V1
JAMES W, 1896, PRINCIPLES PSYCHOL, V2, P44
JEWELL JR, 1905, AM J PSYCHOL, V16, P1
LAY W, 1898, PSY REV S, V7
LEMAITRE A, 1904, ARCH PSY, V4, P1
LINDLEY EH, 1897, AM J PSYCHOL, V8, P431
LOBSIEN M, 1905, PADAGOGISCHE MAGAZIN
MACDOUGAL R, 1898, PSY REV, V5, P463
MALEBRANCHE N, 1885, RECHERCHE VERITE, V2
MEINONG A, 1889, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V95, P161
MEUMANN E, 1906, EXPT PADAGOGIK, V4
MEYER JB, 1878, Z VOLKERPSYCHOLOGIE, V10, P26
OELZELTNEWIN A, 1889, ULER PHANTASIE VORST
PARTRIDGE GE, 1898, PED SEM, V5, P445
PAULHAN F, 1886, REV PHILOS, V21, P26
PHILLIPPE J, 1903, IMAGE MENTALE EVOLUT
QUEYRAT F, 1893, IMAGE MENTALE EVOLUT
RIBOT T, 1899, EVOLUTION GENERAL ID
RIBOT T, 1902, REV PHILOS, V53, P598
RIBOT T, 1906, ESSAY CREATIVE IMAGI
SMITH TL, 1904, AM J PSYCHOL, V15, P465
STERN LW, 1903, BEITRAGE PSYCHOL AUS
STOUT GF, 1896, ANAL PSYCH, V1
STOUT GF, 1899, MANUAL PSYCHOLOGY
STRICKER S, 1880, STUDIEN SPRACHVORSTE
STRICKER S, 1882, STUDIEN BEWEGUNGSVOR
SULLEY J, 1896, STUDIES CHILDHOOD, P25
TAINE H, 1889, INTELLIGENCE
THOMAS WI, 1907, SEX SOC
TYLOR EB, 1888, PRIMITIVE CULTURE, V1
VANBIERVLIET JJ, 1897, REV PHILOS, V44, P113
WALLASCHEK R, 1905, BEITRAGE GRUNDLEGUNG
WEBER L, 1896, REV METAPHYS MORALE, V4, P34
WUNDT W, 1905, VOLKERPSYCHOLOGIE, V2, P1
ZAHLFLEISCH J, 1898, ARCH SYSTEMATISCHE P, V4, P160
NR 70
TC 0
PU CLARK UNIV PRESS
PI WORCESTER
PA DEPT PHILOSOPHY CLARK UNIV, WORCESTER, MA 01610 USA
SN 0891-9402
J9 PEDAGOG SEMIN
PD JUN
PY 1907
VL 14
IS 2
BP 137
EP 207
PG 71
SC Psychology
GA V4351
UT ISI:000187266700001
ER

PT J
AU Watt, HJ
AF Watt, Henry J.
TI Collective Report on recent Research in Memory and Association Psychology from the Years 1903/4
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Review
CR ARCH GES PSYCH, V1, P417
PSYCHOL GESALLEFASSO, P303
VORSUCHUNG SCHACHBRE, P449
Z PSYCH, V26, P168
Z PSYCH, V28, P179
Z PSYCH, V31, P110
ACH N, 1904, 1 K EXP PSYCH GIESS, P80
ALEXANDER HB, 1904, PSYCH REV, V40, P319
ALEXANDER HB, 1904, PSYCH REV, V40, P338
ALLING ME, 1903, PSYCHOL REV, V10, P178
AMESEDER R, AUFFALLIGKUTT BARBEN, P509
AMESEDER R, VORSTELLUNGSPRODUKTI, P481
ATKINSON WW, GEDACHTNISAUSHILDUNG
BINET A, 1903, ETUDE EXPT INTELLIGE
BISCHOFF E, 1904, THESIS TUBINGEN
BLEULER, J PSYCH NEUROLOGIE, V3, P49
BORST M, ARCH PSYCH, V3, P234
BORST M, ARCH PSYCH, V3, P314
CLAPAREDE E, ARCH PSYCH, V3, P201
CLAPAREDE E, 1903, ASS IDEES
DESBAUCELS L, ARCH PSYCH, V3, P145
DUGAS L, 1904, REV PHIL, V58, P638
EBERT E, ARCH GESAMTE PSYCH, V4, P1
ENGLE JE, 1904, ANAL INTEREST PSYCHO, V26
EPHRUSSI P, 1905, Z PSYCHOL, V37, P161
EPHRUSSI P, 1905, Z PSYCHOL, V37, P56
GAMBLE E, Z PSYCH, V32, P177
GAMBLE E, Z PSYCH, V33, P161
GEORGE A, 1904, GEDACHTNIS SEINE PFL
GORDON K, ARCH GES PSYCH, V4, P437
HENDERSON EN, PSYCH REV MONOGR S, V23
JAFFA S, STERNS BEITRAGE PSYC, P79
JANET P, 1904, J PSYCHOL, V1, P417
JUNG CG, J PSYCH NEUROLOGIE, V3, P145
JUNG CG, J PSYCH NEUROLOGIE, V3, P193
JUNG CG, J PSYCH NEUROLOGIE, V3, P283
JUNG CG, J PSYCH NEUROLOGIE, V3, P55
JUNG CG, J PSYCH NEUROLOGIE, V4, P24
KULPE O, ARCH GES PSYCH, V4, P459
KULPE O, 1904, 1 K EXP PSYCH, P56
LAY W, PSYCH REV, V10, P422
LIPMANN O, Z PSYCH, V35, P195
LOBSIEN M, STERNS BEITRAGE PSYC, P26
MCDOUGALL W, BRIT J PSYCH, V1, P317
MEAKIN F, PSYCH REV MONOGR S, V4, P235
MEINONG A, 1901, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
MEUMANN E, 1903, DTSCH SCHULE, V7
MEYER S, GRENZFR NERVEN SEELE
MOORE CS, 1903, PSYCH REV MONOGR S, V17, P277
MOORE TV, 1904, PSYCH REV MONOGR S, V24
MULLER GE, Z PSYCH, V39, P111
NETSCHAJEFF A, SAMMLUNG ABHANDL GEB, V7, P1
OGDEN RM, ARCH GES PSYCH, V2, P93
ORTH J, 1903, SAMMLUNG ABHANDL GEB
PAULHAN F, J PSYCH NORM PATHOL, V1, P321
PHILIPPE J, 1903, IMAGE MENTALE
PIERON H, REV PHIL, V56, P142
PIERON H, REV PHIL, V57, P193
REUTHER F, 1903, WUNDTS PSYCH STUDIEN, V1, P4
SCHAFER W, 1904, THESIS GIESSEN
SCHLICHTING C, 1904, PFLEGE GEDACHTNISSES
SEMON R, 1904, WECHSEL ORGANISCHEN
SIEGEL C, PSYCHOL THEORIE ERKE
SPEARMANN C, AM J PSYCH, P72
SPEARMANN C, AM J PSYCH, V15, P201
SWIFT EJ, AM J PSYCH, V14, P201
TITCHENER EB, SCIENCE, V20, P786
VANBIERVLIET JJ, REV PHIL, P479
WATT HJ, ARCH GES PSYCH, V4, P289
WATT HJ, Z PSYCH, V36, P417
WEHRLIN K, J PSYCH NEUROL, V4, P109
WEHRLIN K, J PSYCH NEUROL, V4, P129
WHIPPLE GM, AM J PSYCH, V15, P489
WINCH WH, BRIT J PSYCH, V1, P127
WINCH WH, BRIT J PSYCH, V1, P134
WIRTH W, 1903, PHILOS STUD, V18, P701
NR 76
TC 0
SN 0724-7842
J9 ARCG GESAMTE PSYCHOL
JI Archiv. Gesamte Psychol.
PD MAR 6
PY 1906
VL 7
IS 1-2
BP A1
EP A48
PG 48
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V98BX
UT ISI:000206629700005
ER

PT J
AU Watt, HJ
AF Watt, H. J.
TI Subject Studies and Psycology Theory
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Book Review
CR MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
NR 1
TC 0
SN 0724-7842
J9 ARCG GESAMTE PSYCHOL
JI Archiv. Gesamte Psychol.
PD JUN 26
PY 1906
VL 7
IS 3-4
BP A259
EP A265
PG 7
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V98CA
UT ISI:000206630000054
ER

PT J
AU Bennussi, V
AF Bennussi, Von Vittorio
TI Italian Psychology
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Review
CR Z PSYCH, V41
Z PSYCHOL, V41
Z PSYCHOL, V42, P23
BENNSSI, 1905, ATT 5 C INT PSIC ROM
CHIABRA G, 1904, AM J PSYCHOL OKT, P615
DESARLO, 1905, GIORNALE ITALIA
FERRARI GC, 1905, AM J PSYCHOL APR, P225
GIERING, Z PSYCHOL, V39, P42
MEINONG A, Z PSYCHOL, V21, P182
MEINONGS, Z PSYCH, V21
PFLAUM CD, 1902, Z PHILOS PHILOS KRIT, V125, P186
SAXINGERS R, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN, V11, P579
SERGI G, 1905, NUOVA ANTALOGIA, V116, P228
WITASEK S, 1904, GRUNDZUGE ALLGEMEINE, P195
NR 14
TC 0
SN 0724-7842
J9 ARCG GESAMTE PSYCHOL
JI Archiv. Gesamte Psychol.
PD JUN 26
PY 1906
VL 7
IS 3-4
BP A141
EP A180
PG 40
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V98CA
UT ISI:000206630000005
ER

PT J
AU [Anon]
TI Effective Focuses are vivid, dependent Contents of Consciousness
SO ARCHIV FUR DIE GESAMTE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA German
DT Article
CR KRUGER F, 1906, WUNDTS PSYCHOL STUD, V1
LIPPS, 1901, SELBSTBEWUSSTSEIN EM, P1
MEINONG A, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V21, P182
SCHUMANN F, 1900, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V23
STORRING G, 1905, ARCH GES PSYCHOL, V6, P319
VONEHRENFELS, 1890, VIERTELJAHRSSCHRIFT, V14
NR 6
TC 0
SN 0724-7842
J9 ARCG GESAMTE PSYCHOL
JI Archiv. Gesamte Psychol.
PD NOV 27
PY 1906
VL 8
IS 3-4
BP 339
EP 384
PG 46
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V98CJ
UT ISI:000206630900003
ER

PT J
AU Hofler, A
AF Hofler, A.
TI Studies on the Subject of Theory and Psychology
SO ZEITSCHRIFT FUR PSYCHOLOGIE UND PHYSIOLOGIE DER SINNESORGANE
LA German
DT Book Review
CR 5 C INT PSIC, P322
1906, G G A, P14
MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
UBERWEGHEINZE, GRUNDRISS GESCH PH 4
NR 4
TC 0
PU SWETS ZEITLINGER PUBLISHERS
PI LISSE
PA P O BOX 825, 2160 SZ LISSE, NETHERLANDS
J9 Z PSYCHOL PHYSIOL SINNESORG
JI Z. Psychol. Physiol. Sinnesorg.
PY 1906
VL 42
BP 192
EP 207
PG 16
SC Psychology, Biological
GA V96JQ
UT ISI:000206514600014
ER

PT J
AU [Anon]
TI Studies on the Theory of the Object and Psychology
SO ARCHIVES DE PSYCHOLOGIE
LA French
DT Book Review
CR MEINONG A, 1904, UNTERSUCHUNGEN GEGEN
NR 1
TC 0
PU MEDECINE ET HYGIENE
PI CHENE-BOURG
PA CH DE LA MOUSSE 46, CASE POSTALE 475, CH-1225 CHENE-BOURG, SWITZERLAND
SN 0003-9640
J9 ARCH PSYCHOLOGIE
JI Arch. Psychol.
PD JUN
PY 1906
VL 5
IS 19
BP 279
EP 282
PG 4
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V93KY
UT ISI:000206315200004
ER

PT J
AU [Anon]
TI SUMMARY OF THE FACTS
SO PSYCHOLOGICAL REVIEW-MONOGRAPH SUPPLEMENTS
LA English
DT Review
CR AMBROSI L, RIV ITALIANA FILOSOF, V1, P61
AMBROSI L, RIV ITALIANA FILOSOF, V2, P149
AMBROSI L, RIV ITALIANA FILOSOF, V2, P347
AMBROSI L, 1891, RIV ITALIANA FILOSOF, V6
AMBROSI L, 1892, RIV ITALIANA FILOSOF, V7
ANDRWS BR, 1903, AM J PSYCHOL, V14, P121
AQUINAS T, OPERA
ARISTOTLE, 1831, OPERA
BAIN A, 1868, FORTNIGHTLY REV SEP
BAIN A, 1888, EMOTIONS WILL
BAIN A, 1892, MIND BODY
BAIN A, 1894, MIND, V3, P348
BAIN A, 1894, SENSES INTELLECT
BALDWIN JM, 1890, HDB PSYCHOL
BALDWIN JM, 1897, MENTAL DEV
BALDWIN JM, 1901, DICT PHILOS PSYCHOL
BALDWIN JM, 1902, DICT PHILOS PSYCHOL
BAWDEN HH, 1902, PHILOS REV, V11, P474
BENEKE, 1861, LEHRBUCH PSYCHOL NAT
BERGSON H, 1900, MATIERE MEMOIRE
BOEHM K, 1877, PHILOS MONATSHEFTE, V13, P481
BOWNE BP, 1886, INTRO PSYCHOL THEORY
BOWNE BP, 1898, METAPHYSICS
BRADLEY FH, 1899, MIND, V8, P145
BRADLEY FH, 1900, MIND, V9, P26
BURNHAM WH, 1889, AM J PSYCHOL, V2, P225
BURNHAM WH, 1889, AM J PSYCHOL, V2, P39
BURNHAM WH, 1889, AM J PSYCHOL, V2, P431
BURNHAM WH, 1889, AM J PSYCHOL, V2, P568
CARPENTER WB, 1874, PRINCIPLES MENTAL PH
CESCA G, 1885, VIERTEL JAHRSCHRIFT, V9, P288
CHARTIER E, 1899, REV METAPHYS MORALE, V7, P26
CHARTIER E, 1899, REV METAPHYS MORALE, V7, P302
CHARTIER E, 1899, REV METAPHYS MORALE, V7, P563
CLIFFORD WK, 1901, LECT ESSAYS
CONDILLAC, 1822, OEUVRES
DESCARTES, 1824, OEUVRES
DUGALDSTEWART, 1818, ELEMENTS PHILOS HUMA
DUGAS L, 1894, REV PHILOS, V38, P449
DUMONT L, 1876, REV PHILOS, V1, P321
EBBINGHAUS H, 1885, UEBER GEDACHTNIS
EBBINGHAUS H, 1902, GRUNDZUGE PSYCHOL
EDRIDGEGREEN FW, 1897, MEMORY ITS CULTIVATI
EGGER V, 1900, REV COURS C 1206, P155
EGGER V, 1900, REV COURS C 1213, P210
FERRO A, RIV FILOS, V6, P496
FOUILLEE A, 1885, REV DEUX MONDES 0515
FOUILLEE A, 1885, REV DEUX MONDES 0701
FOUILLEE A, 1890, EVOLUTIONNISME IDEES
FULLERTON GS, 1904, SYSTEM METAPHYSICS
GOBLOT E, 1898, REV PHILOS, V46, P487
GUYAU M, 1880, REV PHILOSOPHIQUE, V9, P319
HAMILTON, 1859, LECT METAPHYSICS
HERBART, 1850, LEHRBUCH PSYCHOL PSY, V5
HOFFDING H, 1889, VIERTELJAHRSCHRIFT W, V13, P420
HOFFDING H, 1890, VIERTELJ WISS PHIL, V14, P167
HOFFDING H, 1890, VIERTELJ WISS PHIL, V14, P27
HOFFDING H, 1890, VIERTELJ WISS PHIL, V14, P293
HOFFDING H, 1891, VIERTELJAHRSCH WISS, V15, P233
HOFFDINGS H, 1901, PSYCHOLOGIE
HOFLER A, 1897, PSYCHOLOGIE
JAMES W, 1890, PRINCIPLES PSYCHOL
JANET P, 1893, MAT CONT
JODL F, 1896, LEHRBUCH PSYCHOL
KAY D, 1898, MEMORY
LADD GT, 1891, ELEMENTS PHYSL PSYCH
LADD GT, 1894, PSYCHOL DESCRIPTIVE
LADD GT, 1895, PHILOS MIND
LEIBNIZ, 1900, OEUVRES PHILOS
LEWES GH, 1877, PROBLEMS LIFE MIND
LEWES GH, 1880, MIND FUNCTION ORG
LIPPS T, 1883, GRUNDTHATSACHEN SEEL
LOCKE, 1894, ESSAY HUMAN UNDERSTA
LOTZE RH, 1852, MED PSYCHOL
LOTZE RH, 1869, MIKROKOSMUS AUFLAGE
LUYS J, 1888, CERVEAU FONCTIONS
MALEBRANCHE, 1846, OEUVRES
MAUDSLEY H, 1893, PHYSL MIND
MEINONG A, 1893, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V6, P340
MEINONG A, 1893, Z PSYCHOL PHYSL SINN, V6, P417
MONTAGUE WP, 1899, PSYCHOL REV, V6, P457
MONTAGUE WP, 1899, PSYCHOL REV, V6, P606
MUNSTERBERG H, 1900, GRUNDZUGE PSYCHOL
MUNSTERBERG H, 1900, PSYCHOL REV, V7, P1
PAULSEN E, 1892, EINLEITUNG PHILOS
PLATO, OPERA
RABIER E, 1888, PSYCHOLOGIE, V1
RAVAISSON F, 1894, REV METAPHYS MORALE, V2, P1
REHMKE J, 1894, LEHRBUCH ALLGEMEINEN
REID, 1846, WORKS
RIBOT T, 1893, MALADIES MEMOIRE
RICHET C, 1881, REV PHILOS, V2, P540
RICHET C, 1886, REV PHILOS, V21, P561
RICHET C, 1891, ESSAI PSYCHOL GEN
SETH J, 1894, PHILOS REV, V3, P278
SOLLIER P, 1900, PROBLEME MEMOIRE
SOURY J, 1899, SYSTEME NERVEAUX CEN
SPENCE H, 1897, PRINCIPLES PSYCHOL
STAUGUSTINE, OPERA
STOUT GF, 1896, ANAL PSYCHOL
STOUT GF, 1899, MANUAL PSYCHOL
SULLY J, 1882, ILLUSIONS
SULLY J, 1891, OUTLINES PSYCHOL
TAINE H, 1892, INTELLIGENCE
THILLY F, 1901, PHILOS REV, V10, P124
VERDON R, 1877, MIND, V2, P437
VOLKMANN WF, 1884, LEHRBUCH PSYCHOL
VONGROT N, 1898, ARCH SYSTEMAT PHILOS, V4, P257
WARD J, 1890, ENCY BRITANNICA, V20
WASHBURN MF, 1897, PHILOS REV, V6, P267
WITASEK S, 1897, ARCH SYSTEMAT PHILOS, V3, P273
WUNDT W, 1889, SYSTEM PHILOS
WUNDT W, 1903, GRUNDZUGE PHYSL PSYC
NR 113
TC 0
PU AMER PSYCHOLOGICAL ASSOC
PI WASHINGTON
PA 750 FIRST ST NE, WASHINGTON, DC 20002-4242 USA
J9 PSYCHOL REV-MONOGR SUPPL
JI Psychol. Rev.-Monogr. Suppl.
PD OCT
PY 1905
VL 7
IS 2
BP 1
EP 170
PG 170
SC Psychology, Multidisciplinary
GA V96YF
UT ISI:000206552500001
ER

EF